summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authornfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-03-07 17:22:39 -0800
committernfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-03-07 17:22:39 -0800
commitd51bc870f33aa40bb69774796de61e6f8877089c (patch)
tree3f8f2d0f3094b03496954f7b947f73dbb0805e06
parent5eb242465a6235e38efd14f913275c71fb1cccd6 (diff)
Add files from ibiblio as of 2025-03-07 17:22:39HEADmain
-rw-r--r--43409-0.txt398
-rw-r--r--43409-0.zipbin426686 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--43409-8.txt21688
-rw-r--r--43409-8.zipbin426169 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--43409-h.zipbin524628 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--43409-h/43409-h.htm1600
-rw-r--r--43409.txt21688
-rw-r--r--43409.zipbin425487 -> 0 bytes
8 files changed, 594 insertions, 44780 deletions
diff --git a/43409-0.txt b/43409-0.txt
index e0afe99..7ad3839 100644
--- a/43409-0.txt
+++ b/43409-0.txt
@@ -1,41 +1,4 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Kingdom of God is Within You, What is
-Art, by Lyof N. Tolstoi
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-Title: The Kingdom of God is Within You, What is Art
-
-Author: Lyof N. Tolstoi
-
-Translator: Aline Delano
-
-Release Date: August 7, 2013 [EBook #43409]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK KINGDOM OF GOD IS WITHIN YOU ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by David Edwards and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
+*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 43409 ***
LYOF N. TOLSTOÏ
@@ -21325,361 +21288,4 @@ transcriber has rendered as 139 is unclear.
End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Kingdom of God is Within You, What
is Art, by Lyof N. Tolstoi
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK KINGDOM OF GOD IS WITHIN YOU ***
-
-***** This file should be named 43409-0.txt or 43409-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/4/3/4/0/43409/
-
-Produced by David Edwards and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive)
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
-will be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
-one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
-(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
-permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
-set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
-copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
-protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
-Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
-charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
-do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
-rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
-such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
-research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
-practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
-subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
-redistribution.
-
-
-
-*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
- www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
-all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
-If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
-terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
-entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
-and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
-or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
-collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
-individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
-located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
-copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
-works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
-are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
-Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
-freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
-this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
-the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
-keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
-a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
-the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
-before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
-creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
-Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
-the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
-States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
-access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
-whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
-copied or distributed:
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
-from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
-posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
-and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
-or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
-with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
-work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
-through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
-Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
-1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
-terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
-to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
-permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
-word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
-distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
-"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
-posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
-you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
-copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
-request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
-form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
-that
-
-- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
- owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
- has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
- Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
- must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
- prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
- returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
- sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
- address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
- the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or
- destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
- and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
- Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
- money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
- of receipt of the work.
-
-- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
-forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
-both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
-Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
-Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
-collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
-"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
-corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
-property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
-computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
-your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
-your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
-the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
-refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
-providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
-receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
-is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
-opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO OTHER
-WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
-WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
-If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
-law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
-interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
-the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
-provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
-with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
-promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
-harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
-that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
-or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
-work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
-Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
-
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
-including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
-because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
-people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
-To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
-and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
-Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
-permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
-Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
-throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at 809
-North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email
-contact links and up to date contact information can be found at the
-Foundation's web site and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
-SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
-particular state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
-To donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
-with anyone. For forty years, he produced and distributed Project
-Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
-unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
-keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
-
- www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
+*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 43409 ***
diff --git a/43409-0.zip b/43409-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 284d23f..0000000
--- a/43409-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/43409-8.txt b/43409-8.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 840598e..0000000
--- a/43409-8.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,21688 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Kingdom of God is Within You, What is
-Art, by Lyof N. Tolstoi
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-Title: The Kingdom of God is Within You, What is Art
-
-Author: Lyof N. Tolstoi
-
-Translator: Aline Delano
-
-Release Date: August 7, 2013 [EBook #43409]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK KINGDOM OF GOD IS WITHIN YOU ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by David Edwards and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
- LYOF N. TOLSTO
-
- XIX
-
- THE KINGDOM OF GOD
- IS WITHIN YOU
-
- WHAT IS ART?
-
- [Illustration: COUNT TOLSTO PLOWING
-
- FROM THE PAINTING BY REPIN]
-
-
-
-
- THE NOVELS AND OTHER WORKS OF
-
- LYOF N. TOLSTO
-
- THE KINGDOM OF
- GOD IS WITHIN YOU
-
- WHAT IS ART?
-
- [Illustration: publisher mark]
-
- NEW YORK
- CHARLES SCRIBNER'S SONS
- 1902
-
-
-
-
- COPYRIGHT, 1899,
- BY THOMAS V. CROWELL & CO.
-
-
-
-
-INTRODUCTION
-
-
-The present volume contains two contrasting treatises. The first is
-religious, and shows in Count Tolsto's earnest and eloquent manner
-the meaning of Christ's words which he takes for his text,--"The
-Kingdom of God is within you." The outward forms of religion,
-however helpful they may be to some souls, are not essential; the
-superstitions with which Faith sometimes clothes or masks herself
-may or may not be uplifting; but the foundation of Christianity is
-the truth contained in Christ's words, his simple, plain, undogmatic
-commands and prohibitions.
-
-One word sums it all up, and that word is Love. If the world should
-take love for its guiding star, it is evident that all the evils
-of the world would cease,--wars, crimes, poverty, ambitions; the
-millennium would come! Count Tolsto shows how that blessed period
-may begin in every man. The translation of this beautiful and
-inspiring book has been made by Mrs. Aline Delano of Boston.
-
-In answering the question, "What is Art?" Count Tolsto analyzes and
-tests the various definitions given by other writers. He shows up
-with merciless severity what he considers the fallacy in the popular
-delusion that the fetish of Art pardons bestiality, obscenity, and
-whatever conduces to stimulating the passions. The work is strongly
-controversial, and attacks unsparingly many of the popular notions
-of the day, as, for instance, that "Art is the manifestation of some
-mysterious idea of God," or "the expression of man's emotions by
-external signs," or the production of pleasing objects. He believes
-that art has a loftier function, and he proceeds elaborately to
-argue in favor of this universal activity, which should be to effect
-a union among men so that they may have the same noble feelings and
-progress together toward universal and individual well-being. "Art
-for art's sake" is meaningless to him. It is interesting to notice
-that the most original and independent of the French critics has
-recently taken practically the same ground in a lecture, in which he
-asserts that it is the critic's business to test art and literature,
-and that art has a most intimate relation with morality.
-
-Much of the book is racy and amusing; much of it is abstruse,
-and requires close attention. But whether one follows the author
-in his individual opinions or not, it cannot be denied that the
-general tone of the treatise is helpful and uplifting, and that it
-is based on sound common sense. Mr. Aylmer Maude of England is the
-translator of this work, and has had the benefit of Count Tolsto's
-own suggestions in regard to certain points. As the special preface
-explains, the translation accurately represents the author's views,
-while the edition published in Russia was in many ways garbled
-and distorted. The translators of both treatises have seized the
-opportunity of carefully revising their work.
-
-
-
-
-CONTENTS
-
-
- THE KINGDOM OF GOD IS WITHIN YOU
-
- PAGE
-
- INTRODUCTORY 1
-
- CHAPTER I
-
- Doctrine of non-resistance to evil, from the origin
- of Christianity, has been, and still is, professed
- by the minority of men 3
-
- CHAPTER II
-
- Opinions of believers and unbelievers in regard to
- non-resistance 30
-
- CHAPTER III
-
- Misconception of Christianity by non-believers 47
-
- CHAPTER IV
-
- Misconception of Christianity by scientists 79
-
- CHAPTER V
-
- Contradiction of our life and Christian consciousness 100
-
- CHAPTER VI
-
- Attitude of men of the present day toward war 122
-
- CHAPTER VII
-
- Significance of the military conscription 152
-
- CHAPTER VIII
-
- Certainty of the acceptance of the Christian doctrine
- of non-resistance to evil by violence by the men
- of our world 171
-
- CHAPTER IX
-
- The acceptance of the Christian life-conception
- delivers men from the miseries of our pagan life 194
-
- CHAPTER X
-
- Uselessness of violence for the destruction of
- evil--The moral advance of mankind is accomplished,
- not only through the knowledge of truth, but also
- through the establishment of public opinion 218
-
- CHAPTER XI
-
- Christian public opinion already arises in our
- society, and will inevitably destroy the system
- of violence of our life--When this will come about 242
-
- CHAPTER XII
-
- Conclusion: "Repent, for the Kingdom of Heaven is at
- hand!" 254
-
-
-
-
- WHAT IS ART?
-
- TRANSLATOR'S PREFACE 339
-
- AUTHOR'S PREFACE 341
-
- CHAPTER I
-
- Time and labor spent on art--Lives stunted in its
- service--Morality sacrificed to and anger
- justified by art--The rehearsal of an opera
- described 345
-
- CHAPTER II
-
- Does art compensate for so much evil?--What is
- art?--Confusion of opinions--Is it "that which
- produces beauty"?--The word "beauty" in
- Russian--Chaos in sthetics 351
-
- CHAPTER III
-
- Summary of various sthetic theories and definitions,
- from Baumgarten to to-day 360
-
- CHAPTER IV
-
- Definitions of art founded on beauty--Taste not
- definable--A clear definition needed to enable
- us to recognize works of art 376
-
- CHAPTER V
-
- Definitions not founded on beauty--Tolsto's
- definition--The extent and necessity of
- art--How people in the past have distinguished
- good from bad in art 383
-
- CHAPTER VI
-
- How art for pleasure has come into esteem--Religions
- indicate what is considered good and bad--Church
- Christianity--The Renaissance--Skepticism of the
- upper classes--They confound beauty with goodness 389
-
- CHAPTER VII
-
- An sthetic theory framed to suit this view of life 396
-
- CHAPTER VIII
-
- Who have adopted it?--Real art needful for all men--Our
- art too expensive, too unintelligible, and too
- harmful for the masses--The theory of "the elect"
- in art 401
-
- CHAPTER IX
-
- Perversion of our art--It has lost its natural
- subject-matter--Has no flow of fresh
- feeling--Transmits chiefly three base emotions 406
-
- CHAPTER X
-
- Loss of comprehensibility--Decadent art--Recent French
- art--Have we a right to say it is bad and that what
- we like is good art?--The highest art has always
- been comprehensible to normal people--What fails
- to infect normal people is not art 412
-
- CHAPTER XI
-
- Counterfeits of art produced by: Borrowing; Imitating;
- Striking; Interesting--Qualifications needful for
- production of real works of art, and those
- sufficient for production of counterfeits 436
-
- CHAPTER XII
-
- Causes of production of counterfeits--Professionalism--
- Criticism--Schools of art 446
-
- CHAPTER XIII
-
- Wagner's "Nibelung's Ring" a type of counterfeit
- art--Its success, and the reasons thereof 455
-
- CHAPTER XIV
-
- Truths fatal to preconceived views are not readily
- recognized--Proportion of works of art to
- counterfeits--Perversion of taste and incapacity
- to recognize art--Examples 468
-
- CHAPTER XV
-
- THE QUALITY OF ART, CONSIDERED APART FROM ITS
- SUBJECT-MATTER--The sign of art: Infectiousness--
- Incomprehensible to those whose taste is
- perverted--Conditions of infection: Individuality;
- Clearness; Sincerity 476
-
- CHAPTER XVI
-
- THE QUALITY OF ART, CONSIDERED ACCORDING TO ITS
- SUBJECT-MATTER--The better the feeling the better
- the art--The cultured crowd--The religious
- perception of our age--The new ideals put fresh
- demands to art--Art unites--Religious art--Universal
- art--Both coperate to one result--The new
- appraisement of art--Bad art--Examples of art--How
- to test a work claiming to be art 479
-
- CHAPTER XVII
-
- Results of absence of true art--Results of perversion
- of art: Labor and lives spent on what is useless
- and harmful--The abnormal life of the rich--
- Perplexity of children and plain folk--Confusion
- of right and wrong--Nietzsche and Redbeard--
- Superstition, Patriotism, and Sensuality 497
-
- CHAPTER XVIII
-
- The purpose of human life is the brotherly union of
- man--Art must be guided by this perception 507
-
- CHAPTER XIX
-
- The art of the future not a possession of a select
- minority, but a means toward perfection and unity 510
-
- CHAPTER XX
-
- The connection between science and art--The mendacious
- sciences; the trivial sciences--Science should deal
- with the great problems of human life, and serve as
- a basis for art 517
-
- APPENDICES
-
- APPENDIX I 528
-
- APPENDIX II 530
-
- APPENDIX III 537
-
- APPENDIX IV 542
-
-
-
-
- THE KINGDOM OF GOD IS
- WITHIN YOU
-
- OR,
-
- CHRISTIANITY NOT AS A MYSTICAL DOCTRINE,
- BUT AS A NEW-LIFE CONCEPTION
-
-
-
-
-AUTHOR'S PREFACE
-
-
-In this book I have endeavored to show that our modern Christianity
-has been tried and found wanting, that the armed camp of Europe
-is not Christian, but Pagan, as is latter-day religion, of which
-the present state of affairs is the outcome. The book contains
-three principal ideas,--the first, that Christianity is not only
-the worship of God and a doctrine of salvation, but is, above all
-things, a new conception of life, which is changing the whole fabric
-of human society; the second, that from the first appearance of
-Christianity there entered into it two opposite currents,--the one
-establishing the true and new conception of life, which it gave to
-humanity, and the other perverting the true Christian doctrine and
-converting it into a Pagan religion, and that this contradiction
-has attained in our days the highest degree of tension which now
-expresses itself in universal armaments, and on the Continent in
-general conscription; and the third, that this contradiction, which
-is masked by hypocrisy, can only be solved by an effort of sincerity
-on the part of every individual endeavoring to conform the acts of
-his life,--independent of what are regarded as the exigencies of
-family, society, and the State,--with those moral principles which
-he considers to be true.
-
- * * * * *
-
-_The above is an extract (slightly adapted) from an article on
-Count Tolsto which appeared in the London_ Daily Chronicle _of
-26th December,1893. Sent by Miss Tatiana Tolsto, on behalf of
-her father, to the publishers of this edition of his work, it is
-inserted here as a Preface at the suggestion of Count Tolsto._
-
-
-
- THE KINGDOM OF GOD IS
- WITHIN YOU;
-
- OR,
-
- CHRISTIANITY NOT AS A MYSTICAL DOCTRINE,
- BUT AS A NEW LIFE-CONCEPTION
-
- "And ye shall know the truth, and the truth shall make you
- free."--JOHN viii. 32.
-
- "And fear not them which kill the body, but are not able to kill
- the soul; but rather fear him which is able to destroy both soul
- and body in hell."--MATTHEW x. 28.
-
- "Ye are bought with a price; be not ye the servants of men."--I
- CORINTHIANS vii. 23.
-
-
-INTRODUCTORY
-
-In 1884 I wrote a book entitled "My Religion," wherein I formulated
-my creed.
-
-While affirming my faith in the doctrine taught by Christ, I could
-not refrain from manifesting at the same time the reason why I look
-upon the ecclesiastical doctrine commonly called Christianity as
-erroneous, and to me incredible.
-
-Among the many deviations of the latter from the doctrine of Christ,
-I called attention to the principal one; namely--the evasion of
-the commandment that forbids man to resist evil by violence, as a
-striking example of the perversion of the doctrine of Christ by
-ecclesiastical interpretation.
-
-I knew but little, no more than other men, of what had been taught
-or written on the subject of non-resistance in former times. I
-was familiar with the opinions of the Fathers of the Church,
-Origen, Tertullian, and others; and I also knew of the existence
-of certain sects called Mennonites, Herrnhuters, and Quakers, all
-of which forbid Christians the use of arms, and will not submit to
-conscription, but I never knew the arguments by which these sects
-sought to maintain their views.
-
-My book, as I had anticipated, was prohibited by the Russian
-censors, but partly in consequence of my reputation as a writer,
-partly because it excited curiosity, it had a circulation in
-manuscript, and while, on the one hand, it called forth from those
-persons who sympathized with my ideas, information concerning works
-written on the same subject, on the other, it excited criticisms on
-the opinions therein maintained.
-
-These two results, together with the historical events of recent
-years, made many things clear to me, and led me to many new
-deductions and conclusions which I now desire to set forth.
-
-I shall speak in the first place of the information I received in
-regard to the history of this matter of non-resistance to evil;
-and in the second place, of the arguments upon the subject offered
-by religious critics, that is, by critics who profess the religion
-of Christ, as well as those of secular critics, that is to say, of
-men who make no such profession; and finally, the conclusions which
-I drew from the arguments of both parties, as well as from the
-historical events of later years.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I
-
-DOCTRINE OF NON-RESISTANCE TO EVIL FROM THE ORIGIN OF CHRISTIANITY,
-HAS BEEN, AND STILL IS, PROFESSED BY THE MINORITY OF MEN
-
- Concerning the book "My Religion"--Information called forth by
- this book--Letters of Quakers--Professions of Garrison--Adin
- Ballou, his works and Catechism--"The Net of Faith" of
- Helchitsky--Relations of men toward works that explain the
- teachings of Christ--The book of Dymond "On War"--Assertion of
- Non-resistance by Musser--Relations of government in 1818 toward
- those who refuse to join the military service--General inimical
- attitude of governments and liberal men toward those who refused
- to take part in the violence of governments and their conscious
- effort to conceal and ignore these demonstrations of Christian
- Non-resistance.
-
-
-Among the early responses called forth by my book were letters
-from American Quakers. In these letters, while expressing their
-sympathy with my ideas in regard to the unlawfulness of violence
-and war where Christians are concerned, the Quakers made known to
-me many details in relation to their sect, which for more than two
-hundred years has professed the doctrine of Christ in the matter of
-non-resistance, and which never has, nor does it now use weapons for
-self-defense. Together with the letters, the Quakers sent me many
-of their pamphlets, periodicals, and books. From these publications
-I learned that already, many years ago, they had demonstrated the
-Christian's duty of keeping the commandment of non-resistance to
-evil by violence, and the error of the church which countenances
-wars and executions.
-
-Having shown by a succession of arguments and texts that war--the
-slaughter and mutilation of men--is inconsistent with a religion
-founded on peace and good-will to men, the Quakers go on to assert
-that nothing is so conducive to the defamation of Christ's truth in
-the eyes of the heathen, or so successful in arresting the spread
-of Christianity throughout the world, as the refusal to obey this
-commandment, made by men who call themselves Christians, and by the
-sanction thus given to war and violence. The doctrine of Christ,
-which has entered into the consciousness of men, not by force or by
-the sword, as they say, but by non-resistance to evil, by humility,
-meekness, and the love of peace, can only be propagated among men by
-the example of peace, love, and concord given by its followers.
-
-A Christian, according to the teaching of the Lord, should be guided
-in his relations toward men only by the love of peace, and therefore
-there should be no authority having power to compel a Christian to
-act in a manner contrary to God's law, and contrary to his chief
-duty toward his fellow-men.
-
-The requirements of the civil law, they say, may oblige men, who,
-to win some worldly advantages, seek to conciliate that which is
-irreconcilable, to violate the law of God; but for a Christian,
-who firmly believes that his salvation depends upon following the
-teaching of Christ, this law can have no meaning.
-
-My acquaintance with the activity of the Quakers and with their
-publications, with Fox, Paine, and particularly with a work
-published by Dymond in 1827, proved to me not only that men have
-long since recognized the impossibility of harmonizing Christianity
-and war, but that this incompatibility has been proved so clearly
-and irrefragably, that one can only wonder how it is possible for
-this incongruous union of Christianity with violence--a doctrine
-which is still taught by the church--to remain in force.
-
-Besides the information obtained from the Quakers, I also received
-from America about the same time advices on the subject from another
-and hitherto unknown source. The son of William Lloyd Garrison, the
-famous anti-slavery champion, wrote to me that, having read my book,
-wherein he had found ideas similar to those expressed by his father
-in 1838, and taking it for granted that I should be interested to
-know that fact, he sent me a book written by Mr. Garrison some fifty
-years ago, entitled "Non-resistance."
-
-This avowal of principle took place under the following
-circumstances:--In 1838, on the occasion of a meeting of the Society
-for the Promotion of Peace, William Lloyd Garrison, while discussing
-means for the suppression of war, arrived at the conclusion that the
-establishment of universal peace can have no solid foundation save
-in the literal obedience to the commandment of non-resistance by
-violence (Matthew v. 39), as understood by the Quakers, with whom
-Garrison was on friendly terms. Having arrived at this conclusion,
-he wrote, offering to the Society the following proclamation, which
-at that time, in 1838, was signed by many of its members:--
-
- "_Declaration of Sentiments adopted by the Peace Convention,
- held in Boston, September 18, 19, and 20, 1838_:--
-
- "Assembled in Convention, from various sections of the American
- Union, for the promotion of Peace on earth and Good-will among
- men, We, the undersigned, regard it as due to ourselves, to the
- cause which we love, to the country in which we live, and to the
- world, to publish a Declaration, expressive of the principles
- we cherish, the purposes we aim to accomplish, and the measures
- we shall adopt to carry forward the work of peaceful, universal
- reformation.
-
- "We cannot acknowledge allegiance to any human government;
- neither can we oppose any such government by a resort to
- physical force. We recognize but one King and Lawgiver, one
- Judge and Ruler of mankind. We are bound by the laws of a
- Kingdom which is not of this world; the subjects of which are
- forbidden to fight; in which Mercy and Truth are met together,
- and Righteousness and Peace have kissed each other; which has no
- state lines, no national partitions, no geographical boundaries;
- in which there is no distinction of rank or division of caste,
- or inequality of sex; the officers of which are Peace, its
- exactors Righteousness, its walls Salvation, and its gates
- Praise; and which is destined to break in pieces and consume
- all other kingdoms. Our country is the world, our countrymen
- are all mankind. We love the land of our nativity only as
- we love all other lands. The interests, rights, liberties of
- American citizens are no more dear to us than are those of the
- whole human race. Hence, we can allow no appeal to patriotism to
- revenge any national insult or injury; the Principle of Peace,
- under whose stainless banner we rally, came not to destroy, but
- to save, even the worst of enemies. He has left us an example,
- that we should follow His steps. God commendeth his love toward
- us, in that while we were yet sinners, Christ died for us.
-
- "We conceive that if a nation has no right to defend itself
- against foreign enemies, or to punish its invaders, no
- individual possesses that right in his own case. The unit
- cannot be of greater importance than the aggregate. If one
- man may take life, to obtain or defend his rights, the same
- license must necessarily be granted to communities, states,
- and nations. If _he_ may use a dagger or a pistol, _they_ may
- employ cannon, bombshells, land and naval forces. The means
- of self-preservation must be in proportion to the magnitude
- of interests at stake, and the number of lives exposed to
- destruction. But if a rapacious and bloodthirsty soldiery,
- thronging these shores from abroad, with intent to commit
- rapine and destroy life, may not be resisted by the people
- or magistracy, then ought no resistance to be offered to
- domestic troubles of the public peace or of private security.
- No obligation can rest upon Americans to regard foreigners as
- more sacred in their persons than themselves, or to give them a
- monopoly of wrong-doing with impunity.
-
- "The dogma, that all the governments of the world are
- approvingly ordained of God, and that the powers that be in the
- United States, in Russia, in Turkey, are in accordance with His
- will, is not less absurd than impious. It makes the impartial
- Author of human freedom and equality unequal and tyrannical. It
- cannot be affirmed that the powers that be, in any nation, are
- actuated by the spirit or guided by the example of Christ, in
- the treatment of enemies; therefore, they cannot be agreeable
- to the will of God; and therefore their overthrow, by a
- spiritual regeneration of their subjects, is inevitable.
-
- "We register our testimony not only against all wars, whether
- offensive or defensive, but all preparations for war; against
- every naval ship, every arsenal, every fortification; against
- the militia system and a standing army; against all military
- chieftains and soldiers; against all monuments commemorative
- of victory over a fallen foe, all trophies won in battle, all
- celebrations in honor of military or naval exploits; against all
- appropriations for the defense of a nation by force and army,
- on the part of any legislative body; against every edict of
- government requiring of its subjects military service. Hence we
- deem it unlawful to bear arms, or to hold a military office.
-
- "As every human government is upheld by physical strength, and
- its laws are enforced virtually at the point of the bayonet,
- we cannot hold any office which imposes upon its incumbent the
- obligation to compel men to do right, on pain of imprisonment
- or death. We therefore voluntarily exclude ourselves from every
- legislative and judicial body, and repudiate all human politics,
- worldly honors, and stations of authority. If we cannot occupy
- a seat in the legislature or on the bench, neither can we elect
- _others_ to act as our substitutes in any such capacity.
-
- "It follows that we cannot sue any man at law, to compel him by
- force to restore anything which he may have wrongfully taken
- from us or others; but if he has seized our coat, we shall
- surrender up our cloak, rather than subject him to punishment.
-
- "We believe that the penal code of the old covenant, 'An eye
- for an eye, and a tooth for a tooth,' has been abrogated by
- Jesus Christ; and that under the new covenant, the forgiveness
- instead of the punishment of enemies has been enjoined upon all
- His disciples, in all cases whatsoever. To extort money from
- enemies, or set them upon a pillory, or cast them into prison,
- or hang them upon gallows, is obviously not to forgive, but to
- take retribution. 'Vengeance is mine, I will repay, saith the
- Lord.'
-
- "The history of mankind is crowded with evidences proving that
- physical coercion is not adapted to moral regeneration; that the
- sinful disposition of men can be subdued only by love; that evil
- can be exterminated from the earth only by goodness; that it is
- not safe to rely upon an arm of flesh, upon man whose breath is
- in his nostrils, to preserve us from harm; that there is great
- security in being gentle, harmless, long-suffering, and abundant
- in mercy; that it is only the meek who shall inherit the earth,
- for the violent who resort to the sword are destined to perish
- with the sword. Hence, as a measure of sound policy--of safety
- to property, life, and liberty--of public quietude and private
- enjoyment--as well as on the ground of allegiance to Him who
- is King of kings and Lord of lords, we cordially adopt the
- non-resistance principle; being confident that it provides for
- all possible consequences, will insure all things needful to us,
- is armed with omnipotent power, and must ultimately triumph over
- every assailing force.
-
- "We advocate no jacobinical doctrine. The spirit of jacobinism
- is the spirit of retaliation, violence, and murder. It neither
- fears God nor regards man. We would be filled with the spirit of
- Jesus Christ. If we abide by our principles, it is impossible
- for us to be disorderly, or plot treason, or participate in any
- evil work; we shall submit to every ordinance of man, for the
- Lord's sake; obey all the requirements of government, except
- such as we deem contrary to the commands of the gospel; and in
- no case resist the operation of law, except by meekly submitting
- to the penalty of disobedience.
-
- "But while we shall adhere to the doctrine of non-resistance and
- passive submission, we purpose, in a moral and spiritual sense,
- to speak and act boldly in the cause of God; to assail iniquity
- in high places and in low places; to apply our principles
- to all existing civil, political, legal, and ecclesiastical
- institutions; and to hasten the time when the kingdoms of this
- world will have become the kingdoms of our Lord and of His
- Christ, and He shall reign forever.
-
- "It appears to us a self-evident truth, that, whatever the
- gospel is designed to destroy at any period of the world, being
- contrary to it, ought now to be abandoned. If, then, the time
- is predicted when swords shall be beaten into plowshares, and
- spears into pruning-hooks, and men shall not learn the art of
- war any more, it follows that all who manufacture, sell, or
- wield those deadly weapons do thus array themselves against the
- peaceful dominion of the Son of God on earth.
-
- "Having thus briefly stated our principles and purposes, we
- proceed to specify the measures we propose to adopt in carrying
- our object into effect.
-
- "We expect to prevail through the foolishness of
- preaching,--striving to commend ourselves unto every man's
- conscience, in the sight of God. From the press we shall
- promulgate our sentiments as widely as practicable. We shall
- endeavor to secure the coperation of all persons, of whatever
- name or sect. The triumphant progress of the cause of Temperance
- and of Abolition in our land, through the instrumentality of
- benevolent and voluntary associations, encourages us to combine
- our own means and efforts for the promotion of a still greater
- cause. Hence, we shall employ lecturers, circulate tracts
- and publications, form societies, and petition our state and
- national governments, in relation to the subject of Universal
- Peace. It will be our leading object to devise ways and means
- for effecting a radical change in the views, feelings, and
- practices of society, respecting the sinfulness of war and the
- treatment of enemies.
-
- "In entering upon the great work before us, we are not unmindful
- that, in its prosecution, we may be called to test our sincerity
- even as in a fiery ordeal. It may subject us to insult, outrage,
- suffering, yea, even death itself. We anticipate no small amount
- of misconception, misrepresentation, calumny. Tumults may arise
- against us. The ungodly and violent, the proud and pharisaical,
- the ambitious and tyrannical, principalities and powers, and
- spiritual wickedness in high places, may contrive to crush
- us. So they treated the Messiah, whose example we are humbly
- striving to imitate. If we suffer with Him we know that we
- shall reign with Him. We shall not be afraid of their terror,
- neither be troubled. Our confidence is in the Lord Almighty,
- not in man. Having withdrawn from human protection, what can
- sustain us but that faith which overcomes the world? We shall
- not think it strange concerning the fiery trial which is to
- try us, as though some strange thing had happened unto us; but
- rejoice, inasmuch as we are partakers of Christ's sufferings.
- Wherefore, we commit the keeping of our souls to God, in
- well-doing, as unto a faithful Creator. For every one that
- forsakes house, or brethren, or sisters, or father, or mother,
- or wife, or children, or lands, for Christ's sake, shall receive
- a hundredfold, and shall inherit everlasting life.
-
- "Firmly relying upon the certain and universal triumph of the
- sentiments contained in this declaration, however formidable may
- be the opposition arrayed against them--in solemn testimony of
- our faith in their divine origin--we hereby affix our signatures
- to it, commending it to the reason and conscience of mankind,
- giving ourselves no anxiety as to what may befall us, and
- resolving in the strength of the Lord God calmly and meekly to
- abide the issue."
-
-Later on, Garrison founded a Non-resistance Society and started
-a periodical entitled _The Non-resistant_, wherein the full
-significance and consequences of the doctrine were plainly
-set forth, as has been stated in the proclamation. I gained,
-subsequently, further information concerning the fate of this
-society and the periodical from a biography of William Lloyd
-Garrison, written by his sons.
-
-Neither the periodical nor the society enjoyed a long life. The
-majority of Garrison's associates in the work of liberating the
-slaves, apprehensive lest the too radical views expressed in
-the _The Non-resistant_ might alienate men from the practical
-business of the abolition of slavery, renounced the doctrine of
-non-resistance as expressed in the declaration, and both periodical
-and society passed out of existence.
-
-One would suppose that this declaration of Garrison, formulating,
-as it did, an important profession of faith in terms both energetic
-and eloquent, would have made a deeper impression on men, and have
-become a subject for universal consideration. On the contrary, not
-only is it unknown in Europe, but even among those Americans who
-honor the memory of Garrison there are but few who are familiar with
-this.
-
-A similar fate befell another American champion of the same
-doctrine, Adin Ballou, who died recently, and who for fifty years
-had preached in favor of non-resistance to evil. How little is known
-in regard to the question of non-resistance may be gathered from
-the fact that the younger Garrison (who has written an excellent
-biography of his father in four large volumes), in answer to my
-inquiry whether any society for the defense of the principles of
-non-resistance was yet alive and possessed adherents, wrote me
-that, so far as he knew, the society had dissolved and its members
-were no longer interested, while at this very time Adin Ballou, who
-had shared Garrison's labors, and who had devoted fifty years of
-his life to the teaching of the doctrine of non-resistance, both
-by pen and by tongue, was still living in Hopedale, Massachusetts.
-Afterward I received a letter from Wilson, a disciple and co-worker
-of Ballou, and subsequently I entered into correspondence with
-Ballou himself. I wrote to him, and he sent me his works, from
-one of which I made the following extract:--"Jesus Christ is my
-Lord and Master," says Ballou in one of his articles, written to
-show the inconsistency of Christians who believe in the right of
-defensive and offensive warfare. "I have covenanted to forsake all
-and follow Him, through good and evil report, until death. But I am
-nevertheless a Democratic Republican citizen of the United States,
-implicitly sworn to bear true allegiance to my country, and to
-support its Constitution, if need be, with my life. Jesus Christ
-requires me to do unto others as I would that others should do
-unto me. The Constitution of the United States requires me to do
-unto twenty-seven hundred thousand slaves" (they had slaves then;
-now they could easily be replaced by workmen) "the very contrary
-of what I would have them do unto me--viz., assist to keep in a
-grievous bondage.... But I am quite easy. I vote on. I help govern
-on. I am willing to hold any office I may be elected to under the
-Constitution. And I am still a Christian. I profess on. I find
-difficulty in keeping covenant both with Christ and the Constitution.
-
-"Jesus Christ forbids me to resist evil-doers by taking
-'eye for eye, tooth for tooth, blood and life for life.' My
-government requires the very reverse, and depends, for its own
-self-preservation, on the halter, the musket, and the sword,
-seasonably employed against its domestic and foreign enemies.
-
-"In the maintenance and use of this expensive life-destroying
-apparatus we can exemplify the virtues _of forgiving our injuries,
-loving our enemies, blessing them that curse us, and doing good
-to those that hate us_. For this reason we have regular Christian
-chaplains to pray for us and call down the smiles of God on our holy
-murders.
-
-"I see it all" (that is, the contradiction between profession and
-life), "and yet I insist that I am as good a Christian as ever. I
-fellowship all; I vote on; I help govern on; I profess on; _and I
-glory in being at once a devoted Christian and a no less devoted
-adherent to the existing government_. I will not give in to those
-miserable non-resistant notions. I will not throw away my political
-influence, and leave unprincipled men to carry on government alone.
-
-"The Constitution says--'Congress shall have power to declare
-war, grant letters of marque and reprisal,' and I agree to this,
-I indorse it. I swear to help carry it through. I vote for men to
-hold office who are sworn to support all this. What, then, am I less
-a Christian? Is not war a Christian service? Is it not perfectly
-Christian to murder hundreds of thousands of fellow human beings; to
-ravish defenseless females, sack and burn cities, and enact all the
-other cruelties of war? Out upon these new-fangled scruples! This is
-the very way to forgive injuries, and love our enemies! If we only
-do it all in true love nothing can be more Christian than wholesale
-murder!"
-
-In another pamphlet, entitled "How many does it take?" he says--"One
-man must not kill. If he does, it is murder; two, ten, one hundred
-men, acting on their responsibility, must not kill. If they do, it
-is still murder. But a state or nation may kill as many as they
-please, and it is no murder. It is just, necessary, commendable, and
-right. Only get people enough to agree to it, and the butchery of
-myriads of human beings is perfectly innocent. But how many does it
-take? This is the question. Just so with theft, robbery, burglary,
-and all other crimes. Man-stealing is a great crime in one man, or
-a very few men only. But a whole nation can commit it, and the act
-becomes not only innocent, but highly honorable."
-
-The following is, in substance, a catechism of Ballou, compiled for
-the use of his congregation:--
-
-
-THE CATECHISM OF NON-RESISTANCE.[1]
-
- [1] From the Russian version, which Count Tolsto calls a free
- translation made with some omissions. After diligent search and
- inquiry I have been unable to find this catechism among Ballou's
- works.--TR.
-
-_Q._ Whence comes the word non-resistance?
-
-_A._ From the utterance: "But I say unto you, That ye resist not
-evil."--Matthew v. 39.
-
-_Q._ What does this word denote?
-
-_A._ It denotes a lofty Christian virtue, commanded by Christ.
-
-_Q._ Are we to understand the word non-resistance in its broad
-sense, that is, as meaning that one should offer no resistance to
-evil whatsoever?
-
-_A._ No; it should be understood literally as Christ taught it--that
-is, not to return evil for evil. Evil should be resisted by all
-lawful means, but not by evil.
-
-_Q._ From what does it appear that Christ gave that meaning to
-non-resistance?
-
-_A._ From the words which he used on that occasion. He said: "Ye
-have heard that it hath been said, An eye for an eye, and a tooth
-for a tooth. But I say unto you, That ye resist not evil: but
-whosoever shall smite thee on thy right cheek, turn to him the other
-also. And if any man will sue thee at the law, and take away thy
-coat, let him have thy cloke also."
-
-_Q._ Whom did he mean by the words: "Ye have heard that it hath been
-said"?
-
-_A._ The patriarchs and the prophets, and that which they spoke and
-which is contained in the Old Testament, that the Jews generally
-call the Law and Prophets.
-
-_Q._ To what laws did Christ allude in the words: "Ye have heard"?
-
-_A._ To those in which Noah, Moses, and other prophets grant the use
-of personal violence against those who commit it, for the purpose of
-punishing and destroying evil deeds.
-
-_Q._ Mention such commandments.
-
-_A._ "Whoso sheddeth man's blood, by man shall his blood be
-shed."--Genesis ix. 6.
-
-"He that smiteth a man, so that he die, shall be surely put to
-death. And if any mischief follow, then thou shalt give life for
-life, eye for eye, tooth for tooth, hand for hand, foot for foot,
-burning for burning, wound for wound, stripe for stripe."--Exodus
-xxi. 12, 23, 24, 25.
-
-"And he that killeth any man shall surely be put to death. And if
-a man cause a blemish in his neighbor; as he hath done, so shall
-it be done to him; breach for breach, eye for eye, tooth for
-tooth."--Leviticus xxiv. 17, 19, 20.
-
-"And the judges shall make diligent inquisition: and, behold, if
-the witness be a false witness, and hath testified falsely against
-his brother; then shall ye do unto him, as he had thought to have
-done unto his brother. And thine eye shall not pity; but life shall
-go for life, eye for eye, tooth for tooth, hand for hand, foot for
-foot."--Deuteronomy xix. 18, 19, 21.
-
-These are the injunctions of which Jesus speaks.
-
-Noah, Moses, and the prophets taught that he who murders, mutilates,
-or tortures his neighbor doeth evil. In order to combat and destroy
-this evil, the evil-doer must be chastised by death, mutilation,
-or some personal torture. Transgressions are to be avenged by
-transgressions, murder by murder, torture by torture, evil by evil.
-Thus taught Noah, Moses, and the prophets. But Christ forbids all
-this. The gospel says: "I say unto you, resist ye not evil, avenge
-not one transgression by another, but rather bear a repetition of
-the offense from the evil-doer." That which has been allowed is now
-forbidden. Having understood what resistance we have been taught, we
-know exactly what Christ meant by non-resistance.
-
-_Q._ Did the teaching of the Ancients admit of resisting
-transgression by transgression?
-
-_A._ Yes; but Christ forbade it. A Christian has no right in any
-case to take the life of, or to offend against, the evil-doer.
-
-_Q._ May he not kill or wound another in self-defense?
-
-_A._ No.
-
-_Q._ May he enter a complaint to the magistrates for the purpose of
-chastising the offender?
-
-_A._ No. For that which he does through others, he practically does
-himself.
-
-_Q._ May he fight in the army against foreign or domestic enemies?
-
-_A._ Certainly not. He can take no part in war, or in the
-preparation therefor. He cannot make use of weapons. He cannot
-resist one transgression by another, whether he is alone or in
-company, either personally or through other agents.
-
-_Q._ May he voluntarily select or drill soldiers for the government?
-
-_A._ He cannot do this, if he wishes to be _faithful_ to the law of
-Christ.
-
-_Q._ May he voluntarily contribute money to assist a government
-which is supported by military power, executions, and violence in
-general?
-
-_A._ No; unless the money is to be used for some special purpose,
-justifiable in itself, where the object and the means employed are
-good.
-
-_Q._ May he pay taxes to such a government?
-
-_A._ No; he should not pay taxes on his own accord, but he should
-not resist the levying of a tax. A tax imposed by the government
-is levied independently of the will of the citizens. It may not be
-resisted without recourse to violence, and a Christian should not
-use violence; therefore he must deliver his property to the forced
-damage caused by authorities.
-
-_Q._ May a Christian vote at elections and take part in courts of
-law or in the government?
-
-_A._ No. To take a part in elections, courts of law, or in the
-administration of government is the same thing as a participation in
-the violence of the government.
-
-_Q._ What is the chief significance of the doctrine of
-non-resistance?
-
-_A._ To show that it is possible to extirpate evil from one's own
-heart, as well as from that of one's neighbor. This doctrine forbids
-men to do that which perpetuates and multiplies evil in this world.
-He who attacks another, and does him an injury, excites a feeling
-of hatred, the worst of all evil. To offend our neighbor because he
-has offended us, with ostensible motive of self-defense, means but
-to repeat the evil act against him as well as against ourselves,--it
-means to beget, or at least to let loose, or to encourage the Evil
-Spirit whom we wish to expel. Satan cannot be driven out by Satan,
-falsehood cannot be purged by falsehood, nor can evil be conquered
-by evil. True non-resistance is the only real method of resisting
-evil. It crushes the serpent's head. It destroys and exterminates
-all evil feeling.
-
-_Q._ But admitting that the idea of the doctrine is correct, is it
-practicable?
-
-_A._ As practicable as any virtue commanded by the law of God.
-Good deeds cannot be performed under all circumstances without
-self-sacrifice, privations, suffering, and, in extreme cases,
-without the loss of life itself. But he who prizes life more than
-the fulfilment of God's will is already dead to the only true life.
-Such a man, in trying to save his life, will lose it. Furthermore,
-wherever non-resistance costs the sacrifice of one's life, or of
-some essential advantage of life, resistance costs thousands of such
-sacrifices.
-
-_Non-resistance preserves; resistance destroys._
-
-It is much safer to act justly than unjustly; to endure an offense
-rather than resist it by violence; safer even in regard to the
-present life. If all men refused to resist evil, the world would be
-a happy one.
-
-_Q._ But if only a few were to act thus, what would become of them?
-
-_A._ Even if but one man were to act thus, and the others should
-agree to crucify him, would it not be more glorious for him to die
-in the glory of non-resisting love, praying for his enemies, than
-live wearing the crown of Csar, besprinkled with the blood of the
-murdered? But whether it be one man or thousands of men who are
-firmly determined not to resist evil by evil, still, whether in the
-midst of civilized or uncivilized neighbors, men who do not rely
-on violence are safer than those who do. A robber, a murderer, a
-villain, will be less likely to harm them if he finds them offering
-no armed resistance. "All they that take the sword shall perish with
-the sword," and he who seeks peace, who acts like a friend, who is
-inoffensive, who forgives and forgets injuries, generally enjoys
-peace, or if he dies, he dies a blessed death.
-
-Hence, if all were to follow the commandment of non-resistance,
-there would manifestly be neither offense nor evil-doing. If even
-the majority were composed of such men they would establish the rule
-of love and good-will even toward the offenders, by not resisting
-evil by evil nor using violence. Even if such men formed a numerous
-minority, they would have such an improving moral influence over
-society that every severe punishment would be revoked, and violence
-and enmity would be replaced by peace and good-will. If they formed
-but a small minority, they would rarely experience anything worse
-than the contempt of the world, while the world, without preserving
-it or feeling grateful therefor, would become better and wiser from
-its latent influence. And if, in the most extreme cases, certain
-members of the minority might be persecuted unto death, these men,
-thus dying for the truth, would have left their doctrine already
-sanctified by the blood of martyrdom.
-
-Peace be with all ye who seek peace; and may the all-conquering love
-be the imperishable inheritance of every soul who submits of its own
-accord to the law of Christ.
-
-_Resist not evil by violence._--ADIN BALLOU.
-
- * * * * *
-
-For fifty years Ballou wrote and published books chiefly on the
-subject of non-resistance. In these writings, remarkable for their
-eloquence and simplicity of style, the question is considered in
-all its aspects. He proved it to be the duty of every Christian
-who professes to believe that the Bible is a revelation from God,
-to obey this commandment. He enumerates the arguments against the
-commandment of non-resistance, drawn from the Old as well as the
-New Testament, the expulsion from the Temple, among others, and
-answers each one in turn. Setting the Bible aside, he points out the
-practical good sense on which this principle is founded, sums up the
-arguments against it, and refutes them. For instance, in one chapter
-of his work he treats of non-resistance to evil in exceptional
-cases, and affirms that granting the truth of the supposition that
-there are cases to which the rule of non-resistance cannot be
-applied, that would prove that the rule in general is inconsistent.
-Citing such exceptional cases, he proves that these are the very
-occasions when the application of this rule is both wise and
-necessary. The question has been viewed from every side, and no
-argument, whether of opponent or sympathizer, has been neglected or
-left unanswered. I mention this in order to call attention to the
-deep interest which works of this class ought to excite in men who
-profess Christianity; and it would seem therefore that Ballou's
-zeal should have been recognized, and the ideas he expressed either
-accepted or disproved. But such was not the case.
-
-The life-work of Garrison, the father, his founding the society
-of the Non-resistant, and his declaration, convinced me, more
-even than my intercourse with the Quakers, that the divergence of
-the Christianity of the State from Christ's law of non-resistance
-by violence has been long since noticed and pointed out, and men
-have labored and still do labor to counteract it. Thus Ballou's
-earnestness has fortified my opinion. But the fate of Garrison, and
-particularly that of Ballou, almost unknown, notwithstanding fifty
-years of active and persistent work in one direction, has confirmed
-me in the belief that there exists a certain inexpressed but fixed
-determination to oppose all such attempts by a wall of silence.
-
-In August of 1890 Ballou died, and his obituary appeared in the
-American _Religio-Philosophical Journal_ of August 23d.
-
-From this obituary we learn that Ballou was the spiritual leader of
-a community, that he had preached from 8000 to 9000 sermons, married
-1000 couples, and written 500 articles, but in regard to the object
-of his life's devotion not a word is said; the word "non-resistance"
-is never mentioned.
-
-All the exhortations of the Quakers for 200 years, all the efforts
-of Garrison, the father, the foundation of his society, his
-periodical, and his declarations, as well as the life-work of
-Ballou, are the same as if they had never existed.
-
-Another striking example of the obscurity into which a work written
-for the purpose of explaining the principle of non-resistance, and
-to denounce those who refuse to recognize this commandment, may
-fall, is the fate of a book by the Czech Helchitsky, which has only
-recently been discovered, and which up to the present time has never
-been printed.
-
-Shortly after the publication of my book in German, I received a
-letter from a professor of the Prague University, who wrote to tell
-me of a book which had never been printed, a work written in the
-fifteenth century by the Czech Helchitsky, and entitled "The Net of
-Faith." In this work, written four centuries ago, Helchitsky, as
-the professor tells me, has expressed exactly the same opinion in
-regard to true and false Christianity that I did in my work entitled
-"My Religion." The professor wrote that the work of Helchitsky was
-to appear in print for the first time in the Czech language in one
-of the publications of the St. Petersburg Academy of Science. As I
-was unable to obtain the book, I endeavored to ascertain all that
-was known of Helchitsky himself, and this knowledge I gained from
-a German book sent to me by the same professor in Prague. Besides
-that I learned something from Pipin's "History of Czech Literature."
-Pipin says:--
-
- "'The Net of Faith' is the doctrine of Christ, wherewith man
- is to be raised from the gloomy depths of the social sea of
- iniquity. True faith is to believe the words of God; but we are
- living in times when men call the true faith heresy; hence it is
- upon our own reason that we must rely to discover the truth if
- we possess it not. Darkness has concealed it from men, and they
- no longer recognize the true law of Christ.
-
- "As an illustration of the law, Helchitsky cites the original
- social organization of Christian society, which is considered by
- the Church of Rome of the present time as rank heresy.
-
- "This primitive church was his own ideal of a social order
- founded upon equality, liberty, and fraternity. Christianity,
- according to Helchitsky, still preserves this foundation, and
- has but to return to its pure teaching to render any other
- social order, whose existence requires the authority of pope or
- king, quite superfluous. The law of love will suffice for all....
-
- "Historically, Helchitsky assigns the decadence of Christianity
- to the time of Constantine the Great, whom the Pope Silvester
- received into the Church in spite of his pagan life and morals.
- Constantine, in return, rewarded the Pope by endowing him with
- riches and temporal power. Since then these two forces have
- played into each other's hands, seeking only outward glory.
- Doctors, men of learning, and the clergy, caring only to
- maintain their influence over the world, excited the nations one
- against the other, encouraging the crimes of murder and rapine,
- and thus destroying Christianity, both in faith and practice.
- Helchitsky totally denies the right of man to wage war or to
- exact the penalty of death. According to him, every soldier,
- even if he be a 'knight,' is only a transgressor, a criminal,
- and a murderer."
-
-All this, with the addition of some biographical details and
-extracts from the correspondence of Helchitsky, is related in the
-German book.
-
-Having thus become acquainted with the essence of Helchitsky's
-teachings, I waited with still greater impatience the appearance of
-"The Net of Faith" in the Academy's periodical. But one, two, three
-years passed, and the book was not forthcoming. It was only in 1888
-that I learned that the printing had been suspended. I obtained
-the proof-sheets of what had been printed, and read them. In many
-respects it was a wonderful book.
-
-Its contents have been accurately summarized by Pipin. Helchitsky's
-principal idea is that Christianity, in league with sovereignty
-during the reign of Constantine the Great, and continuing to
-develop under these conditions, became corrupted, and ceased to be
-Christianity. He called his book "The Net of Faith" because he had
-chosen for his motto that verse from the New Testament which speaks
-of the disciples as fishers of men. He carries on the simile thus:
-"Through His disciples, Christ caught the world in the net of His
-faith, but the larger fishes, breaking the net, escaped; then others
-followed through these same holes made by the large fishes, and the
-net was left almost empty." By the big fish he means the popes,
-emperors, and sovereigns who, without giving up their authority,
-accepted Christianity, not in its reality, but in its semblance.
-
-Helchitsky teaches the same doctrine that is now taught by the
-non-resistant Mennonites and Quakers, and in former times by
-the Bogomiles, the Paulicians, and other sects. He teaches that
-Christianity, requiring, as it does from its followers, humility,
-gentleness, a forgiving spirit, the turning of the other cheek when
-one is struck, and the love of one's enemies, is not compatible
-with that violence which is an essential element of authority. A
-Christian, according to Helchitsky, should not only refuse to be a
-commander or a soldier, but he should take no part in government,
-neither should he become a tradesman, nor even a landowner. He
-might be an artisan or a farmer. This book is among the few which
-have been saved from the flame into which books denouncing official
-Christianity were commonly cast. As all such so-called heretical
-works were usually burned with their authors, very few of those
-which denounce official Christianity have been preserved--and for
-this reason the book of which we speak has a special interest.
-
-But apart from its interest, concerning which there may be
-differences of opinion, it is one of the most remarkable results of
-human thought, both on account of its profundity and the wonderful
-power and beauty of its language, not to mention its antiquity. And
-yet this book has remained unprinted for centuries, and continues to
-be unknown except to a few specialists. (_See Note, end of Chapter._)
-
-One would think that works like these of the Quakers, of Garrison,
-of Ballou, and of Helchitsky,--which affirm and prove by the
-authority of the Bible that the world misinterprets the teaching of
-Christ,--would arouse an interest, would make a sensation, would
-give rise to discussions between the clergy and their flocks.
-
-One might suppose that works which deal with the very essence of the
-Christian doctrine would be reviewed, and either acknowledged to be
-just, or else refuted and condemned.
-
-Not at all. Every one of these works suffers the same fate. Men
-of widely differing opinions, believers, and, what is still more
-surprising, unbelieving liberals, as though by common consent,
-preserve an obstinate silence in regard to them. Thus every attempt
-to explain the true meaning of Christ's doctrine goes for nothing.
-
-And more astonishing still is the ignorance concerning two works
-whose existence was made known to me after the publication of my
-own book. One is a work by Dymond, "On War," printed for the first
-time in London in 1824, and the other by Daniel Musser, entitled
-"Non-resistance Asserted," was written in 1864.
-
-The ignorance in regard to these books is amazing; the more so, that
-apart from their merit, both treat, not so much of the theory as of
-its practical application to life; of the relations of Christianity
-to military service, which is particularly interesting in view of
-the system of conscription. It may be asked, perhaps, what action is
-befitting for a subject who believes that war is incompatible with
-religion when his government calls upon him for military service?
-
-One would take this to be a vital question, whose answer, in view
-of our present system of conscription, becomes one of serious
-importance. All men, or the majority of mankind, are Christians,
-and every male is required to do military duty. How man, in his
-Christian character, is to meet this demand, Dymond gives the
-following reply:--
-
-"_It is his duty, mildly and temperately, yet firmly, to refuse to
-serve._
-
-"There are some persons who, without any determinate process of
-reasoning, appear to conclude that responsibility for national
-measures attaches solely to those who direct them; that it is the
-business of governments to consider what is good for the community,
-and that, in these cases, the duty of the subject is merged in the
-will of the sovereign. Considerations like these are, I believe,
-often voluntarily permitted to become opiates of the conscience. I
-have no part, it is said, in the councils of the government, and
-am not, therefore, responsible for its crimes. We are, indeed, not
-responsible for the crimes of our rulers, but we are responsible for
-our own; and the crimes of our rulers are our own, if, whilst we
-believe them to be crimes, we promote them by our coperation....
-
-"Those who suppose that obedience in all things is required, or that
-responsibility in political affairs is transferred from the subject
-to the sovereign, reduce themselves to a great dilemma. It is to
-say that we must resign our conduct and our consciences to the will
-of others, and act wickedly, or well, as their good or evil may
-preponderate, without merit for virtue or responsibility for crime."
-
-It is worthy of notice that the same is expressed in a maxim to
-soldiers, which they are required to memorize. Dymond says that only
-a commander answers for the consequences of his order. But this
-is unjust. A man cannot remove the responsibility for his actions
-from himself. And this is evident from the following: "If your
-superior orders you to kill your child, your neighbor, your father,
-or your mother, will you obey? If you will not, there is an end of
-the argument; for if you may reject his authority in one instance,
-where is the limit to rejection? There is no rational limit but that
-which is assigned by Christianity, and that is both rational and
-practicable....
-
-"We think, then, that it is the business of every man who believes
-that war is inconsistent with our religion, respectfully, but
-steadfastly, to refuse to engage in it. Let such as these remember
-that an honorable and an awful duty is laid upon them. It is upon
-their fidelity, so far as human agency is concerned, that the
-cause of peace is suspended. Let them, then, be willing to avow
-their opinions and to defend them. Neither let them be contented
-with words, if more than words, if suffering also, is required.
-It is only by the unyielding fidelity of virtue that corruption
-can be extirpated. If you believe that Jesus Christ has prohibited
-slaughter, let not the opinions or the commands of a world induce
-you to join in it. By this 'steady and determinate pursuit of
-virtue,' the benediction which attaches to those who hear the
-sayings of God, and do them, will rest upon you, and the time will
-come when even the world will honor you as contributors to the work
-of human reformation."
-
-Musser's work, entitled "Non-resistance Asserted; or, Kingdom of
-Christ and Kingdom of this World Separated," was published in 1864.
-
-This book deals with the same question, drawing its illustrations
-from the drafting of the United States citizens during the time of
-the Civil War. In setting forth the reasons why men should have
-the right to decline military service, his arguments are no less
-applicable to the present time. In his Introduction the author says:
-"It is well known that there are great numbers of people in the
-United States who profess to be conscientiously opposed to war. They
-are mostly called non-resistants, or defenseless Christians, and
-refuse to defend their country, or take up arms at the call of the
-government and go forth to battle against its enemies. Hitherto this
-conscientious scruple has been respected by the government in this
-country; and those claiming it have been relieved or excused from
-this service.
-
-"Since the commencement of the present civil war in the United
-States the public mind has been unusually agitated on this subject.
-It is not unreasonable that such persons as feel it to be their
-duty to go forth and endure the hardships of camp life, and imperil
-health, life, and limb in defense of their country and government,
-should feel some jealousy of those who have, with themselves, long
-enjoyed the protection and benefits of the government, and yet, in
-the hour of its need, refuse to share the burden of its defense
-and protection. Neither is it strange that such a position should
-be looked upon as most unreasonable and monstrous, and those who
-hold it be regarded with some suspicion. "Many able speakers and
-writers," says the author, "have raised their voices and pens
-to refute the idea of non-resistance, as both unreasonable and
-unscriptural. This is not to be wondered at, seeing that those who
-profess the principle and do not possess it, or correctly understand
-it, act inconsistently, and thereby bring the profession into
-disrepute and contempt. However much misapplication or abuse of a
-principle may prejudice the minds of those who are unacquainted with
-a subject, it is yet no argument against its truth."
-
-The author at first proves it to be the duty of each Christian to
-obey the rule of non-resistance. He says that the rule is perfectly
-explicit, and that it has been given by Christ to all Christianity
-without any possibility of being misinterpreted. "Judge for
-yourselves, whether it is right or wrong to obey man more than you
-do the Lord," said both Peter and John; and in exactly the same way
-every man who wishes to be a Christian should regard the requirement
-of his nation to be a soldier, remembering that Christ has told him,
-"Do not resist evil."
-
-This, in the opinion of Musser, decides the question of principle.
-Another point, as to the right of declining military duty while
-one enjoys the advantages accruing through violence, the author
-considers in detail, and arrives at the conclusion that should a
-Christian who follows the teaching of Christ refuse to go to the
-war, he must also decline to take any position under the government
-or any part in the elections, neither must he have recourse to any
-officer of the law for his own personal advantage. Our author goes
-on to consider the relation between the Old and New Testaments,
-and the significance of government for non-Christians; arguments
-against the doctrine of non-resistance are enumerated and refuted.
-The author closes his book with the following words:--"Christians
-need no governments: for they ought not to obey it in those matters
-wherein Christ's teaching is set at naught, and still less should
-they take an active part in it. Christ has chosen His disciples out
-of the world. They have no promise of temporal good or happiness,
-but the contrary. Their promise is in the world to come. The spirit
-which they possess renders them happy and contented in any sphere of
-life. So long as the world tolerates them, they are contented; but
-if it will not let them dwell in peace, they flee to another city or
-place; and so they are true pilgrims and strangers on earth, having
-no certain abiding place.... They are well contented that the dead
-may bury their dead, if they are only permitted to follow Christ."
-
-Without deciding upon the merits of this definition of a Christian's
-duty in regard to war, which we find set down in these two works, we
-cannot fail to see the urgent need for a decision in regard to the
-question itself.
-
-There are men--hundreds of thousands of Quakers, Mennonites, our
-own Duhobortzi, Molokani, men who belong to no sect whatsoever--who
-believe that violence and therefore military service is incompatible
-with Christianity; every year, for instance, we see in Russia a
-number of men refusing to obey the conscription because of their
-religious opinions. And how does the government deal with them?
-Does it release them? Oh, no!... Does it use force, and in case
-of disobedience punish them? Not exactly.... In 1818, government
-managed the affair in this wise.
-
-The following is an extract, hardly known to any one in Russia, from
-a letter of Muraviev-Karsky, which was prohibited by the Russian
-censor:--
-
- "TIFLIS, _October 2d, 1818_.
-
- "This morning the commander of the fortress told me that five
- peasants belonging to the landowners of the government of Tambov
- had been recently sent into the province of Grusia. These men
- were intended to serve as soldiers, but they refused to obey.
- They were flogged several times and made to run the gantlet,
- but they were ready to give themselves up to the most cruel
- tortures, yea, even to death itself, to escape military service.
- 'Let us go our way and harm us not; we do no harm ourselves. All
- men are equal. The sovereign is a man like one of us, why should
- we pay him taxes, and wherefore should we risk our lives to
- kill in battle those who have never done us any harm? Draw and
- quarter us, if you will, and we shall never change our minds; we
- will never wear the uniform, nor mess at the soldier's table.
- Some pitying soul may give us alms but from the government we
- neither have had nor will have anything whatsoever.' Such are
- the words of these peasants, who assure us that there are many
- men in Russia like themselves. Four times they were brought
- before the Committee of Ministers, and it was finally decided
- that a report be made to the Czar, who ordered them to be sent
- to Grusia for discipline, and desired the Commander-in-Chief to
- forward a monthly report of the progress made in bringing these
- peasants to a proper frame of mind."
-
-The final result of this discipline is not known, for the matter was
-kept a profound secret, and the episode may never have been made
-public.
-
-This was the conduct of the government seventy-five years ago in the
-greater number of cases, always carefully hiding the truth from the
-people; and it pursues the same policy at the present day, except
-in regard to the German Mennonites, who live in the government of
-Kherson, and who in lieu of military duty serve a corresponding term
-as foresters,--the justice of their refusal to obey the conscription
-being recognized.
-
-But they are the sole exception; all others who, from religious
-scruples, refuse to perform military duty are treated in the manner
-just described.
-
-At first the government employs all the methods of coercion now in
-use to discipline and _convert_ the rebels, while at the same time
-the most profound secrecy envelops all these proceedings. I know of
-a process which was begun in 1884 against a man who had declined to
-serve,--a long-drawn-out trial which was guarded by the Ministry as
-a great secret.
-
-The first step is usually to send the accused to the priests,
-and, be it said to their shame, they always try to win over the
-insubordinate. But as the influence exercised in the name of Christ
-is generally unsuccessful, the delinquent is sent from the clergy to
-the gendarmes, who, finding in him no political offense, send him
-back; whereupon he is despatched to the scientists, the doctors, and
-thence into the insane hospital. While he is thus sent to and fro,
-the delinquent, deprived of his liberty like a condemned convict,
-is made to endure every kind of indignity and suffering. Four such
-cases have come to my knowledge. The doctors generally release the
-man from the insane hospital, and then every underhanded and crafty
-device is employed to delay the accused, because his release might
-encourage others to follow his example. He is not allowed to remain
-among the soldiers lest they discover from him that conscription
-is not, as they are taught to believe, in accordance with the law
-of God, but opposed to it. The most satisfactory arrangement for a
-government would be either to execute the delinquent, or beat him
-with rods until he died, as was done in former times. But it is
-awkward to condemn a man to public execution because he is true to
-the doctrine which we all profess to believe. Nor is it possible to
-take no notice of a man when he refuses to obey. So the government
-either tortures the man in order to compel him to deny Christ, or
-tries to rid itself of him by some means which will hide both the
-man and the crime from the eyes of the world, rather than resort to
-public execution. All sorts of cunning manoeuvers and tricks are
-employed to torment the man. He is either banished to some remote
-province, or exasperated to disobedience and then imprisoned, or
-sent to the reform battalion, where he may be subjected to torture
-without publicity or restriction; or he is pronounced insane and
-locked up in the insane asylum. For instance, one was exiled to
-Tashkent; that is to say, a pretense was made of transferring him
-thither. Another was sent to Omsk, a third was court-martialed for
-disobedience and imprisoned, and a fourth was put into a house for
-the insane. The same thing is repeated on every side. Not only
-the government, but the majority of liberal free-thinkers, as
-though by preconcerted agreement, carefully avoid alluding to what
-has been said, written, or done in this matter of denouncing the
-inconsistency of violence, as embodied in its most shocking, crude,
-and striking form, in the person of a soldier,--this readiness to
-commit murder,--not only with the precepts of Christianity, but with
-the dictates of mere humanity, which the world professes to obey.
-
-Hence all the information that I have gathered concerning what
-has been accomplished, and what is still going on in this work of
-explaining the doctrine of Christ and the light in which it is
-regarded by the ruling powers of Europe and America, has confirmed
-me in the conviction that a spirit inimical to true Christianity
-dwells in these authorities, exhibited chiefly by the conspiracy of
-silence with which they enshroud any manifestation of it.
-
-NOTE
-
- "The publication of this book ('The Net of Faith') was ended
- [completed] by the Academy in the last months of the present
- year (1893)."--_Note received by the Publisher from Count
- Tolsto while this work was going to press._
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II
-
-OPINIONS OF BELIEVERS AND UNBELIEVERS IN REGARD TO NON-RESISTANCE
-
- The fate of the book, "My Religion"--The evasive answers
- of religious critics to the questions propounded in that
- book--1st answer, Violence does not contradict Christianity--2d
- answer, Necessity of violence for the purpose of repressing
- evil-doers--3d answer, Necessity of violence for the defense of
- one's neighbor--4th answer, The violation of the commandment of
- Non-resistance regarded as a weakness--5th answer, Evasion of
- the answer by a pretense that this matter has long since been
- decided--The cloak of church authority, antiquity, the holiness
- of religious men, explain for many the contradictions between
- violence and Christianity, in theory as well as in life--Usual
- attitude of the clergy and authorities in regard to the
- profession of true Christianity--General character of Russian
- secular writers--Foreign secular critics--Incorrectness of the
- opinions of the former and the latter caused by a failure to
- understand the true meaning of the doctrine of Christ.
-
-
-All the criticisms of the statements contained in my own book have
-given me a similar impression of a wish to ignore the subject.
-
-As I had anticipated, no sooner was the book published than it
-was prohibited, and should, according to law, have been burned.
-But instead of being consumed by the flames, every copy was taken
-by the government officials and circulated in large numbers,
-both in manuscript and in the lithographed sheets, as well as in
-translations which were published abroad. It was not long before
-criticisms began to appear, not only from the clergy, but from the
-secular world, which the government, so far from forbidding, took
-pains to encourage. Hence the very refutation of the book, the
-existence of which they assumed to be unknown, was made the theme of
-theological controversy.
-
-These criticisms, both foreign and domestic, may be divided into two
-classes, religious and secular; the former by persons who consider
-themselves believers, and the latter by free-thinkers. I shall
-begin by considering the former. In my book I accuse the clergy
-of inculcating doctrines contrary to the commandments of Christ,
-plainly and clearly expressed in the Sermon on the Mount, and
-particularly in regard to the commandment of non-resistance to evil,
-thereby depriving the doctrine of Christ of all its significance.
-Do the ministers of the gospel believe the Sermon on the Mount,
-including the commandment of non-resistance, to be of divine origin?
-Having felt themselves obliged to review my book, it would seem as
-if they must first of all answer the principal charge, and declare
-at once whether they do or do not consider the Sermon on the Mount
-and the commandment of non-resistance obligatory upon a Christian.
-Instead of making the usual reply, couched in words such as, "Though
-one cannot deny, neither can one affirm, the more so as," etc.,
-let them give a categorical answer to my question: Did Christ
-practically require his disciples to do that which he taught in
-the Sermon on the Mount, and therefore may a Christian appeal to a
-legal tribunal, either for defense or prosecution, and still remain
-a Christian? May he consistently take a part in a government which
-is the instrument of violence? And that most important question,
-which, since the introduction of the general conscription, concerns
-us all: May a Christian remain a Christian and still disobey the
-direct command of Christ; may he promise to conduct himself in a
-manner directly opposed to the doctrine of Christ, by entering into
-military service and putting himself in training to be a murderer?
-
-The questions are put plainly and directly, and would seem to call
-for plain and direct answers. But no; my book has been received
-just as all previous denunciations have been, those denunciations
-of the clergy who have deviated from the law of Christ, with which
-history abounds since the time of Constantine the Great. Many
-words have been expended in noting the errors of my interpretation
-of this or that passage of the Scriptures, of how wrong I am in
-referring to the Trinity, the Redemption, and the Immortality of
-the soul, but never a word of that vital question: How are we to
-reconcile those lessons of forgiveness, humility, patience, and
-love toward all mankind, our neighbors as well as our enemies,
-taught us by the Teacher, which dwell in the heart of each of us,
-with the necessities caused by military aggressions against our
-own countrymen as well as against foreigners? All that deserves
-the name of a response to these questions may be summed up under
-five headings. I have endeavored to bring together in this book not
-only the criticisms upon my book, but everything that has ever been
-written on this subject.
-
-The first criticisms with which I deal come mostly from men of high
-position, either in Church or State, who feel quite sure that no one
-will venture to combat their assertions; should any one make the
-attempt, they would never hear the arguments. These men, intoxicated
-for the most part by their authority, have forgotten that there is a
-Christianity in whose name they hold their places. They condemn as
-sectarian all that which is truly Christ-like in Christianity, while
-on the other hand, every text in both Old and New Testaments which
-can be wrested from its meaning so as to justify an anti-Christian
-or pagan sentiment--upon these they establish the foundation of
-Christianity. In order to confirm their statement that Christianity
-is not opposed to violence, these men generally quote, with the
-greatest assurance, equivocal passages from the Old and New
-Testaments, interpreting them in the most anti-Christian spirit--the
-death of Ananias and Sapphira, the execution of Simon the Sorcerer,
-etc. All of Christ's words that can possibly be misinterpreted are
-quoted in vindication of cruelty--the expulsion from the Temple, the
-words "... it shall be more tolerable in that day for Sodom than
-for that city" (Luke x. 12), and other passages. According to these
-men, a Christian is not at all obliged to be guided by the spirit
-of humility, forgiveness, and love of his enemies. It is useless
-to try to refute such a doctrine, because men who affirm it refute
-themselves, or rather they turn away from Christ Himself, to invent
-an ideal and a form of religion all their own, forgetful of Him in
-whose name both the Church and the offices they hold exist. If men
-but knew that the Church preaches an unforgiving, murder-loving, and
-belligerent Christ, they would not believe in that Church, and its
-doctrines would be defended by none.
-
-The second method, somewhat more awkward, consists in affirming that
-though Christ did, in point of fact, teach us to turn the other
-cheek, and to share our cloak, and that these are indeed lofty
-moral laws, still ... the world abounds in evil-doers, and if these
-wretches are not subdued by force, the righteous will perish and the
-world will be destroyed. I met with this argument for the first time
-in St. John Chrysostom, and have called attention to its unfairness
-in my book entitled "My Religion."
-
-This argument is groundless, because if we allow ourselves to look
-upon our fellow-men as evil-doers, outcasts (Raka), we sap the very
-foundations of the Christian doctrine, which teaches us that we,
-the children of the Heavenly Father, are brothers, and equal one to
-the other. In the second place, if the same Father had permitted
-us to use violence toward wrong-doers, as there is no infallible
-rule for distinguishing the good from the evil, every individual
-or every community might class its neighbors under the head of
-evil-doers, which is practically the case at the present time. In
-the third place, if it were possible to distinguish the righteous
-from the unrighteous, even then it would not be expedient in a
-Christian community to put to death, to cripple, or to imprison the
-evil-doers, as in such a community there would be no one to execute
-these sentences, since every man in his quality of Christian is
-forbidden to do violence to a malefactor.
-
-The third mode of reply, more ingenious than the preceding ones,
-consists in affirming that while to obey the commandment of
-non-resistance is every Christian's duty, when the injury is a
-personal one, it ceases to be obligatory when harm is done to one's
-neighbor, and that in such an emergency a Christian is bound to
-break the commandment and use force against the evil-doer. This
-assertion is purely arbitrary, and one finds no justification for it
-throughout the whole body of the doctrine of Christ.
-
-Such an interpretation is not only a narrow one, but actually
-amounts to a direct negation. If every man has the right to employ
-violence whenever his neighbor is threatened with danger, then the
-question becomes reduced to this: How may one define what is called
-danger to one's neighbor? If, however, my private judgment is to be
-arbiter in this matter, then any violence which I might commit on
-any occasion whatever could be excused by the declaration that my
-neighbor was in danger. Magicians have been burned, aristocrats and
-Girondists put to death, because the men in power considered them
-dangerous.
-
-If this important condition, which destroys the significance of the
-commandment, ever entered into the thought of Christ, it would have
-been formulated somewhere. Not only is no such exception to the
-commandment to be found throughout the Teacher's life and lessons,
-but there is on the other hand a warning against an interpretation
-so false and misleading.
-
-The error and the impracticability of such a definition is vividly
-illustrated in the Bible story of Caiaphas, who made use of this
-very same interpretation. He admitted that it was not well to put
-to death the innocent Jesus, but at the same time he perceived the
-existence of a danger, not for himself, but for all the people, and
-therefore declared it better for one man to die, rather than that a
-whole nation should perish.
-
-And we have a still more explicit proof of the fallacy of this
-interpretation in the words addressed to Peter, when he tried to
-revenge by violence the attack upon Jesus (Matthew xxvi. 51). Peter
-was defending not himself, but his beloved and divine Master, and
-Christ distinctly forbade him, saying, "For all they that take
-the sword shall perish with the sword" (Matthew xxvi. 52). One
-can never justify an act of violence against one's fellow-man by
-claiming to have done it in defense of another who was enduring some
-wrong, because in committing an act of violence, it is impossible
-to compare the one wrong with the other, and to say which is the
-greater, that which one is about to commit, or the wrong done
-against one's neighbor. We release society from the presence of a
-criminal by putting him to death, but we cannot possibly know that
-the former might not have so changed by the morrow as to render the
-execution a useless cruelty. We imprison another, we believe him a
-dangerous man; but no later than next day this very man may have
-ceased to be dangerous, and his imprisonment has become unnecessary.
-I see a robber, a man known to me, pursuing a girl; I hold a gun
-in my hand; I wound or perhaps kill the robber, and save the girl.
-The fact that I have either wounded or killed the robber remains,
-but I know not what might have happened had I not done so. And what
-a vast amount of harm must and does accrue from the assurance that
-a man feels of his right to provide against a possible calamity.
-Ninety-nine parts of the world's iniquity, from the Inquisition to
-the bomb-throwing of the present day, and the execution of tens of
-thousands of political criminals, so called, result from this very
-assurance.
-
-The fourth and still more ingenious reply to this question of
-the Christian's responsibility in regard to the commandment of
-Christ concerning non-resistance to evil by violence, consists in
-asserting that this commandment is not denied, but acknowledged,
-like all the others; it is only the special significance attributed
-to it by sectarians that is denied. Our critics declare that the
-views of Garrison, Ballou, and Dymond, as well as those professed
-by the Quakers, the Shakers, the Mennonites, the Moravians, the
-Waldenses, Albigenses, Bogomiles, and Paulicians, are those of
-bigoted sectarians. This commandment, they say, has the importance,
-no more and no less, of all the others; and one who through weakness
-has transgressed against any of the commandments, whether that of
-non-resistance or another, does not for that cause cease to be a
-Christian, provided his creed be true.
-
-This is a very cunning and persuasive subterfuge, especially for
-those who are willing to be deceived, reducing the direct negation
-of the commandment to its accidental infraction. One has, however,
-but to compare the attitude of the clergy toward this or any of the
-other commandments which they do acknowledge, to be convinced that
-it is quite different from their attitude toward this one.
-
-The commandment against fornication they acknowledge without
-reservation, and in no case will they ever admit that this sin is
-not an evil. There are no circumstances mentioned by the clergy
-when the commandment against fornication may be broken, and they
-always insist that the occasions for this sin must be avoided.
-But in regard to non-resistance it is a very different matter.
-Every clergyman believes that there are circumstances wherein this
-commandment may be held in abeyance, and they preach accordingly.
-So far from teaching their parishioners to avoid the temptations
-to this sin, chief among which is the oath of allegiance, they
-take the oath themselves. Clergymen have never been known to
-advocate the breaking of any other commandment; but in regard to
-the doctrine of non-resistance, they distinctly teach that this
-prohibition must not be taken too literally, that so far from
-always obeying this commandment, one should on occasion follow
-the opposite course--that is, one should sit in judgment, should
-go to war, and should execute criminals. Thus in most of the cases
-where non-resistance to evil by violence is in question, the
-preachers will be found to advocate disobedience. Obedience to this
-commandment, they say, is difficult, and can only be practicable
-in a state of society whose members are perfect. But how is it to
-become less difficult, when its infraction is not only condoned, but
-directly encouraged, when legal tribunals, prisons, the implements
-of warfare, the cannon and muskets, armies and battles, receive the
-blessing of the Church? Therefore this reply is not true. Evidently
-the statement that this commandment is acknowledged by the clergy to
-be of equal validity with the other commandments cannot be true.
-
-Clergymen do not really acknowledge it, yet, unwilling to admit this
-fact, they try by evasion to conceal their non-acknowledgment.
-
-Such is the fourth method of answering.
-
-The fifth, more ingenious than its predecessor, is the popular one
-of all. It consists in quietly evading reply, pretending that the
-question was solved ages ago, in a cogent and satisfactory manner,
-and that it would be a waste of words to reopen the subject. This
-method is employed by all the more cultured authors, who, if they
-made answer at all, would feel themselves bound to be logical.
-Realizing that the inconsistency between that doctrine of Christ,
-of which we make a verbal profession, and the scheme of our daily
-lives, is not to be solved by words, and that the more it is talked
-the more glaring this inconsistency becomes, they evade it with
-more or less circumspection, pretending that the question of union
-between Christianity and the law of violence has either been already
-solved, or else that it cannot be solved at all.[2]
-
- [2] I know of but one criticism, or rather essay, for it can hardly
- be termed criticism, in the strict sense of the word, which treats
- of the same subject, having my book in view. It is a pamphlet by
- Trotzky, called "The Sermon on the Mount" (printed in Kazan).
- Evidently the author acknowledges the doctrine of Christ in the
- fullness of its meaning. He declares that the commandment of
- non-resistance to evil means what it says, and the same with the
- commandment as to taking an oath. He does not deny, as others have
- done, the meaning of Christ's teaching, but unfortunately neither
- does he draw those inevitable conclusions which must result from
- a conception such as his own of Christ's doctrine. If one is not
- to resist evil by violence, nor to take an oath, it is but natural
- to ask: Then what is the duty of a soldier? And what is to be done
- about taking the oath of allegiance? But to these questions the
- author makes no reply, and surely a reply should have been given. If
- he had none to make, it would have been better to have said nothing
- at all.
-
-Most of my clerical critics have made use of this method. I might
-quote scores of criticisms of this class, wherein everything
-is discussed except the vital principle of the book. As a
-characteristic specimen of these criticisms I will quote from an
-article by that well-known and scholarly Englishman, the writer and
-preacher, Canon Farrar, who, like so many other learned theologians,
-is an expert in the art of silently ignoring and evading a
-statement. The article appeared in an American magazine, _The
-Forum_, for October, 1888.
-
-After briefly but conscientiously setting forth the subject-matter
-of my book, Farrar says:--"After repeated search the central
-principle of all Christ's teaching seemed to him [Tolsto] to be,
-'Resist not evil' or 'him that is evil.' He came to the conclusion
-that a coarse deceit had been palmed upon the world when these words
-were held by civil society to be compatible with war, courts of
-justice, capital punishment, divorce, oaths, national prejudice,
-and indeed with most of the institutions of civil and social life.
-He now believes that the Kingdom of God would come if all men
-kept these five commandments, which he holds to be the pith of
-all Christ's teaching--viz.: 1. Live in peace with all men. 2. Be
-pure. 3. Take no oaths. 4. Never resist evil. 5. Renounce national
-distinctions.... Most of the Bible does not seem to him to reflect
-the spirit of Christ at all, though it has been brought into
-artificial and unwarrantable connection with it. Hence he rejects
-the chief doctrines of the Church: that of the Atonement by blood,
-that of the Trinity, that of the descent of the Holy Ghost upon the
-Apostles and the transmission to the priesthood by laying on of
-hands, that of the need of the seven sacraments for salvation. He
-sets aside the authority of Paul, of councils, of fathers, popes,
-or patriarchs, and believes himself to be the immediate disciple of
-Christ alone.... But we are compelled to ask, Is this interpretation
-of Christ a true one? Are all men bound, or is any man bound, to act
-as this great writer has done?"
-
-One might naturally expect that this vital question, which alone
-could induce a man to write a dissertation on the book, would be
-answered either by admitting that my interpretation of the doctrine
-of Christ is correct and should be accepted, or declaring that
-it is erroneous, proving his point, and offering a more correct
-interpretation of the words which I have misconstrued. But no;
-Farrar merely expresses his belief that "though actuated by the
-noblest sincerity, Count Tolsto has been misled by partial and
-one-sided interpretations of the meaning of the gospel and the
-mind and will of Christ." In what this error consists he does not
-explain, but says: "_To enter into the proof of this is impossible
-in this article, for I have already exceeded the space at my
-command_." And concludes with equanimity: "Meanwhile the reader
-who feels troubled lest it should be his duty also to forsake all
-the conditions of his life, and to take up the position and work
-of a common laborer, may rest for the present on the principle,
-'Securus judicat orbis terrarum.' With few and rare exceptions the
-whole of Christendom, from the days of the Apostles down to our
-own, has come to the firm conclusion that it was the object of
-Christ to lay down great eternal principles, but not to disturb the
-bases and revolutionize the institutions as well as all inevitable
-conditions. Were it my object to prove how untenable is the doctrine
-of communism, based by Count Tolsto upon the divine paradoxes,
-which can be interpreted on only historical principles in accordance
-with the whole method of the teaching of Jesus, it would require an
-ampler canvas than I have here at my disposal." What a pity that he
-has no space! And, wonderful to relate, no one for fifteen centuries
-ever had the space to prove that the Christ whom we profess said one
-thing and meant another. And of course they could prove it if they
-would! But it is not worth while to prove what everybody knows to be
-true. It is enough to say: "Securus judicat orbis terrarum."
-
-The criticisms of all educated believers are very much alike,
-because realizing as they must the danger of their position, they
-feel that their only safeguard lies in the hope that by sheltering
-themselves behind the authority and holiness of the Church, they may
-succeed in intimidating their readers, or diverting them from any
-idea of reading the Bible for themselves or using their own reason
-to solve this question. And this is a method that succeeds. To whom
-would it ever occur, indeed, that all these assurances, repeated
-with so much solemnity, century after century, by archdeacons,
-bishops, and archbishops, synods and popes, are a base falsehood,
-a calumny against the character of Christ, uttered for the purpose
-of assuring to themselves the money they require to lead a life
-of ease at the expense of others,--a falsehood and a calumny so
-palpable, particularly now, that the only chance of perpetuating
-this falsehood lies in holding the people in awe by their arrogance
-and audacity?
-
-The very same thing has been going on of late years in the Bureau
-of military conscription. A number of aged officials, decorated
-and self-important, are at a table, a full-lengthed portrait of
-the Emperor with the mirror of justice before them, and, while
-leisurely chatting with each other, they write, call out the names,
-and give their orders. Here also, with a cross upon his breast, his
-hair blowing over his stole, a genial and venerable-looking priest
-dressed in a silk robe sits before a pulpit on which is placed a
-golden cross and a Bible with gilt clasps.
-
-Ivan Petrov is called. An untidy, poorly clad youth, with a
-frightened expression, twitching muscles, and gleaming eyes that
-have a wandering look, steps forward, and in a hesitating, broken
-voice almost whispers: "I ... according to law ... as a Christian
-... I ... I cannot...." "What is he muttering?" asks the chairman,
-impatiently, squinting and making an effort to hear, as he raises
-his head from the book. "Speak louder!" exclaims the colonel with
-the glittering shoulder-straps. "As a Christian ... I ... I...."
-And at last it becomes plain that the youth refuses to enter the
-military service because he is a Christian. "Don't talk nonsense!
-Measure him! Doctor, be kind enough to look at the measure. Will he
-do?" "He will do." "Holy Father, let him take the oath."
-
-Not only is there no uneasiness on the part of the officers, but no
-one pays the least attention to the muttering of this frightened,
-pitiable youth. "They always mutter, and we are in a hurry; we have
-still so many more to receive."
-
-The recruit tries to speak again. "This is against the law of
-Christ!" "Move on! move on! We know what is lawful and what is not!
-Move on! Father, make him understand! Next! Vassili Nikitin!"
-
-Then the trembling youth is led away. Now which of all these men,
-the soldiers, Vassili Nikitin, the new man on the list, or any other
-witness of the scene,--which of these would ever dream that the
-unintelligible, broken utterances of the youth, silenced forthwith
-by the magistrates, embodied the real truth, while the loud,
-arrogant speeches of the officials, of the priest, uttered with
-authority, were actually false?
-
-The same impression is made not only by Farrar's essay, but by
-all those grandiloquent sermons, reviews, and other publications
-which spring into existence on every side wherever truth is found
-combating the arrogance of falsehood. At once these orators and
-writers, subtle or bombastic, begin by dwelling upon points closely
-allied to the vital question, while preserving an artful silence on
-the question itself.
-
-And this is the fifth and most efficacious method of accounting for
-the inconsistent attitude of ecclesiastical Christianity, which,
-while professing Christ, with its own life denies, and teaches
-others to deny, this doctrine in the practice of daily life.
-They who employ the first method of justification by boldly and
-distinctly affirming that Christ sanctioned violence, meaning wars
-and murders, put themselves beyond the pale of Christ's teaching;
-while they who defend themselves according to the second, third, and
-fourth methods soon become entangled, and are easily convicted of
-falsehood; but the fifth class, they who condescend not to reason,
-use their dignity for a screen, and insist that all these questions
-were settled ages ago, and need no reconsideration; they, apparently
-invulnerable, will maintain an undisputed authority, and men will
-repose under the hypnotic suggestion of Church and State, nor seek
-to throw off the yoke.
-
-Such were the views of the clergy, of the professors of
-Christianity, in regard to my book, nor could anything different
-have been expected: they are in bonds to their inconsistent
-position, believers in the divinity of the Teacher, and yet
-discrediting His plainest words,--an inconsistency which they are
-bound to reconcile in some way. Hence it is not to be supposed
-that they would give unbiased opinions in regard to the essential
-question of that change which must take place in the life of one
-who makes a practical application of the doctrine of Christ to
-the existing order. From secular critics and free-thinkers, who
-acknowledge no obligation to the doctrine of Christ, and who might
-be expected to judge them without prejudice, I had prepared myself
-for criticisms such as these. I thought that the Liberals would look
-upon Christ not only as the founder of a religion involving personal
-salvation (as understood by the ecclesiastics and their followers),
-but, to use their own expression, as upon a reformer who tears down
-the old foundations to make way for new ones, and whose reformation
-is not even yet complete.
-
-To set forth that conception of Christ and his doctrine has been
-the object of my book. But to my surprise not one out of the many
-criticisms, Russian or foreign, that have appeared, has accepted my
-view, or even discussed it from my standpoint, which is, that the
-teaching of Christ is a philosophical, moral, and social doctrine.
-(I use the phraseology of the scientists.) The Russian secular
-critics, conceiving the sum and substance of my book to be a plea
-in favor of resistance to evil, and taking it for granted (probably
-for the sake of argument) that the doctrine forbade any struggle
-whatsoever against the wrong, made a virulent, and for several
-years, most successful attack upon this doctrine, proving that the
-teaching of Christ must be false, since it forbids any effort to
-overcome evil. Their refutations of this so-called _false_ doctrine
-had all the more chance of success, because the censorship had
-prohibited, not only the book itself, but also all articles in its
-defense, and consequently they knew beforehand that their arguments
-could not be assailed.
-
-It is worthy of note that here in Russia, where not a word against
-the Holy Scriptures is allowed by the censor, for several years
-in succession the distinct and unmistakable commandment of Christ
-(Matthew v. 39) was criticized, distorted, condemned, and mocked at
-in all the leading periodicals.
-
-The Russian secular critics, apparently ignorant of all that had
-been said and done in regard to non-resistance to evil, seemed to
-think that I had invented the principle myself, and attacked it
-as if it were my idea, first distorting and then refuting it with
-great ardor, bringing forward time-worn arguments that had been
-analyzed and refuted over and over again, showing that the oppressed
-and downtrodden should be defended by violence, and declaring the
-doctrine of Christ concerning non-resistance to be immoral.
-
-All the significance that the Russian critics saw in Christ's
-preaching was, that it seemed expressly intended to hamper them
-in their struggles against what they believe to be an evil in the
-present day. Thus it came about that the principle of non-resistance
-to evil by violence was attacked from two opposite camps; the
-Conservatives, because this principle interfered with them in their
-efforts to suppress sedition, and as opposed to all persecution,
-as well as to the punishment of death; the Revolutionists, because
-this principle forbade them to resist the oppression of the
-Conservatives, or to attempt their overthrow. The Conservatives were
-indignant that the doctrine of non-resistance to evil by violence
-should thwart an energetic suppression of revolutionary elements,
-which might imperil the welfare of a nation; the Revolutionists
-in the like manner were indignant because this same doctrine
-averted the downfall of the Conservatives, who, in their opinion,
-imperil the welfare of the people. It is a circumstance worthy
-of notice that the Revolutionists should attack the principle of
-non-resistance to evil by violence; for of all the doctrines dreaded
-by despotism, and dangerous to its existence, this is the chief one.
-Since the creation of the world the opposite principle of resistance
-by violence has been the corner-stone of every despotic institution,
-from the Inquisition to the fortress of Schlsselburg.
-
-Moreover, the Russian critics declared that the progress of
-civilization itself would be checked were this commandment of
-non-resistance applied to everyday life, by which they mean the
-civilization of Europe, which is, according to them, the model for
-all mankind.
-
-Such was the substance of Russian criticism.
-
-Foreign critics start from the same premises, but their deductions
-differ somewhat from those of the Russian critics; not only are they
-less captious and more cultivated, but their modes of analysis are
-not the same.
-
-In discussing my book, and more particularly the gospel doctrine
-as it is expressed in the Sermon on the Mount, the foreign critics
-affirmed that the latter could not really be called Christian
-doctrine (they believe that the Christian doctrine is embodied in
-Catholicism or Protestantism), and that the precepts of the Sermon
-on the Mount are only a series of the delightful but unpractical
-visions of the "charmant docteur," as Renan says, suited to the
-artless, half-civilized Galileans who lived 1800 years ago, or to
-the Russian and semi-barbarous peasants, to Sutaev and Bondarev, and
-to the Russian mystic Tolsto, but which are by no means adapted to
-the lofty plane of European culture. The foreign secular critics, in
-a courteous way, in order not to wound my feelings, have endeavored
-to show that my belief that mankind may be guided by so simple a
-doctrine as the Sermon on the Mount arises partly from my limited
-knowledge of history and ignorance of the many vain attempts to
-carry out in daily life the principles of the Sermon on the Mount,
-which history tells us have always proved an utter failure, and
-partly from my misconception of the significance of our modern
-civilization, with its Krupp guns, its smokeless powder, its African
-colonization, its Home Rule, its parliaments, journalism, strikes,
-and constitutions, not to mention the Eiffel Tower,--on which the
-entire population of Europe is at present reposing.
-
-Thus wrote Vog, thus wrote Leroy-Beaulieu, Matthew Arnold, the
-American writer Talmage, who is also a popular preacher, the
-free-thinker Ingersoll, and others.
-
-"The teaching of Christ is no longer practicable, because it does
-not suit our industrial times," Ingersoll ingenuously remarks, and
-thereby he no doubt gives utterance to the views which this cultured
-generation holds in regard to the doctrine of Christ. The doctrine
-has no affinity with the industrialism of the present age, as though
-industrialism were a sacred institution which can suffer no change.
-A drunkard might thus reply to one who calls upon him to be sober,
-that a man in liquor finds such advice absurd.
-
-The arguments of all secular writers, Russian as well as foreign,
-however varied in form or expression, are substantially alike;
-they all agree in misapprehending the doctrine of Christ, with its
-outcome of non-resistance, and in affirming that it is not expedient
-because it implies a need of a change of life.
-
-The doctrine of life is inexpedient, because if we lived up to it
-our lives could not go on as they have done hitherto; in other
-words, if we were to begin to live like righteous men, as Christ
-bids us, we must abandon the wicked ways to which we have grown
-accustomed. So far from discussing the question of non-resistance of
-evil by violence, the very mention of the fact that the precepts of
-Christ include such a command is considered as sufficient proof of
-the inexpediency of the whole doctrine.
-
-And yet it would seem necessary to offer some solution of this
-question, as it lies at the root of all that most interests us.
-
-The question is how to settle these differences among men, when the
-very action that is considered evil by one man is considered good by
-another. It is no answer to say that I think an action evil although
-my adversary may consider it a good one. There are but two ways of
-solving the difficulty. One is to find a positive and indisputable
-standard of evil, and the other is to obey the command, resist not
-evil by violence.
-
-Men have tried to achieve the former from the earliest historical
-ages, and we all know with what unsuccessful results.
-
-The second solution--that is, the non-resistance of what we must
-consider evil until we have found a universal standard: that
-solution has been suggested by Christ himself.
-
-It might be thought that the solution suggested by Christ was the
-wrong one, and a better one might be substituted after the standard
-had been found which is to define evil once and for all. One might
-not know of the existence of such a question, as is the case with
-the barbarous races, but no one can be permitted to pretend,
-like the learned critics of the Christian doctrine, that no such
-question does exist, or that the recognition of the right of certain
-individuals or groups of individuals, and still less of one's own
-right, to define evil, and to resist it by violence, decides the
-question, because we all know that such a recognition does not
-decide it at all, for there are always persons who will refuse to
-admit that such a prerogative can exist.
-
-And yet this very acknowledgment, that anything that seems evil to
-us is evil, or else an utter misconception of the question, affords
-a basis for the conclusions of secular critics concerning the
-doctrine of Christ; hence not only the utterances of the clerical,
-but also those of the secular critics in regard to my book, have
-made it evident to me that most men totally fail to comprehend
-either the doctrine of Christ, or the questions which it is intended
-to decide.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III
-
-MISCONCEPTION OF CHRISTIANITY BY NON-BELIEVERS
-
- The meaning of the Christian doctrine, which is clear for
- the minority, has become unintelligible for the majority of
- men--The cause of it is the false conception of Christianity
- and the misguided assurance of believers, as well as of
- unbelievers, that they apprehend it--The apprehension of
- Christianity for believers is concealed by the Church--The
- apprehension of Christianity--Its essence and its unlikeness
- to the pagan doctrines--Misunderstood at first, it has grown
- clear to those who embrace it owing to its correspondence with
- the truth--Contemporaneously with it arose the assertion that
- the true meaning of the doctrine was understood, and had been
- confirmed by miraculous transmission--The Council of Disciples
- according to the Acts--Authoritative and miraculous assertion
- of the true conception of Christ's doctrine has found its
- logical conclusion in the acknowledgment of the Credo and
- the Church--The Church could not have been established by
- Christ--Definition of Churches according to the Catechism--There
- are various Churches, ever antagonistic to one another--Where is
- heresy?--The work of Mr. Arnold concerning heresies--Heresies
- are the sign of activity in the Churches--Churches always divide
- mankind, and are ever inimical to Christianity--In what the
- activity of the Russian Church consists--Matthew xxiv. 23--The
- Sermon on the Mount, or the Credo--The Orthodox Church conceals
- from the people the true meaning of Christianity--The same is
- done by other Churches--All the contemporary external conditions
- are such that they destroy the doctrine of the Church, and
- therefore Churches use all their efforts to defend it.
-
-
-The knowledge which I obtained after the publication of my book in
-regard to the views which the minority of mankind have held, and
-still hold, concerning the doctrine of Christ in its simplicity
-and real significance, as well as the criticisms of clerical and
-secular writers, who deny the possibility of apprehending it in
-its actual meaning, have convinced me that while the minority has
-not only always possessed a true conception of this doctrine, and
-that this conception has grown steadily more and more clear, for
-the majority, on the other hand, its sense has become more and more
-vague, reaching at last such a degree of obscurity that men fail to
-understand the simplest commands expressed in the Bible, even when
-couched in the plainest possible language.
-
-The inability that prevails at the present time to comprehend the
-doctrine of Christ in its true, simple, and actual meaning, when
-its light has penetrated into the remotest recesses of the human
-understanding, when, as Christ said, they proclaim from the roofs
-that which He whispered in the ear; when this doctrine penetrates
-every phase of human life, domestic, economical, civil, politic, and
-international,--this failure to apprehend it would be inexplicable,
-if one had not discovered the reasons for it.
-
-One of the reasons is, that believers as well as unbelievers are
-perfectly sure that they long ago understood the doctrine of Christ
-so completely, unquestionably, and finally, that it can have no
-other meaning but the one which they attribute to it. That is
-because the tradition of this false conception has been handed down
-for ages,--and therefore its misconception.
-
-The most powerful stream of water cannot add one single drop to a
-vessel that is already full.
-
-One might succeed in explaining to the dullest of men the most
-difficult of problems, if he had no previous conception in regard to
-them; but it is impossible to explain to the cleverest man even the
-simplest matters, if he is perfectly sure that he knows everything
-about it.
-
-The Christian doctrine appears to men of the present times to be a
-doctrine of that kind, known for ages, and never to be questioned
-in its most trivial details, and which is susceptible of no other
-interpretation.
-
-At the present time Christianity is conceived by those who profess
-the doctrines of the Church as a supernatural, miraculous revelation
-of all that is expressed in the Credo; while unbelievers look upon
-it as an affair of the past, a manifestation of the demand of
-humanity for a belief in the supernatural, as an historical fact,
-which has found its fullest expression in Catholicism, Orthodoxy,
-and Protestantism, and which has for us no vital meaning. For the
-believers the real significance of the doctrine is concealed by the
-Church; for the unbelievers it is hidden by science.
-
-Let us begin by considering the former.
-
-Eighteen hundred years ago, in the pagan world of Rome, there
-appeared a strange and novel doctrine, unlike any of its
-predecessors, which was ascribed to the man Christ.
-
-It was a doctrine wholly new in form as well as in substance, both
-for the Hebrew world, from whose midst it had sprung, as well as for
-the Roman world, in whose midst it was preached and promulgated.
-
-Among the accurately defined religious precepts of the Jews, where,
-according to Isaiah, there was precept upon precept, and among the
-highly perfected Roman legislative assemblies, there appeared a
-doctrine that not only repudiated all deities, all fear of them,
-all augury and all faith in it, but also denied the necessity for
-any human institutions whatsoever. Instead of the precepts and
-creeds of former times, this doctrine presented only an image of
-interior perfection, truth, and love in the person of Christ, and
-the attainment of this interior perfection possible for men, and, as
-a consequence, of the outward perfection foretold by the prophets:
-the coming of the Kingdom of God, when all enmity shall cease, when
-every man will hear the word of the Lord and be united with another
-in brotherly love, and when the lion and the lamb shall lie down
-together. Instead of threats of punishment for the non-observance of
-the commandments of the old laws, religious no less than secular,
-instead of tempting men by promise of rewards to observe these laws,
-this doctrine attracted mankind only by proclaiming itself to be the
-truth.
-
-"If any man will do his will, he shall know of the doctrine, whether
-it be of God, or whether I speak of myself."--John vii. 17.
-
-"Which of you convinceth me of sin? And if I say the truth, why do
-ye not believe me?"--John viii. 46.
-
-"But now ye seek to kill me, a man that hath told you the
-truth...."--John viii. 40.
-
-"And ye shall know the truth, and the truth shall make you
-free."--John viii. 32.
-
-God must be worshiped in truth. All the doctrine will be made plain
-by the Spirit of Truth. Do as I command you, and you will know
-whether what I say is the truth.
-
-No evidence was brought to prove the doctrine, except the truth and
-its harmony therewith. The whole substance consisted in learning the
-truth and in following its guidance, drawing nearer and nearer to it
-in the affairs of everyday life.
-
-According to this doctrine, there is no mode of action that can
-justify a man or make him righteous; as regards interior perfection
-we have only the image of truth, in the person of Christ, to win our
-hearts, and outward perfection is expressed by a realization of the
-Kingdom of God. In order to fulfil the doctrine it needs but to take
-Christ for our model, and to advance in the direction of interior
-perfection by the road which has been pointed out to us, as well as
-in that of exterior perfection, which is the establishment of the
-Kingdom of God. The degree of human happiness, whether it be more
-or less, depends, according to this doctrine, not on the degree
-of perfection at which it arrives, but on the comparative rate of
-progress toward that perfection.
-
-The advance toward perfection of Zacchus the publican, of the
-adulteress, of the thief on the cross, is, according to this
-doctrine, better than the stagnation of the righteous Pharisee.
-The shepherd rejoices more over the one sheep which was lost and
-is found than over the ninety and nine which are in the fold. The
-prodigal returned, the piece of money which was lost and is found,
-is more precious unto God than that which was never lost.
-
-According to this doctrine, each state is but a step on the road
-toward the unattainable interior and exterior perfection, and
-therefore it has no significance in itself. The progress of this
-movement toward perfection is its merit; the least cessation of this
-movement means the cessation of good works.
-
-"Let not thy left hand know what thy right hand doeth," and "No
-man, having put his hand to the plow, and looking back, is fit for
-the kingdom of God." "Rejoice not that the spirits are subject unto
-you; but rather rejoice, because your names are written in heaven."
-"Be ye therefore perfect, even as your Father which is in heaven is
-perfect." "Seek ye first the kingdom of God and his righteousness."
-
-The fulfilment of the doctrine lies in a continual progress toward
-the attainment of a higher truth, and in the growing realization of
-that truth within one's self, by means of an ever increasing love;
-as well as in a more and more keen realization of the Kingdom of
-God in the world around us. It is evident that the doctrine that
-appeared in the midst of the Hebrew and pagan world could not be
-accepted by the majority of men, who lived a life so totally unlike
-the one prescribed by this new doctrine; and even those who did
-accept it could not comprehend its full meaning, because of its
-contradiction of all former ideas.
-
-It is only through a series of misapprehensions, errors, one-sided
-explanations, corrected and supplemented by generations of men,
-that the meaning of the Christian doctrine has become more and more
-plain. The Christian world-conception and that of the Hebrew and
-pagan peoples mutually acted and reacted upon each other, and the
-Christian principle being the more vital, it penetrated deeper and
-deeper into the Hebrew and pagan principles that had outlived their
-usefulness, and became more clearly defined, freeing itself from
-the spurious admixtures imposed upon it. Men understood its meaning
-better and better, and realized it more and more unmistakably in
-life.
-
-The older the world grew, the more lucid became its apprehension of
-Christianity, as must always be the case with any doctrine relating
-to human life.
-
-Successive generations rectified the mistakes of the preceding ones
-and approached nearer and nearer to the apprehension of its true
-meaning. Thus it was from the very beginning of Christianity. And
-it was then that certain men came to the front who affirmed that
-the only true interpretation was the one which they themselves
-proclaimed, adducing the miracles as a proof thereof.
-
-This was the principal cause of its misapprehension in the first
-place, and of its complete perversion in the second.
-
-The doctrine of Christ was supposed to be transmitted to mankind not
-like any other truth, but in a peculiar, supernatural manner; hence
-they propose to prove its authority, not because it satisfies the
-demands of reason and of human nature in general, but because of the
-miraculous character of its transmission, which is supposed to be
-an incontrovertible proof of the validity of its conception. This
-idea sprang from a misconception, and the result was that it became
-impossible to understand it.
-
-It originated at the very beginning, when the doctrine was so
-imperfectly understood and often so erroneously construed; as, for
-example, in the Gospels and the Acts. The less men understood it,
-the more mysterious it appeared, and the greater need was there for
-visible proof of its authenticity. The rule for doing unto others as
-you would wish them to do unto you, called for no miraculous proof,
-neither did it require faith, because the proposition is convincing
-in itself, both to reason and to human nature. But the proposition
-that Christ was God needed miraculous testimony.
-
-The more mystical grew the apprehension of Christ's teaching, the
-more the miraculous element entered into it; and the more miraculous
-it became, the farther it was from its original meaning; and the
-more complicated, mystical, and remote from its original meaning it
-came to be, the more necessary it was to declare its infallibility,
-and the less intelligible it became.
-
-From the very beginning of Christianity one could see from the
-Gospels, the Acts, and the Epistles how the misapprehension of the
-doctrine called forth the necessity of proofs--miraculous and beyond
-human intelligence.
-
-It dated from the time mentioned in the Acts, when the disciples
-went up to Jerusalem to consult with the elders in regard to the
-question that had arisen as to whether the uncircumcised and those
-who abstained not from the meat offered to idols should be baptized.
-
-The very manner of asking the question showed that those who
-discussed it misconceived the doctrine of Christ, who rejected all
-external rites, such as the washing of the feet, purification,
-fasts, and the Sabbath. It is said distinctly: "Not that which goeth
-into the mouth defileth a man; but those things which proceed out
-of the mouth come forth from the heart; and they defile the man."
-And therefore the question in regard to the baptism of those not
-circumcised could only arise among men who, loving their Teacher and
-with the intuitive perception of the grandeur of his doctrine, could
-not as yet comprehend its exact meaning. And so it was.
-
-And in proportion as the members of the assembly failed to
-comprehend the doctrine, did they stand in need of an outward
-affirmation of their incomplete conception. And in order to decide
-the question, whose very proposal proves the misconception of
-the doctrine, it was that in this assembly for the first time,
-according to the description given in the Acts, were uttered those
-awful words, productive of so much harm, by which the truth of
-certain propositions has been for the first time confirmed: "For it
-seemed good to the Holy Ghost, and to us;" that is to say, it was
-a declaration that the truth of what they said was witnessed by a
-miraculous participation of the Holy Ghost, that is--of God.
-
-But the assertion that the Holy Ghost--that is to say, God--had
-spoken through the apostles, in its turn required proof. And
-therefore it became necessary to declare that on the fiftieth day
-the Holy Ghost, in the shape of fiery tongues, descended on those
-who had made this assertion. [In the description the descent of the
-Holy Ghost precedes the council, but the Acts were written much
-later than either.] But the descent of the Holy Ghost must also
-be proved, though it would be difficult to say why a fiery tongue
-hovering over a man's head should be a proof of the truth of what
-he says any more than the miracles, the cures, the resurrections,
-the martyrdoms, and all the rest of those persuasive miracles with
-which the Acts are filled, and which serve rather to repel than to
-convince one of the truth of the Christian dogmas. The results of
-these methods were such that the more pains they took to confirm
-their statements, accumulating stories of miracles, the more the
-doctrine itself deviated from its original meaning, and the less
-intelligible it became.
-
-Thus it was from the beginning of the Christian era, and thus
-it continued to increase, until in its own time it has reached
-its logical consummation in the dogma of transubstantiation, the
-infallibility of the Pope, the bishops, and Scriptures, which is
-something utterly incomprehensible and nonsensical, requiring
-a blind faith, not in God or Christ, nor even in the doctrine,
-but a faith either in one person, as in Catholicism, or in many
-persons, as in Orthodoxy, or in a book, as in Protestantism. The
-more widely spread Christianity became, and the larger the number
-of uninstructed men it received, the less it was understood, the
-more the infallibility of its conceptions was insisted upon,
-and the more slender grew the possibility of understanding its
-true meaning. Already, about the time of Constantine, the entire
-conception of the doctrine amounted to the _rsum_ formulated by
-the temporal power,--the outcome of discussions that took place in
-the council,--to the Credo, in which it is said: I believe in this
-and that, etc., and at the end, "in the one holy, Apostolic and
-OEcumenical Church," that is, in the infallibility of the persons
-who constitute it; so that it all amounted to this, that a man
-believed not in God, nor in Christ, as they revealed themselves to
-him, but in that which was believed by the Church.
-
-But the Church is holy, and was founded by Christ. God could not
-allow men to interpret His doctrine as they chose, and therefore He
-established the Church. All these propositions are so unjust and
-unfounded, that one is actually ashamed to refute them. In no place,
-and in no manner whatsoever, save in the assertion of the Church,
-is it seen that either God or Christ can ever have founded anything
-like the Church in its ecclesiastical sense. There is a distinct
-and evident warning in the New Testament against the Church, as
-an outside authority, in the passage which bids the disciples of
-Christ call no man father or master. But nowhere is there a word
-in regard to the establishment of what the ecclesiastics call the
-Church. The word "church" is used in the New Testament twice, once
-in speaking of the assembly which is to decide a dispute; the second
-time in connection with the obscure words in regard to the rock,
-Peter, and the gates of hell. From these two references, where the
-word is used only in the sense of an assembly, men have derived the
-institution which we recognize at present under the same of the
-Church.
-
-But Christ could by no means have founded a church, that is, what we
-understand by that word at the present time, because nothing like
-our Church, as we know it in these days, with the sacraments, the
-hierarchy, and above all the establishment of infallibility, was to
-be found either in the words of Christ, or in the ideas of the men
-of those times.
-
-Because men have called something which has been established since,
-by the same word that Christ used in regard to another thing, by no
-means gives them a right to assert that Christ founded only one true
-Church.
-
-Moreover, if Christ had it in his mind to establish a church which
-was to be the depository of the whole doctrine and faith, He would
-surely have expressed this so plainly and clearly, and would have
-given, apart from all stories of miracles which are repeated with
-every variety of superstition, such signs as would leave no doubt as
-to its authenticity; yet this was not the case, and now, as always,
-one finds different institutions, each one calling itself the only
-true Church.
-
-The Catholic catechism says: "L'Eglise est la socit des fidles
-tablie par N.-S. Jsus-Christ, rpandue sur toute la terre et
-soumise l'autorit de pasteurs lgitimes, principalement notre
-S.-P. le pape,"--meaning by "pasteurs lgitimes,"[3] a human
-institution made up of a number of men bound together by a certain
-organization of which the Pope is the head.
-
- [3] The Church is the society of the faithful, established by our
- Lord Jesus Christ, diffused throughout the world, subject to the
- authority of its lawful pastors and our holy father the Pope.
-
-The Orthodox catechism says: "Our Church is a society established
-on earth by Jesus Christ, united by the divine doctrine and the
-sacraments under the government and direction of a hierarchy
-established by the Lord,"--those words, "established by the Lord,"
-signifying a Greek hierarchy, composed of certain men who are
-ordained to fill certain places.
-
-The Lutheran catechism says: "Our Church is a holy Christian society
-of believers under Christ, our Master, in which the Holy Ghost, by
-means of the Bible and the sacraments, offers, communicates, and
-dispenses the divine salvation,"--meaning by that, that the Catholic
-Church is in error, and has fallen away from grace, and that the
-genuine tradition has been preserved in Protestantism.
-
-For Catholics the divine Church is identified with the Pope and
-the Roman hierarchy. For the Orthodox it is identified with the
-institution of the Eastern and Russian hierarchy.[4] For Lutherans
-the divine Church signifies a congregation of men who acknowledge
-the Bible and the Lutheran catechism.
-
- [4] The definition of Homiakov, which had a certain success among
- the Russians, does not help the case, if one believes with him
- that the Orthodox is the only true Church. Homiakov asserts that
- a church is a society of men (without distinction between the
- ecclesiastics and the laity) united by love, and to whom the truth
- is revealed ("Let us love one another, that we may unanimously
- profess," etc.), and that such a church is, in the first place, one
- that professes the Nicene creed, and, secondly, one which, after
- the division of the churches, refused to recognize the authority of
- the Pope and the new dogmas. With such a definition as this, the
- difficulty of identifying a church which is united by love with a
- church professing the Nicene creed, and the accuracy of Photius, as
- Homiakov would have it, is still greater. Hence the statement of
- Homiakov that this church united by love, and therefore holy, is
- the same as that of the Greek hierarchy, is still more arbitrary
- than the assertions of the Catholics and the old Greek Orthodox
- believers. If we admit the existence of the Church according to the
- idea of Homiakov, that is, as a society of men united by love and
- truth, then all that any man can say in regard to it, is that it
- would be most desirable to be a member of that society,--if such
- an one exists,--that is, to live in the spirit of love and truth;
- but there are no outward manifestations by which one could either
- acknowledge one's self, or recognize others as members of this holy
- society, or exclude one's self from it, for there is no outward
- institution to be found which corresponds to that idea.
-
-When those who belong to any one of the existing churches speak of
-the beginnings of Christianity, they generally use the word "church"
-in the singular, as though there had never been but one church. This
-is quite unfair. The Church, which as an institution declares itself
-to be the depository of infallible truth, did not arise until there
-were already two.
-
-While the faithful still agreed among themselves, the congregation
-was united, and there was no occasion for calling itself a church.
-It was only when it separated into two hostile parties that each
-party felt obliged to assert its possession of the truth by claiming
-infallibility.
-
-During the course of the controversies between the two parties,
-while each one claimed infallibility for itself and declared its
-opponent heretical, arose the idea of the one church.
-
-We know that there was a church in the year 51, which granted
-the admission of the uncircumcised, and we know it only because
-there was another, the Jewish Church, which denied their right to
-membership.
-
-If at the present time there is a Catholic Church which asserts
-its infallibility, it is because there are other churches, namely,
-the Greek Orthodox and the Lutheran, each one asserting its own
-infallibility, and thus disowning all other churches. Hence the idea
-of one church is but the product of the imagination, containing not
-a shadow of reality.
-
-It is an historical fact that there have existed, and still continue
-to exist, numerous bodies, each one of whom maintains itself to be
-the true Church established by Christ, declaring at the same time
-that all the others who call themselves churches are heretical and
-schismatic.
-
-The catechisms of those churches which possess the greatest number
-of communicants, the Catholic, the Orthodox, and the Lutheran,
-express this in the plainest language.
-
-The Catholic catechism says: "Quels sont ceux qui sont hors de
-l'Eglise? Les infidles, hrtiques, et schismatiques."[5] By
-schismatics it means the so-called Orthodox, and by heretics the
-Lutherans; so that, according to the Catholic catechism, the Church
-is composed only of Catholics.
-
- [5] Who are those outside the Church? The infidels, heretics, and
- schismatics.
-
-In the so-called Orthodox catechism it says: "The name Church of
-Christ means only the Orthodox Church, which has remained in perfect
-union with the universal Church. As to the Roman Church and the
-Protestant creeds" (they are not even called a church), "they cannot
-belong to the one true Church, for they have separated themselves
-from it."
-
-According to this definition the Catholics and the Protestants are
-outside of the Church, and only the Orthodox are in it.
-
-The Lutheran catechism says: "Die wahre Kirche wird darein erkannt,
-das in ihr das Wort Gottes lauter und rein ohne Menschenzusetzung
-gelehrt und die Sacramenten treu nach Christ Einsetzung gewartet
-werden."[6]
-
- [6] Thereby may be the true Church known that in it the word of God
- is taught plainly and clearly, without human additions, and that
- sacraments are administered faithfully according to the teaching of
- Christ.
-
-According to this definition, those who have added anything
-whatsoever to the teaching of Christ and the apostles, as the
-Catholic and Greek Churches have done, are outside the Church, and
-the Lutherans alone are in it.
-
-The Catholics assert that the Holy Ghost dwells perpetually with
-their hierarchy; the Orthodox assert that the same Holy Ghost
-resides also with them; the Arians claim that the Holy Ghost
-manifests itself to them (and they have the same right to assert
-this as have the prevailing religions of the present day); all the
-denominations of Protestants--Lutherans, Reformed Presbyterians,
-Methodists, Swedenborgians, and Mormons--assert that the Holy Ghost
-manifests itself only with them.
-
-If the Catholics assert that the Holy Ghost during the separation of
-the Arian and Greek Churches withdrew from the separating churches
-and remained in the one true Church, then the Protestants of any
-denomination whatsoever may assert with as much right that during
-the separation of their Church from the Catholic, the Holy Ghost
-left the Catholic Church and entered into their own. And this is
-exactly what they do say. Every church professes to derive its creed
-by an unbroken tradition from Christ and the apostles. And certainly
-every Christian creed derived from Christ must have reached the
-present generation through tradition of some sort. But this is no
-proof that any one of these traditions embodies infallible truth, to
-the exclusion of all others.
-
-Every branch proceeds from the root without interruption; but the
-fact that each one comes from one root, by no means proves it to
-be the only branch. And so it is in regard to the churches. The
-proofs which each church offers of its apostolic succession, and
-the miracles which are to prove its authenticity, are the same in
-every case; consequently there is but one exact definition of what
-is called a church (not the imaginary church which we may desire,
-but the actual church which has really existed). The Church is a
-body of men which lays claim to the exclusive possession of the
-truth. All these various societies which were afterward transformed
-by State authority into powerful organizations have really been the
-chief obstacles to the diffusion of true Christianity. It could not
-be otherwise: for the principal characteristic which distinguishes
-the doctrine of Christ from those of earlier times is that the men
-who accepted it strove to understand and to fulfil it more and more
-perfectly; whereas the doctrine of the Church affirmed that it was
-already thoroughly understood and also fulfilled.
-
-However strange this may seem to us, reared as we have been in the
-false doctrine of the Church, as if it were a Christian institution,
-and taught to despise heresy, it is nevertheless in that which men
-call heresy that true progress, that is, true Christianity, was
-manifested, and it only ceased to be such when these heresies were
-checked, and it was, so to speak, stamped with the immutable imprint
-of the Church.
-
-What, then, is heresy? Read all the theological works which treat of
-heresies, of that subject which above all others calls for an exact
-definition, for every theologian speaks of the true doctrine in the
-midst of the false ones by which it is surrounded, and nowhere will
-you find even the shadow of a definition of heresy.
-
-As an instance of the complete absence of the definition of what
-is understood by the word heresy, we will quote the opinion of a
-learned Christian historian, E. de Pressens in "Histoire du Dogme,"
-with its epigraph, "Ubi Christus, ibi Ecclesia" (Paris, 1869). This
-is what he says in his preface (p. 4):--
-
-"I know that they dispute our right to qualify thus" (that is, to
-pronounce them heretical) "the tendencies which were so actively
-resisted by the early Fathers. The very name of heresy seems an
-attack upon liberty of conscience and thought. We cannot share
-these scruples, for they would simply deprive Christianity of any
-individual character."
-
-And having said that after Constantine the Church did in fact
-abuse its authority to describe the dissenters as heretics and
-to persecute them, he says, in speaking of the early ages of
-Christianity: "The Church is a free association; there is an
-advantage to be gained in separating from it. The controversy
-against error is based on feelings and ideas; no uniform body of
-dogma has as yet been adopted; differences of secondary importance
-appear in the East and West with perfect freedom; theology is not
-limited by unalterable formulas. If amid these varying opinions a
-common groundwork of faith is discerned, have we not the right to
-see in this, not a definite system devised and formulated by the
-representatives of a school, but faith itself in its most unerring
-instinct and spontaneous manifestation? If this very unanimity
-which is revealed in the essential matters of faith is found to be
-antagonistic to certain tendencies, have we not the right to infer
-that these tendencies disagreed with the fundamental principles of
-Christianity? Will not this supposition become a certainty if we
-recognize in the doctrine rejected by the Church the characteristic
-features of one of the religions of the past? If we admit that
-gnosticism or ebionitism are legitimate forms of Christian thought,
-we must boldly declare that Christian thought does not exist, nor
-does it possess any specific characteristic by which it may be
-recognized. We should destroy it even while pretending to enlarge
-its limits. In the time of Plato no one would have dared to advocate
-a doctrine which would leave no room for the theory of ideas, and he
-would have been subjected to the well-deserved ridicule of Greece,
-if he attempted to make of Epicurus or of Zeno a disciple of the
-Academy. Let us then admit that if there exists a religion or a
-doctrine called Christianity, it may have its heresies."
-
-The writer's argument amounts to this, that every opinion which does
-not accord with the code of dogmas that we have professed at any
-given time, is a heresy. At a certain time and in a certain place
-men make a certain profession, but this profession can never be a
-fixed criterion of the truth. All is summed up in the "Ubi Christus,
-ibi Ecclesia," and Christ is wherever we are.
-
-Every so-called heresy which claims that what it professes is the
-actual truth, may likewise find in the history of the Church a
-consistent explanation of the faith it professes, and apply all
-the arguments to its own use. Pressens simply calls his own creed
-Christian truth, precisely as every heretical sect has done.
-
-The primary definition of the word heresy (the word +hairesis+
-means a part) is the name given by a society of men to any opinion
-contradicting any part of the doctrine professed by the society. A
-more specific meaning is an expression of an opinion which denies
-the truth of the creed, established and maintained by the temporal
-power.
-
-There is a remarkable, although little known, work entitled
-"Unpartheyische Kirchen und Ketzer-Historie," 1729, by Gottfried
-Arnold, which treats of this subject, and points out the illegality,
-the perversity, the lack of sense, and the cruelty of employing the
-word heresy in the sense of refutation. This book is an attempt to
-relate the history of Christianity in the form of a history of
-heresies.
-
-In his introduction the author asks a series of questions: (1) Of
-those who make heretics (Von denen Ketzermachern selbst); (2) Of
-those who have become heretics; (3) Of the subjects of heresy; (4)
-Of the ways of making heretics; and (5) Of the aims and consequences
-of the making of heretics. To each of these points he adds scores
-of other questions, giving the answers from the works of well-known
-theologians, but principally leaving it to the reader to draw his
-own deductions from the contents of the book. As instances of
-questions which are to a certain extent their own answers I will
-quote the following:--Concerning the 4th question, of the methods
-for making heretics, he asks in one of the questions (the 7th):
-"Does not all history tend to show us that the greatest makers of
-heretics, the adepts in the art, were those very wiseacres from
-whom the Father concealed his secrets--that is, the hypocrites, the
-Pharisees, and the Scribes, or utterly godless and evil-minded men?
-(Question 20-21) And in the corrupted times of Christianity did
-not the hypocrites and envious ones reject the very men, talented
-and especially indorsed by the Lord, who would have been highly
-esteemed in periods of pure Christianity? (21) And, on the other
-hand, would not those men who during the decadence of Christianity
-rose above all others, and set themselves up as teachers of the
-purest Christianity, would not they, during the times of the
-apostles of Christ and his disciples, have been considered as the
-shameful heretics and anti-Christians?" Among other things, while
-expressing the idea that the verbal declaration of the essence of
-faith which was required by the Church, the abjuration of which was
-regarded as a heresy, could never cover all the ideas and beliefs
-of the faithful, and that hence the requirement that faith shall be
-expressed by a certain formula of words is the immediate cause of
-heresy, he says in the 21st question:--
-
-"And supposing that holy acts and thoughts appear to a man so high
-and so profound that he finds no adequate words wherewith to convey
-them, should he be considered a heretic if he is unable to formulate
-his conception? (33) And was not this the reason why there were no
-heresies in the early times of Christianity, because Christians
-judged each other, not by their words, but by their hearts and by
-their deeds, enjoying a perfect freedom of expression, without the
-fear of being called heretic?" "Was it not one of the convenient and
-easiest methods of the Church," he asks in the 31st question, "when
-the ecclesiastics wished to rid themselves of any one, or ruin his
-reputation, to excite suspicion in regard to the doctrine he held,
-and by investing him in the garment of heresy, condemn and cast him
-out?"
-
-"Although it is true that among so-called heretics sins and errors
-have been committed, it is no less true, as the numerous examples
-here quoted bear testimony" (that is to say, in the history of
-the Church and of heresies), "that there has never been a sincere
-and conscientious man of any importance whose safety has not been
-endangered through the envy of the ecclesiastics."
-
-This was the interpretation of heresy almost 200 years ago, and the
-same meaning is attached to it to-day, and so long as the idea of
-the Church shall exist it will never change. Where the Church exists
-there must also exist the idea of heresy. The Church is a body of
-men claiming possession of indisputable truth. A heresy is the
-opinion of men who do not acknowledge the truth of the Church to be
-indisputable.
-
-Heresy is the manifestation of a movement in the Church; it is
-an attempt to destroy the immutable assertion of the Church, the
-attempt of a living apprehension of the doctrine. Each advance that
-has been made toward the comprehension and the practice of the
-doctrine has been accomplished by heretics: Tertullian, Origen,
-Augustine, and Luther, Huss, Savonarola, Helchitsky, and others were
-all heretics. It could not be otherwise.
-
-A disciple of Christ, who possesses an ever growing sense of
-the doctrine and of its progressive fulfilment as it advances
-toward perfection, cannot, either for himself or others, affirm,
-simply because he is a disciple of Christ, that he understands and
-practises the doctrine of Christ to its fullest extent; still less
-could he affirm this in regard to any body of men. To whatsoever
-state of comprehension and perfection he may have arrived, he
-must always feel the inadequacy both of his conception and of its
-application, and must ever strive for something more satisfactory.
-And therefore to claim for one's self, or for any body of men
-whatsoever, the possession of a complete apprehension and practice
-of the doctrine of Christ is in direct contradiction to the spirit
-of Christ's doctrine itself.
-
-However strange this statement may appear, every church, as a
-church, has always been, and always must be, an institution not
-only foreign, but absolutely hostile, to the doctrine of Christ. It
-is not without reason that Voltaire called it "_l'infme_"; it is
-not without reason that all so-called Christian sects believe the
-Church to be the Scarlet Woman prophesied by the Revelation; it is
-not without reason that the history of the Church is the history of
-cruelties and horrors.
-
-Churches in themselves are, as some persons believe, institutions
-based upon a Christian principle, from which they have deviated to a
-certain extent; but considered in the light of churches, of bodies
-of men claiming infallibility, they are anti-Christian institutions.
-Between churches in the ecclesiastical sense and Christianity,
-not only is there nothing in common except the name, but they are
-two utterly contradictory and hostile elements. One is pride,
-violence, self-assertion, inertia, and death. The other is meekness,
-repentance, submission, activity, and life.
-
-No man can serve these two masters at the same time; he must choose
-either the one or the other.
-
-The servants of the churches of every creed, especially in these
-modern times, strive to represent themselves as the partisans of
-progress in Christianity; they make concessions, they try to correct
-the abuses that have crept into the Church, and protest that it is
-wrong to deny the principle of the Christian Church on account of
-these abuses, because it is only through the medium of the Church
-that unity can be obtained, and that the Church is the only mediator
-between God and man. All this is untrue. So far from fostering the
-spirit of unity, the churches have ever been the fruitful source of
-human enmity, of hatred, wars, conflicts, inquisitions, Eves of St.
-Bartholomew, and so on; neither do the churches act as the mediators
-between God and man,--an office, moreover, quite unnecessary, and
-directly forbidden by Christ himself, who has revealed his doctrine
-unto each individual; it is but the dead formula, and not the living
-God, which the churches offer to man, and which serves rather to
-increase than diminish the distance between man and his Creator.
-The churches, which were founded upon a misconception, and which
-preserve this misconception by their immutability, must of necessity
-harass and persecute any new conception, because they know, however
-they may try to conceal it, that every advance along the road
-indicated by Christ is undermining their own existence.
-
-Whenever one reads or listens to the essays and sermons in which
-ecclesiastical writers of modern times belonging to the various
-creeds discuss the Christian truths and virtues, when one hears
-and reads these artificial arguments, these exhortations, these
-professions of faith, elaborated through centuries, that now and
-then sound sincere, one is almost ready to doubt if the churches can
-be inimical to Christianity. "It cannot be possible that men like
-John Chrysostom, Fnelon, Butler, and other Christian preachers,
-could be inimical to it." One would like to say, "The churches may
-have gone astray from Christianity, may have committed errors, but
-they cannot have been hostile to it." But one must first see the
-fruit before he can know the tree, as Christ has taught, and one
-sees that their fruits were evil, that the result of their works has
-been the distortion of Christianity; and one cannot help concluding
-that, however virtuous the men may have been, the cause of the
-church in which these men served was not Christian. The goodness
-and virtue of certain individuals who served the churches were
-peculiar to themselves, and not to the cause which they served. All
-these excellent men, like Francis of Assisi and Francis de Sales,
-Tichon Zadnsky, Thomas Kempis, and others, were good men, even
-though they served a cause hostile to Christianity; and they would
-have been still more charitable and more exemplary had they not
-yielded obedience to false doctrines.
-
-But why do we speak of, or sit in judgment on, the past, which may
-be falsely represented, and is, in any event, but little known to
-us? The churches, with their principles and their works, are not of
-the past; we have them with us to-day, and can judge them by their
-works and by their influence over men.
-
-What, then, constitutes their power? How do they influence men? What
-is their work in the Greek, the Catholic, and in all the Protestant
-denominations? and what are the consequences of such work?
-
-The work of our Russian so-called Orthodox Church is visible to all.
-It is a factor of primary importance, which can neither be concealed
-nor disputed.
-
-In what manner is the activity of the Russian Church
-displayed,--that vast institution which labors with so much zeal,
-that institution which numbers among its servants half a million of
-men, and costs the people tens of millions?
-
-The activity of the Church consists in forcing, by every means in
-its power, upon the one hundred millions of Russian people, those
-antiquated, time-worn beliefs which have lost all significance,
-and which were formerly professed by foreigners, with whom we had
-nothing in common, beliefs in which nearly every man has lost
-his faith, even in some cases those very men whose duty it is to
-inculcate them.
-
-The endeavor to force upon the people those formulas of the
-Byzantine clergy, marvelous to them and senseless to us, concerning
-the Trinity, the Virgin, the sacraments, grace, and so forth,
-embraces one province of the activity of the Russian Church; another
-function is the encouragement given to idolatry, in the literal
-sense of the word: the veneration of holy relics and holy images,
-the sacrifices offered to them in the faith that they will hear and
-grant prayers. I will pass over in silence what is written in the
-ecclesiastical magazines by the clergy who possess a semblance of
-learning and liberality, and will speak only of what is really done
-by the clergy throughout the immense extent of Russia, among its one
-hundred millions of inhabitants. What is it that is taught to the
-people with such unremitting pains and endeavor, and with so much
-earnestness? What is required of them for the sake of the so-called
-Christian religion?
-
-I will start at the beginning, with the birth of the child. When
-a child is born, we are taught that a prayer must be read over
-the mother and child, in order to purify them, for without that
-prayer the mother remains unclean. For that purpose, and facing the
-ikons of the saints, whom the common people simply call gods, the
-priest takes the infant in his arms, reads the exhortation, and by
-that means he is supposed to cleanse the mother. Then the parents
-are instructed, nay, even ordered, under penalty of punishment
-in the event of non-compliance, to christen the child--that is,
-to let the priest immerse it three times in the water, while
-words unintelligible to all present are read, and still less
-intelligible ceremonies are performed, such as the application of
-oil to different parts of the body, the cutting of the hair, the
-blowing and spitting of the sponsors at the imaginary devil. All
-this is necessary to cleanse the child, and make a Christian of
-him. Then the parents are told that the child must receive the
-holy sacrament--that is, he is to swallow, in the form of bread
-and wine, a particle of the body of Christ, by which means the
-child will receive the blessing of Christ, and so on. Then they
-are told that as the child grows it must be taught to pray, which
-means that he is to stand in front of boards upon which the faces
-of Christ, the Virgin, and the saints are painted, bow his head
-and body, while with his right hand, his fingers being folded in
-a peculiar manner, he touches his forehead, his shoulders, and
-his stomach, and utters certain Slavonic words, the commonest of
-which, those which all children learn, are the following: "Mother
-of God, ... Virgin, rejoice," etc. Then the child is taught that he
-must repeat this--that is, that he must make the sign of the cross
-whenever he sees a church or an ikon. Furthermore, he is taught
-that on a holiday (holidays are either the day on which Christ was
-born, although no one knows when that took place, or the day of his
-circumcision, or that on which the Virgin died, or when the cross or
-the ikon was brought, or when some fanatic beheld a vision, etc.) he
-should array himself in his best clothes, go to church, buy candles,
-and set them up before the ikons of the saints, give to the priest
-memoranda bearing the names of the dead who are to be prayed for,
-receive bread with triangular pieces cut out of it, pray repeatedly
-for the health and welfare of the Czar and bishops, as well as for
-himself and his own affairs, and then kiss the cross and the hand of
-the priest.
-
-Thus is he taught to pray; and besides this, he is also taught
-that he must perform his devotions once a year. To perform one's
-devotions means to go to church and tell one's sins to the priest,
-it being assumed that this recital of one's sins to a stranger will
-have a purifying effect on a man; then he is to swallow a spoonful
-of bread and wine, which will purify him still more. Moreover,
-men are told that if a man and woman desire to have their sexual
-relation sanctified they must come to church, put crowns of metal
-upon their heads, swallow some wine, walk three times round a table,
-accompanied by the sound of singing, and this will make their sexual
-relation holy and entirely different from any others.
-
-In daily life the observation of the following rules is enjoined:
-to eat no meat nor drink no milk on certain days, to say _Te Deums_
-and _Requiems_ on certain other days, to invite the priest to
-one's house on holidays and present him with money; to take from
-the church several times a year boards upon which are painted the
-images of the saints, and to carry them on towels through fields and
-houses. Before death a man must without fail receive a spoonful of
-bread and wine; and if there be time to be anointed with oil, that
-is still better, for it insures his welfare in the future life.
-After his death his relatives are told that, in order to save his
-soul, it is well to place in his hand a printed prayer; it is also a
-good thing to read a certain book over the dead, and for his name to
-be mentioned in church at stated times.
-
-This is what constitutes every man's religious obligation. But
-if any one wishes to take a special care of his soul, this creed
-teaches that the greatest amount of happiness may be secured in
-the next world by bequeathing money for churches and monasteries,
-thereby obliging the saints to pray for one. According to this faith
-it is also well to visit monasteries and kiss the miraculous ikons
-and the relics.
-
-These are believed to impart a peculiar holiness, strength, and
-grace; and to be near these objects, as one must be in kissing them,
-placing tapers before them, crawling under them, and repeating _Te
-Deums_ before them, greatly promotes salvation.
-
-And this is the faith called Orthodox, this is the true faith,
-the one which, under the garb of a Christian religion, has been
-energetically taught to the people for many centuries, and is
-inculcated at the present time more vigorously than ever.
-
-Let it not be said that the Orthodox teachers look upon all this as
-an ancient form of faith which it was not considered worth while
-to abolish, and that the essence of the doctrine abides elsewhere.
-This is not the truth. Throughout Russia, and lately with increased
-energy, the entire Russian clergy teaches this faith, and this
-alone. Nothing else is taught. Men may write about other doctrines
-and discuss them in the capitals, but among the hundred million
-inhabitants this, and only this, is taught. The ecclesiastics may
-discuss other doctrines, but only this is what is taught.
-
-All this--the worship of relics and shrines--is included in theology
-and the catechism; the people are carefully instructed in all this,
-theoretically and practically, by every kind of solemnity, splendor,
-authority, and violence; the people are compelled to believe in it
-all; they are hypnotized, and the faith is jealously guarded against
-any attempt to deliver them from these foolish superstitions.
-
-As I said in my book, I have during the course of many years had
-frequent opportunities to remark the ridicule and rude jests
-that have been applied to Christ's words and doctrine, and the
-ecclesiastics not only failed to condemn it, they even encouraged
-this scoffing; but let a man venture to say one disrespectful word
-of the ugly idol called the Iverskaya,[7] sacrilegiously carried
-around Moscow by intoxicated men, and a groan of indignation will
-rise from these same Orthodox ecclesiastics. In fact, it is only an
-external worship in the form of idolatry that is propagated. And
-let it not be said that the one does not exclude the other, that
-"All therefore whatsoever they bid you observe, that observe and do;
-but do not ye after their works: for they say, and do not" (Matthew
-xxiii. 3). This is said concerning the Pharisees, who fulfilled
-all the outward commands of the law, and therefore the words,
-"whatsoever they bid you observe, that observe and do," refer to
-acts of benevolence and charity; whereas the words, "do not ye after
-their works, for they say and do not," refer to their observances of
-the rites and their indifference to works of charity, and directly
-contradicts the clerical interpretation of this passage, which
-explains it as a commandment which has to do only with the rites. An
-external worship is hardly compatible with the service of charity
-and truth; one is apt to exclude the other. It was so with the
-Pharisees, and the same may be said of our professing Christians.
-
- [7] The ikon of the Virgin which stands in a chapel in the heart
- of Moscow, and which is the object of a special veneration to the
- Russians.--TR.
-
-If a man is to be saved by redemption, the sacraments, and prayer,
-good works are no longer of any value to him. It must be either the
-Sermon on the Mount or the Credo. No man can believe in both, and
-the ecclesiastics have chosen the latter. The Credo is taught and
-recited as a prayer in the churches, while the Sermon on the Mount
-is excluded even from selections from the Bible which are read in
-churches, so that the congregation never hear it, except on the days
-when the entire Bible is read. It is inevitable; the men who can
-believe that a cruel and unreasonable God had condemned humanity to
-eternal death and sacrificed his own Son, and who had destined a
-certain portion of mankind to everlasting torture, cannot believe
-in a God of love. A man who believes in God, in the Christ who is
-coming in his glory to judge and punish the dead and the living,
-cannot believe in a Christ who commands us to turn the other cheek
-to the offender, who forbids us to sit in judgment, and who bids us
-to forgive our enemies and to love them. A man who believes in the
-inspiration of the Old Testament and in the holiness of David, who
-on his deathbed ordered the murder of an old man who had offended
-him, and whom he could not kill himself because he was bound by
-an oath (1 Kings ii. 8,9), and many other horrors of a similar
-character, in which the Old Testament abounds, cannot believe in the
-moral law of Christ; a man who believes in the doctrine and sermons
-of the Church, wherein the practice of war and the penalty of death
-are reconciled with Christianity, cannot believe in the brotherhood
-of humanity.
-
-But, above all, a man who believes in salvation through faith, in
-redemption, and in the sacraments, cannot strive with all his might
-to live up to the moral precepts of Christ. A man who has been
-taught by the Church the sacrilegious doctrine that he is to be
-saved through a certain medium, and not by his own efforts, will
-surely have recourse to that medium; he will not trust to his own
-efforts, on which, he has been assured, it is sinful to rely. Every
-Church, with its doctrines of redemption and salvation, and above
-all, the Orthodox faith, with its idolatry, excludes the doctrine
-of Christ. But it is said, "This has always been the faith of the
-people, and that they will continue to hold it is proved by the
-whole history of the Russian nation. It would be wrong to deprive
-them of their traditions." Herein lies the fallacy. The people,
-it is true, did once upon a time profess something like what is at
-present professed by the Church; but besides this worship of images
-and relics, the people had always a profound moral conception of
-Christianity never possessed by the Church, and only met with in
-her noblest representatives; but the people, in the better class,
-and in spite of the obstacles raised by the State and the Church,
-have long since abandoned the cruder phase of belief, a fact that
-is proved by the rationalistic sects that are beginning to spring
-up on every side, sects that Russia is filled with at the present
-day, and against which the ecclesiastics wage so hopeless a warfare.
-The people are beginning to recognize the moral, vital side of
-Christianity more and more plainly. And now the Church appears,
-failing to give them a moral support, but forcibly teaching old-time
-paganism,--the Church, with its immutable formulas, endeavoring to
-thrust men back into the gloom from which they are struggling so
-earnestly to escape.
-
-The ecclesiastics say: "We are teaching nothing new; it is the same
-faith which the people already hold, only we teach it in a more
-perfect manner." It is like binding a chicken and trying to put it
-back into the shell from which it came. I have often been struck by
-the spectacle, which would be simply absurd were not its results so
-terrible, of men traveling, so to speak, in a circle, deceived and
-deceiving, but wholly unable to escape from the charmed circle.
-
-The first question, the first doubt, that enters the head of
-every Russian when he begins to reason, is a suspicion of the
-miraculous ikons, and principally of the relics: is it true that
-they are incorruptible, and that they perform miracles? Hundreds
-and thousands of men ask these questions, and are at a loss for an
-answer, especially since bishops and metropolitans and other eminent
-persons kiss both the relics and the miraculous images. Ask the
-bishops and other personages of importance why they do this, and
-they will tell you that they do it in order to impress the masses,
-and the masses do it because the bishops and other magnates do it.
-
-The activity of the Russian Church, despite the veneer of modernity
-and the scientific and spiritual standards which its members have
-begun to establish by their essays, their religious reviews, and
-their sermons, consists not only in encouraging the people in a
-coarse and grotesque idolatry, but in strengthening and promulgating
-superstition and religious ignorance, and in endeavoring to destroy
-the vital conception of Christianity that exists in the people side
-by side with this idolatry.
-
-I remember being once in a book-shop of the monastery of Optin
-Desert while an old peasant was selecting spiritual reading for
-his educated grandson. The monk was offering him a description of
-relics, of holy days, of miraculous ikons, the Book of Psalms, and
-the like. I asked the old man if he had a Bible. "No," he replied.
-"Give him a Russian Bible," I said to the monk. "We don't sell that
-to them," said the monk. This, in short, is the activity of our
-Church.
-
-But the European or American reader may say, "That only happens in
-barbaric Russia," and the remark will be correct, but only so far as
-it applies to the government, which supports the Church to maintain
-in our land its stupefying and demoralizing influence.
-
-It is true that there is nowhere in Europe a government so despotic,
-or that is in more perfect accord with the established Church.
-Therefore in Russia the government authorities play an important
-part in demoralizing the people; but it is not true that the Russian
-Church differs from other churches in respect to its influence over
-the people.
-
-Churches are everywhere alike, and if the Catholic, Anglican, and
-Lutheran have not at their beck so submissive a government as the
-Russian, we may be sure that they would not fail to take advantage
-of it were it within their reach.
-
-The Church as a church, whether it be Catholic, Anglican, Lutheran,
-or Presbyterian, or any denomination whatsoever, inasmuch as it is
-a church, cannot help striving after the same object as the Russian
-Church--namely, to conceal the true meaning of the doctrine of
-Christ, and to substitute a meaning of its own, which imposes no
-obligations, which excludes the possibility of understanding the
-true, living doctrine of Christ, and which above all justifies the
-existence of a priesthood living at the expense of the people.
-
-Do we not find Catholicism with its prohibition against reading the
-Bible, and with its demand for implicit obedience to the clergy
-and the infallible Pope? Wherein does Catholicism differ in its
-preaching from the Russian Church? The same external worship, the
-same relics, miracles, and statues, miracle-performing Madonnas
-and processions; the same vague and mystical utterances concerning
-Christianity in books and sermons, and all in support of the
-grossest idolatry.
-
-And is it not the same in the Anglican or in the Lutheran, or in any
-other Protestant denomination with an established form of church?
-
-The same demands that the congregation shall acknowledge a belief in
-dogmas which were defined in the fourth century, and which have lost
-all meaning for the men of our time; the same call for idol worship,
-if not of relics or ikons, at least of the Sabbath and the letter
-of the Bible; the same endeavor to conceal the real requirement of
-Christianity and the substitution of exterior rites, and "cant," as
-the English so happily define the tendency which finds such sway
-among them.
-
-This activity is more noticeable in Protestantism, because that
-creed has not even the excuse of antiquity. And is not the same
-thing going on in the present "Revivalism," a regenerated Calvinism,
-which has given birth to the Salvation Army? Inasmuch as the
-attitude of all ecclesiastical dogmas toward the doctrine of Christ
-is very much the same, so are their methods of a similar character.
-
-The attitude they have taken obliges them to make every effort to
-conceal the doctrine of that Christ in whose name they speak.
-
-The disparity between ecclesiastical creeds and the doctrine of
-Christ is so great that a special effort is required to keep mankind
-in ignorance. Indeed, one needs but to consider the position of
-any adult, I do not say educated, but one who has assimilated
-superficially the current notions concerning geology, physics,
-chemistry, cosmography, and history, when for the first time he
-actually reflects on the faith impressed upon him in his childhood,
-and maintained by the Church, concerning the creation of the world
-in six days, the appearance of light before the sun was created, the
-story of Noah's ark and the animals preserved in it,--concerning
-Jesus and his divine origin as the Son of God who created all things
-before time existed; that this God came down to earth because of
-Adam's sin; that he rose from the dead, ascended into heaven, and
-sits on the right hand of the Father; that he will come in the
-clouds to judge the living and the dead, etc.
-
-All these ideas evolved by the men of the fourth century, which had
-for them a certain meaning, have none whatever for us. The present
-generation may repeat these words, but it can never believe in them,
-because the statements that God dwells in heaven, that the heavens
-opened and a voice was heard to utter certain words, that Christ
-arose from the dead and ascended into heaven, that he will come
-again from some place in the clouds, etc., have no meaning for us.
-
-It was possible for a man who believed that heaven was a substantial
-arch of limited dimensions to believe or to disbelieve that God
-created it, that it opened, and that Christ ascended thither,--but
-for us there is no sense in such ideas. Men of our time can only
-affirm that it is one's duty to believe all this,--which they do.
-But they cannot really believe in what has no meaning in it for them.
-
-But if all these utterances are supposed to have an allegorical
-signification and are only intended as similes, then we know in the
-first place that all the churchmen will not agree to this--on the
-contrary, the majority insist on taking the Scriptures literally;
-and in the second place, that these interpretations differ greatly,
-and are supported by no reliable authority.
-
-And even if a man wished to believe the doctrine of the Church as
-it is taught, the increase of culture, the reading of the Bible,
-and the intercourse among the members of different churches, form a
-greater and more insurmountable obstacle to belief.
-
-Nowadays a man has but to buy the Bible for threepence, and to read
-the simple, indisputable words of Christ to the Samaritan woman,
-that the Father seeketh worshipers neither in Jerusalem nor in this
-or that mountain, but worshipers in spirit and truth; or the words,
-that a Christian should pray not like the heathen in the temples,
-nor at the corners of streets, but in the secrecy of his closet; or,
-that a disciple of Christ may call no one father or mother,--one has
-but to read these words to be indubitably convinced that priests who
-call themselves teachers in opposition to the teaching of Christ,
-and dispute among themselves, cannot be authorities, and that that
-which they teach is not Christian.
-
-But this is not enough. If the modern man were to go on believing
-in miracles and never read the Bible, the fellowship with men of
-other creeds and professions, which is so much a matter of course in
-these days, will compel him to question the truth of his religion.
-It was natural enough for a man who had never met a believer in a
-creed different from his own, to think that his was the only faith;
-but an intelligent man has but to encounter--and that is an everyday
-occurrence--good and bad men of all creeds, who criticize each
-other's beliefs, in order to question the truth of his own religion.
-Now, only a man either totally ignorant or indifferent to the
-problems of life as dealt with by religion can remain in the faith
-of the Church.
-
-What shrewdness is needed, and what efforts must the churches make,
-in order to go on, in the face of all these faith-destroying
-influences, building temples, saying masses, preaching, instructing,
-converting, and above all receiving for this the large compensations
-which all those priests, pastors, stewards, superintendents, abbots,
-archdeacons, bishops, and archbishops receive!
-
-A special and supernatural effort is called for, and to this the
-Church responds, exerting herself more and more. In Russia, besides
-many other measures, they employ a simple, rude violence, by virtue
-of the power invested in the Church. People who shrink from an
-outward observance of faith and who do not conceal the fact are
-simply punished or deprived of their civil rights; and to those who
-strictly comply with the rites, privileges and rewards are granted.
-
-So much for the Orthodoxy; but every church, without exception,
-makes the most of the means at its disposal, and hypnotism is one of
-the chief agents.
-
-Every art, from architecture to poetry, is enlisted, in order to
-move and intoxicate the human soul. This hypnotic and mesmerizing
-influence is markedly displayed in the activity of the Salvation
-Army, which employs novel, and to us abnormal, methods, such, for
-instance, as drums, horns, singing, banners, uniforms, processions,
-dancing, outbursts of tears, and dramatic gestures.
-
-Still, these methods are startling simply because of their novelty.
-Is not the familiar form of worship in cathedrals, with their
-peculiar illumination, the golden pomp, the candles, choirs, organs,
-bells, vestments, the weeping preachers, etc., of a similar nature?
-And yet, however powerful may be the influence of this hypnotism,
-it is by no means the chief or most harmful form which the activity
-of the Church assumes. Its most malign activity is that which is
-devoted to deceiving the children--those little ones of whom Jesus
-has said, "Woe be unto him who tempts the least of these." From
-the earliest awakening of a child's intelligence he is deceived
-and formally taught that which his teachers no longer believe
-themselves, and this goes on until the delusion becomes from habit
-a part of his nature. A child is systematically deceived concerning
-the most important affair in life, and when this deception has
-become so incorporated with his being that it is difficult to uproot
-it, then the world of science and reality is opened to him--a world
-that is wholly at variance with the faith which he has imbibed from
-his teachers--and he is left to reconcile those contradictions as
-best he may.
-
-Given the problem of how to muddle a man so that he will be unable
-to discriminate between two antagonistic conceptions that have been
-taught to him since his childhood, one could never have devised
-anything more effectual than the education of every young man in our
-so-called Christian society.
-
-Shocking as it is to contemplate the work of the churches among men,
-still, if we consider their position, we shall see that they cannot
-act otherwise. They are face to face with a dilemma: the Sermon on
-the Mount or the Nicene creed; the one excludes the other. If a man
-sincerely believes the Sermon on the Mount, the Nicene creed must
-inevitably lose all its meaning for him, and the same would hold
-true as regards the Church and its representatives; but if a man
-accepts the Nicene creed, that is to say, the Church, or those who
-call themselves its representatives, then he will find no use for
-the Sermon on the Mount. Hence it is incumbent on the churches to
-make every effort to obscure the meaning of the Sermon on the Mount
-and to endeavor to draw the people toward them. It is only due to
-their intense activity in that direction that the influence of the
-churches has not decreased. Let the Church but pause in this effort
-to influence the masses by hypnotizing men and deceiving children
-for ever so short a time, and men will comprehend the doctrine
-of Christ, and this comprehension will do away with churches and
-their influence. Therefore the churches cease not for one moment
-their compulsory activity through the hypnotism of adults and the
-deception of children. And it is this activity of the churches that
-gives people a false conception of Christ's doctrine, and prevents
-the majority of men, the so-called believers, from understanding it.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV
-
-MISCONCEPTION OF CHRISTIANITY BY SCIENTISTS
-
- The relation of scientists to religions in general--What
- are religions, and their significance to human life--Three
- conceptions of life--The Christian doctrine is the expression of
- the divine life-conception--The misconception of Christianity
- by scientists who study its outward manifestations due to
- the fact that they consider it from the standpoint of the
- social life-conception--Opinion resulting therefrom, that
- the teaching of Christ is exaggerated and unpractical--The
- expression of the life-conception of the gospel--Erroneous
- judgments of scientists concerning Christianity are based upon
- the assurance that they possess an infallible criterion of
- knowledge--Hence arise two misapprehensions in regard to the
- Christian doctrine--The first misapprehension concerning the
- impracticability of the doctrine arises from the fact that the
- Christian doctrine presents a conduct of life different from
- that of the social life-conception--Christianity offers not a
- rule, but an ideal--Christ adds the consciousness of a divine
- power to that of an animal power--Christianity seems to exclude
- the possibility of life only when the indication of the ideal
- is taken for the rule--An ideal cannot be belittled--According
- to the doctrine of Christ, life is movement--The ideal and
- the commandments--The second misapprehension arises from the
- attempt to replace the love of God and His service by the love
- and service of humanity--Scientists believe that Christianity
- and their doctrine concerning the service of humanity are
- identical--The doctrine of love toward humanity has for its
- foundation the social life-conception--The love for humanity
- which springs logically from love for the individual has no
- meaning, because humanity is a fiction--Christian love springing
- from the love of God has for its object not only humanity but
- the whole world--Christianity teaches a life in accordance with
- its divine nature--It indicates that the essence of a man's soul
- is love, and that its good is obtained from its love of God,
- whom he feels to be within him through love.
-
-
-Let us now turn our attention to another fallacious conception of
-Christianity, which is antagonistic to its actual principles,--the
-scientific conception.
-
-The Christianity of the churchmen is something which they have
-evolved for themselves, and which they believe to be the only true
-interpretation of Christian doctrine.
-
-The scientists take the professions of faith of the various
-churches for Christianity, and assuming that these dogmas embody
-an exhaustive definition of Christian doctrine, they affirm that
-Christianity has had its day.
-
-One needs but to take into consideration the important part
-which all religions, and especially Christianity, have played in
-the life of man, and the significance which science attaches to
-them, to see at once how impossible it would be to obtain any just
-apprehension of Christian doctrine through these conceptions. As
-each individual must possess certain impressions in regard to the
-meaning of his life, and, though often unconsciously, conform his
-conduct thereunto, so mankind in the aggregate, or groups of men
-living under the same conditions, must likewise possess a conception
-of the meaning of their common life and its consequent activities.
-As an individual passing from one period of life to another
-inevitably changes his ideas, the point of view of a grown-up man
-differs from that of a child, so also mankind in the aggregate--the
-nation--inevitably, and in conformity with its age, changes its
-views of life and the activity that springs therefrom.
-
-The difference in this respect between an individual and mankind
-in general lies in the fact that while the individual, in forming
-his conception of the significance and responsibilities of that new
-period of life upon which he is about to enter, may avail himself of
-the advice of his predecessors who have already passed that stage,
-mankind can have no such advantage, because it is advancing along an
-unbeaten track and there is no one of whom it can ask for the clue
-to the mystery of life, or how it shall demean itself under these
-unfamiliar conditions to which no nation has ever yet been subjected.
-
-The married man with a family of children will not continue to
-view life as he did when he was a child; neither is it possible
-for mankind, with the many changes that have taken place,--the
-density of the population, the constant intercourse of nations,
-the perfected means of combating the forces of nature, and the
-increase of knowledge generally,--to view the life of the present
-day in the light of the past; hence it becomes necessary to evolve
-a life-conception from which activities corresponding with a new
-system which is to be established will naturally develop.
-
-And this need is supplied by that peculiar capacity of the race for
-producing men able to impart a new significance to human life,--a
-significance developing a different set of activities.
-
-The birth of the life-conception, which always takes place when
-mankind enters upon new conditions and its subsequent activities, is
-what we call religion.
-
-Therefore, in the first place, religion is not, as science regards
-it, a phenomenon which formerly traveled hand in hand with the
-development of mankind, and which has since been left behind; on the
-contrary, it is a phenomenon inherent to human existence itself, and
-never more distinctly manifested than at the present day. In the
-second place, religion defines future rather than past activities;
-therefore it is evident that an investigation of the phenomena of
-the past can by no means touch the essence of religion.
-
-The longing to typify the forces of nature is no more the essence
-of religion than is the fear of those same forces, or the need of
-the miraculous and its outward manifestations, as the scientists
-suppose. The essence of religion lies in the power of man to
-foreknow and to point out the way in which mankind must walk. It is
-a definition of a new life which will give birth to new activities.
-
-This faculty of foreknowledge concerning the destiny of humanity
-is more or less common, no doubt, to all people; still from time
-to time a man appears in whom the faculty has reached a higher
-development, and these men have the power clearly and distinctly
-to formulate that which is vaguely conceived by all men, thus
-instituting a new life-conception from which is to flow an unwonted
-activity, whose results will endure for centuries to come. Thus far
-there have been three of these life-conceptions; two of them belong
-to a bygone era, while the third is of our own time and is called
-Christianity. It is not that we have merged the various conceptions
-of the significance of life into three arbitrary divisions, but that
-there really have been but three distinct conceptions, by which the
-actions of mankind have been influenced, and save through these we
-have no means of comprehending life.
-
-These three life-conceptions are--firstly, the individual or animal;
-secondly, the social or pagan; and thirdly, the universal or divine.
-
-According to the first of these, a man's life is his personality,
-and that only, and his life's object is to gratify his desires.
-According to the second, his life is not limited to his own
-personality; it includes the sum and continuity of many
-personalities,--of the family, of the race, and of the State,
-and his life's object is to gratify the will of the communities
-of individuals. And according to the third, his life is confined
-neither to his personality nor to that of the aggregate of
-individuals, but finds its significance in the eternal source of all
-life,--in God Himself.
-
-These three life-conceptions serve as the basis for the religions of
-every age.
-
-The savage sees life only through the medium of his own desires. He
-cares for nothing but himself, and for him the highest good is the
-full satisfaction of his own passions. The incentive of his life is
-personal enjoyment. His religion consists of attempts to propitiate
-the gods in his favor, and of the worship of imaginary deities, who
-exist only for their own personal ends.
-
-A member of the pagan world recognizes life as something concerning
-others besides himself; he sees it as concerning an aggregate of
-individuals,--the family, the race, the nation, the State, and is
-ready to sacrifice himself for the aggregate. The incentive of his
-life is glory. His religion consists in honoring the chiefs of his
-race, his progenitors, his ancestors, his sovereigns, and in the
-worship of those gods who are the exclusive patrons of his family,
-his tribe, his race, and his State.[8]
-
- [8] The unity of this social and pagan life-conception is by no
- means destroyed by the numerous and varied systems which grow out of
- it, such as the existence of the family, of the nation, and of the
- State, and even of that life of humanity conceived according to the
- theory of the Positivists.
-
- These multifarious systems of life are based upon the fundamental
- idea of the insignificance of the individual, and the assurance that
- the meaning of life is to be sought and found only in humanity,
- taken in its broadest sense.--AUTHOR.
-
-The man who possesses the divine life-conception neither looks upon
-life as centered in his own personality nor in that of mankind at
-large, whether family, tribe, race, nation, or State; but rather
-does he conceive of it as taking its rise in the eternal life of
-God, and to fulfil His will he is ready to sacrifice his personal,
-family, and social well-being. Love is the impelling motive of his
-life, and his religion is the worship, in deed and in truth, of the
-beginning of all things,--of God Himself.
-
-History is but the transcript of the gradual transition from the
-animal life-conception of the individual to the social, and from
-the social to the divine. The history of the ancients for thousands
-of centuries, culminating in that of Rome, is the history of the
-evolution from the animal life-conception of the individual to that
-of society and the State. From the advent of Christianity and the
-fall of Imperial Rome we have the history of that change which is
-still going on from the social to the divine life-conception.
-
-The latter, together with the Christian doctrine which is based
-upon it, and by which our lives are shaped, and our activities,
-both practical and scientific, are quickened, is regarded by the
-pseudo-scientists, who judge it only by its outward signs, as
-something outlived, which has lost all meaning for us.
-
-According to scientists this doctrine is embodied in the dogmas
-of the Trinity, the Redemption, the miracles, the Church and its
-sacraments, etc., and is only one of the many religions which have
-arisen during the progress of human history, and now, having played
-its part and outlived its time, is vanishing before the dawn of
-science and true enlightenment.
-
-The grossest of human errors spring in most cases from the fact
-that men who stand on a low intellectual plane, when they encounter
-phenomena of a higher order, instead of trying to rise to the
-higher plane from which these phenomena may be fitly regarded, and
-making an effort to understand them, judge them by their own low
-standard, and the less they know of what they speak, the more bold
-and determined are their judgments.
-
-Most scientists, who treat of the moral doctrine of Christ from the
-lower standpoint of a social life-conception, regard it as nothing
-more than an amalgam without cohesion of the asceticism of India
-with the doctrine of the Stoics and Neo-Platonists, and of vague
-anti-social dreams, devoid of all serious meaning in these latter
-days; they simply see its outward manifestation in the form of
-dogmas in Catholicism, in Protestantism, and in its struggle with
-the powers of the world. Interpreting the design of Christianity
-from its outward aspects, they are like unto deaf men, who judge
-of the meaning and excellence of music by the movements of the
-musicians.
-
-Hence it is that all such men, from Comte and Strauss to Spencer
-and Renan, not understanding the purport of Christ's words, knowing
-nothing whatever of their intention, ignorant of the question
-to which they serve as an answer, and taking no pains to learn
-it,--such men, if they are inimical to Christianity, utterly deny
-the sense of the doctrine; but if they are leniently inclined, then,
-from the height of their superior wisdom, they amend it, taking for
-granted that Christ would have said what they think He meant, had He
-known how to express himself. They treat His doctrine just as men
-of overweening self-conceit treat their inferiors, correcting them
-in their speech: "You mean so and so." And the spirit of emendation
-is always such as to reduce the doctrine of the higher, the divine
-life-conception, to that of the lower and the social conception.
-
-It is usually admitted that the moral teaching of Christianity
-is good but exaggerated; that in order to make it perfect, its
-hyperboles, which are incompatible with our present mode of life,
-should be discarded. "A doctrine which requires so much that is
-impracticable is more hurtful than one which demands of men only
-what is in proportion to their strength." Thus declare the learned
-interpreters of Christianity, thus unwittingly reiterating the
-assertion of those who misunderstood the Christian doctrine long
-years ago, and crucified the Master.
-
-The Hebrew law, "An eye for an eye, and a tooth for a tooth," the
-retributive justice known to mankind thousands of years ago, seems
-far better suited to the court of contemporary scientists than the
-law of love which Christ preached 1800 years ago, and which was to
-replace this identical law of justice.
-
-It would seem that every action of those men who accepted the
-teaching of Christ in its literal sense, and lived up to it, all the
-words and deeds of sincere Christians, and all the agencies which,
-under the guise of socialism and communism, are now transforming
-the world, are merely exaggeration, not worth discussing. Nations
-which have lived under Christian influences, and which are now
-represented by their advanced thinkers, the scientists, have
-arrived at the conclusion that the Christian doctrine is a matter
-of dogma; that its practical teaching has been a mistake and an
-exaggeration, inimical to the just requirements of morality that
-are in accord with human nature, and that the very doctrine which
-Christ repudiated, and for which he substituted a dogma of his own,
-is far better suited to us. The scientist considers the commandment
-of non-resistance to evil by violence an exaggeration, and even an
-act of folly. It would be far better, in his opinion, to reject it,
-never dreaming that it is not the doctrine of Christ which he is
-controverting, but something which he assumes to be the doctrine in
-question. He does not realize when he says that the commandment of
-non-resistance in the doctrine of Christ is an exaggeration, that
-he is like one who, teaching the theory of the circle, declares
-that the equality of the radii is an exaggeration. It is just as
-if one who has no idea of the form of a circle were to affirm that
-the law which requires that each point of its circumference shall
-be equidistant from its center, is an exaggeration. As a suggestion
-to reject or modify the proposition concerning the equality of the
-radii of a circle signifies an ignorance in regard to the circle
-itself, so also does the idea of rejecting or modifying, in the
-practical teaching of Christ, the commandment of non-resistance to
-evil by violence signify a misunderstanding of the doctrine.
-
-And those who entertain these views do not really comprehend the
-doctrine. They do not understand that it is the unfolding of a new
-conception of life, corresponding to the new phase of existence
-upon which the world entered 1800 years ago, and a definition of
-the new activity to which it gave birth. Either they do not believe
-that Christ said what He meant to say, or that what is found in the
-Sermon on the Mount and elsewhere He said either from His enthusiasm
-or lack of wisdom and simplicity of character.[9]
-
- [9] Here, for example, is a characteristic expression of opinion
- in the American periodical, _The Arena,_ for November, 1890,
- from an article entitled "New Basis of Church Life." Discussing
- the significance of the Sermon on the Mount, and especially the
- doctrine of non-resistance to evil, the author, having no reason for
- obscuring its meaning as the ecclesiastics do, says:--
-
- "Devout common sense must gradually come to look upon Christ
- as a philanthropic teacher, who, like every enthusiast who
- ever taught, went to an Utopian extreme in his own philosophy.
- Every great agitation for the betterment of the world has been
- led by men who beheld their own mission with such absorbing
- intensity that they could see little else. It is no reproach to
- Christ to say that he had the typical reformer's temperament;
- that his precepts cannot be literally accepted as a complete
- philosophy of life; and that men are to analyze them reverently,
- but, at the same time, in the spirit of ordinary truth-seeking
- criticism," etc.
-
- "Christ did in fact preach absolute communism and anarchy; but,"
- and so on. Christ would have been glad to have expressed Himself
- in more fitting terms, but He did not possess our critical
- faculty in the use of exact definitions, therefore we will set
- Him right. All He said concerning meekness, sacrifice, poverty,
- and of taking no thought for the morrow, were but haphazard
- utterances, because of His ignorance of scientific phraseology.
-
- Matt. vi. 25-34.--25. _Therefore I say unto you, Take no thought
- for your life, what ye shall eat, or what ye shall drink; nor
- yet for your body, what ye shall put on. Is not the life more
- than meat, and the body than raiment?_
-
- 26. _Behold the fowls of the air: for they sow not, neither
- do they reap, nor gather into barns; yet your heavenly Father
- feedeth them. Are ye not much better than they?_
-
- 27. _Which of you by taking thought can add one cubit unto his
- stature?_
-
- 28. _And why take ye thought for raiment? Consider the lilies of
- the field, how they grow; they toil not, neither do they spin:_
-
- 29. _And yet I say unto you, That even Solomon in all his glory
- was not arrayed like one of these._
-
- 30. _Wherefore, if God so clothe the grass of the field, which
- to-day is, and to-morrow is cast into the oven, shall he not
- much more clothe you, O ye of little faith?_
-
- 31. _Therefore take no thought, saying, What shall we eat? or,
- What shall we drink? or, Wherewithal shall we be clothed?_
-
- 32. _(For after all these things do the Gentiles seek:) for your
- heavenly Father knoweth that ye have need of all these things._
-
- 33. _But seek ye first the kingdom of God, and his
- righteousness; and all these things shall be added unto you._
-
- 34. _Take therefore no thought for the morrow: for the morrow
- shall take thought for the things of itself. Sufficient unto the
- day is the evil thereof._
-
- Luke xii. 33-34.--33. _Sell that ye have, and give alms; provide
- yourselves bags which wax not old, a treasure in the heavens
- that faileth not, where no thief approacheth, neither moth
- corrupteth._
-
- 34. _For where your treasure is, there will your heart be also._
-
- Matt. xix. 21.--"_Go and sell that thou hast, and give to the
- poor, and thou shalt have treasure in heaven: and come and
- follow me._"
-
- Mark viii. 34.--"_Whosoever will come after me, let him deny
- himself, and take up his cross, and follow me._"
-
- John iv. 34.--"_My meat is to do the will of him that sent me,
- and to finish his work._"
-
- Luke xxii. 42.--"_Not my will, but thine, be done._"
-
- _Not what I wish, but what Thou wishest, and not as I wish, but
- as Thou wishest. Life consists in doing not your own will, but
- the will of God._
-
-All these doctrines are regarded by men who adhere to the lower
-life-conception as expressions of enthusiastic exaltation, with no
-special reference to daily life. And yet these doctrines are no less
-the natural outcome of the Christian life-conception than is the
-idea of giving one's labor for the common good, or of sacrificing
-one's life to defend one's country, the outcome of the social
-life-conception.
-
-As the believer in the social life-conception says to the savage:
-"Rouse yourself! Consider what you are doing! The life that man
-lives for himself alone cannot be the true one, for life is fleeting
-and full of woe. It is the life of the community at large, the
-race, the family, the State, that endures: therefore a man must
-sacrifice his personality for the life of the family and the State;"
-Christianity in like manner says unto him who believes in a social
-life-conception of the community: "Repent, +metanoeta+, that
-is, arouse yourself, consider your ways, else shall you perish. Know
-you that this bodily, animal life is born to-day and dies to-morrow;
-nothing can assure its permanence, no outward expedients, no system
-whatsoever can give it stability. Consider your ways and learn that
-the life you live is not the real life, that neither family, social,
-nor State life will save you from perdition. An honest rational
-life is possible for man provided that he be, not a participant
-of the life of the family or life of the State, but a partaker of
-the source of all life--that of the Father Himself; then his life
-is united to the life of the Father." Such is beyond a doubt the
-meaning of the Christian conception of life, clearly set forth in
-every maxim of the New Testament.
-
-One may not share such a conception of life, one may deny it, or
-prove it to be inaccurate and fallacious; but no man can possibly
-judge a doctrine without having first made himself familiar with the
-life-conception which forms its basis; and still more impossible is
-it to judge a lofty subject from a low standpoint, to pronounce upon
-the belfry from a knowledge of the foundation. Yet this is precisely
-what is done by contemporary scientists. And this is because they
-are laboring under an error similar to that of the clergy, in
-believing that they possess such infallible methods of studying
-their subject that, if they but bring their so-called scientific
-methods to bear upon the subject under consideration, there can be
-no doubt as to the accuracy of their conclusion.
-
-The possession of a guide to knowledge, which they believe to be
-infallible, is really the chief obstacle to the comprehension of
-the Christian doctrine among unbelievers and so-called scientists,
-by whose opinions the great majority of unbelievers, the so-called
-educated classes, are guided. All the errors of the scientists
-concerning Christianity, and especially two strange misapprehensions
-that avail more than anything else to blind men to its real
-signification, arise therefrom.
-
-One of these misapprehensions is that the doctrine of a Christian
-life not being practical, it remains optional with the individual
-whether he take it for his guide or no; and if he chooses to do
-so, it may then be modified to suit the exigencies of our social
-life. The second misapprehension is that the Christian doctrine of
-love of God, and therefore of the service due to Him, is a mystical
-requirement, neither clearly expressed nor offering any well-defined
-object of love: consequently the more definite and intelligible
-doctrine of love of man and of the service of humanity may be
-substituted for it.
-
-The first misapprehension which relates to the impracticability of
-the Christian doctrine arises from the fact that men who believe in
-the social life-conception, not comprehending the rule obeyed by
-men who hold the Christian doctrine, and mistaking the Christian
-standard of perfection for the guiding principle of life, believe
-and declare that it is impossible to follow the teaching of Christ,
-because implicit obedience to this doctrine would end by destroying
-life. "If man were to fulfil the precepts of Christ, he would
-destroy his life; and if all the world were to fulfil them, the
-human race would soon become extinct. If you were to take no thought
-for the morrow, neither of what ye shall eat or drink, nor what
-ye shall put on; if one may not resist evil by violence or defend
-one's life, nor even give up one's life for his friend; if one is to
-preserve absolute chastity, mankind could not long exist;" so they
-believe and affirm.
-
-And they are right, if one takes the incentives to perfection
-offered by the teaching of Christ as laws which each man must obey,
-just as, for instance, in the social order every man must pay his
-taxes, and some must serve in the courts of law, and so on.
-
-The misapprehension consists in overlooking the fact that the
-doctrine of Christ, and the doctrine formulated by a lower
-life-conception, guide men in very different ways. The doctrines of
-the social life-conception guide men in fulfilling the requirements
-of the law. The doctrine of Christ guides men by manifesting the
-infinite perfection of the Heavenly Father, to which it is natural
-for every man to aspire, whatever may be his shortcomings.
-
-The misconception of those who judge the Christian doctrine by the
-standard of the state or civil doctrine is this,--that they imagine
-that the perfection of which Christ speaks may be attained in this
-life, and ask themselves just as they would ask concerning some law
-of the State, what will happen when all this shall be fulfilled?
-This hypothesis is fallacious, because the perfection indicated
-by Christianity is infinite and can never be attained; and Christ
-promulgates his doctrine, knowing that although absolute perfection
-will never be attained, yet the aspiration toward it will ever
-contribute to the welfare of mankind, that this welfare may by this
-means be everlastingly increased.
-
-Christ is not teaching angels, but men who live and move in an
-animal life, and whose impulses are of an animal nature. And to
-this animal impulse Christ, so to speak, adds another force by
-communicating to man a sense of the divine perfection, guiding the
-current of life between these two forces.
-
-To take it for granted that human life is to follow the direction
-indicated by Christ would be like expecting the boatman, who,
-crossing a swift river, steers almost directly against the current,
-to float in that direction.
-
-Christ recognizes the fact that a parallelogram has two sides,
-and that a man's life is controlled by two indestructible forces:
-his animal nature and his consciousness of a filial relationship
-to God. Disregarding the factor of the animal life, which never
-looses its hold, and is beyond man's control, Christ speaks of the
-divine consciousness, urging man to its fuller recognition, its
-complete emancipation from all that fetters it, and to its utmost
-development.
-
-Man's true life, according to the precepts of Christ, is only to
-be found in this emancipation and in the growth of the divine
-consciousness. According to the old dispensation, a true life meant
-the fulfilment of the precepts of the law; but according to Christ,
-it means the closest approach to the divine perfection which has
-been manifested to every man, and which every man recognizes,--a
-closer and closer union of his will to the will of God; a union
-which every man is striving to attain, and which would utterly
-destroy the life we now lead.
-
-God's perfection is the asymptote of human life, toward which it is
-forever aspiring and drawing nearer, although it can only reach its
-goal in the infinite.
-
-It is only when men mistake the suggestion of an ideal for a rule
-of conduct that the Christian doctrine seems at odds with life.
-Indeed, the reverse is true, for it is by the doctrine of Christ,
-and that alone, that a true life is rendered possible. "It is a
-mistake to require too much," men usually say, when discussing the
-demands of the Christian religion. "One ought not to be required
-to take no thought for the morrow, as the Bible teaches, but of
-course one should not be over-anxious; one cannot give all that he
-possesses to the poor, still he should bestow a certain portion of
-his goods in charity; one ought not to remain unmarried, but let him
-avoid a dissolute life; one need not renounce his wife and children,
-although one must not idolize them."
-
-These arguments are equivalent to telling a man who is crossing a
-swift river and steering his boat against the current, that no one
-can cross a river by steering against the current, but that he must
-direct his boat in a straight line toward the point he wishes to
-reach.
-
-The doctrine of Christ differs from former doctrines in that it
-influences men, not by outward observances, but by the interior
-consciousness that divine perfection may be attained.
-
-It is this illimitable and divine perfection that absorbs the soul
-of man, not restricted laws of justice and philanthropy. It needs
-but the aspiration toward this divine perfection to impel the
-course of human life from the animal to the divine, so far as may be
-humanly possible.
-
-In order to land at any given point one must steer beyond it. To
-lower the standard of an ideal means not only to lessen the chances
-of attaining perfection, but to destroy the ideal itself. The
-ideal that influences mankind is not an ingenious invention; it is
-something that dwells in the soul of each individual. It is this
-ideal of utter and infinite perfection that excites men and urges
-them to action. A possible degree of perfection would have no appeal
-to the souls of men.
-
-It is because the doctrine of Christ requires illimitable
-perfection, that is to say, the blending of the divine essence,
-which is in each man's soul, with the will of God, the union of
-the Son with the Father, that it has authority. It is only the
-emancipation of the Son of God, who dwells with each one of us, from
-the animal element within us, and the drawing near to the Father,
-that can, in the Christian sense of the word, be called life.
-
-The presence of the animal element in man is not enough of itself to
-constitute human life. Neither is a spiritual life, which is guided
-only by the will of God, a human life. A true human life is composed
-of an animal and of a spiritual life united to the will of God, and
-the nearer this component life approaches to the life of God, the
-more it has life.
-
-According to the Christian doctrine, life is a condition of progress
-toward the perfection of God; hence no one condition can be either
-higher or lower than another, because each is in itself a certain
-stage in human progress toward the unattainable perfection, and
-therefore of equal importance with all the others. Any spiritual
-quickening, according to this doctrine, is simply an accelerated
-movement toward perfection. Therefore the impulse of Zacchus the
-publican, of the adulteress, and the thief on the cross, show forth
-a higher order of life than does the passive righteousness of the
-Pharisee. This doctrine, therefore, can never be enforced by
-obligatory laws. The man who, from a lower plane, lives up to the
-doctrine he professes, ever advancing toward perfection, leads a
-higher life than one who may perhaps stand on a superior plane of
-morality, but who is making no progress toward perfection.
-
-Thus the stray lamb is dearer to the Father than those which are in
-the fold; the prodigal returned, the coin that was lost and is found
-again, more highly prized than those that never were lost.
-
-Since the fulfilment of this doctrine is an impulse from self toward
-God, it is evident that there can be no fixed laws for its movement.
-It may spring from any degree of perfection or of imperfection; the
-fulfilment of rules and fulfilment of the doctrine are by no means
-synonymous; there could be no rules or obligatory laws for its
-fulfilment.
-
-The difference between social laws and the doctrine of Christ
-is the natural result of the radical dissimilarity between the
-doctrine of Christ and those earlier doctrines which had their
-source in a social life-conception. The latter are for the most
-part positive, enjoining certain acts, by the performance of which
-men are to be justified and made righteous, whereas the Christian
-precepts (the precept of love is not a commandment in the strict
-sense of the word, but the expression of the very essence of the
-doctrine), the five commandments of the Sermon on the Mount, are all
-negative, only meant to show men who have reached a certain degree
-of development what they must avoid. These commandments are, so to
-speak, mile-stones on the infinite road to perfection, toward which
-humanity is struggling; they mark the degrees of perfection which it
-is possible for it to attain at a certain period of its development.
-
-In the Sermon on the Mount Christ expressed the eternal ideal to
-which mankind instinctively aspires, showing at the same time the
-point of perfection to which human nature in its present stage may
-attain.
-
-The ideal is to bear no malice, excite no ill-will, and to love all
-men. The commandment which forbids us to offend our neighbor is one
-which a man who is striving to attain this ideal must not do less
-than obey. And this is the first commandment.
-
-The ideal is perfect chastity in thought, no less than in deed; and
-the commandment which enjoins purity in married life, forbidding
-adultery, is one which every man who is striving to attain this
-ideal must not do less than obey. And this is the second commandment.
-
-The ideal is to take no thought for the morrow, to live in the
-present, and the commandment, the fulfilment of which is the point
-beneath which we must not fall, is against taking oath or making
-promises for the future. Such is the third commandment.
-
-The ideal--to use no violence whatsoever--shows us that we must
-return good for evil, endure injuries with patience, and give up the
-cloak to him who has taken the coat. Such is the fourth commandment.
-
-The ideal is to love your enemies, to do good to them that
-despitefully use you. In order to keep the spirit of this
-commandment one must at least refrain from injuring one's enemies,
-one must speak kindly of them, and treat all one's fellow-creatures
-with equal consideration. Such is the fifth commandment.
-
-All these commandments are reminders of that which we, in our
-striving for perfection, must and can avoid; reminders, too, that we
-must labor now to acquire by degrees habits of self-restraint, until
-such habits become second nature. But these commandments, far from
-exhausting the doctrine, do not by any means cover it. They are but
-stepping-stones on the way to perfection, and must necessarily be
-followed by higher and still higher ones, as men pursue the course
-toward perfection.
-
-That is why a Christian doctrine would make higher demands than
-those embodied in the commandments, and not in the least decrease
-its demands, as they who judge the Christian doctrine from a social
-life-conception seem to think.
-
-This is one of the mistakes of the scientists in regard to the
-significance of Christ's doctrine. And the substitution of the
-love of humanity for the love and service of God is another, and it
-springs from the same source.
-
-In the Christian doctrine of loving and of serving God, and (as
-the natural consequence of such love and service) of loving and
-serving one's neighbor, there seems to the scientific mind a certain
-mysticism, something at once confused and arbitrary; and, believing
-that the doctrine of love for humanity rests on a firmer basis and
-is altogether more intelligible, they utterly reject the requirement
-of love and service of God.
-
-The theory of a scientist is that a virtuous life, a life with a
-purpose, must be useful to the world at large; and in a life of this
-kind they discover the solution of the Christian doctrine, to which
-they reduce Christianity itself. Assuming their own doctrine to be
-identical with that of Christianity, they seek and believe that they
-find in the latter an affirmation of their own views.
-
-This is a fallacy. The Christian doctrine, and the doctrine of the
-Positivists, and of all advocates of the universal brotherhood of
-man, founded on the utility of such a brotherhood, have nothing
-in common, and especially do they differ in that the doctrine of
-Christianity has a solid and a clearly defined foundation in the
-human soul, whereas love of humanity is but a theoretical conclusion
-reached through analogy.
-
-The doctrine of the love of humanity has for its basis the social
-life-conception.
-
-The essence of the social life-conception consists in replacing the
-sense of individual life by that of the life of the group. In its
-first steps, this is a simple and natural progression, as from the
-family to the tribe; from the family to the race is more difficult,
-and requires special education,--which has arrived at its utmost
-limits when the State has been reached.
-
-It is natural for every man to love himself, and he needs no
-incentive thereto; to love his tribe, which lends both support and
-protection; to love his wife, the delight and comfort of his daily
-life; the children, who are his consolation and his future hope; his
-parents, who gave him life and cherished him,--all this, although
-not so intense as love of self, is natural and common to mankind.
-
-To love one's race, one's people, for their own sake, although not
-so instinctive, is also common. To love one's ancestors, one's
-kinsfolk, through pride, is also natural and frequent; and a man may
-feel love for his fellow-countrymen, who speak the same language
-and profess the same faith as himself, although the emotion is
-less strong than love of self or love of family. But love for a
-nation, Turkey, for instance, or Germany, England, Austria, Russia,
-is almost impossible, and notwithstanding the training given in
-that direction, it is only a fictitious semblance; it has no real
-existence. At this aggregate ceases man's power of transfusing
-his innermost consciousness; for such a fiction he can feel no
-direct sentiment. And yet the Positivists and all the preachers
-of the scientific fraternity, not taking into consideration the
-fact that this feeling is weakened in proportion to the expansion
-of its object, continue to theorize on the same lines. They say:
-"If it were to the advantage of an individual to transfuse his
-consciousness into the family, and thence into the nation and the
-State, it follows that it will be to his further advantage to
-transfuse his consciousness into the universal entity, mankind, that
-all men may live for humanity, as they have lived for the family and
-for the State."
-
-And theoretically they are right.
-
-After having transferred the consciousness and love for the
-individual to the family, and from the family to the race, the
-nation, and the State, it would be perfectly logical for men, in
-order to escape the strife and disasters that result from the
-division of mankind into nations and states, to transfer their love
-to humanity at large. This would appear to be the logical outcome,
-and it has been offered as a theory by those who forget that love
-is an innate sentiment, which can never be inspired by preaching;
-that it must have a real object, and that the entity which men call
-humanity is not a real object, but a fiction.
-
-A family, a race, even a State, are no inventions of men; these
-things have formed themselves like a hive of bees, or a colony of
-ants, and possess an actual existence. The man who loves his family,
-after a human fashion, knows whom he is loving--Ann, Maria, John, or
-Peter. The man who loves his ancestors, and is proud of them, knows
-that he loves the Guelphs, for instance, or the Ghibellines; the man
-who loves his country knows that he loves France from the Rhine to
-the Pyrenees, that he loves its capital, Paris, and all its history.
-But the man who loves humanity, what is it that he loves? There is a
-State, there is a people, there is the abstract conception of man.
-But humanity as a concrete conception is impossible.
-
-Humanity? Where is its limit? Where does it end and where does
-it begin? Does it exclude the savage, the idiot, the inebriate,
-the insane? If one were to draw a line of demarcation so as to
-exclude the lower representatives of the human race, where ought
-it to be drawn? Ought it to exclude the Negro, as they do in the
-United States, or the Hindoos, as some Englishmen do, or the Jews,
-as does another nation? But if we include all humanity without
-exception, why should we restrict ourselves to men? Why should we
-exclude the higher animals, some of whom are superior to the lowest
-representatives of the human race?
-
-We do not know humanity in the concrete, nor can we fix its limits.
-Humanity is a fiction, and therefore it cannot be loved. Indeed,
-it would be advantageous if men could love humanity as they love
-the family. It would be very useful, as the communists say, to
-substitute a community of interests for individual competition,
-or the universal for the personal; in a word, to make the whole
-world a mutual benefit society,--only that there are no motives to
-bring about such a result. The Positivists, communists, and all
-the exponents of the scientific fraternity exhort us to extend
-the love which men feel for themselves, their families, their
-fellow-countrymen, over humanity at large, forgetting that the love
-of which they speak is a personal love, which may be kindled for the
-family, and even extend to include one's native country, but which
-expires altogether when it is appealed to in behalf of an artificial
-state, such as Austria, England, or Turkey; and when claimed for
-that mystical object, humanity in general, one cannot even grasp the
-idea.
-
-"A man loves himself, his physical personality, he loves his family,
-he even loves his country. Why should he not also love mankind?
-It would seem such a happy consummation! And it so happens that
-Christianity inculcates the same precept." These are the opinions of
-the Positivist, the communist, and the socialist fraternities.
-
-It would indeed be fortunate, but it is impossible, because love
-founded on a personal and social life-conception can go no further
-than the love of country.
-
-The flaw in the argument arises from the fact that the social
-life-conception, the basis of family love and of patriotism, is
-itself an individual love, and such a love, in its transference from
-a person to a family, a race, a nation, and a State, gradually loses
-its efficiency, and in the State has reached its final limit, and
-can go no further.
-
-The necessity for widening the sphere of love is not to be denied,
-and yet it is the very attempt to satisfy this requirement that
-destroys its possibility, and proves the inadequacy of personal
-human love.
-
-And here it is that the advocates of the Positivist, communist, and
-socialist brotherhood offer as a prop to the humanitarianism that
-has proved its inefficiency, a Christian love, not in its essence,
-but only in its results; in other words, not the love of God, but
-the love of man.
-
-But there can be no such love; it has no _raison d'tre_. Christian
-love comes only from a Christian life-conception, whose sole
-manifestation is the love and service of God.
-
-By a natural sequence in the extension of love from the individual
-to the family, and thence to the race, the nation, and the State,
-the social life-conception has brought men not to the consciousness
-of love for humanity,--which is illimitable--the unification of
-every living creature,--but to a condition which evokes no feeling
-in man, to a contradiction for which it provides no reconciliation.
-
-It is only the Christian doctrine which, by lending to human life
-a new significance, is able to solve the difficulty. Christianity
-presents the love of self and the love of the family, as well as
-patriotism and the love of humanity, but it is not to be restricted
-to humanity alone; it is to be given to every living creature; it
-recognizes the possibility of an indefinite expansion of the kingdom
-of love, but its object is not to be found outside itself, in the
-aggregate of individuals, neither in the family, nor in the race,
-nor in the State, nor in mankind, nor all the wide world, but in
-itself, in its personality,--a divine personality, whose essence is
-the very love which needed a wider sphere.
-
-The distinction between the Christian doctrine and those which
-preceded it may be thus defined. The social doctrine says: Curb thy
-nature (meaning the animal nature alone); subject it to the visible
-law of the family, of society, and of the State. Christianity says:
-Live up to thy nature (meaning the divine nature); make it subject
-to nothing; neither to thine own animal nature, nor to that of
-another, and then thou shalt attain what thou seekest by subjecting
-thine outward personality to visible laws. The Christian doctrine
-restores to man his original consciousness of self, not the animal
-self, but the godlike self, the spark of divinity, as the son
-of God, like unto the Father, but clothed in a human form. This
-consciousness of one's self as a son of God, whose essence is love,
-satisfies at once all those demands made by the man who professes
-the social life-conception for a broader sphere of love. Again, in
-the social life-conception the enlargement of the domain of love was
-a necessity for the salvation of the individual; it was attached
-to certain objects, to one's self, to one's family, to society,
-and to humanity. With the Christian world-conception love is not a
-necessity, neither is it attached to any special object; it is the
-inherent quality of a man's soul; he loves because he cannot help
-loving.
-
-The Christian doctrine teaches to man that the essence of his soul
-is love; that his well-being may be traced, not to the fact that he
-loves this object or that one, but to the fact that he loves the
-principle of all things--God, whom he recognizes in himself through
-love, and will by the love of God love all men and all things.
-
-This is the essential difference between the Christian doctrine and
-that of the Positivists, and all other non-Christian theorists of a
-universal brotherhood.
-
-Such are the two chief misapprehensions in regard to the Christian
-doctrine, and from those most of the false arguments on the subject
-have originated.
-
-One is, that the doctrine of Christ, like the doctrines which
-preceded it, promulgates rules which men must obey, and that these
-rules are impracticable. The other, that the whole meaning of
-Christianity is contained in the doctrine of a coperative union of
-mankind, in one family, to attain which, leaving aside the question
-of love of God, one should obey only the rule of love of one's
-fellow-men.
-
-Finally, the mistake of scientists, in supposing that the doctrine
-of the supernatural contains the essence of Christianity, that
-its life-teaching is not practicable, together with the general
-misapprehensions that result from such a misconception, further
-explains why men of our time have so misunderstood Christianity.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V
-
-CONTRADICTION OF OUR LIFE AND CHRISTIAN CONSCIOUSNESS
-
- Men consider that they may accept Christianity without changing
- their life--The pagan life-conception no longer corresponds to
- the present age of humanity, which the Christian life-conception
- alone can satisfy--The Christian life-conception is still
- misunderstood by men, but our life itself necessitates its
- acceptance--The requirements of a new life-conception always
- seem unintelligible, mystical, and supernatural--Such, for
- the majority of men, seem the requirements of the Christian
- life-conception--The acceptance of a Christian life-conception
- will inevitably be accomplished both through spiritual and
- material agencies--The fact that men, conscious of a higher
- life-conception, continue to entertain the lower forms of
- life, causes contradiction and suffering, which embitter life
- and require its alteration--Contradictions of our life--The
- economical contradiction, and the suffering it causes to the
- working-men and to the rich--The contradiction of State, and
- the sufferings that arise from obedience to State laws--The
- international contradiction, and its acknowledgment by
- contemporary writers: Komarvosky, Ferri, Booth, Passy, Lawson,
- Wilson, Bartlett, Defourny, Moneta--The military contradiction
- the extreme.
-
-
-Many causes have contributed toward the misunderstanding of the
-teaching of Christ. One of these is that men assumed to understand
-the doctrine, when, like the faithful of the Church, they accepted
-the statement that it had been transmitted in a supernatural
-manner; or, like the scientists, after having investigated certain
-of its outward manifestations. Another reason may be found in the
-conviction that it is impracticable, and that it may be replaced by
-the doctrine of love of humanity. But the principal reason of all
-such misconceptions is that men look upon the doctrine of Christ as
-one that may be accepted or rejected without any special change in
-one's life.
-
-Men, attached by habit to the existing order, shrink from
-attempting to change it, hence they agree to consider this doctrine
-as a mass of revelations and laws that may be accepted without
-making any change in one's life: whereas the doctrine of Christ
-is not a doctrine of rules for man to obey, but unfolds a new
-life-conception, meant as a guide for men who are now entering upon
-a new period, one entirely different from the past.
-
-The life of humanity continues its course and has its stages, like
-the life of an individual; each age has its own life-conception,
-which a man must adopt whether he will or no. Those who do not adopt
-it consciously, adopt it unconsciously. The same change that takes
-place in the views of the individual, as life goes on, occurs also
-in the existence of nations and of humanity in general.
-
-If a father were to conduct his affairs like a child, his life would
-certainly become so unbearable that he would cast about for a
-different plan of life, and would eagerly grasp at one better suited
-to his years.
-
-And the human race is at the present time passing through a
-similar experience, in its transition from a pagan to a Christian
-life-conception. A man of the society of the present day finds that
-the pagan life-conception is no longer suited to the times, hence he
-is induced to submit to the requirements of the Christian religion,
-whose truths, however misunderstood and falsely interpreted they
-may be, are yet familiar to his ears, and seem to offer the only
-practical solution of the contradictions that beset his path. If the
-demands of the Christian doctrine seem unintelligible, peculiar, and
-dangerous to a man who has hitherto held the social life-conception,
-the demands of the latter seemed none the less so to a savage of a
-previous age, who neither fully apprehended them, nor was able to
-foresee their consequences.
-
-The savage reasoned thus: "It would be folly for me to sacrifice
-my peace or my life to defend an incomprehensible, intangible, and
-uncertain ideal, family, race, country, and, above all, it would be
-dangerous to deliver myself into the hands of an unknown power." But
-there came a time in the life of the savage when, on the one hand,
-he had begun, although vaguely, to understand the meaning of social
-life, as well as that of its chief incentive,--social approval or
-condemnation: glory,--while, on the other hand, the sufferings
-of his personal life had become so severe that it was no longer
-possible for him to go on believing in the truth of his former
-life-conception; whereupon he accepted the social and State doctrine
-and submitted to its laws.
-
-And he who holds the social life-conception is now undergoing a
-similar experience.
-
-"It is madness"--thus reasons the man holding such views--"to
-sacrifice one's interests or those of one's family and of one's
-country, in order to fulfil the requirements of a law that would
-compel one to renounce the most natural and praiseworthy feelings
-toward one's self, one's family, and one's country, and, above all,
-the guarantee of protection afforded by the State."
-
-But there comes a time when, on the one hand, a vague awakening
-consciousness stirs the soul, the consciousness of the higher law,
-love of God and one's neighbor, and the sufferings a man endures
-from the contradictions of life, compel him to renounce the social
-life-conception and to adopt the new Christian life-conception which
-is offered him. And this time has now arrived.
-
-To us, who underwent the transition from the individual to the
-social life-conception thousands of years ago, this transition
-appears to have been both natural and inevitable, just as the
-present transition, through which we have been passing these last
-1800 years, seems arbitrary, unnatural, and overwhelming. But it
-seems so for the simple reason that the former change is a thing
-of the past, and has fixed in us certain habits, whereas we are
-still practically accomplishing the present transition, and have to
-accomplish it consciously.
-
-It was centuries, indeed thousands of years, before the social
-life-conception was adopted by all mankind; it passed through
-various phases, and we ourselves possess it through heredity,
-education, and unconscious habit; hence it seems natural to us. But
-5000 years ago it seemed as strange and unnatural to men as the
-Christian doctrine in its true meaning seems to them now.
-
-The universal brotherhood of man, the equality of races, the
-abolition of property, the anomalous doctrine of non-resistance,
-all these requirements of the Christian religion seem to us
-impossibilities. But in olden times, thousands of years ago, not
-only the requirements of the State, but even those of the family,
-as, for instance, the obligation of parents to feed their children,
-of children to support their aged parents, and that of conjugal
-fidelity, seemed equally impossible. And still more unreasonable
-seemed the demands of the State, requiring citizens to submit
-to established authority, to pay taxes, to perform military
-duty in defense of their country, etc. We find no difficulty in
-comprehending these requirements now; they seem perfectly simple
-and natural, with nothing mystical or alarming in their aspect;
-but five or even three thousand years ago, such demands seemed
-intolerable.
-
-Thus the social life-conception served as a foundation for religion,
-for at the time when it was first manifested to men it seemed to
-them to be utterly incomprehensible, mystical, and supernatural. Now
-that we have passed that phase of human life, we can understand the
-reasons for the aggregation of men into families, communities, and
-states. But in the early ages the demand for these aggregations was
-made in the name of the supernatural, and its fulfilment assured by
-the same authority.
-
-The patriarchal religion deified the family, the race, the people.
-State religions deified the sovereigns and the State. Even at
-the present day the uneducated masses, the Russian peasants, for
-instance, who call the Czar a God upon earth, obey the laws from
-religious instinct, not because their reason counsels them to do so,
-nor because they have the least idea of a State.
-
-And to those men of our own times who hold the social
-life-conception, the Christian doctrine seems to be a supernatural
-religion, whereas in reality there is nothing mystical or
-supernatural about it; it is only a doctrine concerning human life,
-corresponding with the degree of development which man has attained,
-and one which he cannot refuse to accept.
-
-The time will come, and it is already near at hand, when the
-Christian foundations of life--equality, brotherly love, community
-of goods, non-resistance of evil by violence--will seem as natural
-and simple as the foundations of family, social, and State life
-appear to us at the present time.
-
-There can be no retrogression for humanity. Men have outgrown the
-lower life-conception of the family and the State, and must press
-forward to embrace the next higher conception, as they have already
-begun to do.
-
-This movement is accomplished in two ways: consciously, by moral
-causes; unconsciously, by material ones. It rarely happens that a
-man changes his mode of life at the dictates of reason; however
-conscious he may be of the new design and purpose revealed to him by
-his reason, he goes on in the old fashion until his life has become
-intolerably inconsistent, and therefore distressing. Likewise, the
-larger portion of mankind, after learning through its religious
-teachers a new conception of life and its objects, to which it has
-yet to adjust itself, will for a long time pursue its wonted course,
-and only make the change in the end because its former life has
-become impossible.
-
-In spite of the necessity for a change of life, acknowledged and
-proclaimed by our religious guides and admitted by the wisest men,
-in spite of the religious respect entertained for these guides, the
-majority of men continue to be influenced in life, now additionally
-complicated, by their former views. It is as if the father of a
-family, knowing well enough how to conduct himself properly, should
-through force of habit or thoughtlessness continue to live as if he
-were still a child.
-
-At this very moment we are experiencing one of these transitions.
-Humanity has outgrown its social, its civic age, and has entered
-upon a new epoch. It knows the doctrine that must underlie the
-foundations of life in this new epoch; but, yielding to inertia,
-it still clings to its former habits. From this inconsistency
-between the theory of life and its practice follow a series of
-contradictions and sufferings that embitter man's life and compel
-him to make a change.
-
-One needs but to compare the practice of life with its theory to be
-horrified at the extraordinary contradictions between the conditions
-of life and our inner consciousness.
-
-Man's whole life is a continual contradiction of what he knows to
-be his duty. This contradiction prevails in every department of
-life, in the economical, the political, and the international. As
-though his intelligence were forgotten and his faith temporarily
-eclipsed,--for he must have faith, else would his life have no
-permanence,--he acts in direct opposition to the dictates of his
-conscience and his common sense.
-
-In our economical and international relations we are guided by
-the fundamental principles of bygone ages,--principles quite
-contradictory to our mental attitude and the conditions of our
-present life.
-
-It was right for a man who believed in the divine origin of
-slavery, and in its necessity, to live in the relation of a master
-to his slaves. But is such a life possible in these days? A man
-of antiquity might believe himself justified in taking advantage
-of his fellow-man, oppressing him for generations, merely because
-he believed in diversity of origin, noble or base, descent from
-Ham or Japheth. Not only have the greatest philosophers of ancient
-times, the teachers of mankind, Plato and Aristotle, justified the
-existence of slavery and adduced proofs of its legality, but no
-longer than three centuries ago those who described an ideal state
-of society could not picture it without slaves.
-
-In ancient times, and even in the Middle Ages, it was honestly
-thought that men were not born equal, that the men worthy of respect
-were only Persians, only Greeks, only Romans, or only Frenchmen;
-but no one believes it now. And the enthusiastic advocates of the
-principles of aristocracy and patriotism at this present day cannot
-believe in their own statements.
-
-We all know, and cannot help knowing, even if we had never heard
-it defined and never attempted to define it ourselves, that we all
-possess an inherent conviction deep in our hearts of the truth of
-that fundamental doctrine of Christianity, that we are all children
-of one Father, yea, every one of us, wheresoever we may live,
-whatsoever language we may speak; that we are all brothers, subject
-only to the law of love implanted in our hearts by our common Father.
-
-Whatever may be the habits of thought or the degree of education of
-a man of our time, whether he be an educated liberal, whatsoever
-his shade of opinion, a philosopher, whatsoever may be his system,
-a scientist, an economist of any of the various schools, an
-uneducated adherent of any religious faith,--every man in these
-days knows that in the matter of life and worldly goods all men
-have equal rights; that no man is either better or worse than his
-fellow-men, but that all men are born free and equal. Every man
-has an instinctive assurance of this fact, and yet he sees his
-fellow-beings divided into two classes, the one in poverty and
-distress, which labors and is oppressed, the other idle, tyrannical,
-luxurious; and not only does he see all this, but, whether
-voluntarily or otherwise, he falls in line with one or the other of
-these divisions,--a course repugnant to his reason. Hence he must
-suffer both from his sense of the incongruity and his own share in
-it.
-
-Whether he be master or slave, a man in these days is forever
-haunted by this distressing inconsistency between his ideal and the
-actual fact, nor can he fail to perceive the suffering that springs
-therefrom.
-
-The masses--that is to say, the majority of mankind, who suffer
-and toil, their lives dull and uninteresting, never enlivened by a
-ray of brightness, enduring numberless privations--are those who
-recognize most clearly the sharp contrasts between what is and what
-ought to be, between the professions of mankind and their actions.
-
-They know that they work like slaves, that they are perishing in
-want and in darkness, that they may minister to the pleasures of
-the minority. And it is this very consciousness that enhances its
-bitterness; indeed, it constitutes the essence of their suffering.
-
-A slave in old times knew that he was a slave by birth, whereas the
-working-man of our day, while he feels himself to be a slave, knows
-that he ought not to be one, and suffers the tortures of Tantalus
-from his unsatisfied yearning for that which not only could be
-granted him, but which is really his due. The sufferings of the
-working-classes that spring from the contradictions of their fate
-are magnified tenfold by the envy and hatred which are the natural
-fruits of the sense of these contradictions.
-
-A working-man in our period, even though his work may be less
-fatiguing than the labor of the ancient slave, and even were he to
-succeed in obtaining the eight-hour system and twelve-and-sixpence
-a day, still has the worst of it, because he manufactures objects
-which he will never use or enjoy;--he is not working for himself;
-he works in order to gratify the luxurious and idle, to increase
-the wealth of the capitalist, the mill-owner, or manufacturer. He
-knows that all this goes on in a world where men acknowledge certain
-propositions such as the economic principle that labor is wealth,
-that it is an act of injustice to employ another man's labor for
-one's own benefit, that an illegal act is punishable by law, in a
-world, moreover, where the doctrine of Christ is professed,--that
-doctrine which teaches us that all men are brothers, and that it
-is the duty of a man to serve his neighbor and to take no unfair
-advantage of him.
-
-He realizes all this, and must suffer keenly from the shocking
-contradiction between the world as it should be and the world as
-it is. "According to what I am told and what I hear men profess,"
-says a working-man to himself, "I ought to be a free man equal to
-any other man, and loved; I am a slave, hated and despised." Then
-he in his turn is filled with hatred, and seeks to escape from his
-position, to overthrow the enemy that oppresses him, and to get the
-upper hand himself.
-
-They say: "It is wrong for a workman to wish himself in the place
-of a capitalist, or for a poor man to envy the rich." But this is
-false. If this were a world where God had ordained masters and
-slaves, rich and poor, it would be wrong for the working-man or the
-poor man to wish himself in the place of the rich: but this is not
-so; he wishes it in a world which professes the doctrine of the
-gospel, whose first principle is embodied in the relation of the
-son to the Father, and consequently of fraternity and equality.
-And however reluctant men may be to acknowledge it, they cannot
-deny that one of the first conditions of Christian life is love,
-expressed, not in words, but in deeds.
-
-The man of education suffers even more from these inconsistencies. If
-he has any faith whatever he believes, perhaps, in fraternity,--at
-least in the sentiment humanity; and if not in the sentiment
-humanity, then in justice; and if not in justice, then surely
-in science; and he cannot help knowing all the while that
-the conditions of his life are opposed to every principle of
-Christianity, humanity, justice, and science.
-
-He knows that the habits of life in which he has been bred, and
-whose abandonment would cause him much discomfort, can only be
-supported by the weary and often suicidal labor of the down-trodden
-working-class--that is, by the open infraction of those principles
-of Christianity, humanity, justice, and even of science (political
-science), in which he professes to believe. He affirms his faith
-in the principles of fraternity, humanity, justice, and political
-science, and yet the oppression of the working-class is an
-indispensable factor in his daily life, and he constantly employs it
-to attain his own ends in spite of his principles; and he not only
-lives in this manner, but he devotes all his energies to maintain a
-system which is directly opposed to all his beliefs.
-
-We are brothers: but every morning my brother or my sister performs
-for me the most menial offices. We are brothers: but I must have
-my morning cigar, my sugar, my mirror, or what not,--objects whose
-manufacture has often cost my brothers and sisters their health,
-yet I do not for that reason forbear to use these things; on the
-contrary, I even demand them. We are brothers: and yet I support
-myself by working in some bank, commercial house, or shop, and am
-always trying to raise the price of the necessities of life for
-my brothers and sisters. We are brothers: I receive a salary for
-judging, convicting, and punishing the thief or the prostitute,
-whose existence is the natural outcome of my own system of life, and
-I fully realize that I should neither condemn nor punish. We are all
-brothers: yet I make my living by collecting taxes from the poor,
-that the rich may live in luxury and idleness. We are brothers:
-and yet I receive a salary for preaching a pseudo-Christian
-doctrine, in which I do not myself believe, thus hindering men from
-discovering the true one; I receive a salary as priest or bishop for
-deceiving people in a matter which is of vital importance to them.
-We are brothers: but I make my brother pay for all my services,
-whether I write books for him, educate him, or prescribe for him
-as a physician. We are all brothers: but I receive a salary for
-fitting myself to be a murderer, for learning the art of war, or for
-manufacturing arms and ammunition and building fortresses.
-
-The whole existence of our upper classes is utterly contradictory,
-and the more sensitive a man's nature the more painful is the
-incongruity.
-
-A man with a sensitive conscience can enjoy no peace of mind in such
-a life. Even supposing that he succeeds in stifling the reproaches
-of his conscience, he is still unable to conquer his fears.
-
-Those men and women of the dominant classes who have hardened
-themselves, and have succeeded in stifling their consciences,
-must still suffer through their fear of the hatred they inspire.
-They are quite well aware of its existence among the laboring
-classes; they know that it can never die; they know, too, that
-the working-men realize the deceits practised upon them, and the
-abuses that they endure; that they have started organizations to
-throw off the yoke, and to take vengeance on their oppressors. The
-happiness of the upper classes is poisoned by fear of the impending
-calamity, foreshadowed by the unions, the strikes, and First of
-May demonstrations. Recognizing the calamity that threatens them,
-their fear turns to defiance and hatred. They know that if they
-relax for one moment in this conflict with the oppressed, they are
-lost, because their slaves, already embittered, grow more and more
-so with every day's oppression. The oppressors, though they may
-see it, cannot cease to oppress. They realize that they themselves
-are doomed from the moment they abate one jot of their severity.
-So they go on in their career of oppression, notwithstanding their
-affectation of interest in the welfare of the working-men, the
-eight-hour system, the laws restricting the labor of women and
-children, the pensions, and the rewards. All this is mere pretense,
-or at best the natural anxiety of the master to keep his slave in
-good condition; but the slave remains a slave all the while, and the
-master, who cannot live without the slave, is less willing than ever
-to set him free. The governing classes find themselves in regard to
-the working-men very much in the position of one who has overthrown
-his opponent, and who holds him down, not so much because he does
-not choose to let him escape, but because he knows that should he
-for one moment lose his hold on him, he would lose his own life, for
-the vanquished man is infuriated, and holds a knife in his hand.
-
-Hence our wealthy classes, whether their consciences be tender or
-hardened, cannot enjoy the advantages they have wrung from the poor,
-as did the ancients, who were convinced of the justice of their
-position. All the pleasures of life are poisoned either by remorse
-or fear.
-
-Such is the economic inconsistency. Still more striking is that of
-the civil power.
-
-A man is trained first of all in habits of obedience to state laws.
-At the present time every act of our lives is under the supervision
-of the State, and in accordance with its dictates a man marries and
-is divorced, rears his children, and in some countries accepts the
-religion it prescribes. What is this law, then, that determines the
-life of mankind? Do men believe in it? Do they consider it true? Not
-at all. In most cases they recognize its injustice, they despise
-it, and yet they obey it. It was fit that the ancients should obey
-their law. It was chiefly religious, and they sincerely believed
-it to be the only true law, to which all men owed obedience. Is
-that the case with us? We cannot refuse to acknowledge that the
-law of our State is not the eternal law, but only one of the many
-laws of many states, all equally imperfect, and frequently wholly
-false and unjust,--a law that has been openly discussed in all its
-aspects by the public press. It was fit that the Hebrew should obey
-his laws, since he never doubted that the finger of God Himself
-had traced them; or for the Roman, who believed that he received
-them from the nymph Egeria; or even for those peoples who believed
-that the rulers who made the laws were anointed of God, or that
-legislative assemblies have both the will and the ability to devise
-laws as good as possible. But we know that laws are the offspring
-of party conflicts, false dealing, and the greed of gain, that they
-are not, and can never be, the depository of true justice; and
-therefore it is impossible for people of the present day to believe
-that obedience to civil or state laws can ever satisfy the rational
-demands of human nature. Men have long since realized that there
-is no sense in obeying a law whose honesty is more than doubtful,
-and therefore they must suffer when, though privately denying its
-prerogative, they still conform to it. When a man's whole life is
-held in bondage by laws whose injustice, cruelty, and artificiality
-he plainly discerns, and yet is compelled to obey these laws under
-penalty of punishment, he must suffer; it cannot be otherwise.
-
-We recognize the disadvantages of custom-houses and import duties,
-but we are yet obliged to pay them; we see the folly of supporting
-the court and its numerous officials, we admit the harmful influence
-of church preaching, and still we are compelled to support both; we
-also admit the cruel and iniquitous punishments inflicted by the
-courts, and yet we play our part in them; we acknowledge that the
-distribution of land is wrong and immoral, but we have to submit to
-it; and despite the fact that we deny the necessity for armies or
-warfare, we are made to bear the heavy burden of supporting armies
-and waging war.
-
-These contradictions, however, are but trifling in comparison with
-the one which confronts us in the problem of our international
-relations, and which cries aloud for solution, since both human
-reason and human life are at stake, and this is the antagonism
-between the Christian faith and war.
-
-We, Christian nations, whose spiritual life is one and the same,
-who welcome the birth of every wholesome and profitable thought
-with joy and pride, from whatsoever quarter of the globe it may
-spring, regardless of race or creed; we, who love not only the
-philanthropists, the poets, the philosophers, and the scientists
-of other lands; we, who take as much pride in the heroism of a
-Father Damien as if it was our own; we, who love the French, the
-Germans, the Americans, and the English, not only esteeming their
-qualities, but ready to meet them with cordial friendship; we, who
-not only would be shocked to consider war with them in the light of
-an exploit,--when we picture to ourselves the possibility that at
-some future day a difference may arise between us that can only be
-reconciled by murder, and that any one of us may be called upon to
-play his part in an inevitable tragedy,--we shudder at the thought.
-
-It was well enough for a Hebrew, a Greek, or a Roman to maintain
-the independence of his country by murder, and even to subdue other
-nations by the same means, because he firmly believed himself a
-member of the one favored people beloved by God, and that all the
-others were Philistines and barbarians. Also, in the times of the
-Middle Ages men might well have held these opinions, and even they
-who lived toward the end of the last century and at the beginning
-of this. But we, whatever provocation may be offered us, we cannot
-possibly believe as they did; and this difficulty is so painful for
-us in these times that it has become impossible to live without
-trying to solve it.
-
-"We live in a time replete with contradictions," writes Count
-Komarovsky, the Professor of International Law, in his learned
-treatise. "Everywhere the tone of the public press seems to indicate
-a general desire for peace, and shows the need of it for all
-nations. And the representatives of the government, in their private
-as well as in their public capacity, in parliamentary speeches and
-diplomatic negotiations, express themselves in the same temper.
-Nevertheless, the governments increase the military force year after
-year, impose new taxes, negotiate loans, and will leave as a legacy
-to future generations the responsibilities of the present mistaken
-policy. How are the word and the deed at variance!
-
-"By way of justification the governments claim that all their
-armaments and the consequent outlay are simply defensive in their
-character, but to the uninitiated the question naturally suggests
-itself: Whence is to come the attack if all the great powers are
-devoting themselves _to a defensive policy_? It certainly looks as
-if each one of them lived in hourly expectation of attack from his
-neighbor, and the consequence is a strife between the different
-governments to surpass each other in strength. The very existence of
-this spirit of rivalry favors the chances of war: the nations, no
-longer able to support the increased armament, will sooner or later
-prefer open war to the tension in which they live and the ruin which
-menaces them, so that the slightest pretext will avail to kindle
-in Europe the conflagration of a general war. It is a mistake to
-suppose that such a crisis will heal the political and economic ills
-under which we groan. The experience of late wars shows us that each
-one served only to exacerbate the animosity of the nations against
-each other, to increase the unbearable burden of military despotism,
-and has involved the political and economic situation of Europe in a
-more melancholy and pitiable plight than ever."
-
-"Contemporary Europe keeps under arms nine millions of men," says
-Enrico Ferri, "and a reserve force of fifteen millions, at a cost
-of four milliards of francs a year. By increasing its armament
-it paralyzes more and more the springs of social and individual
-welfare, and may be compared to a man who, in order to obtain
-weapons, condemns himself to anmia, thereby depriving himself of
-the strength to use the weapons he is accumulating, whose weight
-will eventually overpower him."
-
-The same idea has been expressed by Charles Booth, in his address
-delivered in London, July 26, 1887, before the Association for the
-Reform and Codification of National Laws. Having mentioned the same
-numbers,--over nine millions in active service and fifteen millions
-in reserve, and the enormous sums required to support these armies
-and armaments,--he says, in substance: "These numbers represent
-but a small part of the actual expenditure, because outside of the
-expenses enumerated in the budgets of the nations we must take
-into consideration the great losses to society from the removal
-of so many able-bodied men, lost to industry in all its branches,
-and moreover, the interest on the enormous sums spent in military
-preparations, which yield no returns. As might be expected, the
-constantly increasing national debts are the inevitable result of
-these outlays in preparation for war. By far the greater proportion
-of the debt of Europe has been contracted for munitions of war.
-The sum total is four milliards of pounds, or forty milliards of
-roubles, and these debts are increasing every year."
-
-Komarovsky, whom we lately quoted, says elsewhere: "We are living
-in hard times. Everywhere we hear complaints of the stagnation of
-commerce and industry, and of the wretched economical situation.
-They tell us of the hard conditions of life among the laboring
-classes and the general impoverishment of the people. But regardless
-of this, governments, determined to maintain their independence, go
-to the utmost limits of folly. Additional taxes are levied on every
-side, and the financial oppression of the people knows no bounds.
-If we glance at the budgets of European states for the last hundred
-years, we shall be struck with their constantly increasing figures.
-How can we explain this abnormal condition that sooner or later
-threatens to overwhelm us with inevitable bankruptcy?
-
-"Most assuredly it is caused by the expense of maintaining armies,
-which absorbs one-third, or even one-half, of the budget of all
-European nations. The saddest part of it, however, is that there is
-no end to this increase of budgets and consequent impoverishment of
-the masses. What is socialism but a protest against the abnormal
-situation in which the majority of mankind of our continent finds
-itself?"
-
-"We are being ruined," says Frdric Passy, in a paper read before
-the last Peace Congress in London (1890), "to enable us to take part
-in the senseless wars of the future, or to pay the interest of debts
-left us by the criminal and insane wars and contests of the past. We
-shall perish with hunger, to have success in murder."
-
-Going on to speak of the opinion of France in regard to this
-matter, he says: "We believe that now, a hundred years after the
-proclamation formulating the belief in the rights of men and
-citizens, the time has come to declare the rights of nations and
-to repudiate once and for all time those undertakings of fraud and
-violence, which, under the name of conquests, are actually crimes
-against humanity, and which, however much the pride of nations or
-the ambition of monarchs may seek to justify them, serve only to
-enervate the conquerors."
-
-"I am always very much surprised at the way religion is carried on
-in this country," says Sir Wilfred Lawson before the same Congress.
-"You send a boy to the Sunday-school, and you tell him: 'My dear
-boy, you must love your enemies; if any boy strikes you, don't
-strike him again; try to reform him by loving him.' Well, the boy
-goes to the Sunday-school till he is fourteen or fifteen years of
-age, and then his friends say, 'Put him in the army.' What has he to
-do in the army? Why, not love his enemies, but whenever he sees an
-enemy, to run him through the body with a bayonet is the nature of
-all religious teaching in this country. I do not think that that is
-a very good way of carrying out the precepts of religion. I think if
-it is a good thing for the boy to love his enemy, it is a good thing
-for the man to love his enemy."...
-
-And later!
-
-"In Europe great Christian nations keep among them 28,000,000 of
-armed men to settle quarrels by killing one another, instead of
-by arguing. This is what the Christian nations of the world are
-doing at this moment. It is a very expensive way also; for in a
-publication which I saw--I believe it was correct--it was made
-out that since the year 1812 these nations had spent the almost
-incredible amount of 1,500,000,000 of money in preparing and
-settling their quarrels by killing one another. Now it seems to
-me that with that state of things one of two positions must be
-accepted,--either that Christianity is a failure, or that those
-who profess to expound Christianity have failed in expounding it
-properly."
-
-"So long as our men-of-war are not disarmed and our army not
-disbanded, we have no right to be called a Christian nation," said
-Mr. F. L. Wilson.
-
-In a conversation in regard to the duty of Christian ministers in
-the matter of preaching against war, Mr. G. D. Bartlett remarked,
-among other things:--
-
-"If I understand the Scriptures, I say that men are only playing
-with Christianity when they ignore this question.... I have lived
-a long life, I have heard many sermons, and I can say without any
-exaggeration that I never heard universal peace recommended from
-the pulpit half a dozen times in my life.... Some twenty years
-ago I happened to stand in a drawing-room where there were forty
-or fifty people, and I dared to make the proposition that war was
-incompatible with Christianity. They looked upon me as an arrant
-fanatic. The idea that we could get on without war was regarded as
-unmitigated weakness and folly."
-
-A Catholic priest, the Abb Defourny, has spoken in a similar
-spirit. "One of the first commandments of the eternal law, engraved
-in every man's conscience," says the Abb Defourny, "forbids a man
-to take his neighbor's life or shed his blood" (without sufficient
-cause, being forced to it by stress of circumstance). "This is a
-commandment more deeply engraved in the human heart than all the
-others.... But as soon as it becomes a question of war, that is,
-a question of the wholesale shedding of human blood, men in these
-days do not wait for a sufficient cause. Those who are active in
-war forget to ask themselves if there is any justification for the
-numerous manslaughters that take place, whether they are just or
-unjust, legal or illegal, innocent or criminal, or whether they
-break the principal law that forbids us to commit murder" (without
-just cause). "Their conscience is silent.... War has ceased to be a
-matter connected with morality. The soldier, amid all the fatigues
-and dangers he undergoes, knows no joy but conquest, no sorrow but
-defeat. Don't tell me that they serve the country. A great genius
-has long ago answered this statement in words that have since become
-a proverb: 'Take away justice, and what is then a nation but a great
-band of robbers? And is not a band of robbers in itself a small
-state? They, too, have their laws. They, too, fight for booty, and
-even honor.'
-
-"The aim of this organization" (it was a question of establishing
-international tribunals) "is to influence the European nations until
-they cease to be nations of thieves, and their armies bands of
-robbers. Yes, our armies are nothing less than a rabble of slaves
-belonging to one or two monarchs and their ministers, who, as we all
-know, rule them tyrannically and without any responsibility other
-than nominal, as we know.
-
-"It is the characteristic of a slave that he is a tool in the hands
-of his master. Such are the soldiers, officers, and generals, who
-at the beck of their sovereign go forth to slay or to be slain.
-There is a military slavery, and it is the worst of all slaveries,
-particularly now, when by means of conscription it forges chains for
-the necks of all the free and strong men of the nation, in order to
-use them as instruments of murder, to make them executioners and
-butchers of human flesh, since that is the sole reason why they are
-drafted and drilled....
-
-"Two or three potentates in their cabinets make treaties, without
-protocols, without publicity, and therefore without responsibility,
-sending men to the slaughter.
-
-"'Protests against increased armaments began before our time,' said
-Signor E. G. Moneta. Listen to Montesquieu: 'France' (for France we
-might now substitute Europe) 'is perishing from an overgrown army. A
-new disease is spreading throughout Europe. It has affected kings,
-and obliges them to maintain an incredible number of troops. It is
-like a rash, and therefore contagious; for no sooner does one nation
-increase its troops than all the others follow suit. Nothing can
-result from this condition of affairs but general calamity.
-
-"'Each government maintains as many troops as it would require if
-its people were threatened with destruction, and this state of
-tension is called peace. Europe is in truth ruined. If private
-individuals were reduced to such straits as these, the richest man
-among them would be practically destitute. The wealth of the world
-and its commerce are in our hands, and yet we are poor.'
-
-"This was written almost 150 years ago. It seems like a picture of
-the present. One thing alone has changed--the form of government.
-In the time of Montesquieu it was said that the reason for the
-maintenance of large armies might be found in the unlimited power of
-kings, who carried on war in the hope of increasing their private
-property and their glory.
-
-"Then it was said: 'Ah! if the people could but choose
-representatives who would have a right to refuse the governments
-when they called for soldiers and money--there would be an end of
-a military policy.' Now, almost everywhere in Europe there are
-representative governments, and still the military expenditure in
-preparation for war has increased in frightful proportion.
-
-"It looks as though the folly of the rulers had passed into the
-ruling classes. Now they no longer fight because one king has
-been rude to another king's mistress, as in the time of Louis
-XIV., but by exaggerating the importance of national dignity
-and patriotism,--emotions which are natural and honorable in
-themselves,--and exciting the public opinion of one country against
-the other, until they have arrived at such a pitch of sensitiveness
-that it is enough to say, for instance (even were the report to
-prove false), one country has refused to receive the ambassador
-of another, to precipitate the most frightful and disastrous war.
-Europe maintains under arms at the present time more soldiers than
-were in the field during the great wars of Napoleon. Every citizen
-on our continent, with a few exceptions, is forced to spend several
-years in the barracks. Fortresses, arsenals, men-of-war are built,
-new firearms are invented, which in a short time are replaced by
-others, because science, which should always be devoted to the
-promotion of human welfare, contributes, it must be regretfully
-acknowledged, to human destruction, inventing ever new means of
-killing greater numbers of men in the shortest possible time.
-
-"In these stupendous preparations for slaughter, and in the
-maintenance of these vast numbers of troops, hundreds of millions
-are yearly expended--sums that would suffice to educate the masses,
-and to carry on the most important works of public improvement,
-thereby contributing toward a perfect solution of the social problem.
-
-"Therefore, notwithstanding all our scientific victories, Europe
-finds herself in this respect not one whit better off than she was
-in the most barbarous times of the Middle Ages. Every one laments
-a state of things which is neither war nor peace, and longs to be
-delivered from it. The heads of governments emphatically affirm
-that they desire peace, and eagerly emulate each other in their
-pacific utterances, but almost immediately thereafter they propose
-to the legislative assemblies measures for increasing the armament,
-asserting that they take these precautions for the preservation of
-peace.
-
-"But this is not the sort of peace we care for, and the nations
-are not deceived by it. True peace has for its foundation mutual
-confidence, whereas these appalling armaments show, if not a
-declared hostility, at least a secret distrust among the different
-nations. What should we say of a man who, wishing to show his
-friendly feelings to his neighbor, should invite him to consider a
-certain scheme, holding a loaded pistol while he unfolds it before
-him?
-
-"It is this monstrous contradiction between the assurances of peace
-and the military policy of the governments, that good citizens wish
-to put an end to, at any cost."
-
-One is amazed to learn that there are 60,000 suicides reported in
-Europe, not including Turkey and Russia, every year, and these are
-all well-substantiated cases; but it would be far more remarkable
-if the number were less. Any man in these times who investigates the
-antagonism between his convictions and his actions, finds himself
-in a desperate plight. Setting aside the many other contradictions
-between actual life and conviction which abound in the life of a
-man of the present day, to view the military situation in Europe in
-the light of its profession of Christianity is enough to make a man
-doubt the existence of human reason, and drive him to escape from a
-barbarous and insane world by putting an end to his own life. This
-inconsistency, which is the very quintessence of all the others, is
-so shocking, that one can only go on living and taking any part in
-it, by dint of trying not to think about it,--to forget it all.
-
-What can it mean? We are Christians, who not only profess to love
-one another, but are actually leading one common life; our pulses
-beat in harmony; we meet each other in love and sympathy, deriving
-support and counsel from our mutual intercourse. Were it not for
-this sympathy life would have no meaning. But at any moment some
-demented ruler may utter a few rash words, to which another gives
-reply, and lo! I am ordered to march at the risk of my life, to slay
-those who have never injured me, whom I really love. And it is no
-remote contingency, but an inevitable climax for which we are all
-preparing ourselves.
-
-Fully to realize this is enough to drive one to madness and to
-suicide, and this is but too common an occurrence, especially among
-soldiers.
-
-A moment's reflection shows us why this seems an inevitable
-conclusion.
-
-It explains the frightful intensity with which men plunge into all
-kinds of dissipation,--wine, tobacco, cards, newspaper reading,
-travel, all manner of shows and pleasures. They pursue all these
-amusements in deadly earnest, as if they were serious avocations,
-as indeed they are. If men possessed none of these distractions,
-half of them would kill themselves out of hand, for to live a life
-that is made up of contradictions is simply unbearable, and such is
-the life that most of us lead at the present day. We are living in
-direct contradiction to our inmost convictions. This contradiction
-is evident both in economic and in political relations; it
-is manifested most unmistakably in the inconsistency of the
-acknowledgment of the Christian law of brotherly love and military
-conscription, which obliges men to hold themselves in readiness
-to take each other's lives,--in short, every man to be at once a
-Christian and a gladiator.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI
-
-ATTITUDE OF MEN OF THE PRESENT DAY TOWARD WAR
-
- Men do not endeavor to destroy the contradiction between life
- and consciousness by a change of life, but educated men use
- all their power to stifle the demands of consciousness and to
- justify their lives, and thus degrade society to a condition
- worse than pagan, to a state of primeval savagery--Uncertainty
- of the attitude of our leading men toward war, universal
- armament, and general military conscription--Those who regard
- war as an accidental political phenomenon easily to be remedied
- by external measures--The Peace Congress--Article in the Revue
- des Revues--Proposition of Maxime du Camp--Significance of
- Courts of Arbitration and Disarmament--Relations of governments
- to these, and the business they pursue--Those who regard war as
- a cruel inevitable phenomenon--Maupassant--Rod--Those who regard
- it as indispensable, even useful--Camille Doucet, Claretie,
- Zola, Vog.
-
-
-The contradictions of life and of consciousness may be solved in two
-ways: by change of life, or by change of consciousness; and it would
-seem as if there could be no hesitation in a choice between the two.
-
-When a man acknowledges a deed to be evil he may refrain from the
-deed itself, but he can never cease to regard it as evil. Indeed,
-the whole world might cease from evil-doing, and yet have no power
-to transform, or even to check for a season, the progress of
-knowledge in regard to that which is evil, and which ought not to
-exist. One would think that the alternative of a change of life to
-accord with consciousness might be settled without question, and
-that it would therefore seem unavoidable for the Christian world of
-the present day to abandon those pagan forms which it condemns, and
-regulate its life by the Christian precepts which it acknowledges.
-
-Such would be the result were it not for the principle of inertia
-(a principle no less unalterable in human life than in the world
-of matter), which finds its expression in the psychological law
-defined in the gospel by the words: "Men loved darkness rather than
-light, because their deeds were evil" (John iii. 19). Most persons,
-in conformity to this principle, do not use their reason in order
-to ascertain the truth, but rather to persuade themselves that they
-possess it, and that their daily life, which is pleasant for them,
-is in harmony with the precepts of truth.
-
-Slavery conflicted with all the moral principles taught by Plato
-and Aristotle, and yet neither of them perceived this, because the
-disavowal of slavery must have destroyed that life by which they
-lived. And the same thing is repeated in our times.
-
-The division of mankind into two classes, the existence of political
-and military injustice, is opposed to all those moral principles
-which our society professes, and yet the most progressive and
-cultivated men of the age seem not to perceive this.
-
-Almost every educated man at the present day is striving
-unconsciously to preserve the old-time conception of society, which
-justifies his attitude, and to conceal from others and from himself
-its inconsistencies, chief among which is the necessity of adopting
-the Christian ideal, which is subversive of the very structure of
-our social existence. It is this antiquated social system, in which
-they no longer believe, because it is really a thing of the past,
-that men are trying to uphold.
-
-Contemporary literature, philosophical, political, and
-artistic,--all contemporary literature affords a striking proof
-of the truth of my statement. What wealth of imagination, what
-form and color, what erudition and art, but what a lack of serious
-purpose, what reluctance to face any exact thought! Ambiguity of
-expression, indirect allusion, witticisms, vague reflection, but no
-straightforward or candid dealing with the subject they treat of,
-namely, life.
-
-Indeed, our writers treat of obscenities and improprieties; in the
-guise of refined paradox they convey suggestions which thrust men
-back to primeval savagery, to the lowest dregs, not only of pagan
-life, but animal life, which we outlived 5000 years ago. Delivering
-themselves from the Christian life-conception, which for some simply
-interferes with the accustomed current of their lives, while for
-others it interferes with certain advantages, men must of necessity
-return to the pagan life-conception and to the doctrines to which it
-gave rise. Not only are patriotism and the rights of the aristocracy
-preached at the present time as they used to be 2000 years ago, but
-also the coarsest epicureanism and sensuality, with this difference
-only,--that the teachers of old believed in the doctrines they
-taught, whereas those of the present day neither do nor can possess
-any faith in what they utter, because there is no longer any sense
-in it. When the ground is shifting under our feet, we cannot stand
-still, we must either recede or advance. It sounds exaggerated to
-say that the enlightened men of our time, the advanced thinkers, are
-speciously degrading society, plunging it into a condition worse
-than pagan,--into a state of primeval barbarism.
-
-In no other matter has this tendency of the leading men of our
-time been so plainly shown as in their attitude toward that
-phenomenon in which at present all the inconsistency of social life
-is concentrated,--toward war, universal armament, and military
-conscription.
-
-The equivocal, if not unscrupulous, attitude of the educated men
-of our time toward this question is a striking one. It may be
-stated from three points of view. Some regard this phenomenon as
-an accidental state of affairs, which has sprung from the peculiar
-political situation of Europe, and believe it to be susceptible
-of adjustment by diplomatic and international mediation, without
-injury to the structure of nations. Others look upon it as something
-appalling and cruel, fatal yet unavoidable,--like disease or
-death. Still others, in cold blood, calmly pronounce war to be an
-indispensable, salutary, and therefore desirable event.
-
-Men may differ in their views in regard to this matter, but all
-discuss it as something with which the will of the individuals who
-are to take part in it has nothing whatever to do; therefore they
-do not even admit the natural question which presents itself to
-most men; viz., "Is it my duty to take part in it?" In the opinion
-of these judges there is no reason in such a question, and every
-man, whatever may be his personal prejudices in regard to war, must
-submit in this matter to the demands of the ruling powers.
-
-The attitude of those in the first category, who expect deliverance
-from war by means of diplomatic and international mediation, is
-well defined in the results of the London Peace Congress, and in
-an article, together with letters concerning war from prominent
-writers, which may be found in the _Revue des Revues_ (No. 8, 1891).
-
-These are the results of the Congress.
-
-Having collected from all parts of the globe the opinions of
-scientists, both written and oral, the Congress, opening with a _Te
-Deum_ in the cathedral, and closing with a dinner and speeches,
-listened for five days to numerous addresses, and arrived at the
-following conclusions:--
-
-Resolution I. The Congress affirms its belief that the brotherhood
-of man involves as a necessary consequence a brotherhood of
-nations, in which, the true interests of all are acknowledged to
-be identical. The Congress is convinced that the true basis for an
-enduring peace will be found in the application by nations of this
-great principle in all their relations one to another.
-
-II. The Congress recognizes the important influence which
-Christianity exercises upon the moral and political progress of
-mankind, and earnestly urges upon ministers of the gospel and other
-teachers of religion and morality the duty of setting forth these
-principles of Peace and Good-will, which occupy such a central
-place in the teaching of Jesus Christ, of philosophers and of
-moralists, and _it recommends that the third Sunday in December in
-each year be set apart for that purpose_.
-
-III. The Congress expresses its opinion that all teachers of history
-should call the attention of the young to the grave evils inflicted
-on mankind in all ages by war, and to the fact that such war has
-been waged, as a rule, for most inadequate causes.
-
-IV. The Congress protests against the use of military drill in
-connection with the physical exercises of schools, and suggests
-the formation of brigades for saving life rather than any of
-quasi-military character; and it urges the desirability of
-impressing on the Board of Examiners, who formulate the questions
-for examination, the propriety of guiding the minds of children into
-the principles of Peace.
-
-V. The Congress holds that the doctrine of the universal rights
-of man requires that aboriginal and weaker races shall be guarded
-from injustice and fraud when brought into contact with civilized
-peoples, alike as to their territories, their liberties, and their
-property, and that they shall be shielded from the vices which are
-so prevalent among the so-called advanced races of men. It further
-expresses its conviction that there should be concert of action
-among the nations for the accomplishment of these ends. The Congress
-desires to express its hearty appreciation of the conclusions
-arrived at by the late Anti-Slavery Conference, held in Brussels,
-for the amelioration of the condition of the peoples of Africa.
-
-VI. The Congress believes that the warlike prejudices and traditions
-which are still fostered in the various nationalities, and the
-misrepresentations by leaders of public opinion in legislative
-assemblies, or through the press, are not infrequently indirect
-causes of war. The Congress is therefore of opinion that these ends
-should be counteracted by the publication of accurate statements
-and information that would tend to the removal of misunderstanding
-amongst nations, and recommends to the Inter-Parliamentary
-Committee the importance of considering the question of starting an
-international newspaper, which should have such a purpose as one of
-its primary objects.
-
-VII. The Congress proposes to the Inter-Parliamentary Conference
-that the utmost support should be given to every project for the
-unification of weights and measures, of coinage, tariffs, postal
-and telegraphic arrangements, means of transport, etc., which would
-assist in constituting a commercial, industrial, and scientific
-union of the peoples.
-
-VIII. In view of the vast moral and social influence of woman, the
-Congress urges upon every woman throughout the world to sustain, as
-wife, mother, sister, or citizen, the things that make for peace,
-as otherwise she incurs grave responsibilities for the continuance
-of the systems of war and militarism, which not only desolate
-but corrupt the home-life of the nation. To concentrate and to
-practically apply this influence, the Congress recommends that
-women should unite themselves with societies for the promotion of
-international peace.
-
-IX. This Congress expresses the hope that the Financial Reform
-Association and other similar societies in Europe and America should
-unite in convoking at an early date a conference to consider the
-best means of establishing equitable commercial relations between
-States by the reduction of import duties as a step toward Free
-Trade. The Congress feels that it can affirm that the whole of
-Europe desires Peace, and is impatiently waiting for the moment when
-it shall see the end of those crushing armaments which, under the
-plea of defense, become in their turn a danger, by keeping alive
-mutual distrust, and are, at the same time, the cause of the general
-economic disturbance which stands in the way of settling in a
-satisfactory manner the problems of labor and poverty, which should
-take precedence of all others.
-
-X. This Congress, recognizing that a general disarmament would be
-the best guarantee of _Peace_, and would lead to the solution,
-in the general interest, of those questions which now must divide
-States, expresses the wish that a Congress of Representatives of
-all the States of Europe may be assembled as soon as possible to
-consider the means of effecting a gradual general disarmament, which
-already seems feasible.
-
-XI. This Congress, considering that the timidity of a single Power
-or other cause might delay indefinitely the convocation of the
-above-mentioned Congress, is of the opinion that the Government
-which should first dismiss any considerable number of soldiers would
-confer a signal benefit on Europe and mankind, because it would
-oblige other Governments, urged on by public opinion, to follow its
-example, and by the moral force of this accomplished fact would have
-increased rather than diminished the conditions of its national
-defense.
-
-XII. This Congress, considering the question of disarmament, as
-well as the Peace question generally, depends upon public opinion,
-recommends the Peace Societies here represented, and all friends of
-Peace, to carry on an active propaganda among the people, especially
-at the time of Parliamentary elections, in order that the electors
-should give their votes to those candidates who have included in
-their programme Peace, Disarmament, and Arbitration.
-
-XIII. This Congress congratulates the friends of Peace on the
-resolution adopted by the International American Conference
-(with the exception of the representatives of Chili and Mexico)
-at Washington in April last, by which it was recommended that
-arbitration should be obligatory in all controversies concerning
-diplomatic and consular privileges, boundaries, territories,
-indemnities, right of navigation, and the validity, construction,
-and enforcement of treaties, and in all other causes, whatever
-their origin, nature, or occasion, except only those which, in the
-judgment of any of the nations involved in the controversy, may
-imperil its independence.
-
-XIV. This Congress respectfully recommends this resolution to the
-statesmen of Europe, and expresses the ardent desire that treaties
-in similar terms be speedily entered into between the other nations
-of the world.
-
-XV. This Congress expresses its satisfaction at the adoption
-by the Spanish Senate, on June 18th last, of a project of law
-authorizing the Government to negotiate general or special treaties
-of arbitration for the settlement of all disputes, except those
-relating to the independence and internal government of the States
-affected; also at the adoption of resolutions to a like effect
-by the Norwegian Storthing on March 6th last, and by the Italian
-Chamber on July 11th.
-
-XVI. That a committee of five be appointed to prepare and address
-communications, in the name of the Congress, to the principal
-religious, political, economical, labor, and peace organizations
-in civilized countries, requesting them to send petitions to the
-governmental authorities of their respective countries, praying that
-measures be taken for the formation of suitable tribunals for the
-adjudication of international questions, so as to avoid the resort
-to war.
-
-XVII. Seeing (1) that the object pursued by all Peace Societies is
-the establishment of juridical order between nations:
-
-(2) That neutralization by international treaties constitutes a step
-toward this juridical state, and lessens the number of districts in
-which war can be carried on:
-
-This Congress recommends a larger extension of the rule of
-neutralization, and expresses the wish:--
-
-(1) That all treaties which at present assure to certain States
-the benefit of neutrality remain in force, or, if necessary, be
-amended in a manner to render the neutrality more effective, either
-by extending neutralization to the whole of the State, of which
-a part only may be neutralized, or by ordering the demolition of
-fortresses, which constitute rather a peril than a guarantee for
-neutrality.
-
-(2) That new treaties, provided that they are in harmony with the
-wishes of the populations concerned, be concluded for establishing
-the neutralization of other States.
-
-XVIII. The Committee Section proposes:--
-
-(1) That the next Congress be held immediately before or immediately
-after the next session of the Inter-Parliamentary Conference, and at
-the same places.
-
-(2) That the question of an international Peace Emblem be postponed
-_sine die_.
-
-(3) The adoption of the following resolutions:--
-
-(_a_) Resolved, that we express our satisfaction at the formal and
-official overtures of the Presbyterian Church in the United States
-of America, addressed to the highest representatives of each church
-organization in Christendom, inviting the same to unite with itself
-in a general conference, the object of which shall be to promote the
-substitution of international arbitration for war.
-
-(_b_) That this Congress, assembled in London from the 14th to
-the 19th July, desires to express its profound reverence for the
-memory of Aurelio Salfi, the great Italian jurist, a member of the
-Committee of the International League of Peace and Liberty.
-
-(4) That the memorial to the various heads of the civilized States
-adopted by this Congress, and signed by the President, should, so
-far as practicable, be presented to each Power by an influential
-deputation.
-
-(5) That the Organization Committee be empowered to make the needful
-verbal emendations in the papers and resolutions presented.
-
-(6) That the following resolutions be adopted:--
-
-(_a_) A resolution of thanks to the Presidents of the various
-sittings of the Congress.
-
-(_b_) A resolution of thanks to the chairman, the secretary, and the
-members of the Bureau of this Congress.
-
-(_c_) A resolution of thanks to the conveners and members of the
-sectional committees.
-
-(_d_) A resolution of thanks to Rev. Canon Scott Holland, Rev. Dr.
-Reuan Thomas, and Rev. J. Morgan Gibbon, for their pulpit addresses
-before the Congress, and that they be requested to furnish copies
-of the same for publication; and also Stamford Hall Congregational
-Church for the use of those buildings for public services.
-
-(_e_) A letter of thanks to Her Majesty for permission to visit
-Windsor Castle.
-
-(_f_) And also a resolution of thanks to the Lord Mayor and Lady
-Mayoress, to Mr. Passmore Edwards, and other friends who have
-extended their hospitality to the members of the Congress.
-
-XIX. This Congress places on record a heartfelt expression of
-gratitude to Almighty God for the remarkable harmony and concord
-which have characterized the meetings of the Assembly, in which so
-many men and women of varied nations, creeds, tongues, and races
-have gathered in closest coperation; and in the conclusion of
-the labors of this Congress, it expresses its firm and unshaken
-belief in the ultimate triumph of the cause of _Peace_, and of the
-principles which have been advocated at these meetings.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The fundamental idea of the Congress is--firstly, that it is
-necessary to disseminate by all means among all men the belief that
-war is not advantageous for mankind, and that peace is a great
-benefit; and secondly, to influence governments, impressing upon
-them the advantages and necessity of disarmament.
-
-To accomplish the first end, the Congress advises teachers of
-history, women, and ministers of the gospel, to teach people, every
-third Sunday of December, the evils of war and the benefits of
-peace; to accomplish the second, the Congress addresses itself to
-governments, suggesting to them disarmament and arbitration.
-
-To preach the evils of war and the benefits of peace! But the evils
-of war are so well known to men, that from the earliest ages the
-most welcome greeting was always: "Peace be unto you!"
-
-Not only Christians but all pagans were fully aware of the benefits
-of peace and of the evils of war thousands of years ago, so that the
-advice to the ministers of the gospel to preach against the evils
-of war and to advocate the benefits of peace every third Sunday in
-December is quite superfluous.
-
-A real Christian cannot do otherwise than preach thus, constantly,
-as long as he lives. But if there are those who are called
-Christians, or Christian preachers, who do not do this, there must
-be a cause for it, and so long as this cause exists no advice will
-avail. Still less effective will be the advice to governments
-to disband armies and have recourse to International Courts of
-Arbitration. Governments know very well all the difficulties and
-burdens of conscription and of maintaining armies, and if in the
-face of such difficulties and burdens they still continue to do
-so, it is evident that they have no means of doing otherwise, and
-the advice of a Congress could in no way bring about a change.
-But scientists will not admit this, and still hope to find some
-combination of influences by means of which those governments which
-make war may be induced to restrain themselves.
-
-"Is it possible to avoid war?" writes a scientist in the _Revue des
-Revues_ (No. 8 of 1891). "All agree in recognizing the fact that
-if war should ever break out in Europe, its consequences would be
-similar to those of the great invasions. It would imperil the very
-existence of nations; it would be bloody, atrocious, desperate. This
-consideration, and the consideration of the terrible nature of the
-engines of destruction at the command of modern science, retards
-its declaration and temporarily maintains the present system,--a
-system which might be continued indefinitely, if it were not for the
-enormous expenses that burden the European nations and threaten to
-culminate in disasters fully equal to those occasioned by war.
-
-"Impressed with these thoughts, men of all nationalities have
-sought for means to arrest, or at least to diminish, the shocking
-consequences of the carnage that threatens us.
-
-"Such are the questions which are to be debated by the next Congress
-of Universal Peace to be held in Rome, which have already been
-discussed in a recently published pamphlet on Disarmament.
-
-"Unfortunately, it is quite certain that with the present
-organization of the greater number of the European states, isolated
-one from the other and controlled by different interests, the
-absolute cessation of war is an illusion which it would be folly to
-cherish. Still, the adoption of somewhat wiser rules and regulations
-in regard to these international duels would at least tend to
-limit their horrors. It is equally Utopian to build one's hope on
-projects of disarmament, whose execution, owing to considerations of
-a national character, which exist in the minds of all our readers,
-is practically impossible." (This probably means that France cannot
-disarm until she has retaliated.) "Public opinion is not prepared
-to accept them, and, furthermore, the international relations make
-it impossible to adopt them. Disarmament demanded by one nation
-of another, under conditions imperiling its security, would be
-equivalent to a declaration of war.
-
-"Still, we must admit that an exchange of opinions between the
-nations interested may to a certain extent aid in establishing an
-international understanding, and also contribute to lessen the
-military expenses that now crush European nations, to the great
-detriment of the solution of social questions, the necessity of the
-solution of which is realized by each nation individually, under the
-penalty of being confronted by a civil war, due to the efforts made
-to prevent a foreign one.
-
-"One may at least hope for a decrease of the enormous expenses
-necessary for the present military organization, which is maintained
-for the purpose of invading a foreign territory in twenty-four
-hours, or of a decisive battle a week after the declaration of war."
-
-It ought not to be possible for one nation to attack another and
-take possession of its territory within twenty-four hours. This
-practical sentiment was expressed by Maxime du Camp, and is the
-conclusion of his study of the subject.
-
-Maxime du Camp offers the following propositions:--
-
-"1st. A Diplomatic Congress, to assemble every year.
-
-"2d. No war to be declared until two months after the incident
-which gave rise to it." (Here the difficulty lies in determining
-the nature of the incident that kindled the war--that is, every
-declaration of war is caused by several circumstances, and it would
-be necessary to determine from which one the two months are to be
-reckoned.)
-
-"3d. No war shall be declared until the vote of the people shall
-have been taken.
-
-"4th. Hostilities must not begin until a month after the declaration
-of war."
-
-"_No war shall be declared_ ..." etc. But who is to _prevent_
-hostilities _beginning_? Who will compel men to do this or that?
-Who will compel governments to wait a certain stated time? Other
-nations. But all the other nations are in the very same position,
-requiring to be restrained and kept within bounds, in other words,
-_coerced_. And who will _coerce_ them? And how is it to be done?
-By public opinion. But if public opinion has sufficient influence
-to force a nation to postpone its action until a stated time, this
-public opinion can prevent it from waging war at any time.
-
-But, it is said, there might be a balance of power, which would
-oblige nations to restrain themselves. This very experiment has been
-and is still being tried; this was the object of the Holy Alliance,
-the League of Peace, etc.
-
-But all would agree to this, it is said. If all would agree to this,
-then wars would cease, and there would be no need of Courts of
-Appeal or of Arbitration.
-
-"A Court of Arbitration would take the place of war. Disputes would
-be decided by a Board of Arbitrators, like that which pronounced
-on the Alabama claims. The Pope has been requested to decide the
-question concerning the Caroline Islands: Switzerland, Belgium,
-Denmark, and Holland have declared that they prefer the decision of
-a Court of Arbitration to war."
-
-I believe Monaco has expressed a similar wish. It is a pity that
-Germany, Russia, Austria, and France have thus far shown no sign of
-imitating their example.
-
-It is astonishing how easily men can deceive themselves when they
-feel inclined.
-
-The governments will agree to allow their disputes to be decided
-by a Board of Arbitration and to dismiss their armies. The trouble
-between Russia and Poland, England and Ireland, Austria and the
-Czechs, Turkey and the Slavs, France and Germany, will be settled
-by mutual consent. This is very much like suggesting to merchants
-and bankers that they shall sell at cost price, and devote their
-services gratuitously to the distribution of property.
-
-Of course the essence of commerce and banking consists in buying
-cheap and selling dear, and therefore the suggestion to sell at cost
-price and the consequent overthrow of money amounts to a proposal of
-self-destruction.
-
-The same is true in regard to governments.
-
-The suggestion to governments to desist from violence, and to adjust
-all differences by arbitration, would be to recommend a suicidal
-policy, and no government would ever agree to that. Learned men
-found societies (there are more than one hundred of them), they
-assemble in Congresses (like those held in London and Paris and the
-one which is to be held in Rome), they read essays, hold banquets,
-make speeches, edit journals devoted to the subject, and by all
-these means they endeavor to prove that the strain upon nations who
-are obliged to support millions of soldiers has become so severe
-that something must be done about it; that this armament is opposed
-to the character, the aims, and the wishes of the populations;
-but they seem to think that if they consume a good deal of paper,
-and devote a good deal of eloquence to the subject, that they may
-succeed in conciliating opposing parties and conflicting interests,
-and at last effect the suppression of war.
-
-When I was a child I was told that if I wished to catch a bird I
-must put salt on its tail. I took a handful and went in pursuit of
-the birds, but I saw at once that if I could sprinkle salt on their
-tails I could catch them, and that what I had been told was only a
-joke. Those who read essays and works on Courts of Arbitration and
-the disarmament of nations must feel very much the same.
-
-If it were possible to sprinkle salt on a bird's tail it would be
-tantamount to saying that the bird could not fly, and therefore it
-would be no effort to catch it. If a bird has wings and does not
-wish to be caught, it will not allow any salt to be put on its tail,
-for it is the nature of a bird to fly. Likewise it is the nature
-of a government not to be ruled, but to rule its subjects. And a
-government rightly is named such only when it is able to rule its
-subjects, and not be ruled by them. This, therefore, is its constant
-aim, and it will never voluntarily resign its power. And as it
-derives its power from the army it will never give up the army, nor
-will it ever renounce that for which the army is designed,--war.
-
-The misapprehension springs from the fact that the learned jurists,
-deceiving themselves as well as others, depict in their books an
-ideal of government,--not as it really is, an assembly of men who
-oppress their fellow-citizens, but in accordance with the scientific
-postulate, as a body of men who act as the representatives of the
-rest of the nation. They have gone on repeating this to others
-so long that they have ended by believing it themselves, and
-they really seem to think that justice is one of the duties of
-governments. History, however, shows us that governments, as seen
-from the reign of Csar to those of the two Napoleons and Prince
-Bismarck, are in their very essence a violation of justice; a man or
-a body of men having at command an army of trained soldiers, deluded
-creatures who are ready for any violence, and through whose agency
-they govern the State, will have no keen sense of the obligation of
-justice. Therefore governments will never consent to diminish the
-number of those well-trained and submissive servants, who constitute
-their power and influence.
-
-Such is the attitude of certain scientists toward that
-self-contradiction under which the world groans, and such are their
-expedients for its relief. Tell these scientists that the question
-deals only with the personal relations of each individual toward
-the moral and religious question, and then ask them what they think
-of the lawfulness or unlawfulness of taking part in the general
-conscription, and their sole reply will be a shrug of the shoulders;
-they will not even deign to give a thought to your question. Their
-way of solving the difficulty is to make speeches, write books,
-choose their presidents, vice-presidents, and secretaries; assembled
-in a body, to hold forth in one city or another. They think that
-the result of their efforts will be to induce governments to
-cease to recruit soldiers, on whom all their power depends; they
-expect that their appeals will be heard, and that armies will be
-disbanded, leaving governments defenseless, not only in the presence
-of neighbors, but of their subjects; that they, like highwaymen
-who, having bound their defenseless victims in order to rob them,
-no sooner hear the outcries of pain than they loosen the rope that
-causes it, and let their prisoners go free.
-
-And there really are men who believe in this, who spend their time
-in promoting Leagues of Peace, in delivering addresses, and in
-writing books; and of course the governments sympathize with it all,
-pretending that they approve of it; just as they pretend to support
-temperance, while they actually derive the larger part of their
-income from intemperance; just as they pretend to maintain liberty
-of the constitution, when it is the absence of liberty to which they
-owe their power; just as they pretend to care for the improvement
-of the laboring classes, while on oppression of the workman rest
-the very foundations of the State; just as they pretend to uphold
-Christianity, when Christianity is subversive of every government.
-
-In order to accomplish these ends they have long since instituted
-laws in regard to intemperance that can never avail to destroy it;
-educational projects that not only do not prevent the spread of
-ignorance, but do everything to increase it; decrees in the name
-of liberty that are no restraint upon despotism; measures for the
-benefit of the working-man which will never liberate him from
-slavery; they have established a Christianity which serves to prop
-the government rather than destroy it. And now another interest
-is added to their cares,--the promotion of peace. Governments,
-or rather those rulers who are going about at present with their
-ministers of state, making up their minds on such radical questions
-as, for instance, whether the slaughter of millions shall begin
-this year or next,--they are quite well assured that discussions on
-peace are not going to prevent them from sending millions of men to
-slaughter whenever they see fit to do so. They like to hear these
-discussions, they encourage them, and even take part themselves.
-
-It does no harm to the government; on the contrary, it is useful, by
-way of diverting observation from that radical question: When a man
-is drafted, ought he or ought he not to fulfil his military duty?
-
-Thanks to all these unions and congresses, peace will presently be
-established; meanwhile put on your uniforms, and be prepared to
-worry and harass each other for our benefit, say the governments.
-And the scientists, the essayists, and the promoters of congresses
-take the same view.
-
-This is one way of looking at it, and so advantageous for the State
-that all prudent governments encourage it.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The way another class has of regarding it is more tragic. They
-declare that although it is the fate of humanity to be forever
-striving after love and peace, it is nevertheless abnormal and
-inconsistent. Those who affirm this are mostly the sensitive men of
-genius, who see and realize all the horror, folly, and cruelty of
-war, but by some strange turn of mind never look about them for any
-means of escape, but who seem to take a morbid delight in realizing
-to the utmost the desperate condition of mankind. The view of the
-famous French writer, Maupassant, on the subject of war, affords a
-noteworthy example of this kind. Gazing from his yacht upon a drill
-and target-practice of French soldiers, the following thoughts arise
-in his mind:--
-
- "I have but to think of the word 'war' and a paralyzing sense
- of horror creeps over me, as though I were listening to stories
- of witchcraft, or tales of the Inquisition, or of things
- abominable, monstrous, unnatural, of ages past.
-
- "When people talk of cannibals we smile contemptuously with a
- sense of superiority to such savages. But who are the savages,
- the true savages? Those who fight that they may drive off the
- conquered, or those who fight for the pure pleasure of killing?
- Those sharp-shooters running over yonder are destined to be
- killed like a flock of sheep who are driven by the butcher to
- the slaughter-house. Those men will fall on some battlefield
- with a sabre-cut in the head, or with a ball through the heart.
- Yet they are young men, who might have done useful work. Their
- fathers are old and poor; their mothers, who have idolized them
- for twenty years as only mothers can idolize, will learn after
- six months, or perhaps a year, that the son, the baby, the
- grown-up child on whom so much love and pains were lavished,
- who was reared at such an expense, has been torn by a bullet,
- trampled under foot, or crushed by a cavalry charge, and finally
- flung like a dead dog into some ditch. Why must her boy, her
- beautiful, her only boy, the hope and pride of her life, why
- must he be killed? She knows not; she can but ask why.
-
- "War!... The fighting!... The murdering!... The slaughter of
- men!... And to-day, with all our wisdom, civilization, with the
- advancement of science, the degree of philosophy to which the
- human spirit has attained, we have schools where the art of
- murder, of aiming with deadly accuracy and killing large numbers
- of men at a distance, is actually taught, killing poor, harmless
- devils who have families to support, killing them without even
- the pretext of the law.
-
- "_It is stupefying that the people do not rise up in arms
- against the governments. What difference is there between
- monarchies and republics? It is stupefying that society does not
- revolt as a unit at the very sound of the word war._
-
- "Alas! we shall never be free from oppression of the hateful,
- hideous customs, the criminal prejudices, and the ferocious
- impulses of our barbarous ancestors, for we are beasts; and
- beasts we shall remain, moved by our instincts and susceptible
- of no improvement.
-
- "Any one but Victor Hugo would have been banished when he
- uttered his sublime cry of freedom and truth:--
-
- "'To-day force is called violence, and the nations condemn it;
- they inveigh against war. Civilization, listening to the appeal
- of humanity, undertakes the case and prepares the accusation
- against the victors and the generals. The nations begin to
- understand that the magnitude of a crime cannot lessen its
- wickedness; that if it be criminal to kill one man, the killing
- of numbers cannot be regarded in the light of extenuation; that
- if it be shameful to steal, it cannot be glorious to lead an
- invading army.
-
- "'Let us proclaim these absolute truths, let us dishonor the
- name of war!'
-
- "But the wrath and indignation of the poet are all in vain,"
- continues Maupassant. "War is more honored than ever.
-
- "A clever expert in this business, a genius in the art of
- murder, Von Moltke, once made to a peace-delegate the following
- astonishing reply:--
-
- "'War is sacred; it is a divine institution; it fosters
- every lofty and noble sentiment in the human heart: honor,
- self-sacrifice, virtue, courage, and saves men, so to speak,
- from settling into the most shocking materialism.'
-
- "Assembling in herds by the hundred thousand, marching night and
- day without rest, with no time for thought or for study, never
- to read, learning nothing, of no use whatsoever to any living
- being, rotting with filth, sleeping in the mud, living like a
- wild beast in a perennial state of stupidity, plundering cities,
- burning villages, ruining whole nations; then to encounter
- another mountain of human flesh, rush upon it, cause rivers
- of blood to flow, and strew the fields with the dead and the
- dying, all stained with the muddy and reddened soil, to have
- one's limbs severed, one's brain scattered as wanton waste, and
- to perish in the corner of a field while one's aged parents,
- one's wife and children, are dying of hunger at home,--this
- is what it means to be saved from falling into the grossest
- materialism!
-
- "Soldiers are the scourge of the world. We struggle against
- nature, ignorance, all kinds of obstacles, in the effort to make
- our wretched lives more endurable. There are men, scientists
- and philanthropists, who devote their whole lives to benefit
- their fellow-men, seeking to improve their condition. They
- pursue their efforts tirelessly, adding discovery to discovery,
- expanding the human intelligence, enriching science, opening
- new fields of knowledge, day by day increasing the well-being,
- comfort, and vigor of their country.
-
- "Then war comes upon the scene, and in six months all the
- results of twenty years of patient labor and of human genius are
- gone forever, crushed by victorious generals.
-
- "And this is what they mean when they speak of man's rescue from
- materialism!
-
- "We have seen war. We have seen men maddened; returned to the
- condition of the brutes, we have seen them kill in wanton sport,
- out of terror, or for mere bravado and show. Where right exists
- no longer, and law is dead, where all sense of justice has
- been lost, we have seen innocent men shot down on the highway,
- because they were timid and thus excited suspicion. We have
- seen dogs chained to their masters' doors killed by way of
- target-practice, we have seen cows lying in a field fired at by
- the mitrailleuses, just for the fun of shooting at something.
-
- "And this is what they call saving men from the most shocking
- materialism!
-
- "To invade a country, to kill the man who defends his home
- because he wears a blouse and does not wear a _kepi_, to burn
- the dwellings of starving wretches, to ruin or plunder a man's
- household goods, to drink the wine found in the cellars, to
- violate the women found in the streets, consume millions of
- francs in powder, and to leave misery and cholera in their track.
-
- "This is what they mean by saving men from the most shocking
- materialism!
-
- "What have military men ever done to prove that they possess the
- smallest degree of intelligence? Nothing whatever. What have
- they invented? The cannon and the musket; nothing more.
-
- "Has not the inventor of the wheelbarrow, by the simple and
- practical contrivance of a wheel and a couple of boards,
- accomplished more than the inventor of modern fortification?
-
- "What has Greece bequeathed to the world? Its literature and its
- marbles. Was she great because she conquered, or because she
- produced? Was it the Persian invasion that saved Greece from
- succumbing to the most shocking materialism?
-
- "Did the invasions of the Barbarians save and regenerate Rome?
-
- "Did Napoleon I. continue the great intellectual movement
- started by the philosophers at the end of the last century?
-
- "Very well, then; can it be a matter of surprise, since
- governments usurp the rights of life and death over the people,
- that the people from time to time assume the right of life and
- death over their governments?
-
- "They defend themselves, and they have the right. No man has an
- inalienable right to govern others. It is allowable only when it
- promotes the welfare of the governed. It is as much the duty of
- those who govern to avoid war as it is that of a captain of a
- ship to avoid shipwreck.
-
- "When a captain has lost his ship he is indicted, and if he
- is found to have been careless or even incompetent, he is
- convicted. As soon as war has been declared why should not the
- people sit in judgment upon the act of the government?
-
- "If they could once be made to understand the power that would
- be theirs, _if they were the judges of the rulers who lead them
- on to slay their fellow-men, if they refused to allow themselves
- to be needlessly slaughtered, if they were to turn their weapons
- against the very men who have put them into their hands--that
- day would see the last of war.... But never will that day
- arrive."_--"Sur l'Eau."
-
-The author perceives the full horror of war, realizes that the
-government is its author, that government forces men to go slay, or
-be slain, when there is no need for it; he realizes that the men who
-make up the armies might turn their weapons against the government
-and demand a reckoning. Still the author does not believe that this
-will ever happen, or that there is any possible deliverance from the
-existing condition of affairs.
-
-He grants that the result of war is shocking, but he believes it
-to be inevitable; assuming that the never ceasing requisition of
-soldiers on the part of government is as inevitable as death, then
-wars must follow as a matter of course.
-
-These are the words of a writer of talent, endowed with a faculty of
-vividly realizing his subject, which is the essence of the poetic
-gift. He shows us all the cruel contradictions between creed and
-deed; but since he fails to offer a solution, it is evident that
-he feels that such a contradiction must exist, and regards it as a
-contribution to the romantic tragedy of life. Another and an equally
-gifted writer, Edouard Rod, paints with colors still more vivid the
-cruelty and folly of the present situation, but he, like Maupassant,
-feels the influence of the dramatic element, and neither suggests a
-remedy nor anticipates any change.
-
- "Why do we toil? Why do we plan and hope to execute? And how
- can one even love one's neighbor in these troublous times,
- when the morrow is nothing but a menace?... Everything that
- we have begun, our ripening schemes, our plans for work, the
- little good that we might accomplish, will it not all be swept
- away by the storm that is gathering?... Everywhere the soil
- quakes beneath our feet, and threatening clouds hang low on the
- horizon. Ah! if we had nothing more to fear than the bugbear of
- the Revolution!... Unable to conceive a society worse than our
- own, I am more inclined to distrust than to fear the one that
- may replace it, and if I should suffer in consequence of the
- change, I should console myself with the reflection that the
- executioners of the present were victims of the past, and the
- hope of a change for the better would make me endure the worst.
- But it is not this remote danger which alarms me. I see another
- close at hand and far more cruel, since it is both unjustifiable
- and irrational, and nothing good can come out of it. Day by day
- the chances of war are weighed, and day by day they become more
- pitiless.
-
- "The human mind refuses to believe in the catastrophe which even
- now looms up before us, and which the close of this century
- must surely witness, a catastrophe which will put an end to all
- the progress of our age, and yet we must try to realize it.
- Science has devoted all her energy these twenty years to the
- invention of destructive weapons, and soon a few cannon-balls
- will suffice to destroy an army;[10] not the few thousands of
- wretched mercenaries, whose life-blood has been bought and paid
- for, but whole nations are about to exterminate each other;
- during conscription their time is stolen from them in order to
- steal their lives with more certainty. By way of stimulating a
- thirst for blood mutual animosities are excited, and gentle,
- kind-hearted men allow themselves to be deluded, and it will
- not be long before they attack each other with all the ferocity
- of wild beasts; multitudes of peace-loving citizens will obey
- a foolish command, God only knows on what pretext,--some
- stupid frontier quarrel, perhaps, or it may be some colonial
- mercantile interest.... They will go like a flock of sheep to
- the slaughter, yet knowing where they go, conscious that they
- are leaving their wives and their children to suffer hunger;
- anxious, but unable to resist the enticement of those plausible
- and treacherous words that have been trumpeted into their ears.
- _Unresistingly they go; although they form a mass and a force,
- they fail to realize the extent of their power, and that if
- they were all agreed they might establish the reign of reason
- and fraternity_, instead of lending themselves to the barbarous
- trickeries of diplomacy.
-
- [10] The book was published a year ago, and since then dozens
- of new weapons and smokeless powder have been invented for the
- annihilation of mankind.--AUTHOR.
-
- "So self-deceived are they that bloodshed takes on the aspect of
- duty, and they implore the blessing of God upon their sanguinary
- hopes. As they march, they trample underfoot the harvests which
- they themselves have planted, burning the cities which they have
- helped to build, with songs, shouts of enthusiasm, and music.
- And their sons will raise a statue to those who have slain them
- by the most approved methods.... The fate of a whole generation
- hangs on the hour when some saturnine politician shall make the
- sign, and the nations will rush upon each other. We know that
- the noblest among us will be cut down, and that our affairs
- will go to destruction. _We know this, we tremble in anger, yet
- are powerless._ We have been caught in a snare of bureaucracy
- and waste paper from which we can only escape by measures too
- energetic for us. We belong to the laws which we have made for
- our protection, and which oppress us. _We are nothing more
- than the creatures of that antinomic abstraction, the State,
- which makes of each individual a slave in the name of all, each
- individual of which all, taken separately, would desire the
- exact contrary of what he will be made to do._
-
- "And if it were but the sacrifice of a single generation! But
- many other interests are involved.
-
- "Paid orators, demagogues, taking advantage of the passions
- of the masses and of the simple-minded who are dazzled by
- high-sounding phrases, have so embittered national hatreds
- that to-morrow's war will decide the fate of a race: one of
- the component parts of the modern world is threatened; the
- vanquished nation will morally disappear; it matters not which
- chances to be the victim, a power will disappear (as though
- there had ever been one too many for the good). A new Europe
- will then be established on a basis so unjust, so brutal, so
- bloodstained, that it cannot fail to be worse than that of
- to-day,--more iniquitous, more barbarous, and more aggressive....
-
- "Thus a fearful depression hangs over us. We are like men
- dashing up and down a narrow passageway, with muskets pointed at
- us from all the roofs. We work like sailors executing their last
- manoeuver after the ship has begun to sink. Our pleasures are
- those of the prisoner to whom a choice dish is offered a quarter
- of an hour before his execution. Anxiety paralyzes our thought,
- and the utmost we can do is to wonder, as we con the vague
- utterances of ministers, or construe the meaning of the words
- of monarchs, or turn over those ascribed to the diplomatists,
- retailed at random by the newspapers, never sure of their
- information, whether all this is to happen to-morrow or the day
- after, whether it is this year or next that we are all to be
- killed. In truth, one might seek in vain throughout the pages
- of history for an epoch more unsettled or more pregnant with
- anxiety."--"Le Sens de la Vie."
-
-He shows us that the power is really in the hands of those who allow
-themselves to be destroyed, in the hands of separate individuals who
-compose the mass; that the root of all evil is the State. It would
-seem as if the contradiction between one's faith and one's actual
-life had reached its utmost limit, and that the solution could not
-be far to seek.
-
-But the author is of a different opinion. All that he sees in
-this is the tragedy of human life, and having given us a detailed
-description of the horror of this state of things, he perceives
-no reason why human life should not be spent in the midst of this
-horror. Such are the views of the second class of writers, who
-consider only the fatalistic and tragic side of war.
-
-There is still another view, and this is the one held by men who
-have lost all conscience, and are consequently dead to common sense
-and human feeling.
-
-To this class belong Moltke, whose opinions are quoted by
-Maupassant, and nearly all military men who have been taught to
-believe this cruel superstition, who are supported by it, and who
-naturally regard war not only as an inevitable evil, but as a
-necessary and even profitable occupation. And there are civilians
-too, scientists, men of refinement and education, who hold very much
-the same views.
-
-The famous academician Doucet, in reply to a query of the editor of
-the _Revue des Revues_ in regard to his opinions on war, replies as
-follows in the number containing letters concerning war:[11]--
-
- "DEAR SIR,--When you ask of the least belligerent of all the
- academicians if he is a partizan of war, his reply is already
- given. Unfortunately you yourself classify the peaceful
- contemplations which inspire your fellow-countrymen at the
- present hour as idle visions.
-
- "Ever since I was born I have always heard good men protesting
- against this shocking custom of international carnage. All
- recognize this evil and lament it. But where is its remedy?
-
- "The effort to suppress duelling has often been made. It seems
- to be so easy. Far from it. All that has been accomplished
- toward achieving this noble purpose amounts to nothing, nor
- will it ever amount to more. Against war and duelling the
- congresses of the two hemispheres vote in vain. Superior to all
- arbitrations, conventions, and legislations will ever remain
- human honor, which has always demanded the duel, and national
- interests, which have always called for war. Nevertheless, I
- wish with all my heart that the Universal Peace Congress may
- succeed at last in its difficult and honorable task.--Accept the
- assurance, etc.,
-
- "CAMILLE DOUCET."
-
- [11] _La Revue des Revues_, "La guerre, tat de la question, jug
- par nos grands hommes contemporains."--TR.
-
-It amounts to this, that honor obliges men to fight, that it is for
-the interest of nations that they should attack and destroy one
-another, and that all endeavors to abolish war can but excite a
-smile.
-
-Jules Claretie expresses himself in similar terms:--
-
- "DEAR SIR,--A sensible man can have but one opinion on the
- question of war and peace. Humanity was created to live--to
- live for the purpose of perfecting its existence by peaceful
- labor. The mutual relations of cordiality which are promoted and
- preached by the Universal Congress of Peace may be but a dream
- perhaps, yet certainly is the most delightful of dreams. The
- vision of the land of promise is ever before the eyes, and upon
- the soil of the future the harvest will ripen, secure from the
- plowing of the projectile, or the crushing of cannon-wheels.
- But, alas!... Since philosophers and philanthropists are not the
- rulers of mankind, it is fit that our soldiers should guard our
- frontiers and our homes, and their weapons, skilfully wielded,
- are perhaps the surest guarantees of the peace we love so well.
- Peace is given only to the strong and the courageous.--Accept
- the assurances of, etc.,
-
- "JULES CLARETIE."
-
-The substance of this is, that there is no harm in talking about
-what no one intends to do, and what ought not in any event to be
-done. When fighting is in order, there is no alternative but to
-fight.
-
-mile Zola, the most popular novelist in Europe, gives utterance to
-his views on the subject of war in the following terms:--
-
- "I look upon war as a fatal necessity which seems to us
- indispensable because of its close connection with human nature
- and all creation. Would that it might be postponed as long as
- possible! Nevertheless a time will come when we shall be forced
- to fight. At this moment I am regarding the subject from the
- universal standpoint, and am not hinting at our unfriendly
- relations with Germany, which are but a trifling incident in the
- world's history. I affirm that war is useful and necessary,
- since it is one of the conditions of human existence. The
- fighting instinct is to be found not only among the different
- tribes and peoples, but in domestic and private life as
- well. It is one of the chief elements of progress, and every
- advancing step taken by mankind up to the present time has been
- accompanied by bloodshed.
-
- "Men have talked, and still do talk, of disarmament; and yet
- disarmament is utterly impossible, for even though it were
- possible, we should be compelled to renounce it. It is only an
- armed nation that can be powerful and great. I believe that a
- general disarmament would be followed by a moral degradation,
- assuming the form of a widespread effeminacy which would impede
- the progress of humanity. Warlike nations have always been
- vigorous. The military art has contributed to the development
- of other arts. History shows us this. In Athens and Rome, for
- instance, commerce, industry, and literature reached their
- highest development when these cities ruled the world by the
- force of arms. And nearer to our own time we found an example
- in the reign of Louis XIV. The wars of the great king, so far
- from impeding the advance of arts and sciences, seemed rather to
- promote and to favor their progress."
-
-War is useful!
-
-But chief among the advocates of these views, and the most talented
-of all the writers of this tendency, is the academician Vog, who,
-in an article on the military section of the Exhibition of 1889,
-writes as follows:--
-
- "On the Esplanade des Invalides, the center of exotic and
- colonial structures, a building of a more severe order stands
- out from the midst of the picturesque bazaar; these various
- fragments of our terrestrial globe adjoin the palace of war. A
- magnificent theme and antithesis for humanitarian rhetoric which
- never loses a chance to lament a juxtaposition of this kind, and
- to utter its 'this will kill that' [_ceci tuera cela_[12]];
- that the confederacy of nations brought about by science and
- labor will overpower the military instinct. Let it cherish this
- vision of a golden age, caressing it with fond hopes. We have
- no objection; but should it ever be realized, it would very
- soon become an age of corruption. History teaches us that the
- former has been accomplished by the means of the latter, that
- blood is necessary to hasten and to seal the confederacy of
- nations. In our own time the natural sciences have strengthened
- the mysterious law which revealed itself to Joseph de Maistre
- through the inspiration of his genius and meditation on
- primordial dogmas; he saw how the world would redeem its
- hereditary fall by offering a sacrifice. Science shows us that
- the world is made better by struggle and violent selection;
- this affirmation of the same law, with varied utterance, comes
- from two sources. It is by no means a pleasant one. The laws
- of the world, however, are not established for our pleasure,
- but for our perfection. Let us then enter this necessary and
- indispensable palace of war, and we shall have the opportunity
- to observe how our most inveterate instinct, losing nothing
- of its power, is transformed in its adaptation to the various
- demands of historical moments."
-
- [12] Words taken from Victor Hugo's "Notre Dame," where he says that
- printing will kill architecture.--AUTHOR.
-
-This idea, namely, that the proof of the necessity of war may
-be found in the writings of De Maistre and of Darwin, two great
-thinkers, as he calls them, pleases Vog so much that he repeats it.
-
-"Sir," he writes to the editor of the _Revue des Revues_, "you ask
-my opinion in regard to the possible success of the Universal Peace
-Congress. I believe, with Darwin, that vehement struggle is the
-law governing all being, and I believe, with Joseph de Maistre,
-that it is a divine law,--two different modes of characterizing
-the same principle. If, contrary to all expectations, a certain
-fraction of humanity--for example, all the civilized West--should
-succeed in arresting the issue of this law, the more primitive races
-would execute it against us; in these races the voice of nature
-would prevail over human intellect. And they would succeed, because
-the certainty of _peace_--I do not say peace, but the absolute
-_certainty of peace_--would in less than half a century produce a
-corruption and a decadence in men more destructive than the worst of
-wars. I believe that one should act in regard to war--that criminal
-law of humanity--as in regard to all criminal laws: modify it, or
-endeavor to make its execution as rare as possible, and use every
-means in our power to render it superfluous. But experience of all
-history teaches us that it cannot be suppressed, so long as there
-shall be found on earth two men, bread, money, and a woman between
-them. I should be very glad if the Congress could prove to me the
-contrary; but I doubt if it can disprove history, and the law of God
-and of nature.--Accept my assurance, etc.,
-
- "E. M. DE VOG."
-
-This may be summed up as follows: History and nature, God and man,
-show us that so long as there are two men left on earth, and the
-stakes are bread, money, and woman, just so long there will be war.
-That is, that no amount of civilization will ever destroy that
-abnormal concept of life which makes it impossible for men to divide
-bread, money (of all absurdities), and woman without a fight. It is
-odd that people meet in congresses and hold forth as to the best
-method of catching birds by putting salt on their tails, although
-they must know that this can never be done! It is astonishing that
-men like Rod, Maupassant, and others, clearly realizing all the
-horrors of war, and all the contradictions that ensue from men not
-doing what they ought to do, and what it would be to their advantage
-to do, who bemoan the tragedy of life, and yet fail to see that
-this tragic element would vanish as soon as men ceased to discuss a
-subject which should not be discussed, and ceased to do that which
-is both painful and repulsive for them to do!
-
-One may wonder at them; but men who, like Vog and others, believe
-in the law of evolution, and look upon war as not only unavoidable,
-but even useful, and therefore desirable,--such men are fairly
-shocking, horrible in their moral aberration. The former at least
-declare that they hate evil and love good, but the latter believe
-there is neither good nor evil.
-
-All this discussion of the possibility of establishing peace instead
-of continual warfare is but the mischievous sentimentalism of idle
-talkers. There is a law of evolution which seems to prove that I
-must live and do wrong. What, then, can I do? I am an educated
-man,--I am familiar with the doctrine of evolution; hence it follows
-that I shall work evil. "Entrons au palais de la guerre." There is a
-law of evolution, and therefore there can be no real evil; and one
-must live one's life and leave the rest to the law of evolution.
-This is the last expression of refined civilization; it is with
-this idea that the educated classes at the present day deaden their
-conscience.
-
-The desire of these classes to preserve their favorite theories and
-the life that they have built up on them can go no further. They
-lie, and by their specious arguments deceive themselves as well as
-others, obscuring and deadening their intuitive perceptions.
-
-Rather than adapt their lives to their consciousness, they try by
-every means to befog and to silence it. But the light shines in the
-darkness, and even now it begins to dawn.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII
-
-SIGNIFICANCE OF THE MILITARY CONSCRIPTION
-
- General military conscription is not a political accident, but
- the extreme limit of contradiction contained in the social
- life-conception--Rise of power in society--The basis of power
- is personal violence--The organization of armed men, an army,
- is required by power to enable it to accomplish violence--The
- rise of power in society, that is, of violence, destroys by
- degrees the social life-conception--Attitude of power toward
- the masses, that is to say, the oppressed--Governments endeavor
- to make workmen believe in the necessity of State violence for
- their preservation from external foes--But the army is needed
- principally to defend government from its own subjects, the
- oppressed working-men--Address of Caprivi--All the privileges of
- the ruling classes are assured by violence--Increase of armies
- leads to a general military conscription--General military
- conscription destroys all the advantages of social life which it
- is the duty of the State to guard--General military conscription
- is the extreme limit of obedience, as it demands in the name of
- the State the abnegation of all that may be dear to man--Is the
- State needed?--The sacrifices which it requires from citizens
- through the general military conscription have no longer any
- basis--Hence it is more advantageous for man to rebel against
- the demands of the State than to submit to them.
-
-
-The efforts which the educated men of the upper classes are making
-to silence the growing consciousness that the present system of
-life must be changed, are constantly on the increase, while life
-itself, continuing to develop and to become more complex without
-changing its direction, as it increases the incongruities and
-suffering of human existence, brings men to the extreme limit of
-this contradiction. An example of this uttermost limit is found in
-the general military conscription.
-
-It is usually supposed that this conscription, together with the
-increasing armaments and the consequent increase of the taxes and
-national debts of all countries, are the accidental results of a
-certain crisis in European affairs, which might be obviated by
-certain political combinations, without change of the interior life.
-
-This is utterly erroneous. The general conscription is nothing
-but an internal contradiction which has crept into the social
-life-conception, and which has only become evident because it has
-arrived at its utmost limits at a period when men have attained a
-certain degree of material development.
-
-The social life-conception transfers the significance of life
-from the individual to mankind in general, through the unbroken
-continuity of the family, the tribe, and the State.
-
-According to the social life-conception it is supposed that as the
-significance of life is comprised in the sum total of mankind, each
-individual will of his own accord sacrifice his interests to those
-of the whole. This in fact has always been the case with certain
-aggregates, like the family or the tribe.
-
-In consequence of custom, transmitted by education and confirmed by
-religious suggestion, and without compulsion, the individual merges
-his interests in those of the group, and sacrifices himself for the
-benefit of the whole.
-
-But the more complex became societies, the larger they
-grew,--conquest especially contributing to unite men in social
-organizations,--the more individuals would be found striving to
-attain their ends at the expense of their fellow-men; and thus the
-necessity for subjugation by power, or, in other words, by violence,
-became more and more frequent.
-
-The advocates of the social life-conception usually attempt to
-combine the idea of authority, otherwise violence, with that of
-moral influence; but such a union is utterly impossible.
-
-The result of moral influence upon man is to change his desires,
-so that he willingly complies with what is required of him. A man
-who yields to moral influence takes pleasure in conforming his
-actions to its laws; whereas authority, as the word is commonly
-understood, is a means of coercion, by which a man is forced to act
-in opposition to his wishes. A man who submits to authority does not
-do as he pleases, he yields to compulsion, and in order to force
-a man to do something for which he has an aversion, the threat of
-physical violence, or violence itself, must be employed: he may be
-deprived of his liberty, flogged, mutilated, or he may be threatened
-with these punishments. And this is what constitutes power both in
-the past and in the present.
-
-Despite the unremitting efforts of rulers to conceal these facts,
-and to attribute a different significance to authority, it simply
-means the rope and chain wherewith a man is bound and dragged, the
-lash wherewith he is flogged, the knife or ax wherewith his limbs,
-nose, ears, and head are hewed off. Authority is either the menace
-or the perpetration of these acts. This was the practice in the
-times of Nero and Genghis Khan, and is still in force even in the
-most liberal governments, like the republics of France and America.
-If men submit to authority, it is only because they fear that if
-they were to resist, they would be subjected to violence. All the
-requisitions of the State, such as the payment of taxes and the
-fulfilment of public duties, the submission to penalties in the form
-of exile, fines, etc., to which men seem to yield voluntarily, are
-always enforced by the physical threat or the reality of physical
-punishment.
-
-Physical violence is the basis of authority.
-
-It is the military organization that makes it possible to inflict
-physical violence, that organization wherein the entire armed force
-acts as one man, obeying a single will. This assemblage of armed
-men, submitting to one will, forms what is called an army. The army
-has ever been and still is the basis of an authority, vested in
-the commanding generals; and the most engrossing interest of every
-sovereign, from the Roman Csars to the Russian and German emperors,
-has always been to protect and flatter the army, for they realize
-that when the army is on their side, power is also in their hands.
-
-It is the drilling and the increase of the troops required for
-the maintenance of authority which has brought into the social
-life-conception an element of dissolution.
-
-The aim of authority, and its consequent justification, is to
-restrain those men who are endeavoring, by methods which are
-detrimental to those of mankind in general, to promote their own
-interests. But whether authority has been acquired by force of arms,
-or by hereditary succession, or by election, men who have gained
-authority are in no way different from their fellow-men; they are
-just like all others, not inclined to waive their own interests in
-favor of the many, but, since they hold power in their hands, are
-more likely to make the interests of the many give way to their
-own. Whatever measures may have been devised by way of restraining
-those in authority who might seek their own ends at the expense of
-the public, or to vest authority in the hands of infallible men, no
-satisfactory results have as yet been attained.
-
-Attributing divine right to kings, hereditary succession, election;
-congresses, parliaments, and senates;--none of these have ever
-yet proved effectual. Everybody knows that no expedient has
-ever succeeded either in committing authority into the hands of
-infallible men, or of preventing its abuses. On the contrary, we
-know that men who have the authority, be they emperors, ministers of
-State, chiefs of police, or even policemen, always are more liable,
-because of their position, to become immoral,--that is, to put their
-own private interests before those of the public,--than men who do
-not possess such an authority; and this is inevitable.
-
-The social life-conception could be justified only while all
-men voluntarily sacrificed their private interests to those of
-the public in general; but no sooner did men appear who refused
-to sacrifice their interests, than authority, in other words,
-violence, was required to restrain these men. Thus there entered
-into the social life-conception, and the organization based on it,
-a principle containing within itself the germs of dissolution,--the
-principle of authority, or the tyranny of the few over the many.
-In order that the authority held by certain men might fulfil its
-object, which is to restrain those who are trying to further their
-own interests to the detriment of society in general, it would be
-necessary to have it in the hands of infallible men, as is supposed
-to be the case in China, or as it was believed to be in the Middle
-Ages, and is even at the present time by those who have faith in
-consecration by unction. It is only under such conditions that the
-social organization can be justified.
-
-But as no such conditions exist, and, furthermore, as men who are
-in authority, from the very fact of its possession, must ever be
-far from being saints, the social organization that is based upon
-authority cannot possibly have any justification.
-
-If there ever was a time when a low standard of morality, and the
-general tendency of men toward violence, called for an authority
-possessing the power to restrict this violence, an authority whose
-existence may have been an advantage,--that is, when the violence
-of the State was less than the violence of individuals toward
-each other,--we cannot help seeing now that this prerogative of
-the State, when violence no longer exists, cannot go on forever.
-Morals improved in proportion to the gradual decrease of individual
-violence, while the prerogative of authority lost ground in measure
-as it became corrupted by the possession of unbridled power.
-
-The entire history of the last 2000 years will have been told
-when we have described this change in the relations between the
-moral development of man and the demoralization of governments.
-In its simplest form it runs thus: men lived together in tribes,
-in families, and in races, and were at enmity one with another;
-they employed violence, they spread desolation, they murdered one
-another. Thus devastation was on a scale both great and small: man
-fought with man, tribe with tribe, family with family, race with
-race, nation with nation. The larger and more powerful communities
-absorbed the weaker ones; and the greater and more vigorous became
-the aggregation of men, the more seldom did one hear of acts
-of violence within these communities, and the more secure the
-continuity of their existence appeared.
-
-When the members of a tribe or a family unite together to form one
-community, they are naturally less hostile to each other, and the
-tribes and families are not so likely to die out; while among the
-citizens of a State subjected to one authority the contentions seem
-even less frequent, and hence is the life of the State on a basis
-still more assured.
-
-These fusions into larger and larger aggregates took place, not
-because men realized that it would be to their advantage, as is
-illustrated by the fable that tells of the falling of the Varegs in
-Russia, but are due rather to natural growth on the one hand, and
-struggle and conquest on the other.
-
-When conquest was achieved, the authority of the conqueror put
-an end to internal strife, and the social life-conception was
-justified. But this justification is only temporary. Internal feuds
-cease only when the pressure of authority is brought to bear with
-greater weight upon individuals formerly inimical to one another.
-The violence of the internal struggle, not annihilated by authority,
-is the offspring of authority itself. Authority is in the hands
-of men who, like all the rest, are ever ready to sacrifice the
-common weal if their own personal interests are at stake; with the
-sole difference that these men, encountering no resistance from
-the oppressed, are wholly subject to the corrupting influence of
-authority itself.
-
-Therefore it is that the evil principle of violence relegated
-to authority is ever increasing, and the evil becomes in time
-worse than that which it is supposed to control: whereas, in the
-individual members of society, the inclination to violence is always
-diminishing, and the violence of authority becomes less and less
-necessary.
-
-As its power increases in measure of its duration, State authority,
-though it may eradicate internal violence, introduces into life
-other and new forms of violence, always increasing in intensity.
-And though the violence of authority in the State is less striking
-than that of individual members of society toward each other, its
-principal manifestation being not that of strife, but of oppression,
-it exists none the less, and in the highest degree.
-
-It cannot be otherwise; for not only does the possession of
-authority corrupt men, but, either from design or unconsciously,
-rulers are always striving to reduce their subjects to the lowest
-degree of weakness,--for the more feeble the subject, the less the
-effort required to subdue him.
-
-Therefore violence employed against the oppressed is pushed to its
-utmost limit, just stopping short of killing the hen that lays the
-golden egg. But if the hen has ceased to lay, like the American
-Indians, the Fiji Islanders, or the Negroes, then it is killed,
-despite the sincere protests of the philanthropists against that
-mode of procedure.
-
-The most conclusive proof of this assertion, at the present time, is
-the position of the working-men, who are in truth simply vanquished
-men.
-
-Despite all the pretended efforts of the upper classes to lighten
-their position, all the working-men of the world are subjected to an
-immutable iron rule, which prescribes that they shall have scarcely
-enough to live upon, in order that their necessities may urge them
-to unremitting toil, the fruits of which are to be enjoyed by their
-masters, in other words, their conquerors.
-
-It has always been the case that, after the long continuance and
-growth of power, the advantages accruing to those who have submitted
-to it have failed, while the disadvantages have multiplied.
-
-Thus it is and thus it always has been, under whatsoever form of
-government the nation may have lived; only that where despotism
-prevails authority is confined to a limited number of oppressors,
-and violence takes on a ruder form, while in the constitutional
-monarchies, and in the republics of France and America, authority
-is distributed among a greater number of oppressors, and its
-manifestations are less rude; but the result, in which the
-disadvantages of dominion are greater than the advantages, and the
-method--reduction of the oppressed to the lowest possible degree of
-abjection, for the benefit of the oppressors, remain ever the same.
-
-Such has been the position of all the oppressed, but until lately
-they have been unaware of the fact, and for the most part have
-innocently believed that governments were instituted for their
-benefit, to preserve them from destruction, and that to permit the
-idea that men might live without governments would be a thought
-sacrilegious beyond expression; it would be the doctrine of anarchy,
-with all its attendant horrors.
-
-Men believed, as in something so thoroughly proved that it needed no
-further testimony, that as all nations had hitherto developed into
-the State form, this was to remain the indispensable condition for
-the development of mankind forever.
-
-And so it has gone on for hundreds, nay, thousands of years, and the
-governments, that is to say, their representatives, have endeavored,
-and still go on endeavoring, to preserve this delusion among the
-people.
-
-As it was during the time of the Roman emperors, so it is now.
-Although the idea of the uselessness, and even of the detriment,
-of power enters more and more into the consciousness of men, it
-might endure forever, if governments did not think it necessary to
-increase the armies in order to support their authority.
-
-It is the popular belief that governments increase armies as a
-means of defense against other nations, forgetting that troops are
-principally needed by governments to protect them against their own
-enslaved subjects.
-
-This has always been necessary, and has grown more so with the
-spread of education, the increase of intercourse among different
-nationalities; and at the present time, in view of the communist,
-socialist, anarchist, and labor movements, it is a more urgent
-necessity than ever. Governments realize this fact, and increase
-their principal means of defense,--the disciplined army.[13]
-
- [13] That the abuse of authority exists in America, despite the
- small number of troops, by no means refutes our argument; on the
- contrary, it serves rather as a testimony in its favor. In America
- there are fewer troops than in other States, and nowhere do we find
- less oppression of the downtrodden classes, and nowhere have men
- come so near to the abolition of governmental abuses, and even of
- government itself. However, it is in America that, owing to the
- growing unity among the working-men, voices have been heard, more
- and more frequently of late, calling for an increase of troops,
- and this when no foreign invasion threatens the States. The ruling
- classes are fully aware that an army of 50,000 men is insufficient,
- and, having lost confidence in Pinkerton's forces, they believe that
- their salvation can only be secured by the increase of the army.
-
-It was but recently that in the German Reichstag, in giving the
-reason why more money was needed to increase the pay of the
-subaltern officers, the German Chancellor answered candidly that
-trusty subaltern officers are needed in order to fight against
-socialism. Caprivi put into words what every one knows, although
-it has been carefully concealed from the people. The reason why
-the Swiss and Scottish Guards were hired to protect the popes and
-the French kings, and why the Russian regiments are so carefully
-shuffled, is in order that those which are posted in the interior
-may be recruited by men from the borders, and those on the borders
-by men from the interior. The meaning of Caprivi's reply, translated
-into simple, everyday language, means that money is needed, not to
-repel a foreign enemy, but to bribe the subaltern officers to hold
-themselves in readiness to act against the oppressed working-men.
-
-Caprivi incidentally expressed what every man knows--or if he does
-not know it he feels it--namely, that the existing system of life is
-such as it is, not because it is natural for it to be so, or that
-the people are content to have it so, but because violence on the
-part of governments, the army, with its bribed subaltern officers,
-its captains and generals, sustains it.
-
-If a working-man has no land, if he is not allowed to enjoy the
-natural right possessed by every man, to draw from the soil the
-means of subsistence for himself and his family, it is not so
-because the people oppose it, but because the right to grant or
-to withhold this privilege from working-men is given to certain
-individuals--namely, to the landed proprietors. And this unnatural
-order of things is maintained by the troops. If the enormous wealth
-earned and saved by working-men is not regarded as common property,
-but as something to be enjoyed by the chosen few; if certain men
-are invested with the power of levying taxes on labor, and with
-the right of using that money for whatsoever purposes they deem
-necessary; if the strikes of the working-men are suppressed, and
-the trusts of the capitalists are encouraged; if certain men are
-allowed to choose in the matter of religious and civil education
-and the instruction of children; if to certain others the right
-is given to frame laws which all men must obey, and if they are
-to enjoy the control of human life and property,--all this is not
-because the people wish it, or because it has come about in the
-course of nature, but because the governments will have it so for
-their own advantage and that of the ruling classes; and all this is
-accomplished by means of physical violence.
-
-If every man is not yet aware of this, he will find it out whenever
-attempts are made to change the present order of things.
-
-And therefore all the governments and the ruling classes stand in
-need of troops above all things, in order to maintain a system of
-life which, far from having developed from the needs of the people,
-is often detrimental to them, and is only advantageous for the
-government and the ruling classes.
-
-Every government requires troops to enforce obedience, that it may
-profit by the labor of its subjects. But no government exists alone:
-side by side with it stands the government of the adjacent country,
-which is also profiting by the enforced labor of its subjects, and
-ever ready to pounce upon its neighbor and take possession of the
-goods which it has won from the labor of its own subjects. Hence it
-is that every government needs an army, not only for home use, but
-to guard its plunder from foreign depredations. Thus each government
-finds itself obliged to outdo its neighbor in the increase of its
-army, and, as Montesquieu said one hundred and fifty years ago, the
-expansion of armies is a veritable contagion.
-
-One State makes additions to its army in order to overawe its own
-subjects; its neighbor takes alarm, and straightway follows the
-example.
-
-Armies have reached the millions which they now number not only
-from the fear of foreign invasion; the increase was first caused
-by the necessity for putting down all attempts at rebellion on the
-part of the subjects of the State. The causes for the expansion of
-armies are contemporary, the one depending on the other; armies
-are needed against internal attempts at revolt, as well as for
-external defense. The one depends upon the other. The despotism of
-governments increases exactly in proportion to the increase of their
-strength and their internal successes, and their foreign aggression
-with the increase of internal despotism.
-
-European governments try to outdo one another, ever increasing their
-armaments, and compelled at last to adopt the expedient of a general
-conscription as a means of enrolling the greatest number of troops
-at the smallest possible expense.
-
-Germany was the first to whom this plan suggested itself. And no
-sooner was it done by one nation than all the others were forced
-to do likewise. Thus all the citizens took up arms to assist in
-upholding the wrongs that were committed against them; in fact, they
-became their own oppressors.
-
-General military conscription was the inevitable and logical
-consummation at which it was but natural to arrive; at the same
-time it is the last expression of the innate contradiction of the
-social life-conception which sprang into existence when violence was
-required for its support.
-
-General military conscription made this contradiction a conspicuous
-fact. Indeed, the very significance of the social life-conception
-consists in this,--that a man, realizing the cruelty of the struggle
-of individuals among themselves, and the peril that the individual
-incurs, seeks protection by transferring his private interests to a
-social community; whereas the result of the system of conscription
-is that men, after having made every sacrifice to escape from the
-cruel struggle and uncertainties of life, are once more called upon
-to undergo all the dangers they had hoped to escape, and moreover,
-the community--the State for which the individuals gave up their
-previous advantages--is now exposed to the same risk of destruction
-from which the individual himself formerly suffered. Governments
-should have set men free from the cruelty of the personal struggle,
-and given them confidence in the inviolable structure of State life;
-but instead of doing this they impose on individuals a repetition
-of the same dangers, with this difference, that in the place of
-struggle between individuals of the same group, it is a case of
-struggle between groups.
-
-The establishment of a general military conscription is like the
-work of a man who props a crumbling house. The walls have settled,
-sloping inward--he braces them; the ceiling begins to hang down--he
-supports that; and when the boards between give way, other braces
-are supplied. At last it reaches the point when, although the braces
-hold the house together, they actually make it uninhabitable.
-
-The same may be said of the general conscription system. The general
-military conscription nullifies all those advantages of social life
-which it is expected to protect.
-
-The advantages of social life are those guarantees which it offers
-for the protection of property and labor, as well as coperation for
-the purposes of mutual advantage; the general military conscription
-destroys all this.
-
-The taxes collected from the people for purposes of war absorb the
-greater part of the productions of their labor, which the army ought
-to protect.
-
-When men are taken from the ordinary avocations of daily life, labor
-is practically destroyed. Where war is ever threatening to break
-forth, it does not seem worth while to improve social conditions.
-
-If a man had formerly been told that unless he submitted to the
-civil authority he would run the risk of being assaulted by wicked
-men, that he would be in danger from domestic as well as from
-foreign foes, against whom he would be forced to defend himself,
-that he might be murdered, and therefore he would find it for
-his advantage to suffer certain privations if by that means he
-succeeded in escaping all these perils, he might have believed this,
-especially as the sacrifices required by the State promised him the
-hope of a peaceful existence within the well-established community
-in whose name he had made them. But now, when these sacrifices are
-not only multiplied, but the promised advantages are not realized,
-it is quite natural for men to think that their subjection to
-authority is utterly useless.
-
-But the fatal significance of the general conscription, as the
-manifestation of that contradiction which dwells in the social
-life-conception, lies not in this. Wherever military conscription
-exists, every citizen who becomes a soldier likewise becomes a
-supporter of the State system, and a participant in whatsoever the
-State may do, at the same time that he does not acknowledge its
-validity; and this may be called its chief manifestation.
-
-Governments declare that armies are principally required for
-external defense; but this is untrue. They are, in the first place,
-needed to overawe their own subjects, and every man who yields to
-military conscription becomes an involuntary participator in all the
-oppressive acts of government toward its subjects. It is necessary
-to remember what goes on in every State in the name of order and
-the welfare of the community, all the while enforced by military
-authority, to be convinced that every man who fulfils military
-duty becomes a participant in acts of the State of which he cannot
-approve. Every dynastic and political feud, all the executions
-resulting from such feuds, the crushing of rebellions, the use
-of the military in dispersing mobs, in putting down strikes, all
-extortionate taxation, the injustice of land ownership and the
-limitations of freedom of labor,--all this is done, if not directly
-by the troops, then by the police supported by the troops. He who
-performs his military duty becomes a participant in all these acts,
-about which he often feels more than dubious, and which are in most
-cases directly opposed to his conscience. Men do not wish to leave
-the land which they have tilled for generations; they do not wish to
-disperse on the bidding of the government; they do not wish to pay
-the taxes which are extorted from them; neither do they willingly
-submit to laws which they have not helped to make; they do not wish
-to give up their nationality. And I, if I am performing military
-duty, must come forward and strike these men down. I cannot take
-part in such proceedings without asking myself if they be right. And
-ought I to coperate in carrying them out?
-
-General military conscription is the last step in the process of
-coercion required by governments for the support of the whole
-structure; for subjects it is the extreme limit of obedience. It is
-the keystone of the arch that supports the walls, the abstraction
-of which would destroy the whole fabric. The time has come when
-the ever growing abuses of governments, and their mutual contests,
-have required from all their subjects not only material but moral
-sacrifices, till each man pauses and asks himself, Can I make these
-sacrifices? And for whose sake am I to make them? These sacrifices
-are demanded in the name of the State. In the name of the State I am
-asked to give up all that makes life dear to a man,--peace, family,
-safety, and personal dignity. What, then, is this State in whose
-name such appalling sacrifices are demanded? And of what use is it?
-
-We are told that the State is necessary, in the first place, because
-were it not for that no man would be safe from violence and the
-attacks of wicked men; in the second place, without the State
-we should be like savages, possessing neither religion, morals,
-education, instruction, commerce, means of communication, nor any
-other social institutions; and, in the third place, because without
-the State we should be subject to the invasion of the neighboring
-nations.
-
-"Were it not for the State," we are told, "we should be subjected to
-violence and to the attacks of evil men in our own land."
-
-But who are these evil men from whose violence and attacks the
-government and the army saves us? If such men existed three or
-four centuries ago, when men prided themselves on their military
-skill and strength of arm, when a man proved his valor by killing
-his fellow-men, we find none such at the present time: men of
-our time neither use nor carry weapons, and, believing in the
-precepts of humanity and pity for their neighbors, they are as
-desirous for peace and a quiet life as we are ourselves. Hence this
-extraordinary class of marauders, against whom the State might
-defend us, no longer exists. But if, when they speak of the men
-from whose attacks the government defends us, we understand that
-they mean the criminal classes, in that case we know that they are
-not extraordinary beings, like beasts of prey among sheep, but are
-men very much like ourselves, who are naturally just as reluctant
-to commit crimes as those against whom they commit them. We know
-now that threats and punishments are powerless to decrease the
-numbers of such men, but that their numbers may be decreased by
-change of environment and by moral influence. Hence the theory of
-the necessity of State violence in order to protect mankind against
-evil-doers, if it had any foundation three or four centuries ago,
-has none whatever at the present time. One might say quite the
-reverse nowadays, for the activity of governments, with their
-antiquated and merciless methods of punishment, their galleys,
-prisons, gallows, and guillotines, so far below the general plane
-of morality, tends rather to lower the standard of morals than to
-elevate it, and therefore rather to increase than to lessen the
-number of criminals.
-
-It is said that "without the State there would be no institutions,
-educational, moral, religious, or international; there would be no
-means of communication. Were it not for the State, we should be
-without organizations necessary to all of us."
-
-An argument like this could only have had a basis several centuries
-ago. If there ever was a time when men had so little international
-communication, and were so unused to intercourse or interchange
-of thought that they could not come to an agreement on matters of
-general interest--commercial, industrial, or economical--without
-the assistance of the State, such is not the case at present. The
-widely diffused means of communication and transmission of thought
-have achieved this result,--that when the modern man desires to
-found societies, assemblies, corporations, congresses, scientific,
-economical, or political institutions, not only can he easily
-dispense with the assistance of governments, but in the majority
-of cases governments are more of a hindrance than a help in the
-pursuit of such objects.
-
-Since the end of the last century almost every progressive movement
-on the part of mankind has been not only discouraged, but invariably
-hampered, by governments. Such was the case with the abolition of
-corporal punishment, torture, and slavery; with the establishment
-of freedom of the press and liberty of meeting. Furthermore, State
-authorities and governments nowadays not only do not coperate,
-but they directly hinder the activity by means of which men work
-out new forms of life. The solution of labor and land questions,
-of political and religious problems, is not only unencouraged, but
-distinctly opposed, by the government authority.
-
-"If there were no State and government authority, nations would be
-subjugated by their neighbors."
-
-It is not worth while to answer this last argument. It refutes
-itself.
-
-We are told that the government and its armies are necessary for our
-defense against the neighboring States which might subject us. But
-all the governments say this of one another; and yet we know that
-every European nation professes the same principles of liberty and
-fraternity, and therefore needs no defense against its neighbor.
-But if one speaks of defense against barbarians, then one per cent
-of the troops under arms at the present time would suffice. It is
-not only that the increase of armed force fails to protect us from
-danger of attack from our neighbors, it actually provokes the very
-attack which it deprecates.
-
-Hence no man who reflects on the significance of the State, in
-whose name he is required to sacrifice his peace, his safety, and
-his life, can escape the conviction that there is no longer any
-reasonable ground for such sacrifices.
-
-Even regarding the subject theoretically, a man must realize that
-the sacrifices demanded by the State are without sufficient reason;
-and when he considers the matter from a practical point of view,
-weighing all the different conditions in which he has been placed
-by the State, every man must see that so far as he himself is
-concerned, the fulfilment of the requirements of the State and his
-own subjection to military conscription is indubitably and in every
-case less advantageous for him than if he refused to comply with it.
-If the majority of people prefer obedience to insubordination, it is
-not because they have given the subject dispassionate consideration,
-weighing the advantages and disadvantages, but because they are,
-so to speak, under the influence of hypnotic suggestion. Men
-submit to demands like this without using their reason or making
-the least effort of the will. It requires independent reasoning,
-as well as effort, to refuse submission,--effort which some men
-are incapable of making. But supposing we exclude the moral
-significance of submission and non-submission, and consider only
-their advantages, then non-submission will always prove more
-advantageous than submission. Whoever I may be, whether I belong to
-the well-to-do--the oppressing class--or to the oppressed laboring
-class, in either case the disadvantages of non-submission are less
-numerous than the disadvantages of submission, and the advantages of
-non-submission greater than those of submission.
-
-If I belong to the oppressive, which is the smallest class, and
-refuse to submit to the demands of the government, I shall be tried
-as one who refuses to fulfil his obligations,--I shall be tried, and
-in case my trial terminates favorably, I shall either be declared
-not guilty, or I may be dealt with as they treat the Mennonites
-in Russia--that is, be compelled to serve my term of military
-service by performing some non-military work; if, on the contrary,
-an unfavorable verdict is rendered, I shall be condemned to exile
-or imprisonment for two or three years (I am speaking of cases in
-Russia); or possibly my term of imprisonment may be longer. And I
-may even be condemned to suffer the penalty of death, although that
-is not at all probable. Such are the disadvantages of non-submission.
-
-The disadvantages of submission are as follows:--If I am fortunate
-I shall not be sent to murder men, neither shall I run the risk
-myself of being disabled or killed; they will simply make a military
-slave of me. I shall be arrayed in the garments of a clown; my
-superior officers, from the corporal to the field-marshal, will
-order me about. At their word of command I shall be put through
-a series of gymnastic contortions, and after being detained from
-one to five years I shall be released, but still obliged for ten
-years longer to hold myself in readiness at any moment I may be
-summoned to execute the orders these people give me. And if I am
-less fortunate I shall be sent to the wars, still in the same
-condition of slavery, and there I shall be forced to slay fellow-men
-of other countries who never did me any harm. Or I may be sent to a
-place where I may be mutilated or killed; perhaps find myself, as
-at Sevastopol, sent to certain death; these things happen in every
-war. Worse than all things else, I may be sent to fight against my
-fellow-countrymen, and compelled to kill my own brethren for some
-matter dynastic or governmental, and to me of foreign interest. Such
-are the comparative disadvantages.
-
-The comparative advantages of submission and non-submission are as
-follows:--For him who has submitted the advantages are these: after
-he has subjected himself to all the degradations and committed all
-the cruel deeds required of him, he may, provided he be not killed,
-receive some scarlet or golden bauble to decorate his clown's
-attire; or if he be especially favored, hundreds of thousands of
-just such brutal men like himself may be put under his command, and
-he be called field-marshal, and receive large sums of money.
-
-By refusing to submit he will possess the advantages of preserving
-his manly dignity, of winning the respect of good men, and, above
-all, he will enjoy the assurance that he is doing God's business,
-and therefore an unquestionable benefit to mankind.
-
-Such are the advantages and disadvantages, on either side, for
-the oppressor, a member of the wealthy class. For a man of the
-working-class--a poor man--the advantages and disadvantages
-are about the same, if we include one important addition to
-the disadvantages. The special disadvantage for a man of the
-working-class who has not refused to perform military service is
-that, when he enters the service, his participation and his tacit
-consent go toward confirming the oppression in which he finds
-himself.
-
-But the question concerning the State, whether its continued
-existence is a necessity, or whether it would be wiser to abolish
-it, cannot be decided by discussion on its usefulness for the men
-who are required to support it by taking part in the military
-service, and still less by weighing the comparative advantages and
-disadvantages of submission or non-submission for the individual
-himself. It is decided irrevocably and without appeal by the
-religious consciousness, by the conscience of each individual, to
-whom no sooner does military conscription become a question than it
-is followed by that of the necessity or non-necessity of the State.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII
-
-CERTAINTY OF THE ACCEPTANCE OF THE CHRISTIAN DOCTRINE OF
-NON-RESISTANCE TO EVIL BY VIOLENCE BY THE MEN OF OUR WORLD
-
- Christianity is not a legislation but a new life-conception;
- hence it was not obligatory, nor has it been accepted by all men
- in its full meaning, but only by a few; the rest have accepted
- it in a corrupted form--Moreover, Christianity is a prophecy
- of the disappearance of the pagan life, and therefore of the
- necessity of accepting the Christian doctrine--Non-resistance
- of evil by violence is one of the principles of the Christian
- doctrine which must inevitably be accepted by men at the present
- day--Two methods of solving every struggle--The first method
- consists in believing the general definitions of evil to be
- binding upon all, and to resist this evil by violence--The
- second, the Christian method, consists in not resisting evil
- by violence--Although the failure of the first method was
- recognized in the first centuries of Christianity, it is still
- employed; but as humanity advanced it has become more evident
- that there is not, nor can there be, a general definition of
- evil--Now this has become evident to all, and if the violence
- which is destined to combat evil exists, it is not because it
- is considered necessary, but because men do not know how to
- dispense with it--The difficulty of dispensing with it is due
- to the skilfulness and complexity of political violence--This
- violence is supported by four methods: by threats, bribes,
- hypnotism, and the employment of military force--Deliverance
- from State violence cannot be accomplished by overthrowing
- the State--Through experience of the misery of pagan life men
- are compelled to acknowledge the doctrine of Christ, with its
- non-resistance to evil,--a doctrine which they have hitherto
- ignored--To this same necessity of acknowledging the Christian
- doctrine we are brought by the consciousness of its truth--This
- consciousness is in utter contradiction to our life, and is
- especially evident in regard to general military conscription;
- but, in consequence of habit and the four methods of State
- violence, men do not see this inconsistency of Christianity
- with the duties of a soldier--Men do not see it even when the
- authorities themselves show them plainly all the immorality of
- the duties of a soldier--The call of the general conscription is
- the extreme trial for every man,--the command to choose between
- the Christian doctrine of non-resistance or servile submission
- to the existing organization of the State--Men generally submit
- to the demands of the State organization, renouncing all that
- is sacred, as though there were no other issue--For men of the
- pagan life-conception, indeed, no other issue does exist; they
- are compelled to acknowledge it, regardless of all the dreadful
- calamities of war--Society composed of such men must inevitably
- perish, and no social changes can save it--The pagan life has
- reached its last limits; it works its own destruction.
-
-
-It is frequently said that if Christianity be a truth, it would
-have been accepted by all men on its first appearance, and would
-straightway have changed and improved the lives of men. One might
-as well say that if the seed is alive it must instantly sprout and
-produce its flower or its fruit.
-
-The Christian doctrine is not a law which, being introduced by
-violence, can forthwith change the life of mankind. Christianity
-is a life-conception more lofty and excellent than the ancient;
-and such a new conception of life cannot be enforced; it must be
-adopted voluntarily, and by two processes, the spiritual or interior
-process, and the experimental or external process.
-
-Some men there are--but the smaller proportion--who instantly,
-and as though by prophetic intuition, divine the truth, surrender
-themselves to its influence, and live up to its precepts;
-others--and they are the majority--are brought to the knowledge of
-the truth, and the necessity for its adoption, by a long series of
-errors, by experience and suffering.
-
-It is to this necessity of adopting the doctrine by the external
-process of experience that Christendom has at last arrived.
-
-Now and then one wonders why the mistaken presentment of
-Christianity, which even at the present time prevents men from
-accepting it in its true significance, could have been necessary.
-And yet the very errors, having brought men to their present
-position, have been the medium through which it has become possible
-for the majority to accept Christianity in its true meaning.
-
-If instead of that corrupted form of Christianity which was given
-to the people, it had been offered to them in its purity, the
-greater portion of mankind would have refused it, like the Asiatic
-peoples to whom it is yet unknown. But having once accepted it in
-its corrupted form, the nations embracing it were subjected to its
-slow but sure influence, and by a long succession of errors, and
-the suffering that ensued therefrom, have now been brought to the
-necessity of adopting it in its true meaning.
-
-The erroneous presentation of Christianity, and its acceptance by
-the majority of mankind, with all its errors, was then a necessity,
-just as the seed, if it is to sprout, must for a time be buried in
-the soil.
-
-The Christian doctrine is the doctrine of truth as well as of
-prophecy.
-
-Eighteen hundred years ago the Christian doctrine revealed to men
-the true conduct of life, and at the same time foretold the result
-of disobeying its injunctions and of continuing to pursue their
-former course, guided only by the precepts which were taught before
-the dawn of Christianity; and it also showed them what life may
-become if they accept the Christian doctrine and obey its dictates.
-
-Having taught in the Sermon on the Mount those precepts by which men
-should order their daily lives, Christ said: "Therefore whosoever
-heareth these sayings of mine, and doeth them, I will liken him
-unto a wise man, which built his house upon a rock: and the rain
-descended, and the floods came, and the winds blew, and beat upon
-that house; and it fell not: for it was founded upon a rock. And
-every one that heareth these sayings of mine, and doeth them not,
-shall be likened unto a foolish man, which built his house upon the
-sand: and the rain descended, and the floods came, and the winds
-blew, and beat upon that house; and it fell: and great was the fall
-of it" (Matthew vii. 24-27).
-
-And thus, after eighteen centuries, the prophecy has been fulfilled.
-As the result of the abandonment of Christ's teachings, having
-disregarded the principle of non-resistance to evil, men have
-unwittingly fallen into the condition of imminent peril foretold by
-Christ to those who refused to follow His precepts.
-
-Men often think that the question of resistance or non-resistance to
-evil by violence is an artificial question, which may be evaded. And
-yet this is the question that life presents to mankind in general,
-and to each thinking man in particular, and it is one that must be
-solved. In social life, ever since Christianity was first preached,
-this question has been like the doubt that confronts the traveler
-when he comes to a place where the road which he has followed
-divides, and he knows not which branch to choose. He must pursue
-his way, and he can no longer go on without pausing to deliberate,
-because there are now two roads from which to choose, whereas before
-there was but one; he must make up his mind which he will take.
-
-In like manner, since the doctrine of Christ has been made known to
-men, they can no longer say, I will go on living as I did before,
-without deciding the question of resistance or non-resistance to
-evil by violence. One must decide at the beginning of every fresh
-struggle whether one ought or ought not to resist by violence that
-which one believes to be evil.
-
-The question of resistance or non-resistance of evil by violence
-arose with the first contest among men, for every contest is simply
-the resistance by violence of something which each combatant
-believes to be an evil. But before the time of Christ men did not
-understand that resistance by violence of whatever the individual
-believed to be evil--only the same action which seems evil to one
-man may seem good to another--is simply one mode of settling the
-difficulty, and that the other method consists in not resisting evil
-by violence.
-
-Before the appearance of the doctrine of Christ men believed
-that there could be but one way of deciding the contest, that of
-resisting evil by violence, and acted accordingly, while each
-combatant strove to persuade himself and others that what he
-regarded as evil was in fact the actual and absolute evil. For this
-purpose, dating from the oldest times, men began to invent certain
-definitions of evil which should be obligatory for all, and for the
-purpose of establishing definitions which should be thus binding,
-were issued, either certain laws supposed to have been received in a
-supernatural manner, or commands of individuals or of bodies of men
-to whom an infallible wisdom was ascribed. Men used violence against
-their fellow-men and assured themselves and others that they were
-but using such violence against an evil acknowledged by all.
-
-This was the custom from the most ancient times, particularly among
-men who had usurped authority, and men have been long in seeing its
-baselessness.
-
-But the longer mankind existed the more complex grew its mutual
-relations, and the more evident it became that to resist by violence
-everything that is considered evil is unwise; that the struggle is
-not diminished thereby, and that no human wisdom can ever define an
-infallible standard of evil.
-
-When Christianity first appeared in the Roman Empire it had already
-become evident to most men that whatever Nero or Caligula called
-evil, and sought to overcome by violence, was not necessarily an
-evil for the rest of mankind. Even then men had already begun to
-realize that the human laws for which a divine origin was claimed
-were really written by men; that men cannot be infallible, no
-matter with what external authority they may be invested; and that
-fallible men will not become infallible because they meet together
-and call themselves a Senate, or any other similar name. Even then
-this had been perceived and understood by many. And it was then
-that Christ preached His doctrine, which not only embodied the
-principle of non-resistance, but which revealed a new conception
-of life, of which the application to social life would lead to the
-suppression of strife among men, not by obliging one class to yield
-to whatsoever authority shall ordain, but by forbidding all men, and
-especially those in power, to employ violence against others.
-
-The doctrine was at that time embraced by a very limited number
-of disciples, while the majority of men, particularly those who
-were in authority, although they nominally accepted Christianity,
-continued to follow the practice of resisting by violence whatever
-they regarded as evil. So it was during the times of the Roman and
-Byzantine emperors, and so it went on in later times.
-
-The inconsistency of an authoritative definition of evil and its
-resistance by violence, already apparent in the first centuries
-of Christianity, had grown still more evident at the time of the
-dissolution of the Roman Empire and its subdivision into numerous
-independent states hostile to one another and torn by internal
-dissensions.
-
-But men were not yet ready to accept the law of Christ, and
-the former method of defining an evil to be resisted by the
-establishment of laws, enforced by coercion and binding upon all
-men, continued to be employed. The arbiter, whose office it was
-to decide upon the nature of the evil to be resisted by violence,
-was alternately the Emperor, the Pope, the elected body, or the
-nation at large. But both within and without the State men were
-always to be found who refused to hold themselves bound, either by
-those laws which were supposed to be the expression of the divine
-will, or by the human laws which claimed to manifest the will of
-the people;--men whose views on the subject of evil were quite at
-variance with those of the existing authorities, men who resisted
-the authorities, employing the same methods of violence that had
-been directed against themselves.
-
-Men invested with religious authority would condemn as evil a
-matter which to men and institutions invested with a temporal
-authority commended itself as desirable, and _vice versa_, and more
-and more furious grew the struggle. And the oftener men had recourse
-to violence in settling the difficulty, the more evident it became
-that it was ill chosen, because there is not, nor can there ever be,
-a standard authority of evil to which all mankind would agree.
-
-Thus matters went on for eighteen centuries, and at last arrived at
-their present condition, which is, that no man can dispute the fact
-that an infallible definition of evil will never be made. We have
-reached the point when men have ceased not only to believe in the
-possibility of finding a universal definition which all men will
-admit, but they have even ceased to believe in the necessity of
-such a definition. We have reached the point when men in authority
-no longer seek to prove that that which they consider evil is evil,
-but candidly acknowledge that they consider that to be evil which
-does not please them, and those who are subject to authority obey,
-not because they believe that the definitions of evil made by
-authority are just, but only because they have no power to resist.
-The annexation of Nice to France, Lorraine to Germany, the Czechs
-to Austria, the partition of Poland, the subjection of Ireland and
-India to the English rule, the waging of war against China, the
-slaughter of Africans, the expulsion of the Chinese, the persecution
-of the Jews in Russia, or the derivation of profits by landowners
-from land which they do not cultivate, and by capitalists from the
-results of labor performed by others,--none of all this is done
-because it is virtuous, or because it will benefit mankind and is
-essentially opposed to evil, but because those who hold authority
-will have it so. The result at the present time is this: certain
-men use violence, no longer in the name of resistance to evil, but
-from caprice, or because it is for their advantage; while certain
-other men submit to violence, not because they believe, like those
-of former ages, that violence is used to defend them from evil, but
-simply because they cannot escape it.
-
-If a Roman, or a man of the Middle Ages, or a Russian, such
-a man as I can remember fifty years ago, believed implicitly
-that the existing violence of authority was needed to save him
-from evil,--that taxes, duties, serfdom, prisons, the lash, the
-knout, galleys, executions, military conscription, and wars were
-unavoidable,--it would be difficult to find a man at the present
-time who believes that all the violences committed saves a single
-man from evil; on the contrary, not one could be found who had not
-a distinct assurance that most of the violations to which he is
-subjected, and in which he himself participates, are in themselves a
-great and unprofitable calamity.
-
-There is hardly a man to be found at the present time who fails
-to realize all the uselessness and absurdity of collecting taxes
-from the laboring classes for the purpose of enriching idle
-officials; or the folly of punishing weak and immoral men by exile
-or imprisonment, where, supported as they are, and living in
-idleness, they become still weaker and more depraved; or, again, the
-unspeakable folly and cruelty of those preparations for war, which
-can neither be explained nor justified, and which ruin and imperil
-the safety of nations. Nevertheless these violations continue, and
-the very men who realize and even suffer from their uselessness,
-absurdity, and cruelty, contribute to their encouragement.
-
-If fifty years ago it was possible that the wealthy man of leisure
-and the illiterate laborer should both believe that their positions,
-the one a continual holiday, the other a life of incessant labor,
-were ordained by God--in these days, not only throughout Europe, and
-even in Russia, owing to the activity of the people, the growth of
-education, and the art of printing, it is hardly possible to find
-a man, either rich or poor, who in one way or another would not
-question the justice of such an order of things. Not only do the
-rich realize that the possession of wealth is in itself a fault,
-for which they strive to atone by donations to science and art,
-as formerly they redeemed their sins by endowing churches; but
-even the majority of the laboring class now understand that the
-existing order is false, and should be altered, if not abolished.
-Men who profess religion, of whom we have millions in Russia, the
-so-called sectarians, acknowledge, because they interpret the gospel
-doctrine correctly, that this order of things is false and should
-be destroyed. The working-men consider it false because of the
-socialistic, communistic, or anarchical theories that have already
-found way into their ranks. In these days the principle of violence
-is maintained, not because it is considered necessary, but simply
-because it has been so long in existence, and is so thoroughly
-organized by those who profit by it--that is to say, by the
-governments and ruling classes--that those who are in their power
-find it impossible to escape.
-
-Nowadays every government, the despotic as well as the most
-liberal, has become what Herzen has so cleverly termed a Genghis
-Khan with a telegraphic equipment, that is, with an organization
-of violence, having for basis nothing less than the most brutal
-tyranny, and converting all the means invented by science for the
-inter-communication and peaceful activities of free and equal men to
-its own tyrannous and oppressive ends.
-
-The existing governments and the ruling classes no longer care
-to present even the semblance of justice, but rely, thanks to
-scientific progress, on an organization so ingenious that it is able
-to inclose all men within a circle of violence through which it is
-impossible to break. This circle is made up of four expedients, each
-connected with and supporting the other like the rings of a chain.
-
-The first and the oldest expedient is intimidation. It consists
-in representing the actual organization of the State, whether it
-be that of a liberal republic or of an arbitrary despotism, as
-something sacred and immutable, which therefore punishes by the most
-cruel penalties any attempt at revolution. This expedient has been
-put into practice recently wherever a government exists: in Russia
-against the so-called nihilists, in America against the anarchists,
-in France against the imperialists, monarchists, communists, and
-anarchists. Railroads, telegraphs, telephones, photography, the
-improved method of disposing of criminals by imprisoning them in
-solitary confinement for the remainder of their lives in cells,
-where, hidden from human view, they die forgotten, as well as
-numerous other modern inventions upon which governments have the
-prior claim, give them such power, that if once the authority
-fell into certain hands, and the regular and secret police,
-administrative officials, and all kinds of procureurs, jailers, and
-executioners labored zealously to support it, there would be no
-possibility whatsoever of overthrowing the government, however cruel
-or senseless it might be.
-
-The second expedient is bribery. This consists in taking the
-property of the laboring classes by means of taxation and
-distributing it among the officials, who, in consideration of this,
-are bound to maintain and increase the bondage of the people. The
-bribed officials, from the prime ministers to the lowest scribes,
-form one unbroken chain of individuals, united by a common interest,
-supported by the labor of the people, fulfilling the will of the
-government with a submission proportionate to their gains, never
-hesitating to use any means in any department of business to promote
-the action of that governmental violence on which their well-being
-rests.
-
-The third expedient I can call by no other name than hypnotism.
-It consists in retarding the spiritual development of men, and,
-by means of various suggestions, influencing them to cling to the
-theory of life which mankind has already left behind, and upon
-which rests the foundation of governmental authority. We have at
-the present time a hypnotizing system, organized in a most complex
-manner, beginning in childhood and continued until the hour of
-death. This hypnotism begins during the early years of a man's life
-in a system of compulsory education. Children receive in school
-the same ideas in regard to the universe which their ancestors
-entertained, and which are in direct contradiction to contemporary
-knowledge. In countries where a State religion exists, children
-are taught the senseless and sacrilegious utterances of church
-catechisms, with the duty of obedience to authorities; in the
-republics they are taught the absurd superstition of patriotism,
-and the same obligation of obedience to the government. In maturer
-years this hypnotizing process is continued by the encouragement
-of religious and patriotic superstition. Religious superstition is
-encouraged by the erection of churches built from money collected
-from the people, by holidays, processions, painting, architecture,
-music, by incense that stupefies the brain, and, above all, by
-the maintenance of the so-called clergy, whose duty consists in
-befogging the minds of men and keeping them in a continual state
-of imbecility, what with the solemnity of their services, their
-sermons, their intervention with the private lives of men in time
-of marriage, birth, and death. The patriotic superstition is
-encouraged by the governments and the ruling classes by instituting
-national festivals, spectacles, and holidays, by erecting monuments
-with money collected from the people, which will influence men to
-believe in the exclusive importance and greatness of their own State
-or country and its rulers, and encourage a feeling of hostility
-and even of hatred toward other nations. Furthermore, autocratic
-governments directly forbid the printing and circulation of books
-and the delivery of speeches that might enlighten men; and those
-teachers who have the power to rouse the people from its torpor
-are either banished or imprisoned. And every government, without
-exception, conceals from the masses all that would tend to set them
-free, and encourages all that would demoralize them,--all those
-writings, for instance, that tend to confirm them in the crudeness
-of their religious and patriotic superstition; all kinds of sensual
-pleasures, shows, circuses, theaters; and all means for producing
-physical stupor, especially those, like tobacco or brandy, which are
-among the principal sources of national income. Even prostitution is
-encouraged; it is not only recognized, but organized by the majority
-of governments. Such is the third expedient.
-
-The fourth expedient consists in this: certain individuals are
-selected from among the mass of enslaved and stupefied beings,
-and these, after having been subjected to a still more vigorous
-process of brutalization, are made the passive instruments of the
-cruelties and brutalities indispensable to the government. This
-state of brutality and imbecility is produced by taking men in their
-youth, before they have yet had time to gain any clear conception
-of morality; and then, having removed them from all the natural
-conditions of human life, from home, family, birthplace, and the
-possibility of intelligent labor, by shutting them up together in
-barracks, where, dressed in a peculiar uniform, to the accompaniment
-of shouts, drums, music, and the display of glittering gewgaws, they
-are daily forced to perform certain prescribed evolutions. By these
-methods they are reduced to that hypnotic condition when they cease
-to be men and become imbecile and docile machines in the hands of
-the hypnotizer. These physically strong young men thus hypnotized
-(and at the present time, with the general conscription system,
-all young men answer to this description), supplied with murderous
-weapons, ever obedient to the authority of the government, and ready
-at its command to commit any violence whatsoever, constitute the
-fourth and the principal means for subjugating men. So the circle of
-violence is completed.
-
-Intimidation, bribery, and hypnotism force men to become soldiers;
-soldiers give power and make it possible to execute and to rob
-mankind (with the aid of bribed officials), as well as to hypnotize
-and to recruit men who are in their turn to become soldiers.
-
-The circle is complete, and there is no possibility of escape from
-it.
-
-If some men believe that deliverance from violence, or even a
-certain abatement of its energy, may be the result of its overthrow
-by the oppressed, who will then replace it by a system which will
-require no such violence and subjugation, and if, so believing,
-they attempt to bring this about, they only deceive themselves and
-others. So far from improving the position, these attempts will only
-render things worse.
-
-The activity of such men only strengthens the despotism of
-governments by giving the latter a convenient pretext for increasing
-their defenses. For even when, following a train of circumstances
-highly demoralizing to the government,--take the case of France
-in 1870, for example,--a government is overthrown by violence
-and the authority passes into other hands, this new authority
-is by no means likely to be less oppressive than the former. On
-the contrary, obliged to defend itself from its exasperated and
-overthrown enemies, it will be even more cruel and despotic than its
-predecessor, as has ever been the case in periods of revolution.
-
-If socialists and communists believe that the possession of
-individual capital is a pernicious influence in society, and
-anarchists regard government itself as an evil, there are, on the
-other hand, monarchists, conservatives, and capitalists who look
-upon the social and communal state as an evil order of society,
-no less than anarchy itself; and all these parties have nothing
-better to offer by way of reconciling mankind than violence. Thus,
-whichever party gains the upper hand, it will be forced, in order
-to introduce and maintain its own system, not only to avail itself
-of all former methods of violence, but to invent new ones as well.
-It simply means a change of slavery with new victims and a new
-organization; but the violence will remain,--nay, increase,--because
-human hatred, intensified by the struggle, will devise new means
-for reducing the conquered to subjection. This has always been the
-result of every revolution and violent overthrow of government. Each
-struggle serves but to increase the power of those in authority at
-the time to enslave their fellow-men.
-
-One domain of human activity, and only one, has hitherto escaped
-the encroachments of the governments--the domain of the family,
-the economical domain of private life and domestic labor. But now
-even this domain, in consequence of the struggle of socialists and
-communists, is gradually passing into the hands of the governments,
-so that labor and recreation, the dwellings, clothes, and food of
-the people will by degrees, if the desires of the reformers are
-accomplished, be determined and regulated by the government.
-
-The long experiment of Christian life by nation after nation, during
-eighteen centuries, has inevitably brought men to the necessity
-of deciding whether the doctrine of Christ is to be accepted or
-refused, and of deciding, too, the question of social life dependent
-thereupon,--the resistance or non-resistance of evil by violence.
-But there is this difference,--that formerly men could either accept
-or reject the decision given by Christianity, whereas now it has
-become imperative, because it affords the sole means of deliverance
-from that condition of slavery in which, as in a net, men find
-themselves entangled.
-
-Nor is it alone this sad plight that brings them to this necessity.
-
-Parallel with the negative proof of the falsehood of the pagan
-order of things there has been positive proof of the truth of the
-Christian doctrine.
-
-Indeed, in the course of the eighteen centuries, the best men in all
-Christendom, through an inner spiritual medium, having recognized
-the truths of the doctrine, have borne witness of it, regardless of
-threats, privations, miseries, and torture. These nobler men, by
-their martyrdom, have sealed the truth of the doctrine.
-
-Christianity penetrated into human consciousness, not alone by the
-method of negative proof, that, namely, it had become impossible to
-go on with the pagan life; but by its simplifying process, by its
-explanation of, and its deliverance from, superstition, and by its
-consequent spread among all classes of society.
-
-Eighteen centuries of the profession of Christianity have not
-passed in vain for those who accepted it, even if it were but in
-outward form. These eighteen centuries have made men realize all
-the miseries of the pagan state, even though they have continued
-to lead a pagan existence, out of harmony with an age of humanity;
-and at the bottom of their hearts they believe now (and herein
-lies the only reason for living at all) that salvation from such
-an existence can be found in the fulfilment of the Christian
-doctrine in its true sense. As to when and where this salvation is
-to be accomplished, opinions differ, according to the intellectual
-development of men and the prejudices among which they live; but
-every educated man recognizes that our salvation is to be found
-in the fulfilment of the Christian doctrine. Certain believers,
-those who consider the Christian doctrine divine, affirm that this
-salvation will be accomplished when all men believe in Christ and
-the time of the second advent approaches; others, who also have
-faith in the divinity of Christ's doctrine, believe that this
-salvation will come through the churches, which, having got all
-men within the fold, will implant in their hearts those Christian
-virtues which will transform their lives. Others, again, who do
-not accept the divinity of Christ, believe that the salvation of
-men will be accomplished by means of a slow, continuous progress,
-during which the groundwork of pagan life will be gradually replaced
-by the groundwork of liberty, equality, and fraternity--that is,
-by the basis of Christianity. Still others there are who preach a
-new social organization, and who believe that this salvation will
-be brought about when, by means of a violent revolution, men are
-forced to a community of goods, to the abolition of governments, to
-collective rather than individual labor--that is, by the realization
-of one of the aspects of Christianity. Thus, after one fashion
-or another, all men of our epoch not only renounce the existing
-order of life as no longer suited to the times, but acknowledge,
-often without realizing it, and regarding themselves as enemies of
-Christianity, that our salvation lies only in the adaptation to life
-of a whole or a part of the Christian doctrine in its true sense.
-
-For the majority of men Christianity, as its Teacher has expressed
-it, could not be comprehended at once, but was to grow, like unto a
-huge tree, from the tiniest seed. "The kingdom of heaven is like to
-a grain of mustard seed, ... which indeed is the least of all seeds:
-but when it is grown, it is the greatest among herbs, and becometh
-a tree." And thus it has grown and continues to grow, if not in
-manifestation, then in human consciousness.
-
-It is no longer reserved for the minority of men, who have
-always understood Christianity by its veritable truth; but it is
-acknowledged by the great majority, who, if we are to judge by their
-social life, are far removed from it.
-
-Look at the private life of individuals, listen to their estimation
-of human actions as they pronounce judgment on each other; listen
-not only to public sermons and orations, but to the precepts which
-parents and teachers offer to their charges, and you will see that,
-however far removed from the practice of Christian truths may be the
-political or social existence of men who are in bonds to violence,
-yet Christian virtues are admired and exalted by all; while, on the
-contrary, the anti-Christian vices are unhesitatingly condemned
-as harmful to all mankind. Those who sacrifice their lives in the
-service of humanity are looked upon as the better men; while those
-who take advantage of the misfortune of their neighbors to further
-their own selfish interests are universally condemned.
-
-There may still be men who, insensible to Christian ideals, have set
-up for themselves other ideals, such as power, courage, or wealth;
-but these ideals are passing away; they are not accepted by all, nor
-by the men of the better class. Indeed, the Christian ideals are the
-only ones which are recognized as obligatory for all.
-
-The position of our Christian world, looked at from without, with
-its cruelty and slavery, is indeed appalling. But if we consider
-it from the standpoint of human consciousness, it presents a very
-different aspect. All the evil of our life seems to exist only
-because it always has existed from all ages, and the men whose
-actions are evil have had neither the time nor the experience to
-overcome their evil habits, although all are willing to abandon
-them. Evil seems to exist by reason of some cause apparently
-independent of the consciousness of men.
-
-Strange and contradictory as it may seem, modern men hate the very
-order of things which they themselves support.
-
-I believe it is Max Mller who describes the astonishment of an
-Indian converted to Christianity, who, having apprehended the
-essence of the Christian doctrine, came to Europe and beheld the
-life of Christians. He could not recover from his astonishment in
-the presence of the reality, so different from the state of things
-he had expected to find among Christian nations.
-
-If we are not surprised at the contradiction between our convictions
-and our actions, it is only because the influences which obscure
-this contradiction act upon us. We have but to look at our life
-from the standpoint of the Indian, who understood Christianity in
-its true significance, without any concessions or adaptations, and
-to behold the barbarous cruelties with which our life is filled, in
-order to be horrified at the contradictions in the midst of which we
-live, without noticing them.
-
-One has but to remember the preparations for war, the
-cartridge-boxes, the silver-plated bullets, the torpedoes, and--the
-Red Cross; the establishment of prisons for solitary confinement,
-experiments with _electrocution_, and--the care for the welfare of
-the prisoners; the philanthropic activity of the rich, and--their
-daily life, which brings about the existence of the poor, whom they
-seek to benefit. And these contradictions arise, not, as it might
-seem, because men pretend to be Christians while they are actually
-heathens, but because they lack something, or because there is some
-power which prevents them from being what they really desire to
-be, and what they even conscientiously believe themselves to be.
-It is not that modern men merely pretend to hate oppression, the
-inequality of class distinctions, and all kinds of cruelty, whether
-practised against their fellow-men or against animals. They _are_
-sincere in their hatred of these abuses; but they do not know how
-to abolish them, or they lack the courage to alter their own mode
-of life, which depends upon all this, and which seems to them so
-important.
-
-Ask, indeed, any individual if he considers it praiseworthy or
-even honorable for a man to fill a position for which he receives
-a salary so high as to be out of all proportion to the amount of
-his labor, as, for instance, that of collecting from the people,
-often from beggars, taxes which are to be devoted to the purchase
-of cannon, torpedoes, and other instruments for murdering the men
-with whom we wish to live in peace, and who wish to live in peace
-with us; or, to receive a salary for spending his life either
-in perfecting these instruments of murder, or in the military
-exercises by which men are trained for slaughter? Ask whether it
-be praiseworthy or compatible with the dignity of man, or becoming
-to a Christian, to undertake, also for money, to arrest some
-unfortunate man, some illiterate drunkard, for some petty theft not
-to be compared with the magnitude of our own appropriation, or for
-manslaughter not conducted by our advanced methods; and for such
-offenses to throw people into prison, or put them to death? Ask
-whether it be laudable and becoming in a man and a Christian, also
-for money, to teach the people foolish and injurious superstitions
-instead of the doctrine of Christ? Whether, again, it be laudable
-and worthy of a man to wrench from his neighbor, in order to
-gratify his own caprice, the very necessaries of life, as the great
-landowners do; or to exact from his fellow-man an excessive and
-exhausting toil for the purpose of increasing his own wealth, as
-the mill-owners and manufacturers do; or to take advantage of human
-necessities to build up colossal fortunes, as the merchants do?
-
-Every individual would reply not, especially if the question
-regarded his neighbor. And at the same time the very man who
-acknowledges all the ignominy of such deeds, when the case is
-presented to him, will often, of his own accord, and for no
-advantage of a salary, but moved by childish vanity, the desire to
-possess a trinket of enamel, a decoration, a stripe, voluntarily
-enter the military service, or become an examining magistrate, a
-justice of the peace, a minister of state, an _uriadnik_, a bishop,
-accepting an office whose duties will oblige him to do things, the
-shame and ignominy of which he cannot help realizing.
-
-Many of these men will, I am sure, defend themselves on the ground
-of the lawfulness and necessity of their position; they will argue
-that the authorities are of God, that the functions of State are
-indispensable for the good of mankind, that Christianity is not
-opposed to wealth, that the rich youth was bidden to give up his
-goods only if he wished to be perfect, that the present distribution
-of wealth and commerce is beneficial to all men, and that it
-is right and lawful. But however much they may try to deceive
-themselves and others, they all know that what they do is opposed to
-the highest interests of life, and at the bottom of their hearts,
-when they listen only to their consciences, they are ashamed and
-pained to think of what they are doing, especially when the baseness
-of their deeds has been pointed out to them. A man in modern life,
-whether he does or does not profess to believe in the divinity
-of Christ, must know that to be instrumental either as a czar,
-minister, governor, or policeman, as in selling a poor family's last
-cow to pay taxes to the treasury, the money of which is devoted to
-the purchase of cannon or to pay the salaries or pensions of idle
-and luxurious officials, is to do more harm than good; or to be
-a party to the imprisonment of the father of a family, for whose
-demoralization we are ourselves responsible, and to bring his family
-to beggary; or to take part in piratical and murderous warfare;
-or to teach absurd superstitions of idol-worship instead of the
-doctrine of Christ; or to impound a stray cow belonging to a man
-who has no land; or to deduct the value of an accidentally injured
-article from the wages of a mechanic; or to sell something to a poor
-man for double its value, only because he is in dire necessity;--the
-men of our modern life cannot but know that all such deeds are
-wrong, shameful, and that they ought not to commit them. They do all
-know it. They know that they are doing wrong, and would abstain from
-it, had they but the strength to oppose those forces which blind
-them to the criminality of their actions while drawing them on to do
-wrong.
-
-But there is nothing that demonstrates so vividly the degree of
-contradiction to which human life has attained as the system that
-embodies both the method and the expression of violence,--the
-general conscription system. It is only because a general armament
-and military conscription have come imperceptibly and by slow
-degrees, and that governments employ for their support all the means
-of intimidation at their disposal,--bribery, bewilderment, and
-violence,--that we do not realize the glaring contradiction between
-this state of affairs and those Christian feelings and ideas with
-which all modern men are penetrated.
-
-This contradiction has become so common that we fail to see the
-shocking imbecility and immorality of the actions, not only of
-those men who, of their own accord, choose the profession of murder
-as something honorable, but of those unfortunates who consent to
-serve in the army, and of those who, in countries where military
-conscription has not yet been introduced, give of their own free
-will the fruits of their labor to be used for the payment of
-mercenaries and for the organization for murder. All these men are
-either Christians or men professing humanitarianism and liberalism,
-who know that they participate in the most imbecile, aimless, and
-cruel murders; yet still they go on committing them. But this
-is not all. In Germany, where the system of general military
-conscription originated, Caprivi has revealed something that has
-always been carefully hidden: that the men who run the risk of
-being killed are not only foreigners, but are quite as likely to
-be fellow-countrymen,--working-men,--from which class most of the
-soldiers are obtained. Nevertheless, this admission neither opened
-men's eyes nor shocked their sensibilities. They continue just as
-they did before, to go like sheep, and submit to anything that
-is demanded of them. And this is not all. The German Emperor has
-recently explained with minute precision the character and vocation
-of a soldier, having distinguished, thanked, and rewarded a private
-for killing a defenseless prisoner who attempted to escape. In
-thanking and rewarding a man for an act which is looked upon even
-by men of the lowest type of morality as base and cowardly, Wilhelm
-pointed out that the principal duty of a soldier, and one most
-highly prized by the authorities, is that of an executioner,--not
-like the professional executioners who put to death condemned
-prisoners only, but an executioner of the innocent men whom his
-superiors order him to kill.
-
-Yet more. In 1891 this same Wilhelm, the _enfant terrible_ of State
-authority, who expresses what other men only venture to think, in a
-talk with certain soldiers, uttered publicly the following words,
-which were repeated the next day in thousands of papers:--
-
-"Recruits! You have given _me_ the oath of allegiance before the
-altar and the servant of the Lord. You are still too young to
-comprehend the true meaning of what has been said here, but first of
-all take care ever to follow the orders and instructions that are
-given to you. You have taken the oath of allegiance to _me_; this
-means, children of my guards, that you are now _my_ soldiers, that
-you have given yourselves up to me, body and soul.
-
-"But one enemy exists for you--_my_ enemy. With the present
-socialistic intrigues _it may happen that I shall command you to
-shoot your own relatives, your brothers, even your parents_ (from
-which may God preserve us!), _and then you are in duty bound to obey
-my orders unhesitatingly_."
-
-This man expresses what is known, but carefully concealed, by all
-wise rulers. He says outright that the men who serve in the army
-serve _him_and _his_ advantage, and should be ready for that purpose
-to kill their brothers and fathers.
-
-Roughly but distinctly he lays bare all the horror of the crime
-for which men who become soldiers prepare themselves,--all that
-abyss of self-abasement into which they fling themselves when they
-promise obedience. Like a bold hypnotizer, he tests the depth of the
-slumber; he applies red-hot iron to the sleeper's body; it smokes
-and shrivels, but the sleeper does not awaken.
-
-Poor, sick, miserable man, intoxicated with power, who by these
-words insults all that is sacred to men of modern civilization!
-And we, Christians, liberals, men of culture, so far from feeling
-indignant at this insult, pass it over in silence. Men are put to
-the final test in its rudest form; but they hardly observe that a
-test is in question, that a choice is put before them. It seems
-to them as if there were no choice, but only the one necessity
-of slavish submission. It would seem as if these insane words,
-offensive to all that a civilized human being holds sacred, ought
-to rouse indignation,--but nothing of the kind happens. Year after
-year every young man in Europe is subjected to the same test, and
-with very few exceptions they all forswear what is and should be
-sacred to every man; all manifest a readiness to kill their brothers
-and even their fathers, at the order of the first misguided man who
-wears a red and gold livery, asking only when and whom they are to
-be ordered to kill--for they are ready to do it.
-
-Even by savages certain objects are held sacred, for whose sake
-they are ready to suffer rather than submit. But what is sacred for
-the man of the modern world? He is told: Be my slave, in a bondage
-where you may have to murder your own father; and he, oftentimes a
-man of learning, who has studied all the sciences in the university,
-submissively offers his neck to the halter. He is dressed in a
-clown's garments, ordered to leap, to make contortions, to salute,
-to kill--and he submissively obeys; and when at last allowed to
-return to his former life, he continues to hold forth on the dignity
-of man, freedom, equality, and brotherhood.
-
-"But what is to be done?" we often hear men ask in perplexity. "If
-every man were to refuse, it would be a different matter; but, as it
-is, I should suffer alone without benefiting any one." And they are
-right; for a man who holds the social life-conception cannot refuse.
-Life has no significance for him except as it concerns his personal
-welfare; it is for his advantage to submit, therefore he does so.
-
-To whatever torture or injury he may be subjected he will submit,
-because he can do nothing alone; he lacks the foundation which
-alone would enable him to resist violence, and those who are in
-authority over him will never give him the chance of uniting with
-others.
-
-It has often been said that the invention of the terrible military
-instruments of murder will put an end to war, and that war will
-exhaust itself. This is not true. As it is possible to increase the
-means for killing men, so it is possible to increase the means for
-subjecting those who hold the social life-conception. Let them be
-exterminated by thousands and millions, let them be torn to pieces,
-men will still continue like stupid cattle to go to the slaughter,
-some because they are driven thither under the lash, others that
-they may win the decorations and ribbons which fill their hearts
-with pride.
-
-And it is with material like this that the public
-leaders--conservatives, liberals, socialists, anarchists--discuss
-the ways and means of organizing an intelligent and moral society,
-with men who have been so thoroughly confused and bewildered
-that they will promise to murder their own parents. What kind of
-intelligence and morality can there be in a society organized from
-material like this? Just as it is impossible to build a house
-from bent and rotten timber, however manipulated, so also is it
-impossible with such materials to organize an intelligent and moral
-society. They can only be governed like a drove of cattle, by the
-shouts and lash of the herdsman. And so, indeed, they are governed.
-
-Again, while on the one hand we find men, Christians in name,
-professing the principles of liberty, equality, and fraternity, on
-the other hand we see these same men ready, in the name of liberty,
-to yield the most abject and slavish obedience; in the name of
-equality, to approve of the most rigid and senseless subdivision of
-men into classes; and in the name of fraternity, ready to slay their
-own brothers.[14]
-
- [14] The fact that some nations, like the English and American, have
- no general conscription system (although one hears already voices in
- its favor), but a system of recruiting and hiring soldiers, nowise
- alters the case as regards the slavery of the citizens under the
- government. In the former system every man must go himself to kill
- or be killed; in the latter, he must give the proceeds of his labor
- to employ and drill murderers.
-
-The contradiction of the moral consciousness, and hence the misery
-of life, has reached its utmost limit, beyond which it can go no
-further. Life, based on principles of violence, has culminated in
-the negation of the basis on which it was founded. The organization,
-on principles of violence, of a society whose object was to insure
-the happiness of the individual and the family, and the social
-welfare of humanity, has brought men to such a pass that these
-benefits are practically annulled.
-
-The first part of the prophecy in regard to those men and their
-descendants who adopted this doctrine has been fulfilled, and now
-their descendants are forced to realize the justice of its second
-part.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX
-
-THE ACCEPTANCE OF THE CHRISTIAN LIFE-CONCEPTION DELIVERS MEN FROM
-THE MISERIES OF OUR PAGAN LIFE
-
- The external life of Christian nations remains pagan, but they
- are already penetrated by the Christian life-conception--The
- issue from this contradiction is in the acceptance of the
- Christian life-conception--In it alone is every man free, and
- it alone frees him from all human authority--This deliverance
- is brought about, not by a change of external conditions,
- but only by a change in the conception of one's life--The
- Christian life-conception demands the renunciation of violence,
- and, in delivering the man who accepts it, it frees the world
- from all external authority--The issue from the present
- apparently hopeless position consists in every man accepting
- the Christian life-conception and living accordingly--But
- men consider this method too slow, and see their salvation
- in change of the material conditions of life made with the
- aid of the authority of the State--This method will have no
- issue, because men themselves cause the evil from which they
- suffer--This is especially evident in regard to the submissive
- acceptance of military duty, for it is more advantageous for
- a man to refuse than accept--Human freedom will be brought
- about only through the liberation of each individual man, and
- already there are signs of this liberation, which threatens to
- destroy State organization--The repudiation of the un-Christian
- demands of governments undermines their authority and makes
- men free--Therefore instances of such refusals are feared by
- governments more than conspiracies or violence--Instances, in
- Russia, of refusals to take the oath of allegiance, to pay
- taxes, to accept passports or positions in the police, to take
- part in courts of law, or to be drafted as soldiers--Similar
- instances in other countries--Governments know not how to
- dispose of men who refuse to obey their requirements because of
- the Christian doctrine--These men destroy without a struggle
- the foundations of governments from the inside--To punish them
- would mean for governments to deny Christianity themselves, and
- to contribute to the diffusion of that consciousness from which
- such refusals spring--Hence the position of governments is a
- desperate one, and men who preach the uselessness of personal
- deliverance only arrest the destruction of the existing system
- of government founded on violence.
-
-
-The Christian nations of the present day are in a position no less
-cruel than that of pagan times. In many respects, especially in the
-matter of oppression, their position has grown worse.
-
-A contrast like that of modern and ancient times may be seen in the
-vegetation of the last days of autumn as compared with that of the
-early days of spring. In the autumn the outward decay and death
-correspond to the interior process, which is the suspension of life;
-in the spring the apparent lifelessness is in direct contradiction
-to the real vitality within, and the approaching transition to new
-forms of life.
-
-And thus it is as regards the apparent resemblance between pagan
-life and that of the present day. It exists only in appearance. The
-inner lives of men in the times of paganism were quite unlike those
-of the men of our days.
-
-In the former the external aspect of cruelty and slavery
-corresponded with the inner consciousness of men, a conformity which
-only increased as time went on; in the latter the external condition
-of cruelty and slavery is in utter contradiction to the Christian
-consciousness of men, a contradiction which grows more and more
-striking every year.
-
-The misery and suffering resulting therefrom seem so useless. It is
-like prolonged suffering in child-labor. Everything is ready for the
-coming life, and yet no life appears.
-
-Apparently the situation is without deliverance. It would indeed
-be so were it not that to men, and therefore to the world, there
-has been vouchsafed the capacity for a loftier conception of life,
-which has the power to set free, and at once, from all fetters,
-however firmly riveted.
-
-And this is the Christian life-conception presented to men 1800
-years ago.
-
-A man has but to assimilate this life-conception and he will be set
-free, as a matter of course, from the fetters that now restrain him,
-and feel free as a bird who spreads his wings and flies over the
-wall that has kept him a prisoner.
-
-They talk of setting the Christian Church free from the State, of
-granting freedom to or withholding it from Christians. Such thoughts
-and expressions are strangely misleading. Liberty can neither be
-granted to nor withheld from a Christian or Christians.
-
-But if there is a question of granting or withholding liberty, then
-evidently it is not the true Christians who are meant, but only men
-who call themselves by that name. A Christian cannot help being
-free, because in the pursuit and attainment of his object no one can
-either hinder or retard him.
-
-A man has but to understand his life as Christianity teaches him to
-understand it; that is, he must realize that it does not belong to
-himself, nor to his family, nor to the State, but to Him who sent
-him into the world; he must therefore know that it is his duty to
-live, not in accordance with the law of his own personality, nor of
-that of his family or State, but to fulfil the infinite law of Him
-who gave him life, in order to feel himself so entirely free from
-all human authority that he will cease to regard it as a possible
-obstacle.
-
-A man needs but to realize that the object of his life is the
-fulfilment of God's law; then the preminence of that law, claiming
-as it does his entire allegiance, will of necessity invalidate the
-authority and restrictions of all human laws.
-
-The Christian who contemplates that law of love implanted in every
-human soul, and quickened by Christ, the only guide for all mankind,
-is set free from human authority.
-
-A Christian may suffer from external violence, may be deprived of
-his personal freedom, may be a slave to his passions,--the man who
-commits sin is the slave of the sin,--but he cannot be controlled
-or coerced by threats into committing an act contrary to his
-consciousness. He cannot be forced to this, because the privations
-and sufferings that are so powerful an influence over men who hold
-the social life-conception have no influence whatever over him. The
-privations and sufferings that destroy the material welfare which is
-the object of the social life-conception produce no effect upon the
-welfare of the Christian's life, which rests on the consciousness
-that he is doing God's will--nay, they may even serve to promote
-that welfare when they are visited upon him for fulfilling that will.
-
-A Christian, therefore, who submits to the inner, the divine law,
-is not only unable to execute the biddings of the outward law when
-they are at variance with his consciousness of God's law of love,
-as in the case of the demands made upon him by the government; but
-he cannot acknowledge the obligation of obeying any individual
-whomsoever, cannot acknowledge himself to be what is called a
-subject. For a Christian to promise to subject himself to any
-government whatsoever--a subjection which may be considered the
-foundation of State life--is a direct negation of Christianity;
-since an individual who promises beforehand to obey implicitly every
-law that men may enact, by that promise utters an emphatic denial of
-Christianity, whose very essence is obedience in all contingencies
-to the law which he feels to be within him--the law of love.
-
-With the pagan life-conception it was possible to promise to obey
-the will of temporal authorities without violating the laws of
-God, which were supposed to consist in carrying out such customs
-as circumcision, the observance of the Sabbath, the utterance of
-prayer at certain periods, abstinence from certain kinds of food,
-etc. The one did not contradict the other. But Christianity differs
-from paganism inasmuch as its requirements are not of an external
-or negative character; on the contrary, they are such as reverse
-man's former relations toward his fellow-men, and may call for
-acts on his part which could not be anticipated, and consequently
-are not defined. Hence it is that a Christian can neither promise
-to obey nor to disobey the will of another, ignorant as he must
-be of the nature of its requirements; not only must he refuse to
-obey human laws, but he cannot promise to do or abstain from doing
-anything definite at any given time, because he can never tell at
-what hour or in what manner the Christian law of love, on which his
-life-conception is based, will demand his coperation. A Christian,
-promising in advance to obey unconditionally the laws of men, admits
-by that promise that the inner law of God does not constitute for
-him the sole law of his life.
-
-When a Christian promises to obey the commands or laws of men, he
-is like a craftsman who, having hired himself out to one master,
-promises at the same time to execute the orders of other persons. No
-man can serve two masters.
-
-A Christian is freed from human authority by acknowledging
-the supremacy of one authority alone, that of God, whose law,
-revealed to him through Christ, he recognizes within himself, and
-obeys,--that and no other.
-
-And this deliverance is accomplished neither by means of a struggle,
-nor by the destruction of previous customs of life, but only through
-a change in his life-conception. The deliverance proceeds, in the
-first place, from the Christian's acknowledgment of the law of love,
-as revealed to him by his Teacher, which suffices to determine the
-relations of men, and according to which every act of violence seems
-superfluous and unlawful. Secondly, because those privations and
-miseries, or the anticipations of such, which influence a man who
-holds the social life-conception and reduces him to obedience, seem
-to him no more than the inevitable consequences of existence, which
-he would never dream of opposing by violence, but bears patiently,
-as he would bear disease, hunger, or any other misery; which,
-indeed, have no possible influence over his actions. The Christian's
-only guide must be the divine indwelling element, subject neither to
-restriction nor to control.
-
-A Christian lives in accordance with the words spoken by the Master:
-"He shall not strive, nor cry; neither shall any man hear his voice
-in the streets. A bruised reed shall he not break, and smoking flax
-shall he not quench, _till he send forth judgment unto victory_."[15]
-
- [15] Matthew xii. 19, 20.
-
-A Christian enters into no dispute with his neighbor, he neither
-attacks nor uses violence; on the contrary, he suffers violence
-himself without resistance, and by his very attitude toward evil not
-only sets himself free, but helps to free the world at large from
-all outward authority.
-
-"And ye shall know the truth, and the truth shall make you
-free."[16] If there were any doubt of the truth of Christianity
-there could be no more indubitable proof of its authenticity than
-the complete freedom, recognizing no fetters, which a man feels as
-soon as he assimilates the Christian life-conception.
-
- [16] John viii. 32.
-
-Human beings in their present condition may be likened to bees in
-the act of swarming, as we see them clinging in a mass to a single
-bough. Their position is a temporary one, and must inevitably be
-changed. They must rise and find themselves a new abode. Every bee
-knows this, and is eager to shift its own position, as well as that
-of the others, but not one of them will do so until the whole swarm
-rises. The swarm cannot rise, because one bee clings to the other
-and prevents it from separating itself from the swarm, and so they
-all continue to hang. It might seem as if there were no deliverance
-from this position, precisely as it seems to men of the world who
-have become entangled in the social net. Indeed, there would be no
-outlet for the bees if each one were not a living creature possessed
-of a pair of wings. Neither would there be any issue for men if
-each one were not a living individual, being gifted with a capacity
-for assimilating the Christian life-conception.
-
-If among these bees who are able to fly not one could be found
-willing to start, the swarm would never change its position. And it
-is the same among men. If the man who has assimilated the Christian
-life-conception waits for others before he proceeds to live in
-accordance with it, mankind will never change its attitude. And as
-all that is needed to change a solid mass of bees into a flying
-swarm is for one bee to spread its wings and fly away, when the
-second, the third, the tenth, and the hundredth will follow suit; so
-all that is needed to break through the magic circle of social life,
-deliverance from which seems so hopeless, is, that one man should
-view life from a Christian standpoint and begin to frame his own
-life accordingly, whereupon others will follow in his footsteps.
-
-But men think that the deliverance of mankind by this method is
-too slow a process, and that a simultaneous deliverance might be
-effected by some other method. Just as if bees, when the swarm was
-ready to rise, were to decide that it would be too long a process if
-they waited for each bee to spread its wings and rise separately,
-and that some means must be devised whereby the swarm may rise all
-at once, whenever it pleases. But that is impossible. Not until the
-first, second, third, and hundredth bee has unfolded its wings and
-flown away can the swarm take flight and find for itself a new home.
-Not until each individual man adopts the Christian life-conception,
-and begins to live in conformity with its precepts, will the
-contradictions of human life be solved, and new forms of life become
-established.
-
-One of the most striking events of our time is the propaganda
-of slavery which is spread among the masses, not only by the
-government, to whom it is of use, but by those exponents of
-socialistic theories who consider themselves the champions of
-freedom.
-
-These men preach that the amelioration in the conditions of life,
-the reconciliation between actuality and consciousness, will not be
-brought about by the personal efforts of individual men, but that it
-will evolve itself out of a certain forced reorganization of society
-by some unknown influence. Their theory is that men should not
-proceed of their own accord to the place where they wish to go, but
-that they should have a platform built under their feet, upon which
-they may be carried to the spot they desire to reach. Hence they
-must not move as far as their strength will permit, but all their
-efforts must be directed toward building this imaginary platform
-without stirring from their position.
-
-There is a theory in economics preached in these days of which the
-essential principle is this: the worse the condition of affairs,
-the better the prospect; the greater the accumulation of capital
-and oppression of the working-man resulting therefrom, the nearer
-the day of deliverance; and therefore any effort on the part of
-the individual to free himself from the oppression of capital is
-useless. In regard to the government it is declared that the greater
-its authority, which, according to this theory, should include the
-domain of private life, hitherto uninvaded, the better it will be,
-and hence one should solicit the interference of governments with
-private life. In regard to international politics, it is declared
-that the increase of armies and modes of extermination will lead
-to the necessity of a general disarmament through the agency of
-congresses, arbitration, etc. And the most surprising part of all is
-that human lethargy is so profound that men credit these theories,
-although the whole structure of life, and every stage in human
-progress, demonstrate their fallacy.
-
-Men suffer from oppression, and by way of deliverance certain
-expedients are suggested for the improvement of their condition,
-these means of relief to be administered by authority, to which they
-continue to submit. This will naturally tend to augment authority
-and to increase the consequent oppression of government.
-
-Of all the errors of humanity there is none that so retards its
-progress as this. Men will do anything in the world to achieve their
-purpose save the one simple deed, which it is every man's duty to
-perform. Men will invent the most ingenious devices for changing the
-position which is burdensome to them, but never dream of the simple
-remedy of abstaining from the acts which cause it.
-
-I was told of an incident which happened to an intrepid _stanovoy_,
-who, on arriving in a village where the peasants had revolted, and
-whither troops had been sent, undertook, like the Emperor Nicholas
-I., to quell the disturbance by his personal influence. He ordered
-several loads of rods to be brought, and having gathered all the
-peasants into the barn, he entered himself, shut himself in with
-them, and so terrified them by his shouts and threats that in
-compliance with his commands they began to flog each other. And so
-they went on flogging one another until some fool revolted, and,
-shouting to his comrades, bade them leave off. It was not until then
-that the flogging ceased, and the _stanovoy_ escaped from the barn.
-
-It is this very advice of the fool that men who believe in the
-necessity of civil government seem unable to follow. They are unable
-to stop punishing themselves, and setting an absurd example for
-others to imitate. Such is the consummation of merely human wisdom.
-
-Is it possible, indeed, to imagine a more striking imitation of
-those men flogging one another than the meekness with which the
-men of these days fulfil those social duties that lead them into
-bondage, especially the military conscription? It is clear that men
-enslave themselves; they suffer from this slavery, and yet they
-believe it inevitable; they also believe that it will not affect
-the ultimate emancipation of mankind, which they declare the final
-outcome, in spite of the fact that slavery is ever increasing.
-
-The man of modern times, whoever he may be (I do not mean a true
-Christian), educated or ignorant, a believer or an unbeliever, rich
-or poor, married or single, does his work, takes his pleasures, and
-dreads all restrictions and privations, all enmity and suffering.
-Thus he is living, peaceably. Suddenly men come to him and say:
-"First, promise on your oath that you will obey us like a slave
-in all that we command; believe that whatever we tell you is
-unquestionably true, and submit to all that we shall call laws. Or,
-secondly, give us a share in the product of your labor, that we
-may use it to keep you in bondage, and prevent you from revolting
-against our commands. Or, thirdly, choose, or be chosen among, the
-so-called officials of the government, knowing that the government
-will go on quite regardless of the foolish speeches which you, or
-others like you, may utter; that it will be carried on in accordance
-with our wishes and the wishes of those who control the army.
-Or, fourthly, come to the law-courts, and take part in all the
-senseless cruelties which we commit against men, who are erring and
-depraved men, and who have become so through our fault,--in the
-form of imprisonment, exile, solitary confinement, and execution.
-Or, lastly, although you may be on the most friendly terms with
-men who belong to other nations, you must be ready at a moment's
-notice, whenever the command is issued, to look upon such of them
-as we shall indicate as your enemies, and either personally or by
-substitute contribute to the ruin, robbery, and murder of these men,
-of old men, women, and children--even, if we require it, of your
-fellow-countrymen and your parents."
-
-One would think that in these days there could be but one reply from
-any man in his senses.
-
-"Why must I do all this? Why must I promise to obey all the orders
-of Salisbury to-day, those of Gladstone to-morrow; Boulanger to-day,
-and to-morrow the orders of an assembly composed of men like
-Boulanger; Peter III. to-day, Catharine to-morrow, and the next day
-Pugatchov; to-day the insane King of Bavaria, to-morrow the Emperor
-William? Why should I promise this to men whom I know to be wicked
-or foolish, or men whom I know nothing at all about? Why should I,
-in the form of taxes, hand over to them the fruits of my labor,
-knowing that this money will be used to bribe officials, to support
-prisons, churches, and armies, to pay for the execution of evil acts
-destined for my oppression? In other words, why should I apply the
-rod to my own back? Why should I go on wasting my time, averting
-my eyes, helping to give a semblance of legality to the acts of
-wrong-doers, play a part in elections, and pretend to participate
-in the government, when I know perfectly well that the country is
-ruled by those who control the army? Why should I go into the courts
-and be a party to the infliction of tortures and executions upon
-my erring fellow-beings, knowing, if I am a Christian, that the
-law of love has been substituted for the law of vengeance, and if
-I am an educated man, that punishment, so far from reforming its
-victims, serves only to demoralize them? Why should I, in person or
-in substitute, go and kill and despoil, and expose myself to the
-dangers of war, simply because the key of the temple of Jerusalem
-happens to be in the keeping of one bishop rather than in that
-of another; because Bulgaria is to be ruled by one German prince
-instead of another; or because the privileges of the seal fishery
-are reserved for the English to the exclusion of the American
-merchants. Why should I regard as my enemies the inhabitants of a
-neighboring country, with whom up to the present day I have lived,
-and still wish to live, in peace and amity,--why should I go myself,
-or pay for soldiers, to murder and ruin them?
-
-"And, above all, why should I contribute, whether in person or by
-paying for military service, to the enslavement and destruction of
-my brothers and parents? Why should I scourge myself? All this is
-of no use to me; on the contrary, it does me harm. It is altogether
-degrading, immoral, mean, and contemptible. Why, then, should I do
-all this? If I am told that I shall be made to suffer in any event,
-I reply that in the first place, there can be no possible suffering
-greater than that which would befall me were I to execute your
-commands. And in the second place, it is perfectly evident to me
-that if we refuse to scourge ourselves, no one else will do it for
-us. Governments are but sovereigns, statesmen, officials, who can
-no more force me against my will, than the _stanovoy_ could force
-the peasants; I should be brought before the court, or thrown into
-prison, or executed, not by the sovereign, or the high officials,
-but by men in the same position as myself; and as it would be
-equally injurious and disagreeable for them to be scourged as for
-me, I should probably open their eyes, and they would not only
-refrain from injuring me, but would doubtless follow my example.
-And in the third place, though I were made to suffer for this, it
-would still be better for me to be exiled or imprisoned, doing
-battle in the cause of common sense and truth, which must eventually
-triumph, if not to-day, then to-morrow, or before many days, than
-to suffer in the cause of folly and evil. It would rather be to my
-advantage to risk being exiled, imprisoned, or even executed, than
-remain, through my own fault, a life-long slave of evil men, to be
-ruined by an invading enemy, or mutilated like an idiot, or killed
-while defending a cannon, a useless territory, or a senseless piece
-of cloth called a flag. I have no inclination to scourge myself,
-it would be of no use. You may do it yourselves if you choose--I
-refuse."
-
-It would seem as though not only the religious and moral element
-in human nature, but ordinary common sense and wise counsel, would
-influence every man of the present day thus to make reply, and
-to suit the action to the word. But no. Men who hold the social
-life-conception consider such a course not only useless, but even
-prejudicial to the object in view,--the deliverance of mankind from
-slavery. They advise us to go on, like the peasants, punishing
-one another, comforting ourselves with the reflection that our
-chatter in parliaments and assemblies, our trade unions, our First
-of May demonstrations, our conspiracies and covert threats to the
-governments that scourge us, must result in our final deliverance,
-even though we go on strengthening our fetters. Nothing so hampers
-human liberty as this wonderful delusion. Instead of making
-individual efforts to achieve freedom, every man for himself
-devoting all his energies to that object, through the attainment of
-a new life-conception, men are looking for a universal scheme of
-deliverance, and are in the meanwhile sinking deeper and deeper into
-slavery. It is as if a man were to declare that in order to obtain
-heat one must merely place every lump of coal in a certain position,
-never minding whether it kindled or not. And yet that the liberation
-of mankind can only be accomplished by means of the deliverance of
-the individual grows more and more evident.
-
-The liberation of individuals from the dominion of the State, in
-the name of the Christian life-conception, which was formerly an
-exceptional occurrence and one that attracted but little attention,
-has attained in these days a menacing significance for the authority
-of State.
-
-If in the days of ancient Rome it happened that a Christian,
-professing his faith, refused to take a part in sacrifices, or in
-the worship of the emperors or the gods, or in the Middle Ages
-refused to worship ikons or to acknowledge the temporal authority of
-the Pope, such refusals were the exception; a man might be obliged
-to confess to his faith, but he might perhaps live all his life
-without being forced to do so. But now all men, without exception,
-are subjected to trial of faith. Every man of modern times is
-obliged, either to participate in the cruelties of pagan life, or
-to repudiate them. And secondly, in those days any refusal to bow
-before the gods, the ikons, or the Pope was of no consequence to the
-State. Whether those who bowed before the gods, the ikons, or the
-Pope were many or few, the State lost none of its power. Whereas
-at the present time every refusal to execute the un-Christian
-demands of the government undermines the authority of the State,
-because the authority of the State rests on the fulfilment of these
-anti-Christian requirements.
-
-Temporal authority, in order to maintain itself, has been forced by
-the conditions of life to demand from its subjects certain actions
-which it is impossible for men who profess true Christianity to
-perform. Therefore at the present time every man who professes
-it helps to undermine the authority of the government, and will
-eventually pave the way for the liberation of mankind.
-
-Of what apparent importance are such acts as the refusal of a score
-or two of fools, as they are called,--men who decline to take the
-oath of allegiance, to pay taxes, or to take part in courts of law,
-or to serve in the army? Such men are tried and condemned, and life
-remains unchanged. These occurrences may seem unimportant, and
-yet these are precisely the factors that undermine the authority
-of the government more than any others, and thus prepare the way
-for the liberation of mankind. These are the bees who are the
-first to separate themselves from the swarm, and, still hovering
-near, they wait for the whole swarm to rise and follow them. The
-governments are aware of this, and look upon such occurrences with
-more apprehension than upon all the socialists, anarchists, and
-communists, with their conspiracies and their dynamite bombs.
-
-A new _rgime_ is inaugurated. Each subject, according to custom,
-is required to take the oath of allegiance to the new government.
-A proclamation is issued, and all are bidden to assemble in the
-cathedral to take the oath. Suddenly one man in Perm, another in
-Tula, a third in Moscow, a fourth in Kaluga, refuse to take the
-oath and (without preconcerted action) justify their refusal by
-the same argument,--that the Christian law forbids the oath; but,
-even were the oath not forbidden, they could not, according to the
-spirit of this law, promise to perform such evil deeds as the oath
-requires,--such as reporting those antagonistic to the interests
-of the government, defending that government by armed force, or
-attacking its enemies. They are summoned to appear before the
-_stanovoys_, _spravniks_, priests, governors; they are reasoned
-with, coaxed, threatened, and punished; yet they adhere to their
-determination, and refuse to take the oath. They are asked, "Is it
-true that you never took the oath?"
-
-"It is."
-
-"And what was done to you?"
-
-"Nothing."
-
-Every subject is required to pay his taxes, and the taxes are paid.
-But one man in Charkov, another in Iver, and a third in Samara,
-refuse to comply, and, as by one accord, each man alleges the same
-reason. One of them says that he will pay after he has learned the
-object for which his money is to be used. "If it is to be used for
-charity, he will give of his own free will, and even more than is
-demanded of him. But if it is to be applied to evil purposes, he
-will give nothing of his own free will, because, according to the
-law of Christ, which he obeys, he can take no part in doing evil."
-And the others who refuse to pay taxes, except on compulsion,
-express the same idea, perhaps in other words. Those who have
-property are forced to pay, and those who have none are simply let
-alone.
-
-"Then you have not paid your tax?"
-
-"No."
-
-"And what was done to you?"
-
-"Nothing."
-
-The passport system is instituted. Every man who leaves his home
-must apply for one, and pay a tax for it. Suddenly, in different
-places, are to be found those who declare that passports should
-not be used, that a man should not acknowledge his dependence upon
-the State, which is supported by violence; and these men take no
-passports, consequently they pay no tax for them. And again, there
-are no means of coercing them to comply with the demand. They are
-imprisoned, but when after a time they find themselves at liberty
-again, they go on living without passports.
-
-Every peasant is expected to perform police duty as _sotsky_ or
-_dessiatsky_,[17] etc.; but some peasant in Charkov refuses to
-fulfil this duty, because, as he says in explanation of his refusal,
-the law of Christ, which he professes, forbids him to arrest,
-imprison, or transport his fellow-men. Another peasant in Iver or
-in Tambov makes the same statement. The peasants are threatened,
-beaten, and imprisoned, but they adhere to their resolution, and
-refuse to perform actions contrary to their religious belief. And
-they cease to be elected _sotsky_, and are gradually left in peace.
-
- [17] Petty rural police.--TR.
-
-It is the duty of every citizen to serve on the jury. All at once
-men of widely different classes,--carriage-makers, professors,
-merchants, peasants, nobles,--as if moved by a single impulse,
-refuse to fulfil this duty, not for reasons valid in the eyes of
-the law, but because the tribunal itself is, in their opinion,
-illegal and un-Christian, and ought not to exist. These men are
-fined, and false reasons are ascribed for their refusal, the true
-ones meanwhile remaining hidden from the public. The same treatment
-is employed in regard to those who, for similar reasons, refuse to
-appear as witnesses in courts of law. These, too, are finally left
-undisturbed.
-
-Every man at the age of twenty-one must draw lots. Suddenly there
-is found a man in Moscow, another in Iver, another in Charkov, and
-still another in Kiev, who, as it were by agreement, go to the
-department and declare that they will neither take the oath of
-allegiance nor serve in the army, because they are Christians. Here
-are the details of an affair which was among the earlier cases,--of
-late these refusals have begun to multiply,--a case with which I am
-myself familiar,[18] which is but one example among many.
-
- [18] The details of this case are authentic.
-
-In the City Hall of Moscow a young man of average education gives
-his reasons for refusing to comply. His words are not heeded, and
-he is bidden to repeat the words of the oath with the other men.
-He still persists in his refusal, and quotes a certain passage in
-the Bible that forbids men to take an oath. No attention is paid
-to his arguments, and again he is ordered to take the oath, which
-he declines to do. Whereupon it is taken for granted that he is
-a sectarian, and therefore misunderstands Christianity; in other
-words, that he differs from the priests paid by the State. He is
-then sent under guard to the priests that they may convince him,
-which they endeavor to do; but the arguments uttered in the name
-of Christ, by which they strive to persuade him to deny Christ,
-evidently have no effect on the young man. So they declare him
-incorrigible, and send him back to the army. Still he openly refuses
-to take the oath and to fulfil his military duties.
-
-It is a case not anticipated by the law. A refusal to comply
-with the demands of the government cannot be overlooked, neither
-can this case be called one of ordinary insubordination. After
-conferring, the military authorities decide that, in order to rid
-themselves of this objectionable youth, the better way will be
-to consider him as a rebel and forward him under military escort
-to the Department of the Secret Police. The police officials and
-the gendarmes question the young man, but his replies will not
-serve to classify his offense under the heading of any crime that
-comes within their jurisdiction; they cannot either accuse him of
-revolutionary motives, or of conspiracy, because he declares that
-he has no desire to destroy anything whatsoever; on the contrary,
-he opposes all violence. He says that he has nothing to conceal;
-he desires only an opportunity for saying and doing all things in
-the most open manner. And as it resulted with the clergy, so also
-with the gendarmes, who, though rarely embarrassed as to how to put
-the law in operation, can find no pretext for an accusation against
-the young man, and send him back to the ranks. Once more there is a
-conference, and his superiors decide that, although he has not taken
-the oath of allegiance, he is to be regarded as a soldier. He is put
-into uniform, his name is entered on the lists, and he is sent under
-convoy to his post. Here his immediate superiors once more order
-him to perform his military duty, and still he refuses to obey, and
-in the presence of the other soldiers he states his reasons, saying
-that, as a Christian, he cannot of his own free will prepare himself
-to commit murder, which was forbidden even by the law of Moses.
-
-All this takes place in a provincial city. The occurrence excites
-the interest and the sympathy, not only of outsiders, but even of
-the officers, and therefore there is hesitation about employing
-the usual punishment for contumacy. However, for the sake of
-appearances, he is thrown into jail, and a request is sent to the
-higher military authorities for further instructions in the case.
-From an official standpoint this refusal to take part in a military
-organization, in which the Czar himself serves, and which is
-blessed by the Church, must be regarded as insanity, and therefore
-the message is received from St. Petersburg that the young man is
-probably insane, and that before any violent measures are used
-against him he must be sent to the insane hospital. Thither he is
-sent in the hope that he will remain there, as happened some ten
-years ago in the case of a young man from Iver, who also refused
-to serve, and who was tortured in the hospital until at last he
-was subdued. But in the present instance even this measure fails
-to relieve the military authorities from this troublesome young
-man. The doctors examine him, become interested in him, and,
-discovering no symptoms of insanity, they return him to his post.
-He is received, and pretending that his refusal and its causes are
-forgotten, he is once more invited to join the drill, and again he
-refuses, in the presence of other soldiers, stating his reasons
-for his refusal. The affair attracts more and more notice from
-soldiers as well as from civilians. Again the question is referred
-to St. Petersburg, and thence comes the order to transfer the young
-man to the frontier, where the troops are in active service, and
-where, if he refuses to obey orders, he may be shot without exciting
-attention, as there are but few Russians and Christians in that
-far-away territory, the majority being foreigners and Mohammedans.
-This is done. The young man is ordered to join the Trans-Caspian
-troops, and with other criminals he is delivered into the hands of
-commanders noted for their severity and determination.
-
-Meanwhile, during all these transportations from place to place,
-the young man has suffered from harsh treatment, from cold, hunger,
-and filth, and his life has been made miserable. Yet all these
-trials do not weaken his resolution. In the Trans-Caspian province,
-where he is once more ordered to serve as a sentry under arms, he
-refuses to obey. He consents to stand where he is sent, beside the
-hayricks, but declines to take a weapon in his hand, declaring that
-on no account will he use violence against any one whomsoever.
-All this occurs in the presence of the soldiers. Such contumacy
-cannot go unpunished; consequently he is court-martialed for an
-infringement of military discipline, convicted, and sentenced to two
-years' confinement in a military prison. And once again, with the
-criminals, he is sent by _tape_ to the Caucasus and then thrown
-into prison, his fate being left to the discretionary power of the
-jailer. There he is tortured for a year and a half, but still his
-resolution to avoid the use of weapons remains unchanged, and he
-continues to explain to every one whom he meets the reasons for his
-refusal. Toward the end of the second year, before his term has
-really expired, he is set at liberty; and although not in accordance
-with the law, they are so anxious to rid themselves of him, that his
-imprisonment is accepted as an equivalent of further active service.
-
-And in various parts of Russia others are found who, as if by a
-concerted plan, imitate his example, and in every case the action
-of the government is undecided, vacillating, and underhanded.
-Some of these men are confined in the insane hospitals, some are
-appointed military clerks and sent to serve in Siberia, some are
-made foresters, others are thrown into prison, others are fined.
-At the present time several of these men are imprisoned, not for
-their substantial offense, denying the legality of the acts of
-the government, but for disobeying the particular orders of their
-superiors. For instance, an officer of the reserve recently failed
-to give information of the place of his residence, and declined
-to serve further in the army; he was fined thirty roubles for
-disobeying the orders of the authorities,--and this he declined to
-pay, except under compulsion. Several peasants and soldiers who
-refused to take part in a drill and to use weapons were put under
-arrest for disobedience and contention.
-
-Such instances of a refusal to comply with the demands of the
-State when opposed to Christianity, especially refusals to perform
-military service, occur not only in Russia, but everywhere. I
-know that in Servia, men from the so-called sect of Nazarenes
-steadily refuse to enter the army, and the Austrian government has
-for several years made futile attempts to convert them by means
-of imprisonment. In 1885 there were 130 refusals of this kind. I
-know that in Switzerland, in 1890, there were men in confinement in
-the castle of Chillon for refusing to perform military duty whose
-determination was not to be influenced by punishment. Such refusals
-have occurred in Sweden; the men there also were imprisoned, and the
-government carefully concealed the affairs from the people. Similar
-instances occurred in Prussia. I know of one subaltern officer in
-the guards who, in 1891, in Berlin, announced to his superiors that
-he, as a Christian, could not continue his military service, and in
-spite of all remonstrances and threats he adhered to his resolution.
-In the south of France a community of men called the Hinschist has
-recently been established (my information is derived from the _Peace
-Herald_ of July, 1891), who, as professing the Christian doctrine,
-refuse to perform military duty. At first they were told off to
-serve in hospitals, but now, with the increase of the sect, they are
-punished for insubordination, while they still refuse to bear arms.
-
-Socialists, communists, and anarchists, with their bombs and their
-revolutions, are far less dangerous to governments than these men,
-who from different places proclaim their refusals, all based upon
-the same doctrine, familiar to all. Every government knows how to
-defend itself from revolutionists; it holds the means in its own
-hands, and therefore does not fear these external foes. But what can
-a government do to protect itself from men who declaim against all
-authority as useless, superfluous, and injurious, offering, however,
-no opposition to authority, merely rejecting its offices, dispensing
-with its services, and therefore refusing to participate in it?
-
-The revolutionists say: "State organization is bad, either for one
-reason or for another; it should be destroyed, and replaced by such
-and such a system." But a Christian says: "I know nothing of State
-organization, whether it be good or bad, and it is for this very
-reason that I do not wish to support it. And I cannot undertake
-submission, because such submission is contrary to my conscience."
-
-All the institutions of the State are opposed to the conscience of a
-Christian: the oath of allegiance, taxation, courts of law, armies;
-while the whole authority of government is dependent upon them.
-Revolutionary foes struggle against the government, but Christianity
-enters not into this contest; internally, it destroys the principles
-on which government is based.
-
-With the Russian people, in whose midst, particularly since the
-time of Peter I., the protest of Christianity against the State has
-never ceased; in the midst of this people, where the conditions
-of life are such that whole communes emigrate to Turkey, China,
-and uninhabited portions of the globe, who, so far from needing
-the government, always consider it an unnecessary burden, and
-only endure it as a calamity, whether it be Russian, Chinese, or
-Turkish,--the cases of isolated individuals who, from Christian
-motives, have liberated themselves from the control of government
-have grown more and more frequent in these latter days. Such
-manifestations are particularly dreaded by the government at the
-present time, because the men who protest often belong not to the
-so-called lower, the uneducated classes, but are men of average
-and even superior education, and because these men explain their
-refusals, not by some mystical belief peculiar to the individual,
-as in olden times, nor do they complicate them with superstition
-and fanaticism, like the sects of the Self-burners or Bieguni, but
-assign as the reason for their refusals the simplest, most obvious
-of truths, patent to and admitted by all the world.
-
-Thus men refuse to pay taxes of their own free will, because the
-money is used to promote violence; in other words, to pay the wages
-of the violators in the army, for building prisons and fortresses,
-or for manufacturing cannon,--in all of which, as Christians, they
-consider it wrong and immoral to take a part.
-
-They refuse to take the oath of allegiance, for were they to promise
-to obey the authorities,--that is, men who use violence,--they must
-contradict the sense of the Christian doctrine.
-
-They refuse to swear in court, because an oath is distinctly
-forbidden by the gospel.
-
-They decline police duties, because in that office they would be
-compelled to use violence against their brethren and to distress
-them, and a Christian cannot do this.
-
-They refuse to take part in courts of law, because they look upon
-every tribunal as a vehicle for the law of vengeance, and therefore
-incompatible with the Christian law of forgiveness and love.
-
-They decline to have anything to do with military preparations, or
-to enter the ranks of the army, because they neither can nor will be
-executioners, nor prepare themselves for such an office.
-
-And the reasons alleged for these refusals are of such a nature
-that, however arbitrary the governments may be, they cannot punish
-openly those who refuse.
-
-Were the governments to punish men for such refusals, they would be
-forced to abjure forever both justice and virtue, those principles
-by which, as they assure us, all their authority is supported.
-
-What are governments to do with these men? Of course they have the
-power to execute, to imprison, and to condemn to transportation
-and penal servitude all enemies who attempt to overthrow them by
-violence; they can obtain by bribery half the men they need, and
-have at their command millions of armed soldiers, who are ready to
-put to death all the enemies of authority. But what can be done with
-men who wish neither to destroy nor to establish anything, whose
-sole desire is to avoid in their own private lives any act that
-may be opposed to the Christian law, and who consequently refuse
-to perform duties which are regarded by the government as the most
-natural and obligatory of all?
-
-If they were revolutionists, preaching violence and practising it,
-it would be an easy matter to oppose them. Some might be bribed,
-some deceived, others intimidated, and those who could neither be
-bought, deceived, nor intimidated would be manifestly criminals,
-enemies of society who, as such, could be executed or beaten to
-death; and the people would approve the acts of the government. If
-they were fanatics belonging to some particular sect, one might, in
-view of the superstitions inherent in their doctrine, refute at the
-same time what truth their arguments contained. But what is to be
-done with men who neither preach rebellion nor any special dogmas,
-who wish to live in peace with all mankind, who refuse to take the
-oath of allegiance or to pay taxes, or to take part in tribunals,
-to perform military service, and the various duties of a similar
-nature, on which the whole organization of the State is founded?
-What is to be done with them? They cannot be bribed. The very risk
-they are willing to take shows their integrity. Neither can they be
-deceived when these things are represented as the commands of God,
-because their refusal is based on the indubitable law of God, by
-which the very men who are trying to coerce them to disobey this law
-profess to hold themselves bound. It is vain to hope to intimidate
-them by threats, because the very suffering and privations which
-they endure for righteousness' sake serve but to strengthen their
-devotion to their faith, whose law distinctly commands them first of
-all to obey God, to fear not them that kill the body, but to fear
-those who can kill both body and soul. Neither can they be executed
-or imprisoned for life. Their past lives, their thoughts and
-actions, their friends, speak for them; every one knows them to be
-gentle, kindly, and harmless men, and it is impossible to represent
-them in the light of criminals whose suppression is needed for the
-salvation of society. Moreover, the execution of men acknowledged
-by all to be virtuous would arouse defenders who would endeavor to
-explain the causes for their disobedience. And when all men are
-made to recognize the reasons why these Christians refuse to obey
-the demands of the State, they cannot fail to acknowledge the same
-obligation, and to admit that all men should long since have refused
-obedience.
-
-Confronted with these insubordinations, governments find themselves
-in a desperate plight. They realize that the prophecies of
-Christianity are about to be fulfilled, that it is loosening the
-fetters of them that are in bonds and setting men free; they realize
-that such freedom will inevitably destroy those who have held
-mankind in bondage. Governments realize this; they know that their
-hours are counted, that they are helpless to resist. All that they
-are able to do is to retard the hour of dissolution. And this they
-try to do; but their position is still a desperate one.
-
-It is like the predicament of a conqueror who wishes to preserve the
-town set on fire by the inhabitants. No sooner does he put the fire
-out in one place than two other fires break out; when he separates
-the burning portion from the main body of a large building the
-flames burst out at both extremities. These outbreaks are not, as
-yet, of frequent occurrence, but the spark has been kindled, and the
-fire will burn steadily until all is consumed.
-
-The position of governments in the presence of men who profess
-Christianity is so precarious that very little is needed to shake
-to pieces their power, built up through so many centuries, and
-apparently so solid in structure. And it is now that the sociologist
-comes forward, preaching that it is useless, and even hurtful and
-immoral, for the individual to emancipate himself alone.
-
-Let us suppose that men have been working for a long time to divert
-the course of a river; they have at last succeeded in digging a
-canal, and all that remains now is to make an opening and let the
-water flow through it into the canal; suppose now certain other men
-arrive upon the scene and suggest that, instead of letting the water
-flow into the canal, it would be much better to erect over the river
-some form of machinery, by means of which the water would be poured
-from one side to the other.
-
-But things have gone too far. Governments are aware of their
-weakness and helplessness, and men of the Christian faith are
-awakening from their torpor, beginning already to realize their
-power.
-
-"I am come to send fire on the earth," said Christ.
-
-And this is the fire that begins to burn.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X
-
-USELESSNESS OF VIOLENCE FOR THE DESTRUCTION OF EVIL. THE MORAL
-ADVANCE OF MANKIND IS ACCOMPLISHED, NOT ONLY THROUGH THE KNOWLEDGE
-OF TRUTH, BUT ALSO THROUGH THE ESTABLISHMENT OF PUBLIC OPINION
-
- Christianity destroys the State--Which is more necessary,
- Christianity or the State?--There are men who defend the
- necessity of the State, and others who, on the same grounds,
- deny this necessity--Neither can be proved by abstract
- reasoning--The question decides the character of a man's
- consciousness, which either allows or forbids him to participate
- in the organization of the State--Realization of the uselessness
- and immorality of taking part in the organization of the
- State, which is contradictory to Christian doctrine, decides
- this question for each one, regardless of the destiny of the
- State--Argument of the defenders of the State, as a form of
- social life indispensable for the defense of the good from the
- wicked, until all nations, and all members of each nation,
- shall have become Christians--The more wicked are always those
- in power--History is but a recital of the usurpation of power
- by the bad over the good--The acknowledgment by authority of
- the necessity of struggle with evil by violence is equivalent
- to self-destruction--The annihilation of violence is not
- only possible, but is going on before our eyes--However, it
- is not destroyed by State violence, but through those men
- who, obtaining power by violence, and recognizing its vanity
- and futility, benefit by experience and become incapable of
- using violence--This is the process through which individual
- men, as well as whole nations, have passed--It is in that
- way that Christianity penetrates into the consciousness of
- men, and not only is this accomplished despite the violence
- used by authority, but through its agency, and therefore the
- abolition of authority is not only without danger, but it goes
- on continually as life itself--Objection of the defenders
- of the State system that the diffusion of Christianity is
- improbable--Diffusion of Christian truth interdicting violence
- accomplished not only slowly and gradually, by the internal
- method, by individual recognition of the truth, by prophetic
- intuition, by the realizing of the emptiness of power and
- abandonment of it by individual men, but accomplished also by
- the external method, by which large numbers of men, inferior in
- intellectual development, at once, in view of their confidence
- in the others, adopt the new truth--The diffusion of truth at
- a certain stage creates a public opinion, which compels the
- majority of men who have previously opposed it to recognize
- the new truth at once--Therefore a universal renunciation of
- violence may very soon come to pass; namely, when a Christian
- public opinion shall be established--The conviction of the
- necessity of violence prevents the establishment of Christian
- public opinion--Violence compels men to discredit the moral
- force which can alone exalt them--Neither nations nor individual
- men have been conquered by violence, but by public opinion,
- which no violence can resist--It is possible to conquer savage
- men and nations only by the diffusion of Christian public
- opinion among them, whereas the Christian nations, in order
- to conquer them, do everything in their power to destroy the
- establishment of a Christian public opinion--These unsuccessful
- experiments cannot be cited as a proof of the impossibility of
- conquering men by Christianity--Violence which corrupts public
- opinion only prevents the social organization from becoming
- what it should be, and with the abolition of violence Christian
- public opinion will be established--Whatever may take place
- when violence has been abolished, the unknown future can be no
- worse than the present, and therefore one need not fear it--To
- penetrate to the unknown and move toward it is the essence of
- life.
-
-
-Christianity, faithfully interpreted, saps the foundations of the
-civil law, and this was always understood from the very outset.
-It was for this that Christ was crucified; and until men felt the
-necessity for justifying the establishment of the Christian state,
-they always accepted that interpretation. The cleverly constructed
-theories intended to reconcile the doctrines of Christianity with
-that of the State date back to the time when rulers of nations
-adopted a nominal external Christianity. But in these times it
-is impossible for a sincere and earnest man not to perceive the
-incompatibility of the Christian doctrine of love, meekness of
-spirit, and forgiveness of injuries, with the despotism, the
-violence, and the wars of the State. The profession of true
-Christianity not only forbids the recognition of the State, but
-strikes at its very foundations.
-
-But if it be true that Christianity is incompatible with the State,
-one naturally asks which is the better adapted to promote the
-well-being of mankind, the system prescribed by the State, or the
-precepts of Christianity?
-
-There are those who affirm that the State organization is the more
-indispensable; they declare that its overthrow would check all
-human progress, that no development is possible save through the
-channels of civil government, and that all those evils which we
-find prevailing among nations who live under State laws are not
-the result of the organization, which permits progress and the
-attainment of the highest degree of civilization.
-
-They who hold these views quote, in support of their position,
-certain historical, philosophical, and even religious arguments,
-which seem to them irrefutable. But there are others who entertain
-views diametrically opposed to these. For instance, they say
-that the fact of the world having existed at one time without a
-government, might be taken to prove the State to be only a temporary
-condition; that the time was sure to come when men would require
-a change, which time had now arrived. To support their theory,
-these men in turn adduce historical, philosophical, and religious
-arguments which seem to them irrefutable.
-
-Volumes may be and have been written in defense of the former
-position, and of late years a great deal has been written, and ably
-written too, from the opposite standpoint.
-
-It can neither be proved on the one hand, as the partizans of the
-State claim, that its destruction would be followed by a general
-upheaval, by robberies and murders, and by the nullification of all
-social laws, and the return of man to a condition of barbarism; nor
-on the other, as the enemies of the State affirm, that man has grown
-so virtuous and well disposed that, preferring peace to enmity, he
-will no longer rob and murder his neighbor; that he is quite able,
-without State assistance, to establish a community, and conduct
-his own affairs; and that the State itself, while assuming an air
-of protection, is really exerting a demoralizing influence. It is
-impossible to prove either one or the other by abstract arguments.
-And naturally neither point can be proved by experience, as it is a
-question first of all of getting the requisite experience.
-
-Whether or not the time has arrived for abolishing the State is a
-question which could not be answered were it not that we possess
-other means that will assist us to settle it beyond dispute.
-
-It needs no one to tell the young birds when it is time to burst the
-shell; they know very well when there is no longer room for them
-in the eggs, and begin of their own accord to break the shell and
-leave it behind. So it is with this question of a change in human
-affairs. Has the time come for men to cast aside the customs of the
-State and establish a new order? When a man's inner consciousness
-has so developed that he feels himself hampered by the requirements
-of the State, and can no longer submit to the restraint, realizing
-at the same time that he has ceased to need its protecting care,
-the question whether or no men have matured sufficiently to enable
-them to dispense with the State is disposed of without reference to
-former arguments. A man who has outgrown the State can no more be
-coerced into submission to its laws than can the fledgling be made
-to renter its shell.
-
-"The State may have been necessary at one time, and for aught that
-I know it may even now serve the purposes you mention," says the
-man who holds the Christian life-conception. "I can only say that
-_I_ have no need of it, nor can _I_ conform to its requirements.
-You must decide for yourself whether it be advantageous or no. I
-shall not attempt to generalize on the subject with the expectation
-of proving my point. I only recognize what I need and what I don't
-need; what I can, and what I cannot do. I know, as far as I am
-myself concerned, that _I_ do not need to separate from the men of
-other nations, and therefore I can neither recognize an exclusive
-affiliation to this or that one, nor acknowledge myself the subject
-of any one government. I need none of the institutions established
-by the State, and therefore I am not willing to surrender the fruits
-of my labor in the form of taxes to support institutions which I
-believe to be not only unnecessary but positively injurious. I know
-that _I_ need neither magistrates, nor tribunals founded on and
-supported by violence, and therefore I can have nothing to do with
-them; I know that _I_ feel no inclination to attack other nations
-and put their citizens to death, neither do I wish to defend myself
-against them by force of arms, and therefore I can take no part
-in wars nor in preparations for wars. Doubtless there are men who
-believe that all these things are an indispensable part of human
-life,--I cannot argue with them,--but I know that for me they have
-no meaning, and that I will have nothing to do with them.
-
-"And this is not a matter of personal selection, but because I must
-obey the commands of Him who has sent me into the world, and has
-given me an unmistakable law by which I am to be guided through
-life."
-
-Whatever arguments may be advanced to prove that harm and probably
-disaster will accrue from abolishing the authority of the State,
-the man who has already outgrown the State ideal cannot possibly
-be bound by it. And whatever arguments may be adduced to prove its
-necessity, he can never return to it. He is like the young bird who
-can never return to its outgrown shell.
-
-"But granting this to be true," say the partizans of the existing
-order, "we cannot dispense with the supremacy of the State until all
-men are Christians, because even among those who claim the title
-there are many who are very far from being Christians--evil-doers,
-who seek their own gratification at the expense of their fellow-men,
-and if the governments were overthrown, so far from improving the
-condition of the people, it would greatly add to their miseries. The
-subversion of the State would be a misfortune, not only where the
-minority are true Christians, but even supposing the whole people to
-be so; while the neighboring nations are still non-Christian, these
-latter would make their lives a martyrdom by rapine and murder and
-all manner of violence. It would serve only to provide the vicious
-and unprincipled with an opportunity to oppress the innocent.
-Therefore the State should not be abolished until all the wicked
-have ceased from troubling, which will not happen just at present.
-Hence, however much certain individual Christians may wish to escape
-from the authority of the State, the greater good of the greater
-number demands its preservation." So say the defenders of the State
-principle. "If it were not," they say, "for State authority there
-would be no protection against the malice and injustice of the
-oppressor; that authority alone makes it possible to restrain the
-wicked."
-
-But in uttering these sentiments the partizans of the existing order
-take it for granted that they have proved the truth of what they
-assert. When they declare that the evil-doers would ride roughshod
-over the defenseless and the innocent were it not for the authority
-of the State, they imply that the governing power is vested at
-the present time in a body of virtuous men, who control all the
-wrong-doers. But this is a proposition which must be proved. It
-could only be a correct statement if we happened to resemble the
-inhabitants of China, where it is popularly believed, although
-the belief is not justified by fact, that the good are always in
-authority, because should it become known that the rulers are
-no better than those over whom they rule, it is the duty of the
-citizens to overthrow the government. But although this is supposed
-to be one of the customs of China, it is not, nor would it be
-possible for it to be so, since, in order to overthrow a criminal
-government, one needs the power as well as the right. Even in China
-this is a mere supposition, and in our own Christian land we have
-never so much as dreamed of it. As far as we are concerned, there
-is no reason to believe that power is in the hands of the virtuous
-and high-minded, rather than in those of men who took it by violence
-and have held it for themselves and their descendants. For surely
-it would be impossible for a high-minded man to usurp authority by
-violence and to continue to hold it.
-
-In order to gain possession of power, and to retain it, one
-must have a love for it, and the love of power is incompatible
-with goodness; it accords with the opposite qualities of pride,
-duplicity, and cruelty.
-
-Both the origin and the maintenance of power depend upon the
-exaltation of the individual, and the degradation of the people by
-means of hypocrisy and fraud, by prisons, fortresses, and murders.
-"If State authority were to be abolished, then would the more wicked
-people dominate over the less wicked," say the upholders of State
-organization. But if the Egyptians conquered the Hebrews, and the
-Persians the Egyptians, and the Macedonians the Persians, and the
-Romans the Greeks, and the barbarians the Romans, is it really
-possible that the conquerors are always better than the conquered?
-And so with political changes in the State; is the power always
-transferred to the better men? When Louis XVI. was deposed, and
-control passed into the hands of Robespierre, and when, later, he
-was in turn succeeded by Napoleon, was it the better or the worse
-man who held the power? Again, were they of Versailles or the
-communists the better men? Charles the First or Cromwell? When Peter
-III. reigned, or, after his murder, when Catharine ruled over one
-part of Russia, and Pugatchov over the other--who then was good and
-who was wicked?
-
-All those in authority affirm that their office is required in
-order that the unprincipled may be hindered from oppressing the
-innocent, implying thereby that they themselves, being virtuous,
-are protecting other virtuous men from the malice of the evil-doer.
-To possess power and to do violence are synonymous terms; to do
-violence means doing something to which the victim of violence
-objects, and which the aggressor would resent were it directed
-against himself. Therefore the possession of power really means
-doing unto others what we should not like if it were done to
-ourselves,--that is, harm.
-
-Obedience signifies that a man holds patience to be better than
-violence, and to choose patience rather than violence means to be
-good, or, at least, not so wicked as those who do unto others what
-they would not wish to have done to themselves.
-
-Therefore all the probabilities are that those in authority were
-in past times, as they are in present, worse men than those they
-ruled over. Doubtless there are wicked men among those who submit
-to authority, but it is impossible that the better men should rule
-over the worse.
-
-This might be thought in pagan times, when the definition of
-goodness was inaccurate; but with the clear and exact conception of
-the qualities of good and evil presented by Christianity before us
-we cannot imagine it. If in the pagan world they who were more or
-less good, and they who were more or less bad, might not be easily
-distinguished, the characteristics of goodness and wickedness have
-been so clearly defined by the Christian conception that it is
-impossible to mistake them. According to the doctrine of Christ, the
-good are those who submit and are long-suffering, who do not resist
-evil by violence, who forgive injuries, and love their enemies; the
-wicked are the vainglorious, who tyrannize, who are arrogant and
-violent with others. Therefore, if we are guided by the doctrine of
-Christ, we shall have no difficulty in deciding where to seek the
-good and the wicked among rulers and subjects. It is even absurd to
-speak of Christians as sovereigns or rulers.
-
-The non-Christians--that is, those to whom life is but a matter of
-temporal welfare--must always rule over the Christians, for whom
-life means self-denial and disregard of temporal things.
-
-And thus it has always been, and it has been manifested more and
-more plainly as the Christian doctrine has become more clearly
-defined and widespread.
-
-The farther true Christianity extended, the firmer the hold it
-gained on the consciousness of men, the less possible it became
-for Christians to belong to the dominant class, and the easier for
-non-Christians to gain the ascendancy.
-
-"To abolish the supremacy of the State before all men have become
-true Christians would only afford the wicked a chance to tyrannize
-over the good and maltreat them with impunity," say the upholders of
-the existing order.
-
-It has always been the same from the beginning of the world until
-this present time, and it always will be. _The wicked always
-rule over the good and do violence to them_. Cain did violence
-to Abel, the astute Jacob betrayed the trusting Esau, and was
-himself deceived by Laban; Caiaphas and Pilate sat in judgment on
-Christ; the Roman emperors ruled over Seneca, Epictetus, and other
-high-minded Romans of those times; Ivan IV. with his Opritchniks,
-the tipsy syphilitic Peter with his clowns, the prostitute Catharine
-with her lovers, ruled over the industrious, God-fearing Russian
-people of those times, and trampled upon them. William rules the
-Germans, Stambulov the Bulgarians, and the Russian officials rule
-over the Russian people; the Germans ruled over the Italians, and
-now they rule over the Hungarians and the Slavs. The Turks ruled
-over the Greeks and now rule over the Slavs, the English over the
-Hindoos, the Mongolians over the Chinese.
-
-So we see that whether the tyranny of the State is or is not to be
-abolished, the position of the innocent, who are oppressed by the
-tyrants, will not be materially affected thereby.
-
-Men are not to be frightened by being told that the wicked will
-oppress the good, because that is the natural course, and will never
-change.
-
-The whole of pagan history is a mere narrative of events wherein
-the wicked have got the upper hand, and, once in power, by craft
-and cruelty have kept their hold upon men, announcing themselves
-meanwhile as the guardians of justice and the defenders of the
-innocent against the oppressor. All revolutions are but the result
-of the appropriation of power by the wicked and their rule over the
-good. When the rulers say that if their power were to be destroyed
-the evil-doers would tyrannize over the innocent, what they really
-mean is that the tyrants in power are reluctant to yield to those
-other tyrants who would fain wrest from them their authority. When
-they protest that this authority of theirs, which is actually
-violence, is necessary to defend the people against the possible
-tyranny of others,[19] they are simply denouncing themselves. The
-reason why violence is dangerous is that, whenever it is employed,
-all the arguments which the perpetrators advanced in their own
-defense may be used against them with even greater force. They talk
-of the violence done in the past, and more frequently of future and
-imaginary violence, while they themselves are the real offenders.
-"You say that men committed robbery and murder in former times, and
-profess anxiety lest all men be robbed or murdered unless protected
-by your authority. This may or may not be true, but the fact that
-you allow thousands of men to perish in prisons by enforced labor,
-in fortresses, and in exile, that your military requisitions ruin
-millions of families and imperil, morally and physically, millions
-of men, this is not a supposititious but an actual violence, which,
-according to your own reasoning, should be resisted by violence.
-And therefore, by your own admission, the wicked ones, against whom
-one should use violence, are yourselves." Thus should the oppressed
-reply to their oppressors. And such are the language, the thoughts,
-and the actions of non-Christians. Wherever the oppressed are more
-wicked than the oppressor, they attack and overthrow them whenever
-they are able; or else--and this is more frequently the case--they
-enter the ranks of the oppressors and take part in their tyranny.
-
- [19] Such declarations on the part of Russian authorities, who are
- noted for their oppression of foreign nationalities,--the Poles, the
- Germans of the Baltic provinces, and the Jews,--strike one as both
- amusing and artless. The Russian government, which has oppressed
- its own subjects for centuries, and which has never protected the
- Malo-Russians in Poland, the Latishi in the Baltic provinces,
- nor the Russian peasants, of whom all sorts of people have taken
- advantage for hundreds of years, suddenly becomes a champion of
- the oppressed, of the very same people whom it still continues to
- oppress.
-
-Thus the dangers of which the defenders of State rights make a
-bugbear--that if authority were overthrown the wicked would prevail
-over the good--potentially exist at all times. The destruction of
-State violence, in fact, never can, for this very reason, lead to
-any real increase of violence on the part of the wicked over the
-good.
-
-If State violence disappeared, it is not unlikely that other acts
-of violence would be committed; but the sum of violence can never be
-increased simply because the power passes from the hands of one into
-those of another.
-
-"State violence can never be abolished until all the wicked
-disappear," say the advocates of the existing order, by which
-they imply that there must always be violence, because there will
-always be wicked people. This could only prove true, supposing
-the oppressors to be really beneficent, and supposing the true
-deliverance of mankind from evil must be accomplished by violence.
-Then, of course, violence could never cease. But as, on the
-contrary, violence never really overcomes evil, and since there is
-another way altogether to overcome it, the assertion that violence
-will never cease is untrue. Violence is diminishing, and clearly
-tending to disappear; though not, as is claimed by the defenders of
-the existing order, in consequence of the amelioration of those who
-live under an oppressive government (their condition really gets
-worse), but because the consciousness of mankind is becoming more
-clear. Hence even the wicked men who are in power are growing less
-and less wicked, and will at last become so good that they will be
-incapable of committing deeds of violence.
-
-The reason why humanity marches forward is not because the inferior
-men, having gained possession of power, reform their subjects
-by arbitrary methods, as is claimed both by Conservatives and
-Revolutionists, but is due above all to the fact that mankind in
-general is steadily, and with an ever increasing appreciation,
-adopting the Christian life-conception. There is a phenomenon
-observable in human life in a manner analogous to that of boiling.
-Those who profess the social life-conception are always ambitious
-to rule, and struggle to attain power. In this struggle the most
-gross and cruel, the least Christian elements of society, bubble up,
-as it were, and rise, by reason of their violence, into the ruling
-or upper classes of society. But then is fulfilled what Christ
-prophesied: "Woe unto you that are rich! Woe unto you that are full!
-Woe unto you, when all men shall speak well of you!" (Luke vi.
-24-26). The men who have attained power, and glory, and riches, and
-who have realized all their cherished aims, live to discover that
-all is vanity, and gladly return to their former estate. Charles
-V., Ivan the Terrible, Alexander I., having realized the evils of
-power and its futility, renounced it because they recognized it as
-a calamity, having lost all pleasure in the deeds of violence which
-they formerly enjoyed.
-
-But it is not alone kings like Charles V. and Alexander I. who
-arrive at this disgust of power, but every man who has attained the
-object of his ambition. Not only the statesman, the general, the
-millionaire, the merchant, but every official who has gained the
-position for which he has longed this half score of years, every
-well-to-do peasant who has saved one or two hundred roubles, finds
-at last the same disillusion.
-
-Not only individuals, but entire nations, mankind as a whole, have
-passed through this experience.
-
-The attractions of power and all it brings--riches, honors,
-luxury--seem to men really worth struggling for only until they are
-won; for no sooner does a man hold them within his grasp than they
-manifest their own emptiness and gradually lose their charm, like
-clouds, lovely and picturesque in outline seen from afar, but no
-sooner is one enveloped in them than all their beauty vanishes.
-
-Men who have obtained riches and power, those who have struggled for
-them, but more particularly those who have inherited them, cease to
-be greedy for power or cruel in its acquisition.
-
-Having learned by experience, sometimes in one generation, sometimes
-in several, how utterly worthless are the fruits of violence, men
-abandon those vices acquired by the passion for riches and power,
-and growing more humane, they lose their positions, being crowded
-out by others who are less Christian and more wicked; whereupon they
-fall back into a stratum, which, though lower in the social scale,
-is higher in that of morality, thus increasing the mean level of
-Christian consciousness. But straightway, the worse, the rougher,
-and less Christian elements rise to the surface, and being subject
-to the same experience as their predecessors, after one or two
-generations these men, too, recognize the hollowness of violent
-ambitions, and, being penetrated with the spirit of Christianity,
-fall back into the ranks of the oppressed. These are in turn
-replaced by new oppressors, less despotic than the former, but
-rougher than those whom they oppress. So that although the authority
-is to all outward seeming unchanged, yet the number of those who
-have been driven by the exigencies of life to adopt the Christian
-life-conception increases with every change of rulers. They may be
-more harsh, more cruel, and less Christian than their subjects;
-but always men less and less violent replace their predecessors in
-authority.
-
-Violence chooses its instruments from among the worst elements
-of society; men who gradually become leavened, and, softened and
-changed for the better, are returned into society.
-
-Such is the process by means of which Christianity takes fuller
-possession of men day by day. Christianity enters into the
-consciousness of men in spite of the violence of power, and even
-owing to that violence.
-
-The argument of the defenders of the State, that if power were
-abolished the wicked would tyrannize over the good, not only fails
-to prove that the domination of the wicked is a new thing to be
-dreaded,--as it exists already,--but proves, on the contrary, that
-the tyranny of the State, which allows the wicked to govern the
-good, is itself the real evil which we ought to eradicate, and which
-is constantly decreasing by the very nature of things.
-
-"But if State violence is not to cease until the rulers have become
-so far Christianized that they will renounce it of their own accord
-and no others will be found to take their places,--if these things
-are coming to pass," say the defenders of the existing order, "when
-is it to happen? If 1800 years have passed, and still so many long
-to rule, it is wholly improbable that we shall soon behold this
-change, if it ever takes place at all.
-
-"Even though there may be at present, as there always have been,
-certain individuals who would not rule if they could, who do not
-choose to benefit themselves in that way, still the number of those
-who do prefer to rule rather than to be ruled is so great that it is
-difficult to imagine a time when the number will be exhausted.
-
-"In order to accomplish the conversion of all men, to induce each
-one to exchange the pagan for the Christian life-conception,
-voluntarily resigning riches and power, there being none left to
-profit by these, it would be necessary that not only all the rude,
-half-barbarous people, unfitted either to accept Christianity or
-follow its precepts, who are always to be found in every Christian
-community, should become Christians, but that all savage and
-non-Christian nations, which are still numerous, should also become
-Christian.
-
-"Therefore were one to admit that the Christianizing process may
-at some future time embrace all humanity, we must still take into
-consideration the degree of progress that has been made in 1800
-years, and realize that this can only happen after many centuries.
-Hence we need not for the present trouble ourselves about the
-overthrow of authority; all we have to do is to look to it that it
-is in the best hands."
-
-Thus reply the partizans of the existing system. And this reasoning
-would be perfectly consistent, provided that the transition of men
-from one life-conception to another were only to be effected by the
-process of individual conversion; that is to say, that each man,
-through his personal experience, should realize the vanity of power,
-and apprehend Christian truth. This process is constantly going on,
-and in that way, one by one, men are converted to Christianity.
-
-But men do not become converted to Christianity merely in this way;
-there is an exterior influence brought to bear which accelerates
-the process. The progression of mankind from one system of life
-to another is accomplished not only gradually, as the sand glides
-through the hour-glass, grain by grain, until all has run out, but
-rather as water which enters an immersed vessel, at first slowly,
-at one side, then, borne down by its weight, suddenly plunges, and
-at once fills completely.
-
-And this is what happens in human communities during a change in
-their life-conception, which is equivalent to the change from one
-organization to another. It is only at first that men by degrees,
-one by one, accept the new truth and obey its dictates; but after
-it has been to a certain extent disseminated, it is accepted, not
-through intuition, and not by degrees, but generally and at once,
-and almost involuntarily.
-
-And therefore the argument of the advocates of the present system,
-that but a minority have embraced Christianity during the last
-1800 years, and that another 1800 years must pass away before the
-rest of mankind will accept it, is erroneous. For one must take
-into consideration another mode, in addition to the intuitive of
-assimilating new truth, and of making the transition from one mode
-of life to another. This other mode is this: men assimilate a truth
-not alone because they may have come to realize it through prophetic
-insight or through individual experience, but the truth having been
-spread abroad, those who dwell on a lower plane of intelligence
-accept it at once, because of their confidence in those who have
-received it and incorporated it in their lives.
-
-Every new truth that changes the manner of life and causes humanity
-to move onward is at first accepted by a very limited number, who
-grasp it by knowledge of it. The rest of mankind, accepting on faith
-the former truth upon which the existing system has been founded, is
-always opposed to the spread of the new truth.
-
-But as, in the first place, mankind is not stationary, but is
-ever progressing, growing more and more familiar with truth and
-approaching nearer to it in everyday life: and secondly, as all
-men progress according to their opportunities, age, education,
-nationality, beginning with those who are more, and ending with
-those who are less, capable of receiving new truth--the men nearest
-those who have perceived the truth intuitively pass, one by one,
-and with gradually diminishing intervals, over to the side of the
-new truth. So, as the number of men who acknowledge it increases,
-the truth itself becomes more clearly manifested. The feeling of
-confidence in the new truth increases in proportion to the numbers
-who have accepted it. For, owing to the growing intelligibility of
-the truth itself, it becomes easier for men to grasp it, especially
-for those lower intellectually, until finally the greater number
-readily adopt it, and help to found a new _rgime_.
-
-The men who go over to the new truth, once it has gained a certain
-hold, go over _en masse_, of one accord, much as ballast is rapidly
-put into a ship to maintain its equilibrium. If not ballasted,
-the vessel would not be sufficiently immersed, and would change
-its position every moment. This ballast, which at first may seem
-superfluous and a hindrance to the progress of the ship, is
-indispensable to its equipoise and motion.
-
-Thus it is with the masses when, under the influence of some new
-idea that has won social approval, they abandon one system to adopt
-another, not singly, but in a body. It is the inertia of this mass
-which impedes the rapid and frequent transition from one system of
-life, not ratified by wisdom, to another; and which for a long time
-arrests the progress of every truth destined to become a part of
-human consciousness.
-
-It is erroneous, then, to argue that because only a small percentage
-of the human race has in these eighteen centuries adopted the
-Christian doctrine, that many, many times eighteen centuries must
-elapse before the whole world will accept it,--a period of time so
-remote that we who are now living can have no interest in it. It is
-unfair, because those men who stand on a lower plane of development,
-whom the partizans of the existing order represent as hindrances to
-the realization of the Christian system of life, are those men who
-always go over in a body to a truth accepted by those above them.
-
-And therefore that change in the life of mankind, when the powerful
-will give up their power without finding any to assume it in their
-stead, will come to pass when the Christian life-conception,
-rendered familiar, conquers, not merely men one by one, but masses
-at a time.
-
-"But even if it were true," the advocates of the existing order
-may say, "that public opinion has the power to convert the inert
-non-Christian mass of men, as well as the corrupt and gross who are
-to be found in every Christian community, how shall we know that
-a Christian mode of life is born, and that State violence will be
-rendered useless?
-
-"After renouncing the despotism by which the existing order has been
-maintained, in order to trust to the vague and indefinite force of
-public opinion, we risk permitting those savages, those existing
-among us, as well as those outside, to commit robbery, murder, and
-other outrages upon Christians.
-
-"If even with the help of authority we have a hard struggle against
-the anti-Christian elements ever ready to overpower us, and destroy
-all the progress made by civilization, how then could public
-opinion prove an efficient substitute for the use of force, and
-avail for our protection? To rely upon public opinion alone would
-be as foolhardy as to let loose all the wild beasts of a menagerie,
-because they seem inoffensive when in their cages and held in awe by
-red-hot irons.
-
-"Those men entrusted with authority, or born to rule over others by
-the divine will of God, have no right to imperil all the results of
-civilization, simply to make an experiment, and learn whether public
-opinion can or cannot be substituted for the safeguard of authority."
-
-Alphonse Karr, a French writer, forgotten to-day, once said, in
-trying to prove the impossibility of abolishing the death penalty:
-"Que Messieurs les assassins commencent par nous donner l'exemple."
-And I have often heard this witticism quoted by persons who really
-believed they were using a convincing and intellectual argument
-against the suppression of the penalty of death. Nevertheless, there
-could be no better argument against the violence of government.
-
-"Let the assassins begin by showing us an example," say the
-defenders of government authority. The assassins say the same, but
-with more justice. They say: "Let those who have set themselves up
-as teachers and guides show us an example by the suppression of
-legal assassination, and we will imitate it." And this they say, not
-by way of a jest, but in all seriousness, for such is in reality the
-situation.
-
-"We cannot cease to use violence while we are surrounded by those
-who commit violence."
-
-There is no more insuperable barrier at the present time to the
-progress of humanity, and to the establishment of a system that
-shall be in harmony with its present conception of life, than this
-erroneous argument.
-
-Those holding positions of authority are fully convinced that men
-are to be influenced and controlled by force alone, and therefore to
-preserve the existing system they do not hesitate to employ it. And
-yet this very system is supported, not by violence, but by public
-opinion, the action of which is compromised by violence. The action
-of violence actually weakens and destroys that which it wishes to
-support.
-
-At best, violence, if not employed as a vehicle for the ambition of
-those in high places, condemns in the inflexible form a law which
-public opinion has most probably long ago repudiated and condemned;
-but there is this difference, that while public opinion rejects
-and condemns all acts that are opposed to the moral law, the law
-supported by force repudiates and condemns only a certain limited
-number of acts, seeming thus to justify all acts of a like order
-which have not been included in its formula.
-
-From the time of Moses public opinion has regarded covetousness,
-lust, and cruelty as crimes, and condemned them as such. It condemns
-and repudiates every form that covetousness may assume, not only
-the acquisition of another man's property by violence, fraud, or
-cunning, but the cruel abuse of wealth as well. It condemns all
-kinds of lust, let it be impudicity with a mistress, a slave, a
-divorced wife, or with one's wife; it condemns all cruelty,--blows,
-bad usage, murder,--all cruelty, not only toward human beings, but
-toward animals. Whereas, the law, based upon violence, attacks only
-certain forms of covetousness, such as theft and fraud, and certain
-forms of lust and cruelty, such as conjugal infidelity, assault,
-and murder; and thus it seems to condone those manifestations of
-covetousness, lust, and cruelty which do not fall within its narrow
-limits.
-
-But violence not only demoralizes public opinion, it excites in the
-minds of men a pernicious conviction that they move onward, not
-through the impulsion of a spiritual power, which would help them
-to comprehend and realize the truth by bringing them nearer to that
-moral force which is the source of every progressive movement of
-mankind,--but, by means of violence,--by the very factor that not
-only impedes our progress toward truth, but withdraws us from it.
-This is a fatal error, inasmuch as it inspires in man a contempt for
-the fundamental principle of his life,--spiritual activity,--and
-leads him to transfer all his strength and energy to the practice of
-external violence.
-
-It is as though men would try to put a locomotive in motion by
-turning its wheels with their hands, not knowing that the expansion
-of steam was the real motive-power, and that the action of the
-wheels was but the effect, and not the cause. If by their hands
-and their levers they move the wheels, it is but the semblance of
-motion, and, if anything, injures the wheels and makes them useless.
-
-The same mistake is made by those who expect to move the world by
-violence.
-
-Men affirm that the Christian life cannot be established save by
-violence, because there are still uncivilized nations outside of the
-Christian world, in Africa and Asia (some regard even the Chinese
-as a menace of our civilization), and because, according to the new
-theory of heredity, there exist in society congenital criminals,
-savage and irredeemably vicious.
-
-But the savages whom we find in our own community, as well as
-those beyond its pale, with whom we threaten ourselves and others,
-have never yielded to violence, and are not yielding to it now.
-One people never conquered another by violence alone. If the
-victors stood on a lower plane of civilization than the conquered,
-they always adopted the habits and customs of the latter, never
-attempting to force their own methods of life upon them. It is by
-the influence of public opinion, not by violence, that nations are
-reduced to submission.
-
-When a people have accepted a new religion, have become Christians,
-or turned Mohammedans, it has come to pass, not because it was
-made obligatory by those in power (violence often produced quite
-the opposite result), but because they were influenced by public
-opinion. Nations constrained by violence to accept the religion of
-the conqueror have never really done so.
-
-The same may be said in regard to the savage elements found in
-all communities: neither severity nor clemency in the matter of
-punishments, nor modifications in the prison system, nor augmenting
-of the police force, have either diminished or increased the
-aggregate of crimes, which will only decrease through an evolution
-in our manner of life. No severities have ever succeeded in
-suppressing the vendetta, or the custom of dueling in certain
-countries. However many of his fellows may be put to death for
-thieving, the Tcherkess continues to steal out of vainglory. No girl
-will marry a Tcherkess who has not proved his daring by stealing a
-horse, or at least a sheep. When men no longer fight duels, and the
-Tcherkess cease to steal, it will not be from fear of punishment
-(the danger of capital punishment adds to the prestige of daring),
-but because public manners will have undergone a change. The same
-may be said of all other crimes. Violence can never suppress that
-which is countenanced by general custom. If public opinion would but
-frown upon violence, it would destroy all its power.
-
-What would happen if violence were not employed against hostile
-nations and the criminal element in society we do not know. But
-that the use of violence subdues neither we do know through long
-experience.
-
-And how can we expect to subdue by violence nations whose education,
-traditions, and even religious training all tend to glorify
-resistence to the conqueror, and love of liberty as the loftiest
-of virtues? And how is it possible to extirpate crime by violence
-in the midst of communities where the same act, regarded by the
-government as criminal, is transformed into an heroic exploit by
-public opinion?
-
-Nations and races may be destroyed by violence--it has been done.
-They cannot be subdued.
-
-The power transcending all others which has influenced individuals
-and nations since time began, that power which is the convergence
-of the invisible, intangible, spiritual forces of all humanity, is
-public opinion.
-
-Violence serves but to enervate this influence, disintegrating it,
-and substituting for it one not only useless, but pernicious to the
-welfare of humanity.
-
-In order to win over all those outside the Christian fold, all the
-Zulus, the Manchurians, the Chinese, whom many consider uncivilized,
-and the uncivilized among ourselves, there is _only one way_. This
-is by the diffusion of a Christian mode of thought, which is only to
-be accomplished by a Christian life, Christian deeds, a Christian
-example. But instead of employing this _one way_ of winning those
-who have remained outside the fold of Christianity, men of our epoch
-have done just the opposite.
-
-In order to convert uncivilized nations who do us no harm, whom we
-have no motive for oppressing, we ought, above all, to leave them
-in peace, and act upon them only by our showing them an example of
-the Christian virtues of patience, meekness, temperance, purity, and
-brotherly love. Instead of this we begin by seizing their territory,
-and establishing among them new marts for our commerce, with the
-sole view of furthering our own interests--we, in fact, rob them;
-we sell them wine, tobacco, and opium, and thereby demoralize them;
-we establish our own customs among them, we teach them violence and
-all its lessons; we teach them the animal law of strife, that lowest
-depth of human degradation, and do all that we can to conceal the
-Christian virtues we possess. Then, having sent them a score of
-missionaries, who gabble an absurd clerical jargon, we quote the
-results of our attempt to convert the heathen as an indubitable
-proof that the truths of Christianity are not adaptable to everyday
-life.
-
-And as for those whom we call criminals, who live in our midst,
-all that has just been said applies equally to them. There is
-only _one way_ to convert them, and that is by means of a public
-opinion founded on true Christianity, accompanied by the example of
-a sincere Christian life. And by way of preaching this Christian
-gospel and confirming it by Christian example, we imprison, we
-execute, guillotine, hang; we encourage the masses in idolatrous
-religions calculated to stultify them; the government authorizes the
-sale of brain-destroying poisons--wine, tobacco, opium; prostitution
-is legalized; we bestow land upon those who need it not; surrounded
-by misery, we display in our entertainments an unbridled
-extravagance; we render impossible in such ways any semblance of a
-Christian life, and do our best to destroy Christian ideas already
-established; and then, after doing all we can to demoralize men, we
-take and confine them like wild beasts in places from which they
-cannot escape, and where they will become more brutal than ever;
-or we murder the men we have demoralized, and then use them as an
-example to illustrate and prove our argument that people are only to
-be controlled by violence.
-
-Even so does the ignorant physician act, who, having placed his
-patient in the most unsanitary conditions, or having administered
-to him poisonous drugs, afterward contends that his patient has
-succumbed to the disease, when had he been left to himself he would
-have recovered long ago.
-
-Violence, which men regard as an instrument for the support of
-Christian life, on the contrary, prevents the social system from
-reaching its full and perfect development. The social system is such
-as it is, not because of violence, but in spite of it.
-
-Therefore the defenders of the existing social system are
-self-deceived when they say that, since violence barely holds the
-evil and un-Christian elements of society in awe, its subversion,
-and the substitution of the moral influence of public opinion, would
-leave us helpless in face of them. They are wrong, because violence
-does not protect mankind; but it deprives men of the only possible
-chance of an effectual defense by the establishment and propagation
-of the Christian principle of life.
-
-"But how can one discard the visible and tangible protection of the
-policeman with his baton, and trust to invisible, intangible public
-opinion? And, moreover, is not its very existence problematical?
-We are all familiar with the actual state of things; whether it be
-good or bad we know its faults, and are accustomed to them; we know
-how to conduct ourselves, how to act in the present conditions; but
-what will happen when we renounce the present organization, and
-confide ourselves to something invisible, intangible, and utterly
-unfamiliar?"
-
-Men dread the uncertainty into which they would plunge if they
-were to renounce the familiar order of things. Certainly were our
-situation an assured and stable one, it would be well to dread
-the uncertainties of change. But so far from enjoying an assured
-position, we know that we are on the verge of a catastrophe.
-
-If we are to give way to fear, then let it be before something that
-is really fearful, and not before something that we imagine may be
-so.
-
-In fearing to make an effort to escape from conditions that are
-fatal to us, only because the future is obscure and unknown, we are
-like the passengers of a sinking ship who crowd into the cabin and
-refuse to leave it, because they have not the courage to enter the
-boat that would carry them to the shore; or like sheep who, in fear
-of the fire that has broken out in the farmyard, huddle together in
-a corner and will not go out through the open gate.
-
-How can we, who stand on the threshold of a shocking and devastating
-social war, before which, as those who are preparing for it tell
-us, the horrors of 1793 will pale, talk seriously about the danger
-threatened by the natives of Dahomey, the Zulus, and others who live
-far away, and who have no intention of attacking us; or about the
-few thousands of malefactors, thieves, and murderers--men whom we
-have helped to demoralize, and whose numbers are not decreased by
-all our courts, prisons, and executions?
-
-Moreover, this anxiety lest the visible protection of the police be
-overthrown, is chiefly confined to the inhabitants of cities--that
-is, to those who live under abnormal and artificial conditions.
-Those who live normally in the midst of nature, dealing with its
-forces, require no such protection; they realize how little avails
-violence to protect us from the real danger that surrounds us. There
-is something morbid in this fear, which arises chiefly from the
-false conditions in which most of us have grown up and continue to
-live.
-
-A doctor to the insane related how, one day in summer, when he was
-about to leave the asylum, the patients accompanied him as far as
-the gate that led into the street.
-
-"Come with me into town!" he proposed to them.
-
-The patients agreed, and a little band followed him. But the farther
-they went through the streets where they met their sane fellow-men
-moving freely to and fro, the more timid they grew, and pressed more
-closely around the doctor. At last they begged to be taken back to
-the asylum, to their old but accustomed mode of insane life, to
-their keepers and their rough ways, to strait jackets and solitary
-confinement.
-
-And thus it is with those whom Christianity is waiting to set
-free, to whom it offers the untrammeled rational life of the
-future, the coming century; they huddle together and cling to their
-insane customs, to their factories, courts, and prisons, their
-executioners, and their warfare.
-
-They ask: "What security will there be for us when the existing
-order has been swept away? What kind of laws are to take the place
-of those under which we are now living? Not until we know exactly
-how our life is to be ordered will we take a single step toward
-making a change." It is as if a discoverer were to insist upon
-a detailed description of the region he is about to explore. If
-the individual man, while passing from one period of his life to
-another, could read the future and know just what his whole life
-were to be, he would have no reason for living. And so it is with
-the career of humanity. If, upon entering a new period, a program
-detailing the incidents of its future existence were possible,
-humanity would stagnate.
-
-We cannot know the conditions of the new order of things, because
-we have to work them out for ourselves. The meaning of life is to
-search out that which is hidden, and then to conform our activity to
-our new knowledge. This is the life of the individual as it is the
-life of humanity.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI
-
-CHRISTIAN PUBLIC OPINION ALREADY ARISES IN OUR SOCIETY, AND WILL
-INEVITABLY DESTROY THE SYSTEM OF VIOLENCE OF OUR LIFE. WHEN THIS
-WILL COME ABOUT
-
- The condition and organization of our society is shocking; it
- is upheld by public opinion, but can be abolished by it--Men's
- views in regard to violence have already changed; the number of
- men ready to serve the governments decreases, and functionaries
- of government themselves begin to be ashamed of their position,
- to the point of often not fulfilling their duties--These facts,
- signs of the birth of a public opinion, which, in becoming
- more and more general, will lead finally to the impossibility
- of finding men willing to serve governments--It becomes more
- and more clear that such positions are no longer needed--Men
- begin to realize the uselessness of all the institutions of
- violence; and if this is realized by a few men, it will later
- be understood by all--The time when the deliverance will be
- accomplished is unknown, but it depends on men themselves; it
- depends on how much each man is willing to live by the light
- that is within him.
-
-
-The position of the Christian nations, with their prisons, their
-gallows, their factories, their accumulations of capital, taxes,
-churches, taverns, and public brothels, their increasing armaments,
-and their millions of besotted men, ready, like dogs, to spring
-at a word from the master, would be shocking indeed if it were the
-result of violence; but such a state of things is, before all, the
-result of public opinion; and what has been established by public
-opinion not only may be, but will be, overthrown by it.
-
-Millions and millions of money, tens of millions of disciplined
-soldiers, marvelous weapons of destruction, an infinitely perfected
-organization, legions of men charged to delude and hypnotize the
-people,--this is all under the control of men who believe that this
-organization is advantageous for them, who know that without it they
-would disappear, and who therefore devote all their energy to its
-maintenance. What an indomitable array of power it seems! And yet
-we have but to realize whither we are fatally tending, for men to
-become as much ashamed of acts of violence, and to profit by them,
-as they are ashamed now of dishonesty, theft, beggary, cowardice;
-and the whole complicated and apparently omnipotent system will die
-at once without any struggle. To accomplish this transformation it
-is not necessary that any new ideas should find their way into the
-human consciousness, but only that the mist which now veils the true
-significance of violence should lift, in order that the growing
-Christian public opinion and methods may conquer the methods of the
-pagan world. And this is gradually coming to pass. We do not observe
-it, as we do not observe the movement of things when we are turning,
-and everything around us is turning as well.
-
-It is true that the social organization seems for the most part as
-much under the influence of violence as it seemed a thousand years
-ago, and in respect of armaments and war seems even more; but the
-Christian view of life is already having its effect. The withered
-tree, to all appearance, stands as firmly as ever; it seems even
-firmer, because it has grown harder, but it is already rotten at the
-heart and preparing to fall. It is the same with the present mode
-of life based upon violence. The outward position of man appears
-the same. There are the same oppressors, the same oppressed, but
-the feeling of both classes in regard to their respective positions
-has undergone a change. The oppressors, that is, those who take
-part in the government, and those who are benefited by oppression,
-the wealthy classes, do not constitute, as formerly, the _lite_
-of society, nor does their condition suggest that ideal of human
-prosperity and greatness to which formerly all the oppressed
-aspired. Now, it often happens that the oppressors renounce of their
-own accord the advantages of their position, choosing the position
-of the oppressed, and endeavor, by the simplicity of their mode of
-life, to resemble them.
-
-Not to speak of those offices and positions generally considered
-contemptible, such as that of the spy, the detective, the usurer,
-or the keeper of a tavern, a great many of the positions held by
-the oppressors, and formerly considered honorable, such as those of
-police officers, courtiers, judges, administrative functionaries,
-ecclesiastical or military, masters on a large scale, and bankers,
-are not only considered little enviable, but are already avoided
-by estimable men. Already there are men who choose to renounce
-such once envied positions, preferring others which, although less
-advantageous, are not associated with violence.
-
-It is not merely such as these who renounce their privileges; men
-influenced, not by religious motives, as was the case in former
-ages, but by growing public opinion, refuse to accept fortunes
-fallen to them by inheritance, because they believe that a man ought
-to possess only the fruits of his own labor.
-
-High-minded youths, not as yet depraved by life, when about to
-choose a career, prefer the professions of doctors, engineers,
-teachers, artists, writers, or even of farmers, who live by their
-daily toil, to the positions of judges, administrators, priests,
-soldiers in the pay of government; they decline even the position of
-living on their income.
-
-Most of the monuments at the present day are no longer erected in
-honor of statesmen or generals, still less of men of wealth, but to
-scientists, artists, and inventors, to men who not only had nothing
-in common with government or authority, but who frequently opposed
-it. It is to their memory that the arts are thus consecrated.
-
-The class of men who will govern, and of rich men, tends every day
-to grow less numerous, and so far as intellect, education, and
-especially morality, are concerned, rich men and men in power are
-not the most distinguished members of society, as was the case
-in olden times. In Russia and Turkey, as in France and America,
-notwithstanding the frequent changes of officials, the greater
-number are often covetous and venal, and so little to be commended
-from the point of view of morality that they do not satisfy even the
-elementary exigencies of honesty demanded in government posts. Thus
-one hears often the ingenuous complaints of those in government that
-the best men among us, strangely enough as it seems to them, are
-always found among those opposed to them. It is as if one complained
-that it is not the nice, good people who become hangmen.
-
-Rich men of the present day, as a general thing, are mere vulgar
-amassers of wealth, for the most part having but little care beyond
-that of increasing their capital, and that most often by impure
-means; or are the degenerate inheritors, who, far from playing an
-important part in society, often incur general contempt.
-
-Many positions have lost their ancient importance. Kings and
-emperors now hardly direct at all; they seldom effect internal
-changes or modify external policy, leaving the decision of such
-questions to the departments of State, or to public opinion. Their
-function is reduced to being the representatives of state unity and
-power. But even this duty they begin to neglect. Most of them not
-only fail to maintain themselves in their former unapproachable
-majesty, but they grow more and more democratic, they prefer even to
-be bourgeois; they lay down thus their last distinction, destroying
-precisely what they are expected to maintain.
-
-The same may be said of the army. The high officers, instead of
-encouraging the roughness and cruelty of the soldiers, which befit
-their occupation, promote the diffusion of education among them,
-preach humanity, often sympathize with the socialistic ideas of
-the masses, and deny the utility of war. In the late conspiracies
-against the Russian government many of those concerned were military
-men. It often happens, as it did recently, that the troops, when
-called upon to establish order, refuse to fire on the people.
-The barrack code of ideas is frankly deprecated by military men
-themselves, who often enough make it the subject of derision.
-
-The same may be said of judges and lawyers. Judges, whose duty it
-is to judge and condemn criminals, conduct their trials in such a
-fashion as to prove them innocent; thus the Russian government,
-when it desires the condemnation of those it wishes to punish,
-never confides them to the ordinary tribunals; it tries them by
-court-martial, which is but a parody of justice. The same may be
-said of lawyers, who often refuse to accuse, and, twisting round
-the law, defend those they should accuse. Learned jurists, whose
-duty it is to justify the violence of authority, deny more and more
-frequently the right of punishment, and in its place introduce
-theories of irresponsibility, often prescribing, not punishment, but
-medical treatment for so-called criminals.
-
-Jailers and turnkeys in convict prisons often become the protectors
-of those it is a part of their business to torture. Policemen
-and detectives are constantly saving those they ought to arrest.
-Ecclesiastics preach tolerance; they often deny the right of
-violence, and the more educated among them attempt in their sermons
-to avoid the deception which constitutes all the meaning of their
-position, and which they are expected to preach. Executioners
-refuse to perform their duty; the result is that often in Russia
-death-warrants cannot be carried out for lack of executioners,
-for, notwithstanding all the advantages of the position, the
-candidates, who are chosen from convicts, diminish in number every
-year. Governors, commissioners, and tax-collectors, pitying the
-people, often try to find pretexts for remitting the taxes. Rich
-men no longer dare to use their wealth for themselves alone, but
-sacrifice a part of it to social charities. Landowners establish
-hospitals and schools on their estates, and some even renounce their
-estates and bestow them on the cultivators of the soil, or establish
-agricultural colonies upon them. Manufacturers and mill-owners found
-schools, hospitals, and savings-banks, institute pensions, and build
-houses for the workmen; some start associations of which the profits
-are equally divided among all. Capitalists expend a portion of their
-wealth on educational, artistic, and philanthropic institutions for
-the public benefit. Many men who are unwilling to part with their
-riches during their lifetime bequeath them to public institutions.
-
-These facts might be deemed the result of chance were it not that
-they all originate from one source, as, when certain trees begin
-to bud in the spring of the year, we might believe it accidental,
-only we know the cause; and that if on some trees the buds begin to
-swell, we know that the same thing will happen to all of them.
-
-Even so is it in regard to Christian public opinion and its
-manifestations. If this public opinion already influences some of
-the more sensitive men, and makes each one in his own sphere decline
-the advantages obtained by violence or its use, it will continue to
-influence men more and more, until it brings about a change in their
-mode of life and reconciles it with that Christian consciousness
-already possessed by the most advanced.
-
-And if there are already rulers who do not venture on any
-undertaking on their own responsibility, and who try to be like
-ordinary men rather than monarchs, who declare themselves ready to
-give up their prerogatives and become the first citizens of their
-country, and soldiers who, realizing all the sin and evil of war,
-do not wish to kill either foreigners or their fellow-countrymen,
-judges and lawyers who do not wish to accuse and condemn criminals,
-priests who evade preaching lies, tax-gatherers who endeavor to
-fulfil as gently as possible what they are called upon to do, and
-rich men who give up their wealth, then surely it will ultimately
-come to pass that other rulers, soldiers, priests, and rich men will
-follow their example. And when there are no more men ready to occupy
-positions supported by violence, the positions themselves will cease
-to exist.
-
-But this is not the only way by which public opinion leads toward
-the abolition of the existing system, and the substitution of a new
-one. As the positions supported by violence become by degrees less
-and less attractive, and there are fewer and fewer applicants to
-fill them, their uselessness becomes more and more apparent.
-
-We have to-day the same rulers and governments, the same armies,
-courts of law, tax-gatherers, priests, wealthy landowners,
-manufacturers, and capitalists as formerly, but their relative
-positions are changed.
-
-The same rulers go about to their various interviews, they have the
-same meetings, hunts, festivities, balls, and uniforms; the same
-diplomatists have the same conversations about alliances and armies;
-the same parliaments, in which Eastern and African questions are
-discussed, and questions in regard to alliances, ruptures, "Home
-Rule," the eight-hour day. Changes of ministry take place just as of
-old, accompanied by the same speeches and incidents. But to those
-who know how an article in a newspaper changes perhaps the position
-of affairs more than dozens of royal interviews and parliamentary
-sessions, it becomes more and more evident that it is not these
-meetings, interviews, and parliamentary discussions that control
-affairs, but something independent of all this, something which has
-no local habitation.
-
-The same generals, officers, soldiers, cannon, fortresses, parades,
-and evolutions. But one year elapses, ten, twenty years elapse, and
-there is no war. And troops are less and less to be relied on to
-suppress insurrection, and it becomes more and more evident that
-generals, officers, and soldiers are only figure-heads in triumphal
-processions, the plaything of a sovereign, a sort of unwieldy and
-expensive _corps-de-ballet_.
-
-The same lawyers and judges, and the same sessions, but it becomes
-more and more evident that as civil courts make decisions in a great
-variety of causes without anxiety about purely legal justice, and
-that criminal courts are useless, because the punishment does not
-produce the desired result, therefore these institutions have no
-other object than the maintenance of men incapable of doing other
-things more useful.
-
-The same priests, bishops, churches, and synods, but it becomes more
-and more evident to all that these men themselves have long since
-ceased to believe what they preach, and are therefore unable to
-persuade any one of the necessity of believing what they no longer
-believe themselves.
-
-The same tax-gatherers, but more and more incapable of extorting
-money from the people by force, and it becomes more and more evident
-that, without such collectors, it would be possible to obtain by
-voluntary contribution all that is required for social needs.
-
-The same rich men, and yet it becomes more and more evident
-that they can be useful only when they cease to be personal
-administrators of their possessions, and surrender to society their
-wealth in whole or part.
-
-When this becomes as plain to all men as it now is to a few, the
-question will naturally arise: Why should we feed and support all
-those emperors, kings, presidents, members of departments, and
-ministers, if all their interviews and conversations amount to
-nothing? Would it not be better, as some wit expressed it, to set up
-an india-rubber queen?
-
-And of what use to us are armies, with their generals, their
-musicians, their horses, and drums? Of what use are they when there
-is no war, when no one wishes to conquer anybody else? And even if
-there were a war, other nations would prevent us from reaping its
-advantages; while upon their compatriots the troops would refuse to
-fire.
-
-And what is the use of judges and attorneys whose decisions in
-civil cases are not according to the law, and who, in criminal ones,
-are aware that punishments are of no avail?
-
-And of what use are tax-gatherers who are reluctant to collect the
-taxes, when all that is needed could be contributed without their
-assistance?
-
-And where is the use of a clergy which has long ceased to believe
-what it preaches?
-
-And of what use is capital in the hands of private individuals
-when it can be beneficial only when it becomes public property?
-Having once asked all these questions, men cannot but arrive at the
-conclusion that institutions which have lost their usefulness should
-no longer be supported.
-
-And furthermore, men who themselves occupy positions of privilege
-come to see the necessity of abandoning them.
-
-One day, in Moscow, I was present at a religious discussion which
-is usually held during St. Thomas's week, near the church in the
-Okhotny Ryad. A group of perhaps twenty men had gathered on the
-pavement, and a serious discussion concerning religion was in
-progress. Meanwhile, in the nobles' club near at hand, a concert
-was taking place, and a police-officer, having noticed the group of
-people gathered near the church, sent a mounted policeman to order
-them to disperse,--not that the police-officer cared in the least
-whether the group stayed where it was or dispersed. The twenty
-men who had gathered inconvenienced no one, but the officer had
-been on duty all the morning and felt obliged to do something. The
-young policeman, a smart-looking fellow, with his right arm akimbo
-and a clanking sword, rode up to us, calling out in an imperative
-tone: "Disperse, you fellows! What business have you to gather
-there?" Every one turned to look at him, while one of the speakers,
-a modest-looking man in a peasant's coat, replied calmly and
-pleasantly: "We are talking about business, and there is no reason
-why we should disperse; it might be better for you, my young friend,
-if you were to jump off from your horse and to listen to us. Very
-likely it would do you good;" and turning away he continued the
-conversation. The policeman turned his horse without a word and rode
-away.
-
-Such scenes as this must be of frequent occurrence in countries
-where violence is employed. The officer was bored; he had nothing
-to do, and the poor fellow was placed in a position where he felt
-in duty bound to give orders. He was deprived of a rational human
-existence; he could do nothing but look on and give orders, give
-orders and look on, although both were works of supererogation. It
-will not be long before all those unfortunate rulers, ministers,
-members of parliaments, governors, generals, officers, bishops,
-priests, and even rich men, will find themselves--indeed they
-have already done so--in precisely the same position. Their
-sole occupation consists in issuing orders; they send out their
-subordinates, like the officer who sent the policeman to interfere
-with the people; and as the people with whom they interfere ask not
-to be interfered with, this seems to their official intelligence
-only to prove that they are very necessary.
-
-But the time will surely come when it will be perfectly evident to
-every one that they are not only useless, but an actual impediment,
-and those whose course they obstruct will say gently and pleasantly,
-like the man in the peasant's coat: "We beg that you will let us
-alone." Then the subordinates as well as their instructors will find
-themselves compelled to take the good advice that is offered them,
-cease to prance about among men with their arms akimbo, and having
-discarded their glittering livery, listen to what is said among men,
-and unite with them to help to promote the serious work of the world.
-
-Sooner or later the time will surely come when all the present
-institutions supported by violence will cease to be; their too
-evident uselessness, absurdity, and even unseemliness, will finally
-destroy them.
-
-There must come a time when the same thing that happened to the king
-in Andersen's fairy tale, "The King's New Clothes," will happen to
-men occupying positions created by violence.
-
-The tale tells of a king who cared enormously for new clothes, and
-to whom one day came two tailors who agreed to make him a suit woven
-from a wonderful stuff. The king engaged them and they set to work,
-saying that the stuff possessed the remarkable quality of becoming
-invisible to any one unfit for the office he holds. The courtiers
-came to inspect the work of the tailors, but could see nothing,
-because these men were drawing their needles through empty space.
-However, remembering the consequences, they all pretended to see the
-cloth and to be very much pleased with it. Even the king himself
-praised it. The hour appointed for the procession when he was to
-walk wearing his new garment arrived. The king took off his clothes
-and put on the new ones--that is, he remained naked all the while,
-and thus he went in procession. But remembering the consequences, no
-one had the courage to say that he was not dressed, until a little
-child, catching sight of the naked king, innocently exclaimed, "But
-he has nothing on!" Whereupon all the others who had known this
-before, but had not acknowledged it, could no longer conceal the
-fact.
-
-Thus will it be with those who, through inertia, continue to
-fill offices that have long ceased to be of any consequence,
-until some chance observer, who happens not to be engaged, as the
-Russian proverb has it, in "washing one hand with the other," will
-ingenuously exclaim, "It is a long time since these men were good
-for anything!"
-
-The position of the Christian world, with its fortresses, cannon,
-dynamite, guns, torpedoes, prisons, gallows, churches, factories,
-custom-houses, and palaces is monstrous. But neither fortresses nor
-cannon nor guns by themselves can make war, nor can the prisons lock
-their gates, nor the gallows hang, nor the churches themselves lead
-men astray, nor the custom-houses claim their dues, nor palaces and
-factories build and support themselves; all these operations are
-performed by men. And when men understand that they need not make
-them, then these things will cease to be.
-
-And already men are beginning to understand this. If not yet
-understood by all, it is already understood by those whom the rest
-of the world eventually follows. And it is impossible to cease to
-understand what once has been understood, and the masses not only
-can, but inevitably must, follow where those who have understood
-have already led the way.
-
-Hence the prophecy: that a time will come when all men will hearken
-unto the word of God, will forget the arts of war, will melt their
-swords into plowshares and their lances into reaping-hooks;--which,
-being translated, means when all the prisons, the fortresses, the
-barracks, the palaces, and the churches will remain empty, the
-gallows and the cannon will be useless. This is no longer a mere
-Utopia, but a new and definite system of life, toward which mankind
-is progressing with ever increasing rapidity.
-
-But when will it come?
-
-Eighteen hundred years ago Christ, in answer to this question,
-replied that the end of the present world--that is, of the pagan
-system--would come when the miseries of man had increased to their
-utmost limit; and when, at the same time, the good news of the
-Kingdom of Heaven--that is, of the possibility of a new system,
-one not founded upon violence--should be proclaimed throughout the
-earth.[20]
-
- [20] Matt. xxiv. 3-28.
-
-"But of that day and hour knoweth no man, no, not the angels of
-heaven, but my Father only,"[21] said Christ. "Watch therefore: for
-ye know not what hour your Lord doth come."
-
- [21] Matt. xxiv. 36.
-
-When will the hour arrive? Christ said that we cannot know. And for
-that very reason we should hold ourselves in readiness to meet it,
-as the goodman should watch his house against thieves, or like the
-virgins who await with their lamps the coming of the bridegroom;
-and, moreover, we should work with all our might to hasten the
-coming of that hour, as the servants should use the talents they
-have received that they may increase.[22]
-
- [22] Matt. xxiv. 43; xxv. 1--13, 14-30.
-
-And there can be no other answer. The day and the hour of the advent
-of the Kingdom of God men cannot know, since the coming of that hour
-depends only on men themselves.
-
-The reply is like that of the wise man who, when the traveler asked
-him how far he was from the city, answered, "Go on!"
-
-How can we know if it is still far to the goal toward which humanity
-is aiming, when we do not know how it will move toward it; that it
-depends on humanity whether it moves steadily onward or pauses,
-whether it accelerates or retards its pace.
-
-All that we can know is what we who form humanity should or should
-not do in order to bring about this Kingdom of God. And that we all
-know; for each one has but to begin to do his duty, each one has but
-to live according to the light that is within him, to bring about
-the immediate advent of the promised Kingdom of God, for which the
-heart of every man yearns.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII
-
-CONCLUSION
-
-"REPENT, FOR THE KINGDOM OF HEAVEN IS AT HAND!"
-
-1
-
- Encounter with a train carrying soldiers to establish order
- among famine-stricken peasants--The cause of the disorder--How
- the mandates of the higher authorities are carried out in case
- of peasants' resistance--The affair at Orel as an example of
- violence and murder committed for the purpose of asserting the
- rights of the rich--All the advantages of the rich are founded
- on like acts of violence.
-
-2
-
- The Tula train and the behavior of the persons composing it--How
- men can behave as these do--The reasons are neither ignorance,
- nor cruelty, nor cowardice, nor lack of comprehension or of
- moral sense--They do these things because they think them
- necessary to maintain the existing system, to support which
- they believe to be every man's duty--On what the belief of the
- necessity and immutability of the existing order of things is
- founded--For the upper classes it is based on the advantages
- it affords them--But what compels men of the lower classes to
- believe in the immutability of this system, when they derive
- no advantage from it, and maintain it with acts contrary to
- their conscience?--The reason lies in the deceit practised by
- the upper classes upon the lower in regard to the necessity
- of the existing order, and the legitimacy of acts of violence
- for its maintenance--General deception--Special deception--The
- conscription.
-
-3
-
- How men reconcile the legitimacy of murder with the precepts of
- morality, and how they admit the existence in their midst of a
- military organization for purposes of violence which incessantly
- threatens the safety of society--Admitted only by the powers
- for whom the present organization is advantageous--Violence
- sanctioned by the higher authorities and carried out by the
- lower, notwithstanding the knowledge of its immorality, because,
- owing to the organization of the State, the moral responsibility
- is divided among a large number of participants, each of whom
- considers some other than himself responsible--Moreover, the
- loss of consciousness of moral responsibility is also due to a
- mistaken opinion as to the inequality of men, the consequent
- abuse of power by the authorities, and servility of the lower
- classes--The condition of men who commit acts contrary to their
- conscience is like the condition of a hypnotized person acting
- under the influence of suggestion--In what does submission to
- the suggestion of the State differ from submission to men of a
- higher order of consciousness or to public opinion?--The present
- system, which is the outcome of ancient public opinion, and
- which is already in contradiction to the modern, is maintained
- only through torpor of conscience, induced by auto-suggestion
- among the upper classes, and by the hypnotization of the
- lower--The conscience or intelligent consciousness of these
- men may awaken, and there are instances when it does awaken;
- therefore it cannot be said that any one of them will, or will
- not, do what he sets out to do--Everything depends on the degree
- of comprehension of the illegitimacy of the acts of violence,
- and this consciousness in men may either awaken spontaneously or
- be roused by those already awakened.
-
-4
-
- Everything depends upon the strength of conviction of each
- individual man in regard to Christian truth--But the advanced
- men of the present day consider it unnecessary to explain
- and profess Christian truth, regarding it sufficient for the
- improvement of human life to change its outward conditions
- within the limits allowed by power--Upon this scientific theory
- of hypocrisy, which has taken the place of the hypocrisy of
- religion, men of the wealthy classes base the justification of
- their position--In consequence of this hypocrisy, maintained by
- violence and falsehood, they can pretend before each other to
- be Christians, and rest content--The same hypocrisy allows men
- who preach the Christian doctrine to take part in a _rgime_
- of violence--No external improvements of life can make it
- less miserable; its miseries are caused by disunion; disunion
- springs from following falsehood instead of truth--Union
- is possible only in truth--Hypocrisy forbids such a union,
- for while remaining hypocrites, men conceal from themselves
- and others the truth they know--Hypocrisy changes into evil
- everything destined to ameliorate life--It perverts the
- conception of right and wrong, and therefore is a bar to the
- perfection of men--Acknowledged malefactors and criminals do
- less harm than those who live by legalized violence cloaked by
- hypocrisy--All recognize the iniquity of our life, and would
- long since have modified it, if it were not covered by the cloak
- of hypocrisy--But it seems as if we had reached the limits of
- hypocrisy, and have but to make an effort of consciousness in
- order to awaken--like the man who has nightmare--to a different
- reality.
-
-5
-
- Can man make this effort?--According to the existing
- hypocritical theory, man is not free to change his life--He
- is not free in his acts, but is always free to acknowledge or
- disregard certain truths already known to him--The recognition
- of truth is the cause of action--The cause of the apparent
- insolvability of the question of man's freedom--It lies only
- in the acknowledgment of the truth revealed unto him--No other
- freedom exists--The acknowledgment of the truth gives freedom,
- and points the way in which a man, willingly or unwillingly,
- must walk--The recognition of truth and of true freedom allows
- man to become a participant of the work of God, to be not the
- slave but a creator of life--Men have but to forego the attempt
- to improve the external conditions of life, and direct all their
- energies toward the recognition and profession of the truth
- that is known to them, and the present painful system of life
- will vanish forthwith, and that portion of the Kingdom of God
- which is accessible to men would be established--One has only to
- cease lying and shamming to accomplish this--But what awaits us
- in the future?--What will happen to mankind when they begin to
- obey the dictates of their conscience, and how will they exist
- without the customary conditions of civilization?--Nothing truly
- good and beneficial can perish because of the realization of the
- truth, but will only increase in strength when freed from the
- admixture of falsehood and hypocrisy.
-
-6
-
- Our system of life has reached the limit of misery, and cannot
- be ameliorated by any pagan reorganization--All our life, with
- its pagan institutions, is devoid of meaning--Are we obeying
- the will of God in maintaining our present privileges and
- obligations?--We are in this position, not because such is
- the law of the universe, that it is inevitable, but because
- we wish it, because it is advantageous for some of us--All
- our consciousness contradicts this, and our deliverance
- consists in acknowledging the Christian truth, not to do to
- one's neighbor that which one would not have done to one's
- self--As our obligations in regard to ourselves should be
- subordinate to our obligations to others, so in like manner our
- obligations to others should be subordinate to our obligations
- to God--Deliverance from our position consists, if not in
- giving up our position and its rights at once, at least in
- acknowledging our guilt, and neither lying nor trying to justify
- ourselves--The true significance of our life consists in knowing
- and professing the truth, whereas our approval of, and our
- activity in, the service of the State takes all meaning from
- life--God demands that we serve Him, that is, that we seek to
- establish the greatest degree of union among all human beings,
- which union is possible only in truth.
-
-
-I was just putting the finishing touches to this two years' work
-when, on the 9th day of September,[23] I had occasion to go by
-rail to visit districts in the governments of Tula and Ryazan,
-where certain peasants were suffering from last year's famine, and
-others were enduring still greater suffering from the same causes
-this year.[24] At one of the stations the train in which I was a
-passenger met the express, which carried the Governor and troops
-supplied with rods and loaded rifles for torturing and murdering the
-famine-stricken peasants.
-
- [23] 1892.--Tr.
-
- [24] 1893.
-
-Although corporal punishment was legally abolished in Russia
-thirty years ago, the custom of flogging as a means of making the
-decisions of authority respected has been revived, and has of late
-been frequently employed. I had heard of it, had read in the papers
-of the frightful tortures of which the Governor of Nijni-Novgorod,
-Baranov, has gone so far as to boast, and of the tortures that have
-been inflicted in Tchernigov, Tambov, Saratov, Astrakhan, and Orel,
-but I had never yet witnessed, as I did now, how these things were
-actually done.
-
-And I myself saw well-meaning Russians, penetrated with the spirit
-of Christ, but armed with muskets and carrying rods, on their way to
-murder and torture their starving brothers.
-
-The pretext was as follows:--
-
-On the estate of a rich landowner, upon a piece of ground held by
-him in common with the peasants, a forest had been allowed to grow.
-(When I say that the forest "grew," I mean that the peasants had
-not only planted it, but had continued to take care of it.) They
-had always had the use of it, and therefore looked upon it as their
-own, or at least as common property; but the landowner, confiscating
-it entirely to himself, began to cut down the trees. The peasants
-lodged a complaint. The judge of the lower court pronounced an
-illegal decision (I call it illegal on the authority of the
-Procureur[25] and the Governor, who surely ought to understand the
-case) in favor of the landowner. The higher courts, as well as the
-Senate, although they could see that the case had been unfairly
-tried, confirmed the decision, and the wood was awarded to the
-landowner, who continued to fell the trees. But the peasants,
-believing it impossible that such an injustice could be perpetrated
-by the higher magistrates, refused to submit to the decision, and
-drove away the workmen sent to cut down the trees, saying that the
-forest belonged to them, and that they would appeal to the Czar
-himself before they would allow it to be touched.
-
- [25] Attorney-General.
-
-The case was reported to St. Petersburg, from whence the Governor
-received the order to enforce the decision of the courts, and in
-order to execute the command, asked for troops.
-
-Hence these soldiers who, armed with bayonets and provided with
-cartridges and rods expressly prepared for the occasion and stored
-in one of the vans, were on their way to enforce the decision of
-the higher authorities. The execution of an order from the ruling
-powers can be accomplished either by threats of torture and death,
-or by the enforcement of those threats, according to the degree of
-resistance on the part of the people.
-
-If, for instance, in Russia (it is practically the same in other
-lands where state authority and the rights of ownership exist), the
-peasants offer to resist, the result is as follows: The superior
-officer makes a speech and orders them to obey. The excited crowd,
-accustomed to be duped by those in high places, understands not
-a word that the representative of authority is saying in his
-official, conventional language, and is by no means pacified.
-Whereupon the commanding officer declares that unless they submit
-and disperse, he will be forced to have recourse to arms. If the
-crowd still refuses to yield and does not disperse, he orders his
-men to load the muskets and to fire over their heads, and then, if
-the peasants still stand their ground, he orders the soldiers to
-aim at the crowds; they fire, and men fall wounded and killed in
-the street. The crowd is dispersed, the soldiers, carrying out the
-orders of their commanders, having laid hands upon those whom they
-suppose to be the chief instigators, and arrested them. The dying,
-stained with blood, the wounded, mutilated, and dead, among whom
-are often women and children, are picked up. The dead are buried,
-the wounded sent to the hospitals. Those who are supposed to be the
-ringleaders are taken to the city and court-martialed, and if proved
-that they have used violence, they are summarily hung. This has
-happened in Russia repeatedly, and similar scenes must take place
-wherever the system of government is based upon violence. Such is
-the course adopted in cases of revolt.
-
-If, on the other hand, the peasants submit, the scene that ensues
-is entirely original and peculiarly Russian. The Governor, on his
-arrival at the place, either quarters the soldiers in the different
-houses of the village, where their maintenance ruins the peasants,
-or, satisfied by threatening the people, he graciously pardons
-them and departs. Or, as more frequently happens, he addresses the
-multitude, upbraids it for disobedience, and announces that the
-ringleaders must be punished; he seizes a certain number of men
-considered as such, and without any form of trial causes them to be
-beaten with rods in his presence.
-
-In order to give an idea of the manner in which such an affair
-is conducted, I will describe an instance of the kind which
-happened in Orel, which was approved by the higher authorities.
-Like the landowner in Tula, the landed proprietor at Orel chose
-to take possession of the peasants' property, and here, too, as
-in the former instance, the peasants resisted. In this case, the
-landowner, without the consent of the peasants, wished to dam up,
-for the benefit of his mill, a flow of water which supplied the
-meadows. The peasants resisted this.
-
-The landlord lodged a complaint with the rural commissary, who
-illegally (as was afterward admitted by the court) decided the case
-in favor of the landowner, giving him leave to divert the water. The
-landowner sent workmen to close the channel through which the water
-descended. The peasants, excited at this unfair judgment, sent their
-women to prevent the landowner's men from damming the channel. The
-women proceeded to the dam, upset the carts, and drove the workmen
-away. The landowner entered a complaint against them for committing
-a lawless act. The rural commissary gave the order to arrest and
-lock up in the village jail one woman out of every family,--an order
-rather difficult to execute, since each family included several
-women; and as it was impossible to tell which of them to arrest, the
-police could not fulfil the order. The landowner complained to the
-Governor of the laxity of the police. The Governor, without stopping
-to consider the case, gave strict orders to the _Ispravnik_ to
-carry out at once the orders of the rural commissary. In obedience
-to his superior the _Ispravnik_ arrived in the village, and with
-that contempt for the individual peculiar to Russian authorities,
-ordered the police to seize the first women they could. Disputes
-and resistance arose. The _Ispravnik_, paying no attention to
-this, persisted in his order that the police should take one
-woman, innocent or guilty, from every household, and put her under
-arrest. The peasants defended their wives and mothers; they refused
-to give them up, and resisted the police and the _Ispravnik_.
-Thus another and a greater offense was committed,--resistance to
-authority,--which was at once reported in town. Then the Governor,
-just as I saw the Governor of Tula, with a battalion of soldiers
-supplied with rods and muskets, backed by all due accessories of
-telegraph and telephone, accompanied by a learned physician who was
-to superintend the flogging from a medical standpoint, started
-on an express train for the spot, like the modern Genghis Khan
-predicted by Herzen. In the _Volostnoye Pravlenie_[26] were the
-soldiers, a detachment of police with their revolvers suspended on
-red cords, the principal peasants of the neighborhood, and the men
-accused. Around them had collected a crowd of perhaps a thousand.
-
- [26] House of the rural communal government.
-
-Driving up to the house of the _Volostnoye Pravlenie_, the Governor
-alighted from his carriage and delivered an address, which had been
-prepared in advance, after which he inquired for the criminals, and
-ordered a bench to be brought. No one understood what he meant until
-the policeman, who always accompanied the Governor and made all the
-arrangements for the punishments which had already been enforced
-several times in the government of Orel, explained that the bench
-was to be used for flogging. This bench and the rods that had been
-brought by the party were both produced. The executioners had been
-previously selected from certain horse-thieves taken from the same
-village, the military having refused to do the business.
-
-When all was ready the Governor bade the first of the twelve men who
-were pointed out to him by the landowner as the ringleaders to step
-forward. It so happened that he was the father of a family, a man
-forty-five years of age, respected in the community, whose rights he
-had manfully defended.
-
-He was led to the bench, stripped, and ordered to lie down.
-
-He would have begged for mercy, but realizing how little it
-would avail, he made the sign of the cross and stretched himself
-out on the bench. Two policemen held him down, and the learned
-doctor stood by, ready in case of need to give his scientific
-assistance. The executioners having spat upon their hands, swung
-the rods, and the flogging began. The bench, it seemed, was too
-narrow, and it was found difficult to keep the writhing victim,
-whose muscles twitched convulsively, from falling off. Then the
-Governor ordered to be brought another bench, to which a plank
-was adjusted in such a way as to support it. The soldiers, ever
-ready with their continual salutes and responses of "Yes, your
-Excellency," swiftly and obediently executed the orders, while in
-the meantime the half-naked, pale, and suffering man, trembling,
-with contracted brows and downcast eyes, stood by waiting. When the
-bench was readjusted, he was again stretched out upon it, and the
-horse-stealers renewed their blows. His back, his legs, and even his
-sides were covered with bleeding wounds, and every blow was followed
-by the muffled groan which he could no longer repress. In the crowd
-that stood by one could hear the sobs of the wife and mother, the
-children, and the kinsfolk of the man, as well as of all who had
-been called to witness the punishment.
-
-The wretched Governor, intoxicated with power, who had no doubt
-convinced himself of the necessity for this performance, counted the
-strokes on his fingers, while he smoked cigarette after cigarette,
-for the lighting of which several obliging persons hastened to offer
-him a burning match.
-
-After fifty blows had been given, the peasant lay motionless,
-without uttering a sound, and the doctor, who had been educated in
-a government school that he might devote his scientific knowledge
-to the service of his country and his sovereign, approached the
-tortured man, felt his pulse, listened to the beating of his heart,
-and reported to the representative of authority that the victim had
-become unconscious, and declared that, from a scientific point of
-view, it might prove dangerous to prolong the punishment. But the
-unfortunate Governor, utterly intoxicated by the sight of blood,
-ordered the flogging to go on until seventy strokes had been given,
-the number which he for some reason deemed necessary. After the
-seventieth blow the Governor said:--
-
-"That will do! Now bring on the next one!"
-
-They raised the mutilated and unconscious man, with his swollen
-back, and carried him away, and the next was brought forward. The
-sobs and groans of the crowd increased, but the tortures were
-continued.
-
-So it went on until each of the twelve men had received seventy
-strokes. They begged for mercy, they groaned and screamed. The
-sobs and moans of the women grew louder and more heartrending, and
-the faces of the men of the crowd more gloomy. But there stood the
-troops, and the torture did not cease until it had seemed sufficient
-to the unfortunate, half-intoxicated, erring man called the Governor.
-
-Not only did the magistrates, the officers, and the soldiers
-sanction this act by their presence, but they took part in it,
-preventing the crowd from interfering with the order of its
-execution.
-
-When I asked one of the chief officials why these tortures were
-inflicted after the men had already submitted, he replied, with
-the significant air of a man who understands all the fine points
-of political wisdom, that it was done because it had been proved
-by experience that if the peasants are not punished they will
-soon begin again to oppose the decrees of authority, and that the
-punishment of a few strengthens forever the power of authority.
-
-And now I saw the Governor of Tula, with his clerks, officers, and
-soldiers, on his way to perform a similar act. Once more by murder
-or torture the sentence of the higher authorities was to be carried
-out,--a sentence whose object was to enable a young landowner, the
-possessor of a yearly income of 100,000 roubles, to receive 3000
-more for a tract of wood of which he had basely defrauded a whole
-community of needy and starving peasants, the price of which he
-would squander in a few weeks in the restaurants of St. Petersburg,
-Moscow, and Paris. Such was the errand of the men I met.
-
-It would seem as if there must be some purpose in this encounter,
-when, after two years of incessant contemplation, of continuous
-thought in one direction, fate should, for the first time in
-my life, bring me face to face with this phenomenon, a living
-illustration of the theory I have so long cherished; namely, that
-the entire organization of our life rests, not on any principle of
-justice, as men who occupy and enjoy advantageous positions under
-the existing system like to imagine, but on the rudest and most
-barefaced violence, on the murder and torture of human beings.
-
-Those who possess large estates and large capital, or who receive
-high salaries collected from the needy working-classes, from the
-people who often lack the necessaries of life; merchants, clerks,
-doctors, lawyers, artists, scientists, writers, coachmen, cooks, and
-valets, who earn their living in the service of rich men,--fondly
-believe that the privileges which they enjoy are not the outcome
-of violence, but the natural result of a voluntary interchange of
-services; that these privileges are by no means the result of the
-outrages and floggings endured by their fellow-men, such as took
-place last summer, in Russia, in Orel and elsewhere, as the like
-took place in many parts of Europe and America. They prefer to
-believe that the privileges they enjoy are the spontaneous result
-of a mutual agreement among men; that violence is only the natural
-result of certain universal and superior laws, judicial, political,
-or economic. They try not to see that the privileges they possess
-are only held by them in consequence of some circumstance, not
-unlike that which compelled the peasants, who had tended the growing
-forest and greatly needed it, to surrender it to the rich landowner,
-who had taken no pains to preserve it, and who did not require
-it for his own use; men who will either be flogged or murdered
-if they refuse to surrender it. Now, if it is an undeniable fact
-that the mill in Orel was made to yield an increased income to the
-proprietor, and that the forest raised by the peasants was given to
-the landowner only because of the flogging and the executions either
-threatened or actually suffered, then it must be equally evident
-that all the other exclusive rights of the rich, which deprive the
-poor of the bare necessaries of life, rest on the same basis.
-
-If the peasants who need land in order to support their families
-may not cultivate the land around them, and if land sufficient to
-feed a thousand families is in the hands of one man, a Russian, an
-Englishman, an Austrian, a rich landowner of whatever nationality;
-and if the merchant who buys grain from the needy grower keeps
-it in his warehouses in the midst of a destitute and famishing
-population, or sells it for three times its value to those of whom
-he bought it at the lowest price,--it evidently springs from the
-same cause.
-
-And if, beyond a certain line called the frontier, one man is not
-allowed to purchase certain goods without paying duties to other
-men who have nothing to do with their production, and if a man is
-obliged to part with his last cow in order to pay taxes which are
-distributed by the government among its officials, or used for
-the support of soldiers who may kill the taxpayers, it would seem
-evident that all this is not the result of certain abstract rights,
-but of incidents like those which may even now be going on in the
-government of Tula, which in one form or another occur periodically
-all the world over, wherever state organization exists, and wherever
-there are rich and poor.
-
-Owing to the fact that outrage and murder do not accompany all
-social relations founded on violence, those who possess the
-exclusive privileges of the governing classes assure themselves and
-others that the advantages which they enjoy are not the result of
-violence and bloodshed, but derived from certain vague and abstract
-rights. Still it ought to be evident that if those men, who realize
-the injustice of it all (as is the case with the working-classes at
-the present day), continue to surrender the greater part of their
-earnings to the capitalist and the landowner, and if they pay taxes,
-knowing that such taxes are not put to a good use, they do this, not
-because they acknowledge the justice of certain abstract rights,
-whose meaning is unknown to them, but only because they know that
-they will be whipped and put to death if they refuse to comply.
-
-If it is not always necessary to imprison men, to flog them, or to
-put them to death when the landowner collects his rents, if the
-needy peasant pays a treble price to the merchant who deceives him,
-or the mechanic accepts wages absurdly small in comparison with the
-income of his master, or the poor man parts with his last rouble
-for duties and taxes, it is because he remembers that men have been
-flogged and put to death for trying to avoid compliance with what
-was demanded of them. Like a caged tiger, who does not touch the
-meat that lies before his eyes, and who when he is ordered to leap
-over a stick obeys at once, not because he likes it, but because
-he has not forgotten past hunger or the red-hot iron which he felt
-every time he refused to obey; so it is with men, who, when they
-submit to a law which is not for their advantage, to a law which is
-disastrous to their interests, or to one which they firmly believe
-to be unjust, do so because they remember what they will have to
-suffer if they refuse to comply.
-
-Those who benefit by privileges born of violence long since
-perpetrated, often forget, and are very glad to forget, how such
-privileges were obtained. And yet one has but to recall the annals
-of history,--not the history of the exploits of kings, but genuine
-history,--the history of the oppression of the majority by the
-minority, in order to acknowledge that the scourge, the prison, and
-the gallows have been the original and only sources whence all the
-advantages of the rich over the poor have sprung. One has but to
-remember the persistent and undying passion for gain among men, the
-mainspring of human action in these days, to become convinced that
-the advantages of the rich over the poor can be maintained in no
-other way.
-
-At rare intervals, oppression, flogging, imprisonment, executions,
-the direct object of which is not to promote the welfare of the
-rich, may possibly occur, but we can positively declare that in
-our community, where for every man who lives at ease there are
-ten overworked, hungry, and often cruelly suffering families of
-working-men, all the privileges of the rich, all their luxury, all
-their superfluities, are acquired and maintained only by tortures,
-imprisonments, and executions.
-
-The train that I met on the 9th day of September carrying soldiers,
-muskets, ammunition, and rods to the famine-stricken peasants, in
-order that the wealthy landowner might possess in peace the tract of
-wood he had wrested from the peasants, a necessity of life to them,
-to him a mere superfluity, affords a vivid proof of the degree to
-which men have unconsciously acquired the habit of committing acts
-wholly at variance with their convictions and their conscience.
-
-The express consisted of one first-class carriage for the Governor,
-officials, and officers, and several vans crowded with soldiers.
-The jaunty young fellows in their fresh new uniforms were crowded
-together, either standing, or sitting with their legs dangling
-outside the wide open sliding doors of the vans. Some were smoking,
-laughing, and jesting, some cracking seeds and spitting out the
-shells. A few who jumped down upon the platform to get a drink of
-water from the tub, meeting some of the officers, slackened their
-pace and made that senseless gesture of lifting one hand to the
-forehead; then, with serious faces, as though they had been doing
-something not only sensible but actually important, they passed by,
-watching the officers as they went. Soon they broke into a run,
-evidently in high spirits, stamping on the planks of the platform as
-they ran, and chatting, as is but natural for good-natured, healthy
-young fellows who are making a journey together. These men, who were
-on their way to murder starving fathers and grandfathers, seemed as
-unconcerned as though they were off on the pleasantest, or at least
-the most everyday, business in the world.
-
-The gaily dressed officers and officials who were scattered about
-on the platform and in the first-class waiting-room produced the
-same impression. At a table laden with bottles sat the Governor, the
-commander of the expedition, attired in his semi-military uniform,
-eating his luncheon and quietly discussing the weather with some
-friends he had met, as though the business that called him hither
-was so simple a matter that it could neither ruffle his equanimity
-nor diminish his interest in the change of the weather.
-
-At some distance, but tasting no food, sat the chief of the police
-with a mournful countenance, seemingly oppressed with the tiresome
-formalities. Officers in gaudy, gold-embroidered uniforms moved
-to and fro, talking loudly; one group was seated at a table just
-finishing a bottle of wine; an officer at the bar who had eaten a
-cake brushed away the crumbs that had fallen on his uniform, and
-with a self-sufficient air flung a coin upon the counter; some
-walked nonchalantly up and down in front of our train looking at the
-faces of the women.
-
-All these men on their way to commit murder, or to torture the
-starved and defenseless peasants, by whose toil they were supported,
-looked as if engaged upon some important business which they were
-really proud to execute.
-
-What did it mean?
-
-These men, who were within half an hour's ride of the spot where,
-in order to procure for a rich man an extra 3000 roubles, of which
-he had no need whatever, which he was unjustly confiscating from
-a community of famished peasants, might be obliged to perform the
-most shocking deeds that the imagination can conceive,--to murder
-and torture, as they did in Orel, innocent men, their brothers.
-These men were now calmly approaching the time and place when these
-horrors were to begin.
-
-Since the preparations had been made, it could not very well be
-claimed that all these men, officers and privates, did not know what
-was before them, and what they were expected to do. The Governor had
-given orders for the rods, the officials had purchased the birch
-twigs, bargained for them, and noted the purchase in their accounts.
-In the military department orders had been given and received
-concerning ball cartridges. They all knew that they were on their
-way to torture and possibly to put to death their brothers exhausted
-by famine, and that perhaps in an hour they might begin the work.
-
-To say, as they themselves would say, that they are acting from
-principle, from a conviction that the state system must be
-maintained, is untrue. Those men, in the first place, have rarely,
-if ever, bestowed a single thought upon political science; and
-in the second place, because they could never be convinced that
-the business on which they are engaged serves to support rather
-than destroy the State; and finally, because, as a matter of fact,
-the majority of these men, if not all of them, would not only be
-unwilling to sacrifice their peace and comfort to maintain the
-State, but would never miss the opportunity to promote their own
-interests at the expense of the State,--therefore it is not for the
-sake of so vague a principle as that of maintaining the State that
-they do this.
-
-What, then, does all this mean?
-
-I know these men. I may not know them as individuals, it is
-true, yet I know their dispositions, their past lives, their
-modes of thought. They have had mothers, some have wives and
-children. Actually, they are, for the most part, kindly, gentle,
-tender-hearted men, who abhor any kind of cruelty, to say nothing
-of killing or torturing; moreover, every one of them professes
-Christianity, and considers violence perpetrated against
-the defenseless a contemptible and shameful act. Each taken
-individually, in everyday life, is not only incapable, for the sake
-of personal advantage, of doing one-hundredth part of what was
-done by the Governor at Orel, but any one of them would consider
-himself insulted if it were suggested that he could be capable of
-doing anything like it in private life. And yet they are within
-a half-hour's ride of the spot where they will inevitably find
-themselves compelled to do such deeds.
-
-What can it mean, then?
-
-It is not only the men on this train who are ready to commit murder
-and violence, but those others with whom the affair originated,
-the landowner, the steward, the judge, those in St. Petersburg who
-issue orders,--the Minister of State, the Czar, also worthy men and
-professors of Christianity,--how can they, knowing the consequences,
-conceive such a scheme, and direct its execution?
-
-How can they, even, who take no active part in it,--the spectators,
-whose indignation would be aroused by accounts of private violence,
-even though it be but the ill-usage of a horse,--how can they allow
-this shocking business to go on without rising in wrath to resist
-it, crying aloud, "No, we will not allow you to flog or to kill
-starving men because they refuse to surrender their last property
-villainously attempted to be wrested from them!" And not only are
-men found willing to do these deeds, but most of them, even the
-chief instigators, like the steward, the landowner, the judge, and
-those who take part in originating prosecution and punishment, the
-Governor, the Minister of State, the Czar, remain perfectly calm,
-and show no sign of remorse over such things. And they who are about
-to execute this crime are equally calm.
-
-Even the spectators, who, it would seem, have no personal interest
-in the matter, look upon these men who are about to take part in
-this dastardly business with sympathy rather than with aversion or
-condemnation.
-
-In the same compartment with me sat a merchant who dealt in timber,
-a peasant by birth, who in loud and decided tones expressed his
-approval of the outrage which the peasants were about to suffer.
-"The government must be obeyed; that's what it's for. If we pepper
-them well, they will never rebel again. It's no more than they
-deserve!" he said.
-
-What did it all mean?
-
-It could not be said that all these men, the instigators, the
-participants, the accomplices in this business, were rascals, who,
-in defiance of conscience, realizing the utter abomination of the
-act, were, either from mercenary motives or from fear of punishment,
-determined to commit it. Any man of them would, given the requisite
-circumstances, stand up for his convictions. Not one of those
-officials would steal a purse, or read another man's letter, or
-endure an insult without demanding satisfaction from the offender.
-Not one of those officers would cheat at cards, or neglect to pay a
-gambling debt, or betray a companion, or flee from the battlefield,
-or abandon a flag. Not one of those soldiers would dare to reject
-the sacrament, or even taste meat on Good Friday. Each of these men
-would choose to endure any kind of privation, suffering, or danger,
-rather than consent to do a deed which he considered wrong. Hence
-it is evident that they are able to resist whatever is contrary to
-their convictions.
-
-Still less true would it be to pronounce these men brutes, to whom
-such deeds are congenial rather than repulsive. One needs but to
-talk with them to become convinced that all,--landowner, judge,
-minister, governor, Czar, officers, and soldiers,--at the bottom of
-their hearts not only disapprove of such deeds, but when a sense
-of their true significance is borne in upon them, really suffer at
-being forced to take part in these scenes. They can only try not to
-think of them.
-
-One needs but to speak to those who are actors in this business,
-beginning with the landowner and ending with the lowest policeman
-or soldier, to discover that at the bottom of their hearts they all
-acknowledge the wickedness of the deed, and know that it would be
-better to abstain from it; and this knowledge makes them suffer.
-
-A lady of liberal views in our train, seeing the Governor and the
-officers in the first-class waiting-room, and learning the object of
-their journey, began to talk in an ostensibly loud tone, in order
-that they might hear what she said, condemning the present laws and
-crying shame upon the men who took part in this business. This made
-everybody feel uncomfortable. The men knew not where to look, yet
-no one ventured to argue the point. The passengers pretended that
-remarks so senseless deserved no reply, but it was evident by the
-expression of their faces and their wandering eyes that they felt
-ashamed. I noticed the same in regard to the soldiers. They knew
-well enough that they were going about an evil business, and they
-preferred not to think of what was before them. When the timber
-merchant, insincerely, in my opinion, and simply by way of showing
-his superior knowledge, began to speak of the necessity of these
-measures, the soldiers who heard him turned away frowning, and
-pretended not to listen to him.
-
-The landowner, his steward, the minister, the Czar, all who are
-parties to this business, those who were traveling by this train,
-even those who, taking no part in the affair, were but lookers-on,
-all really know it to be wicked. Why, then, do they do these things,
-why do they repeat them, why do they permit them to be?
-
-Ask the landowner who started the affair; the judge who rendered a
-decision legal in form, but absolutely unjust; and those who, like
-the soldiers and the peasants, will, with their own hands, execute
-this work of beating and murdering their brothers,--all of them,
-instigators, administrators, and executioners, will make essentially
-the same reply.
-
-The officials will say that the present system requires to be
-supported in this manner, and it is for this reason that they do
-these things, because the good of the country, the welfare of
-mankind in general, of social life and civilization, demand it.
-
-The soldiers, men of the lower classes, who are forced to execute
-this violence with their own hands, will answer that the higher
-authorities, who are supposed to know their business, have commanded
-it, and that it is for them to obey. It never occurs to them to
-question the capacity of those who represent the higher authorities.
-If the possibility of error is ever admitted, it is only in the case
-of some subordinate authority; the higher power whence all things
-emanate is supposed to be absolutely infallible.
-
-Thus, while attributing their actions to various motives, both
-principals and subordinates agree that the existing order is the one
-best suited to the present time, and that it is the sacred duty of
-every man to maintain it.
-
-This assurance of the necessity and immutability of the existing
-order is continually advanced by all participators in violence
-committed by the State, and that, as the existing order never can be
-changed, the refusal of a single individual to perform the duties
-imposed on him will make no difference as far as the fundamental
-principle is concerned, and will only result in the substitution of
-another who may be more cruel and do more harm.
-
-This belief that the existing order is immutable, and that it is
-the sacred duty of every man to lend it support, encourages every
-man of good moral character to take part, with a conscience more or
-less clear, in such affairs as that which occurred in Orel, and the
-one in which those in the train for Tula were going to take part.
-
-On what, then, is this belief founded?
-
-It is but natural that it should seem pleasant and desirable to a
-landowner to believe that the existing order is indispensable and
-immutable, because it secures to him the income from his hundreds
-and thousands of _dessiatins_ by which his idle and luxurious
-existence is maintained.
-
-It is also natural that the judge should willingly admit the
-necessity of a system through which he receives fifty times more
-than the most hard-working laboring man. And the same may be said
-in regard to the other higher functionaries. It is only while the
-present system endures that he, as governor, procureur, senator,
-or member of the council, can receive his salary of several
-thousands, without which he and his family would certainly perish;
-for outside the place which he fills, more or less well according
-to his abilities and diligence, he could command only a fraction of
-what he receives. The ministers, the head of the State, and every
-person in high authority are all alike in this, save that the higher
-their rank, the more exclusive their position, the more important
-it becomes that they should believe no order possible, except that
-which now exists; for were it overthrown, not only would they find
-it impossible to gain similar positions, but they would fall lower
-in the scale than other men. The man who voluntarily hires himself
-out as a policeman for ten roubles a month, a sum which he could
-easily earn in any other position, has but little interest in the
-preservation of the existing system, and therefore may or may not
-believe in its immutability.
-
-But the king or emperor, who receives his millions, who knows that
-around him there are thousands of men envious to take his place, who
-knows that from no other quarter could he draw such an income or
-receive such homage, that, if overthrown, he might be judged for
-abuse of power,--there is neither king nor emperor who can help
-believing in the immutability and sanctity of the existing order.
-The higher the position in which a man is placed, the more unstable
-it is; and the more perilous and frightful the possible downfall,
-the more firmly will he believe in the immutability of the existing
-order; and he is able to do wicked and cruel deeds with a perfectly
-peaceful conscience, because he persuades himself that they are
-done, not for his own benefit, but for the support of the existing
-order.
-
-And so it is with every individual in authority, from obscure
-policemen to the man who occupies the most exalted rank,--the
-positions they occupy being more advantageous than those which they
-might be capable of filling if the present system did not exist. All
-these men believe more or less in its immutability, because it is
-advantageous to them.
-
-But what influences the peasants, the soldiers, who stand on
-the lowest rung of the ladder and who derive no advantage from
-the existing system, who are in the most enslaved and degraded
-condition; what induces them to believe that the existing order,
-which serves to keep them in this inferior position, is the best,
-and one which should be maintained; and why are they willing,
-in order to promote this end, to violate their consciences by
-committing wicked deeds?
-
-What urges them to the false conclusion that the existing order is
-immutable and ought therefore to be maintained, when the fact is
-that its immutability is due only to their own effort to maintain it?
-
-Why do those men, taken from the plow, whom we see masquerading in
-ugly, objectionable uniforms, with blue collars and gold buttons, go
-about armed with muskets and sabers to kill their famishing fathers
-and brothers? They derive no advantage from their present position;
-they would be no losers were they deprived of it, since it is worse
-than the one from which they were taken.
-
-Those in authority belonging to the higher classes, the landowners
-and merchants, the judges, senators, governors, ministers, and
-kings, the officials in general, participate in such actions and
-maintain the present system, because such a system is for their
-interest. Often enough they are kind-hearted and gentle men. They
-play no personal part in these acts; all they do is to institute
-inquiries, pronounce judgments, and issue commands. Those in
-authority do not themselves execute the deeds which they have
-devised and ordered. They but rarely see in what manner these
-dreadful deeds are executed. But the unfortunate members of the
-lower classes, who receive no benefit from the existing system, who,
-on the other hand, find themselves greatly despised because of the
-duties which they perform in order that a system which is opposed to
-their own interests may be maintained,--they who tear men from the
-bosom of their families to send them to the galleys, who bind and
-imprison them, who stand on guard over them, who shoot them, why do
-they do this? What is it that compels these men to believe that the
-existing order is immutable, and that it is their duty to maintain
-it? Violence exists only because there are those who with their
-own hands maltreat, bind, imprison, and murder. If there were no
-policemen, or soldiers, or armed men of any sort ready when bidden
-to use violence and to put men to death, not one of those who sign
-death-warrants, or sentence for imprisonment for life or hard labor
-in the galleys, would ever have sufficient courage himself to hang,
-imprison, or torture one thousandth part of those whom now, sitting
-in their studies, these men calmly order to be hung or tortured,
-because they do not see it done, they do not do it themselves. Their
-servants do it for them in some far-away corner.
-
-All these deeds of injustice and cruelty have become an integral
-part of the existing system of life, only because there are men ever
-ready to execute them. If there were no such men, the multitude of
-human beings who are now the victims of violence would be spared,
-and furthermore, the magistrates would never dare to issue, nor even
-dream of issuing, those commands which they now send forth with
-such assurance. If there were no men to obey the will of others
-and to execute commands to torture and murder, no one would ever
-dare to defend the declaration so confidently made by landowners
-and men of leisure; namely, that the land lying on all sides of
-the unfortunate peasants, who are perishing for the want of it, is
-the property of the man who does not till it, and that reserves
-of grain, fraudulently obtained, are to be held intact amidst a
-famine-stricken and dying population, because the merchant must
-have his profit. If there were no men ready at the bidding of the
-authorities to torture and murder, the landowner would never dream
-of seizing a forest which had been tended by the peasants; nor would
-officials consider themselves entitled to salaries paid to them from
-money wrung from the famished people whom they oppress, or which
-they derive for the prosecution, imprisonment, and exile of men who
-denounce falsehood and preach the truth.
-
-All this is done because those in authority well know that they have
-always at hand submissive agents ready to obey their commands to
-outrage and to murder.
-
-It is to this crowd of submissive slaves, ready to obey all orders,
-that we owe the deeds of the whole series of tyrants, from Napoleon
-to the obscure captain who bids his men fire upon the people. It is
-through the agency of policemen and soldiers (especially the latter,
-since the former can act only when supported by military force)
-that these deeds of violence are committed. What, then, has induced
-those who are by no means benefited by doing with their hands
-these dreadful deeds,--what is it that has led these kindly men
-into an error so gross that they actually believe that the present
-system, which is so distressing, so baleful, so fatal, is the one
-best suited to the times? Who has led them into this extraordinary
-aberration?
-
-They can never have persuaded themselves that a course which is not
-only painful and opposed to their interests, but which is fatal
-to their class, which forms nine-tenths of the entire population,
-one which, too, is opposed to their conscience, is right. "What
-reason can you give for killing men, when God's commandment says,
-'Thou shalt not kill'?" is a question I have often put to different
-soldiers. And it always embarrassed them to have a question put
-which recalled what they would rather not remember.
-
-They knew that the divine law forbade murder,--_thou shalt not
-kill_,--and they had always known of this compulsory military duty,
-but had never thought of one as contradictory to the other. The
-hesitating replies to my question were usually to the effect that
-the act of killing a man in war and the execution of criminals by
-order of the government were not included in the general prohibition
-against murder. But when I rejoined that no such limitation existed
-in the law of God, and cited the Christian doctrine of brotherhood,
-the forgiveness of injuries, the injunction to love one's neighbor,
-all of which precepts are quite contrary to murder, the men of the
-lower class would usually agree with me and ask, "How then can it be
-that the government (which they believe cannot err) sends troops to
-war and orders the execution of criminals?" When I replied that this
-was a mistake on the part of the government, my interlocutors became
-still more uncomfortable, and either dropped the conversation or
-showed annoyance.
-
-"Probably there is a law for it. I should think the bishops know
-more than you do," a Russian soldier once said to me. And he
-evidently felt relieved, confident that his superiors had found a
-law, one that had authorized his ancestors and their successors,
-millions of men like himself, to serve the State, and that the
-question I had asked is in the nature of a conundrum.
-
-Every man in Christendom has undoubtedly been taught by tradition,
-by revelation, and by the voice of conscience, which can never be
-gainsaid, that murder is one of the most heinous crimes men can
-commit; it is thus affirmed in the gospel, and they know that this
-sin of murder is not altered by conditions--that is to say, if it
-is sinful to kill one man, it is sinful to kill another. Any man
-knows that, if murder be a sin, it is not changed by the character
-or position of the man against whom it is committed, which is the
-case also with adultery, theft, and all other sins, and yet men are
-accustomed from childhood to see murder, not only acknowledged, but
-blessed by those whom they are taught to regard as their spiritual
-directors appointed by Christ, and to know that their temporal
-leaders, with calm assurance, countenance the custom of murder, and
-summon all men, in the name of the law and even the name of God, to
-its participation. Men perceive the existence of an inconsistency,
-but finding themselves unable to discern its cause, they naturally
-attribute the idea to their own ignorance. The obviousness and
-crudity of the contradiction confirms them in this belief. They
-cannot imagine that their superiors and teachers, even the
-scientists, could advocate with so much assurance two principles so
-utterly at variance as the command to follow the law of Christ, and
-the requirement to commit murder. No pure-minded, innocent child, no
-youth, could imagine that men who stand so high in his esteem, whom
-he looks upon with such reverence, could for any purpose deceive him
-so unscrupulously.
-
-And yet it is this very deception which is constantly practised. In
-the first place, to all working-men, who have personally no time to
-analyze moral and religious problems, it is taught from childhood,
-by example and precept, that tortures and murders are compatible
-with Christianity, and in certain cases they should not only be
-permitted, but must be employed; in the second place, to certain
-among them, engaged in the army either through conscription or
-voluntarily, it is conveyed that the accomplishment with their own
-hands of torture or homicide is not only their sacred duty, but a
-glorious exploit, meriting praise and recompense.
-
-This universal deception is propagated by all catechisms or their
-substitutes, those books which at the present time teachers are
-compelled to use in the instruction of the young. It is taught that
-violence,--outrage, imprisonment, execution,--the murder that takes
-place in civil or in foreign war, has for its object the maintenance
-and security of the political organization,--whether this be an
-absolute or a constitutional monarchy, consulate, republic, or
-commune,--that it is perfectly legitimate, and that it is in
-contradiction neither to morality nor Christianity.
-
-And men are so firmly convinced of this that they grow up, live, and
-die in the belief, never for a moment doubting it.
-
-So much for this universal deception. And now for another, which is
-special, and practised upon soldiers and police, the instruments by
-whose agency outrages and murders, necessary for the support and
-maintenance of the existing order, are accomplished.
-
-The military rules and regulations of every country are practically
-the same as those formulated in the Russian military code.
-
-"87. To fulfil exactly, and without comment, the orders of the
-superior officers, means--to execute orders with precision, without
-considering whether they are good or bad, or whether their execution
-be possible. Only the superior is responsible for the consequences
-of his order.
-
-"88. The only occasion on which the inferior should not obey the
-order of his superior is when he sees plainly that in obeying it
-..." (Here one naturally thinks it will surely go on to say when
-he plainly sees that in fulfilling the order of his superior he
-violates the law of God. Not at all; it goes on to say:) "_sees
-plainly that he violates the oath of allegiance and duty to his
-sovereign_."
-
-It is stated in the code that a man, in becoming a soldier, can and
-must execute _all_ the orders, without exception, which he receives
-from his superior; orders which, for a soldier, are for the most
-part connected with murder. He may violate every law, human and
-divine, as long as he does not violate his oath of allegiance to him
-who, at a given time, happens to be in power.
-
-Thus it stands in the Russian military code, and this is the
-substance of the military codes of other nations. It could not be
-otherwise. The foundations of the power of the State rest upon the
-delusion by means of which men are set free from their obligations
-to God and to their own consciences, and bound to obey the will of a
-casual superior.
-
-This is the basis of the appalling conviction that prevails among
-the lower classes, that the existing system, so ruinous to them, is
-necessary and justifiable, and that it must be maintained by outrage
-and murder.
-
-This is inevitable. In order to force the lower, the more numerous
-classes to act as their own oppressors and tormentors, to commit
-deeds contrary to their consciences, it is necessary to deceive them.
-
-And this is done.
-
-Not long since I saw again put into practice this shameful
-deception, and again wondered to see it effected without opposition
-and so audaciously.
-
-In the beginning of November, on my way through Tula, I saw at the
-gates of the _Zemskaya Uprava_ the familiar dense crowd of men and
-women, from which issued the sounds of drunken voices, blended with
-the heartrending sobs of the wives and mothers.
-
-The military conscription was in progress.
-
-As usual, I could not pass by without pausing; the sight attracts me
-as by fascination.
-
-Again I mingled with the crowd, and stood looking on, questioning,
-and marveling at the facility with which this most terrible of all
-offenses is committed in broad daylight, and in the midst of a large
-city.
-
-On the first day of November, in every village in Russia, with its
-population of one hundred millions, the _starostas_,[27] according
-to custom, take the men whose names are entered on the rolls,
-frequently their own sons, and carry them to town.
-
- [27] Elders.
-
-On the way the men drink freely, unchecked by the elder men; they
-realize that entering upon this insane business of leaving their
-wives and mothers, giving up everything that is sacred to them, only
-to become the senseless tools of murder, is too painful if one's
-senses are not stupefied with wine.
-
-And thus they journey on, carousing, brawling, singing, and
-fighting. The night is spent in a tavern, and on this morning,
-having drunk still more, they assemble before the house of the
-_Uprava_.
-
-Some in new sheepskin coats, with knit mufflers wound round their
-necks, some with their eyes swollen with drinking, some noisy and
-boisterous, by way of stimulating their courage, others silent and
-woebegone, they were gathered near the gates, surrounded by their
-wives and mothers with tear-stained faces, awaiting their turn (I
-happened to be there on the day when the recruits were received,
-that is to say, the day on which they were examined), while others
-were crowding the entry of the office.
-
-Meanwhile they are hurrying on the work within. A door opens and
-the guard calls for Piotr Sidorov. Piotr Sidorov makes the sign of
-the cross, looks around with a startled gaze, and opening a glass
-door, he enters the small room where the recruits take off their
-clothes. The man before him, his friend, who has just been enrolled,
-has but this moment stepped out of the office stark naked, and
-with chattering teeth hastens to put on his clothes. Piotr Sidorov
-has heard, and can plainly see by the look on his face, that the
-man has been enlisted. He longs to question him, but he is ordered
-to undress as quickly as possible. He pulls off his sheepskin
-coat, drops his waistcoat and his shirt, and with prominent ribs,
-trembling and reeking with the odors of liquor, tobacco, and sweat,
-steps barefooted into the office, wondering what he shall do with
-his large sinewy hands.
-
-A portrait of the Emperor in uniform, with a ribbon across his
-breast, in a large golden frame, hangs in a conspicuous place, while
-a small ikon of Christ, clad in a loose garment, with the crown of
-thorns on his head, hangs in one corner. In the middle of the room
-is a table covered with a green cloth on which papers are lying,
-and on which stands a small three-cornered object surmounted by
-an eagle and called the mirror of justice. Around the table the
-officials sit tranquilly. One smokes, another turns over the papers.
-As soon as Sidorov enters a guard comes up and measures him. His
-chin is raised and his feet are adjusted. Then a man who is smoking
-a cigarette--the doctor--approaches him, and without glancing at
-his face, but gazing in another direction, touches his body with an
-expression of disgust, measures him, orders the guard to open his
-mouth, tells him to breathe, and then proceeds to dictate to another
-man who takes down the minutes. Finally, and still without even one
-glance at his face, the doctor says: "He will do! The next!" and
-with a wearied air he seats himself at the table. Once more the
-guard hustles him about, bidding him to make haste. Somehow or other
-he pulls on his shirt, fumbling for the sleeves, hastily gets on his
-trousers, wraps his feet in the rags he uses for stockings, pulls on
-his boots, hunts for his muffler and cap, tucks his sheepskin coat
-under his arm, and is escorted to that part of the hall which is
-fenced off by a bench, where the recruits who have been admitted are
-placed. A young countryman like himself, but from another, far-away
-government, who is a soldier already, with a musket to which a
-bayonet is attached, guards him, ready to run him through the body
-if he should attempt to escape.
-
-Meanwhile the crowd of fathers, mothers, and wives, hustled by
-policemen, presses around the gates, trying to find out who has been
-taken and who rejected. A man who has been rejected comes out and
-tells them that Piotr has been admitted; then is heard the cry of
-Piotr's young wife, for whom this word means a four or five years'
-separation, and the dissolute life such as a soldier's wife in
-domestic service is.
-
-But here comes a man with flowing hair and dressed differently from
-the others, who has just arrived; he descends from his droschky and
-goes toward the house of the _Zemskaya Uprava_, while the policemen
-clear a way for him through the crowd.
-
-"The Father has arrived to swear them in." And this "Father,"
-who has always been accustomed to believe himself a special and
-privileged servant of Christ, and who is usually quite unconscious
-of his false position, enters the room where the recruits who have
-been admitted are waiting for him; he puts on, as a vestment, a sort
-of brocade curtain, disengages from it his flowing hair, opens the
-Bible wherein an oath is forbidden, lifts the cross, that cross on
-which Christ was crucified for refusing to do what this person, his
-supposed servant, commands men to do, and all these defenseless and
-deluded young men repeat after him the lie so familiar to his lips,
-which he utters with such assurance. He reads while they repeat:
-"I promise and swear to the Lord Almighty, upon His holy Bible,"
-etc. ... to defend (that is, to murder all those whom I shall be
-ordered to murder) and to do whatever those men, strangers to me,
-who regard me only as a necessary tool to be used in perpetrating
-the outrages by which they oppress my brethren and preserve their
-own positions, command me to do. All the recruits having stupidly
-repeated the words, the so-called Father departs, quite sure that
-he has performed his duty in the most accurate and conscientious
-manner, while the young men deluded by him really believe that by
-the absurd, and to them almost unintelligible, words which they have
-just uttered, they are released during their term of service from
-all obligations to their fellow-men, and are bound by new and more
-imperative ties to the duties of a soldier.
-
-And this is done publicly, but not a man comes forward to say to the
-deceived and the deceivers, "Come to your senses and go your way;
-this is all a base and treacherous lie; it imperils not only your
-bodies, but your souls."
-
-No one does this. On the contrary, as if in derision, after they
-have all been enrolled and are about to depart, the colonel enters
-the hall where these poor, drunken, and deluded creatures are locked
-in, and with a solemn air, calls out to them in military fashion:
-"Good day, men! I congratulate you upon entering _the Czar's
-service_." And they, poor fellows, mumble in their semi-drunken way,
-a reply which has already been taught them, to the effect that it
-fills their hearts with joy.
-
-The expectant crowd of fathers, mothers, and wives is still standing
-at the gates. Women, with tear-worn, wide-open eyes, watch the door.
-Suddenly it opens and the men come rolling out, assuming an air of
-bravado, the Petruhas, Vanuhas, and Makars, now enrolled, trying
-to avoid the eyes of their relatives, pretending not to see them.
-At once break out the sobs and cries of the wives and mothers.
-Some of the men clasp them in their arms, weeping, some put on a
-devil-may-care look, others make an attempt to console them. The
-wives, the mothers, realizing that they are now abandoned, without
-support, for three or four years, cry and wail bitterly. The fathers
-say little; they only sigh and make a clicking sound with their
-tongues that indicates their grief; they know that they are about
-to lose that help which they have reared and trained their sons to
-render; that when their sons return they will no longer be sober and
-industrious laborers, but soldiers, weaned from their former life of
-simplicity, grown dissolute, and vain of their uniforms.
-
-Now the whole crowd has departed, driving down the street in
-sleighs to the taverns and inns, and louder grows the chorus of
-mingled sobs, songs, and drunken cries, the moaning and muttering
-of the wives and mothers, the sounds of the accordion, the noise of
-altercations.
-
-All repair to the eating-houses and taverns, from the traffic of
-which part of the revenue of the government is derived, and there
-they give themselves up to drink, stupefying their senses so that
-they care nothing for the injustice done to them.
-
-Then they spend several weeks at home, drinking nearly all the time.
-
-When the day arrives, they are driven like cattle to the appointed
-place, where they are drilled in military exercises by those who a
-few years ago, like themselves, were deceived and brutalized. During
-the instructions the means employed are lying, blows, and _vodka_.
-And before the year is over the good, kindly, and intelligent
-fellows will have become as brutal as their teachers.
-
-"Suppose your father were arrested and attempted escape," I once
-suggested to a young soldier, "what would you do?"
-
-"It would be my duty to thrust my bayonet through his body," he
-replied, in the peculiar, meaningless monotone of the soldier. "And
-if he ran I should shoot," he added, taking pride apparently in
-thinking what he should do if his father attempted to run.
-
-When a good young fellow is reduced to a condition lower than
-that of the brute, he is ready for those who wish to use him as
-an instrument of violence. He is ready. The man is lost, and a
-new instrument of violence has been created. And all this goes on
-throughout Russia in the autumn of every year, in broad daylight, in
-the heart of a great city, witnessed by all the inhabitants, and the
-stratagem is so skilfully managed, that though men at the bottom of
-their hearts realize its infamy, still they have not the power to
-throw off the yoke.
-
-After our eyes are once opened, and we view this frightful delusion
-in its true light, it is astonishing that preachers of Christianity
-and morality, teachers of youth, or even those kindly and sensible
-parents who are to be found in every community, can advocate
-any principles of morality whatever in the midst of a society
-where torture and murder are openly recognized as constituting
-indispensable conditions in human life,--openly acknowledged by all
-churches and governments,--where certain men among us must be always
-ready to murder their brethren, and where any of us may have to do
-the same.
-
-Not to speak of Christian doctrine, how are children, how are
-youths, how are any to be taught morality, while the principle that
-murder is required in order to maintain the general welfare is
-taught; when men are made to believe that murder is lawful, that
-some men, and any of us may be among them, must kill and torture
-their neighbors, and commit every kind of crime at the command of
-those in authority? If this principle is right, then there is not,
-nor can there be, any doctrine of morality; might is right, and
-there is no other law. This principle, which some seek to justify
-on the hypothesis of the struggle for existence, in fact dominates
-society.
-
-What kind of moral doctrine can that be which permits murder for any
-object whatsoever? It is as impossible as a mathematical problem
-which would affirm that 2 = 3. It may be admitted that 2 = 3 looks
-like mathematics, but it is not mathematics at all. Every code of
-morals must be founded first of all upon the acknowledgment that
-human life is to be held sacred.
-
-The doctrine of an eye for an eye, a tooth for a tooth, and a life
-for a life, has been revoked by Christianity because that doctrine
-was but the justification of immorality, a semblance of justice, but
-without meaning. Life is a substance which can neither be weighed,
-measured, nor compared; hence the taking of one life for another has
-no sense. Moreover, the aim of every social law is amelioration of
-human life. How, then, can the destruction of certain lives improve
-the condition of other lives? The destruction of life is not an act
-that tends to improve it; it is suicide.
-
-To destroy human life, and call it justice, may be likened to the
-act of a man who, having lost one arm, cuts off the other, by way of
-making matters even.
-
-Not to speak of the deceit of presenting the most shocking crimes in
-the light of a duty, of the shocking abuse of using Christ's name
-and authority in order to confirm acts which he condemned, how can
-men, looking at the matter from the standpoint merely of personal
-safety, suffer the existence of the shocking, senseless, cruel, and
-dangerous force which every organized government, supported by the
-army, represents?
-
-The most violent and rapacious band of robbers is less to be
-feared than such an organization. Even the authority of the leader
-of a band of robbers is more or less limited by the will of each
-individual member of the band, who, retaining a certain degree of
-independence, has the right to oppose acts with which he does not
-agree. But the authority of men who form part of an organized
-government, maintained by the army with its present system of
-discipline, is unlimited. When their master, be he Boulanger,
-Pugatchov, or Napoleon, issues his commands, there is no crime too
-hideous for those who form part of the government and the army to
-commit.
-
-It must often occur to one who sees conscriptions, drills, and
-military manoeuvers taking place, who sees police going about with
-loaded revolvers, sentinels armed with bayonets,--to one who hears
-from morning till night, as I do (in the district of Hamovniky,[28]
-where I live), the whirring balls and the concussion as they
-strike the target,--to ask why these things are tolerated. And
-when one sees in the same city, where every attempt at violence is
-at once suppressed, where even the sale of powder or medicines is
-prohibited, where a doctor is not allowed to practice without a
-diploma, thousands of disciplined men, controlled by one individual,
-being trained for murder, one cannot help asking how men who have
-any regard for their own safety can calmly endure such a condition
-of affairs, and allow it to continue? Leaving aside the question
-of the immorality and pernicious influence of it, what could be
-more dangerous? What are they thinking of,--I speak not now of
-Christians, Christian pastors, philanthropists, or moralists, but
-simply those who value their lives, their safety, their welfare?
-Granting that power is at present in the hands of a moderate
-ruler, it may fall to-morrow into those of a Biron, an Elizabeth,
-a Catharine, a Pugatchov, a Napoleon. And even though the ruler be
-moderate to-day, he may become a mere savage to-morrow; he may be
-succeeded by an insane or half-insane heir, like the King of Bavaria
-or the Emperor Paul.
-
- [28] In Moscow.
-
-It is not only those who fill the highest offices, but all the
-lesser authorities scattered over the land--the chiefs of police,
-the commanders of companies, even the _stanovoys_[29]--may commit
-shocking crimes before they can be dismissed; it is an everyday
-occurrence.
-
- [29] Chiefs of rural police.
-
-Involuntarily one asks: How can men allow these things to go on? How
-can they tolerate them with any regard to their own personal safety?
-
-It may be replied that some men do oppose it. (Those who are
-deluded and live in subjection have nothing either to tolerate or
-interdict.) Those who favor the continuance of the present system
-are only those who derive some special advantage from it. They
-favor it, and even with the disadvantages of having an insane
-or tyrannical man at the head of the government and the army,
-the position is less disadvantageous to them than if the present
-organization were abolished.
-
-Whether his position be held under a Boulanger, a Republic, a
-Pugatchov, or a Catharine,--the judge, the police commissioner, the
-governor, the officer, will remain in it. But if the system which
-assures their positions were overthrown, they would lose them.
-Therefore it is a matter of indifference to these men whether one
-man or another be at the head of the organization of violence. What
-they do fear is its abolition; so they support it.
-
-One wonders why men of independent means, who are not obliged to
-become soldiers, the so-called _lite_ of society, enter military
-service in Russia, in England, in Germany, in Austria, and even in
-France, and desire the chance of killing? Why do parents, why do
-moral men, send their children to military schools? Why do mothers
-buy them such toys as helmets, swords, and muskets? (No child of
-a peasant ever plays at being a soldier.) Why do kindly men and
-women, who can have no manner of interest in war, go into ecstasies
-over the exploits of a man like Skobelev? Why do men who are
-under no obligation to do it, and who receive no pay for it, like
-Marshals of Nobility in Russia, devote months to the service which
-demands such unremitting labor, wearying to the minds as well as
-to the body,--the enlistment of recruits? Why do all emperors and
-kings wear a military dress, why do they have drills and parades
-and military rewards? Why are monuments built to generals and
-conquerors? Why do wealthy and independent men regard it as an
-honor to occupy the position of lackeys to kings, to flatter them
-and feign a belief in their special superiority? Why do men who
-have long since ceased to believe in the medieval superstitions
-of the Church still constantly and solemnly pretend to do so,
-and thus support a sacrilegious and demoralizing institution?
-Why is the ignorance of the people so zealously preserved, not
-only by the government, but by men of the higher classes? Why do
-they so energetically denounce every attempt to overthrow popular
-superstition and to promote popular education? Why do historians,
-novelists, and poets, who can derive no benefit in exchange for
-their flattery, paint in such glowing colors the emperors, kings,
-and generals of bygone times? Why do the so-called scientists devote
-their lives to formulate theories that violence committed on the
-people by power is legitimate violence--is right?
-
-One often wonders why an artist or a woman of the world, neither of
-whom, it would seem, ordinarily take much interest in sociological
-or military questions--why should they condemn strikes among
-workmen, or advocate war with such partizan zeal?
-
-But one ceases to feel surprise when one realizes that the members
-of the higher classes possess the keenest insight, an intuitive
-perception, as it were, concerning those conditions which are
-friendly and those which are hostile to the organization upon whose
-existence their privileges depend.
-
-It is true that the woman of society does not deliberately argue
-thus: "Were there no capitalists, or armies to defend them, my
-husband would have no money, and I should have neither _salon_
-nor fashionable gowns;" nor does the artist tell himself, in
-so many words, that if his pictures are to be sold there must
-be capitalists, defended by armies, to buy them; yet instinct,
-here doing duty for reason, is their surest guide. This instinct
-guides, with rare exceptions, all men who support those political,
-religious, and economic institutions which are advantageous to
-themselves.
-
-But is it possible that men who belong to the higher classes defend
-this organization only because it is for their own advantage? They
-surely cannot fail to see that as an organization it is irrational,
-incompatible with the present consciousness of men, with public
-opinion, and that it is fraught with danger. Good, intelligent,
-honest men who belong to the ruling class cannot but suffer from
-such contradictions, nor can they close their eyes to the dangers
-that menace them.
-
-And is it possible that the millions of men of the lower classes
-can go on calmly committing deeds which are so manifestly criminal,
-such as are the murders and tortures which they commit, simply from
-fear of punishment? Surely these things could not exist were not the
-falsehood and brutality of their actions hidden from all classes of
-men by the system of the political organization.
-
-When such deeds are committed, there are so many instigators,
-participants, and abettors that no single individual feels himself
-morally responsible.
-
-Assassins compel all the witnesses of an assassination to strike
-the body of the victim, with the intention of dividing the
-responsibility among the greatest number possible. And whenever
-those crimes by the aid of which the state system is maintained are
-to be committed, this same thing is observed. The rulers of State
-always endeavor to involve the greatest possible number of citizens
-in the participation of the crimes which it is to their interest to
-have committed.
-
-In these latter days this is made especially evident by the
-drawing of citizens on the jury in courts of law, by drafting them
-into the army as soldiers, and into the communal or legislative
-administration as electors or elected.
-
-As in a wicker basket all the ends are so carefully interwoven that
-they cannot be seen, so is it with the responsibility for crime.
-Individual responsibilities are so manipulated that no man perceives
-precisely what he is incurring.
-
-In olden times tyrants were responsible for the crimes which were
-committed, but in the present age the most frightful crimes are
-perpetrated, such as would hardly have been possible in the time of
-Nero, and still no one is held responsible.
-
-Some demand the crime, some propose it, some determine it, some
-confirm it, some order it, some execute it.
-
-Women and old men are hung, are flogged to death--even quite
-innocent people, as was recently the case with us in Russia, in
-the affair of the factory at Uzova; or, as is done all over in
-Europe and America, in the struggle with anarchists and other
-revolutionists, hundreds, thousands of men are shot, are killed;
-or, as happens in time of war, millions of men are massacred; or,
-as is happening always, the souls of men are destroyed by solitary
-confinement, by the debauchery of barrack life--and no one is
-responsible.
-
-On the lower scale of the social ladder are posted soldiers armed
-with muskets, pistols, swords; they go about doing violence and
-killing, and through their doing so force other men to become
-soldiers like themselves, and yet they never dream that the
-responsibility rests on their shoulders; they shift it on to their
-superiors, who give the orders.
-
-The czars, the presidents, the ministers of State, the general
-assemblies, order tortures, murders, conscriptions, and as they
-enjoy the absolute assurance that they rule by the grace of God
-or by the will of the society they govern, and that that society
-demands from them what they order, they cannot regard themselves as
-responsible.
-
-Between these two classes we find a number of intermediaries, who
-take charge of the executions, tortures, conscriptions, and they,
-too, wash their hands of all responsibility, alleging on the one
-hand the orders of their superiors, and on the other that it is for
-such as themselves, who stand lower on the social ladder, to do
-these things.
-
-The power that demands and the power that fulfils commands, the two
-extremes of governmental organization, unite like the two ends of
-a chain, each depending on and supporting the other, and all the
-intervening links.
-
-Were it not for the conviction that there are men who assume the
-whole responsibility of such deeds, no soldier would lift his hand
-to torture or murder his fellow-man. Were it not for the conviction
-that the nation demands it, no king, emperor, president, or assembly
-would venture to issue commands for murder and torture. Were it
-not that he believes that there are men above him who assume the
-responsibility of his actions, and others below him whose welfare
-requires this treatment, no man of the intermediate class would ever
-perform the functions committed to him.
-
-The organization of the State is such that on whatever position of
-the social ladder a man may stand, his irresponsibility remains
-intact. The higher he stands, the more liable he is to feel the
-pressure brought to bear on him from below, urging him to issue
-commands, and the less likely he will be to be influenced by orders
-from above, and _vice versa_.
-
-But it is not enough that all men bound by the organization of the
-State transfer their responsibility from one to the other,--the
-peasant, for instance, who becomes a soldier to the merchant who
-has become an officer; the officer to the noble who occupies the
-position of governor; the governor to the minister of State; the
-minister to the sovereign; and the sovereign who in his turn
-shifts the responsibility upon all,--officials, nobles, merchants,
-peasants. Not only do men in this way merely free themselves from
-all sense of responsibility for their actions, but because, as
-they adapt themselves to fulfil the requirements of political
-organizations, they so constantly, persistently, and strenuously
-assure themselves and others that all men are not equal that they
-begin to believe it sincerely themselves. Thus we are assured that
-some men are superior and must be especially honored and obeyed;
-while, on the other hand, we are assured in every way that others
-are inferior, and therefore bound to obey without murmur the
-commands of their superiors.
-
-It is to this inequality,--the exaltation of some upon the abasement
-of others,--that we may chiefly attribute the incapacity which men
-display for discerning the folly of the existing system, with the
-cruelty and deceptions committed by some, and suffered by others.
-
-There are certain men who have been made to believe that they are
-possessed of a peculiar importance and greatness, who have become
-so intoxicated by their imaginary superiority that they cease to
-realize their responsibility for the actions they commit; others
-who, on the contrary, have been told that they are insignificant
-beings, and that it is their duty to submit to those above them,
-and, as the natural result of this continual state of degradation,
-fall into a strange condition of stupefied servility, and in this
-state they, too, lose all sense of responsibility for their actions.
-And as to the intermediate class, subservient to those above them,
-and yet to a certain extent regarding themselves as superiors, they
-are apt to be both servile and arrogant, and they also lose the
-sense of responsibility.
-
-One needs but to glance at any official of high rank in the act
-of reviewing the troops. Accompanied by his staff, mounted on
-a magnificently caparisoned charger, equipped in a brilliant
-uniform, displaying all his decorations, he rides in front of
-the ranks, while the band plays martial music and the soldiers
-present arms, standing, as they do, as though verily petrified
-with servility,--one has but to see this to understand how in such
-moments, under such conditions, both generals and soldiers might
-commit deeds which they never would have dreamed of committing.
-
-But the intoxication to which men succumb under conditions like
-parades, pageants, religious ceremonies, and coronations, though
-acute, is not enduring, while there is another which is chronic,
-shared by all who have any authority whatsoever, from the Czar to
-the policemen on the street, shared, too, by the masses who submit
-to authority in a state of stupefied servility, and who by way of
-justifying their submission, after the usual manner of slaves,
-ascribe the greatest importance and dignity to those whom they obey.
-
-It is this delusion in regard to human inequality and the consequent
-intoxication of power and stupefaction of servility, which makes it
-possible for those who are associated in a state organization to
-commit crimes and suffer no remorse.
-
-Under the influence of this intoxication,--there is an intoxication
-of servility as well as of power,--men seem to others, no less than
-to themselves, not the ordinary human beings which they really are,
-but specially privileged beings,--nobles, merchants, governors,
-judges, officers, kings, statesmen, soldiers, having no longer
-ordinary human duties, but only the duties of the class to which
-they belong.
-
-Thus the landed proprietor who prosecuted the peasants on account of
-the forest did so because he did not regard himself as an ordinary
-man, with the same rights as the peasants, his neighbors, but as a
-great landowner and a member of the nobility, and, as such, exalted
-by the intoxication of authority, felt himself insulted by the
-opposition of the peasants. And regardless of the consequences, he
-sends in his petition to be reinstated in his pretended rights. The
-judges who rendered an unfair decision in his favor, did so because
-they fancied themselves different from ordinary men, who are guided
-only by truth; under the spell of the intoxication of authority,
-they believed themselves the guardians of a justice which cannot
-err; and at the same time, under the influence of servility, they
-considered themselves obliged to apply certain texts set forth in a
-certain book and called the laws; and all the other persons who took
-part in this affair, from the representatives of higher authority
-down to the last soldier ready to fire upon his brother,--they all
-accepted themselves in their conventionally accredited characters.
-Not one asked himself if he should take part in an act which his
-conscience reprobated, but each accepted himself as one who had
-simply to fulfil a certain function; let it be the Czar, anointed
-of God, an exceptional being called to look after the welfare of a
-hundred million men; let it be the noble; the priest, the recipient
-of grace through ordination; the soldier, bound by oath to fulfil
-commands without hesitation,--it is the same with all.
-
-All their activity, past, present, and future, is stimulated by a
-like intoxicating influence. If they had not the firm conviction
-that the title of king, statesman, governor, judge, landowner,
-marshal of nobility, officer, or soldier is of serious import and
-necessity, not one of them could contemplate without horror and
-disgust his own share in the deeds done in these latter days.
-
-Arbitrary distinctions, established hundreds of years ago,
-recognized for hundreds of years, described by special names
-and distinguished by special dress, sanctioned by all kinds of
-solemnities calculated to influence men through their emotions, have
-been so thoroughly impressed upon the human imagination that men
-have forgotten the common, everyday aspects of life; they look upon
-themselves and others from a point of view dependent upon outward
-conditions, and regard their own acts and those of their neighbors
-accordingly.
-
-Here, for instance, we see a man of advanced years, a man perfectly
-in possession of his senses, who, because he has been decorated
-with some bauble, and is attired in a ridiculous habit, or because
-he is the holder of certain keys, or has received a bit of blue
-ribbon fitter for the wear of a coquettish child, when he is called
-general, chamberlain, chevalier of the order of St. Andrew, or some
-such absurdity, becomes at once proud, arrogant, happy; if, on the
-contrary, he fails to get the gewgaw or the nickname he expected, he
-becomes unhappy and ill, really to the point of sickness.
-
-Or let us take a still more remarkable case. A man, morally
-sane, young, free, and absolutely safe from want, has no sooner
-received the name of district-attorney, of _Zemsky Nachalnik_,
-than he pounces upon some luckless widow, takes her from her small
-children, and throws her into jail, all because the poor woman has
-been secretly selling wine, and thus depriving the treasury of 25
-roubles' revenue. This man feels no remorse. Another still more
-surprising case is that of a man, ordinarily kind and good, who,
-because he wears a uniform or carries a medal, and is told that he
-is a keeper [_garde-champtre_] or custom-house officer, considers
-himself justified in shooting men down, and no one ever dreams of
-blaming him for it, nor does he think himself in the wrong; but
-if he failed to fire upon his fellow-men he would then indeed be
-culpable. I say nothing of judges and jurymen, who condemn men to
-death, nor of troops, who slaughter thousands without a vestige of
-remorse, because they are told that they are not in the position of
-ordinary men, but are jurymen, judges, generals, soldiers.
-
-This abnormal and surprising state of affairs is formulated in words
-like these: "As a man, I sympathize with him, but as a keeper, a
-judge, a general, a czar, or a soldier, I must torture or murder
-him."
-
-So it is in this present case; men are on the way to slaughter and
-torment their famine-stricken brethren, admitting all the while that
-in this dispute between the peasants and the landowner the former
-are in the right (all the superior officials told me so). They know
-that the peasants are miserable, poor, and hungry, and that the
-landowner is wealthy and one who inspires no sympathy, and yet these
-men are going to kill the peasants in order that this landowner may
-gain 3000 roubles; and all because they regard themselves at the
-moment not as men, but one as a governor, another as a general of
-gendarmerie, another as an officer, or as soldiers, as the case may
-be, and bound not by the eternal laws of the human conscience, but
-by the accidental, transitory demands of their positions.
-
-However strange it may appear, the only explanation of this
-surprising phenomenon is that men are like those under hypnotic
-influence, who, as suggested by the hypnotizers, imagine themselves
-in certain conditions. Thus, for instance, when it is suggested to
-a hypnotized patient that he is lame, he proceeds to limp; that he
-is blind, he ceases to see; that he is an animal, and he begins to
-bite. And this is the state of all those who put their social and
-political duties before, and to the detriment of, their duties as
-human beings.
-
-The essential characteristic of this condition is, that men,
-influenced by the thought that has been suggested to them, are
-unable to weigh their own actions, and simply obey the suggestion
-that has been communicated to them.
-
-The difference between men artificially hypnotized and those under
-the influence of governmental suggestion consists in this,--that
-to the former their imagined environment is suggested suddenly by
-one person, and the suggestion operates only for a short time;
-whereas to the latter, their imagined position has been the result
-of gradual suggestion, going on, not for years, but for generations,
-and proceeds not from a single individual, but from their entire
-circumstances.
-
-"But," it will be objected, "always, in all societies, the majority
-of men, all the children, all the women, absorbed in the duties
-and cares of motherhood, all the great mass of workers, who are
-completely absorbed by their labor, all those of weak mind, all the
-enfeebled, the many who have come under the subjection of nicotine,
-alcohol, opium, or what not,--all these are not in a position to
-think for themselves, and consequently they submit to those who
-stand on a higher intellectual level, or they simply act according
-to domestic or social tradition, or in accordance with public
-opinion,--and in their acting thus there is nothing abnormal or
-contradictory."
-
-Indeed, there is nothing unnatural in it, and the readiness with
-which those who reason but little submit to the guidance of men who
-stand on a higher plane of consciousness is a universal phenomenon,
-and one without which social life could not be. The minority submit
-to principles which they have considered for themselves, and in
-consequence of the accordance of these principles with their reason;
-the rest of men, the majority, submit to the same principles, not
-because of personal apprehension of their validity, but because
-public opinion demands it.
-
-Such submission to public opinion of men who can think but little
-for themselves has nothing abnormal about it so long as public
-opinion maintains its unity.
-
-But there is a period when the higher forms of truth, having been
-revealed to the few, are in process of transmission to the many;
-and when the public opinion which was based on a lower plane of
-consciousness has already begun to waver, to give place to the new,
-ready to be established. And now men begin to view their own and
-other men's actions in the light of their new consciousness, while,
-influenced by inertia and tradition, they still continue to apply
-principles which were the outcome of the once highest consciousness,
-but which are now distinctly opposed to it. Hence it is that men
-find themselves in an abnormal position, and that, while realizing
-the necessity of conforming to this new public opinion, they lack
-courage to abandon conformity to the old one. This is the attitude
-which men, not only the men on the train, but the greater part of
-mankind, occupy toward Christian truths.
-
-The attitude of those who belong to the upper classes, and who have
-all the advantages of high position, is the same as that of the
-lower classes who obey implicitly every command that is given to
-them.
-
-Men of the ruling classes, who have no reasonable explanation of
-their privileges, and who in order to retain them are forced to
-repress all their nobler and more humane tendencies, try to persuade
-themselves of the necessity of their superior position; while the
-lower classes, stultified and oppressed by labor, are kept by the
-higher classes in a state of constant subjection.
-
-This is the only possible explanation of the amazing phenomena
-which I witnessed on the train on the 9th of September, when men,
-naturally kindly and inoffensive, were to be seen going with an easy
-conscience to commit the most cruel, contemptible and idiotic of
-crimes.
-
-It cannot be said that they are devoid of the conscience which
-should forbid them to do these things, as was the case with the men
-who, centuries ago, tortured their fellow-men, scourged them to
-death, and burned them at the stake;--nay, it does exist in them,
-but it is kept dormant; auto-suggestion, as the psychologist calls
-it, keeps it thus among the upper classes, while the soldiers, the
-executioners, are under the hypnotic influence of the classes above
-them.
-
-Conscience may slumber for a time, but it is not dead, and in spite
-of suggestion and auto-suggestion, it still whispers; yet a little
-while and it will awaken.
-
-One might compare these men to a person under the influence of
-hypnotism, to whom it has been suggested that he shall commit some
-act contrary to his conception of right and wrong, as, for example,
-to murder his mother or his child. He feels himself so far coerced
-by the suggestion given him that he cannot refrain; and yet as the
-appointed time and place draw near, he seems to hear the stifled
-voice of conscience reviving, and he begins to draw back, he tries
-to awaken himself. And no one can tell whether or not hypnotic
-suggestion will conquer in the end; all depends on the relative
-strength of conflicting influences.
-
-So it was with the soldiers on that train, so it is with all men of
-our period who take part in state violence and profit by it.
-
-There was a time when, having gone forth to do violence and murder,
-to terrify by an example, men did not return until they had
-performed their mission, and then they suffered no doubt or remorse;
-but having done their fellow-men to death, they placidly returned to
-the bosom of their families, caressed their children, and with jest
-and laughter gave themselves up to all the pure joys of the hearth.
-
-The men who were then benefited by violence, landed proprietors
-and men of wealth, believed their own interests to have a direct
-connection with these cruelties. It is different now, when men know,
-or at least suspect, the real reason why they do these things. They
-may close their eyes and try to silence their consciences, but
-neither those who commit such outrages, nor those who order them,
-can longer fail to discern the significance of their acts. It may
-be that they do not fully appreciate it until they are on the point
-of committing the deed, or in some cases not until after the deed
-has been done. Those soldiers, for instance, who administered the
-tortures during the riot at the Yuzovo factory, at Nijni-Novgorod,
-Saratov, and Orel, did not fully apprehend the significance of what
-they were doing until it was all over; and now, both they who gave
-the orders, and they who executed them, suffer agonies of shame in
-the condemnation of public opinion and of their own conscience. I
-have talked with some of the soldiers about it; they either tried to
-change the subject or spoke of it with horror and repugnance.
-
-There are instances of men coming to their senses, however, just
-as they are on the point of committing deeds of the kind. I know
-of a sergeant who during the riots was beaten by two peasants;
-he reported the fact to the commander of his company, but on the
-following day, when he saw the tortures inflicted upon other
-peasants, he persuaded his superior officer to destroy his report
-and to allow the peasants who had beaten him to depart unpunished.
-I know of a case where the soldiers appointed to shoot a prisoner
-refused to obey; and of other occasions where the superior officers
-have refused to direct tortures and executions.
-
-The men who were in the train on the 9th of September started with
-the intention of torturing and murdering their fellow-men, but
-whether they would carry out their intention one could not know.
-However each one's share in the responsibility of this affair might
-be concealed from him, however strong the hypnotic suggestion
-among those taking part in it that they did so, not as men, but as
-functionaries, and so could violate all human obligations,--in spite
-of this,--the nearer they approached their destination, the more
-they must have hesitated about it.
-
-It is impossible that the Governor should not pause at the moment of
-giving the decisive order to begin to murder and torture. He knows
-that the conduct of the Governor at Orel has excited the indignation
-of the honorable men, and he himself, influenced by public opinion,
-has repeatedly expressed his own disapproval of the affair; he knows
-that the lawyer who ought to have accompanied him distinctly refused
-to do so, denouncing the whole affair as shameful; he knows that
-changes are likely to take place in the government at any moment,
-the result of which would be that those who were in favor yesterday
-may be in disgrace to-morrow; that if the Russian press remains
-silent, the foreign press may give an account of this business that
-might cover him with opprobrium. Already he feels the influence of
-the new public opinion which is to supersede and destroy the old
-one. Moreover, he has no assurance that his subordinates may not at
-the last moment refuse to obey him. He hesitates; it is impossible
-to divine what he will do.
-
-The functionaries and officers who accompany him feel more or less
-as he does. They all know at the bottom of their hearts that they
-are engaged in a shameful business, that their share in it stains
-and degrades them in the eyes of those persons whose opinion they
-value. They know that a man who participates in deeds like these
-feels shame in the presence of the woman he loves. And like the
-Governor, they, too, feel doubtful whether the soldiers will obey
-them at the last moment. What a contrast to the self-assurance of
-their bearing on the platform of the station! Not only do they
-suffer, but they actually hesitate, and it is partly to hide their
-inward agitation that they assume an air of bravado. And this
-agitation increases as they draw nearer to their destination.
-
-And, indeed, the entire body of soldiers, although they give no
-outward sign, and seem utterly submissive, are really in the same
-state of mind.
-
-They are no longer like the soldiers of former days, who gave up the
-natural life of labor, and surrendered themselves to debauchery,
-rapine, and murder, as the Roman legions did, or the veterans of
-the Thirty Years' War, or even those soldiers of more modern times,
-whose term of service lasted twenty-five years. Now they are for
-the most part men newly taken from their families, with all the
-memories of the wholesome, rational life from which they have been
-torn still fresh in their minds.
-
-These young men, peasants for the most part, know what they are
-going to do; they know that the land-owners generally ill-treat the
-peasants, and that this probably is a case in point. Furthermore,
-the majority of them can read, and the books they read are
-not always in favor of the service; some even demonstrate its
-immorality. They find comrades who are independent thinkers,
-volunteers and young officers, and the seed of doubt respecting the
-merit and rectitude of such deeds as they are about to commit has
-already been sown in their minds. True, they have all been subjected
-to that ingenious discipline, the work of centuries, which tends to
-kill the spirit of independence in every man, and are so accustomed
-to automatic obedience that at the words of command, "Fire along the
-line!... Fire!" and so forth, their muskets are raised mechanically,
-and they perform the customary movements. But now, "Fire!" means
-something more than firing at a target; it means the murder of their
-abused, downtrodden fathers and brothers, who are grouped yonder in
-the street with their wives and children, gesticulating and crying
-out one does not know what.
-
-There they are: here a man with thin beard, clad in a patched
-_kaftan_, with bast shoes on his feet, just like the father left
-behind in the province of Kazan or Ryazan; there another, with gray
-beard and bowed shoulders, leaning on a stout staff, just like the
-grandfather; and here a youth, with big boots and red shirt, just
-like himself a year ago,--the soldier who is about to shoot him. And
-there is a woman, with her bast shoes and petticoat, like the mother
-he left behind him.
-
-And he must fire upon them!
-
-And God alone knows what each soldier will do at the supreme moment.
-The slightest suggestion that they ought not to do it, that they
-must not do it,--a single word or hint,--would be enough to make
-them pause.
-
-Every one of these men at the moment of action will be like one
-hypnotized, to whom it has been suggested to chop a log, who, as
-he approaches the object which is told to him is a log, sees as
-he raises the ax that it is not a log at all, but his own brother
-who lies sleeping there. He may accomplish the act which has been
-suggested to him, or he may awake at the moment of committing it.
-It is the same with these men. If they do not awaken, then will a
-deed be done as shocking as that committed in Orel, and the reign of
-official hypnotism will thereby gain new power. If they awaken, then
-not only will the deed remain undone, but many of those who hear
-of their refusal to do it will free themselves from the suggestion
-under whose influence they have hitherto acted, or at least will
-think of the possibility of doing so.
-
-If only a few of these men come to their senses, and refuse to do
-the deed, and fearlessly express their opinion of the wickedness of
-such deeds, even such a few men might enable the rest to throw off
-the suggestion under the influence of which they act, and such evil
-deeds would not be done.
-
-And another thing: if but a few of those persons who are simply
-spectators of the affair would, from their knowledge of other
-affairs of the same kind, boldly express their opinion to those
-engaged in it, and point out to them their folly, cruelty, and
-criminality, even this would not be without a salutary influence.
-
-This is precisely what happened in the case of Tula. Partly because
-certain persons expressed reluctance to take a part in the affair;
-because a lady passenger and others showed their indignation at a
-railway station; because one of the colonels whose regiment was
-summoned to reduce the peasants to obedience declared that soldiers
-are not executioners,--because of these and other apparently
-trifling influences the affair took on a different aspect, and
-the troops, on arriving, did not commit outrages, but contented
-themselves with cutting down the trees and sending them to the
-landowner.
-
-Had it not been that certain of these men conceived a distinct idea
-that they were doing wrong, and had not the idea got abroad, the
-occurrences at Orel would have been repeated. Had the feeling been
-stronger, perhaps the Governor and his troops would not have gone
-so far as even to fell the trees and deliver them to the landowner.
-Had it been more powerful still, perhaps the Governor would not have
-dared even to set out for Tula; its influence might even have gone
-so far as to prevent the Minister from framing, and the Emperor from
-confirming, such decrees.
-
-All depends, as we come therefore to see, upon the degree of
-consciousness that men possess of Christian truth.
-
-Hence, let all men to-day who wish to promote the welfare of mankind
-direct their efforts toward the development of this consciousness of
-Christian truth.
-
-But, strange to say, those men who nowadays talk most of the
-amelioration of human life, and who are the acknowledged leaders
-of public opinion, declare this to be precisely the wrong thing
-to do, and that there are more effectual expedients for improving
-human existence. They insist that any improvement in the conditions
-of human life must be accomplished, not through individual
-moral effort, nor through the propagation of truth, but through
-progressive modifications in the general material conditions of
-life. Therefore, they say, individual effort should be devoted to
-the gradual reform of the everyday conditions of life; and seeing
-that any individual profession of the truth which may happen to
-be incompatible with the existing order is harmful, because it
-provokes, on the part of the government, an opposition which
-prevents the individual from continuing efforts which may be of
-utility to society.
-
-According to this theory, all changes in the life of mankind proceed
-from the same causes that control the lives of the brute creation.
-
-And all the religious teachers, like Moses and the Prophets,
-Confucius, Lao Tze, Buddha, and Christ, preached their doctrines,
-and their followers adopted them, not because they divined and loved
-the truth, but because the political, social, and, above all, the
-economical conditions of the nations in whose midst these doctrines
-found expression were favorable to their exposition and development.
-
-Therefore the principal activity of a man who wishes to serve the
-world and to improve the condition of his kind should be directed,
-according to this theory, not to teaching and profession of the
-truth, but to the improvement of the outward, political, social,
-and, above all, economic conditions of life. The change in these
-conditions may be accomplished by serving the government and
-introducing liberal and progressive principles, by contributing to
-the development of commerce, by propagating socialistic principles,
-but, above all, by promoting the diffusion of science.
-
-According to this doctrine, it is a matter of no consequence whether
-one profess the revealed truth or not; there is no obligation to
-live in accordance with its precepts, or to refrain from actions
-opposed to them,--as, for instance, to serve the government, though
-one considers its power detrimental; to profit by the organization
-of capital, though one disapproves of it; to subscribe to certain
-forms of religion, though one considers them superstitions. Practise
-in the courts of law, though one believes them to be corrupt; or
-enter the army, or take the oath of allegiance, or indeed lie, or
-do anything that is convenient. These things are trivial; for it is
-a matter of vital importance, instead of challenging the prevailing
-customs of the day, to conform to them, though they be contrary
-to one's convictions, satisfied meanwhile to try and liberalize
-the existing institutions, by encouraging commerce, propagating
-socialistic doctrines, and generally promoting _soi-disant_
-science and civilization. According to this convenient theory,
-it is possible for a man to remain a landowner, a merchant, a
-manufacturer, a judge, a functionary paid by the government, a
-soldier, an officer, and at the same time to be humanitarian,
-socialist, and revolutionary.
-
-Hypocrisy, formerly growing only out of such religious doctrines as
-that of original sin, redemption, the Church, has in these latter
-days, by means of the new theory, gained for itself a scientific
-basis, and those whose intellectual habit of mind renders the
-hypocrisy of the Church unendurable, are yet deceived by this new
-hypocrisy with the _cachet_ of science. If in old times a man who
-professed the doctrines taught by the Church could with a clear
-conscience take part in any political crime, and benefit by so
-doing, provided he complied with the external forms of his faith,
-men of the present day, who deny Christianity, and view the conduct
-of life from a secular and scientific standpoint, are every whit as
-sure of their own innocence, even of their lofty morality, when they
-participate in and benefit by the evil-doings of government.
-
-It is not alone in Russia, but in France, England, Germany, and
-America as well, that we find the wealthy landed proprietor, who,
-in return for having allowed the men who live on his estate and who
-supply him with the products of the soil, extorts from these men,
-who are often poverty-stricken, all that he possibly can. Whenever
-these oppressed laborers make an attempt to gain something for
-themselves from the lands which the rich man calls his own, without
-first asking his consent, troops are called out, who torture and put
-to death those who have been bold enough to take such liberties.
-
-By methods like this are claims to the ownership of land made good.
-One would hardly imagine that a man who lived in such a wicked and
-selfish manner could call himself a Christian, or even liberal.
-One would think that if a man cared to seem Christian or liberal,
-he would at least cease to plunder and to torment his fellow-men
-with the aid of the government, in order to vindicate his claims
-to the ownership of land. And such would be the case were it not
-for the metaphysical hypocrisy which teaches that from a religious
-standpoint it is immaterial whether one owns land or not, and that,
-from the scientific point of view, for a single individual to give
-up his land would be a useless sacrifice, without any effect on the
-well-being of mankind, the amelioration of which can only be brought
-about by a progressive modification of outward conditions.
-
-Meanwhile, your modern landowner will, without the least hesitation
-or doubt, organize an agricultural exhibition, or a temperance
-society, or, through his wife and daughters, distribute warm
-underclothing and soup to three old women; and he will hold forth
-before the domestic circle, or in society, or as a member of
-committees, or in the public press, upon the gospel of love for
-mankind in general and the agricultural class in particular, that
-class which he never ceases to torment and oppress. And those who
-occupy a similar position will believe in him and sing his praises,
-and take counsel together upon the best methods of improving the
-condition of those very laboring classes they spend their lives
-in exploiting; and for this purpose they suggest every possible
-expedient, save that which would effect it,--namely, to desist from
-robbing the poor of the land necessary for their subsistence.
-
-(A striking example of this hypocrisy was presented by the Russian
-landowners during the struggle with the famine of last year,[30]
-a famine of which they were themselves the cause, and by which
-they profited, not only by selling bread at the highest price, but
-even by disposing of the dried potato-plants for five roubles a
-_dessiatin_, to be used as fuel by the freezing peasants.)
-
- [30] 1892.
-
-The business of the merchant, again (as is the case with business of
-any kind), is based upon a series of frauds; he takes advantage of
-the necessities of men by buying his merchandise below, and selling
-it above, its value. One would think that a man, the mainspring
-of whose activity is what he himself in his own language calls
-shrewdness, ought to feel ashamed of this, and never dream of
-calling himself Christian or liberal while he continues a merchant.
-But, according to the new metaphysic of hypocrisy, he may pass for
-a virtuous man and still pursue his evil career; the religious man
-has but to believe, the liberal man but to coperate, in the reform
-of external conditions to promote the general progress of commerce;
-the rest does not signify. So this merchant (who, besides, often
-sells bad commodities, adulterates, and uses false weights and
-measures, or deals exclusively in commodities that imperil human
-life, such as alcohol or opium) frankly considers himself, and is
-considered by others,--always provided he only does not cheat his
-colleagues in business and knavery, his fellow-tradesmen,--a model
-of conscientiousness and honesty. And if he spend one per cent of
-his stolen money on some public institution, hospital, museum,
-or school, men call him the benefactor of the people on whose
-exploitation all his welfare depends; and if he gives but the least
-part of this money to the Church or to the poor, then is he deemed
-an exemplary Christian indeed.
-
-Take again the factory-owner, whose entire income is derived
-from reducing the pay of his workmen to its lowest terms, and
-whose whole business is carried on by forced and unnatural labor,
-endangering the health of generations of men. One would suppose
-that if this man professed Christian or liberal principles he would
-cease to sacrifice human lives to his interests. But, according
-to the existing theory, he encourages industry, and it would be a
-positive injury to society if he were to abandon his operations,
-even supposing he were willing to do so. And, too, this man, the
-cruel slave-driver of thousands of human beings, having built for
-those injured in his service minute houses, with gardens six feet
-in extent, or established a fund, or a home for the aged, or a
-hospital, is perfectly satisfied that he has more than atoned for
-the moral and physical jeopardy into which he has plunged so many
-lives; and he continues to live calmly, proud of his work.
-
-We find that the functionary, civil, military, or ecclesiastical,
-who performs his duties to gratify his selfishness or ambition, or,
-as is more usually the case, for the sake of the stipend, collected
-in the shape of taxes from an exhausted and crippled people,--if,
-by a rare exception, he does not directly steal from the public
-treasury,--considers himself, and is considered by his equals, a
-most useful and virtuous member of society.
-
-There are judges and other legal functionaries who know that their
-decisions have condemned hundreds and thousands of unfortunate men
-to be torn from their families and thrown into prison. There these
-hapless beings are locked up in solitary confinement, or sent to
-the galleys, where they go desperate and put an end to themselves
-by starving themselves to death, by swallowing glass, or by some
-such means. And who knows what the mothers, wives, and children
-of these men suffer by the separation and imprisonment, and the
-disgrace of it,--who have vainly begged for pardon for their sons,
-husbands, brothers, or that their lot may be a little alleviated.
-But the judge or other legal functionary is so primed with the
-current hypocrisy that he himself, his colleagues, his wife, and his
-friends are all quite sure, despite what he does, that he is a good
-and sensible man. According to the current philosophy of hypocrisy,
-such a man performs a duty of great importance to the public. And
-this man, who has injured hundreds or thousands of human beings, who
-owe it to him that they have lost their belief in goodness and their
-faith in God, goes to church with a benevolent smile, listens to the
-Bible, makes liberal speeches, caresses his children, bestows moral
-lessons upon them, for their edification, and grows sentimental over
-imaginary suffering.
-
-Not only these men, their wives and children, but the entire
-community around them, all the teachers, actors, cooks, jockeys,
-live by preying upon the life-blood of the working-people, which
-in one way or another they absorb like leeches. Every one of their
-days of pleasure costs thousands of days in the lives of the
-workers. They see the suffering and privation of these workmen,
-of their wives and children, of their aged and feeble. They know
-what punishments are visited upon those who attempt to resist
-the organized system of pillage, but so far from abandoning or
-concealing their luxurious habits, they flaunt them in the faces of
-those whom they oppress and by whom they are hated. All the while
-they assure themselves and others that they have the welfare of the
-working-man greatly at heart. On Sundays, clad in rich garments,
-they drive in their carriages to churches where the mockery of
-Christianity is preached, and listen there to the words of men who
-have learned their falsehoods by heart. Some of these men wear
-stoles, some wear white cravats; they all preach the doctrine of
-love for one's neighbor, a doctrine belied by their daily lives. And
-they have all grown so accustomed to playing this part that they
-really believe themselves to be what they pretend.
-
-This universal hypocrisy, which has become to every class of
-society at the present day like the air it breathes, is so familiar
-that men are no longer exasperated by it. It is very fitting that
-hypocrisy should signify acting or playing of a part. It has become
-so much a matter of course that it no longer excites surprise when
-the representatives of Christ pronounce a blessing over murderers
-as they stand in rank holding their guns in the position which
-signifies, in military parlance, "for prayers," or when the priests
-and pastors of various Christian sects accompany the executioner
-to the scaffold, and, by lending the sanction of their presence
-to murder, make men believe it compatible with Christianity.
-(One minister was present when experiments in "electrocution"
-took place in the United States.) At the International Prison
-Exposition recently held in St. Petersburg, where instruments of
-torture, such as chains, and models of prison-cells for solitary
-confinement,--means of torture worse than the knout or the
-rod,--were on exhibition, sympathetic ladies and gentlemen went to
-see them, and seemed greatly entertained.
-
-No one marvels to find liberal science insisting upon the
-equality, fraternity, and liberty of men on the one hand, while
-on the other it is striving to prove the necessity of armies,
-executions, custom-houses, of censorship of the press, of legalized
-prostitution, of the expulsion of foreign labor, of the prohibition
-of emigration, and of the necessity and justice of colonization
-established by the pillage and extermination of whole races of
-so-called savages, etc.
-
-They talk of what will happen when all men shall profess what they
-call Christianity (by which they mean the different conflicting
-creeds); when every one will be fed and clothed; when men will
-communicate with one another all over the world by telegraph and
-telephones, and will travel in balloons; when all working-men will
-accept the doctrine of socialism; when the trade unions will embrace
-many millions of men and possess millions of money; when all men
-will be educated, will read the papers, and be familiar with all the
-sciences.
-
-But what good will this do if after all these improvements men are
-still false to the truth?
-
-The miseries of men are caused by disunion, and disunion arises from
-the fact that men follow not truth, but falsehood, of which there is
-no end. Truth is the only bond by which men may be united; and the
-more sincerely men strive after the truth the nearer they approach
-to true unity.
-
-But how are men to be united in the truth, or even approach it,
-if they not only fail to proclaim the truth which they possess,
-but actually think it useless to do so, and pretend to believe in
-something which they know to be a lie? In reality no improvement in
-the condition of mankind is possible while men continue to hide the
-truth from themselves, nor until they acknowledge that their unity,
-and consequently their welfare, can be promoted only by the spirit
-of truth; until they admit that to profess, and to act in obedience
-to the truth as it has been revealed to them, is more important than
-all things else.
-
-Let all the material progress ever dreamt of by religious and
-scientific men be made; let all men accept Christianity, and let all
-the improvements suggested by the Bellamys and Richets, with every
-possible addition and correction, be carried out; and yet if the
-hypocrisy of to-day still flourishes, if men do not make known the
-truth that is within them, but go on pretending to believe what they
-know to be untrue, showing respect where they no longer feel it,
-their condition will never improve; on the contrary, it will become
-worse. The more men are raised above want, the more telegraphs,
-telephones, books, newspapers, and reviews they possess, the more
-numerous will be the channels for the diffusion of falsehood
-and hypocrisy, and the more at variance and miserable will men
-become,--and it is even so at the present time.
-
-Let all those material changes take place, and still the position of
-humanity will in no way be improved by them; but let every man, so
-far as he is able, begin at once and live up to his highest ideal
-of the truth or, at the least, cease to defend a lie, then indeed
-should we see even in this year of 1893 such an advance in the
-establishment of the truth upon earth, and in the deliverance of
-mankind, as could hardly be hoped for in a hundred years.
-
-It was not without reason that the only harsh and denunciatory words
-that Christ uttered were addressed to hypocrites. It is neither
-theft, nor robbery, nor murder, nor fornication, nor fraud, but
-falsehood, that particular hypocritical falsehood, which destroys
-in men's conscience the distinction between good and evil, which
-corrupts them and takes from them the possibility of avoiding evil
-and of seeking good, which deprives them of that which constitutes
-the essence of a true human life,--it is this which bars the way
-to all improvement. Those men who do evil, knowing not the truth,
-inspire in the beholder compassion for their victims and repugnance
-for themselves, but they only injure the few whom they molest.
-Whereas those men who, knowing the good, yet pursue the evil,
-wearing all the while the mantle of hypocrisy, commit a wrong,
-not only against themselves and their victims, but also against
-thousands of other men who are deceived by the falsehood under which
-they conceal the wrong.
-
-Thieves, robbers, murderers, rogues, who commit acts which they
-themselves, as well as other men, know to be evil, serve as a
-warning to show men what is evil, and make them hate it. Those,
-however, who steal, rob, torture, and murder, justifying themselves
-by pretended religious, scientific, or other motives, like the
-landowners, merchants, factory-owners, and government servants of
-the present time, by provoking imitation, injure not only their
-victims, but thousands and millions of men who are corrupted
-by their influence, and who become so blinded that they cannot
-distinguish the difference between good and evil.
-
-One fortune acquired by trading in the necessaries of life or
-in articles that tend to demoralize men, or by speculations
-in the stock exchange, or by the acquisition of cheap lands
-which subsequently rise in value by reason of the increasing
-needs of the people, or by the establishment of factories that
-endanger human health and human lives, or by rendering civil or
-military service to the State, or by any occupation that tends
-to the demoralization of mankind,--a fortune acquired in any of
-these ways, not only permitted, but approved by the leaders of
-society, when, furthermore, it is supported by a show of charity,
-surely demoralizes men more than millions of thefts, frauds, or
-robberies,--sins committed against the laws of the land and subject
-to judicial prosecution.
-
-A single enforcement of capital punishment, ordained by men of
-education and wealth, sanctioned by the approval of the Christian
-clergy, and declared to be an act of justice essential to the
-welfare of the State, tends far more to degrade and brutalize
-mankind than hundreds and thousands of murders committed in passion
-by the ignorant. A more demoralizing scene than the execution
-suggested by Jukovsky, calculated as it is to excite a feeling of
-religious exaltation, it would be difficult to conceive.[31]
-
- [31] See vol. iv. of the works of Jukovsky (a Russian poet).
-
-A war, even of the shortest duration,--with all its customary
-consequences, the destruction of harvests, the thefts, the unchecked
-debauchery and murders, with the usual explanations of its necessity
-and justice, with the accompanying glorification and praise bestowed
-upon military exploits, upon patriotism, devotion to the flag, with
-the assumption of tenderness and care for the wounded,--will do more
-in one year to demoralize men than thousands of robberies, arsons,
-and murders committed in the course of centuries by individual men
-carried away by passion.
-
-The existence of one household, one not even extravagant beyond
-the ordinary limits, esteeming itself virtuous and innocent, which
-yet consumes the production of enough to support thousands of the
-men who live near in poverty and distress, has a more degrading
-influence on mankind than innumerable orgies of gross shopkeepers,
-officers, or workmen who are addicted to drink and debauchery, and
-who smash mirrors and crockery by way of amusement.
-
-One solemn procession, one religious service, or one sermon from
-the pulpit, embodying a falsehood which the preacher himself does
-not believe, does infinitely more harm than thousands of frauds,
-adulterations of food, etc.
-
-Men talk of the hypocrisy of the Pharisees; but the hypocrisy
-of our contemporaries far surpasses the comparatively harmless
-sanctimoniousness of the Pharisees. They at least had an outward
-religious law, whose fulfilment may perhaps have prevented them from
-discerning their duty toward their neighbors; indeed, those duties
-had not then been distinctly defined. To-day there is no such law.
-(I do not consider such gross and stupid men as even now believe
-that sacraments or absolution of the Pope can free them from sins.)
-On the contrary, the law of the gospel, which in one form or another
-we all profess, makes our duties perfectly plain. Indeed, those
-precepts which were but vaguely indicated by certain of the prophets
-have since been so clearly formulated, have grown to be such
-truisms, that the very school-boys and hack writers repeat them.
-Therefore men of our times cannot feign ignorance concerning them.
-
-Those men who enjoy the advantages of the existing system, and who
-are always protesting love for their neighbor, without suspicion
-that their own lives are an injury to their neighbors, are like
-the robber who, caught with an uplifted knife, his victim crying
-desperately for help, protests that he did not know that he was
-doing anything unpleasant to the man whom he was in the act of
-robbing and about to murder. Since the denial of this robber
-and murderer would be of no avail, his act being patent to all
-observers, it would seem equally futile for our fellow-citizens, who
-live by the sufferings of the oppressed, to assure themselves and
-others that they desire the welfare of those whom they never cease
-to rob, and that they had not realized the nature of the methods by
-which their prosperity had been attained.
-
-We can no longer persuade ourselves that we do not know of the
-one hundred thousand men in Russia alone who have been shut up
-in galleys or in prisons for the purpose of securing to us our
-property and our peace; and that we do not know of the existence
-of those courts of law at which we preside, to which we bring
-our accusations, which sentence those men, who have attacked our
-property or our lives, to the galleys, to imprisonment, or to exile,
-where human beings, no worse than they who have pronounced judgment
-upon them, become degraded and lost; nor that we do not know that
-everything that we possess has been won and is preserved at the
-expense of murder and violence. We cannot shut our eyes and pretend
-that we do not see the policeman, who, armed with a revolver, paces
-before our window, protecting us while we are eating our excellent
-dinner, or when we are at the theater seeing a new play; nor do
-not know of the existence of the soldiers who will appear armed
-with guns and cartridges whenever our property is menaced. We know
-perfectly well that if we finish our dinner, see the new play to its
-end, enjoy a merry-making at Christmas, take a walk, go to a ball, a
-race, or a hunt, we owe it to the policeman's revolver or the ball
-in the soldier's musket, which will pierce the hungry belly of the
-disinherited man who, with watering mouth, peeps round the corner
-at our pleasures, and who might interrupt them if the policeman
-or the soldiers in the barracks were not ready to appear at our
-first call. Hence, as the man who is caught in the act of robbery
-in broad daylight cannot deny that he threatened his victim with a
-knife for the purpose of stealing his purse, it might be supposed
-that we could no longer represent to ourselves and to others that
-the soldiers and policemen whom we see around us are here, not for
-the purpose of protecting us, but to repulse foreign enemies, to
-assure public order, to adorn by their presence public rejoicings
-and ceremonies. We cannot pretend we do not know that men are not
-fond of starving to death. We know that they do not like to die
-of hunger, being deprived of the right to earn their living from
-the soil upon which they live, that they are not anxious to work
-ten to fourteen hours a day underground, standing in water, or in
-over-heated rooms, twelve or fourteen hours a day, or at night,
-manufacturing articles which contribute to our pleasures. It would
-seem impossible to deny what is so evident, and yet it is what we do
-deny.
-
-It cannot be denied that there are people of the wealthy class,
-and I am glad to say that I meet them more and more frequently,
-particularly in the younger generation and among women, who, on
-being reminded by what means and at what a price their pleasures
-are obtained, instantly admit the truth of it, and with bowed heads
-exclaim: "Ah, do not tell us of it! If it is as you say, one cannot
-live!" If, however, there are some who are willing to admit their
-sin, though they know not how to escape from it, still, the majority
-of men nowadays have become so confirmed in hypocrisy that they
-boldly deny facts that are patent to every one who has eyes.
-
-"It is all nonsense," they say. "No one forces the people to work
-for the landowners or in the factories. It is a matter of mutual
-accommodation. Large properties and capital are indispensable,
-because they enable men to organize companies and provide work for
-the laboring classes, and the work in mills and factories is by no
-means so dreadful as you represent it. When real abuses are found
-to exist, the government and society in general take measures to
-abolish them and to render the labor of the working-men easier and
-more agreeable. The working-classes are used to physical labor,
-and are not as yet capable of doing anything else. The poverty
-of the people is caused neither by the landowners nor by the
-tyranny of the capitalists; it springs from other causes,--from
-ignorance, disorder, and intemperance. We, the governing classes,
-who counteract this state of poverty by wise administration; and
-we, the capitalists, who counteract it by the multiplication of
-useful inventions; and we, the liberals, who contribute our share
-by instituting trade unions and by diffusing education,--these are
-the methods by which we promote the welfare of the people, without
-making any radical change in our position. We do not wish all to be
-poor like the poor; we wish all to be rich like the rich.
-
-"As to torturing and killing men for the purpose of making them
-work for the rich, that is all sophistry; the troops are sent out
-to quell disturbances when men, not appreciating their advantages,
-rebel and disturb the peace essential for the general welfare. It
-is equally necessary to restrain malefactors, for whom prisons,
-gallows, and the like are established. We are anxious enough to
-abolish them as far as possible ourselves, and are working for that
-purpose."
-
-Hypocrisy, which nowadays is supported by two methods, the
-quasi-religious and the quasi-scientific, has attained such
-proportions, that if we did not live in its atmosphere continually,
-it would be impossible to believe that humanity could sink to such
-depths of self-deception. Men have reached so surprising a state,
-their hearts have become so hardened, that they look and do not see;
-listen, and do not hear or understand.
-
-For a long time they have been living a life that is contrary to
-their conscience. Were it not for the aid of hypocrisy they would be
-unable so to live, for such a life, so opposed to conscience, can
-only continue because it is veiled by hypocrisy.
-
-And the greater the difference between the practice and the
-conscience of men, the more elastic becomes hypocrisy. Yet even
-hypocrisy has its limits, and I believe that we have reached them.
-
-Every man of the present day, with the Christian consciousness that
-has involuntarily become his, may be likened to a sleeper who dreams
-that he is doing what even in his dream he knows he ought not to do.
-In the depths of his dream-consciousness he realizes his conduct,
-and yet seems unable to change his course, and to cease doing that
-which he is aware he should not do.
-
-Then, in the progress of his dream, his state of mind becoming less
-and less endurable, he begins to doubt the reality of what has
-seemed so real, and makes a conscious effort to break the spell that
-holds him.
-
-The average man of our Christian world is in exactly the same
-strait. He feels that everything going on around him is absurd,
-senseless, and impossible; that the situation is becoming more and
-more painful, that it has indeed reached the crisis.
-
-It is impossible that we of the present age, endowed with the
-Christian conscience that has become a part of our very flesh and
-blood as it were, who live with a full consciousness of the dignity
-of man and the equality of all men, who feel our need for peaceable
-relations with each other and for the unity of all nations, should
-go on living in such a way. It is impossible that all our pleasures,
-all our satisfactions, should be purchased by the sufferings and
-the lives of our brethren; impossible that we should be ready at a
-moment's notice to rush upon each other like wild beasts, one nation
-against another, and relentlessly destroy the lives and labor of
-men, only because one foolish diplomatist or ruler says or writes
-something foolish to another.
-
-It is impossible; and yet all men of our time see that this is what
-does happen every day, and all wait for the catastrophe, while the
-situation grows more and more strained and painful.
-
-And as a man in his sleep doubts the reality of his dream and longs
-to awaken and return to real life, so the average man of our day
-cannot, in the bottom of his heart, believe the terrible situation
-in which he finds himself, and which is growing worse and worse,
-to be the reality. He longs to attain to a higher reality, the
-consciousness of which is already within him.
-
-And like this sleeper, who has but to make the conscious effort
-to ask himself whether it be a dream, in order to transform its
-seeming hopelessness into a joyous awakening, our average man has
-but to make a conscious effort and ask himself, "Is not all this
-an illusion?" in order to feel himself forthwith like the awakened
-sleeper, transported from an hypocritical and horrible dream-world
-into a living, peaceful, and joyous real one.
-
-And for this he has no need of any heroic achievement; he has only
-to make the effort prompted by his moral consciousness.
-
-But is man able to make this effort?
-
-According to the existing theory, one indispensable from the point
-of view of hypocrisy, man is not free and may not change his life.
-
-"A man cannot change his life, because he is not a free agent. He
-is not a free agent, because his acts are the result of preceding
-causes. And whatever he may do, certain it is that preceding causes
-always determine that a man must act in one way rather than in
-another; therefore a man is not free to change his life,"--thus
-argue the defenders of the metaphysic of hypocrisy. And they would
-be perfectly right if man were an unconscious and stationary being,
-incapable of apprehending the truth, and unable to advance to a
-higher state by means of it. But man is a conscious being, able to
-grow more and more in the knowledge of truth. Therefore if he be
-not free in his acts, the causes of these acts, which consist in
-the recognition simply of such and such truth, are yet within his
-mastery.
-
-So that if a man is not free to do certain acts, he is yet free to
-work toward the suppression of the moral causes which prevent their
-performance. He may be likened to the engineer of a locomotive, who,
-though not at liberty to change the past or present motion of his
-engine, is yet free to determine its future progress.
-
-No matter what an intelligent man may do, he adopts a certain course
-of action only because he acknowledges to himself that at the moment
-that course alone is the right one; or because he has formerly
-recognized it as such, and now continues to act as he does through
-force of habit, or through mental inertia.
-
-Whether a man eats or abstains from food, whether he works or rests,
-whether he avoids danger or seeks it, he acts as he does because he
-considers it to be reasonable at the time, or because previously
-he saw that the truth consisted in acting in that way and not in
-another.
-
-The admission or the denial of a certain truth depends not on
-outward causes, but on certain conditions that man finds within
-himself. Thus frequently, with all the outward and, as it may seem,
-favorable conditions for recognizing the truth, one may reject it,
-while another may receive it under the most unfavorable conditions,
-and without apparent motives. As it is said in the gospel: "No
-man can come to me, except the Father which hath sent me draw
-him;"--that is to say, the recognition of truth, which is the cause
-of all the manifestations of a man's life, does not depend on
-outward conditions, but on certain inherent qualities which escape
-recognition.
-
-Therefore a man who is not free in his acts still feels himself
-free in regard to the cause of his acts; that is, in regard to the
-recognition or non-recognition of truth.
-
-Thus a man who, under the influence of passion, has committed a deed
-contrary to the truth he knows, still remains free in recognizing
-or denying the truth; in other words, denying the truth, he may
-consider his act necessary and justify himself in committing it,
-or, accepting the truth, he may acknowledge his deed to be evil and
-himself guilty.
-
-Thus a gambler or a drunkard, who has succumbed to his passion, is
-free to acknowledge gambling or drunkenness either as evils, or as
-amusements without consequence. In the first instance, if he cannot
-get rid of his passion at once, he becomes free from it gradually,
-according to the depth of his conviction of its evil. In the second
-instance, his passion grows and gradually deprives him of all chance
-of deliverance.
-
-So, too, with a man who, unable to endure the scorching flames for
-the rescue of his friend, himself escapes from a burning house,
-while he recognizes the truth that a man should save the life of his
-fellow-man at the peril of his own, is yet free to look upon his
-act as evil, and therefore to condemn himself for it; or, denying
-this truth, to judge his act to be both natural and necessary, and
-so justify himself in his own opinion. In the first instance, his
-recognition of the truth, even though he has not acted in accordance
-with it, helps him to prepare for a series of self-sacrificing
-actions that will inevitably follow such recognition. In the second
-instance, he prepares for a series of actions just as selfish.
-
-I do not say that a man is always free to recognize or not to
-recognize every truth. Certain truths there are, long since
-recognized by men, and transmitted by tradition, education, and
-mere force of habit until they have become second nature; and there
-are other truths which men perceive as but dimly and afar. A man
-is not free not to recognize the first of these; he is not free to
-recognize the second. But there is a third category of truths, which
-have not as yet become unquestioned motors of his activity, but have
-revealed themselves to man so unmistakably that he is unable to
-disregard them; he must inevitably consider them, and either accept
-or reject them. It is by his relation to these truths that a man's
-freedom is manifested.
-
-Each man in his perception of truth is like a wayfarer who walks by
-the aid of a lantern whose light he casts before him: he does not
-see what as yet has not been revealed by its beams, he does not see
-the path he has left behind, merged again in the darkness; but at
-any given point he sees that which the lantern reveals, and he is
-always at liberty to choose one side of the road or the other.
-
-There exist for each man certain concealed truths, as yet unrevealed
-to his mental vision; certain others, which he has experienced,
-assimilated, and forgotten; and yet others, that rise up before
-him demanding immediate recognition from his reason. And it is in
-the recognition or the disregard of these truths that what we call
-freedom becomes evident.
-
-All the apparent difficulty of the question of man's liberty comes
-from the fact that those who seek to solve it represent man as
-stationary in the presence of the truth.
-
-Undoubtedly he is not free if we look upon him as a stationary
-being; if we forget that the life of all humanity is an eternal
-procession from darkness to light, from the lower conception of
-truth to a higher one, from truth mingled with error to purer truth.
-
-A man would not be free if he were ignorant of all truth; neither
-would he be free, nor even have any conception of liberty, if the
-truth were suddenly revealed to him in its entire purity and without
-any admixture of error.
-
-But man is not a stationary being. And as he advances in life, every
-individual discovers an ever increasing proportion of truth, and
-thus becomes less liable to error.
-
-The relations of man to truth are threefold. Some truths are so
-familiar to him that they have become the unconscious springs of
-action; others have only been dimly revealed to him; again others,
-though still unfamiliar, are revealed to him so plainly that they
-force themselves upon his attention, and inevitably, in one way or
-another, he is obliged to consider them. He cannot ignore them, but
-must either recognize or repudiate them.
-
-And it is in the recognition or in the disregard of these truths
-that man's free agency is manifested.
-
-A man's freedom does not consist in a faculty of acting
-independently of his environment and the various influences it
-brings to bear upon his life, but in his power to become, through
-recognizing and professing the truth that has been revealed to
-him, a free and willing laborer at the eternal and infinite work
-performed by God and his universe; or, in shutting his eyes to
-truth, to become a slave and be forced against his will into a way
-in which he is loath to go.
-
-Not only does truth point out the direction a man's life _should_
-take, but it opens the only road he _can_ take. Hence, all men will
-invariably, free or not, follow the road of truth;--some willingly,
-doing the work they have set themselves to do; others involuntarily,
-by submitting in spite of themselves to the law of life. It is in
-the power of choice that a man's freedom lies.
-
-Freedom, in limits so narrow as these, appears to men so
-insignificant that they fail to perceive it. The believers in
-causation prefer to overlook it; the believers in unlimited free
-will, keeping in view their own ideal, disdain a freedom to them
-so insignificant. Freedom, confined between the limits of entire
-ignorance of the truth, or of the knowledge of only a part of it,
-does not seem to them to be freedom, the more so that whether a man
-is or is not willing to recognize the truth revealed unto him, he
-will inevitably be forced to obey it in life.
-
-A horse harnessed to a load in company with other horses is not free
-to remain in one place. If he does not pull the load, the load will
-strike him and force him to move in the direction it is going, thus
-compelling him to advance. Still, in spite of this limitation of
-freedom, the horse is still free to pull the load of his own accord,
-or be pushed forward by it. The same reasoning can be applied to
-human freedom.
-
-Be this freedom great or small as compared with the chimerical
-freedom for which we sigh, it is the only true freedom, and through
-it alone is to be found all the happiness accessible to man. And not
-only does this freedom promote the happiness of men, but it is the
-only means through which the work of the world can be accomplished.
-
-According to the doctrine of Christ, a man who limits his
-observation of life to the sphere in which there is no freedom--to
-the sphere of effects--that is, of acts--does not live a true
-life. He only lives a true life who has transferred his life
-into the sphere in which freedom lies,--into the domain of first
-causes,--that is to say, by the recognition and practice of the
-truth revealed to him.
-
-The man who consecrates his life to sensual acts is ever performing
-acts that depend on temporary causes beyond his control. Of
-himself he does nothing; it only seems to him that he is acting
-independently, whereas in reality all that he imagines he is doing
-by himself is done through him by a superior force; he is not the
-creator of life, but its slave. But the man who devotes his life to
-the acknowledgment and practice of the truth revealed to him unites
-himself with the source of universal life, and accomplishes, not
-personal, individual acts, that depend on the conditions of time and
-space, but acts that have no causes, but are in themselves causes of
-all else, and have an endless and unlimited significance.
-
-Because of their setting aside the essence of true life, which
-consists in the recognition and practice of the truth, and directing
-their efforts toward the improvement of the external conditions
-of life, men of the pagan life-conception may be likened to
-passengers on a steamer, who should, in their anxiety to reach their
-destination, extinguish the engine-fires, and instead of making use
-of steam and screw, try during a storm to row with oars which cannot
-reach the water.
-
-The Kingdom of God is attained by effort, and it is only those who
-make the effort that do attain it. It is this effort, which consists
-in sacrificing outward conditions for the sake of the truth, by
-which the Kingdom of God is attained,--an effort which can and ought
-to be made now, in our own epoch.
-
-Men have but to understand this: that they must cease to care for
-material and external matters, in which they are not free; let them
-apply one hundredth part of the energy now used by them in outward
-concerns to those in which they are free,--to the recognition and
-profession of the truth that confronts them, to the deliverance of
-themselves and others from the falsehood and hypocrisy which conceal
-the truth,--and then the false system of life which now torments us,
-which threatens us with still greater suffering, will be destroyed
-at once without struggle. Then the Kingdom of Heaven, at least in
-that first stage for which men through the development of their
-consciousness are already prepared, will be established.
-
-As one shake is sufficient to precipitate into crystals a liquid
-saturated with salt, so at the present time it may be that only the
-least effort is needed in order that the truth, already revealed
-to us, should spread among hundreds, thousands, millions of men,
-and a public opinion become established in conformity with the
-existing consciousness, and the entire social organization become
-transformed. It depends upon us to make this effort.
-
-If only each of us would try to understand and recognize the
-Christian truth, which in the most varied forms surrounds us on
-all sides, pleading to be admitted into our hearts; if we would
-cease to lie and pretend that we do not see this truth, or that
-we are anxious to fulfil it, excepting in the one thing that it
-really demands; if we would only recognize this truth which calls
-us, and would fearlessly profess it,--we should find forthwith that
-hundreds, thousands, and millions of men are in the same position as
-ourselves, fearing like ourselves to stand alone in its recognition,
-and waiting only to hear its avowal from others.
-
-If men would only cease to be hypocrites they would perceive at once
-that this cruel organization of society, which alone hampers them
-and yet appears to them like something immutable, necessary, and
-sacred, established by God, is already wavering, and is maintained
-only by the hypocrisy and the falsehood of ourselves and our
-fellow-men.
-
-But if it be true that it depends only on ourselves to change the
-existing order of life, have we the right to do it without knowing
-what we shall put in its place? What will become of the world if the
-present system be destroyed?
-
-"What is there beyond the walls of the world we leave behind us?
-
-"Fear seizes us,--emptiness, space, freedom....--how is one to go
-on, not knowing whither? How is one to lose, without the hope of
-gain?...
-
-"Had Columbus reasoned thus he never would have weighed anchor. It
-was madness to attempt to cross an unknown ocean, to set sail for a
-country whose very existence was doubtful. But he discovered a new
-world through this madness. To be sure, if people had only to move
-from one furnished house into another and a more commodious one, it
-would be an easy matter, but the trouble lies in there being no one
-to prepare the new apartments. The future looks more uncertain still
-than the ocean,--it promises nothing,--it will only be what men and
-circumstances make it.
-
-"If you are content with the old world, try to preserve it; it is
-sick, and will not live long. But if you can no longer live in the
-eternal conflict between your convictions and life, thinking one way
-and acting another, take it upon yourselves to leave the shelter
-of the blanched and ruinous arches of the Middle Ages. I am aware
-that this is not an easy matter. It is hard to part with all one has
-been accustomed to from birth. Men are ready for great sacrifices,
-but not those which the new life demands of them. Are they ready
-to sacrifice their present civilization, their mode of life,
-their religion, their conventional morality? Are they ready to be
-deprived of all the results of such prolonged efforts, the results
-we have boasted of for three centuries, of all the conveniences and
-attractions of our existence, to give the preference to wild youth
-rather than to civilized senility, to pull down the palace built
-by our fathers simply for the pleasure of laying the foundation
-of a new house, which, without doubt, will not be completed till
-long after our time."[32] Thus wrote, almost half a century ago, a
-Russian author, who, with penetrating vision, clearly discerned even
-at that time what is recognized by every man to-day who reflects a
-little,--the impossibility of continuing life on the former basis,
-and the necessity of establishing some new mode of existence.
-
- [32] Herzen, vol. v., p. 55.
-
-It is plain from the simplest and most ordinary point of view that
-it is folly to remain under a roof that threatens to fall, and
-that one must leave it. Indeed, it is difficult to imagine a more
-miserable situation than that of the present Christian world,
-with its nations arrayed in arms one against the other, with its
-ever increasing taxes for the purpose of supporting its growing
-armaments, with the burning hatred of the working-classes for the
-rich, with war suspended above all like the sword of Damocles ready
-to fall, as it may, at any moment.
-
-It is doubtful whether any revolution could be more disastrous than
-the present social order, or rather disorder, with its perpetual
-victims of overwork, misery, drunkenness, dissipation, with all the
-horrors of impending war that in one year will sacrifice more lives
-than all the revolutions of the present century.
-
-What will become of mankind if each one fulfils that which God
-demands through the conscience that is in him. Shall I be safe if,
-under the orders of my master, I accomplish in his great workshop
-the tasks he has set me, although, ignorant of his final plans, I
-may think it strange? Nor is it alone the question of the future
-that troubles men when they hesitate to do the master's bidding.
-They are concerned about the question as to how they are to live
-without the familiar conditions which we call science, art,
-civilization, culture. We feel individually all the burden of our
-present way of living; we see that were this order of things to
-continue, it would inevitably ruin us; and yet we are anxious to
-have these conditions continue, to have our science, our art, our
-civilization, and culture remain unchanged. It is as though a man
-who dwells in an old house, suffering from cold and discomfort, who
-is moreover aware that its walls may tumble at any moment, should
-consent to the remodeling of it, only on condition that he may be
-allowed to remain there, a condition that is equivalent to a refusal
-to have his dwelling rebuilt. "What, if I should leave my house,"
-he says, "I should be temporarily deprived of its comforts; the
-new house may not be built after all, or it may be constructed on
-a new plan, which will lack the conveniences to which I have been
-accustomed!" But if the materials and the workmen are ready, it is
-probable that the new house will be built, and in a better manner
-than the old one; while it is not only probable but certain that
-the old house will soon fall into ruins, crushing those who remain
-within its walls. In order that the old, everyday conditions of life
-may disappear and make room for new and better ones, we must surely
-leave behind the old conditions, which are at length become fatal
-and impossible, and issue forth to meet the future.
-
-"But science, art, civilization, and culture will cease to be!" But
-if all these are only diverse manifestations of truth, the impending
-change is to be accomplished for the sake of a further advance
-toward truth and its realization. "How, then, can the manifestations
-of truth disappear, in consequence of further realization of truth?"
-The manifestations of truth will be different, better, loftier, the
-error that has been in them will perish, while the verity that is in
-them will remain and flourish with renewed vigor.
-
-Return to yourselves, sons of men, and have faith in the gospel, and
-in its doctrine of eternal happiness! If you heed not this warning,
-you shall all perish like the men slain by Pilate, like those upon
-whom the tower of Siloam fell; like millions of other men, who slew
-and were slain, who executed and suffered execution, who tortured
-and were tortured; as perished the man who so foolishly filled his
-granaries, counting on a long life, on the very night when his soul
-was required of him. Return, sons of men, and believe in the words
-which Christ uttered 1800 years ago, words which He repeats to-day
-with greater force, warning us that the evil day He foretold is at
-hand, and that our life has reached its last descent of folly and
-wickedness.
-
-Now, after so many centuries of futile effort to protect ourselves
-by the methods of the pagan system of violence, it should be evident
-to every man that all such effort, far from insuring our safety,
-tends only to add a new element of danger both to individual and
-social existence.
-
-No matter by what names we may be called, nor what garments we may
-wear, nor in the presence of what priest we may be anointed, nor
-how many millions our subjects may number, nor how many guards
-may be posted on our journey, nor how many policemen may protect
-our property, nor how many so-called criminals, revolutionists, or
-anarchists we may execute; no matter what exploits we may perform,
-nor what states we may establish, nor what fortresses and towers
-we may erect, from the Tower of Babel to the Eiffel Tower,--we
-have before us two ever present and unavoidable conditions, that
-deprive our mode of life of all significance: (1) death, that may
-overtake each of us at any moment, and (2) the transitory nature
-of all our undertakings, that disappear, leaving no trace behind
-them. No matter what we may do, found kingdoms, build palaces and
-monuments, write poems and songs,--all is but fleeting and leaves no
-trace behind. Therefore no matter how much we may attempt to conceal
-this from ourselves, we cannot fail to perceive that the true
-significance of our life lies neither in our individual, physical
-existence, subjected to unavoidable suffering and death, nor in any
-institution or social organization.
-
-Whoever you are, you who read these lines, reflect upon your
-position and your duties, not upon the position of landowner,
-merchant, judge, emperor, president, minister, priest, or
-soldier, which you may assume but for a time, not upon the
-imaginary duties which these positions impose upon you, but upon
-your actual and eternal position as a being, who, after a whole
-eternity of non-existence, is called by the will of Some One from
-unconsciousness into life, and who may at any moment return whence
-he came by the same will. Consider your duties! Not your imaginary
-duties of landowner in regard to your estate, nor of merchant to
-your capital, nor of emperor, minister, or governor to the State,
-but of your real duties, of a being called forth into life and
-endowed with love and reason. Do that which He who has sent you
-into this world, and to whom you will shortly return, demands of
-you. Are you doing what he requires? Are you doing right when, as
-landowner or manufacturer, you take the products of the labor of
-the poor, and establish your life on this spoliation; or when, as
-governor or judge, you do violence in condemning men to death; or
-when, as soldier, you prepare for war, for fighting, robbery, and
-murder,--are you doing right?
-
-You say that the world is as you find it, that it is inevitable
-that it should be as it is, that what you do you are compelled to
-do. But can it be that, having so strongly rooted an aversion to
-the suffering of men, to violence, to murder; having such a need of
-loving your fellow-men, and of being loved by them; seeing clearly,
-too, that the greatest good possible to men comes from acknowledging
-human brotherhood, from one serving another: can it be that your
-heart tells you all this, that you are taught it by your reason,
-that science repeats it to you, and yet regardless of it, on the
-strength of some mysterious and complicated argument, you are forced
-to contradict it all in your daily conduct? Is it possible that,
-being a landowner or a capitalist, you should establish your life on
-the oppression of the people; that, being an emperor or a president,
-you should command armies, and be a leader of murderers; that,
-being a functionary of State, you should take from the poor their
-hard-earned money for your own benefit, or for the benefit of the
-rich; that, being a judge or juror, you should condemn erring men to
-torture and death, because the truth has not been revealed to them;
-or, above all, is it possible that you, a youth, should enter the
-army, doing that upon which all the evil of the world is founded,
-that, renouncing your own will, all your human sympathy, you should
-engage at the will of others to murder those whom they bid you
-murder?
-
-It is impossible!
-
-If you are told that all this is essential for the support of the
-existing system of life; that this system, with its pauperism,
-famine, prisons, executions, armies, wars, is necessary for society,
-and that if it were to be abolished worse evils would follow, you
-are told so only by those who benefit by this system; while those
-who suffer from it,--and their numbers are ten times greater,--all
-think and say the opposite. And at the bottom of your heart you
-know that this is false,--that the existing system has had its day,
-and must inevitably be remodeled on new foundations; and that there
-is no need whatsoever to support it by the sacrifice of human life.
-
-Even supposing that the existing system is necessary, how is it
-that you should have to support it by trampling upon all finer
-feelings? But who has made you a guardian of this crumbling
-structure? Neither has the State, nor society, nor has any one
-requested you individually to support it by occupying your position
-of landowner, merchant, emperor, priest, or soldier, and you are
-well aware that you have accepted and are holding it, not for
-purposes of self-denial, for the good of your fellow-men, but for
-your own selfish interest; for your greed of gain, vainglory,
-ambition, through your indolence or your cowardice. If you do not
-desire this position you should not persist in doing what is cruel,
-false, and contemptible in order to retain it. If you would once
-refrain from these things which you do continually for the purpose
-of retaining it, you would lose it at once. If you are a ruler or
-an official, make only an attempt to cease polite lying, cease to
-take part in violences and executions; if you are a priest, desist
-from deceiving; if a soldier, cease killing; if a land-owner or
-manufacturer, cease defending your property by roguery and violence;
-and forthwith you will lose the position which, as you say, is
-forced upon you and seems to you burdensome.
-
-It cannot be that a man should be placed against his will in a
-position contrary to conscience.
-
-If you are put in such a position, it is not because it is necessary
-for some one to be there, but only because you are willing to accept
-it. And therefore, knowing that such a position is directly opposed
-to the mandates of your heart, your reason, your faith, and even to
-the teaching of that science you believe in, you cannot but pause
-to consider, if you wish to keep it, and especially if you try to
-justify it, if you are doing what you ought to do.
-
-You might run the risk if you had but the time to see your mistake
-and correct it, and if you ran the risk for something worth having.
-But when you know for certain that you are liable to die at any
-moment, without the slightest possibility either for yourself or for
-those whom you have drawn in with you of rectifying your mistake;
-and, moreover, since you know that no matter what those about you
-may accomplish in the material organization of the world, it will
-all very shortly disappear as certainly as you yourself, leaving no
-trace behind,--it is surely obvious that you have no inducement to
-run the risk of making a mistake so terrible.
-
-This would seem perfectly plain and simple if we did not veil with
-hypocrisy the truth that is indubitably revealed to us.
-
-Share what you have with others; do not amass riches; be not vain;
-do not rob, torture, or murder men; do not to others what you would
-not that others should do to you,--these things have been said
-not eighteen hundred but five thousand years ago, and there can
-be no doubt of the truth of them. Save for hypocrisy, it would be
-impossible, even if one did not obey these rules, not to acknowledge
-that they ought to be obeyed, and that those who do not obey them do
-wrong.
-
-But you say that there is still the general well-being, for the sake
-of which one should deviate from these rules. It is allowable for
-the general well-being to kill, torture, and rob. "It is better that
-one man should perish than a whole nation," you say, like Caiaphas,
-when you are signing death-warrants; or you load your gun to shoot
-your fellow-man, who is to perish for the general good; or you
-imprison him or take away his goods.
-
-You say that you do these cruel things because you are a part of
-society, of the State, and must serve your government and carry out
-its laws, as landowner, judge, emperor, or soldier. But if you are
-a part of the State and have duties in consequence, you are also a
-partaker of the infinite life of God's universe, and have higher
-duties in consequence of that.
-
-As your duties to your family or to society are always subject to
-the higher duties that depend upon your citizenship in the State, so
-your duties of citizenship are subject to the duties arising from
-your relations to the life of the universe, from your sonship to
-God. And as it would be unwise to cut down telegraph poles in order
-to furnish fuel for the benefit of a family or a few people, because
-this would be breaking the laws that protect the welfare of the
-State; so it is equally unwise, in order to promote the welfare of
-the State, to execute or murder a man, because this is breaking the
-immutable laws which preserve the welfare of the world.
-
-The obligations of citizenship must be subject to the higher and
-eternal obligations on your part in the everlasting life of God, and
-must not contradict them. As it was said eighteen hundred years ago
-by the disciples of Christ, "Whether it be right in the sight of God
-to hearken unto you more than unto God, judge ye."[33] "We ought to
-obey God rather than men."[34]
-
- [33] Acts iv. 19.
-
- [34] Acts v. 29.
-
-You are told to believe that in order to maintain an ever changing
-system, established but yesterday by a few men in a corner of the
-globe, you should commit violent deeds that are against the fixed
-and eternal order established by God or reason. Can it be possible?
-
-Do not fail, then, to reflect upon your position of land-owner,
-merchant, judge, emperor, president, minister, priest, or
-soldier--associated with violence, oppression, deceit, torture, and
-murder; refuse to recognize the lawfulness of these crimes. I do
-not mean that if you are a landowner you should forthwith give your
-land to the poor; or if a capitalist, your money or your factory to
-your workmen; or if a czar, a minister, a magistrate, a judge, or a
-general, you should forthwith abdicate all your advantages; or if a
-soldier, whose occupation in its very nature is based on violence,
-you should at once refuse to continue longer a soldier, despite
-all the dangers of such a refusal. Should you do this, it will
-indeed be an heroic act; but it may happen--and most probably--that
-you will not be able to do it. You have connections, a family,
-subordinates, chiefs; you may be surrounded by temptations so
-strong that you cannot overcome them; but to acknowledge the truth
-to be the truth, and not to lie--that you are always able to do.
-You can refrain from affirming that you continue to be a landowner
-or factory-owner, a merchant, an artist, an author, because you
-are thus useful to men; from declaring that you are a governor, an
-attorney-general, a czar, not because it is agreeable or you are
-accustomed to be such, but for the good of men; from saying that you
-remain a soldier, not through fear of punishment, but because you
-consider the army indispensable for the protection of men's lives.
-To keep from speaking thus falsely before yourself and others--this
-you are always able to do, and not only able, but in duty bound to
-do, because in this alone--in freeing yourself from falsehood and in
-working out the truth--lies the highest duty of your life. And do
-but this and it will be sufficient for the situation to change at
-once of itself.
-
-One only thing in which you are free and all-powerful has been given
-you; all others are beyond you. It is this,--to know the truth and
-to profess it. And it is only because of other miserable and erring
-men like yourself that you have become a soldier, an emperor, a
-landowner, a capitalist, a priest, or a general; that you commit
-evil deeds so obviously contrary to the dictates of your heart and
-reason; that you torture, rob, and murder men, establishing your
-life on their sufferings; and that, above all, instead of performing
-your paramount duty of acknowledging and professing the truth which
-is known to you, you pretend not to know it, concealing it from
-yourself and others, doing the very opposite of what you have been
-called to do.
-
-And under what conditions are you doing this? Being liable to die
-at any moment, you sign a death-warrant, declare war or take part
-in it, pass judgment, torture and rob workmen, live in luxury
-surrounded by misery, and teach weak and trusting men that all
-this is right and for you is a matter of duty, while all the time
-you are in danger of your life being destroyed by a bullet or a
-bacillus, and you may be deprived forever of the power to rectify or
-counteract the evil you have done to others and to yourself; having
-wasted a life given you but once in all eternity, having left undone
-in it the one thing for which it was given you.
-
-No matter how trite it may appear to state it, nor how we may
-hypocritically deceive ourselves, nothing can destroy the certainty
-of the simple and obvious truth that external conditions can
-never render safe this life of ours, so fraught with unavoidable
-suffering, and ended infallibly by death, that human life can have
-no other meaning than the constant fulfilment of that for which the
-Almighty Power has sent us here, and for which He has given us one
-sure guide in this life, namely, our conscious reason.
-
-This Power does not require from us what is unreasonable and
-impossible,--the organization of our temporal, material life,
-the life of society, or of the State. He demands of us only what
-is reasonable and possible,--to serve the Kingdom of God, which
-establishes the unity of mankind, a unity possible only in the
-truth; to recognize and profess the truth revealed to us, which it
-is always in our power to do.
-
-"Seek ye first the kingdom of God, and his righteousness; and all
-these things shall be added unto you."[35]
-
- [35] Matt. vi. 33.
-
-The only significance of life consists in helping to establish
-the Kingdom of God; and this can be done only by means of the
-acknowledgment and profession of the truth by each one of us. "The
-kingdom of God cometh not with observation: neither shall they say,
-Lo here! or, lo there! for, behold the kingdom of God is within
-you."[36]
-
- [36] Luke xvii. 20, 21.
-
-
-
-
-WHAT IS ART?
-
-
-
-
-TRANSLATOR'S PREFACE
-
-
-The fundamental thought expressed in this book leads inevitably
-to conclusions so new, so unexpected, and so contrary to what is
-usually maintained in literary and artistic circles, that although
-it is clearly and emphatically expressed (and this I hope has
-not been lost in translation), most readers who wish to possess
-themselves of it will have to read the work carefully, and to digest
-it slowly.
-
-Especially the introductory Chapters II., III., IV., and V.,
-need careful perusal by any who, having adopted one or other of
-the current theories on beauty and art, may find it difficult to
-abandon a preconceived view, and to clear their minds for a fair
-appreciation of what is new to them.
-
-The first four chapters raise the problem, and tell us briefly
-what has been said by previous writers. Chapter III. gives (in
-highly condensed form) the substance of the teaching of some sixty
-philosophers on this subject, and since many of them were extremely
-confused, the chapter cannot, in the nature of things, be easy
-reading.
-
-I should like to remark, in passing, that though Tolsto in this
-chapter (presumably for convenience of verification) refers chiefly
-to the compilations of Schasler, Kralik, and Knight, he has gone
-behind these authorities to the primary sources. To give a single
-instance: in the paragraph on Darwin, the foot-note refers us to
-Knight, but the remark that the origin of the art of music may be
-traced back to the call of the males to the females in the animal
-world will be found in Darwin, but will not be found in Knight.
-
-In Chapter V. we come to Tolsto's definition of art, which
-definition should be kept well in mind while reading the rest of the
-book.
-
-No doubt most of those to whom it is an end in itself, who live by
-it, or make it their chief occupation, will read this book (or leave
-it unread) and go on in their former way, much as Pharaoh, of old,
-hardened his heart, and did not sympathize with what Moses had to
-say on the labor question. But for those of us who have felt that
-art is too valuable a matter to be lost out of our lives, and who,
-in their quest for social justice, have met the reproach that they
-were sacrificing the pleasures and advantages of art, this book is
-of inestimable value, in that it solves a perplexed question of
-far-reaching importance to practical life.
-
-To this class of readers neither the masterly elucidation of
-the former theories contained in the opening chapters, nor the
-explanation of how it has come about that such great importance
-is attached to the activity we call art (Chapters VI. and VII.),
-nor the explanation and illustrations of the perversion that art
-has undergone, nor even the elucidation of the terrible evils this
-perversion is producing (XVII.), will equal in significance the
-remaining chapters of the book. These show us what to look for
-in art, how to distinguish it from counterfeits (XV., XVI., and
-XVIII.), treat of the true art of the future (XIX.), and explain how
-science and art are linked together in man's life, are directed by
-his perception of the meaning of life, and inevitably react on all
-he thinks and feels.
-
-
-
-
-THE AUTHOR'S PREFACE
-
-
-This book of mine, "What is Art?" appears now for the first time
-in its true form. More than one edition has already been issued in
-Russia, but in each case it has been so mutilated by the "Censor,"
-that I request all who are interested in my views on art only to
-judge of them by the work in its present shape. The causes which led
-to the publication of the book--with my name attached to it--in a
-mutilated form were the following: In accordance with a decision I
-arrived at long ago,--not to submit my writings to the "Censorship"
-(which I consider to be an immoral and irrational institution),
-but to print them only in the shape in which they were written,--I
-intended not to attempt to print this work in Russia. However, my
-good acquaintance, Professor Grote, editor of a Moscow psychological
-magazine, having heard of the contents of my work, asked me to
-print it in his magazine, and promised me that he would get the
-book through the "Censor's" office unmutilated if I would but agree
-to a few very unimportant alterations, merely toning down certain
-expressions. I was weak enough to agree to this, and it has resulted
-in a book appearing under my name, from which not only have some
-essential thoughts been excluded, but into which the thoughts of
-other men--even thoughts utterly opposed to my own convictions--have
-been introduced.
-
-The thing occurred in this way. First, Grote softened my
-expressions, and in some cases weakened them. For instance, he
-replaced the words: _always_ by _sometimes_, _all_ by _some_,
-_Church_ religion by _Roman Catholic_ religion, "_Mother of God_"
-by _Madonna_, _patriotism_ by _pseudo-patriotism_, _palaces_
-by _palatii_,[37] etc., and I did not consider it necessary
-to protest. But when the book was already in type, the Censor
-required that whole sentences should be altered, and that instead
-of what I said about the evil of landed property, a remark should
-be substituted on the evils of a landless proletariate.[38] I
-agreed to this also, and to some further alterations. It seemed
-not worth while to upset the whole affair for the sake of one
-sentence, and when one alteration had been agreed to it seemed not
-worth while to protest against a second and a third. So, little by
-little, expressions crept into the book which altered the sense
-and attributed things to me that I could not have wished to say.
-So that by the time the book was printed it had been deprived of
-some part of its integrity and sincerity. But there was consolation
-in the thought that the book, even in this form, if it contains
-something that is good, would be of use to Russian readers whom
-it would otherwise not have reached. Things, however, turned out
-otherwise. _Nous comptions sans notre hte._ After the legal term
-of four days had already elapsed, the book was seized, and, on
-instructions received from Petersburg, it was handed over to the
-"Spiritual Censor." Then Grote declined all further participation
-in the affair, and the "Spiritual Censor" proceeded to do what he
-would with the book. The "Spiritual Censorship" is one of the most
-ignorant, venal, stupid, and despotic institutions in Russia. Books
-which disagree in any way with the recognized state religion of
-Russia, if once it gets hold of them, are almost always totally
-suppressed and burnt; which is what happened to all my religious
-works when attempts were made to print them in Russia. Probably
-a similar fate would have overtaken this work also, had not the
-editors of the magazine employed all means to save it. The result
-of their efforts was that the "Spiritual Censor," a priest who
-probably understands art and is interested in art as much as I
-understand or am interested in church services, but who gets a good
-salary for destroying whatever is likely to displease his superiors,
-struck out all that seemed to him to endanger his position, and
-substituted his thoughts for mine wherever he considered it
-necessary to do so. For instance, where I speak of Christ going
-to the Cross for the sake of the truth He professed, the "Censor"
-substituted a statement that Christ died for mankind, _i.e_. he
-attributed to me an assertion of the dogma of the Redemption, which
-I consider to be one of the most untrue and harmful of Church
-dogmas. After correcting the book in this way, the "Spiritual
-Censor" allowed it to be printed.
-
- [37] Tolsto's remarks on Church religion were re-worded so as to
- seem to relate only to the Western Church, and his disapproval of
- luxurious life was made to apply, not, say, to Queen Victoria or
- Nicholas II., but to the Csars or the Pharaohs.--TR.
-
- [38] The Russian peasant is usually a member of a village commune,
- and has therefore a right to a share in the land belonging to the
- village. Tolsto disapproves of the order of society which allows
- less land for the support of a village full of people than is
- sometimes owned by a single landed proprietor. The "Censor" will not
- allow disapproval of this state of things to be expressed, but is
- prepared to admit that the laws and customs, say, of England--where
- a yet more extreme form of landed property exists, and the men who
- actually labor on the land usually possess none of it--deserve
- criticism.--TR.
-
-To protest in Russia is impossible--no newspaper would publish such
-a protest; and to withdraw my book from the magazine, and place the
-editor in an awkward position with the public, was also not possible.
-
-So the matter has remained. A book has appeared under my name
-containing thoughts attributed to me which are not mine.
-
-I was persuaded to give my article to a Russian magazine in order
-that my thoughts, which may be useful, should become the possession
-of Russian readers; and the result has been that my name is affixed
-to a work from which it might be assumed that I quite arbitrarily
-assert things contrary to the general opinion, without adducing my
-reasons; that I only consider false patriotism bad, but patriotism
-in general a very good feeling; that I merely deny the absurdities
-of the Roman Catholic Church and disbelieve in the Madonna, but
-that I believe in the Orthodox Eastern faith and in the "Mother of
-God"; that I consider all the writings collected in the Bible to be
-holy books, and see the chief importance of Christ's life in the
-Redemption of mankind by His death.
-
-I have narrated all this in such detail because it strikingly
-illustrates the indubitable truth that all compromise with
-institutions of which your conscience disapproves,--compromises
-which are usually made for the sake of the general good,--instead
-of producing the good you expected, inevitably lead you, not only
-to acknowledge the institution you disapprove of, but also to
-participate in the evil that institution produces.
-
-I am glad to be able by this statement at least to do something to
-correct the error into which I was led by my compromise.
-
-I have also to mention that besides reinstating the parts excluded
-by the Censor from the Russian editions, other corrections and
-additions of importance have been made in this edition.
-
- _29th March, 1898._
-
-
-
-
-WHAT IS ART?
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I
-
-
-Take up any one of our ordinary newspapers, and you will find a part
-devoted to the theater and music. In almost every number you will
-find a description of some art exhibition, or of some particular
-picture, and you will always find reviews of new works of art that
-have appeared, of volumes of poems, of short stories, or of novels.
-
-Promptly, and in detail, as soon as it has occurred, an account is
-published of how such and such an actress or actor played this or
-that rle in such and such a drama, comedy, or opera; and of the
-merits of the performance, as well as of the contents of the new
-drama, comedy, or opera, with its defects and merits. With as much
-care and detail, or even more, we are told how such and such an
-artist has sung a certain piece, or has played it on the piano or
-violin, and what were the merits and defects of the piece and of the
-performance. In every large town there is sure to be at least one,
-if not more than one, exhibition of new pictures, the merits and
-defects of which are discussed in the utmost detail by critics and
-connoisseurs.
-
-New novels and poems, in separate volumes or in the magazines,
-appear almost every day, and the newspapers consider it their
-duty to give their readers detailed accounts of these artistic
-productions.
-
-For the support of art in Russia (where for the education of the
-people only a hundredth part is spent of what would be required to
-give every one the opportunity of instruction) the government grants
-millions of roubles in subsidies to academies, conservatoires, and
-theaters. In France twenty million francs are assigned for art, and
-similar grants are made in Germany and England.
-
-In every large town enormous buildings are erected for museums,
-academies, conservatoires, dramatic schools, and for performances
-and concerts. Hundreds of thousands of workmen--carpenters, masons,
-painters, joiners, paperhangers, tailors, hairdressers, jewelers,
-molders, type-setters--spend their whole lives in hard labor to
-satisfy the demands of art, so that hardly any other department of
-human activity, except the military, consumes so much energy as this.
-
-Not only is enormous labor spent on this activity, but in it, as in
-war, the very lives of men are sacrificed. Hundreds of thousands
-of people devote their lives from childhood to learning to twirl
-their legs rapidly (dancers), or to touch notes and strings very
-rapidly (musicians), or to draw with paint and represent what
-they see (artists), or to turn every phrase inside out and find a
-rhyme to every word. And these people, often very kind and clever,
-and capable of all sorts of useful labor, grow savage over their
-specialized and stupefying occupations, and become one-sided and
-self-complacent specialists, dull to all the serious phenomena
-of life, and skilful only at rapidly twisting their legs, their
-tongues, or their fingers.
-
-But even this stunting of human life is not the worst. I remember
-being once at the rehearsal of one of the most ordinary of the new
-operas which are produced at all the opera houses of Europe and
-America.
-
-I arrived when the first act had already commenced. To reach the
-auditorium I had to pass through the stage entrance. By dark
-entrances and passages, I was led through the vaults of an enormous
-building, past immense machines for changing the scenery and for
-illuminating; and there in the gloom and dust I saw workmen busily
-engaged. One of these men, pale, haggard, in a dirty blouse, with
-dirty, work-worn hands and cramped fingers, evidently tired and out
-of humor, went past me, angrily scolding another man. Ascending by
-a dark stair, I came out on the boards behind the scenes. Amid
-various poles and rings and scattered scenery, decorations and
-curtains, stood and moved dozens, if not hundreds, of painted and
-dressed-up men, in costumes fitting tight to their thighs and
-calves, and also women, as usual, as nearly nude as might be. These
-were all singers, or members of the chorus, or ballet-dancers,
-awaiting their turns. My guide led me across the stage and, by means
-of a bridge of boards across the orchestra (in which perhaps a
-hundred musicians of all kinds, from kettledrum to flute and harp,
-were seated), to the dark pit-stalls.
-
-On an elevation, between two lamps with reflectors, and in an
-arm-chair placed before a music-stand, sat the director of the
-musical part, _bton_ in hand, managing the orchestra and singers,
-and, in general, the production of the whole opera.
-
-The performance had already commenced, and on the stage a procession
-of Indians who had brought home a bride was being presented. Besides
-men and women in costume, two other men in ordinary clothes bustled
-and ran about on the stage; one was the director of the dramatic
-part, and the other, who stepped about in soft shoes and ran from
-place to place with unusual agility, was the dancing-master, whose
-salary per month exceeded what ten laborers earn in a year.
-
-These three directors arranged the singing, the orchestra, and
-the procession. The procession, as usual, was enacted by couples,
-with tinfoil halberds on their shoulders. They all came from one
-place, and walked round and round again, and then stopped. The
-procession took a long time to arrange: first the Indians with
-halberds came on too late; then too soon; then at the right time,
-but crowded together at the exit; then they did not crowd, but
-arranged themselves badly at the sides of the stage; and each
-time the whole performance was stopped and recommenced from the
-beginning. The procession was introduced by a recitative, delivered
-by a man dressed up like some variety of Turk, who, opening his
-mouth in a curious way, sang, "Home I bring the bri-i-ide." He
-sings and waves his arm (which is of course bare) from under his
-mantle. The procession commences, but here the French horn, in
-the accompaniment of the recitative, does something wrong; and the
-director, with a shudder as if some catastrophe had occurred, raps
-with his stick on the stand. All is stopped, and the director,
-turning to the orchestra, attacks the French horn, scolding him in
-the rudest terms, as cabmen abuse each other, for taking the wrong
-note. And again the whole thing recommences. The Indians with their
-halberds again come on, treading softly in their extraordinary
-boots; again the singer sings, "Home I bring the bri-i-ide." But
-here the pairs get too close together. More raps with the stick,
-more scolding, and a recommencement. Again, "Home I bring the
-bri-i-ide," again the same gesticulation with the bare arm from
-under the mantle, and again the couples, treading softly with
-halberds on their shoulders, some with sad and serious faces, some
-talking and smiling, arrange themselves in a circle and begin to
-sing. All seems to be going well, but again the stick raps, and
-the director, in a distressed and angry voice, begins to scold the
-men and women of the chorus. It appears that when singing they had
-omitted to raise their hands from time to time in sign of animation.
-"Are you all dead, or what? Cows that you are! Are you corpses,
-that you can't move?" Again they recommence, "Home I bring the
-bri-i-ide," and again, with sorrowful faces, the chorus-women sing,
-first one and then another of them raising their hands. But two
-chorus-girls speak to each other,--again a more vehement rapping
-with the stick. "Have you come here to talk? Can't you gossip at
-home? You there in red breeches, come nearer. Look toward me!
-Recommence!" Again, "Home I bring the bri-i-ide." And so it goes
-on for one, two, three hours. The whole of such a rehearsal lasts
-six hours on end. Raps with the stick, repetitions, placings,
-corrections of the singers, of the orchestra, of the procession, of
-the dancers,--all seasoned with angry scolding. I heard the words,
-"asses," "fools," "idiots," "swine," addressed to the musicians
-and singers at least forty times in the course of one hour. And
-the unhappy individual to whom the abuse is addressed,--flautist,
-horn-blower, or singer,--physically and mentally demoralized,
-does not reply, and does what is demanded of him. Twenty times is
-repeated the one phrase, "Home I bring the bri-i-ide," and twenty
-times the striding about in yellow shoes with a halberd over the
-shoulder. The conductor knows that these people are so demoralized
-that they are no longer fit for anything but to blow trumpets and
-walk about with halberds and in yellow shoes, and that they are also
-accustomed to dainty, easy living, so that they will put up with
-anything rather than lose their luxurious life. He therefore gives
-free vent to his churlishness, especially as he has seen the same
-thing done in Paris and Vienna, and knows that this is the way the
-best conductors behave, and that it is a musical tradition of great
-artists to be so carried away by the great business of their art
-that they cannot pause to consider the feelings of other artists.
-
-It would be difficult to find a more repulsive sight. I have seen
-one workman abuse another for not supporting the weight piled upon
-him when goods were being unloaded, or, at hay-stacking, the village
-elder scold a peasant for not making the rick right, and the man
-submitted in silence. And, however unpleasant it was to witness the
-scene, the unpleasantness was lessened by the consciousness that the
-business in hand was needful and important, and that the fault for
-which the head man scolded the laborer was one which might spoil a
-needful undertaking.
-
-But what was being done here? For what, and for whom? Very likely
-the conductor was tired out, like the workman I passed in the
-vaults; it was even evident that he was; but who made him tire
-himself? And for what was he tiring himself? The opera he was
-rehearsing was one of the most ordinary of operas for people who are
-accustomed to them, but also one of the most gigantic absurdities
-that could possibly be devised. An Indian king wants to marry; they
-bring him a bride; he disguises himself as a minstrel; the bride
-falls in love with the minstrel and is in despair, but afterwards
-discovers that the minstrel is the king, and every one is highly
-delighted.
-
-That there never were, or could be, such Indians, and that they
-were not only unlike Indians, but that what they were doing was
-unlike anything on earth except other operas, was beyond all manner
-of doubt; that people do not converse in such a way as recitative,
-and do not place themselves at fixed distances, in a quartet,
-waving their arms to express their emotions; that nowhere, except
-in theaters, do people walk about in such a manner, in pairs, with
-tinfoil halberds and in slippers; that no one ever gets angry in
-such a way, or is affected in such a way, or laughs in such a way,
-or cries in such a way; and that no one on earth can be moved by
-such performances; all this is beyond the possibility of doubt.
-
-Instinctively the question presents itself: For whom is this being
-done? Whom _can_ it please? If there are, occasionally, good
-melodies in the opera, to which it is pleasant to listen, they could
-have been sung simply, without these stupid costumes and all the
-processions and recitatives and hand-wavings.
-
-The ballet, in which half-naked women make voluptuous movements,
-twisting themselves into various sensual wreathings, is simply a
-lewd performance.
-
-So one is quite at a loss as to whom these things are done for. The
-man of culture is heartily sick of them, while to a real working-man
-they are utterly incomprehensible. If any one can be pleased by
-these things (which is doubtful), it can only be some young footman
-or depraved artisan, who has contracted the spirit of the upper
-classes but is not yet satiated with their amusements, and wishes to
-show his breeding.
-
-And all this nasty folly is prepared, not simply, nor with kindly
-merriment, but with anger and brutal cruelty.
-
-It is said that it is all done for the sake of art, and that art
-is a very important thing. But is it true that art is so important
-that such sacrifices should be made for its sake? This question is
-especially urgent, because art, for the sake of which the labor of
-millions, the lives of men, and, above all, love between man and
-man, are being sacrificed,--this very art is becoming something more
-and more vague and uncertain to human perception.
-
-Criticism, in which the lovers of art used to find support for their
-opinions, has latterly become so self-contradictory, that, if we
-exclude from the domain of art all that to which the critics of
-various schools themselves deny the title, there is scarcely any art
-left.
-
-The artists of various sects, like the theologians of the various
-sects, mutually exclude and destroy themselves. Listen to the
-artists of the schools of our times, and you will find, in all
-branches, each set of artists disowning others. In poetry the old
-romanticists deny the parnassiens and the decadents; the parnassiens
-disown the romanticists and the decadents; the decadents disown
-all their predecessors and the symbolists; the symbolists disown
-all their predecessors and _les mages_; and _les mages_ disown
-all, all their predecessors. Among novelists we have naturalists,
-psychologists, and "nature-ists," all rejecting each other. And it
-is the same in dramatic art, in painting, and in music. So that art,
-which demands such tremendous labor-sacrifices from the people,
-which stunts human lives and transgresses against human love, is not
-only _not_ a thing clearly and firmly defined, but is understood in
-such contradictory ways by its own devotees that it is difficult
-to say what is meant by art, and especially what is good, useful
-art,--art for the sake of which we might condone such sacrifices as
-are being offered at its shrine.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II
-
-
-For the production of every ballet, circus, opera, operetta,
-exhibition, picture, concert, or printed book, the intense and
-unwilling labor of thousands and thousands of people is needed at
-what is often harmful and humiliating work. It were well if artists
-made all they require for themselves, but, as it is, they all need
-the help of workmen, not only to produce art, but also for their own
-usually luxurious maintenance. And, one way or other, they get it;
-either through payments from rich people, or through subsidies given
-by government (in Russia, for instance, in grants of millions of
-roubles to theaters, conservatoires, and academies). This money is
-collected from the people, some of whom have to sell their only cow
-to pay the tax, and who never get those sthetic pleasures which art
-gives.
-
-It was all very well for a Greek or Roman artist, or even for a
-Russian artist of the first half of our century (when there were
-still slaves, and it was considered right that there should be),
-with a quiet mind to make people serve him and his art; but in our
-day, when in all men there is at least some dim perception of the
-equal rights of all, it is impossible to constrain people to labor
-unwillingly for art, without first deciding the question whether it
-is true that art is so good and so important an affair as to redeem
-this evil.
-
-If not, we have the terrible probability to consider, that while
-fearful sacrifices of the labor and lives of men, and of morality
-itself, are being made to art, that same art may be not only useless
-but even harmful.
-
-And therefore it is necessary for a society in which works of art
-arise and are supported, to find out whether all that professes to
-be art is really art; whether (as is presupposed in our society) all
-that which is art is good; and whether it is important and worth
-those sacrifices which it necessitates. It is still more necessary
-for every conscientious artist to know this, that he may be sure
-that all he does has a valid meaning; that it is not merely an
-infatuation of the small circle of people among whom he lives which
-excites in him the false assurance that he is doing a good work; and
-that what he takes from others for the support of his often very
-luxurious life, will be compensated for by those productions at
-which he works. And that is why answers to the above questions are
-especially important in our time.
-
-What is this art, which is considered so important and necessary for
-humanity that for its sake these sacrifices of labor, of human life,
-and even of goodness may be made?
-
-"What is art? What a question! Art is architecture, sculpture,
-painting, music, and poetry in all its forms," usually replies the
-ordinary man, the art amateur, or even the artist himself, imagining
-the matter about which he is talking to be perfectly clear, and
-uniformly understood by everybody. But in architecture, one inquires
-further, are there not simple buildings which are not objects of
-art, and buildings with artistic pretensions which are unsuccessful
-and ugly and therefore cannot be considered as works of art? Wherein
-lies the characteristic sign of a work of art?
-
-It is the same in sculpture, in music, and in poetry. Art, in all
-its forms, is bounded on one side by the practically useful, and on
-the other by unsuccessful attempts at art. How is art to be marked
-off from each of these? The ordinary educated man of our circle,
-and even the artist who has not occupied himself especially with
-sthetics, will not hesitate at this question either. He thinks the
-solution has been found long ago, and is well known to every one.
-
-"Art is such activity as produces beauty," says such a man.
-
-If art consists in that, then is a ballet or an operetta art? you
-inquire.
-
-"Yes," says the ordinary man, though with some hesitation, "a good
-ballet or a graceful operetta is also art, in so far as it manifests
-beauty."
-
-But without even asking the ordinary man what differentiates the
-"good" ballet and the "graceful" operetta from their opposites
-(a question he would have much difficulty in answering), if you
-ask him whether the activity of costumiers and hairdressers, who
-ornament the figures and faces of the women for the ballet and
-the operetta, is art; or the activity of Worth, the dressmaker;
-of scent-makers and men cooks,--then he will, in most cases, deny
-that their activity belongs to the sphere of art. But in this the
-ordinary man makes a mistake, just because he is an ordinary man
-and not a specialist, and because he has not occupied himself with
-sthetic questions. Had he looked into these matters, he would
-have seen in the great Renan's book, "Marc Aurele," a dissertation
-showing that the tailor's work is art, and that those who do not
-see in the adornment of woman an affair of the highest art are very
-small-minded and dull. "_C'est le grand art_," says Renan. Moreover,
-he would have known that in many sthetic systems--for instance,
-in the sthetics of the learned Professor Kralik, "Weltschnheit,
-Versuch einer allgemeinen sthetik, von Richard Kralik," and in "Les
-Problmes de l'Esthtique Contemporaine," by Guyau--the arts of
-costume, of taste, and of touch are included.
-
-"_Es Folgt nun ein Fnfblatt von Knsten, die der subjectiven
-Sinnlichkeit entkeimen_" (There results then a pentafoliate of arts,
-growing out of the subjective perceptions), says Kralik (p. 175).
-"_Sie sind die sthetische Behandlung der fnf Sinne._" (They are
-the sthetic treatment of the five senses.)
-
-These five arts are the following:--
-
-_Die Kunst des Geschmacksinns_--The art of the sense of taste (p.
-175).
-
-_Die Kunst des Geruchsinns_--The art of the sense of smell (p. 177).
-
-_Die Kunst des Tastsinns_--The art of the sense of touch (p. 180).
-
-_Die Kunst des Gehrsinns_--The art of the sense of hearing (p. 182).
-
-_Die Kunst des Gesichtsinns_--The art of the sense of sight (p. 184).
-
-Of the first of these--_die Kunst des Geschmacksinns_--he says:
-"_Man hlt zwar gewhnlich nur zwei oder hchstens drei Sinne fr
-wrdig, den Stoff knstlerischer Behandlung abzugeben, aber ich
-glaube nur mit bedingtem Recht. Ich will kein allzugrosses Gewicht
-darauf legen, dass der gemeine Sprachgebrauch manch andere Knste,
-wie zum Beispiel die Kochkunst kennt._"[39]
-
- [39] Only two, or at most three, senses are generally held worthy
- to supply matter for artistic treatment, but I think this opinion
- is only conditionally correct. I will not lay too much stress on
- the fact that our common speech recognizes many other arts, as, for
- instance, the art of cookery.
-
-And further: "_Und es ist doch gewiss eine sthetische Leistung,
-wenn es der Kochkunst gelingt ans einem thierischen Kadaver einen
-Gegenstand des Geschmacks in jedem Sinne zu machen. Der Grundsatz
-der Kunst des Geschmacksinns (die weiter ist als die sogenannte
-Kochkunst) ist also dieser: Es soll alles Geniessbare als Sinnbild
-einer Idee behandelt werden und in jedesmaligem Einklang zur
-auszudrckenden Idee._"[40]
-
- [40] And yet it is certainly an sthetic achievement when the art of
- cooking succeeds in making of an animal's corpse an object in all
- respects tasteful. The principle of the Art of Taste (which goes
- beyond the so-called Art of Cookery) is therefore this: All that is
- eatable should be treated as the symbol of some Idea, and always in
- harmony with the Idea to be expressed.
-
-This author, like Renan, acknowledges a _Kostmkunst_ (Art of
-Costume) (p. 200), etc.
-
-Such is also the opinion of the French writer, Guyau, who is highly
-esteemed by some authors of our day. In his book, "Les Problmes
-de l'Esthtique Contemporaine," he speaks seriously of touch,
-taste, and smell as giving, or being capable of giving, sthetic
-impressions: "_Si la couleur manque au toucher, il nous fournit en
-revanche une notion que l'oeil seul ne peut nous donner, et qui a
-une valeur esthtique considrable, celle du_ doux, _du_ soyeux,
-_du_ poli. _Ce qui caractrise la beaut du velours, c'est sa
-douceur au toucher non moins que son brillant. Dans l'ide que nous
-nous faisons de la beaut d'une femme, le velout de sa peau entre
-comme lment essentiel._"
-
-"_Chacun de nous probablement avec un peu d'attention se rappellera
-des jouissances du got, qui ont t de vritables jouissances
-esthtiques._"[41] And he recounts how a glass of milk drunk by him
-in the mountains gave him sthetic enjoyment.
-
- [41] If the sense of touch lacks color, it gives us, on the
- other hand, a notion which the eye alone cannot afford, and one
- of considerable sthetic value, namely, that of _softness_,
- _silkiness_, _polish_. The beauty of velvet is characterized not
- less by its softness to the touch than by its luster. In the idea
- we form of a woman's beauty, the softness of her skin enters as an
- essential element.
-
- Each of us, probably, with a little attention, can recall pleasures
- of taste which have been real sthetic pleasures.
-
-So it turns out that the conception of art, as consisting in making
-beauty manifest, is not at all so simple as it seemed, especially
-now, when in this conception of beauty are included our sensations
-of touch and taste and smell, as they are by the latest sthetic
-writers.
-
-But the ordinary man either does not know, or does not wish to know,
-all this, and is firmly convinced that all questions about art may
-be simply and clearly solved by acknowledging beauty to be the
-subject-matter of art. To him it seems clear and comprehensible that
-art consists in manifesting beauty, and that a reference to beauty
-will serve to explain all questions about art.
-
-But what is this beauty which forms the subject-matter of art? How
-is it defined? What is it?
-
-As is always the case, the more cloudy and confused the conception
-conveyed by a word, with the more _aplomb_ and self-assurance do
-people use that word, pretending that what is understood by it is so
-simple and clear that it is not worth while even to discuss what it
-actually means.
-
-This is how matters of orthodox religion are usually dealt with,
-and this is how people now deal with the conception of beauty.
-It is taken for granted that what is meant by the word beauty is
-known and understood by every one. And yet not only is this not
-known, but, after whole mountains of books have been written on
-the subject by the most learned and profound thinkers during one
-hundred and fifty years (ever since Baumgarten founded sthetics in
-the year 1750), the question, What is beauty? remains to this day
-quite unsolved, and in each new work on sthetics it is answered
-in a new way. One of the last books I read on sthetics is a not
-ill-written booklet by Julius Mithalter, called "Rtsel des Schnen"
-(The Enigma of the Beautiful). And that title precisely expresses
-the position of the question, What is beauty? After thousands of
-learned men have discussed it during one hundred and fifty years,
-the meaning of the word beauty remains an enigma still. The Germans
-answer the question in their manner, though in a hundred different
-ways. The physiologist-stheticians, especially the Englishmen,
-Herbert Spencer, Grant Allen, and his school, answer it, each in
-his own way; the French eclectics, and the followers of Guyau and
-Taine, also each in his own way; and all these people know all the
-preceding solutions given by Baumgarten, and Kant, and Schelling,
-and Schiller, and Fichte, and Winckelmann, and Lessing, and Hegel,
-and Schopenhauer, and Hartmann, and Schasler, and Cousin, and
-Lvque, and others.
-
-What is this strange conception "beauty," which seems so simple
-to those who talk without thinking, but in defining which all the
-philosophers of various tendencies and different nationalities can
-come to no agreement during a century and a half? What is this
-conception of beauty, on which the dominant doctrine of art rests?
-
-In Russian, by the word _krasota_ (beauty) we mean only that which
-pleases the sight. And though latterly people have begun to speak of
-"an ugly deed," or of "beautiful music," it is not good Russian.
-
-A Russian of the common folk, not knowing foreign languages, will
-not understand you if you tell him that a man who has given his last
-coat to another, or done anything similar, has acted "beautifully,"
-that a man who has cheated another has done an "ugly" action, or
-that a song is "beautiful."
-
-In Russian a deed may be kind and good, or unkind and bad. Music may
-be pleasant and good, or unpleasant and bad; but there can be no
-such thing as "beautiful" or "ugly" music.
-
-Beautiful may relate to a man, a horse, a house, a view, or a
-movement. Of actions, thoughts, character, or music, if they please
-us, we may say that they are good, or, if they do not please us,
-that they are not good. But beautiful can be used only concerning
-that which pleases the sight. So that the word and conception "good"
-includes the conception of "beautiful," but the reverse is not
-the case; the conception "beauty" does not include the conception
-"good." If we say "good" of an article which we value for its
-appearance, we thereby say that the article is beautiful; but if we
-say it is "beautiful," it does not at all mean that the article is a
-good one.
-
-Such is the meaning ascribed by the Russian language, and therefore
-by the sense of the people, to the words and conceptions "good" and
-"beautiful."
-
-In all the European languages, _i.e._ the languages of those nations
-among whom the doctrine has spread that beauty is the essential
-thing in art, the words "beau," "schn," "beautiful," "bello,"
-etc., while keeping their meaning of beautiful in form, have come
-to also express "goodness," "kindness," _i.e._ have come to act as
-substitutes for the word "good."
-
-So that it has become quite natural in those languages to use such
-expressions as "belle ame," "schne Gedanken," of "beautiful deed."
-Those languages no longer have a suitable word wherewith expressly
-to indicate beauty of form, and have to use a combination of words
-such as "beau par la forme," "beautiful to look at," etc., to convey
-that idea.
-
-Observation of the divergent meanings which the words "beauty" and
-"beautiful" have in Russian on the one hand, and in those European
-languages now permeated by this sthetic theory on the other hand,
-shows us that the word "beauty" has, among the latter, acquired a
-special meaning, namely, that of "good."
-
-What is remarkable, moreover, is that since we Russians have begun
-more and more to adopt the European view of art, the same evolution
-has begun to show itself in our language also, and some people
-speak and write quite confidently, and without causing surprise, of
-beautiful music and ugly actions, or even thoughts; whereas forty
-years ago, when I was young, the expressions "beautiful music"
-and "ugly actions" were not only unusual, but incomprehensible.
-Evidently this new meaning given to beauty by European thought
-begins to be assimilated by Russian society.
-
-And what really is this meaning? What is this "beauty" as it is
-understood by the European peoples?
-
-In order to answer this question, I must here quote at least a
-small selection of those definitions of beauty most generally
-adopted in existing sthetic systems. I especially beg the reader
-not to be overcome by dullness, but to read these extracts through,
-or, still better, to read some one of the erudite sthetic authors.
-Not to mention the voluminous German stheticians, a very good
-book for this purpose would be either the German book by Kralik,
-the English work by Knight, or the French one by Lvque. It is
-necessary to read one of the learned sthetic writers in order to
-form at firsthand a conception of the variety in opinion and the
-frightful obscurity which reigns in this region of speculation; not,
-in this important matter, trusting to another's report.
-
-This, for instance, is what the German sthetician Schasler says
-in the preface to his famous, voluminous, and detailed work on
-sthetics:--
-
-"Hardly in any sphere of philosophic science can we find such
-divergent methods of investigation and exposition, amounting even to
-self-contradiction, as in the sphere of sthetics. On the one hand,
-we have elegant phraseology without any substance, characterized
-in great part by most one-sided superficiality; and on the other
-hand, accompanying undeniable profundity of investigation and
-richness of subject-matter, we get a revolting awkwardness of
-philosophic terminology, infolding the simplest thoughts in an
-apparel of abstract science, as though to render them worthy to
-enter the consecrated palace of the system; and finally, between
-these two methods of investigation and exposition there is a third,
-forming, as it were, the transition from one to the other, a method
-consisting of eclecticism, now flaunting an elegant phraseology, and
-now a pedantic erudition.... A style of exposition that falls into
-none of these three defects but it is truly concrete, and, having
-important matter, expresses it in clear and popular philosophic
-language, can nowhere be found less frequently than in the domain of
-sthetics."[42]
-
- [42] M. Schasler, "Kritische Geschichte der sthetik," 1872, vol.
- i., p. 13.
-
-It is only necessary, for instance, to read Schasler's own book to
-convince oneself of the justice of this observation of his.
-
-On the same subject the French writer Vron, in the preface to
-his very good work on sthetics, says: "_Il n'y a pas de science,
-qui ait t plus que l'esthtique livre aux rveries des
-mtaphysiciens. Depuis Platon jusqu'aux doctrines officielles de nos
-jours, on a fait de l'art je ne sais quel amalgame de fantaisies
-quintessencies, et de mystres transcendantaux qui trouvent leur
-expression suprme dans la conception absolue du Beau idal,
-prototype immuable et divin des choses relles_" ("L'Esthtique,"
-1878, p. 5).[43]
-
- [43] There is no science which, more than sthetics, has been handed
- over to the reveries of the metaphysicians. From Plato down to the
- received doctrines of our day, people have made of art a strange
- amalgam of quintessential fancies and transcendental mysteries,
- which find their supreme expression in the conception of an absolute
- ideal Beauty, immutable and divine prototype of actual things.
-
-If the reader will only be at the pains to peruse the following
-extracts, defining beauty, taken from the chief writers on
-sthetics, he may convince himself that this censure is thoroughly
-deserved.
-
-I shall not quote the definitions of beauty attributed to
-the ancients,--Socrates, Plato, Aristotle, etc., down to
-Plotinus,--because, in reality, the ancients had not that conception
-of beauty separated from goodness which forms the basis and aim of
-sthetics in our time. By referring the judgments of the ancients on
-beauty to our conception of it, as is usually done in sthetics, we
-give the words of the ancients a meaning which is not theirs.[44]
-
- [44] See on this matter Benard's admirable book, "L'Esthtique
- d'Aristote," also Walter's "Geschichte der sthetik in Altertum."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III
-
-
-I begin with the founder of sthetics, Baumgarten (1714-1762).
-
-According to Baumgarten,[45] the object of logical knowledge is
-Truth, the object of sthetic (_i.e._ sensuous) knowledge is Beauty.
-Beauty is the Perfect (the Absolute) recognized through the senses;
-Truth is the Perfect perceived through reason; Goodness is the
-Perfect reached by moral will.
-
- [45] Schasler, p. 361.
-
-Beauty is defined by Baumgarten as a correspondence, _i.e._ an order
-of the parts in their mutual relations to each other and in their
-relation to the whole. The aim of beauty itself is to please and
-excite a desire, "_Wohlgefallen und Erregung eines Verlangens_." (A
-position precisely the opposite of Kant's definition of the nature
-and sign of beauty.)
-
-With reference to the manifestations of beauty, Baumgarten considers
-that the highest embodiment of beauty is seen by us in nature, and
-he therefore thinks that the highest aim of art is to copy nature.
-(This position also is directly contradicted by the conclusions of
-the latest stheticians.)
-
-Passing over the unimportant followers of Baumgarten,--Maier,
-Eschenburg, and Eberhard,--who only slightly modified the doctrine
-of their teacher by dividing the pleasant from the beautiful, I will
-quote the definitions given by writers who came immediately after
-Baumgarten, and defined beauty quite in another way. These writers
-were Sulzer, Mendelssohn, and Moritz. They, in contradiction to
-Baumgarten's main position, recognize as the aim of art, not beauty,
-but goodness. Thus Sulzer (1720-1777) says that only that can be
-considered beautiful which contains goodness. According to his
-theory, the aim of the whole life of humanity is welfare in social
-life. This is attained by the education of the moral feelings, to
-which end art should be subservient. Beauty is that which evokes and
-educates this feeling.
-
-Beauty is understood almost in the same way by Mendelssohn
-(1729-1786). According to him, art is the carrying forward of the
-beautiful, obscurely recognized by feeling, till it becomes the true
-and good. The aim of art is moral perfection.[46]
-
- [46] Schasler, p. 369.
-
-For the stheticians of this school, the ideal of beauty is a
-beautiful soul in a beautiful body. So that these stheticians
-completely wipe out Baumgarten's division of the Perfect (the
-Absolute), into the three forms of Truth, Goodness, and Beauty; and
-Beauty is again united with the Good and the True.
-
-But this conception is not only not maintained by the later
-stheticians, but the sthetic doctrine of Winckelmann arises, again
-in complete opposition. This divides the mission of art from the aim
-of goodness in the sharpest and most positive manner, makes external
-beauty the aim of art, and even limits it to visible beauty.
-
-According to the celebrated work of Winckelmann (1717-1767), the law
-and aim of all art is beauty only, beauty quite separated from and
-independent of goodness. There are three kinds of beauty: (1) beauty
-of form, (2) beauty of idea, expressing itself in the position of
-the figure (in plastic art), (3) beauty of expression, attainable
-only when the two first conditions are present. This beauty of
-expression is the highest aim of art, and is attained in antique
-art; modern art should therefore aim at imitating ancient art.[47]
-
- [47] Schasler, pp. 388-390.
-
-Art is similarly understood by Lessing, Herder, and afterwards by
-Goethe and by all the distinguished stheticians of Germany till
-Kant, from whose day, again, a different conception of art commences.
-
-Native sthetic theories arose during this period in England,
-France, Italy, and Holland, and they, though not taken from the
-German, were equally cloudy and contradictory. And all these
-writers, just like the German stheticians, founded their theories
-on a conception of the Beautiful, understanding beauty in the sense
-of a something existing absolutely, and more or less intermingled
-with Goodness or having one and the same root. In England, almost
-simultaneously with Baumgarten, even a little earlier, Shaftesbury,
-Hutcheson, Home, Burke, Hogarth, and others, wrote on art.
-
-According to Shaftesbury (1670-1713), "That which is beautiful
-is harmonious and proportionable, what is harmonious and
-proportionable is true, and what is at once both beautiful and true
-is of consequence agreeable and good."[48] Beauty, he taught, is
-recognized by the mind only. God is fundamental beauty; beauty and
-goodness proceed from the same fount.
-
- [48] Knight, "Philosophy of the Beautiful," i., pp. 165, 166.
-
-So that, although Shaftesbury regards beauty as being something
-separate from goodness, they again merge into something inseparable.
-
-According to Hutcheson (1694-1747--"Inquiry into the Original of our
-Ideas of Beauty and Virtue"), the aim of art is beauty, the essence
-of which consists in evoking in us the perception of uniformity amid
-variety. In the recognition of what is art we are guided by "an
-internal sense." This internal sense may be in contradiction to the
-ethical one. So that, according to Hutcheson, beauty does not always
-correspond with goodness, but separates from it and is sometimes
-contrary to it.[49]
-
- [49] Schasler, p. 289. Knight, pp. 168, 169.
-
-According to Home, Lord Kames (1696-1782), beauty is that which is
-pleasant. Therefore beauty is defined by taste alone. The standard
-of true taste is that the maximum of richness, fullness, strength,
-and variety of impression should be contained in the narrowest
-limits. That is the ideal of a perfect work of art.
-
-According to Burke (1729-1797--"Philosophical Inquiry into the
-Origin of our Ideas of the Sublime and Beautiful"), the sublime
-and beautiful, which are the aim of art, have their origin in the
-promptings of self-preservation and of society. These feelings,
-examined in their source, are means for the maintenance of the race
-through the individual. The first (self-preservation) is attained by
-nourishment, defense, and war; the second (society) by intercourse
-and propagation. Therefore self-defense, and war, which is bound
-up with it, is the source of the sublime; sociability, and the
-sex-instinct, which is bound up with it, is the source of beauty.[50]
-
- [50] R. Kralik, "Weltschnheit, Versuch einer allgemeinen sthetik,"
- pp. 304-306.
-
-Such were the chief English definitions of art and beauty in the
-eighteenth century.
-
-During that period, in France, the writers on art were Pre Andr
-and Batteux, with Diderot, D'Alembert, and, to some extent,
-Voltaire, following later.
-
-According to Pre Andr ("Essai sur le Beau," 1741), there are three
-kinds of beauty,--divine beauty, natural beauty, and artificial
-beauty.[51]
-
- [51] Knight, p. 101.
-
-According to Batteux (1713-1780), art consists in imitating the
-beauty of nature, its aim being enjoyment.[52] Such is also
-Diderot's definition of art.
-
- [52] Schasler, p. 316.
-
-The French writers, like the English, consider that it is taste that
-decides what is beautiful. And the laws of taste are not only not
-laid down, but it is granted that they cannot be settled. The same
-view was held by D'Alembert and Voltaire.[53]
-
- [53] Knight, pp. 102-104.
-
-According to the Italian sthetician of that period, Pagano, art
-consists in uniting the beauties dispersed in nature. The capacity
-to perceive these beauties is taste, the capacity to bring them
-into one whole is artistic genius. Beauty commingles with goodness,
-so that beauty is goodness made visible, and goodness is inner
-beauty.[54]
-
- [54] R. Kralik, p. 124.
-
-According to the opinion of other Italians: Muratori
-(1672-1750),--"_Riflessioni sopra il buon gusto intorno le science
-e le arti_,"--and especially Spaletti,[55]--"_Saggio sopra la
-bellezza_" (1765),--art amounts to an egotistical sensation, founded
-(as with Burke) on the desire for self-preservation and society.
-
- [55] Spaletti, Schasler, p. 328.
-
-Among Dutch writers, Hemsterhuis (1720-1790), who had an influence
-on the German stheticians and on Goethe, is remarkable. According
-to him, beauty is that which gives most pleasure, and that gives
-most pleasure which gives us the greatest number of ideas in the
-shortest time. Enjoyment of the beautiful, because it gives the
-greatest quantity of perceptions in the shortest time, is the
-highest notion to which man can attain.[56]
-
- [56] Schasler, pp. 331-333.
-
-Such were the sthetic theories outside Germany during the last
-century. In Germany, after Winckelmann, there again arose a
-completely new sthetic theory, that of Kant (1724-1804), which,
-more than all others, clears up what this conception of beauty, and
-consequently of art, really amounts to.
-
-The sthetic teaching of Kant is founded as follows: Man has a
-knowledge of nature outside him and of himself in nature. In
-nature, outside himself, he seeks for truth; in himself, he seeks
-for goodness. The first is an affair of pure reason, the other of
-practical reason (free will). Besides these two means of perception,
-there is yet the judging capacity (_Urteilskraft_), which forms
-judgments without reasonings and produces pleasure without desire
-(_Urtheil ohne Begriff und Vergngen ohne Begehren_). This capacity
-is the basis of sthetic feeling. Beauty, according to Kant, in
-its subjective meaning is that which, in general and necessarily,
-without reasonings and without practical advantage, pleases. In its
-objective meaning it is the form of a suitable object, in so far as
-that object is perceived without any conception of its utility.[57]
-
- [57] Schasler, pp. 525-528.
-
-Beauty is defined in the same way by the followers of Kant, among
-whom was Schiller (1759-1805). According to Schiller, who wrote much
-on sthetics, the aim of art is, as with Kant, beauty, the source of
-which is pleasure without practical advantage. So that art may be
-called a game, not in the sense of an unimportant occupation, but in
-the sense of a manifestation of the beauties of life itself without
-other aim than that of beauty.[58]
-
- [58] Knight, pp. 61-63.
-
-Besides Schiller, the most remarkable of Kant's followers in the
-sphere of sthetics was Wilhelm Humboldt, who, though he added
-nothing to the definition of beauty, explained various forms of
-it,--the drama, music, the comic, etc.[59]
-
- [59] Schasler, pp. 740-743.
-
-After Kant, besides the second-rate philosophers, the writers on
-sthetics were Fichte, Schelling, Hegel, and their followers.
-Fichte (1762-1814) says that perception of the beautiful proceeds
-from this: the world--_i.e._ nature--has two sides: it is the
-sum of our limitations, and it is the sum of our free idealistic
-activity. In the first aspect the world is limited, in the second
-aspect it is free. In the first aspect every object is limited,
-distorted, compressed, confined--and we see deformity; in the second
-we perceive its inner completeness, vitality, regeneration--and
-we see beauty. So that the deformity or beauty of an object,
-according to Fichte, depends on the point of view of the observer.
-Beauty therefore exists, not in the world, but in the beautiful
-soul (_schner Geist_). Art is the manifestation of this beautiful
-soul, and its aim is the education, not only of the mind--that is
-the business of the _savant_, not only of the heart--that is the
-affair of the moral preacher, but of the whole man. And so the
-characteristic of beauty lies, not in anything external, but in the
-presence of a beautiful soul in the artist.[60]
-
- [60] Schasler, pp, 769-771.
-
-Following Fichte, and in the same direction, Friedrich Schlegel and
-Adam Mller also defined beauty. According to Schlegel (1772-1829),
-beauty in art is understood too incompletely, one-sidedly, and
-disconnectedly. Beauty exists, not only in art, but also in nature
-and in love; so that the truly beautiful is expressed by the union
-of art, nature, and love. Therefore, as inseparably one with
-sthetic art, Schlegel acknowledges moral and philosophic art.[61]
-
- [61] Schasler, pp. 786, 787.
-
-According to Adam Mller (1779-1829), there are two kinds of beauty:
-the one, general beauty, which attracts people as the sun attracts
-the planet--this is found chiefly in antique art; and the other,
-individual beauty, which results from the observer himself becoming
-a sun, attracting beauty--this is the beauty of modern art. A world
-in which all contradictions are harmonized is the highest beauty.
-Every work of art is a reproduction of this universal harmony.[62]
-The highest art is the art of life.[63]
-
- [62] Kralik, p. 148.
-
- [63] Kralik, p. 820.
-
-Next after Fichte and his followers came a contemporary of his, the
-philosopher Schelling (1775-1854), who has had a great influence
-on the sthetic conceptions of our times. According to Schelling's
-philosophy, art is the production or result of that conception of
-things by which the subject becomes its own object, or the object
-its own subject. Beauty is the perception of the infinite in the
-finite. And the chief characteristic of works of art is unconscious
-infinity. Art is the uniting of the subjective with the objective,
-of nature with reason, of the unconscious with the conscious, and
-therefore art is the highest means of knowledge. Beauty is the
-contemplation of things in themselves as they exist in the prototype
-(_In den Urbildern_). It is not the artist who by his knowledge or
-skill produces the beautiful, but the idea of beauty in him itself
-produces it.[64]
-
- [64] Schasler, pp. 828, 829, 834-841.
-
-Of Schelling's followers the most noticeable was Solger
-(1780-1819--"Vorlesungen ber sthetik"). According to him, the idea
-of beauty is the fundamental idea of everything. In the world we see
-only distortions of the fundamental idea, but art, by imagination,
-may lift itself to the height of this idea. Art is therefore akin to
-creation.[65]
-
- [65] Schasler, p. 891.
-
-According to another follower of Schelling, Krause (1781-1832),
-true, positive beauty is the manifestation of the Idea in an
-individual form; art is the actualization of the beauty existing in
-the sphere of man's free spirit. The highest stage of art is the art
-of life, which directs its activity toward the adornment of life so
-that it may be a beautiful abode for a beautiful man.[66]
-
- [66] Schasler, p. 917.
-
-After Schelling and his followers came the new sthetic doctrine
-of Hegel, which is held to this day, consciously by many, but by
-the majority unconsciously. This teaching is not only no clearer or
-better defined than the preceding ones, but is, if possible, even
-more cloudy and mystical.
-
-According to Hegel (1770-1831), God manifests himself in nature
-and in art in the form of beauty. God expresses himself in two
-ways: in the object and in the subject, in nature and in spirit.
-Beauty is the shining of the Idea through matter. Only the soul,
-and what pertains to it, is truly beautiful; and therefore the
-beauty of nature is only the reflection of the natural beauty of
-the spirit--the beautiful has only a spiritual content. But the
-spiritual must appear in sensuous form. The sensuous manifestation
-of spirit is only appearance (_schein_), and this appearance is
-the only reality of the beautiful. Art is thus the production of
-this appearance of the Idea, and is a means, together with religion
-and philosophy, of bringing to consciousness and of expressing the
-deepest problems of humanity and the highest truths of the spirit.
-
-Truth and beauty, according to Hegel, are one and the same thing;
-the difference being only that truth is the Idea itself as it exists
-in itself, and is thinkable. The Idea, manifested externally,
-becomes to the apprehension not only true but beautiful. The
-beautiful is the manifestation of the Idea.[67]
-
- [67] Schasler, pp. 946, 1085, 984, 985, 990.
-
-Following Hegel came his many adherents, Weisse, Arnold Ruge,
-Rosenkrantz, Theodor Vischer, and others.
-
-According to Weisse (1801-1867), art is the introduction
-(_Einbildung_) of the absolute spiritual reality of beauty into
-external, dead, indifferent matter, the perception of which latter,
-apart from the beauty brought into it, presents the negation of all
-existence in itself (_Negation alles Frsichseins_).
-
-In the idea of truth, Weisse explains, lies a contradiction between
-the subjective and the objective sides of knowledge, in that an
-individual _I_ discerns the Universal. This contradiction can be
-removed by a conception that should unite into one the universal and
-the individual, which fall asunder in our conceptions of truth. Such
-a conception would be reconciled (_aufgehoben_) truth. Beauty is
-such a reconciled truth.[68]
-
- [68] Schasler, pp. 966, 655, 956.
-
-According to Ruge (1802-1880), a strict follower of Hegel, beauty is
-the Idea expressing itself. The spirit, contemplating itself, either
-finds itself expressed completely, and then that full expression
-of itself is beauty; or incompletely, and then it feels the need
-to alter this imperfect expression of itself, and becomes creative
-art.[69]
-
- [69] Schasler, p. 1017.
-
-According to Vischer (1807-1887), beauty is the Idea in the form
-of a finite phenomenon. The Idea itself is not indivisible, but
-forms a system of ideas, which may be represented by ascending and
-descending lines. The higher the idea, the more beauty it contains;
-but even the lowest contains beauty, because it forms an essential
-link of the system. The highest form of the Idea is personality, and
-therefore the highest art is that which has for its subject-matter
-the highest personality.[70]
-
- [70] Schasler, pp. 1065, 1066.
-
-Such were the theories of the German stheticians in the Hegelian
-direction, but they did not monopolize sthetic dissertations. In
-Germany, side by side and simultaneously with the Hegelian theories,
-there appeared theories of beauty not only independent of Hegel's
-position (that beauty is the manifestation of the Idea), but
-directly contrary to this view, denying and ridiculing it. Such was
-the line taken by Herbart and, more particularly, by Schopenhauer.
-
-According to Herbart (1776-1841), there is not, and cannot be, any
-such thing as beauty existing in itself. What does exist is only
-our opinion, and it is necessary to find the base of this opinion
-(_sthetisches Elementarurtheil_). Such bases are connected with our
-impressions. There are certain relations which we term beautiful;
-and art consists in finding these relations, which are simultaneous
-in painting, the plastic art, and architecture, successive and
-simultaneous in music, and purely successive in poetry. In
-contradiction to the former stheticians, Herbart holds that objects
-are often beautiful which express nothing at all, as, for instance,
-the rainbow, which is beautiful for its lines and colors, and not
-for its mythological connection with Iris or Noah's rainbow.[71]
-
- [71] Schasler, pp. 1097-1100.
-
-Another opponent of Hegel was Schopenhauer, who denied Hegel's whole
-system, his sthetics included.
-
-According to Schopenhauer (1788-1860), Will objectivizes itself
-in the world on various planes; and although the higher the plane
-on which it is objectivized the more beautiful it is, yet each
-plane has its own beauty. Renunciation of one's individuality and
-contemplation of one of these planes of manifestation of Will gives
-us a perception of beauty. All men, says Schopenhauer, possess the
-capacity to objectivize the Idea on different planes. The genius of
-the artist has this capacity in a higher degree, and therefore makes
-a higher beauty manifest.[72]
-
- [72] Schasler, pp. 1124, 1107.
-
-After these more eminent writers there followed, in Germany, less
-original and less influential ones, such as Hartmann, Kirkmann,
-Schnasse, and, to some extent, Helmholtz (as an sthetician),
-Bergmann, Jungmann, and an innumerable host of others.
-
-According to Hartmann (1842), beauty lies, not in the external
-world, nor in "the thing in itself," neither does it reside in the
-soul of man, but it lies in the "seeming" (_Schein_) produced by the
-artist. The thing in itself is not beautiful, but is transformed
-into beauty by the artist.[73]
-
- [73] Knight, pp. 81, 82.
-
-According to Schnasse (1798-1875), there is no perfect beauty in the
-world. In nature there is only an approach toward it. Art gives what
-nature cannot give. In the energy of the free _ego_, conscious of
-harmony not found in nature, beauty is disclosed.[74]
-
- [74] Knight, p. 83.
-
-Kirkmann wrote on experimental sthetics. All aspects of history
-in his system are joined by pure chance. Thus, according to
-Kirkmann (1802-1884), there are six realms of history: The realm of
-Knowledge, of Wealth, of Morality, of Faith, of Politics, and of
-Beauty; and activity in the last-named realm is art.[75]
-
- [75] Schasler, p. 1121.
-
-According to Helmholtz (1821), who wrote on beauty as it relates to
-music, beauty in musical productions is attained only by following
-unalterable laws. These laws are not known to the artist; so that
-beauty is manifested by the artist unconsciously, and cannot be
-subjected to analysis.[76]
-
- [76] Knight, pp. 85, 86.
-
-According to Bergmann (1840) ("Ueber das Schne," 1887), to
-define beauty objectively is impossible. Beauty is only perceived
-subjectively, and therefore the problem of sthetics is to define
-what pleases whom.[77]
-
- [77] Knight, p. 88.
-
-According to Jungmann (d. 1885), firstly, beauty is a suprasensible
-quality of things; secondly, beauty produces in us pleasure by
-merely being contemplated; and, thirdly, beauty is the foundation of
-love.[78]
-
- [78] Knight, p. 88.
-
-The sthetic theories of the chief representatives of France,
-England, and other nations in recent times have been the following:--
-
-In France, during this period, the prominent writers on sthetics
-were Cousin, Jouffroy, Pictet, Ravaisson, Lvque.
-
-Cousin (1792-1867) was an eclectic, and a follower of the German
-idealists. According to his theory, beauty always has a moral
-foundation. He disputes the doctrine that art is imitation and
-that the beautiful is what pleases. He affirms that beauty may be
-defined objectively, and that it essentially consists in variety in
-unity.[79]
-
- [79] Knight, p. 112.
-
-After Cousin came Jouffroy (1796-1842), who was a pupil of Cousin's
-and also a follower of the German stheticians. According to his
-definition, beauty is the expression of the invisible by those
-natural signs which manifest it. The visible world is the garment by
-means of which we see beauty.[80]
-
- [80] Knight, p. 116.
-
-The Swiss writer Pictet repeated Hegel and Plato, supposing beauty
-to exist in the direct and free manifestation of the divine Idea
-revealing itself in sense forms.[81]
-
- [81] Knight, pp. 118, 119.
-
-Lvque was a follower of Schelling and Hegel. He holds that beauty
-is something invisible behind nature--a force or spirit revealing
-itself in ordered energy.[82]
-
- [82] Knight, pp. 123, 124.
-
-Similar vague opinions about the nature of beauty were expressed by
-the French metaphysician Ravaisson, who considered beauty to be the
-ultimate aim and purpose of the world. "_La beaut la plus divine et
-principalement la plus parfaite contient le secret du monde._"[83]
-And again, "_Le monde entier est l'oeuvre d'une beaut absolue, qui
-n'est la cause des choses que par l'amour qu'elle met en elles._"
-
- [83] "La Philosophie en France," p. 232.
-
-I purposely abstain from translating these metaphysical expressions,
-because, however cloudy the Germans may be, the French, once
-they absorb the theories of the Germans and take to imitating
-them, far surpass them in uniting heterogeneous conceptions
-into one expression, and putting forward one meaning or another
-indiscriminately. For instance, the French philosopher Renouvier,
-when discussing beauty, says, "_Ne craignons pas de dire qu'une
-vrit qui ne serait pas belle, ne serait qu'un jeu logique de notre
-esprit et que la seule vrit solide et digne de ce nom c'est la
-beaut._"[84]
-
- [84] "Du Fondement de l'Induction."
-
-Besides the sthetic idealists who wrote and still write under the
-influence of German philosophy, the following recent writers have
-also influenced the comprehension of art and beauty in France:
-Taine, Guyau, Cherbuliez, Coster, and Vron.
-
-According to Taine (1828-1893), beauty is the manifestation of the
-essential characteristic of any important idea more completely than
-it is expressed in reality.[85]
-
- [85] "Philosophie de l'Art," vol. i., 1893, p. 47.
-
-Guyau (1854-1888) taught that beauty is not something exterior
-to the object itself,--is not, as it were, a parasitic growth on
-it,--but is itself the very blossoming forth of that on which it
-appears. Art is the expression of reasonable and conscious life,
-evoking in us both the deepest consciousness of existence and
-the highest feelings and loftiest thoughts. Art lifts man from
-his personal life into the universal life by means, not only of
-participation in the same ideas and beliefs, but also by means of
-similarity in feeling.[86]
-
- [86] Knight, pp. 139-141.
-
-According to Cherbuliez, art is an activity, (1) satisfying our
-innate love of forms (_apparences_), (2) endowing these forms with
-ideas, (3) affording pleasure alike to our senses, heart, and
-reason. Beauty is not inherent in objects, but is an act of our
-souls. Beauty is an illusion; there is no absolute beauty. But what
-we consider characteristic and harmonious appears beautiful to us.
-
-Coster held that the ideas of the beautiful, the good, and the true
-are innate. These ideas illuminate our minds and are identical with
-God, who is Goodness, Truth, and Beauty. The idea of Beauty includes
-unity of essence, variety of constitutive elements, and order, which
-brings unity into the various manifestations of life.[87]
-
- [87] Knight, p. 134.
-
-For the sake of completeness, I will further cite some of the very
-latest writings upon art.
-
-"La Psychologie du Beau et de l'Art, par Mario Pilo" (1895), says
-that beauty is a product of our physical feelings. The aim of art
-is pleasure, but this pleasure (for some reason) he considers to be
-necessarily highly moral.
-
-The "Essai sur l'Art Contemporain, par Fierens Gevaert" (1897), says
-that art rests on its connection with the past, and on the religious
-ideal of the present which the artist holds when giving to his work
-the form of his individuality.
-
-Then again, Sar Peladan's "L'Art Idealiste et Mystique" (1894),
-says that beauty is one of the manifestations of God. "_Il n'y
-a pas d'autre Ralit que Dieu, il n'y a pas d'autre Vrit que
-Dieu, il n'y a pas d'autre Beaut que Dieu_" (p. 33). This book
-is very fantastic and very illiterate, but is characteristic in
-the positions it takes up, and noticeable on account of a certain
-success it is having with the younger generation in France.
-
-All the sthetics diffused in France up to the present time are
-similar in kind, but among them Vron's "L'Esthtique" (1878) forms
-an exception, being reasonable and clear. That work, though it does
-not give an exact definition of art, at least rids sthetics of the
-cloudy conception of an absolute beauty.
-
-According to Vron (1825-1889), art is the manifestation of emotion
-transmitted externally by a combination of lines, forms, colors, or
-by a succession of movements, sounds, or words subjected to certain
-rhythms.[88]
-
- [88] "L'Esthtique," p. 106.
-
-In England, during this period, the writers on sthetics define
-beauty more and more frequently, not by its own qualities, but by
-taste; and the discussion about beauty is superseded by a discussion
-on taste.
-
-After Reid (1704-1796), who acknowledged beauty as being entirely
-dependent on the spectator, Alison, in his "Essay on the Nature and
-Principles of Taste" (1790), proved the same thing. From another
-side this was also asserted by Erasmus Darwin (1731-1802), the
-grandfather of the celebrated Charles Darwin.
-
-He says that we consider beautiful that which is connected in our
-conception with what we love. Richard Knight's work, "An Analytical
-Inquiry into the Principles of Taste," also tends in the same
-direction.
-
-Most of the English theories of sthetics are on the same lines. The
-prominent writers on sthetics in England during the present century
-have been Charles Darwin (to some extent), Herbert Spencer, Grant
-Allen, Ker, and Knight.
-
-According to Charles Darwin (1809-1882--"Descent of Man," 1871),
-beauty is a feeling natural not only to man, but also to animals,
-and consequently to the ancestors of man. Birds adorn their
-nests and esteem beauty in their mates. Beauty has an influence
-on marriages. Beauty includes a variety of diverse conceptions.
-The origin of the art of music is the call of the males to the
-females.[89]
-
- [89] Knight, p. 238.
-
-According to Herbert Spencer (b. 1820), the origin of art is
-play, a thought previously expressed by Schiller. In the lower
-animals all the energy of life is expended in life-maintenance
-and race-maintenance; in man, however, there remains, after these
-needs are satisfied, some superfluous strength. This excess is
-used in play, which passes over into art. Play is an imitation
-of real activity; so is art. The sources of sthetic pleasure are
-threefold: (1) That "which exercises the faculties affected in the
-most complete ways, with the fewest drawbacks from exercise," (2)
-"the difference of a stimulus in large amount, which awakens a glow
-of agreeable feeling," (3) the partial revival of the same, with
-special combinations.[90]
-
- [90] Knight, pp. 239, 240.
-
-In Todhunter's "Theory of the Beautiful" (1872), beauty is
-infinite loveliness, which we apprehend both by reason and by the
-enthusiasm of love. The recognition of beauty as being such depends
-on taste; there can be no criterion for it. The only approach
-to a definition is found in culture. (What culture is, is not
-defined.) Intrinsically, art--that which affects us through lines,
-colors, sounds, or words--is not the product of blind forces, but
-of reasonable ones, working, with mutual helpfulness toward a
-reasonable aim. Beauty is the reconciliation of contradictions.[91]
-
- [91] Knight, pp. 240-243.
-
-Grant Allen is a follower of Spencer, and in his "Physiological
-sthetics" (1877) he says that beauty has a physical origin.
-sthetic pleasures come from the contemplation of the beautiful, but
-the conception of beauty is obtained by a physiological process.
-The origin of art is play; when there is a superfluity of physical
-strength man gives himself to play; when there is a superfluity
-of receptive power man gives himself to art. The beautiful is
-that which affords the maximum of stimulation with the minimum of
-waste. Differences in the estimation of beauty proceed from taste.
-Taste can be educated. We must have faith in the judgments "of the
-finest-nurtured and most discriminative" men. These people form the
-taste of the next generation.[92]
-
- [92] Knight, pp. 250-252.
-
-According to Ker's "Essay on the Philosophy of Art" (1883), beauty
-enables us to make part of the objective world intelligible to
-ourselves without being troubled by reference to other parts
-of it, as is inevitable for science. So that art destroys the
-opposition between the one and the many, between the law and its
-manifestation, between the subject and its object, by uniting them.
-Art is the revelation and vindication of freedom, because it is free
-from the darkness and incomprehensibility of finite things.[93]
-
- [93] Knight, pp. 258, 259.
-
-According to Knight's "Philosophy of the Beautiful," Part II.
-(1893), beauty is (as with Schelling) the union of object and
-subject, the drawing forth from nature of that which is cognate to
-man, and the recognition in oneself of that which is common to all
-nature.
-
-The opinions on beauty and on art here mentioned are far from
-exhausting what has been written on the subject. And every day fresh
-writers on sthetics arise, in whose disquisitions appear the same
-enchanted confusion and contradictoriness in defining beauty. Some,
-by inertia, continue the mystical sthetics of Baumgarten and Hegel
-with sundry variations; others transfer the question to the region
-of subjectivity, and seek for the foundation of the beautiful in
-questions of taste; others--the stheticians of the very latest
-formation--seek the origin of beauty in the laws of physiology; and
-finally, others again investigate the question quite independently
-of the conception of beauty. Thus Sully, in his "Sensation and
-Intuition: Studies in Psychology and sthetics" (1874), dismisses
-the conception of beauty altogether, art, by his definition, being
-the production of some permanent object or passing action fitted
-to supply active enjoyment to the producer, and a pleasurable
-impression to a number of spectators or listeners, quite apart from
-any personal advantage derived from it.[94]
-
- [94] Knight, p. 243.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV
-
-
-To what do these definitions of beauty amount? Not reckoning the
-thoroughly inaccurate definitions of beauty which fail to cover
-the conception of art, and which suppose beauty to consist either
-in utility, or in adjustment to a purpose, or in symmetry, or in
-order, or in proportion, or in smoothness, or in harmony of the
-parts, or in unity amid variety, or in various combinations of
-these--not reckoning these unsatisfactory attempts at objective
-definition, all the sthetic definitions of beauty lead to two
-fundamental conceptions. The first is that beauty is something
-having an independent existence (existing in itself), that it is one
-of the manifestations of the absolutely Perfect, of the Idea, of
-the Spirit, of Will, or of God; the other is that beauty is a kind
-of pleasure received by us, not having personal advantage for its
-object.
-
-The first of these definitions was accepted by Fichte, Schelling,
-Hegel, Schopenhauer, and the philosophizing Frenchmen, Cousin,
-Jouffroy, Ravaisson, and others, not to enumerate the second-rate
-sthetic philosophers. And this same objective-mystical definition
-of beauty is held by a majority of the educated people of our day.
-It is a conception very widely spread, especially among the elder
-generation.
-
-The second view, that beauty is a certain kind of pleasure received
-by us, not having personal advantage for its aim, finds favor
-chiefly among the English sthetic writers, and is shared by the
-other part of our society, principally by the younger generation.
-
-So there are (and it could not be otherwise) only two definitions
-of beauty: the one objective, mystical, merging this conception
-into that of the highest perfection, God--a fantastic definition,
-founded on nothing; the other, on the contrary, a very simple and
-intelligible subjective one, which considers beauty to be that which
-pleases (I do not add to the word "pleases" the words "without the
-aim of advantage," because "pleases" naturally presupposes the
-absence of the idea of profit).
-
-On the one hand, beauty is viewed as something mystical and very
-elevated, but unfortunately at the same time very indefinite, and
-consequently embracing philosophy, religion, and life itself (as in
-the theories of Schelling and Hegel, and their German and French
-followers); or, on the other hand (as necessarily follows from the
-definition of Kant and his adherents), beauty is simply a certain
-kind of disinterested pleasure received by us. And this conception
-of beauty, although it seems very clear is, unfortunately, again
-inexact; for it widens out on the other side, _i.e._ it includes the
-pleasure derived from drink, from food, from touching a delicate
-skin, etc., as is acknowledged by Guyau, Kralik, and others.
-
-It is true that, following the development of the sthetic doctrines
-on beauty, we may notice that, though at first (in the times when
-the foundations of the science of sthetics were being laid) the
-metaphysical definition of beauty prevailed, yet the nearer we get
-to our own times the more does an experimental definition (recently
-assuming a physiological form) come to the front, so that at last
-we even meet with such stheticians as Vron and Sully, who try to
-escape entirely from the conception of beauty. But such stheticians
-have very little success, and with the majority of the public, as
-well as of artists and the learned, a conception of beauty is firmly
-held which agrees with the definitions contained in most of the
-sthetic treatises, _i.e._ which regards beauty either as something
-mystical or metaphysical, or as a special kind of enjoyment.
-
-What, then, is this conception of beauty, so stubbornly held to by
-people of our circle and day as furnishing a definition of art?
-
-In the subjective aspect, we call beauty that which supplies us with
-a particular kind of pleasure.
-
-In the objective aspect, we call beauty something absolutely
-perfect, and we acknowledge it to be so only because we receive,
-from the manifestation of this absolute perfection, a certain kind
-of pleasure; so that this objective definition is nothing but
-the subjective conception differently expressed. In reality both
-conceptions of beauty amount to one and the same thing; namely,
-the reception by us of a certain kind of pleasure; _i.e._ we call
-"beauty" that which pleases us without evoking in us desire.
-
-Such being the position of affairs, it would seem only natural
-that the science of art should decline to content itself with a
-definition of art based on beauty (_i.e._ on that which pleases),
-and seek a general definition, which should apply to all artistic
-productions, and by reference to which we might decide whether a
-certain article belonged to the realm of art or not. But no such
-definition is supplied, as the reader may see from those summaries
-of the sthetic theories which I have given, and as he may discover
-even more clearly from the original sthetic works, if he will be
-at the pains to read them. All attempts to define absolute beauty
-in itself--whether as an imitation of nature, or as suitability to
-its object, or as a correspondence of parts, or as symmetry, or as
-harmony, or as unity in variety, etc.--either define nothing at all,
-or define only some traits of some artistic productions, and are far
-from including all that everybody has always held, and still holds,
-to be art.
-
-There is no objective definition of beauty. The existing definitions
-(both the metaphysical and the experimental) amount only to one and
-the same subjective definition, which (strange as it seems to say
-so) is, that art is that which makes beauty manifest, and beauty
-is that which pleases (without exciting desire). Many stheticians
-have felt the insufficiency and instability of such a definition,
-and, in order to give it a firm basis, have asked themselves why
-a thing pleases. And they have converted the discussion on beauty
-into a question concerning taste, as did Hutcheson, Voltaire,
-Diderot, and others. But all attempts to define what taste is must
-lead to nothing, as the reader may see both from the history of
-sthetics and experimentally. There is and can be no explanation
-of why one thing pleases one man and displeases another, or _vice
-versa_. So that the whole existing science of sthetics fails to
-do what we might expect from it, being a mental activity calling
-itself a science; namely, it does not define the qualities and laws
-of art, or of the beautiful (if that be the content of art), or
-the nature of taste (if taste decides the question of art and its
-merit), and then, on the basis of such definitions, acknowledge as
-art those productions which correspond to these laws, and reject
-those which do not come under them. But this science of sthetics
-consists in first acknowledging a certain set of productions to be
-art (because they please us), and then framing such a theory of art
-that all those productions which please a certain circle of people
-should fit into it. There exists an art canon, according to which
-certain productions favored by our circle are acknowledged as being
-art,--Phidias, Sophocles, Homer, Titian, Raphael, Bach, Beethoven,
-Dante, Shakespear, Goethe, and others,--and the sthetic laws must
-be such as to embrace all these productions. In sthetic literature
-you will incessantly meet with opinions on the merit and importance
-of art, founded not on any certain laws by which this or that is
-held to be good or bad, but merely on the consideration whether this
-art tallies with the art canon we have drawn up.
-
-The other day I was reading a far from ill-written book by Folgeldt.
-Discussing the demand for morality in works of art, the author
-plainly says that we must not demand morality in art. And in proof
-of this he advances the fact that if we admit such a demand,
-Shakespear's "Romeo and Juliet," and Goethe's "Wilhelm Meister,"
-would not fit into the definition of good art; but since both these
-books are included in our canon of art, he concludes that the demand
-is unjust. And therefore it is necessary to find a definition of art
-which shall fit the works; and instead of a demand for morality,
-Folgeldt postulates as the basis of art a demand for the important
-(_Bedeutungsvolles_).
-
-All the existing sthetic standards are built on this plan. Instead
-of giving a definition of true art, and then deciding what is and
-what is not good art by judging whether a work conforms or does
-not conform to the definition, a certain class of works, which
-for some reason please a certain circle of people, is accepted as
-being art, and a definition of art is then devised to cover all
-these productions. I recently came upon a remarkable instance of
-this method in a very good German work, "The History of Art in the
-Nineteenth Century," by Muther. Describing the pre-Raphaelites, the
-Decadents and the Symbolists (who are already included in the canon
-of art), he not only does not venture to blame their tendency, but
-earnestly endeavors to widen his standard so that it may include
-them all, they appearing to him to represent a legitimate reaction
-from the excesses of realism. No matter what insanities appear in
-art, when once they find acceptance among the upper classes of our
-society, a theory is quickly invented to explain and sanction them;
-just as if there had never been periods in history when certain
-special circles of people recognized and approved false, deformed,
-and insensate art which subsequently left no trace and has been
-utterly forgotten. And to what lengths the insanity and deformity
-of art may go, especially when, as in our days, it knows that it is
-considered infallible, may be seen by what is being done in the art
-of our circle to-day.
-
-So that the theory of art, founded on beauty, expounded by
-sthetics, and, in dim outline, professed by the public, is nothing
-but the setting up as good of that which has pleased and pleases us,
-_i.e._ pleases a certain class of people.
-
-In order to define any human activity, it is necessary to understand
-its sense and importance. And, in order to do that, it is primarily
-necessary to examine that activity in itself, in its dependence on
-its causes, and in connection with its effects, and not merely in
-relation to the pleasure we can get from it.
-
-If we say that the aim of any activity is merely our pleasure, and
-define it solely by that pleasure, our definition will evidently be
-a false one. But this is precisely what has occurred in the efforts
-to define art. Now, if we consider the food question, it will not
-occur to anyone to affirm that the importance of food consists
-in the pleasure we receive when eating it. Every one understands
-that the satisfaction of our taste cannot serve as a basis for our
-definition of the merits of food, and that we have therefore no
-right to presuppose that the dinners with cayenne pepper, Limburg
-cheese, alcohol, etc., to which we are accustomed and which please
-us, form the very best human food.
-
-And in the same way, beauty, or that which pleases us, can in no
-sense serve as the basis for the definition of art; nor can a series
-of objects which afford us pleasure serve as the model of what art
-should be.
-
-To see the aim and purpose of art in the pleasure we get from it, is
-like assuming (as is done by people of the lowest moral development,
-_e.g._ by savages) that the purpose and aim of food is the pleasure
-derived when consuming it.
-
-Just as people who conceive the aim and purpose of food to be
-pleasure cannot recognize the real meaning of eating, so people
-who consider the aim of art to be pleasure cannot realize its true
-meaning and purpose, because they attribute to an activity, the
-meaning of which lies in its connection with other phenomena of
-life, the false and exceptional aim of pleasure. People come to
-understand that the meaning of eating lies in the nourishment of
-the body only when they cease to consider that the object of that
-activity is pleasure. And it is the same with regard to art. People
-will come to understand the meaning of art only when they cease to
-consider that the aim of that activity is beauty, _i.e._ pleasure.
-The acknowledgment of beauty (_i.e._ of a certain kind of pleasure
-received from art) as being the aim of art, not only fails to assist
-us in finding a definition of what art is, but, on the contrary, by
-transferring the question into a region quite foreign to art (into
-metaphysical, psychological, physiological, and even historical
-discussions as to why such a production pleases one person, and
-such another displeases or pleases some one else), it renders such
-definition impossible. And since discussions as to why one man
-likes pears and another prefers meat do not help toward finding a
-definition of what is essential in nourishment, so the solution
-of questions of taste in art (to which the discussions on art
-involuntarily come), not only does not help to make clear what this
-particular human activity which we call art really consists in, but
-renders such elucidation quite impossible, until we rid ourselves
-of a conception which justifies every kind of art, at the cost of
-confusing the whole matter.
-
-To the question, What is this art, to which is offered up the labor
-of millions, the very lives of men, and even morality itself? we
-have extracted replies from the existing sthetics, which all amount
-to this that the aim of art is beauty, that beauty is recognized
-by the enjoyment it gives, and that artistic enjoyment is a good
-and important thing, because it _is_ enjoyment. In a word, that
-enjoyment is good because it is enjoyment. Thus, what is considered
-the definition of art is no definition at all, but only a shuffle
-to justify existing art. Therefore, however strange it may seem to
-say so, in spite of the mountains of books written about art, no
-exact definition of art has been constructed. And the reason of this
-is that the conception of art has been based on the conception of
-beauty.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V
-
-
-What is art, if we put aside the conception of beauty, which
-confuses the whole matter? The latest and most comprehensible
-definitions of art, apart from the conception of beauty, are the
-following: (1 _a_) Art is an activity arising even in the animal
-kingdom, and springing from sexual desire and the propensity to
-play (Schiller, Darwin, Spencer), and (1 _b_) accompanied by a
-pleasurable excitement of the nervous system (Grant Allen). This is
-the physiological-evolutionary definition. (2) Art is the external
-manifestation, by means of lines, colors, movements, sounds, or
-words, of emotions felt by man (Vron). This is the experimental
-definition. According to the very latest definition (Sully), (3) Art
-is "the production of some permanent object or passing action, which
-is fitted, not only to supply an active enjoyment to the producer,
-but to convey a pleasurable impression to a number of spectators or
-listeners, quite apart from any personal advantage to be derived
-from it."
-
-Notwithstanding the superiority of these definitions to the
-metaphysical definitions which depended on the conception of
-beauty, they are yet far from exact. (1 _a_) The first, the
-physiological-evolutionary definition, is inexact, because, instead
-of speaking about the artistic activity itself, which is the real
-matter in hand, it treats of the derivation of art. The modification
-of it (1 _b_), based on the physiological effects on the human
-organism, is inexact, because within the limits of such definition
-many other human activities can be included, as has occurred in
-the neo-sthetic theories, which reckon as art the preparation of
-handsome clothes, pleasant scents, and even of victuals.
-
-The experimental definition (2), which makes art consist in the
-expression of emotions, is inexact, because a man may express his
-emotions by means of lines, colors, sounds, or words, and yet may
-not act on others by such expression; and then the manifestation of
-his emotions is not art.
-
-The third definition (that of Sully) is inexact, because in the
-production of objects or actions affording pleasure to the producer
-and a pleasant emotion to the spectators or hearers apart from
-personal advantage may be included the showing of conjuring tricks
-or gymnastic exercises, and other activities which are not art.
-And, further, many things, the production of which does not afford
-pleasure to the producer, and the sensation received from which
-is unpleasant, such as gloomy, heartrending scenes in a poetic
-description or a play, may nevertheless be undoubted works of art.
-
-The inaccuracy of all these definitions arises from the fact that
-in them all (as also in the metaphysical definitions) the object
-considered is the pleasure art may give, and not the purpose it may
-serve in the life of man and of humanity.
-
-In order correctly to define art, it is necessary, first of all,
-to cease to consider it as a means to pleasure, and to consider it
-as one of the conditions of human life. Viewing it in this way, we
-cannot fail to observe that art is one of the means of intercourse
-between man and man.
-
-Every work of art causes the receiver to enter into a certain
-kind of relationship both with him who produced, or is producing,
-the art, and with all those who, simultaneously, previously, or
-subsequently, receive the same artistic impression.
-
-Speech, transmitting the thoughts and experiences of men, serves as
-a means of union among them, and art acts in a similar manner. The
-peculiarity of this latter means of intercourse, distinguishing it
-from intercourse by means of words, consists in this, that whereas
-by words a man transmits his thoughts to another, by means of art he
-transmits his feelings.
-
-The activity of art is based on the fact that a man, receiving
-through his sense of hearing or sight another man's expression
-of feeling, is capable of experiencing the emotion which moved
-the man who expressed it. To take the simplest example: one man
-laughs, and another, who hears, becomes merry; or a man weeps, and
-another, who hears, feels sorrow. A man is excited or irritated, and
-another man, seeing him, comes to a similar state of mind. By his
-movements, or by the sounds of his voice, a man expresses courage
-and determination, or sadness and calmness, and this state of mind
-passes on to others. A man suffers, expressing his sufferings by
-groans and spasms, and this suffering transmits itself to other
-people; a man expresses his feeling of admiration, devotion, fear,
-respect, or love to certain objects, persons, or phenomena, and
-others are infected by the same feelings of admiration, devotion,
-fear, respect, or love to the same objects, persons, and phenomena.
-
-And it is on this capacity of man to receive another man's
-expression of feeling, and experience those feelings himself, that
-the activity of art is based.
-
-If a man infects another or others, directly, immediately, by his
-appearance, or by the sounds he gives vent to at the very time he
-experiences the feeling; if he causes another man to yawn when he
-himself cannot help yawning, or to laugh or cry when he himself
-is obliged to laugh or cry, or to suffer when he himself is
-suffering--that does not amount to art.
-
-Art begins when one person, with the object of joining another
-or others to himself in one and the same feeling, expresses that
-feeling by certain external indications. To take the simplest
-example: a boy, having experienced, let us say, fear on encountering
-a wolf, relates that encounter; and, in order to evoke in others
-the feeling he has experienced, describes himself, his condition
-before the encounter, the surroundings, the wood, his own
-light-heartedness, and then the wolf's appearance, its movements,
-the distance between himself and the wolf, etc. All this, if only
-the boy, when telling the story, again experiences the feelings he
-had lived through and infects the hearers and compels them to feel
-what the narrator had experienced, is art. If even the boy had not
-seen a wolf but had frequently been afraid of one, and if, wishing
-to evoke in others the fear he had felt, he invented an encounter
-with a wolf, and recounted it so as to make his hearers share the
-feelings he experienced when he feared the wolf, that also would be
-art. And just in the same way it is art if a man, having experienced
-either the fear of suffering or the attraction of enjoyment (whether
-in reality or in imagination), expresses these feelings on canvas or
-in marble so that others are infected by them. And it is also art if
-a man feels or imagines to himself feelings of delight, gladness,
-sorrow, despair, courage, or despondency, and the transition from
-one to another of these feelings, and expresses these feelings by
-sounds, so that the hearers are infected by them, and experience
-them as they were experienced by the composer.
-
-The feelings with which the artist infects others may be most
-various,--very strong or very weak, very important or very
-insignificant, very bad or very good: feelings of love for native
-land, self-devotion and submission to fate or to God expressed
-in a drama, raptures of lovers described in a novel, feelings of
-voluptuousness expressed in a picture, courage expressed in a
-triumphal march, merriment evoked by a dance, humor evoked by a
-funny story, the feeling of quietness transmitted by an evening
-landscape or by a lullaby, or the feeling of admiration evoked by a
-beautiful arabesque--it is all art.
-
-If only the spectators or auditors are infected by the feelings
-which the author has felt, it is art.
-
-_To evoke in oneself a feeling one has once experienced, and having
-evoked it in oneself, then, by means of movements, lines, colors,
-sounds, or forms expressed in words, so to transmit that feeling
-that others may experience the same feeling--this is the activity of
-art._
-
-_Art is a human activity, consisting in this, that one man
-consciously, by means of certain external signs, hands on to others
-feelings he has lived through, and that other people are infected by
-these feelings, and also experience them._
-
-Art is not, as the metaphysicians say, the manifestation of some
-mysterious Idea of beauty, or God; it is not, as the sthetical
-physiologists say, a game in which man lets off his excess of
-stored-up energy; it is not the expression of man's emotions by
-external signs; it is not the production of pleasing objects; and,
-above all, it is not pleasure; but it is a means of union among
-men, joining them together in the same feelings, and indispensable
-for the life and progress toward well-being of individuals and of
-humanity.
-
-As, thanks to man's capacity to express thoughts by words, every man
-may know all that has been done for him in the realms of thought by
-all humanity before his day, and can, in the present, thanks to this
-capacity to understand the thoughts of others, become a sharer in
-their activity, and can himself hand on to his contemporaries and
-descendants the thoughts he has assimilated from others, as well as
-those which have arisen within himself; so, thanks to man's capacity
-to be infected with the feelings of others by means of art, all that
-is being lived through by his contemporaries is accessible to him,
-as well as the feelings experienced by men thousands of years ago,
-and he has also the possibility of transmitting his own feelings to
-others.
-
-If people lacked this capacity to receive the thoughts conceived
-by the men who preceded them, and to pass on to others their own
-thoughts, men would be like wild beasts, or like Kaspar Hauser.[95]
-
- [95] "The foundling of Nuremberg," found in the market-place of
- that town on 26th May, 1828, apparently some sixteen years old.
- He spoke little, and was almost totally ignorant even of common
- objects. He subsequently explained that he had been brought up in
- confinement underground, and visited by only one man, whom he saw
- but seldom.--TR.
-
-And if men lacked this other capacity of being infected by art,
-people might be almost more savage still, and, above all, more
-separated from, and more hostile to, one another.
-
-And therefore the activity of art is a most important one, as
-important as the activity of speech itself, and as generally
-diffused.
-
-We are accustomed to understand art to be only what we hear and see
-in theaters, concerts, and exhibitions; together with buildings,
-statues, poems, novels.... But all this is but the smallest part of
-the art by which we communicate with each other in life. All human
-life is filled with works of art of every kind,--from cradle-song,
-jest, mimicry, the ornamentation of houses, dress, and utensils, up
-to church services, buildings, monuments, and triumphal processions.
-It is all artistic activity. So that by art, in the limited sense of
-the word, we do not mean all human activity transmitting feelings,
-but only that part which we for some reason select from it and to
-which we attach special importance.
-
-This special importance has always been given by all men to that
-part of this activity which transmits feelings flowing from
-their religious perception, and this small part of art they have
-specifically called art, attaching to it the full meaning of the
-word.
-
-That was how men of old--Socrates, Plato, and Aristotle--looked on
-art. Thus did the Hebrew prophets and the ancient Christians regard
-art; thus it was, and still is, understood by the Mahommedans,
-and thus is it still understood by religious folk among our own
-peasantry.
-
-Some teachers of mankind--as Plato in his "Republic," and people
-such as the primitive Christians, the strict Mahommedans, and the
-Buddhists--have gone so far as to repudiate all art.
-
-People viewing art in this way (in contradiction to the prevalent
-view of to-day, which regards any art as good if only it affords
-pleasure) considered, and consider, that art (as contrasted with
-speech, which need not be listened to) is so highly dangerous in its
-power to infect people against their wills, that mankind will lose
-far less by banishing all art than by tolerating each and every art.
-
-Evidently such people were wrong in repudiating all art, for they
-denied that which cannot be denied,--one of the indispensable means
-of communication, without which mankind could not exist. But not
-less wrong are the people of civilized European society of our class
-and day, in favoring any art if it but serves beauty, _i.e._ gives
-people pleasure.
-
-Formerly, people feared lest among the works of art there might
-chance to be some causing corruption, and they prohibited art
-altogether. Now, they only fear lest they should be deprived of any
-enjoyment art can afford, and patronize any art. And I think the
-last error is much grosser than the first, and that its consequences
-are far more harmful.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI
-
-
-But how could it happen that that very art, which in ancient times
-was merely tolerated (if tolerated at all), should have come, in our
-times, to be invariably considered a good thing if only it affords
-pleasure?
-
-It has resulted from the following causes. The estimation of the
-value of art (_i.e._ of the feelings it transmits) depends on men's
-perception of the meaning of life; depends on what they consider to
-be the good and the evil of life. And what is good and what is evil
-is defined by what are termed religions.
-
-Humanity unceasingly moves forward from a lower, more partial, and
-obscure understanding of life, to one more general and more lucid.
-And in this, as in every movement, there are leaders,--those who
-have understood the meaning of life more clearly than others,--and
-of these advanced men there is always one who has, in his words and
-by his life, expressed this meaning more clearly, accessibly, and
-strongly than others. This man's expression of the meaning of life,
-together with those superstitions, traditions, and ceremonies which
-usually form themselves round the memory of such a man, is what
-is called a religion. Religions are the exponents of the highest
-comprehension of life accessible to the best and foremost men at
-a given time in a given society; a comprehension toward which,
-inevitably and irresistibly, all the rest of that society must
-advance. And therefore only religions have always served, and still
-serve, as bases for the valuation of human sentiments. If feelings
-bring men nearer the ideal their religion indicates, if they are in
-harmony with it and do not contradict it, they are good; if they
-estrange men from it and oppose it, they are bad.
-
-If the religion places the meaning of life in worshiping one God
-and fulfilling what is regarded as His will, as was the case among
-the Jews, then the feelings flowing from love to that God, and
-to His law, successfully transmitted through the art of poetry
-by the prophets, by the psalms, or by the epic of the book of
-Genesis, is good, high art. All opposing that, as, for instance,
-the transmission of feelings of devotion to strange gods, or of
-feelings incompatible with the law of God, would be considered bad
-art. Or if, as was the case among the Greeks, the religion places
-the meaning of life in earthly happiness, in beauty and in strength,
-then art successfully transmitting the joy and energy of life
-would be considered good art, but art which transmitted feelings
-of effeminacy or despondency would be bad art. If the meaning of
-life is seen in the well-being of one's nation, or in honoring
-one's ancestors and continuing the mode of life led by them, as
-was the case among the Romans and the Chinese respectively, then
-art transmitting feelings of joy at sacrificing one's personal
-well-being for the common weal, or at exalting one's ancestors and
-maintaining their traditions, would be considered good art, but
-art expressing feelings contrary to this would be regarded as bad.
-If the meaning of life is seen in freeing oneself from the yoke of
-animalism, as is the case among the Buddhists, then art successfully
-transmitting feelings that elevate the soul and humble the flesh
-will be good art, and all that transmits feelings strengthening the
-bodily passions will be bad art.
-
-In every age, and in every human society, there exists a religious
-sense, common to that whole society, of what is good and what is
-bad, and it is this religious conception that decides the value of
-the feelings transmitted by art. And therefore, among all nations,
-art which transmitted feelings considered to be good by this general
-religious sense was recognized as being good and was encouraged;
-but art which transmitted feelings considered to be bad by this
-general religious conception, was recognized as being bad, and was
-rejected. All the rest of the immense field of art by means of which
-people communicate one with another, was not esteemed at all, and
-was only noticed when it ran counter to the religious conception of
-its age, and then merely to be repudiated. Thus it was among all
-nations,--Greeks, Jews, Indians, Egyptians, and Chinese,--and so it
-was when Christianity appeared.
-
-The Christianity of the first centuries recognized as productions
-of good art only legends, lives of saints, sermons, prayers, and
-hymn-singing, evoking love of Christ, emotion at His life, desire to
-follow His example, renunciation of worldly life, humility, and the
-love of others; all productions transmitting feelings of personal
-enjoyment they considered to be bad, and therefore rejected: for
-instance, tolerating plastic representations only when they were
-symbolical, they rejected all the pagan sculptures.
-
-This was so among the Christians of the first centuries, who
-accepted Christ's teaching, if not quite in its true form, at least
-not in the perverted, paganized form in which it was accepted
-subsequently.
-
-But besides this Christianity, from the time of the wholesale
-conversion of nations by order of the authorities, as in the days of
-Constantine, Charlemagne, and Vladimir, there appeared another, a
-Church Christianity, which was nearer to paganism than to Christ's
-teaching. And this Church Christianity, in accordance with its own
-teaching, estimated quite otherwise the feelings of people and the
-productions of art which transmitted those feelings.
-
-This Church Christianity not only did not acknowledge the
-fundamental and essential positions of true Christianity,--the
-immediate relationship of each man to the Father, the consequent
-brotherhood and equality of all men, and the substitution of
-humility and love in place of every kind of violence,--but, on the
-contrary, having set up a heavenly hierarchy similar to the pagan
-mythology, and having introduced the worship of Christ, of the
-Virgin, of angels, of apostles, of saints, and of martyrs, and not
-only of these divinities themselves, but also of their images, it
-made blind faith in the Church and its ordinances the essential
-point of its teaching.
-
-However foreign this teaching may have been to true Christianity;
-however degraded, not only in comparison with true Christianity,
-but even with the life-conception of Romans such as Julian and
-others,--it was, for all that, to the barbarians who accepted it,
-a higher doctrine than their former adoration of gods, heroes, and
-good and bad spirits. And therefore this teaching was a religion
-to them, and on the basis of that religion the art of the time
-was assessed. And art transmitting pious adoration of the Virgin,
-Jesus, the saints and the angels, a blind faith in and submission
-to the Church, fear of torments and hope of blessedness in a life
-beyond the grave, was considered good; all art opposed to this was
-considered bad.
-
-The teaching on the basis of which this art arose was a perversion
-of Christ's teaching, but the art which sprang up on this perverted
-teaching was nevertheless a true art, because it corresponded to the
-religious view of life held by the people among whom it arose.
-
-The artists of the Middle Ages, vitalized by the same source of
-feeling--religion--as the mass of the people, and transmitting,
-in architecture, sculpture, painting, music, poetry or drama, the
-feelings and states of mind they experienced, were true artists;
-and their activity, founded on the highest conceptions accessible
-to their age and common to the entire people, though, for our times
-a mean art, was, nevertheless a true one, shared by the whole
-community.
-
-And this was the state of things until, in the upper, rich, more
-educated classes of European society, doubt arose as to the truth
-of that understanding of life which was expressed by Church
-Christianity. When, after the Crusades and the maximum development
-of papal power and its abuses, people of the rich classes became
-acquainted with the wisdom of the classics, and saw, on the one
-hand, the reasonable lucidity of the teaching of the ancient sages,
-and, on the other hand, the incompatibility of the Church doctrine
-with the teaching of Christ, they lost all possibility of continuing
-to believe the Church teaching.
-
-If, in externals, they still kept to the forms of Church teaching,
-they could no longer believe in it, and held to it only by inertia
-and for the sake of influencing the masses, who continued to believe
-blindly in Church doctrine, and whom the upper classes, for their
-own advantage, considered it necessary to support in those beliefs.
-
-So that a time came when Church Christianity ceased to be the
-general religious doctrine of all Christian people; some--the
-masses--continued blindly to believe in it, but the upper
-classes--those in whose hands lay the power and wealth, and
-therefore the leisure to produce art and the means to stimulate
-it--ceased to believe in that teaching.
-
-In respect to religion, the upper circles of the Middle Ages found
-themselves in the same position in which the educated Romans were
-before Christianity arose, _i.e._ they no longer believed in the
-religion of the masses, but had no beliefs to put in place of the
-worn-out Church doctrine which for them had lost its meaning.
-
-There was only this difference: that whereas for the Romans,
-who lost faith in their emperor-gods and household-gods, it was
-impossible to extract anything further from all the complex
-mythology they had borrowed from all the conquered nations, and it
-was consequently necessary to find a completely new conception of
-life, the people of the Middle Ages, when they doubted the truth of
-the Church teaching, had no need to seek a fresh one. That Christian
-teaching which they professed in a perverted form as Church doctrine
-had mapped out the path of human progress so far ahead that they
-had but to rid themselves of those perversions which hid the
-teaching announced by Christ, and to adopt its real meaning--if not
-completely, then at least in some greater degree than that in which
-the Church had held it. And this was partially done, not only in the
-reformations of Wyclif, Huss, Luther, and Calvin, but by all that
-current of non-Church Christianity represented in earlier times by
-the Paulicians, the Bogomili,[96] and, afterward, by the Waldenses
-and the other non-Church Christians who were called heretics. But
-this could be, and was, done chiefly by poor people--who did not
-rule. A few of the rich and strong, like Francis of Assisi and
-others, accepted the Christian teaching in its full significance,
-even though it undermined their privileged positions. But most
-people of the upper classes (though in the depth of their souls
-they had lost faith in the Church teaching) could not or would not
-act thus, because the essence of that Christian view of life, which
-stood ready to be adopted when once they rejected the Church faith,
-was a teaching of the brotherhood (and therefore the equality) of
-man, and this negatived those privileges on which they lived, in
-which they had grown up and been educated, and to which they were
-accustomed. Not, in the depth of their hearts, believing in the
-Church teaching,--which had outlived its age and had no longer any
-true meaning for them,--and not being strong enough to accept true
-Christianity, men of these rich, governing classes--popes, kings,
-dukes, and all the great ones of the earth--were left without any
-religion, with but the external forms of one, which they supported
-as being profitable and even necessary for themselves, since these
-forms screened a teaching which justified those privileges which
-they made use of. In reality, these people believed in nothing, just
-as the Romans of the first centuries of our era believed in nothing.
-But at the same time these were the people who had the power and the
-wealth, and these were the people who rewarded art and directed it.
-
- [96] Eastern sects well known in early Church history, who rejected
- the Church's rendering of Christ's teaching, and were cruelly
- persecuted.--TR.
-
-And, let it be noticed, it was just among these people that there
-grew up an art esteemed, not according to its success in expressing
-men's religious feelings, but in proportion to its beauty,--in other
-words, according to the enjoyment it gave.
-
-No longer able to believe in the Church religion, whose falsehood
-they had detected, and incapable of accepting true Christian
-teaching, which denounced their whole manner of life, these rich and
-powerful people, stranded without any religious conception of life,
-involuntarily returned to that pagan view of things which places
-life's meaning in personal enjoyment. And then took place among the
-upper classes what is called the "Renaissance of science and art,"
-and which was really not only a denial of every religion, but also
-an assertion that religion is unnecessary.
-
-The Church doctrine is so coherent a system that it cannot be
-altered or corrected without destroying it altogether. As soon
-as doubt arose with regard to the infallibility of the Pope (and
-this doubt was then in the minds of all educated people), doubt
-inevitably followed as to the truth of tradition. But doubt as to
-the truth of tradition is fatal not only to popery and Catholicism,
-but also to the whole Church creed, with all its dogmas: the
-divinity of Christ, the resurrection, and the Trinity; and it
-destroys the authority of the Scriptures, since they were considered
-to be inspired only because the tradition of the Church decided it
-so.
-
-So that the majority of the highest classes of that age, even the
-popes and the ecclesiastics, really believed in nothing at all.
-In the Church doctrine these people did not believe, for they saw
-its insolvency; but neither could they follow Francis of Assisi,
-Keltchitsky,[97] and most of the heretics, in acknowledging the
-moral, social teaching of Christ, for that teaching undermined their
-social position. And so these people remained without any religious
-view of life. And, having none, they could have no standard
-wherewith to estimate what was good and what was bad art but that of
-personal enjoyment. And, having acknowledged their criterion of what
-was good to be pleasure, _i.e._ beauty, these people of the upper
-classes of European society went back in their comprehension of art
-to the gross conception of the primitive Greeks which Plato had
-already condemned. And conformably to this understanding of life, a
-theory of art was formulated.
-
- [97] Keltchitsky, a Bohemian of the fifteenth century, was the
- author of a remarkable book, "The Net of Faith," directed against
- Church and State. It is mentioned in Tolsto's "The Kingdom of God
- is Within You."--TR.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII
-
-
-From the time that people of the upper classes lost faith in Church
-Christianity, beauty (_i.e._ the pleasure received from art) became
-their standard of good and bad art. And, in accordance with that
-view, an sthetic theory naturally sprang up among those upper
-classes justifying such a conception,--a theory according to which
-the aim of art is to exhibit beauty. The partizans of this sthetic
-theory, in confirmation of its truth, affirmed that it was no
-invention of their own, but that it existed in the nature of things,
-and was recognized even by the ancient Greeks. But this assertion
-was quite arbitrary, and has no foundation other than the fact that
-among the ancient Greeks, in consequence of the low grade of their
-moral ideal (as compared with the Christian), their conception of
-the good, +to agathon+, was not yet sharply divided from
-their conception of the beautiful,+to kalon+.
-
-That highest perfection of goodness (not only not identical with
-beauty, but, for the most part, contrasting with it) which was
-discerned by the Jews even in the times of Isaiah, and fully
-expressed by Christianity, was quite unknown to the Greeks. They
-supposed that the beautiful must necessarily also be the good. It is
-true that their foremost thinkers--Socrates, Plato, Aristotle--felt
-that goodness may happen not to coincide with beauty. Socrates
-expressly subordinated beauty to goodness; Plato, to unite the two
-conceptions, spoke of spiritual beauty; while Aristotle demanded
-from art that it should have a moral influence on people (+katharsis+).
-But, notwithstanding all this, they could not quite dismiss the notion
-that beauty and goodness coincide.
-
-And consequently, in the language of that period, a compound word
-(+kalo-kagathia+, beauty-goodness) came into use to express that
-notion.
-
-Evidently the Greek sages began to draw near to that perception of
-goodness which is expressed in Buddhism and in Christianity, and
-they got entangled in defining the relation between goodness and
-beauty. Plato's reasonings about beauty and goodness are full of
-contradictions. And it was just this confusion of ideas that those
-Europeans of a later age, who had lost all faith, tried to elevate
-into a law. They tried to prove that this union of beauty and
-goodness is inherent in the very essence of things; that beauty and
-goodness must coincide; and that the word and conception +kalo-kagathia+
-(which had a meaning for Greeks, but has none at all for Christians)
-represents the highest ideal of humanity. On this misunderstanding
-the new science of sthetics was built up. And, to justify its
-existence, the teachings of the ancients on art were so twisted
-as to make it appear that this invented science of sthetics had
-existed among the Greeks.
-
-In reality, the reasoning of the ancients on art was quite unlike
-ours. As Benard, in his book on the sthetics of Aristotle, quite
-justly remarks, "_Pour qui veut y regarder de prs, la thorie du
-beau et celle de l'art sont tout fait spares dans Aristote,
-comme elles le sont dans Platon et chez tous leurs successeurs_"
-("L'Esthtique d'Aristote et de ses Successeurs," Paris, 1889, p.
-28).[98] And indeed the reasoning of the ancients on art not only
-does not confirm our science of sthetics, but rather contradicts
-its doctrine of beauty. But nevertheless all the sthetic
-guides, from Schasler to Knight, declare that the science of the
-beautiful--sthetic science--was commenced by the ancients, by
-Socrates, Plato, Aristotle; and was continued, they say, partially
-by the Epicureans and Stoics: by Seneca and Plutarch, down to
-Plotinus. But it is supposed that this science, by some unfortunate
-accident, suddenly vanished in the fourth century, and stayed away
-for about 1500 years, and only after these 1500 years had passed did
-it revive in Germany, 1750 A.D., in Baumgarten's doctrine.
-
- [98] Any one examining closely may see that the theory of beauty and
- that of art are quite separated in Aristotle as they are in Plato
- and in all their successors.
-
-After Plotinus, says Schasler, fifteen centuries passed away during
-which there was not the slightest scientific interest felt for the
-world of beauty and art. These one and a half thousand years, says
-he, have been lost to sthetics, and have contributed nothing toward
-the erection of the learned edifice of this science.[99]
-
- [99] Die Lcke von fnf Jahrhunderten, welche zwischen den
- Kunst-philosophischen Betrachtungen des Plato und Aristoteles und
- die des Plotins fllt, kann zwar auffllig erscheinen; dennoch kann
- man eigentlich nicht sagen, dass in dieser Zwischenzeit berhaupt
- von sthetischen Dingen nicht die Rede gewesen; oder dass gar ein
- vlliger Mangel an Zusammenhang zwischen den Kunst-anschauungen
- des letztgenannten Philosophen und denen der ersteren existire.
- Freilich wurde die von Aristoteles begrndete Wissenschaft in Nichts
- dadurch gefrdert; immerhin aber zeigt sich in jener Zwischenzeit
- noch ein gewisses Interesse fr sthetische Fragen. Nach Plotin
- aber, die wenigen, ihm in der Zeit nahestehenden Philosophen,
- wie Longin, Augustin, u. s. f. kommen, wie wir gesehen, kaum in
- Betracht und schliessen sich brigens in ihrer Anschauungsweise an
- ihn an,--vergehen nicht fnf, sondern _fnfzehn Jahrhunderte_, in
- denen von irgend einer wissenschaftlichen Interesse fr die Welt des
- Schnen und der Kunst nichts zu spren ist.
-
- Diese anderthalbtausend Jahre, innerhalb deren der Weltgeist durch
- die mannigfachsten Kmpfe hindurch zu einer vllig neuen Gestaltung
- des Lebens sich durcharbeitete, sind fr die Aesthetik, hinsichtlich
- des weiteren Ausbaus dieser Wissenschaft verloren.--MAX SCHASLER.
-
-In reality nothing of the kind happened. The science of sthetics,
-the science of the beautiful, neither did nor could vanish, because
-it never existed. Simply, the Greeks (just like everybody else,
-always and everywhere) considered art (like everything else) good
-only when it served goodness (as they understood goodness), and
-bad when it was in opposition to that goodness. And the Greeks
-themselves were so little developed morally, that goodness and
-beauty seemed to them to coincide. On that obsolete Greek view
-of life was erected the science of sthetics, invented by men
-of the eighteenth century, and especially shaped and mounted in
-Baumgarten's theory. The Greeks (as any one may see who will read
-Benard's admirable book on Aristotle and his successors and Walter's
-work on Plato) never had a science of sthetics.
-
-sthetic theories arose about one hundred and fifty years ago among
-the wealthy classes of the Christian European world, and arose
-simultaneously among different nations,--German, Italian, Dutch,
-French, and English. The founder and organizer of it, who gave it a
-scientific, theoretic form, was Baumgarten.
-
-With a characteristically German, external exactitude, pedantry,
-and symmetry, he devised and expounded this extraordinary theory.
-And, notwithstanding its obvious insolidity, nobody else's theory
-so pleased the cultured crowd, or was accepted so readily and with
-such an absence of criticism. It so suited the people of the upper
-classes, that to this day, notwithstanding its entirely fantastic
-character and the arbitrary nature of its assertions, it is repeated
-by learned and unlearned as though it were something indubitable and
-self-evident.
-
-_Habent sua fata libelli pro capite lectoris_, and so, or even
-more so, theories _habent sua fata_ according to the condition of
-error in which that society is living, among whom and for whom the
-theories are invented. If a theory justifies the false position
-in which a certain part of a society is living, then, however
-unfounded or even obviously false the theory may be, it is accepted,
-and becomes an article of faith to that section of society. Such,
-for instance, was the celebrated and unfounded theory, expounded
-by Malthus, of the tendency of that population of the world to
-increase in geometrical progression, but of the means of sustenance
-to increase only in arithmetical progression, and of the consequent
-over-population of the world; such, also, was the theory (an
-outgrowth of the Malthusian) of selection and struggle for existence
-as the basis of human progress. Such, again, is Marx's theory, which
-regards the gradual destruction of small private production by large
-capitalistic production, now going on around us, as an inevitable
-decree of fate. However unfounded such theories are, however
-contrary to all that is known and confessed by humanity, and however
-obviously immoral they may be, they are accepted with credulity,
-pass uncriticized, and are preached, perchance for centuries, until
-the conditions are destroyed which they served to justify, or until
-their absurdity has become too evident. To this class belongs this
-astonishing theory of the Baumgartenian Trinity,--Goodness, Beauty,
-and Truth,--according to which it appears that the very best that
-can be done by the art of nations after 1900 years of Christian
-teaching, is to choose as the ideal of their life the ideal that
-was held by a small, semi-savage, slave-holding people who lived
-2000 years ago, who imitated the nude human body extremely well, and
-erected buildings pleasant to look at. All these incompatibilities
-pass completely unnoticed. Learned people write long, cloudy
-treatises on beauty as a member of the sthetic trinity of Beauty,
-Truth, and Goodness: _das Schne_, _das Wahre_, _das Gute_; _le
-Beau_, _le Vrai_, _le Bon_, are repeated, with capital letters, by
-philosophers, stheticians, and artists, by private individuals,
-by novelists, and by _feuilletonistes_, and they all think, when
-pronouncing these sacrosanct words, that they speak of something
-quite definite and solid--something on which they can base their
-opinions. In reality, these words not only have no definite meaning,
-but they hinder us in attaching any definite meaning to existing
-art; they are wanted only for the purpose of justifying the false
-importance we attribute to an art that transmits every kind of
-feeling, if only those feelings afford us pleasure.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII
-
-
-But if art is a human activity having for its purpose the
-transmission to others of the highest and best feelings to which
-men have risen, how could it be that humanity for a certain rather
-considerable period of its existence (from the time people ceased
-to believe in Church doctrine down to the present day) should exist
-without this important activity, and, instead of it, should put up
-with an insignificant artistic activity only affording pleasure?
-
-In order to answer this question, it is necessary, first of all, to
-correct the current error people make in attributing to our art the
-significance of true, universal art. We are so accustomed, not only
-navely to consider the Circassian family the best stock of people,
-but also the Anglo-Saxon race the best race if we are Englishmen or
-Americans, or the Teutonic if we are Germans, or the Gallo-Latin
-if we are French, or the Slavonic if we are Russians, that, when
-speaking of our own art, we feel fully convinced, not only that our
-art is true art, but even that it is the best and only true art.
-But in reality our art is not only not the only art (as the Bible
-once was held to be the only book), but it is not even the art of
-the whole of Christendom--only of a small section of that part of
-humanity. It was correct to speak of a national Jewish, Grecian, or
-Egyptian art, and one may speak of a now-existing Chinese, Japanese,
-or Indian art shared in by a whole people. Such art, common to a
-whole nation, existed in Russia till Peter the First's time, and
-existed in the rest of Europe until the thirteenth or fourteenth
-century; but since the upper classes of European society, having
-lost faith in the Church teaching, did not accept real Christianity
-but remained without any faith, one can no longer speak of an art
-of the Christian nations in the sense of the whole of art. Since
-the upper classes of the Christian nations lost faith in Church
-Christianity, the art of those upper classes has separated itself
-from the art of the rest of the people, and there have been two
-arts,--the art of the people and genteel art. And therefore the
-answer to the question, How it could occur that humanity lived for
-a certain period without real art, replacing it by art which served
-enjoyment only? is, that not all humanity, nor even any considerable
-portion of it, lived without real art, but only the highest
-classes of European Christian society, and even they only for a
-comparatively short time,--from the commencement of the Renaissance
-down to our own day.
-
-And the consequence of this absence of true art showed itself,
-inevitably, in the corruption of that class which nourished itself
-on the false art. All the confused, unintelligible theories of art,
-all the false and contradictory judgments on art, and particularly
-the self-confident stagnation of our art in its false path, all
-arise from the assertion, which has come into common use and is
-accepted as an unquestioned truth, but is yet amazingly and palpably
-false, the assertion, namely, that the art of our upper classes[100]
-is the whole of art, the true, the only, the universal art. And
-although this assertion (which is precisely similar to the assertion
-made by religious people of the various Churches who consider that
-theirs is the only true religion) is quite arbitrary and obviously
-unjust, yet it is calmly repeated by all the people of our circle
-with full faith in its infallibility.
-
- [100] The contrast made is between the classes and the masses;
- between those who do not and those who do earn their bread by
- productive manual labor; the middle classes being taken as an
- offshoot of the upper classes.--TR.
-
-The art we have is the whole of art, the real, the only art, and yet
-two-thirds of the human race (all the peoples of Asia and Africa)
-live and die knowing nothing of this sole and supreme art. And even
-in our Christian society hardly one per cent of the people make
-use of this art which we speak of as being the _whole_ of art;
-the remaining ninety-nine per cent live and die, generation after
-generation, crushed by toil, and never tasting this art, which,
-moreover, is of such a nature that, if they could get it, they would
-not understand anything of it. We, according to the current sthetic
-theory, acknowledge art as one of the highest manifestations of
-the Idea, God, Beauty, or as the highest spiritual enjoyment;
-furthermore, we hold that all people have equal rights, if not to
-material, at any rate to spiritual well-being; and yet ninety-nine
-per cent of our European population live and die, generation after
-generation, crushed by toil, much of which toil is necessary for the
-production of our art which they never use, and we, nevertheless,
-calmly assert that the art which we produce is the real, true, only
-art--all of art!
-
-To the remark that if our art is the true art every one should have
-the benefit of it, the usual reply is that if not everybody at
-present makes use of existing art, the fault lies, not in the art,
-but in the false organization of society; that one can imagine to
-oneself, in the future, a state of things in which physical labor
-will be partly superseded by machinery, partly lightened by its just
-distribution, and that labor for the production of art will be taken
-in turns; that there is no need for some people always to sit below
-the stage moving the decorations, winding up the machinery, working
-at the piano or French horn, and setting type and printing books,
-but that the people who do all this work might be engaged only a
-few hours per day, and in their leisure time might enjoy all the
-blessings of art.
-
-That is what the defenders of our exclusive art say. But I think
-they do not themselves believe it. They cannot help knowing that
-fine art can arise only on the slavery of the masses of the people,
-and can continue only as long as that slavery lasts, and they
-cannot help knowing that only under conditions of intense labor
-for the workers, can specialists--writers, musicians, dancers, and
-actors--arrive at that fine degree of perfection to which they
-do attain, or produce their refined works of art; and only under
-the same conditions can there be a fine public to esteem such
-productions. Free the slaves of capital, and it will be impossible
-to produce such refined art.
-
-But even were we to admit the inadmissible, and say that means may
-be found by which art (that art which among us is considered to be
-art) may be accessible to the whole people, another consideration
-presents itself showing that fashionable art cannot be the whole
-of art, viz., the fact that it is completely unintelligible to the
-people. Formerly men wrote poems in Latin, but now their artistic
-productions are as unintelligible to the common folk as if they were
-written in Sanscrit. The usual reply to this is, that if the people
-do not now understand this art of ours, it only proves that they are
-undeveloped, and that this has been so at each fresh step forward
-made by art. First it was not understood, but afterward people got
-accustomed to it.
-
-"It will be the same with our present art; it will be understood
-when everybody is as well educated as we are--the people of the
-upper classes--who produce this art," say the defenders of our
-art. But this assertion is evidently even more unjust than the
-former; for we know that the majority of the productions of the
-art of the upper classes, such as various odes, poems, dramas,
-cantatas, pastorals, pictures, etc., which delighted the people of
-the upper classes when they were produced, never were afterward
-either understood or valued by the great masses of mankind, but have
-remained, what they were at first, a mere pastime for rich people
-of their time, for whom alone they ever were of any importance. It
-is also often urged, in proof of the assertion that the people will
-some day understand our art, that some productions of so-called
-"classical" poetry, music, or painting, which formerly did not
-please the masses, do--now that they have been offered to them
-from all sides--begin to please these same masses; but this only
-shows that the crowd, especially the half-spoilt town crowd, can
-easily (its taste having been perverted) be accustomed to any
-sort of art. Moreover, this art is not produced by these masses,
-nor even chosen by them, but is energetically thrust upon them
-in those public places in which art is accessible to the people.
-For the great majority of working-people, our art, besides being
-inaccessible on account of its costliness, is strange in its very
-nature, transmitting, as it does, the feelings of people far removed
-from those conditions of laborious life which are natural to the
-great body of humanity. That which is enjoyment to a man of the
-rich classes is incomprehensible, as a pleasure, to a working-man,
-and evokes in him, either no feeling at all, or only a feeling
-quite contrary to that which it evokes in an idle and satiated man.
-Such feelings as form the chief subjects of present-day art--say,
-for instance, honor,[101] patriotism, and amorousness--evoke in a
-working-man only bewilderment and contempt, or indignation. So that
-even if a possibility were given to the laboring classes, in their
-free time, to see, to read, and to hear all that forms the flower of
-contemporary art (as is done to some extent, in towns, by means of
-picture galleries, popular concerts, and libraries), the working-man
-(to the extent to which he is a laborer, and has not begun to pass
-into the ranks of those perverted by idleness) would be able to make
-nothing of our fine art, and if he did understand it, that which
-he understood would not elevate his soul, but would certainly, in
-most cases, pervert it. To thoughtful and sincere people there can,
-therefore, be no doubt that the art of our upper classes never can
-be the art of the whole people. But if art is an important matter, a
-spiritual blessing, essential for all men ("like religion," as the
-devotees of art are fond of saying), then it should be accessible
-to every one. And if, as in our day, it is not accessible to all
-men, then one of two things: either art is not the vital matter it
-is represented to be, or that art which we call art is not the real
-thing.
-
- [101] Dueling is still customary among the higher circles in Russia,
- as in other continental countries.--TR.
-
-The dilemma is inevitable, and therefore clever and immoral people
-avoid it by denying one side of it, viz., denying that the common
-people have a right to art. These people simply and boldly speak
-out (what lies at the heart of the matter), and say that the
-participators in and utilizers of what, in their esteem, is highly
-beautiful art, _i.e._ art furnishing the greatest enjoyment, can
-only be "schne Geister," "the elect," as the romanticists called
-them, the "Uebermenschen," as they are called by the followers of
-Nietzsche; the remaining vulgar herd, incapable of experiencing
-these pleasures, must serve the exalted pleasures of this superior
-breed of people. The people who express these views at least do not
-pretend, and do not try, to combine the incombinable, but frankly
-admit, what is the case, that our art is an art of the upper classes
-only. So essentially art has been, and is, understood by every one
-engaged on it in our society.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX
-
-
-The unbelief of the upper classes of the European world had this
-effect--that instead of an artistic activity aiming at transmitting
-the highest feelings to which humanity has attained,--those flowing
-from religious perception,--we have an activity which aims at
-affording the greatest enjoyment to a certain class of society. And
-of all the immense domain of art, that part has been fenced off, and
-is alone called art, which affords enjoyment to the people of this
-particular circle.
-
-Apart from the moral effects on European society of such a
-selection from the whole sphere of art of what did not deserve
-such a valuation, and the acknowledgment of it as important art,
-this perversion of art has weakened art itself, and well-nigh
-destroyed it. The first great result was that art was deprived of
-the infinite, varied, and profound religious subject-matter proper
-to it. The second result was that having only a small circle of
-people in view, it lost its beauty of form and became affected and
-obscure; and the third and chief result was that it ceased to be
-either natural or even sincere, and became thoroughly artificial and
-brain-spun.
-
-The first result--the impoverishment of subject-matter--followed
-because only that is a true work of art which transmits fresh
-feelings not before experienced by man. As thought-product is only
-then real thought-product when it transmits new conceptions and
-thoughts, and does not merely repeat what was known before, so also
-an art-product is only then a genuine art-product when it brings a
-new feeling (however insignificant) into the current of human life.
-This explains why children and youths are so strongly impressed by
-those works of art which first transmit to them feelings they had
-not before experienced.
-
-The same powerful impression is made on people by feelings which
-are quite new, and have never before been expressed by man. And it
-is the source from which such feelings flow of which the art of the
-upper classes has deprived itself by estimating feelings, not in
-conformity with religious perception, but according to the degree
-of enjoyment they afford. There is nothing older and more hackneyed
-than enjoyment, and there is nothing fresher than the feelings
-springing from the religious consciousness of each age. It could
-not be otherwise: man's enjoyment has limits established by his
-nature, but the movement forward of humanity, that which is voiced
-by religious perception, has no limits. At every forward step taken
-by humanity--and such steps are taken in consequence of the greater
-and greater elucidation of religious perception--men experience new
-and fresh feelings. And therefore only on the basis of religious
-perception (which shows the highest level of life-comprehension
-reached by the men of a certain period) can fresh emotion, never
-before felt by man, arise. From the religious perception of the
-ancient Greeks flowed the really new, important, and endlessly
-varied feelings expressed by Homer and the tragic writers. It was
-the same among the Jews, who attained the religious conception of a
-single God,--from that perception flowed all those new and important
-emotions expressed by the prophets. It was the same for the poets
-of the Middle Ages, who if they believed in a heavenly hierarchy,
-believed also in the Catholic commune; and it is the same for a
-man of to-day who has grasped the religious conception of true
-Christianity,--the brotherhood of man.
-
-The variety of fresh feelings flowing from religious perception
-is endless, and they are all new; for religious perception is
-nothing else than the first indication of that which is coming into
-existence, viz., the new relation of man to the world around him.
-But the feelings flowing from the desire for enjoyment are, on
-the contrary, not only limited, but were long ago experienced and
-expressed. And therefore the lack of belief of the upper classes of
-Europe has left them with an art fed on the poorest subject-matter.
-
-The impoverishment of the subject-matter of upper-class art was
-further increased by the fact that, ceasing to be religious, it
-ceased also to be popular, and this again diminished the range of
-feelings which it transmitted. For the range of feelings experienced
-by the powerful and the rich, who have no experience of labor
-for the support of life, is far poorer, more limited, and more
-insignificant than the range of feelings natural to working-people.
-
-People of our circle, stheticians, usually think and say just
-the contrary of this. I remember how Gontchareff, the author,
-a very clever and educated man, but a thorough townsman and an
-sthetician, said to me that after Tourgenieff's "Memoirs of a
-Sportsman" there was nothing left to write about in peasant life.
-It was all used up. The life of working-people seemed to him so
-simple that Tourgenieff's peasant stories had used up all there
-was to describe. The life of our wealthy people, with their
-love-affairs and dissatisfaction with themselves, seemed to him
-full of inexhaustible subject-matter. One hero kissed his lady on
-her palm, another on her elbow, and a third somewhere else. One man
-is discontented through idleness, and another because people don't
-love him. And Gontchareff thought that in this sphere there is no
-end of variety. And this opinion--that the life of working-people is
-poor in subject-matter, but that our life, the life of the idle, is
-full of interest--is shared by very many people in our society. The
-life of a laboring man, with its endlessly varied forms of labor,
-and the dangers connected with this labor on sea and underground;
-his migrations, the intercourse with his employers, overseers, and
-companions, and with men of other religions and other nationalities;
-his struggles with nature and with wild beasts, the associations
-with domestic animals, the work in the forest, on the steppe, in
-the field, the garden, the orchard; his intercourse with wife and
-children, not only as with people near and dear to him, but as
-with co-workers and helpers in labor, replacing him in time of
-need; his concern in all economic questions, not as matters of
-display or discussion, but as problems of life for himself and his
-family; his pride in self-suppression and service to others, his
-pleasures of refreshment; and with all these interests permeated
-by a religious attitude toward these occurrences--all this to us,
-who have not these interests and possess no religious perception,
-seems monotonous in comparison with those small enjoyments and
-insignificant cares of our life,--a life, not of labor nor of
-production, but of consumption and destruction of that which others
-have produced for us. We think the feelings experienced by people of
-our day and our class are very important and varied; but in reality
-almost all the feelings of people of our class amount to but three
-very insignificant and simple feelings,--the feeling of pride, the
-feeling of sexual desire, and the feeling of weariness of life.
-These three feelings, with their outgrowths, form almost the only
-subject-matter of the art of the rich classes.
-
-At first, at the very beginning of the separation of the
-exclusive art of the upper classes from universal art, its chief
-subject-matter was the feeling of pride. It was so at the time of
-the Renaissance and after it, when the chief subject of works of art
-was the laudation of the strong,--popes, kings, and dukes: odes and
-madrigals were written in their honor, and they were extolled in
-cantatas and hymns; their portraits were painted, and their statues
-carved, in various adulatory ways. Next, the element of sexual
-desire began more and more to enter into art, and (with very few
-exceptions, and in novels and dramas almost without exception) it
-has now become an essential feature of every art-product of the rich
-classes.
-
-The third feeling transmitted by the art of the rich--that of
-discontent with life--appeared yet later in modern art. This
-feeling, which, at the commencement of the present century,
-was expressed only by exceptional men: by Byron, by Leopardi,
-and afterward by Heine, has latterly become fashionable, and
-is expressed by most ordinary and empty people. Most justly
-does the French critic Doumic characterize the works of the new
-writers: "_C'est la lassitude de vivre, le mpris de l'poque
-prsente, le regret d'un autre temps aperu travers l'illusion
-de l'art, le got du paradoxe, le besoin de se singulariser, une
-aspiration de raffins vers la simplicit, l'adoration enfantine du
-merveilleux, la sduction maladive de la rverie, l'branlement des
-nerfs,--surtout l'appel exaspr de la sensualit_" ("Les Jeunes,"
-Ren Doumic).[102] And, as a matter of fact, of these three feelings
-it is sensuality, the lowest (accessible not only to all men, but
-even to all animals), which forms the chief subject-matter of works
-of art of recent times.
-
- [102] It is the weariness of life, contempt for the present epoch,
- regret for another age seen through the illusion of art, a taste
- for paradox, a desire to be singular, a sentimental aspiration
- after simplicity, an infantine adoration of the marvelous, a sickly
- tendency toward reverie, a shattered condition of nerves, and, above
- all, the exasperated demand of sensuality.
-
-From Boccaccio to Marcel Prvost, all the novels, poems, and verses
-invariably transmit the feeling of sexual love in its different
-forms. Adultery is not only the favorite, but almost the only theme
-of all the novels. A performance is not a performance unless, under
-some pretense, women appear with naked busts and limbs. Songs and
-_romances_--all are expressions of lust, idealized in various
-degrees.
-
-A majority of the pictures by French artists represent female
-nakedness in various forms. In recent French literature there is
-hardly a page or a poem in which nakedness is not described, and
-in which, relevantly or irrelevantly, their favorite thought and
-word _nu_ is not repeated a couple of times. There is a certain
-writer, Ren de Gourmond, who gets printed, and is considered
-talented. To get an idea of the new writers, I read his novel,
-"Les Chevaux de Diomde." It is a consecutive and detailed account
-of the sexual connections some gentleman had with various women.
-Every page contains lust-kindling descriptions. It is the same in
-Pierre Lou s' book, "Aphrodite," which met with success; it is the
-same in a book I lately chanced upon, Huysmans' "Certains," and,
-with but few exceptions, it is the same in all the French novels.
-They are all the productions of people suffering from erotic mania.
-And these people are evidently convinced that as their whole life,
-in consequence of their diseased condition, is concentrated on
-amplifying various sexual abominations, therefore the life of all
-the world is similarly concentrated. And these people, suffering
-from erotic mania, are imitated throughout the whole artistic world
-of Europe and America.
-
-Thus in consequence of the lack of belief and the exceptional manner
-of life of the wealthy classes, the art of those classes became
-impoverished in its subject-matter, and has sunk to the transmission
-of the feelings of pride, discontent with life, and, above all, of
-sexual desire.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X
-
-
-In consequence of their unbelief, the art of the upper classes
-became poor in subject-matter. But besides that, becoming
-continually more and more exclusive, it became at the same time
-continually more and more involved, affected, and obscure.
-
-When a universal artist (such as were some of the Grecian artists
-or the Jewish prophets) composed his work, he naturally strove to
-say what he had to say in such a manner that his production should
-be intelligible to all men. But when an artist composed for a small
-circle of people placed in exceptional conditions, or even for a
-single individual and his courtiers,--for popes, cardinals, kings,
-dukes, queens, or for a king's mistress,--he naturally only aimed
-at influencing these people, who were well known to him, and lived
-in exceptional conditions familiar to him. And this was an easier
-task, and the artist was involuntarily drawn to express himself
-by allusions comprehensible only to the initiated, and obscure to
-every one else. In the first place, more could be said in this way;
-and secondly, there is (for the initiated) even a certain charm in
-the cloudiness of such a manner of expression. This method, which
-showed itself both in euphemism and in mythological and historical
-allusions, came more and more into use, until it has, apparently,
-at last reached its utmost limits in the so-called art of the
-Decadents. It has come, finally, to this: that not only is haziness,
-mysteriousness, obscurity, and exclusiveness (shutting out the
-masses) elevated to the rank of a merit and a condition of poetic
-art, but even incorrectness, indefiniteness, and lack of eloquence
-are held in esteem.
-
-Thophile Gautier, in his preface to the celebrated "Fleurs du Mal,"
-says that Baudelaire, as far as possible, banished from poetry
-eloquence, passion, and truth too strictly copied ("_l'loquence, la
-passion, et la vrit calque trop exactement_").
-
-And Baudelaire not only expressed this, but maintained his thesis
-in his verses, and yet more strikingly in the prose of his "Petits
-Pomes en Prose," the meanings of which have to be guessed like a
-rebus, and remain for the most part undiscovered.
-
-The poet Verlaine (who followed next after Baudelaire, and was also
-esteemed great) even wrote an "Art Potique," in which he advises
-this style of composition:--
-
- _De la musique avant toute chose,
- Et pour cela prfre l'Impair
- Plus vague et plus soluble dans l'air,
- Sans rien en lui qui pse ou qui pose._
-
- _Il faut aussi que tu n'ailles point
- Choisir tes mots sans quelque mprise:
- Rien de plus cher que la chanson grise
- O l'Indcis au Prcis se joint._
-
-And again:--
-
- _De la musique encore et toujours!
- Que ton vers soit la chose envole
- Qu'on sent qui fuit d'une me en alle
- Vers d'autres cieux d'autres amours._
-
- _Que ton vers soit la bonne aventure
- Eparse au vent crisp du matin,
- Qui va fleurant la menthe et le thym....
- Et tout le reste est littrature._[103]
-
- [103]
-
- Music, music before all things
- The eccentric still prefer,
- Vague in air, and nothing weighty,
- Soluble. Yet do not err,
-
- Choosing words; still do it lightly,
- Do it too with some contempt;
- Dearest is the song that's tipsy,
- Clearness, dimness not exempt.
-
- * * * *
-
- Music always, now and ever
- Be thy verse the thing that flies
- From a soul that's gone, escaping,
- Gone to other loves and skies.
-
- Gone to other loves and regions,
- Following fortunes that allure,
- Mint and thyme and morning crispness....
- All the rest's mere literature.
-
-After these two comes Mallarm, considered the most important of the
-young poets, and he plainly says that the charm of poetry lies in
-our having to guess its meaning--that in poetry there should always
-be a puzzle:--
-
-_Je pense qu'il faut qu'il n'y ait qu'allusion_, says he. _La
-contemplation des objets, l'image s'envolant des rveries suscites
-par eux, sont le chant: les Parnassiens, eux, prennent la chose
-entirement et la montrent; par l ils manquent de mystre; ils
-retirent aux esprits cette joie dlicieuse de croire qu'ils crent._
-Nommer un objet, c'est supprimer les trois quarts de la jouissance
-du pome, qui est faite du bonheur de deviner peu peu: le
-suggrer, voil le rve. _C'est le par fait usage de ce mystre qui
-constitue le symbole: voquer petit petit un objet pour montrer un
-tat d'me, ou, inversement, choisir un objet et en dgager un tat
-d'me, par une srie de dchiffrements._
-
-.... _Si un tre d'une intelligence moyenne, et d'une prparation
-littraire insuffisante, ouvre par hasard un livre ainsi fait et
-prtend en jouir, il y a malentendu, il faut remettre les choses
-leur place._ Il doit y avoir toujours nigme en posie, _et c'est
-le but de la littrature, il n'y en a pas d'autre,--d'voquer les
-objets_.--"Enqute sur l'volution Littraire," Jules Huret, pp. 60,
-61.[104]
-
- [104] I think there should be nothing but allusions. The
- contemplation of objects, the flying image of reveries evoked by
- them, are the song. The Parnassiens state the thing completely, and
- show it, and thereby lack mystery; they deprive the mind of that
- delicious joy of imagining that it creates. To _name an object is to
- take three-quarters from the enjoyment of the poem, which consists
- in the happiness of guessing little by little: to suggest, that is
- the dream_. It is the perfect use of this mystery that constitutes
- the symbol: little by little, to evoke an object in order to show a
- state of the soul; or, inversely, to choose an object, and from it
- to disengage a state of the soul by a series of decipherings.
-
- .... If a being of mediocre intelligence and insufficient literary
- preparation chance to open a book made in this way and pretends to
- enjoy it, there is a misunderstanding--things must be returned to
- their places. _There should always be an enigma in poetry_, and the
- aim of literature--it has no other--is to evoke objects.
-
-Thus is obscurity elevated into a dogma among the new poets. As the
-French critic Doumic (who has not yet accepted the dogma) quite
-correctly says:--
-
-"_Il serait temps aussi d'en finir avec cette fameuse 'thorie de
-l'obscurite' que la nouvelle cole a leve, en effet, la hauteur
-d'un dogme._"--"Les Jeunes, par Ren Doumic."[105]
-
- [105] It were time also to have done with this famous "theory of
- obscurity," which the new school have practically raised to the
- height of a dogma.
-
-But it is not French writers only who think thus. The poets of
-all other countries think and act in the same way: German, and
-Scandinavian, and Italian, and Russian, and English. So also do
-the artists of the new period in all branches of art: in painting,
-in sculpture, and in music. Relying on Nietzsche and Wagner, the
-artists of the new age conclude that it is unnecessary for them to
-be intelligible to the vulgar crowd; it is enough for them to evoke
-poetic emotion in "the finest nurtured," to borrow a phrase from an
-English sthetician.
-
-In order that what I am saying may not seem to be mere assertion,
-I will quote at least a few examples from the French poets who
-have led this movement. The name of these poets is legion. I have
-taken French writers, because they, more decidedly than any others,
-indicate the new direction of art, and are imitated by most European
-writers.
-
-Besides those whose names are already considered famous, such as
-Baudelaire and Verlaine, here are the names of a few of them: Jean
-Moras, Charles Morice, Henri de Rgnier, Charles Vignier, Adrien
-Remacle, Ren Ghil, Maurice Maeterlinck, G. Albert Aurier, Rmy de
-Gourmont, Saint-Pol-Roux-le-Magnifique, Georges Rodenbach, le comte
-Robert de Montesquiou-Fezensac. These are Symbolists and Decadents.
-Next we have the "Magi": Josphin Pladan, Paul Adam, Jules Bois, M.
-Papus, and others.
-
-Besides these, there are yet one hundred and forty-one others, whom
-Doumic mentions in the book referred to above.
-
-Here are some examples from the work of those of them who are
-considered to be the best, beginning with that most celebrated man,
-acknowledged to be a great artist worthy of a monument--Baudelaire.
-This is a poem from his celebrated "Fleurs du Mal":--
-
-
-No. XXIV
-
- _Je t'adore l'gal de la vote nocturne,
- O vase de tristesse, grande taciturne,
- Et t'aime d'autant plus, belle, que tu me fuis,
- Et que tu me parais, ornement de mes nuits,
- Plus ironiquement accumuler les lieues
- Qui sparent mes bras des immensits bleues._
-
- _Je m'avance l'attaque, et je grimpe aux assauts,
- Comme aprs un cadavre un choeur de vermisseaux,
- Et je chris, bte implacable et cruelle,
- Jusqu'cette froideur par o tu m'es plus belle!_[106]
-
- [106] For translation, see Appendix IV.
-
-And this is another by the same writer:--
-
-
-No. XXXVI
-
-_DUELLUM_
-
- _Deux guerriers ont couru l'un sur l'autre; leurs armes
- Ont clabouss l'air de lueurs et de sang.
- Ces jeux, ces cliquetis du fer sont les vacarmes
- D'une jeunesse en proie l'amour vagissant._
-
- _Les glaives sont briss! comme notre jeunesse,
- Ma chre! Mais les dents, les ongles acrs,
- Vengent bientt l'pe et la dague tratresse.
- O fureur des coeurs mrs par l'amour ulcrs!_
-
- _Dans le ravin hant des chats-pards et des onces
- Nos hros, s'treignant mchamment, ont roul,
- Et leur peau fleurira l'aridit des ronces._
-
- _Ce gouffre, c'est l'enfer, de nos amis peupl!
- Roulons-y sans remords, amazone inhumaine,
- Afin d'terniser l'ardeur de notre haine!_[107]
-
- [107] For translation, see Appendix IV.
-
-To be exact, I should mention that the collection contains verses
-less comprehensible than these, but not one poem which is plain
-and can be understood without a certain effort--an effort seldom
-rewarded; for the feelings which the poet transmits are evil and
-very low ones. And these feelings are always, and purposely,
-expressed by him with eccentricity and lack of clearness. This
-premeditated obscurity is especially noticeable in his prose, where
-the author could, if he liked, speak plainly.
-
-Take, for instance, the first piece from his "Petits Pomes":--
-
-
-_L'ETRANGER_
-
- _Qui aimes-tu le mieux, homme nigmatique, dis? ton pre, ta
- mre, ta soeur, ou ton frre?_
-
- _Je n'ai ni pre, ni mre, ni soeur, ni frre._
-
- _Tes amis?_
-
- _Vous vous servez l d'une parole dont le sens m'est rest
- jusqu' ce jour inconnu._
-
- _Ta patrie?_
-
- _J'ignore sous quelle latitude elle est situe._
-
- _La beaut?_
-
- _Je l'aimerais volontiers, desse et immortelle._
-
- _L'or?_
-
- _Je le hais comme vous hassez Dieu._
-
- _Et qu'aimes-tu donc, extraordinaire tranger?_
-
- _J'aime les nuages .... les nuages qui passent .... l bas, ....
- les merveilleux nuages!_[108]
-
-The piece called "La Soupe et les Nuages" is probably intended to
-express the unintelligibility of the poet even to her whom he loves.
-This is the piece in question:--
-
- _Ma petite folle bien-aime me donnait dner, et par la
- fentre ouverte de la salle manger je contemplais les
- mouvantes architectures que Dieu fait avec les vapeurs, les
- merveilleuses constructions de l'impalpable. Et je me disais,
- travers ma contemplation: "Toutes ces fantasmagories sont
- presque aussi belles que les yeux de ma belle bien-aime, la
- petite folle monstrueuse aux yeux verts."_
-
- _Et tout coup je reus un violent coup de poing dans le dos,
- et j'entendis une voix rauque et charmante, une voix hystrique
- et comme enroue par l'eau-de-vie, la voix de ma chre petite
- bien-aime, qui me disait, "Allez-vous bientt manger votre
- soupe, s.... b.... de marchand de nuages?"_[108]
-
- [108] For translation, see Appendix IV.
-
-However artificial these two pieces may be, it is still possible,
-with some effort, to guess at what the author meant them to express,
-but some of the pieces are absolutely incomprehensible--at least to
-me. "Le Galant Tireur" is a piece I was quite unable to understand.
-
-
-_LE GALANT TIREUR_
-
- _Comme la voiture traversait le bois, il la fit arrter dans le
- voisinage d'un tir, disant qu'il lui serait agrable de tirer
- quelques balles pour tuer le Temps. Tuer ce monstre-l, n'est-ce
- pas l'occupation la plus ordinaire et la plus lgitime de
- chacun?--Et il offrit galamment la main sa chre, dlicieuse
- et excrable femme, cette mystrieuse femme laquelle il
- doit tant de plaisirs, tant de douleurs, et peut-tre aussi une
- grande partie de son gnie._
-
- _Plusieurs balles frapprent loin du but propos, l'une d'elles
- s'enfona mme dans le plafond; et comme la charmante crature
- riait follement, se moquant de la maladresse de son poux,
- celui-ci se tourna brusquement vers elle, et lui dit: "Observez
- cette poupe, l-bas, droite, qui porte le nez en l'air et qui
- a la mine si hautaine. Eh bien! cher ange_, je me figure que
- c'est vous." _Et il ferma les yeux et il lcha la dtente. La
- poupe fut nettement dcapite._
-
- _Alors s'inclinant vers sa chre, sa dlicieuse, son excrable
- femme, son invitable et impitoyable Muse, et lui baisant
- respectueusement la main, il ajouta: "Ah! mon cher ange, combien
- je vous remercie de mon adresse!"_[109]
-
- [109] For translation, see Appendix IV.
-
-The productions of another celebrity, Verlaine, are not less
-affected and unintelligible. This, for instance, is the first poem
-in the section called "Ariettes Oublis."
-
- "_Le vent dans la plaine
- Suspend son haleine._"--FAVART.
-
- _C'est l'extase langoureuse,
- C'est la fatigue amoureuse,
- C'est tous les frissons des bois
- Parmi l'treinte des brises,
- C'est, vers les ramures grises,
- Le choeur des petites voix._
-
- _O le frle et frais murmure!
- Cela gazouille et susurre,
- Cela ressemble au cri doux
- Que l'herbe agite expire....
- Tu dirais, sous l'eau qui vire,
- Le roulis sourd des cailloux._
-
- _Cette me qui se lamente
- En cette plainte dormante
- C'est la ntre, n'est-ce pas?_
- _La mienne, dis, et la tienne,
- Dont s'exhale l'humble antienne
- Par ce tide soir, tout bas?_[110]
-
- [110] For translation, see Appendix IV.
-
-What "_choeur des petites voix_"? and what "_cri doux que l'herbe
-agite expire_"? and what it all means, remains altogether
-unintelligible to me.
-
-And here is another "Ariette":--
-
-
-_VIII_
-
- _Dans l'interminable
- Ennui de la plaine,
- La neige incertaine
- Luit comme du sable._
-
- _Le ciel est de cuivre,
- Sans lueur aucune.
- On croirait voir vivre
- Et mourir la lune._
-
- _Comme des nues
- Flottent gris les chnes
- Des forts prochaines
- Parmi les bues._
-
- _Le ciel est de cuivre,
- Sans lueur aucune.
- On croirait voir vivre
- Et mourir la lune._
-
- _Corneille poussive
- Et vous, les loups maigres,
- Par ces bises aigres
- Quoi donc vous arrive?_
-
- _Dans l'interminable
- Ennui de la plaine,_
- _La neige incertaine
- Luit comme du sable._[111]
-
- [111] For translation, see Appendix IV.
-
-How does the moon seem to live and die in a copper heaven? And
-how can snow shine like sand? The whole thing is not merely
-unintelligible, but, under pretense of conveying an impression, it
-passes off a string of incorrect comparisons and words.
-
-Besides these artificial and obscure poems there are others which
-are intelligible, but which make up for it by being altogether
-bad, both in form and in subject. Such are all the poems under the
-heading "La Sagesse." The chief place in these verses is occupied by
-a very poor expression of the most commonplace Roman Catholic and
-patriotic sentiments. For instance, one meets with verses such as
-this:--
-
- _Je ne veux plus penser qu'ma mre Marie,
- Sige de la sagesse et source de pardons,
- Mre de France aussi_ de qui nous attendons
- Inbranlablement l'honneur de la patrie.[112]
-
- [112]
-
- I do not wish to think any more, except about my mother Mary,
- Seat of wisdom and source of pardon,
- Also Mother of France, _from whom we
- Steadfastly expect the honor of our country_.
-
-Before citing examples from other poets, I must pause to note
-the amazing celebrity of these two versifiers, Baudelaire and
-Verlaine, who are now accepted as being great poets. How the French,
-who had Chnier, Musset, Lamartine, and, above all, Hugo,--and
-among whom quite recently flourished the so-called Parnassiens:
-Leconte de Lisle, Sully-Prudhomme, etc.,--could attribute such
-importance to these two versifiers, who were far from skilful in
-form and most contemptible and commonplace in subject-matter, is
-to me incomprehensible. The conception of life of one of them,
-Baudelaire, consisted in elevating gross egotism into a theory, and
-replacing morality by a cloudy conception of beauty, and especially
-artificial beauty. Baudelaire had a preference, which he expressed,
-for a woman's face painted rather than showing its natural color,
-and for metal trees and a theatrical imitation of water rather than
-real trees and real water.
-
-The life-conception of the other, Verlaine, consisted in weak
-profligacy, confession of his moral impotence, and, as an antidote
-to that impotence, in the grossest Roman Catholic idolatry. Both,
-moreover, were quite lacking in navet, sincerity, and simplicity,
-and both overflowed with artificiality, forced originality and
-self-assurance. So that in their least bad productions one sees more
-of M. Baudelaire or M. Verlaine than of what they were describing.
-But these two indifferent versifiers form a school, and lead
-hundreds of followers after them.
-
-There is only one explanation of this fact: it is that the art
-of the society in which these versifiers lived is not a serious,
-important matter of life, but is a mere amusement. And all
-amusements grow wearisome by repetition. And, in order to make
-wearisome amusement again tolerable, it is necessary to find some
-means to freshen it up. When, at cards, ombre grows stale, whist
-is introduced; when whist grows stale, cart is substituted; when
-cart grows stale, some other novelty is invented, and so on. The
-substance of the matter remains the same, only its form is changed.
-And so it is with this kind of art. The subject-matter of the art of
-the upper classes growing continually more and more limited, it has
-come at last to this, that to the artists of these exclusive classes
-it seems as if everything has already been said, and that to find
-anything new to say is impossible. And therefore, to freshen up this
-art, they look out for fresh forms.
-
-Baudelaire and Verlaine invent such a new form, furbish it up,
-moreover, with hitherto unused pornographic details, and--the
-critics and the public of the upper classes hail them as great
-writers.
-
-This is the only explanation of the success, not of Baudelaire and
-Verlaine only, but of all the Decadents.
-
-For instance, there are poems by Mallarm and Maeterlinck which have
-no meaning, and yet for all that, or perhaps on that very account,
-are printed by tens of thousands, not only in various publications,
-but even in collections of the best works of the younger poets.
-
-This, for example, is a sonnet by Mallarm:--
-
- _A la nue accablante tu
- Basse de basalte et de laves
- A mme les chos esclaves
- Par une trompe sans vertu._
-
- _Quel spulcral naufrage (tu
- Le soir, cume, mais y baves)
- Suprme une entre les paves
- Abolit le mt dvtu._
-
- _Ou cela que furibond faute
- De quelque perdition haute
- Tout l'abme vain ploy
- Dans le si blanc cheveu qui trane
- Avarement aura noy
- Le flanc enfant d'une sirne._[113]
-
- ("Pan," 1895, No. 1.)
-
- [113] This sonnet seems too unintelligible for translation.--TR.
-
-This poem is not exceptional in its incomprehensibility. I have read
-several poems by Mallarm, and they also had no meaning whatever. I
-give a sample of his prose in Appendix I. There is a whole volume of
-this prose called "Divagations." It is impossible to understand any
-of it. And that is evidently what the author intended.
-
-And here is a song by Maeterlinck, another celebrated author of
-to-day:--
-
- _Quand il est sorti,
- (J'entendis la porte)_
- _Quand il est sorti
- Elle avait souri ...._
-
- _Mais quand il entra
- (J'entendis la lampe)
- Mais quand il entra
- Une autre tait l ...._
-
- _Et j'ai vu la mort,
- (J'entendis son me)
- Et j'ai vu la mort
- Qui l'attend encore ...._
-
- _On est venu dire,
- (Mon enfant j'ai peur)
- On est venu dire
- Qu'il allait partir ...._
-
- _Ma lampe allume,
- (Mon enfant j'ai peur)
- Ma lampe allume
- Me suis approche ...._
-
- _A la premire porte,
- (Mon enfant j'ai peur)
- A la premire porte,
- La flamme a trembl ...._
-
- _A la seconde porte,
- (Mon enfant j'ai peur)
- A la seconde porte,
- La flamme a parl ...._
-
- _A la troisime porte,
- (Mon enfant j'ai peur)
- A la troisime porte,
- La lumire est morte ...._
-
- _Et s'il revenait un jour
- Que faut-il lui dire?_
- _Dites-lui qu'on l'attendit
- Jusqu' s'en mourir ...._
-
- _Et s'il demande o vous tes
- Que faut-il rpondre?
- Donnez-lui mon anneau d'or
- Sans rien lui rpondre ...._
-
- _Et s'il m'interroge alors
- Sur la dernire heure?
- Dites lui que j'ai souri
- De peur qu'il ne pleure ...._
-
- _Et s'il m'interroge encore
- Sans me reconnatre?
- Parlez-lui comme une soeur,
- Il souffre peut-tre ...._
-
- _Et s'il veut savoir pourquoi
- La salle est dserte?
- Montrez lui la lampe teinte
- Et la porte ouverte ...._[114]
-
- ("Pan," 1895, No. 2.)
-
- [114] For translation, see Appendix IV.
-
-Who went out? Who came in? Who is speaking? Who died?
-
-I beg the reader to be at the pains of reading through the samples
-I cite in Appendix II. of the celebrated and esteemed young
-poets--Griffin, Verhaeren, Moras, and Montesquiou. It is important
-to do so in order to form a clear conception of the present position
-of art, and not to suppose, as many do, that Decadentism is an
-accidental and transitory phenomenon. To avoid the reproach of
-having selected the worst verses, I have copied out of each volume
-the poem which happened to stand on page 28.
-
-All the other productions of these poets are equally unintelligible,
-or can only be understood with great difficulty, and then not
-fully. All the productions of those hundreds of poets, of whom I
-have named a few, are the same in kind. And among the Germans,
-Swedes, Norwegians, Italians, and us Russians, similar verses are
-printed. And such productions are printed and made up into book
-form, if not by the million, then by the hundred thousand (some of
-these works sell in tens of thousands). For type-setting, paging,
-printing, and binding these books, millions and millions of working
-days are spent--not less, I think, than went to build the great
-pyramid. And this is not all. The same is going on in all the other
-arts: millions and millions of working days are being spent on the
-production of equally incomprehensible works in painting, in music,
-and in the drama.
-
-Painting not only does not lag behind poetry in this matter, but
-rather outstrips it. Here is an extract from the diary of an amateur
-of art, written when visiting the Paris exhibitions in 1894:--
-
-"I was to-day at three exhibitions: the Symbolists', the
-Impressionists', and the Neo-Impressionists'. I looked at the
-pictures conscientiously and carefully, but again felt the same
-stupefaction and ultimate indignation. The first exhibition, that of
-Camille Pissarro, was comparatively the most comprehensible, though
-the pictures were out of drawing, had no subject, and the colorings
-were most improbable. The drawing was so indefinite that you were
-sometimes unable to make out which way an arm or a head was turned.
-The subject was generally '_effets_'--_Effet de brouillard_, _Effet
-du soir_, _Soleil couchant_. There were some pictures with figures,
-but without subjects.
-
-"In the coloring, bright blue and bright green predominated. And
-each picture had its special color, with which the whole picture
-was, as it were, splashed. For instance, in 'A Girl Guarding
-Geese,' the special color is _vert de gris_, and dots of it were
-splashed about everywhere; on the face, the hair, the hands, and the
-clothes. In the same gallery--'Durand Ruel'--were other pictures
-by Puvis de Chavannes, Manet, Monet, Renoir, Sisley--who are all
-Impressionists. One of them, whose name I could not make out,--it
-was something like Redon,--had painted a blue face in profile. On
-the whole face there is only this blue tone, with white-of-lead.
-Pissarro has a water-color all done in dots. In the foreground is a
-cow, entirely painted with various-colored dots. The general color
-cannot be distinguished, however much one stands back from, or draws
-near to, the picture. From there I went to see the Symbolists. I
-looked at them long without asking any one for an explanation,
-trying to guess the meaning; but it is beyond human comprehension.
-One of the first things to catch my eye was a wooden _haut-relief_,
-wretchedly executed, representing a woman (naked) who with both
-hands is squeezing from her two breasts streams of blood. The blood
-flows down, becoming lilac in color. Her hair first descends, and
-then rises again, and turns into trees. The figure is all colored
-yellow, and the hair is brown.
-
-"Next--a picture: a yellow sea, on which swims something which is
-neither a ship nor a heart; on the horizon is a profile with a halo
-and yellow hair, which changes into a sea, in which it is lost.
-Some of the painters lay on their colors so thickly that the effect
-is something between painting and sculpture. A third exhibit was
-even less comprehensible: a man's profile; before him a flame and
-black stripes--leeches, as I was afterwards told. At last I asked
-a gentleman who was there what it meant, and he explained to me
-that the _haut-relief_ was a symbol, and that it represented '_La
-Terre_.' The heart swimming in a yellow sea was '_Illusion perdue_,'
-and the gentleman with the leeches '_Le Mal_.' There were also some
-Impressionist pictures: elementary profiles, holding some sort of
-flowers in their hands: in monotone, out of drawing, and either
-quite blurred or else marked out with wide black outlines."
-
-This was in 1894; the same tendency is now even more strongly
-defined, and we have Bcklin, Stuck, Klinger, Sasha Schneider, and
-others.
-
-The same thing is taking place in the drama. The play-writers
-give us an architect who, for some reason, has not fulfilled his
-former high intentions, and who consequently climbs on to the roof
-of a house he has erected, and tumbles down head foremost; or an
-incomprehensible old woman (who exterminates rats), and who, for an
-unintelligible reason, takes a poetic child to the sea, and there
-drowns him; or some blind men who, sitting on the seashore, for some
-reason always repeat one and the same thing; or a bell of some kind,
-which flies into a lake, and there rings.
-
-And the same is happening in music--in that art which, more than any
-other, one would have thought, should be intelligible to everybody.
-
-An acquaintance of yours, a musician of repute, sits down to the
-piano and plays you what he says is a new composition of his own,
-or of one of the new composers. You hear the strange, loud sounds,
-and admire the gymnastic exercises performed by his fingers; and you
-see that the performer wishes to impress upon you that the sounds
-he is producing express various poetic strivings of the soul. You
-see his intention, but no feeling whatever is transmitted to you
-except weariness. The execution lasts long, or at least it seems
-very long to you, because you do not receive any clear impression,
-and involuntarily you remember the words of Alphonse Karr, "_Plus
-a va vite, plus a dure longtemps_."[115] And it occurs to you
-that perhaps it is all a mystification; perhaps the performer is
-trying you--just throwing his hands and fingers wildly about the
-keyboard in the hope that you will fall into the trap and praise
-him, and then he will laugh and confess that he only wanted to see
-if he could hoax you. But when at last the piece does finish, and
-the perspiring and agitated musician rises from the piano evidently
-anticipating praise, you see that it was all done in earnest.
-
- [115] The quicker it goes the longer it lasts.
-
-The same thing takes place at all the concerts, with pieces by
-Liszt, Wagner, Berlioz, Brahms, and (newest of all) Richard
-Strauss, and the numberless other composers of the new school, who
-unceasingly produce opera after opera, symphony after symphony,
-piece after piece.
-
-The same is occurring in a domain in which it seemed hard to be
-unintelligible,--in the sphere of novels and short stories.
-
-Read "L Bas," by Huysmans, or some of Kipling's short stories, or
-"L'Annonciateur," by Villiers de l'Isle Adam in his "Contes Cruels,"
-etc., and you will find them not only "abscons" (to use a word
-adopted by the new writers), but absolutely unintelligible both in
-form and in substance. Such, again, is the work by E. Morel, "Terre
-Promise," now appearing in the _Revue Blanche_, and such are most of
-the new novels. The style is very high-flown, the feelings seem to
-be most elevated, but you can't make out what is happening, to whom
-it is happening, and where it is happening. And such is the bulk of
-the young art of our time.
-
-People who grew up in the first half of this century, admiring
-Goethe, Schiller, Musset, Hugo, Dickens, Beethoven, Chopin, Raphael,
-da Vinci, Michael Angelo, Delaroche, being unable to make head or
-tail of this new art, simply attribute its productions to tasteless
-insanity, and wish to ignore them. But such an attitude toward
-this new art is quite unjustifiable, because, in the first place,
-that art is spreading more and more, and has already conquered for
-itself a firm position in society, similar to the one occupied by
-the Romanticists in the third decade of this century; and, secondly
-and chiefly, because, if it is permissible to judge in this way of
-the productions of the latest form of art, called by us Decadent
-art, merely because we do not understand it, then remember there are
-an enormous number of people,--all the laborers, and many of the
-non-laboring folk,--who, in just the same way, do not comprehend
-those productions of art which we consider admirable: the verses
-of our favorite artists--Goethe, Schiller, and Hugo; the novels of
-Dickens, the music of Beethoven and Chopin, the pictures of Raphael,
-Michael Angelo, da Vinci, etc.
-
-If I have a right to think that great masses of people do not
-understand and do not like what I consider undoubtedly good because
-they are not sufficiently developed, then I have no right to deny
-that perhaps the reason why I cannot understand and cannot like the
-new productions of art is merely that I am still insufficiently
-developed to understand them. If I have a right to say that I,
-and the majority of people who are in sympathy with me, do not
-understand the productions of the new art, simply because there is
-nothing in it to understand, and because it is bad art, then, with
-just the same right, the still larger majority, the whole laboring
-mass, who do not understand what I consider admirable art, can say
-that what I reckon as good art is bad art, and there is nothing in
-it to understand.
-
-I once saw the injustice of such condemnation of the new art
-with especial clearness, when, in my presence, a certain poet,
-who writes incomprehensible verses, ridiculed incomprehensible
-music with gay self-assurance; and, shortly afterwards, a certain
-musician, who composes incomprehensible symphonies, laughed at
-incomprehensible poetry with equal self-confidence. I have no right,
-and no authority, to condemn the new art on the ground that I (a man
-educated in the first half of the century) do not understand it; I
-can only say that it is incomprehensible to me. The only advantage
-the art I acknowledge has over the Decadent art, lies in the fact
-that the art I recognize is comprehensible to a somewhat larger
-number of people than the present-day art.
-
-The fact that I am accustomed to a certain exclusive art, and
-can understand it, but am unable to understand another still
-more exclusive art, does not give me a right to conclude that my
-art is the real true art, and that the other one, which I do not
-understand, is an unreal, a bad art. I can only conclude that art,
-becoming ever more and more exclusive, has become more and more
-incomprehensible to an ever increasing number of people, and that,
-in this its progress toward greater and greater incomprehensibility
-(on one level of which I am standing, with the art familiar to me),
-it has reached a point where it is understood by a very small number
-of the elect, and the number of these chosen people is ever becoming
-smaller and smaller.
-
-As soon as ever the art of the upper classes separated itself from
-universal art, a conviction arose that art may be art and yet be
-incomprehensible to the masses. And as soon as this position was
-admitted, it had inevitably to be admitted also that art may be
-intelligible only to the very smallest number of the elect, and,
-eventually, to two, or to one, of our nearest friends, or to oneself
-alone. Which is practically what is being said by modern artists: "I
-create and understand myself, and if any one does not understand me,
-so much the worse for him."
-
-The assertion that art may be good art, and at the same time
-incomprehensible to a great number of people, is extremely unjust,
-and its consequences are ruinous to art itself; but at the same time
-it is so common and has so eaten into our conceptions, that it is
-impossible sufficiently to elucidate all the absurdity of it.
-
-Nothing is more common than to hear it said of reputed works of art,
-that they are very good but very difficult to understand. We are
-quite used to such assertions, and yet to say that a work of art
-is good, but incomprehensible to the majority of men, is the same
-as saying of some kind of food that it is very good, but that most
-people can't eat it. The majority of men may not like rotten cheese
-or putrefying grouse--dishes esteemed by people with perverted
-tastes; but bread and fruit are only good when they please the
-majority of men. And it is the same with art. Perverted art may not
-please the majority of men, but good art always pleases every one.
-
-It is said that the very best works of art are such that they cannot
-be understood by the mass, but are accessible only to the elect who
-are prepared to understand these great works. But if the majority of
-men do not understand, the knowledge necessary to enable them to
-understand should be taught and explained to them. But it turns out
-that there is no such knowledge, that the works cannot be explained,
-and that those who say the majority do not understand good works of
-art, still do not explain those works, but only tell us that, in
-order to understand them, one must read, and see, and hear these
-same works over and over again. But this is not to explain, it is
-only to habituate! And people may habituate themselves to anything,
-even to the very worst things. As people may habituate themselves to
-bad food, to spirits, tobacco, and opium, just in the same way they
-may habituate themselves to bad art--and that is exactly what is
-being done.
-
-Moreover, it cannot be said that the majority of people lack the
-taste to esteem the highest works of art. The majority always
-have understood, and still understand, what we also recognize as
-being the very best art: the epic of Genesis, the gospel parables,
-folk-legends, fairy-tales, and folk-songs, are understood by all.
-How can it be that the majority has suddenly lost its capacity to
-understand what is high in our art?
-
-Of a speech it may be said that it is admirable, but
-incomprehensible to those who do not know the language in which it
-is delivered. A speech delivered in Chinese may be excellent, and
-may yet remain incomprehensible to me if I do not know Chinese; but
-what distinguishes a work of art from all other mental activity
-is just the fact that its language is understood by all, and that
-it infects all without distinction. The tears and laughter of a
-Chinese infect me just as the laughter and tears of a Russian;
-and it is the same with painting and music and poetry, when it is
-translated into a language I understand. The songs of a Kirghiz or
-of a Japanese touch me, though in a lesser degree than they touch
-a Kirghiz or a Japanese. I am also touched by Japanese painting,
-Indian architecture, and Arabian stories. If I am but little
-touched by a Japanese song and a Chinese novel, it is not that I do
-not understand these productions, but that I know and am accustomed
-to higher works of art. It is not because their art is above me.
-Great works of art are only great because they are accessible
-and comprehensible to every one. The story of Joseph, translated
-into the Chinese language, touches a Chinese. The story of Sakya
-Muni touches us. And there are, and must be, buildings, pictures,
-statues, and music of similar power. So that, if art fails to move
-men, it cannot be said that this is due to the spectators' or
-hearers' lack of understanding; but the conclusion to be drawn may
-and should be, that such art is either bad art, or is not art at all.
-
-Art is differentiated from activity of the understanding, which
-demands preparation and a certain sequence of knowledge (so that one
-cannot learn trigonometry before knowing geometry), by the fact that
-it acts on people independently of their state of development and
-education, that the charm of a picture, sounds, or of forms, infects
-any man whatever his plane of development.
-
-The business of art lies just in this,--to make that understood and
-felt which, in the form of an argument, might be incomprehensible
-and inaccessible. Usually it seems to the recipient of a truly
-artistic impression that he knew the thing before but had been
-unable to express it.
-
-And such has always been the nature of good, supreme art; the
-"Iliad," the "Odyssey," the stories of Isaac, Jacob, and Joseph,
-the Hebrew prophets, the psalms, the gospel parables, the story
-of Sakya Muni, and the hymns of the Vedas: all transmit very
-elevated feelings, and are nevertheless quite comprehensible now
-to us, educated or uneducated, as they were comprehensible to
-the men of those times, long ago, who were even less educated
-than our laborers. People talk about incomprehensibility; but if
-art is the transmission of feelings flowing from man's religious
-perception, how can a feeling be incomprehensible which is founded
-on religion, _i.e._ on man's relation to God? Such art should be,
-and has actually always been, comprehensible to everybody, because
-every man's relation to God is one and the same. And therefore
-the churches and the images in them were always comprehensible to
-every one. The hindrance to understanding the best and highest
-feelings (as is said in the gospel) does not at all lie in
-deficiency of development or learning, but, on the contrary, in
-false development and false learning. A good and lofty work of art
-may be incomprehensible, but not to simple, unperverted peasant
-laborers (all that is highest is understood by them)--it may be,
-and often is, unintelligible to erudite, perverted people destitute
-of religion. And this continually occurs in our society, in which
-the highest feelings are simply not understood. For instance, I
-know people who consider themselves most refined, and who say that
-they do not understand the poetry of love to one's neighbor, of
-self-sacrifice, or of chastity.
-
-So that good, great, universal, religious art may be
-incomprehensible to a small circle of spoilt people, but certainly
-not to any large number of plain men.
-
-Art cannot be incomprehensible to the great masses only because it
-is very good--as artists of our day are fond of telling us. Rather
-we are bound to conclude that this art is unintelligible to the
-great masses only because it is very bad art, or even is not art at
-all. So that the favorite argument (navely accepted by the cultured
-crowd), that in order to feel art one has first to understand it
-(which really only means habituate oneself to it), is the truest
-indication that what we are asked to understand by such a method is
-either very bad, exclusive art, or is not art at all.
-
-People say that works of art do not please the people because they
-are incapable of understanding them. But if the aim of works of art
-is to infect people with the emotion the artist has experienced, how
-can one talk about not understanding?
-
-A man of the people reads a book, sees a picture, hears a play or
-a symphony, and is touched by no feeling. He is told that this is
-because he cannot understand. People promise to let a man see a
-certain show; he enters and sees nothing. He is told that this is
-because his sight is not prepared for this show. But the man well
-knows that he sees quite well, and if he does not see what people
-promised to show him, he only concludes (as is quite just) that
-those who undertook to show him the spectacle have not fulfilled
-their engagement. And it is perfectly just for a man who does feel
-the influence of some works of art to come to this conclusion
-concerning artists who do not, by their works, evoke feeling in him.
-To say that the reason a man is not touched by my art is because
-he is still too stupid, besides being very self-conceited and also
-rude, is to reverse the rles, and for the sick to send the hale to
-bed.
-
-Voltaire said that "_Tous les genres sont bons, hors le genre
-ennuyeux_;"[116] but with even more right one may say of art that
-_Tous les genres sont bons, hors celui qu'on ne comprend pas, or
-qui ne produit pas son effet_,[117] for of what value is an article
-which fails to do that for which it was intended?
-
- [116] All styles are good except the wearisome style.
-
- [117] All styles are good except that which is not understood, or
- which fails to produce its effect.
-
-Mark this above all: if only it be admitted that art may be art
-and yet be unintelligible to any one of sound mind, there is no
-reason why any circle of perverted people should not compose works
-tickling their own perverted feelings and comprehensible to no one
-but themselves, and call it "art," as is actually being done by the
-so-called Decadents.
-
-The direction art has taken may be compared to placing on a large
-circle other circles, smaller and smaller, until a cone is formed,
-the apex of which is no longer a circle at all. That is what has
-happened to the art of our times.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI
-
-
-Becoming ever poorer and poorer in subject-matter, and more and
-more unintelligible in form, the art of the upper classes, in its
-latest productions, has even lost all the characteristics of art,
-and has been replaced by imitations of art. Not only has upper-class
-art, in consequence of its separation from universal art, become
-poor in subject-matter, and bad in form, _i.e._ ever more and more
-unintelligible, it has, in course of time, ceased even to be art at
-all, and has been replaced by counterfeits.
-
-This has resulted from the following causes: Universal art arises
-only when some one of the people, having experienced a strong
-emotion, feels the necessity of transmitting it to others. The
-art of the rich classes, on the other hand, arises not from the
-artist's inner impulse, but chiefly because people of the upper
-classes demand amusement and pay well for it. They demand from art
-the transmission of feelings that please them, and this demand
-artists try to meet. But it is a very difficult task; for people of
-the wealthy classes, spending their lives in idleness and luxury,
-desire to be continually diverted by art; and art, even the lowest,
-cannot be produced at will, but has to generate spontaneously in
-the artist's inner self. And therefore, to satisfy the demands of
-people of the upper classes, artists have had to devise methods of
-producing imitations of art. And such methods have been devised.
-
-These methods are those of (1) borrowing, (2) imitating, (3)
-striking (effects), and (4) interesting.
-
-The first method consists in borrowing whole subjects, or merely
-separate features, from former works recognized by every one as
-being poetical, and in so re-shaping them, with sundry additions,
-that they should have an appearance of novelty.
-
-Such works, evoking in people of a certain class memories of
-artistic feelings formerly experienced, produce an impression
-similar to art, and, provided only that they conform to other
-needful conditions, they pass for art among those who seek for
-pleasure from art. Subjects borrowed from previous works of art are
-usually called poetical subjects. Objects and people thus borrowed
-are called poetical objects and people. Thus, in our circle, all
-sorts of legends, sagas, and ancient traditions are considered
-poetical subjects. Among poetical people and objects we reckon
-maidens, warriors, shepherds, hermits, angels, devils of all sorts,
-moonlight, thunder, mountains, the sea, precipices, flowers, long
-hair, lions, lambs, doves, and nightingales. In general, all those
-objects are considered poetical which have been most frequently used
-by former artists in their productions.
-
-Some forty years ago a stupid but highly cultured--_ayant beaucoup
-d'acquis_--lady (since deceased) asked me to listen to a novel
-written by herself. It began with a heroine who, in a poetic white
-dress, and with poetically flowing hair, was reading poetry near
-some water in a poetic wood. The scene was in Russia, but suddenly
-from behind the bushes the hero appears, wearing a hat with a
-feather _ la Guillaume Tell_ (the book specially mentioned this)
-and accompanied by two poetical white dogs. The authoress deemed
-all this highly poetical, and it might have passed muster if only
-it had not been necessary for the hero to speak. But as soon as the
-gentleman in the hat _ la Guillaume Tell_ began to converse with
-the maiden in the white dress, it became obvious that the authoress
-had nothing to say, but had merely been moved by poetic memories
-of other works, and imagined that by ringing the changes on those
-memories she could produce an artistic impression. But an artistic
-impression, _i.e._ infection, is only received when an author has,
-in the manner peculiar to himself, experienced the feeling which
-he transmits, and not when he passes on another man's feeling
-previously transmitted to him. Such poetry from poetry cannot infect
-people, it can only simulate a work of art, and even that only to
-people of perverted sthetic taste. The lady in question being very
-stupid and devoid of talent, it was at once apparent how the case
-stood; but when such borrowing is resorted to by people who are
-erudite and talented and have cultivated the technique of their art,
-we get those borrowings from the Greek, the antique, the Christian
-or mythological world which have become so numerous, and which,
-particularly in our day, continue to increase and multiply, and are
-accepted by the public as works of art, if only the borrowings are
-well mounted by means of the technique of the particular art to
-which they belong.
-
-As a characteristic example of such counterfeits of art in the realm
-of poetry, take Rostand's "Princesse Lointaine," in which there is
-not a spark of art, but which seems very poetical to many people,
-and probably also to its author.
-
-The second method of imparting a semblance of art is that which
-I have called imitating. The essence of this method consists in
-supplying details accompanying the thing described or depicted.
-In literary art this method consists in describing, in the
-minutest details, the external appearance, the faces, the clothes,
-the gestures, the tones, and the habitations of the characters
-represented, with all the occurrences met with in life. For
-instance, in novels and stories, when one of the characters speaks,
-we are told in what voice he spoke, and what he was doing at the
-time. And the things said are not given so that they should have as
-much sense as possible, but, as they are in life, disconnectedly,
-and with interruptions and omissions. In dramatic art, besides
-such imitation of real speech, this method consists in having all
-the accessories and all the people just like those in real life.
-In painting, this method assimilates painting to photography, and
-destroys the difference between them. And, strange to say, this
-method is used also in music: music tries to imitate, not only by
-its rhythm but also by its very sounds, the sounds which in real
-life accompany the thing it wishes to represent.
-
-The third method is by action, often purely physical, on the outer
-senses. Work of this kind is said to be "striking," "effectful." In
-all arts these effects consist chiefly in contrasts; in bringing
-together the terrible and the tender, the beautiful and the hideous,
-the loud and the soft, darkness and light, the most ordinary and
-the most extraordinary. In verbal art, besides effects of contrast,
-there are also effects consisting in the description of things that
-have never before been described. These are usually pornographic
-details evoking sexual desire, or details of suffering and death
-evoking feelings of horror, as, for instance, when describing a
-murder, to give a detailed medical account of the lacerated tissues,
-of the swellings, of the smell, quantity, and appearance of the
-blood. It is the same in painting: besides all kinds of other
-contrasts, one is coming into vogue which consists in giving careful
-finish to one object and being careless about all the rest. The
-chief and usual effects in painting are effects of light and the
-depiction of the horrible. In the drama, the most common effects,
-besides contrasts, are tempests, thunder, moonlight, scenes at sea
-or by the seashore, changes of costume, exposure of the female body,
-madness, murders, and death generally: the dying person exhibiting
-in detail all the phases of agony. In music the most usual effects
-are a _crescendo_, passing from the softest and simplest sounds
-to the loudest and most complex crash of the full orchestra; a
-repetition of the same sounds _arpeggio_ in all the octaves and on
-various instruments; or that the harmony, tone, and rhythm be not at
-all those naturally flowing from the course of the musical thought,
-but such as strike one by their unexpectedness. Besides these, the
-commonest effects in music are produced in a purely physical manner
-by strength of sound, especially in an orchestra.
-
-Such are some of the most usual effects in the various arts, but
-there yet remains one common to them all; namely, to convey by
-means of one art what it would be natural to convey by another: for
-instance, to make music describe (as is done by the programme music
-of Wagner and his followers), or to make painting, the drama, or
-poetry, induce a frame of mind (as is aimed at by all the Decadent
-art).
-
-The fourth method is that of interesting (that is, absorbing the
-mind) in connection with works of art. The interest may lie in
-an intricate plot--a method till quite recently much employed in
-English novels and French plays, but now going out of fashion and
-being replaced by authenticity, _i.e._ by detailed description of
-some historical period or some branch of contemporary life. For
-example, in a novel, interestingness may consist in a description of
-Egyptian or Roman life, the life of miners, or that of the clerks
-in a large shop. The reader becomes interested and mistakes this
-interest for an artistic impression. The interest may also depend on
-the very method of expression; a kind of interest that has now come
-much into use. Both verse and prose, as well as pictures, plays, and
-music, are constructed so that they must be guessed like riddles,
-and this process of guessing again affords pleasure and gives a
-semblance of the feeling received from art.
-
-It is very often said that a work of art is very good because it is
-poetic, or realistic, or striking, or interesting; whereas not only
-can neither the first, nor the second, nor the third, nor the fourth
-of these attributes supply a standard of excellence in art, but they
-have not even anything in common with art.
-
-Poetic--means borrowed. All borrowing merely recalls to the reader,
-spectator, or listener some dim recollection of artistic impressions
-they have received from previous works of art, and does not infect
-them with feeling which the artist has himself experienced. A
-work founded on something borrowed, like Goethe's "Faust," for
-instance, may be very well executed and be full of mind and every
-beauty, but because it lacks the chief characteristic of a work
-of art--completeness, oneness, the inseparable unity of form and
-contents expressing the feeling the artist has experienced--it
-cannot produce a really artistic impression. In availing himself
-of this method, the artist only transmits the feeling received by
-him from a previous work of art; therefore every borrowing, whether
-it be of whole subjects, or of various scenes, situations, or
-descriptions, is but a reflection of art, a simulation of it, but
-not art itself. And therefore, to say that a certain production is
-good because it is poetic--_i.e._ resembles a work of art--is like
-saying of a coin that it is good because it resembles real money.
-
-Equally little can imitation, realism, serve, as many people think,
-as a measure of the quality of art. Imitation cannot be such a
-measure; for the chief characteristic of art is the infection of
-others with the feelings the artist has experienced, and infection
-with a feeling is not only not identical with description of the
-accessories of what is transmitted, but is usually hindered by
-superfluous details. The attention of the receiver of the artistic
-impression is diverted by all these well-observed details, and they
-hinder the transmission of feeling even when it exists.
-
-To value a work of art by the degree of its realism, by the
-accuracy of the details reproduced, is as strange as to judge of
-the nutritive quality of food by its external appearance. When we
-appraise a work according to its realism, we only show that we are
-talking, not of a work of art, but of its counterfeit.
-
-Neither does the third method of imitating art--by the use of
-what is striking or effectual--coincide with real art any better
-than the two former methods; for in effectfulness--the effects of
-novelty, of the unexpected, of contrasts, of the horrible--there
-is no transmission of feeling, but only an action on the nerves.
-If an artist were to paint a bloody wound admirably, the sight of
-the wound would strike me, but it would not be art. One prolonged
-note on a powerful organ will produce a striking impression, will
-often even cause tears, but there is no music in it, because
-no feeling is transmitted. Yet such physiological effects are
-constantly mistaken for art by people of our circle, and this not
-only in music, but also in poetry, painting, and the drama. It is
-said that art has become refined. On the contrary, thanks to the
-pursuit of effectfulness, it has become very coarse. A new piece
-is brought out and accepted all over Europe, such, for instance,
-as "Hannele," in which play the author wishes to transmit to the
-spectators pity for a persecuted girl. To evoke this feeling in the
-audience by means of art, the author should either make one of the
-characters express this pity in such a way as to infect every one,
-or he should describe the girl's feelings correctly. But he cannot,
-or will not, do this, and chooses another way, more complicated
-in stage management, but easier for the author. He makes the girl
-die on the stage; and, still further to increase the physiological
-effect on the spectators, he extinguishes the lights in the theater,
-leaving the audience in the dark, and to the sound of dismal music
-he shows how the girl is pursued and beaten by her drunken father.
-The girl shrinks--screams--groans--and falls. Angels appear and
-carry her away. And the audience, experiencing some excitement while
-this is going on, are fully convinced that this is true sthetic
-feeling. But there is nothing sthetic in such excitement; for there
-is no infecting of man by man, but only a mingled feeling of pity
-for another, and of self-congratulation that it is not I who am
-suffering: it is like what we feel at the sight of an execution, or
-what the Romans felt in their circuses.
-
-The substitution of effectfulness for sthetic feeling is
-particularly noticeable in musical art--that art which by its nature
-has an immediate physiological action on the nerves. Instead of
-transmitting by means of a melody the feelings he has experienced,
-a composer of the new school accumulates and complicates sounds,
-and by now strengthening, now weakening them, he produces on the
-audience a physiological effect of a kind that can be measured by an
-apparatus invented for the purpose.[118] And the public mistake this
-physiological effect for the effect of art.
-
- [118] An apparatus exists by means of which a very sensitive arrow,
- in dependence on the tension of a muscle of the arm, will indicate
- the physiological action of music on the nerves and muscles.
-
-As to the fourth method--that of interesting--it also is frequently
-confounded with art. One often hears it said, not only of a poem,
-a novel, or a picture, but even of a musical work, that it is
-interesting. What does this mean? To speak of an interesting work of
-art means either that we receive from a work of art information new
-to us, or that the work is not fully intelligible, and that little
-by little, and with effort, we arrive at its meaning, and experience
-a certain pleasure in this process of guessing it. In neither case
-has the interest anything in common with artistic impression. Art
-aims at infecting people with feeling experienced by the artist.
-But the mental effort necessary to enable the spectator, listener,
-or reader to assimilate the new information contained in the work,
-or to guess the puzzles propounded, by distracting him, hinders the
-infection. And therefore the interestingness of a work, not only
-has nothing to do with its excellence as a work of art, but rather
-hinders than assists artistic impression.
-
-We may, in a work of art, meet with what is poetic, and realistic,
-and striking, and interesting, but these things cannot replace the
-essential of art,--feeling experienced by the artist. Latterly, in
-upper-class art, most of the objects given out as being works of
-art are of the kind which only resemble art, and are devoid of its
-essential quality,--feeling experienced by the artist. And, for the
-diversion of the rich, such objects are continually being produced
-in enormous quantities by the artisans of art.
-
-Many conditions must be fulfilled to enable a man to produce a real
-work of art. It is necessary that he should stand on the level of
-the highest life-conception of his time, that he should experience
-feeling and have the desire and capacity to transmit it, and that
-he should, moreover, have a talent for some one of the forms of
-art. It is very seldom that all these conditions necessary to the
-production of true art are combined. But in order--aided by the
-customary methods of borrowing, imitating, introducing effects, and
-interesting--unceasingly to produce counterfeits of art which pass
-for art in our society and are well paid for, it is only necessary
-to have a talent for some branch of art; and this is very often
-to be met with. By talent I mean ability: in literary art, the
-ability to express one's thoughts and impressions easily and to
-notice and remember characteristic details; in the depictive arts,
-to distinguish and remember lines, forms, and colors; in music, to
-distinguish the intervals, and to remember and transmit the sequence
-of sounds. And a man, in our times, if only he possesses such a
-talent and selects some specialty, may, after learning the methods
-of counterfeiting used in his branch of art,--if he has patience
-and if his sthetic feeling (which would render such productions
-revolting to him) be atrophied,--unceasingly, till the end of his
-life, turn out works which will pass for art in our society.
-
-To produce such counterfeits, definite rules or recipes exist in
-each branch of art. So that the talented man, having assimilated
-them, may produce such works _ froid_, cold drawn, without any
-feeling.
-
-In order to write poems a man of literary talent needs only
-these qualifications: to acquire the knack, conformably with the
-requirements of rhyme and rhythm, of using, instead of the one
-really suitable word, ten others meaning approximately the same;
-to learn how to take any phrase which, to be clear, has but one
-natural order of words, and despite all possible dislocations still
-to retain some sense in it; and lastly, to be able, guided by the
-words required for the rhymes, to devise some semblance of thoughts,
-feelings, or descriptions to suit these words. Having acquired these
-qualifications, he may unceasingly produce poems--short or long,
-religious, amatory, or patriotic, according to the demand.
-
-If a man of literary talent wishes to write a story or novel, he
-need only form his style--_i.e._ learn how to describe all that he
-sees--and accustom himself to remember or note down details. When he
-has accustomed himself to this, he can, according to his inclination
-or the demand, unceasingly produce novels or stories--historical,
-naturalistic, social, erotic, psychological, or even religious, for
-which latter kind a demand and fashion begins to show itself. He can
-take subjects from books or from the events of life, and can copy
-the characters of the people in his book from his acquaintances.
-
-And such novels and stories, if only they are decked out with
-well-observed and carefully noted details, preferably erotic ones,
-will be considered works of art, even though they may not contain a
-spark of feeling experienced.
-
-To produce art in dramatic form, a talented man, in addition to all
-that is required for novels and stories, must also learn to furnish
-his characters with as many smart and witty sentences as possible,
-must know how to utilize theatrical effects, and how to entwine
-the action of his characters so that there should not be any long
-conversations, but as much bustle and movement on the stage as
-possible. If the writer is able to do this, he may produce dramatic
-works one after another without stopping, selecting his subjects
-from the reports of the law courts, or from the latest society
-topic, such as hypnotism, heredity, etc., or from deep antiquity, or
-even from the realms of fancy.
-
-In the sphere of painting and sculpture it is still easier for the
-talented man to produce imitations of art. He need only learn to
-draw, paint, and model--especially naked bodies. Thus equipped he
-can continue to paint pictures, or model statues, one after another,
-choosing subjects according to his bent--mythological, or religious,
-or fantastic, or symbolical; or he may depict what is written about
-in the papers--a coronation, a strike, the Turko-Grecian war, famine
-scenes; or, commonest of all, he may just copy anything he thinks
-beautiful--from naked women to copper basins.
-
-For the production of musical art the talented man needs still
-less of what constitutes the essence of art, _i.e._ feeling
-wherewith to infect others: but on the other hand, he requires
-more physical, gymnastic labor than for any other art, unless it
-be dancing. To produce works of musical art, he must first learn
-to move his fingers on some instrument as rapidly as those who
-have reached the highest perfection; next, he must know how in
-former times polyphonic music was written, must study what are
-called counterpoint and fugue; and, furthermore, he must learn
-orchestration, _i.e._ how to utilize the effects of the instruments.
-But once he has learned all this, the composer may unceasingly
-produce one work after another; whether programme-music, opera, or
-song (devising sounds more or less corresponding to the words), or
-chamber music, _i.e._ he may take another man's themes and work
-them up into definite forms by means of counterpoint and fugue; or,
-what is commonest of all, he may compose fantastic music, _i.e._ he
-may take a conjunction of sounds which happens to come to hand, and
-pile every sort of complication and ornamentation on to this chance
-combination.
-
-Thus, in all realms of art, counterfeits of art are manufactured to
-a ready-made, prearranged recipe, and these counterfeits the public
-of our upper classes accept for real art.
-
-And this substitution of counterfeits for real works of art was the
-third and most important consequence of the separation of the art of
-the upper classes from universal art.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII
-
-
-In our society three conditions coperate to cause the production of
-objects of counterfeit art. They are--(1) the considerable remuneration
-of artists for their productions, and the professionalization of
-artists which this has produced, (2) art criticism, and (3) schools of
-art.
-
-While art was as yet undivided, and only religious art was valued
-and rewarded while indiscriminate art was left unrewarded, there
-were no counterfeits of art, or, if any existed, being exposed to
-the criticism of the whole people, they quickly disappeared. But as
-soon as that division occurred, and the upper classes acclaaimed
-every kind of art as good if only it afforded them pleasure, and
-began to reward such art more highly than any other social activity,
-immediately a large number of people devoted themselves to this
-activity, and art assumed quite a different character, and became a
-profession.
-
-And as soon as this occurred, the chief and most precious quality
-of art--its sincerity--was at once greatly weakened and eventually
-quite destroyed.
-
-The professional artist lives by his art, and has continually
-to invent subjects for his works, and does invent them. And it
-is obvious how great a difference must exist between works of
-art produced on the one hand by men such as the Jewish prophets,
-the authors of the Psalms, Francis of Assisi, the authors of the
-"Iliad" and "Odyssey," of folk-stories, legends, and folk-songs,
-many of whom not only received no remuneration for their work, but
-did not even attach their names to it; and, on the other hand,
-works produced by court poets, dramatists and musicians receiving
-honors and remuneration; and later on by professional artists, who
-lived by the trade, receiving remuneration from newspaper editors,
-publishers, impresarios, and in general from those agents who come
-between the artists and the town public--the consumers of art.
-
-Professionalism is the first condition of the diffusion of false,
-counterfeit art.
-
-The second condition is the growth, in recent times, of artistic
-criticism, _i.e._ the valuation of art, not by everybody, and, above
-all, not by plain men, but by erudite, that is, by perverted and at
-the same time self-confident individuals.
-
-A friend of mine, speaking of the relation of critics to artists,
-half jokingly defined it thus: "Critics are the stupid who discuss
-the wise." However partial, inexact, and rude this definition may
-be, it is yet partly true, and is incomparably juster than the
-definition which considers critics to be men who can explain works
-of art.
-
-"Critics explain!" What do they explain?
-
-The artist, if a real artist, has by his work transmitted to others
-the feeling he experienced. What is there, then, to explain?
-
-If a work be good as art, then the feeling expressed by the
-artist--be it moral or immoral--transmits itself to other people. If
-transmitted to others, then they feel it, and all interpretations
-are superfluous. If the work does not infect people, no explanation
-can make it contagious. An artist's work cannot be interpreted.
-Had it been possible to explain in words what he wished to convey,
-the artist would have expressed himself in words. He expressed it
-by his art only because the feeling he experienced could not be
-otherwise transmitted. The interpretation of works of art by words
-only indicates that the interpreter is himself incapable of feeling
-the infection of art. And this is actually the case; for, however
-strange it may seem to say so, critics have always been people less
-susceptible than other men to the contagion of art. For the most
-part they are able writers, educated and clever, but with their
-capacity of being infected by art quite perverted or atrophied. And
-therefore their writings have always largely contributed, and still
-contribute, to the perversion of the taste of that public which
-reads them and trusts them.
-
-Artistic criticism did not exist--could not and cannot exist--in
-societies where art is undivided, and where, consequently, it is
-appraised by the religious understanding of life common to the whole
-people. Art criticism grew, and could grow, only on the art of the
-upper classes, who did not acknowledge the religious perception of
-their time.
-
-Universal art has a definite and indubitable internal
-criterion,--religious perception; upper-class art lacks this, and
-therefore the appreciators of that art are obliged to cling to
-some external criterion. And they find it in "the judgments of the
-finest-nurtured," as an English sthetician has phrased it, that
-is, in the authority of the people who are considered educated,
-nor in this alone, but also in a tradition of such authorities.
-This tradition is extremely misleading, both because the opinions
-of "the finest-nurtured" are often mistaken, and also because
-judgments which were valid once cease to be so with the lapse of
-time. But the critics, having no basis for their judgments, never
-cease to repeat their traditions. The classical tragedians were
-once considered good, and therefore criticism considers them to be
-so still. Dante was esteemed a great poet, Raphael a great painter,
-Bach a great musician--and the critics, lacking a standard by which
-to separate good art from bad, not only consider these artists
-great, but regard all their productions as admirable and worthy of
-imitation. Nothing has contributed, and still contributes, so much
-to the perversion of art as these authorities set up by criticism. A
-man produces a work of art, like every true artist expressing in his
-own peculiar manner a feeling he has experienced. Most people are
-infected by the artist's feeling; and his work becomes known. Then
-criticism, discussing the artist, says that the work is not bad,
-but all the same the artist is not a Dante, nor a Shakespear, nor a
-Goethe, nor a Raphael, nor what Beethoven was in his last period.
-And the young artist sets to work to copy those who are held up for
-his imitation, and he produces not only feeble works, but false
-works,--counterfeits of art.
-
-Thus, for instance, our Pushkin writes his short poems, "Evgeniy
-Onegin," "The Gipsies," and his stories--works all varying in
-quality, but all true art. But then, under the influence of false
-criticism extolling Shakespear, he writes "Boris Godunoff," a cold,
-brain-spun work, and this production is lauded by the critics, set
-up as a model, and imitations of it appear: "Minin," by Ostrovsky,
-and "Tsar Boris," by Alexe Tolsto, and such imitations of
-imitations as crowd all literatures with insignificant productions.
-The chief harm done by the critics is this,--that themselves lacking
-the capacity to be infected by art (and that is the characteristic
-of all critics; for did they not lack this they could not attempt
-the impossible--the interpretation of works of art), they pay most
-attention to, and eulogize, brain-spun, invented works, and set
-these up as models worthy of imitation. That is the reason they so
-confidently extol, in literature, the Greek tragedians, Dante,
-Tasso, Milton, Shakespear, Goethe (almost all he wrote), and, among
-recent writers, Zola and Ibsen; in music, Beethoven's last period,
-and Wagner. To justify their praise of these brain-spun, invented
-works, they devise entire theories (of which the famous theory of
-beauty is one); and not only dull but also talented people compose
-works in strict deference to these theories; and often even real
-artists, doing violence to their genius, submit to them.
-
-Every false work extolled by the critics serves as a door through
-which the hypocrites of art at once crowd in.
-
-It is solely due to the critics, who in our times still praise rude,
-savage, and, for us, often meaningless works of the ancient Greeks:
-Sophocles, Euripides, schylus, and especially Aristophanes; or,
-of modern writers, Dante, Tasso, Milton, Shakespear; in painting,
-all of Raphael, all of Michael Angelo, including his absurd "Last
-Judgment"; in music, the whole of Bach, and the whole of Beethoven,
-including his last period,--thanks only to them have the Ibsens,
-Maeterlincks, Verlaines, Mallarms, Puvis de Chavannes, Klingers,
-Bcklins, Stucks, Schneiders; in music, the Wagners, Liszts,
-Berliozes, Brahmses, and Richard Strausses, etc., and all that
-immense mass of good-for-nothing imitators of these imitators,
-become possible in our day.
-
-As a good illustration of the harmful influence of criticism, take
-its relation to Beethoven. Among his innumerable hasty productions
-written to order, there are, notwithstanding their artificiality
-of form, works of true art. But he grows deaf, cannot hear, and
-begins to write invented, unfinished works, which are consequently
-often meaningless and musically unintelligible. I know that
-musicians can imagine sounds vividly enough, and can almost hear
-what they read, but imaginary sounds can never replace real ones,
-and every composer must hear his production in order to perfect it.
-Beethoven, however, could not hear, could not perfect his work, and
-consequently published productions which are artistic ravings. But
-criticism, having once acknowledged him to be a great composer,
-seizes on just these abnormal works with special gusto, and searches
-for extraordinary beauties in them. And, to justify its laudations
-(perverting the very meaning of musical art), it attributed to music
-the property of describing what it cannot describe. And imitators
-appear--an innumerable host of imitators of these abnormal attempts
-at artistic productions which Beethoven wrote when he was deaf.
-
-Then Wagner appears, who at first in critical articles praises just
-Beethoven's last period, and connects this music with Schopenhauer's
-mystical theory that music is the expression of Will--not of
-separate manifestations of will objectivized on various planes,
-but its very essence--which is in itself as absurd as this music
-of Beethoven. And afterward he composes music of his own on this
-theory, in conjunction with another still more erroneous system of
-the union of all the arts. After Wagner yet new imitators appear,
-diverging yet further from art: Brahms, Richard Strauss, and others.
-
-Such are the results of criticism. But the third condition of the
-perversion of art, namely, art schools, is almost more harmful still.
-
-As soon as art became, not art for the whole people, but for a rich
-class, it became a profession; as soon as it became a profession,
-methods were devised to teach it; people who chose this profession
-of art began to learn these methods, and thus professional schools
-sprang up: classes of rhetoric or literature in the public schools,
-academies for painting, conservatoires for music, schools for
-dramatic art.
-
-In these schools art is taught! But art is the transmission to
-others of a special feeling experienced by the artist. How can this
-be taught in schools?
-
-No school can evoke feeling in a man, and still less can it teach
-him how to manifest it in the one particular manner natural to him
-alone. But the essence of art lies in these things.
-
-The one thing these schools can teach is how to transmit feelings
-experienced by other artists in the way those other artists
-transmitted them. And this is just what the professional schools do
-teach; and such instruction not only does not assist the spread of
-true art, but, on the contrary, by diffusing counterfeits of art,
-does more than anything else to deprive people of the capacity to
-understand true art.
-
-In literary art people are taught how, without having anything they
-wish to say, to write a many-paged composition on a theme about
-which they have never thought, and, moreover, to write it so that
-it should resemble the work of an author admitted to be celebrated.
-This is taught in schools.
-
-In painting, the chief training consists in learning to draw and
-paint from copies and models, the naked body chiefly (the very
-thing that is never seen, and which a man occupied with real art
-hardly ever has to depict), and to draw and paint as former masters
-drew and painted. The composition of pictures is taught by giving
-out themes similar to those which have been treated by former
-acknowledged celebrities.
-
-So also in dramatic schools, the pupils are taught to recite
-monologues just as tragedians, considered celebrated, declaimed them.
-
-It is the same in music. The whole theory of music is nothing but
-a disconnected repetition of those methods which the acknowledged
-masters of composition made use of.
-
-I have elsewhere quoted the profound remark of the Russian artist
-Bruloff on art, but I cannot here refrain from repeating it, because
-nothing better illustrates what can and what cannot be taught in
-the schools. Once when correcting a pupil's study, Bruloff just
-touched it in a few places, and the poor dead study immediately
-became animated. "Why, you only touched it a _wee bit_, and it is
-quite another thing!" said one of the pupils. "Art begins where
-the _wee bit_ begins," replied Bruloff, indicating by these words
-just what is most characteristic of art. The remark is true of
-all the arts, but its justice is particularly noticeable in the
-performance of music. That musical execution should be artistic,
-should be art, _i.e._ should infect, three chief conditions must
-be observed,--there are many others needed for musical perfection;
-the transition from one sound to another must be interrupted or
-continuous; the sound must increase or diminish steadily; it must
-be blended with one and not with another sound; the sound must
-have this or that timbre, and much besides,--but take the three
-chief conditions; the pitch, the time, and the strength of the
-sound. Musical execution is only then art, only then infects, when
-the sound is neither higher nor lower than it should be, that is,
-when exactly the infinitely small center of the required note is
-taken; when that note is continued exactly as long as is needed;
-and when the strength of the sound is neither more nor less than
-is required. The slightest deviation of pitch in either direction,
-the slightest increase or decrease in time, or the slightest
-strengthening or weakening of the sound beyond what is needed,
-destroys the perfection and, consequently, the infectiousness of
-the work. So that the feeling of infection by the art of music,
-which seems so simple and so easily obtained, is a thing we receive
-only when the performer finds those infinitely minute degrees which
-are necessary to perfection in music. It is the same in all arts:
-a wee bit lighter, a wee bit darker, a wee bit higher, lower, to
-the right or the left--in painting; a wee bit weaker or stronger in
-intonation, or a wee bit sooner or later--in dramatic art; a wee bit
-omitted, over-emphasized, or exaggerated--in poetry, and there is
-no contagion. Infection is only obtained when an artist finds those
-infinitely minute degrees of which a work of art consists, and only
-to the extent to which he finds them. And it is quite impossible to
-teach people by external means to find these minute degrees; they
-can only be found when a man yields to his feeling. No instruction
-can make a dancer catch just the tact of the music, or a singer or
-a fiddler take exactly the infinitely minute center of his note, or
-a sketcher draw of all possible lines the only right one, or a poet
-find the only meet arrangement of the only suitable words. All this
-is found only by feeling. And therefore schools may teach what is
-necessary in order to produce something resembling art, but not art
-itself.
-
-The teaching of the schools stops there where the _wee bit_
-begins--consequently where art begins.
-
-Accustoming people to something resembling art, disaccustoms them to
-the comprehension of real art. And that is how it comes about that
-none are more dull to art than those who have passed through the
-professional schools and been most successful in them. Professional
-schools produce an hypocrisy of art precisely akin to that hypocrisy
-of religion which is produced by theological colleges for training
-priests, pastors, and religious teachers generally. As it is
-impossible in a school to train a man so as to make a religious
-teacher of him, so it is impossible to teach a man how to become an
-artist.
-
-Art schools are thus doubly destructive of art: first, in that they
-destroy the capacity to produce real art in those who have the
-misfortune to enter them and go through a seven or eight years'
-course; secondly, in that they generate enormous quantities of that
-counterfeit art which perverts the taste of the masses and overflows
-our world. In order that born artists may know the methods of the
-various arts elaborated by former artists, there should exist in
-all elementary schools such classes for drawing and music (singing)
-that, after passing through them, every talented scholar may, by
-using existing models accessible to all, be able to perfect himself
-in his art independently.
-
-These three conditions--the professionalization of artists, art
-criticism, and art schools--have had this effect: that most people
-in our times are quite unable even to understand what art is, and
-accept as art the grossest counterfeits of it.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII
-
-
-To what an extent people of our circle and time have lost the
-capacity to receive real art, and have become accustomed to accept
-as art things that have nothing in common with it, is best seen from
-the works of Richard Wagner, which have latterly come to be more and
-more esteemed, not only by the Germans, but also by the French and
-the English, as the very highest art, revealing new horizons to us.
-
-The peculiarity of Wagner's music, as is known, consists in
-this,--that he considered that music should serve poetry, expressing
-all the shades of a poetical work.
-
-The union of the drama with music, devised in the fifteenth century
-in Italy for the revival of what they imagined to have been the
-ancient Greek drama with music, is an artificial form which had,
-and has, success only among the upper classes, and that only when
-gifted composers, such as Mozart, Weber, Rossini, and others,
-drawing inspiration from a dramatic subject, yielded freely to the
-inspiration and subordinated the text to the music, so that in their
-operas the important thing to the audience was merely the music on
-a certain text, and not the text at all, which latter, even when it
-was utterly absurd, as, for instance, in the "Magic Flute," still
-did not prevent the music from producing an artistic impression.
-
-Wagner wishes to correct the opera by letting music submit to the
-demands of poetry and unite with it. But each art has its own
-definite realm, which is not identical with the realm of other
-arts, but merely comes in contact with them; and therefore, if the
-manifestation of, I will not say several, but even of two arts--the
-dramatic and the musical--be united in one complete production,
-then the demands of the one art will make it impossible to fulfil
-the demands of the other, as has always occurred in the ordinary
-operas, where the dramatic art has submitted to, or rather yielded
-place to, the musical. Wagner wishes that musical art should submit
-to dramatic art, and that both should appear in full strength. But
-this is impossible; for every work of art, if it be a true one,
-is an expression of intimate feelings of the artist, which are
-quite exceptional, and not like anything else. Such is a musical
-production, and such is a dramatic work, if they be true art.
-And therefore, in order that a production in the one branch of
-art should coincide with a production in the other branch, it is
-necessary that the impossible should happen: that two works from
-different realms of art should be absolutely exceptional, unlike
-anything that existed before, and yet should coincide, and be
-exactly alike.
-
-And this cannot be, just as there cannot be two men, or even two
-leaves on a tree, exactly alike. Still less can two works from
-different realms of art, the musical and the literary, be absolutely
-alike. If they coincide, then either one is a work of art and the
-other a counterfeit, or both are counterfeits. Two live leaves
-cannot be exactly alike, but two artificial leaves may be. And so it
-is with works of art. They can only coincide completely when neither
-the one nor the other is art, but only cunningly devised semblances
-of it.
-
-If poetry and music may be joined, as occurs in hymns, songs,
-and _romances_--(though even in these the music does not follow
-the changes of each verse of the text, as Wagner wants to, but
-the song and the music merely produce a coincident effect on the
-mind)--this occurs only because lyrical poetry and music have, to
-some extent, one and the same aim: to produce a mental condition and
-the conditions produced by lyrical poetry and by music can, more or
-less, coincide. But even in these conjunctions the center of gravity
-always lies in one of the two productions, so that it is one of
-them that produces the artistic impression while the other remains
-unregarded. And still less is it possible for such union to exist
-between epic or dramatic poetry and music.
-
-Moreover, one of the chief conditions of artistic creation is the
-complete freedom of the artist from every kind of preconceived
-demand. And the necessity of adjusting his musical work to a work
-from another realm of art is a preconceived demand of such a kind
-as to destroy all possibility of creative power; and therefore works
-of this kind, adjusted to one another, are, and must be, as has
-always happened, not works of art, but only imitations of art, like
-the music of a melodrama, signatures to pictures, illustrations, and
-librettos to operas.
-
-And such are Wagner's productions. And a confirmation of this is
-to be seen in the fact that Wagner's new music lacks the chief
-characteristic of every true work of art; namely, such entirety
-and completeness that the smallest alteration in its form would
-disturb the meaning of the whole work. In a true work of art--poem,
-drama, picture, song, or symphony--it is impossible to extract one
-line, one scene, one figure, or one bar from its place and put it
-in another, without infringing the significance of the whole work;
-just as it is impossible, without infringing the life of an organic
-being, to extract an organ from one place and insert it in another.
-But in the music of Wagner's last period, with the exception of
-certain parts of little importance which have an independent musical
-meaning, it is possible to make all kinds of transpositions, putting
-what was in front behind, and _vice versa_, without altering the
-musical sense. And the reason why these transpositions do not alter
-the sense of Wagner's music is because the sense lies in the words
-and not in the music.
-
-The musical score of Wagner's later operas is like what the result
-would be should one of those versifiers--of whom there are now
-many, with tongues so broken that they can write verses on any
-theme to any rhymes in any rhythm, which sound as if they had a
-meaning--conceive the idea of illustrating by his verses some
-symphony or sonata of Beethoven, or some ballade of Chopin, in
-the following manner. To the first bars, of one character, he
-writes verses corresponding in his opinion to those first bars.
-Next come some bars of a different character, and he also writes
-verses corresponding in his opinion to them, but with no internal
-connection with the first verses, and, moreover, without rhymes and
-without rhythm. Such a production, without the music, would be
-exactly parallel in poetry to what Wagner's operas are in music, if
-heard without the words.
-
-But Wagner is not only a musician, he is also a poet, or both
-together; and therefore, to judge of Wagner, one must know his
-poetry also--that same poetry which the music has to subserve. The
-chief poetical production of Wagner is "The Nibelung's Ring." This
-work has attained such enormous importance in our time, and has such
-influence on all that now professes to be art, that it is necessary
-for every one to-day to have some idea of it. I have carefully read
-through the four booklets which contain this work, and have drawn
-up a brief summary of it, which I give in Appendix III. I would
-strongly advise the reader (if he has not perused the poem itself,
-which would be the best thing to do) at least to read my account of
-it, so as to have an idea of this extraordinary work. It is a model
-work of counterfeit art, so gross as to be even ridiculous.
-
-But we are told that it is impossible to judge of Wagner's works
-without seeing them on the stage. The Second Day of this drama,
-which, as I was told, is the best part of the whole work, was given
-in Moscow last winter, and I went to see the performance.
-
-When I arrived the enormous theater was already filled from top to
-bottom. There were grand dukes, and the flower of the aristocracy,
-of the merchant class, of the learned, and of the middle-class
-official public. Most of them held the libretto, fathoming its
-meaning. Musicians--some of them elderly, gray-haired men--followed
-the music, score in hand. Evidently the performance of this work was
-an event of importance.
-
-I was rather late, but I was told that the short prelude, with
-which the act begins, was of little importance, and that it did not
-matter having missed it. When I arrived, an actor sat on the stage
-amid decorations intended to represent a cave, and before something
-which was meant to represent a smith's forge. He was dressed in
-trico-tights, with a cloak of skins, wore a wig and an artificial
-beard, and with white, weak genteel hands (his easy movements,
-and especially the shape of his stomach and his lack of muscle
-revealed the actor) beat an impossible sword with an unnatural
-hammer in a way in which no one ever uses a hammer; and at the
-same time, opening his mouth in a strange way, he sang something
-incomprehensible. The music of various instruments accompanied the
-strange sounds which he emitted. From the libretto one was able
-to gather that the actor had to represent a powerful gnome, who
-lived in the cave, and who was forging a sword for Siegfried, whom
-he had reared. One could tell he was a gnome by the fact that the
-actor walked all the time bending the knees of his trico-covered
-legs. This gnome, still opening his mouth in the same strange way,
-long continued to sing or shout. The music meanwhile runs over
-something strange, like beginnings which are not continued and do
-not get finished. From the libretto one could learn that the gnome
-is telling himself about a ring which a giant had obtained, and
-which the gnome wishes to procure through Siegfried's aid, while
-Siegfried wants a good sword, on the forging of which the gnome is
-occupied. After this conversation or singing to himself has gone
-on rather a long time, other sounds are heard in the orchestra,
-also like something beginning and not finishing, and another actor
-appears, with a horn slung over his shoulder, and accompanied by a
-man running on all fours dressed up as a bear, whom he sets at the
-smith-gnome. The latter runs away without unbending the knees of
-his trico-covered legs. This actor with the horn represented the
-hero, Siegfried. The sounds which were emitted in the orchestra on
-the entrance of this actor were intended to represent Siegfried's
-character, and are called Siegfried's _leit-motiv_. And these
-sounds are repeated each time Siegfried appears. There is one fixed
-combination of sounds, or _leit-motiv_, for each character, and this
-_leit-motiv_ is repeated every time the person whom it represents
-appears; and when any one is mentioned the _motiv_ is heard which
-relates to that person. Moreover, each article also has its own
-_leit-motiv_ or chord. There is a _motiv_ of the ring, a _motiv_
-of the helmet, a _motiv_ of the apple, a _motiv_ of fire, spear,
-sword, water, etc.; and as soon as the ring, helmet, or apple is
-mentioned, the _motiv_ or chord of the ring, helmet, or apple is
-heard. The actor with the horn opens his mouth as unnaturally as the
-gnome, and long continues in a chanting voice to shout some words,
-and in a similar chant Mime (that is the gnome's name) answers
-something or other to him. The meaning of this conversation can
-only be discovered from the libretto; and it is that Siegfried was
-brought up by the gnome, and therefore, for some reason, hates him
-and always wishes to kill him. The gnome has forged a sword for
-Siegfried, but Siegfried is dissatisfied with it. From a ten-page
-conversation (by the libretto), lasting half an hour and conducted
-with the same strange openings of the mouth, and chantings, it
-appears that Siegfried's mother gave birth to him in the wood, and
-that concerning his father all that is known is that he had a sword
-which was broken, the pieces of which are in Mime's possession,
-and that Siegfried does not know fear and wishes to go out of
-the wood. Mime, however, does not want to let him go. During the
-conversation the music never omits, at the mention of father, sword,
-etc., to sound the _motiv_ of these people and things. After these
-conversations fresh sounds are heard--those of the god Wotan--and a
-wanderer appears. This wanderer is the god Wotan. Also dressed up in
-a wig, and also in tights, this god Wotan, standing in a stupid pose
-with a spear, thinks proper to recount what Mime must have known
-before, but what it is necessary to tell the audience. He does not
-tell it simply, but in the form of riddles which he orders himself
-to guess, staking his head (one does not know why) that he will
-guess right. Moreover, whenever the wanderer strikes his spear on
-the ground, fire comes out of the ground, and in the orchestra the
-sounds of spear and of fire are heard. The orchestra accompanies the
-conversation, and the _motiv_ of the people and things spoken of
-are always artfully intermingled. Besides this the music expresses
-feelings in the most nave manner: the terrible by sounds in the
-bass, the frivolous by rapid touches in the treble, etc.
-
-The riddles have no meaning except to tell the audience what the
-_nibelungs_ are, what the giants are, what the gods are, and
-what has happened before. This conversation also is chanted with
-strangely opened mouths and continues for eight libretto pages,
-and correspondingly long on the stage. After this the wanderer
-departs, and Siegfried returns and talks with Mime for thirteen
-pages more. There is not a single melody the whole of this time,
-but merely intertwinings of the _leit-motiv_ of the people and
-things mentioned. The conversation tells that Mime wishes to teach
-Siegfried fear, and that Siegfried does not know what fear is.
-Having finished this conversation, Siegfried seizes one of the
-pieces of what is meant to represent the broken sword, saws it up,
-puts it on what is meant to represent the forge, melts it, and then
-forges it and sings: Heiho! heiho! heiho! Ho! ho! Aha! oho! aha!
-Heiaho! heiaho! heiaho! Ho! ho! Hahei! hoho! hahei! and Act I.
-finishes.
-
-As far as the question I had come to the theater to decide was
-concerned, my mind was fully made up, as surely as on the question
-of the merits of my lady acquaintance's novel when she read me the
-scene between the loose-haired maiden in the white dress and the
-hero with two white dogs and a hat with a feather _ la Guillaume
-Tell_.
-
-From an author who could compose such spurious scenes, outraging all
-sthetic feeling, as those which I had witnessed, there was nothing
-to be hoped; it may safely be decided that all that such an author
-can write will be bad, because he evidently does not know what a
-true work of art is. I wished to leave, but the friends I was with
-asked me to remain, declaring that one could not form an opinion by
-that one act, and that the second would be better. So I stopped for
-the second act.
-
-Act II., night. Afterward, dawn. In general, the whole piece is
-crammed with lights, clouds, moonlight, darkness, magic fires,
-thunder, etc.
-
-The scene represents a wood, and in the wood there is a cave. At the
-entrance of the cave sits a third actor in tights, representing
-another gnome. It dawns. Enter the god Wotan, again with a spear,
-and again in the guise of a wanderer. Again his sounds, together
-with fresh sounds of the deepest bass that can be produced. These
-latter indicate that the dragon is speaking. Wotan awakens the
-dragon. The same bass sounds are repeated, growing yet deeper and
-deeper. First the dragon says, "I want to sleep," but afterward he
-crawls out of the cave. The dragon is represented by two men; it
-is dressed in a green, scaly skin, waves a tail at one end, while
-at the other it opens a kind of crocodile's jaw that is fastened
-on, and from which flames appear. The dragon (who is meant to be
-dreadful, and may appear so to five-year-old children) speaks some
-words in a terribly bass voice. This is all so stupid, so like what
-is done in a booth at a fair, that it is surprising that people
-over seven years of age can witness it seriously; yet thousands of
-quasi-cultured people sit and attentively hear and see it, and are
-delighted.
-
-Siegfried, with his horn, reappears, as does Mime also. In the
-orchestra the sounds denoting them are emitted, and they talk about
-whether Siegfried does or does not know what fear is. Mime goes
-away, and a scene commences which is intended to be most poetical.
-Siegfried, in his tights, lies down in a would-be beautiful pose,
-and alternately keeps silent and talks to himself. He ponders,
-listens to the song of birds, and wishes to imitate them. For this
-purpose he cuts a reed with his sword and makes a pipe. The dawn
-grows brighter and brighter; the birds sing. Siegfried tries to
-imitate the birds. In the orchestra is heard the imitation of birds,
-alternating with sounds corresponding to the words he speaks. But
-Siegfried does not succeed with his pipe-playing, so he plays on
-his horn instead. This scene is unendurable. Of music, _i.e._ of
-art serving as a means to transmit a state of mind experienced by
-the author, there is not even a suggestion. There is something that
-is absolutely unintelligible musically. In a musical sense a hope
-is continually experienced, followed by disappointment, as if a
-musical thought were commenced only to be broken off. If there are
-something like musical commencements, these commencements are so
-short, so encumbered with complications of harmony and orchestration
-and with effects of contrast, are so obscure and unfinished, and
-what is happening on the stage meanwhile is so abominably false,
-that it is difficult even to perceive these musical snatches, let
-alone to be infected by them. Above all, from the very beginning to
-the very end, and in each note, the author's purpose is so audible
-and visible that one sees and hears neither Siegfried nor the birds,
-but only a limited, self-opinionated German, of bad taste and bad
-style, who has a most false conception of poetry, and who, in the
-rudest and most primitive manner, wishes to transmit to me these
-false and mistaken conceptions of his.
-
-Every one knows the feeling of distrust and resistance which is
-always evoked by an author's evident predetermination. A narrator
-need only say in advance, Prepare to cry or to laugh, and you are
-sure neither to cry nor to laugh. But when you see that an author
-prescribes emotion at what is not touching, but only laughable or
-disgusting, and when you see, moreover, that the author is fully
-assured that he has captivated you, a painfully tormenting feeling
-results, similar to what one would feel if an old, deformed woman
-put on a ball-dress, and smilingly coquetted before you, confident
-of your approbation. This impression was strengthened by the fact
-that around me I saw a crowd of three thousand people, who not only
-patiently witnessed all this absurd nonsense, but even considered it
-their duty to be delighted with it.
-
-I somehow managed to sit out the next scene also, in which the
-monster appears, to the accompaniment of his bass notes intermingled
-with the _motiv_ of Siegfried; but after the fight with the monster,
-and all the roars, fires, and sword-wavings, I could stand no more
-of it, and escaped from the theater with a feeling of repulsion
-which, even now, I cannot forget.
-
-Listening to this opera, I involuntarily thought of a respected,
-wise, educated country laborer,--one, for instance, of those wise
-and truly religious men whom I know among the peasants,--and I
-pictured to myself the terrible perplexity such a man would be in
-were he to witness what I was seeing that evening.
-
-What would he think if he knew of all the labor spent on such
-a performance, and saw that audience, those great ones of the
-earth,--old, bald-headed, gray-bearded men, whom he had been
-accustomed to respect,--sit silent and attentive, listening to and
-looking at all these stupidities for five hours on end? Not to speak
-of an adult laborer, one can hardly imagine even a child of over
-seven occupying himself with such a stupid, incoherent fairy tale.
-
-And yet an enormous audience, the cream of the cultured upper
-classes, sits out five hours of this insane performance, and goes
-away imagining that by paying tribute to this nonsense it has
-acquired a fresh right to esteem itself advanced and enlightened.
-
-I speak of the Moscow public. But what is the Moscow public? It is
-but a hundredth part of that public which, while considering itself
-most highly enlightened, esteems it a merit to have so lost the
-capacity of being infected by art, that not only can it witness this
-stupid sham without being revolted, but can even take delight in it.
-
-In Bayreuth, where these performances were first given, people who
-consider themselves finely cultured assembled from the ends of the
-earth, spent, say one hundred pounds each, to see this performance,
-and for four days running they went to see and hear this nonsensical
-rubbish, sitting it out for six hours each day.
-
-But why did people go, and why do they still go to these
-performances, and why do they admire them? The question naturally
-presents itself: How is the success of Wagner's works to be
-explained?
-
-That success I explain to myself in this way: thanks to his
-exceptional position in having at his disposal the resources of a
-king, Wagner was able to command all the methods for counterfeiting
-art which have been developed by long usage, and, employing these
-methods with great ability, he produced a model work of counterfeit
-art. The reason why I have selected his work for my illustration is,
-that in no other counterfeit of art known to me are all the methods
-by which art is counterfeited--namely, borrowings, imitation,
-effects, and interestingness--so ably and powerfully united.
-
-From the subject, borrowed from antiquity, to the clouds and the
-risings of the sun and moon, Wagner, in this work, has made use of
-all that is considered poetical. We have here the sleeping beauty,
-and nymphs, and subterranean fires, and gnomes, and battles, and
-swords, and love, and incest, and a monster, and singing-birds--the
-whole arsenal of the poetical is brought into action.
-
-Moreover, everything is imitative; the decorations are imitated,
-and the costumes are imitated. All are just as, according to the
-data supplied by archology, they would have been in antiquity. The
-very sounds are imitative; for Wagner, who was not destitute of
-musical talent, invented just such sounds as imitate the strokes of
-a hammer, the hissing of molten iron, the singing of birds, etc.
-
-Furthermore, in this work everything is in the highest degree
-striking in its effects and in its peculiarities: its monsters, its
-magic fires, and its scenes under water; the darkness in which the
-audience sit, the invisibility of the orchestra, and the hitherto
-unemployed combinations of harmony.
-
-And besides, it is all interesting. The interest lies not only in
-the question who will kill whom, and who will marry whom, and who
-is whose son, and what will happen next?--the interest lies also
-in the relation of the music to the text. The rolling waves of the
-Rhine--now how is that to be expressed in music? An evil gnome
-appears--how is the music to express an evil gnome?--and how is it
-to express the sensuality of this gnome? How will bravery, fire,
-or apples be expressed in music? How are the _leit-motiv_ of the
-people speaking to be interwoven with the _leit-motiv_ of the
-people and objects about whom they speak? Besides, the music has a
-further interest. It diverges from all formerly accepted laws, and
-most unexpected and totally new modulations crop up (as is not only
-possible, but even easy in music having no inner law of its being);
-the dissonances are new, and are allowed in a new way--and this,
-too, is interesting.
-
-And it is this poeticality, imitativeness, effectfulness, and
-interestingness which, thanks to the peculiarities of Wagner's
-talent, and to the advantageous position in which he was placed, are
-in these productions carried to the highest pitch of perfection,
-that so act on the spectator, hypnotizing him as one would be
-hypnotized who should listen for several consecutive hours to the
-ravings of a maniac pronounced with great oratorical power.
-
-People say: "You cannot judge without having seen Wagner performed
-at Bayreuth: in the dark, where the orchestra is out of sight
-concealed under the stage, and where the performance is brought
-to the highest perfection." And this just proves that we have
-here no question of art, but one of hypnotism. It is just what
-the spiritualists say. To convince you of the reality of their
-apparitions they usually say, "You cannot judge; you must try it,
-be present at several sances," _i.e._ come and sit silent in the
-dark for hours together in the same room with semi-sane people, and
-repeat this some ten times over, and you shall see all that we see.
-
-Yes, naturally! Only place yourself in such conditions, and you
-may see what you will. But this can be still more quickly attained
-by getting drunk or smoking opium. It is the same when listening
-to an opera of Wagner's. Sit in the dark for four days in company
-with people who are not quite normal, and, through the auditory
-nerves, subject your brain to the strongest action of the sounds
-best adapted to excite it, and you will no doubt be reduced to an
-abnormal condition, and be enchanted by absurdities. But to attain
-this end you do not even need four days; the five hours during
-which one "day" is enacted, as in Moscow, are quite enough. Nor
-are five hours needed; even one hour is enough for people who have
-no clear conception of what art should be, and who have come to the
-conclusion in advance that what they are going to see is excellent,
-and that indifference or dissatisfaction with this work will serve
-as a proof of their inferiority and lack of culture.
-
-I observed the audience present at this representation. The people
-who led the whole audience and gave the tone to it were those who
-had previously been hypnotized, and who again succumbed to the
-hypnotic influence to which they were accustomed. These hypnotized
-people, being in an abnormal condition, were perfectly enraptured.
-Moreover, all the art critics, who lack the capacity to be infected
-by art and therefore always especially prize works like Wagner's
-opera where it is all an affair of the intellect, also, with much
-profundity, expressed their approval of a work affording such ample
-material for ratiocination. And following these two groups went
-that large city crowd (indifferent to art, with their capacity to
-be infected by it perverted and partly atrophied), headed by the
-princes, millionaires, and art patrons, who, like sorry harriers,
-keep close to those who most loudly and decidedly express their
-opinion.
-
-"Oh, yes, certainly! What poetry! Marvelous! Especially the birds!"
-"Yes, yes! I am quite vanquished!" exclaim these people, repeating
-in various tones what they have just heard from men whose opinion
-appears to them authoritative.
-
-If some people do feel insulted by the absurdity and spuriousness of
-the whole thing, they are timidly silent, as sober men are timid and
-silent when surrounded by tipsy ones.
-
-And thus, thanks to the masterly skill with which it counterfeits
-art while having nothing in common with it, a meaningless, coarse,
-spurious production finds acceptance all over the world, costs
-millions of roubles to produce, and assists more and more to pervert
-the taste of people of the upper classes and their conception of
-what is art.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIV
-
-
-I know that most men--not only those considered clever, but even
-those who are very clever, and capable of understanding most
-difficult scientific, mathematical, or philosophic problems--can
-very seldom discern even the simplest and most obvious truth if it
-be such as to oblige them to admit the falsity of conclusions they
-have formed, perhaps with much difficulty--conclusions of which
-they are proud, which they have taught to others, and on which they
-have built their lives. And therefore I have little hope that what
-I adduce as to the perversion of art and taste in our society will
-be accepted or even seriously considered. Nevertheless, I must state
-fully the inevitable conclusion to which my investigation into the
-question of art has brought me. This investigation has brought me
-to the conviction that almost all that our society considers to
-be art, good art, and the whole of art, far from being real and
-good art, and the whole of art, is not even art at all, but only a
-counterfeit of it. This position, I know, will seem very strange and
-paradoxical; but if we once acknowledge art to be a human activity
-by means of which some people transmit their feelings to others (and
-not a service of Beauty, nor a manifestation of the Idea, and so
-forth), we shall inevitably have to admit this further conclusion
-also. If it is true that art is an activity by means of which one
-man, having experienced a feeling, intentionally transmits it to
-others, then we have inevitably to admit further, that of all that
-among us is termed the art of the upper classes--of all those
-novels, stories, dramas, comedies, pictures, sculptures, symphonies,
-operas, operettas, ballets, etc., which profess to be works of
-art--scarcely one in a hundred thousand proceeds from an emotion
-felt by its author, all the rest being but manufactured counterfeits
-of art, in which borrowing, imitating, effects, and interestingness
-replace the contagion of feeling. That the proportion of real
-productions of art is to the counterfeits as one to some hundreds of
-thousands or even more, may be seen by the following calculation.
-I have read somewhere that the artist painters in Paris alone
-number 30,000; there will probably be as many in England, as many
-in Germany, and as many in Russia, Italy, and the smaller states
-combined. So that in all there will be in Europe, say, 120,000
-painters; and there are probably as many musicians and as many
-literary artists. If these 360,000 individuals produce three works
-a year each (and many of them produce ten or more), then each year
-yields over a million so-called works of art. How many, then, must
-have been produced in the last ten years, and how many in the whole
-time since upper-class art broke off from the art of the whole
-people? Evidently millions. Yet who of all the connoisseurs of art
-has received impressions from all these pseudo works of art? Not to
-mention all the laboring classes who have no conception of these
-productions, even people of the upper classes cannot know one in a
-thousand of them all, and cannot remember those they have known.
-These works all appear under the guise of art, produce no impression
-on any one (except when they serve as pastimes for the idle crowd of
-rich people), and vanish utterly.
-
-In reply to this it is usually said that without this enormous
-number of unsuccessful attempts we should not have the real works of
-art. But such reasoning is as though a baker, in reply to a reproach
-that his bread was bad, were to say that if it were not for the
-hundreds of spoiled loaves there would not be any well-baked ones.
-It is true that where there is gold there is also much sand; but
-that cannot serve as a reason for talking a lot of nonsense in order
-to say something wise.
-
-We are surrounded by productions considered artistic. Thousands
-of verses, thousands of poems, thousands of novels, thousands of
-dramas, thousands of pictures, thousands of musical pieces, follow
-one after another. All the verses describe love, or nature, or the
-author's state of mind, and in all of them rhyme and rhythm are
-observed. All the dramas and comedies are splendidly mounted and
-are performed by admirably trained actors. All the novels are
-divided into chapters; all of them describe love, contain effective
-situations, and correctly describe the details of life. All the
-symphonies contain _allegro_, _andante_, _scherzo_, and _finale_;
-all consist of modulations and chords, and are played by highly
-trained musicians. All the pictures, in gold frames, saliently
-depict faces and sundry accessories. But among these productions
-in the various branches of art, there is in each branch one among
-hundreds of thousands, not only somewhat better than the rest, but
-differing from them as a diamond differs from paste. The one is
-priceless, the others not only have no value, but are worse than
-valueless, for they deceive and pervert taste. And yet, externally,
-they are, to a man of perverted or atrophied artistic perception,
-precisely alike.
-
-In our society the difficulty of recognizing real works of art is
-further increased by the fact that the external quality of the work
-in false productions is not only no worse, but often better, than in
-real ones; the counterfeit is often more effective than the real,
-and its subject more interesting. How is one to discriminate? How is
-one to find a production in no way distinguished in externals from
-hundreds of thousands of others intentionally made to imitate it
-precisely?
-
-For a country peasant of unperverted taste this is as easy as it is
-for an animal of unspoilt scent to follow the trace he needs among
-a thousand others in wood or forest. The animal unerringly finds
-what he needs. So also the man, if only his natural qualities have
-not been perverted, will, without fail, select from among thousands
-of objects the real work of art he requires,--that infecting him
-with the feeling experienced by the artist. But it is not so with
-those whose taste has been perverted by their education and life.
-The receptive feeling for art of these people is atrophied, and in
-valuing artistic productions they must be guided by discussion and
-study, which discussion and study completely confuse them. So that
-most people in our society are quite unable to distinguish a work of
-art from the grossest counterfeit. People sit for whole hours in
-concert-rooms and theaters listening to the new composers, consider
-it a duty to read the novels of the famous modern novelists, and to
-look at pictures representing either something incomprehensible, or
-just the very things they see much better in real life; and, above
-all, they consider it incumbent on them to be enraptured by all
-this, imagining it all to be art, while at the same time they will
-pass real works of art by, not only without attention, but even
-with contempt, merely because, in their circle, these works are not
-included in the list of works of art.
-
-A few days ago I was returning home from a walk feeling depressed,
-as occurs sometimes. On nearing the house I heard the loud singing
-of a large choir of peasant women. They were welcoming my daughter,
-celebrating her return home after her marriage. In this singing,
-with its cries and clanging of scythes, such a definite feeling
-of joy, cheerfulness, and energy was expressed, that, without
-noticing how it infected me, I continued my way toward the house
-in a better mood, and reached home smiling, and quite in good
-spirits. That same evening, a visitor, an admirable musician,
-famed for his execution of classical music, and particularly of
-Beethoven, played us Beethoven's sonata, Opus 101. For the benefit
-of those who might otherwise attribute my judgment of that sonata
-of Beethoven to non-comprehension of it, I should mention that,
-whatever other people understand of that sonata and of other
-productions of Beethoven's later period, I, being very susceptible
-to music, equally understood. For a long time I used to attune
-myself so as to delight in those shapeless improvisations which
-form the subject-matter of the works of Beethoven's later period,
-but I had only to consider the question of art seriously, and to
-compare the impression I received from Beethoven's later works with
-those pleasant, clear, and strong musical impressions which are
-transmitted, for instance, by the melodies of Bach (his arias),
-Haydn, Mozart, Chopin, (when his melodies are not overloaded with
-complications and ornamentation), and of Beethoven himself in
-his earlier period, and, above all, with the impressions produced
-by folk-songs,--Italian, Norwegian, or Russian,--by the Hungarian
-_tzardas_, and other such simple, clear, and powerful music, and the
-obscure, almost unhealthy excitement from Beethoven's later pieces
-that I had artificially evoked in myself was immediately destroyed.
-
-On the completion of the performance (though it was noticeable that
-every one had become dull) those present, in the accepted manner,
-warmly praised Beethoven's profound production, and did not forget
-to add that formerly they had not been able to understand that last
-period of his, but that they now saw that he was really then at his
-very best. And when I ventured to compare the impression made on me
-by the singing of the peasant women--an impression which had been
-shared by all who heard it--with the effect of this sonata, the
-admirers of Beethoven only smiled contemptuously, not considering it
-necessary to reply to such strange remarks.
-
-But, for all that, the song of the peasant women was real art,
-transmitting a definite and strong feeling; while the 101st sonata
-of Beethoven was only an unsuccessful attempt at art, containing no
-definite feeling, and therefore not infectious.
-
-For my work on art I have this winter read diligently, though with
-great effort, the celebrated novels and stories, praised by all
-Europe, written by Zola, Bourget, Huysmans, and Kipling. At the
-same time I chanced on a story in a child's magazine, and by a
-quite unknown writer, which told of the Easter preparations in a
-poor widow's family. The story tells how the mother managed with
-difficulty to obtain some wheat-flour, which she poured on the
-table ready to knead. She then went out to procure some yeast,
-telling the children not to leave the hut, and to take care of the
-flour. When the mother had gone, some other children ran shouting
-near the window, calling those in the hut to come to play. The
-children forgot their mother's warning, ran into the street, and
-were soon engrossed in the game. The mother, on her return with
-the yeast, finds a hen on the table throwing the last of the flour
-to her chickens, who were busily picking it out of the dust of the
-earthen floor. The mother, in despair, scolds the children, who
-cry bitterly. And the mother begins to feel pity for them--but the
-white flour has all gone. So to mend matters she decides to make the
-Easter cake with sifted rye-flour, brushing it over with white of
-egg, and surrounding it with eggs. "Rye-bread which we bake is akin
-to any cake," says the mother, using a rhyming proverb to console
-the children for not having an Easter cake made with white flour.
-And the children, quickly passing from despair to rapture, repeat
-the proverb and await the Easter cake more merrily even than before.
-
-Well! the reading of the novels and stories by Zola, Bourget,
-Huysmans, Kipling, and others, handling the most harrowing subjects,
-did not touch me for one moment, and I was provoked with the authors
-all the while, as one is provoked with a man who considers you so
-nave that he does not even conceal the trick by which he intends to
-take you in. From the first lines you see the intention with which
-the book is written, and the details all become superfluous, and
-one feels dull. Above all, one knows that the author had no other
-feeling all the time than a desire to write a story or a novel, and
-so one receives no artistic impression. On the other hand, I could
-not tear myself away from the unknown author's tale of the children
-and the chickens, because I was at once infected by the feeling
-which the author had evidently experienced, revoked in himself, and
-transmitted.
-
-Vasnetsoff is one of our Russian painters. He has painted
-ecclesiastical pictures in Kieff Cathedral, and every one praises
-him as the founder of some new, elevated kind of Christian art. He
-worked at those pictures for ten years, was paid tens of thousands
-of roubles for them, and they are all simply bad imitations of
-imitations of imitations, destitute of any spark of feeling. And
-this same Vasnetsoff drew a picture for Tourgenieff's story, "The
-Quail" (in which it is told how, in his son's presence, a father
-killed a quail and felt pity for it), showing the boy asleep with
-pouting upper lip, and above him, as a dream, the quail. And this
-picture is a true work of art.
-
-In the English Academy of 1897 two pictures were exhibited together;
-one of which, by J. C. Dolman, was the temptation of St. Anthony.
-The saint is on his knees praying. Behind him stands a naked woman
-and animals of some kind. It is apparent that the naked woman
-pleased the artist very much, but that Anthony did not concern him
-at all; and that, so far from the temptation being terrible to him
-(the artist) it is highly agreeable. And therefore if there be any
-art in this picture, it is very nasty and false. Next in the same
-book of academy pictures comes a picture by Langley, showing a stray
-beggar-boy, who has evidently been called in by a woman who has
-taken pity on him. The boy, pitifully drawing his bare feet under
-the bench, is eating; the woman is looking on, probably considering
-whether he will not want some more; and a girl of about seven,
-leaning on her arm, is carefully and seriously looking on, not
-taking her eyes from the hungry boy, and evidently understanding for
-the first time what poverty is, and what inequality among people is,
-and asking herself why she has everything provided for her while
-this boy goes barefoot and hungry? She feels sorry, and yet pleased.
-And she loves both the boy and goodness.... And one feels that the
-artist loved this girl, and that she too loves. And this picture, by
-an artist who, I think, is not very widely known, is an admirable
-and true work of art.
-
-I remember seeing a performance of "Hamlet" by Rossi. Both the
-tragedy itself and the performer who took the chief part are
-considered by our critics to represent the climax of supreme
-dramatic art. And yet, both from the subject-matter of the drama
-and from the performance, I experienced all the time that peculiar
-suffering which is caused by false imitations of works of art. And
-I lately read of a theatrical performance among the savage tribe,
-the Voguls. A spectator describes the play. A big Vogul and a little
-one, both dressed in reindeer skins, represent a reindeer-doe and
-its young. A third Vogul, with a bow, represents a huntsman on
-snow-shoes, and a fourth imitates with his voice a bird that warns
-the reindeer of their danger. The play is that the huntsman follows
-the track that the doe with its young one has traveled. The deer run
-off the scene, and again reappear. (Such performances take place
-in a small tent-house.) The huntsman gains more and more on the
-pursued. The little deer is tired, and presses against its mother.
-The doe stops to draw breath. The hunter comes up with them and
-draws his bow. But just then the bird sounds its note, warning the
-deer of their danger. They escape. Again there is a chase, and again
-the hunter gains on them, catches them, and lets fly his arrow. The
-arrow strikes the young deer. Unable to run, the little one presses
-against its mother. The mother licks its wound. The hunter draws
-another arrow. The audience, as the eye-witness describes them, are
-paralyzed with suspense; deep groans and even weeping is heard among
-them. And, from the mere description, I felt that this was a true
-work of art.
-
-What I am saying will be considered irrational paradox, at which
-one can only be amazed; but for all that I must say what I think;
-namely, that people of our circle, of whom some compose verses,
-stories, novels, operas, symphonies, and sonatas, paint all
-kinds of pictures and make statues, while others hear and look
-at these things, and again others appraise and criticize it all,
-discuss, condemn, triumph, and raise monuments to one another,
-generation after generation,--that all these people, with very few
-exceptions, artists, and public, and critics, have never (except
-in childhood and earliest youth, before hearing any discussions
-on art) experienced that simple feeling familiar to the plainest
-man and even to a child, that sense of infection with another's
-feeling,--compelling us to joy in another's gladness, to sorrow at
-another's grief, and to mingle souls with another,--which is the
-very essence of art. And therefore these people not only cannot
-distinguish true works of art from counterfeits, but continually
-mistake for real art the worst and most artificial, while they do
-not even perceive works of real art, because the counterfeits are
-always more ornate, while true art is modest.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XV
-
-
-Art, in our society, has been so perverted that not only has bad art
-come to be considered good, but even the very perception of what
-art really is has been lost. In order to be able to speak about the
-art of our society, it is, therefore, first of all necessary to
-distinguish art from counterfeit art.
-
-There is one indubitable indication distinguishing real art from
-its counterfeit, namely, the infectiousness of art. If a man,
-without exercising effort and without altering his standpoint,
-on reading, hearing, or seeing another man's work, experiences a
-mental condition which unites him with that man and with other
-people who also partake of that work of art, then the object evoking
-that condition is a work of art. And however poetical, realistic,
-effectful, or interesting a work may be, it is not a work of art
-if it does not evoke that feeling (quite distinct from all other
-feelings) of joy, and of spiritual union with another (the author)
-and with others (those who are also infected by it).
-
-It is true that this indication is an _internal_ one, and that there
-are people who have forgotten what the action of real art is, who
-expect something else from art (in our society the great majority
-are in this state), and that therefore such people may mistake for
-this sthetic feeling the feeling of divertisement and a certain
-excitement which they receive from counterfeits of art. But though
-it is impossible to undeceive these people, just as it is impossible
-to convince a man suffering from "Daltonism" that green is not red,
-yet, for all that, this indication remains perfectly definite to
-those whose feeling for art is neither perverted nor atrophied, and
-it clearly distinguishes the feeling produced by art from all other
-feelings.
-
-The chief peculiarity of this feeling is that the receiver of a
-true artistic impression is so united to the artist that he feels
-as if the work were his own and not some one else's,--as if what
-it expresses were just what he had long been wishing to express. A
-real work of art destroys, in the consciousness of the receiver, the
-separation between himself and the artist; nor that alone, but also
-between himself and all whose minds receive this work of art. In
-this freeing of our personality from its separation and isolation,
-in this uniting of it with others, lies the chief characteristic and
-the great attractive force of art.
-
-If a man is infected by the author's condition of soul, if he feels
-this emotion and this union with others, then the object which has
-effected this is art; but if there be no such infection, if there be
-not this union with the author and with others who are moved by the
-same work--then it is not art. And not only is infection a sure sign
-of art, but the degree of infectiousness is also the sole measure of
-excellence in art.
-
-_The stronger the infection the better is the art; as art_, speaking
-now apart from its subject-matter, _i.e._ not considering the
-quality of the feelings it transmits.
-
-And the degree of the infectiousness of art depends on three
-conditions:--
-
-(1) On the greater or lesser individuality of the feeling
-transmitted; (2) on the greater or lesser clearness with which the
-feeling is transmitted; (3) on the sincerity of the artist, _i.e._
-on the greater or lesser force with which the artist himself feels
-the emotion he transmits.
-
-The more individual the feeling transmitted the more strongly does
-it act on the receiver; the more individual the state of soul into
-which he is transferred the more pleasure does the receiver obtain,
-and therefore the more readily and strongly does he join in it.
-
-The clearness of expression assists infection, because the receiver,
-who mingles in consciousness with the author, is the better
-satisfied the more clearly the feeling is transmitted, which, as it
-seems to him, he has long known and felt, and for which he has only
-now found expression.
-
-But most of all is the degree of infectiousness of art increased by
-the degree of sincerity in the artist. As soon as the spectator,
-hearer, or reader feels that the artist is infected by his own
-production, and writes, sings, or plays for himself, and not merely
-to act on others, this mental condition of the artist infects the
-receiver; and, contrariwise, as soon as the spectator, reader, or
-hearer feels that the author is not writing, singing, or playing
-for his own satisfaction,--does not himself feel what he wishes
-to express,--but is doing it for him, the receiver, a resistance
-immediately springs up, and the most individual and the newest
-feelings and the cleverest technique not only fail to produce any
-infection, but actually repel.
-
-I have mentioned three conditions of contagiousness in art, but they
-may be all summed up into one, the last, sincerity, _i.e._ that the
-artist should be impelled by an inner need to express his feeling.
-That condition includes the first; for if the artist is sincere he
-will express the feeling as he experienced it. And as each man is
-different from every one else, his feeling will be individual for
-every one else; and the more individual it is,--the more the artist
-has drawn it from the depths of his nature,--the more sympathetic
-and sincere will it be. And this same sincerity will impel the
-artist to find a clear expression of the feeling which he wishes to
-transmit.
-
-Therefore this third condition--sincerity--is the most important
-of the three. It is always complied with in peasant art, and this
-explains why such art always acts so powerfully; but it is a
-condition almost entirely absent from our upper-class art, which
-is continually produced by artists actuated by personal aims of
-covetousness or vanity.
-
-Such are the three conditions which divide art from its
-counterfeits, and which also decide the quality of every work of art
-apart from its subject-matter.
-
-The absence of any one of these conditions excludes a work from the
-category of art and relegates it to that of art's counterfeits. If
-the work does not transmit the artist's peculiarity of feeling, and
-is therefore not individual, if it is unintelligibly expressed,
-or if it has not proceeded from the author's inner need for
-expression--it is not a work of art. If all these conditions are
-present, even in the smallest degree, then the work, even if a weak
-one, is yet a work of art.
-
-The presence in various degrees of these three
-conditions--individuality, clearness, and sincerity--decides the
-merit of a work of art, as art, apart from subject-matter. All works
-of art take rank of merit according to the degree in which they
-fulfil the first, the second, and the third of these conditions. In
-one the individuality of the feeling transmitted may predominate;
-in another, clearness of expression; in a third, sincerity; while
-a fourth may have sincerity and individuality, but be deficient in
-clearness; a fifth, individuality and clearness, but less sincerity;
-and so forth, in all possible degrees and combinations.
-
-Thus is art divided from not art, and thus is the quality of art, as
-art, decided, independently of its subject-matter, _i.e._ apart from
-whether the feelings it transmits are good or bad.
-
-But how are we to define good and bad art with reference to its
-subject-matter?
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVI
-
-
-How in art are we to decide what is good and what is bad in
-subject-matter?
-
-Art, like speech, is a means of communication, and therefore
-of progress, _i.e._ of the movement of humanity forward toward
-perfection. Speech renders accessible to men of the latest
-generations all the knowledge discovered by the experience and
-reflection, both of preceding generations and of the best and
-foremost men of their own times; art renders accessible to men
-of the latest generations all the feelings experienced by their
-predecessors, and those also which are being felt by their best and
-foremost contemporaries. And as the evolution of knowledge proceeds
-by truer and more necessary knowledge dislodging and replacing
-what is mistaken and unnecessary, so the evolution of feeling
-proceeds through art,--feelings less kind and less needful for the
-well-being of mankind are replaced by others kinder and more needful
-for that end. That is the purpose of art. And, speaking now of its
-subject-matter, the more art fulfils that purpose the better the
-art, and the less it fulfils it the worse the art.
-
-And the appraisement of feelings (_i.e._ the acknowledgment of these
-or those feelings as being more or less good, more or less necessary
-for the well-being of mankind) is made by the religious perception
-of the age.
-
-In every period of history, and in every human society, there
-exists an understanding of the meaning of life which represents
-the highest level to which men of that society have attained,--an
-understanding defining the highest good at which that society aims.
-And this understanding is the religious perception of the given
-time and society. And this religious perception is always clearly
-expressed by some advanced men, and more or less vividly perceived
-by all the members of the society. Such a religious perception and
-its corresponding expression exists always in every society. If it
-appears to us that in our society there is no religious perception,
-this is not because there really is none, but only because we do
-not want to see it. And we often wish not to see it because it
-exposes the fact that our life is inconsistent with that religious
-perception.
-
-Religious perception in a society is like the direction of a flowing
-river. If the river flows at all, it must have a direction. If a
-society lives, there must be a religious perception indicating the
-direction in which, more or less consciously, all its members tend.
-
-And so there always has been, and there is, a religious perception
-in every society. And it is by the standard of this religious
-perception that the feelings transmitted by art have always been
-estimated. Only on the basis of this religious perception of their
-age have men always chosen from the endlessly varied spheres of art
-that art which transmitted feelings making religious perception
-operative in actual life. And such art has always been highly
-valued and encouraged; while art transmitting feelings already
-outlived, flowing from the antiquated religious perceptions of a
-former age, has always been condemned and despised. All the rest
-of art, transmitting those most diverse feelings by means of which
-people commune together, was not condemned, and was tolerated, if
-only it did not transmit feelings contrary to religious perception.
-Thus, for instance, among the Greeks, art transmitting the feeling
-of beauty, strength, and courage (Hesiod, Homer, Phidias) was
-chosen, approved, and encouraged; while art transmitting feelings
-of rude sensuality, despondency, and effeminacy was condemned and
-despised. Among the Jews, art transmitting feelings of devotion
-and submission to the God of the Hebrews and to His will (the epic
-of Genesis, the prophets, the Psalms) was chosen and encouraged,
-while art transmitting feelings of idolatry (the golden calf) was
-condemned and despised. All the rest of art--stories, songs, dances,
-ornamentation of houses, of utensils, and of clothes--which was
-not contrary to religious perception, was neither distinguished
-nor discussed. Thus, in regard to its subject-matter, has art been
-appraised always and everywhere, and thus it should be appraised;
-for this attitude toward art proceeds from the fundamental
-characteristics of human nature, and those characteristics do not
-change.
-
-I know that according to an opinion current in our times religion is
-a superstition which humanity has outgrown, and that it is therefore
-assumed that no such thing exists as a religious perception, common
-to us all, by which art, in our time, can be estimated. I know
-that this is the opinion current in the pseudo-cultured circles
-of to-day. People who do not acknowledge Christianity in its true
-meaning because it undermines all their social privileges, and who,
-therefore, invent all kinds of philosophic and sthetic theories
-to hide from themselves the meaninglessness and wrongness of their
-lives, cannot think otherwise. These people intentionally, or
-sometimes unintentionally, confusing the conception of a religious
-cult with the conception of religious perception, think that by
-denying the cult they get rid of religious perception. But even
-the very attacks on religion, and the attempts to establish a
-life-conception contrary to the religious perception of our times,
-most clearly demonstrate the existence of a religious perception
-condemning the lives that are not in harmony with it.
-
-If humanity progresses, _i.e._ moves forward, there must inevitably
-be a guide to the direction of that movement. And religions have
-always furnished that guide. All history shows that the progress
-of humanity is accomplished not otherwise than under the guidance
-of religion. But if the race cannot progress without the guidance
-of religion,--and progress is always going on, and consequently
-also in our own times,--then there must be a religion of our times.
-So that, whether it pleases or displeases the so-called cultured
-people of to-day, they must admit the existence of religion,--not
-of a religious cult, Catholic, Protestant, or another, but of
-religious perception,--which, even in our times, is the guide always
-present where there is any progress. And if a religious perception
-exists amongst us, then our art should be appraised on the basis
-of that religious perception; and, as has always and everywhere
-been the case, art transmitting feelings flowing from the religious
-perception of our time should be chosen from all the indifferent
-art, should be acknowledged, highly esteemed, and encouraged; while
-art running counter to that perception should be condemned and
-despised, and all the remaining indifferent art should neither be
-distinguished nor encouraged.
-
-The religious perception of our time, in its widest and most
-practical application, is the consciousness that our well-being,
-both material and spiritual, individual and collective, temporal
-and eternal, lies in the growth of brotherhood among all men--in
-their loving harmony with one another. This perception is not only
-expressed by Christ and all the best men of past ages, it is not
-only repeated in the most varied forms and from most diverse sides
-by the best men of our own times, but it already serves as a clue to
-all the complex labor of humanity, consisting as this labor does,
-on the one hand, in the destruction of physical and moral obstacles
-to the union of men, and, on the other hand, in establishing the
-principles common to all men which can and should unite them into
-one universal brotherhood. And it is on the basis of this perception
-that we should appraise all the phenomena of our life, and, among
-the rest, our art also; choosing from all its realms whatever
-transmits feelings flowing from this religious perception, highly
-prizing and encouraging such art, rejecting whatever is contrary
-to this perception, and not attributing to the rest of art an
-importance not properly pertaining to it.
-
-The chief mistake made by people of the upper classes of the time of
-the so-called Renaissance--a mistake which we still perpetuate--was
-not that they ceased to value and to attach importance to religious
-art (people of that period could not attach importance to it,
-because, like our own upper classes, they could not believe in what
-the majority considered to be religion), but their mistake was
-that they set up in place of religious art, which was lacking, an
-insignificant art which aimed only at giving pleasure, _i.e._ they
-began to choose, to value, and to encourage, in place of religious
-art, something which, in any case, did not deserve such esteem and
-encouragement.
-
-One of the Fathers of the Church said that the great evil is, not
-that men do not know God, but that they have set up, instead of
-God, that which is not God. So also with art. The great misfortune
-of the people of the upper classes of our time is not so much that
-they are without a religious art, as that, instead of a supreme
-religious art, chosen from all the rest as being specially important
-and valuable, they have chosen a most insignificant and, usually,
-harmful art, which aims at pleasing certain people, and which,
-therefore, if only by its exclusive nature, stands in contradiction
-to that Christian principle of universal union which forms the
-religious perception of our time. Instead of religious art, an empty
-and often vicious art is set up, and this hides from men's notice
-the need of that true religious art which should be present in life
-in order to improve it.
-
-It is true that art which satisfies the demands of the
-religious perception of our time is quite unlike former art,
-but, notwithstanding this dissimilarity, to a man who does not
-intentionally hide the truth from himself, it is very clear and
-definite what does form the religious art of our age. In former
-times, when the highest religious perception united only some people
-(who, even if they formed a large society, were yet but one society
-surrounded by others--Jews, or Athenian or Roman citizens), the
-feelings transmitted by the art of that time flowed from a desire
-for the might, greatness, glory, and prosperity of that society, and
-the heroes of art might be people who contributed to that prosperity
-by strength, by craft, by fraud, or by cruelty (Ulysses, Jacob,
-David, Samson, Hercules, and all the heroes). But the religious
-perception of our times does not select any one society of men; on
-the contrary, it demands the union of all,--absolutely of all people
-without exception,--and above every other virtue it sets brotherly
-love to all men. And, therefore, the feelings transmitted by the art
-of our time not only cannot coincide with the feelings transmitted
-by former art, but must run counter to them.
-
-Christian, truly Christian, art has been so long in establishing
-itself, and has not yet established itself, just because the
-Christian religious perception was not one of those small steps by
-which humanity advances regularly, but was an enormous revolution,
-which, if it has not already altered, must inevitably alter the
-entire life-conception of mankind, and, consequently, the whole
-internal organization of their life. It is true that the life of
-humanity, like that of an individual, moves regularly; but in that
-regular movement come, as it were, turning-points, which sharply
-divide the preceding from the subsequent life. Christianity was such
-a turning-point; such, at least, it must appear to us who live by
-the Christian perception of life. Christian perception gave another,
-a new, direction to all human feelings, and therefore completely
-altered both the contents and the significance of art. The Greeks
-could make use of Persian art and the Romans could use Greek art,
-or, similarly, the Jews could use Egyptian art,--the fundamental
-ideals were one and the same. Now the ideal was the greatness and
-prosperity of the Persians, now the greatness and prosperity of the
-Greeks, now that of the Romans. The same art was transferred into
-other conditions, and served new nations. But the Christian ideal
-changed and reversed everything, so that, as the gospel puts it,
-"That which was exalted among men has become an abomination in the
-sight of God." The ideal is no longer the greatness of Pharaoh or
-of a Roman emperor, not the beauty of a Greek, nor the wealth of
-Phoenicia, but humility, purity, compassion, love. The hero is no
-longer Dives, but Lazarus the beggar; not Mary Magdalene in the
-day of her beauty, but in the day of her repentance; not those who
-acquire wealth, but those who have abandoned it; not those who dwell
-in palaces, but those who dwell in catacombs and huts; not those
-who rule over others, but those who acknowledge no authority but
-God's. And the greatest work of art is no longer a cathedral of
-victory[119] with statues of conquerors, but the representation of
-a human soul so transformed by love that a man who is tormented and
-murdered yet pities and loves his persecutors.
-
- [119] There is in Moscow a magnificent "Cathedral of our Saviour,"
- erected to commemorate the defeat of the French in the war of
- 1812.--TR.
-
-And the change is so great that men of the Christian world find
-it difficult to resist the inertia of the heathen art to which
-they have been accustomed all their lives. The subject-matter
-of Christian religious art is so new to them, so unlike the
-subject-matter of former art, that it seems to them as though
-Christian art were a denial of art, and they cling desperately to
-the old art. But this old art, having no longer, in our day, any
-source in religious perception, has lost its meaning, and we shall
-have to abandon it whether we wish to or not.
-
-The essence of the Christian perception consists in the recognition
-by every man of his sonship to God, and of the consequent union of
-men with God and with one another, as is said in the gospel (John
-xvii. 21[120]). Therefore the subject-matter of Christian art is
-such feeling as can unite men with God and with one another.
-
- [120] "That they may be one; even as thou, Father, art in me, and I
- in thee, that they also may be in us."
-
-The expression _unite men with God and with one another_ may seem
-obscure to people accustomed to the misuse of these words which
-is so customary, but the words have a perfectly clear meaning
-nevertheless. They indicate that the Christian union of man (in
-contradiction to the partial, exclusive union of only some men) is
-that which unites all without exception.
-
-Art, all art, has this characteristic, that it unites people. Every
-art causes those to whom the artist's feeling is transmitted to
-unite in soul with the artist, and also with all who receive the
-same impression. But non-Christian art, while uniting some people
-together, makes that very union a cause of separation between these
-united people and others; so that union of this kind is often a
-source, not only of division, but even of enmity toward others.
-Such is all patriotic art, with its anthems, poems, and monuments;
-such is all Church art, _i.e._ the art of certain cults, with their
-images, statues, processions, and other local ceremonies. Such art
-is belated and non-Christian art, uniting the people of one cult
-only to separate them yet more sharply from the members of other
-cults, and even to place them in relations of hostility to each
-other. Christian art is only such as tends to unite all without
-exception, either by evoking in them the perception that each man
-and all men stand in like relation toward God and toward their
-neighbor, or by evoking in them identical feelings, which may even
-be the very simplest, provided only that they are not repugnant to
-Christianity and are natural to every one without exception.
-
-Good Christian art of our time may be unintelligible to people
-because of imperfections in its form, or because men are inattentive
-to it, but it must be such that all men can experience the feelings
-it transmits. It must be the art, not of some one group of people,
-nor of one class, nor of one nationality, nor of one religious
-cult; that is, it must not transmit feelings which are accessible
-only to a man educated in a certain way, or only to an aristocrat,
-or a merchant, or only to a Russian, or a native of Japan, or a
-Roman Catholic, or a Buddhist, etc., but it must transmit feelings
-accessible to every one. Only art of this kind can be acknowledged
-in our time to be good art, worthy of being chosen out from all the
-rest of art and encouraged.
-
-Christian art, _i.e._ the art of our time, should be catholic in
-the original meaning of the word, _i.e._ universal, and therefore
-it should unite all men. And only two kinds of feeling do unite all
-men: first, feelings flowing from the perception of our sonship to
-God and of the brotherhood of man; and next, the simple feelings of
-common life, accessible to every one without exception--such as the
-feeling of merriment, of pity, of cheerfulness, of tranquillity,
-etc. Only these two kinds of feelings can now supply material for
-art good in its subject-matter.
-
-And the action of these two kinds of art, apparently so dissimilar,
-is one and the same. The feelings flowing from perception of our
-sonship to God and of the brotherhood of man--such as a feeling of
-sureness in truth, devotion to the will of God, self-sacrifice,
-respect for and love of man--evoked by Christian religious
-perception; and the simplest feelings--such as a softened or a merry
-mood caused by a song or an amusing jest intelligible to every one,
-or by a touching story, or a drawing, or a little doll: both alike
-produce one and the same effect,--the loving union of man with
-man. Sometimes people who are together are, if not hostile to one
-another, at least estranged in mood and feeling, till perchance a
-story, a performance, a picture, or even a building, but oftenest of
-all, music, unites them all as by an electric flash, and, in place
-of their former isolation or even enmity, they are all conscious
-of union and mutual love. Each is glad that another feels what he
-feels; glad of the communion established, not only between him
-and all present, but also with all now living who will yet share
-the same impression; and more than that, he feels the mysterious
-gladness of a communion which, reaching beyond the grave, unites us
-with all men of the past who have been moved by the same feelings,
-and with all men of the future who will yet be touched by them. And
-this effect is produced both by the religious art which transmits
-feelings of love to God and one's neighbor, and by universal art,
-transmitting the very simplest feelings common to all men.
-
-The art of our time should be appraised differently from former art
-chiefly in this, that the art of our time, _i.e._ Christian art
-(basing itself on a religious perception which demands the union
-of man), excludes from the domain of art good in subject-matter
-everything transmitting exclusive feelings, which do not unite
-but divide men. It relegates such work to the category of art bad
-in its subject-matter, while, on the other hand, it includes in
-the category of art good in subject-matter a section not formerly
-admitted to deserve to be chosen out and respected, namely,
-universal art, transmitting even the most trifling and simple
-feelings if only they are accessible to all men without exception,
-and therefore unite them. Such art cannot, in our time, but be
-esteemed good, for it attains the end which the religious perception
-of our time, _i.e._ Christianity, sets before humanity.
-
-Christian art either evokes in men those feelings which, through
-love of God and of one's neighbor, draw them to greater and ever
-greater union, and make them ready for and capable of such union; or
-evokes in them those feelings which show them that they are already
-united in the joys and sorrows of life. And therefore the Christian
-art of our time can be and is of two kinds: (1) art transmitting
-feelings flowing from a religious perception of man's position
-in the world in relation to God and to his neighbor--religious
-art in the limited meaning of the term; and (2) art transmitting
-the simplest feelings of common life, but such, always, as are
-accessible to all men in the whole world--the art of common
-life--the art of a people--universal art. Only these two kinds of
-art can be considered good art in our time.
-
-The first, religious art,--transmitting both positive feelings of
-love to God and one's neighbor, and negative feelings of indignation
-and horror at the violation of love,--manifests itself chiefly
-in the form of words, and to some extent also in painting and
-sculpture: the second kind (universal art), transmitting feelings
-accessible to all, manifests itself in words, in painting, in
-sculpture, in dances, in architecture, and, most of all, in music.
-
-If I were asked to give modern examples of each of these kinds of
-art, then, as examples of the highest art, flowing from love of God
-and man (both of the higher, positive, and of the lower, negative
-kind), in literature I should name, "The Robbers," by Schiller;
-Victor Hugo's "Les Pauvres Gens" and "Les Misrables"; the novels
-and stories of Dickens,--"The Tale of Two Cities," "The Christmas
-Carol," "The Chimes," and others; "Uncle Tom's Cabin;" Dostoievsky's
-works--especially his "Memoirs from the House of Death"; and "Adam
-Bede," by George Eliot.
-
-In modern painting, strange to say, works of this kind, directly
-transmitting the Christian feeling of love of God and of one's
-neighbor, are hardly to be found, especially among the works of
-the celebrated painters. There are plenty of pictures treating of
-the gospel stories; they, however, depict historical events with
-great wealth of detail, but do not, and cannot, transmit religious
-feeling not possessed by their painters. There are many pictures
-treating of the personal feelings of various people, but of pictures
-representing great deeds of self-sacrifice and of Christian love
-there are very few, and what there are, are principally by artists
-who are not celebrated, and are, for the most part, not pictures,
-but merely sketches. Such, for instance, is the drawing by Kramskoy
-(worth many of his finished pictures), showing a drawing-room with a
-balcony, past which troops are marching in triumph on their return
-from the war. On the balcony stands a wet-nurse holding a baby and a
-boy. They are admiring the procession of the troops, but the mother,
-covering her face with a handkerchief, has fallen back on the sofa,
-sobbing. Such also is the picture by Walter Langley, to which I have
-already referred, and such again is a picture by the French artist
-Morlon, depicting a lifeboat hastening, in a heavy storm, to the
-relief of a steamer that is being wrecked. Approaching these in kind
-are pictures which represent the hard-working peasant with respect
-and love. Such are the pictures by Millet, and, particularly, his
-drawing, "The Man with the Hoe"; also pictures in this style by
-Jules Breton, L'Hermitte, Defregger, and others. As examples of
-pictures evoking indignation and horror at the violation of love
-to God and man, Gay's picture, "Judgment," may serve, and also
-Leizen-Mayer's, "Signing the Death Warrant." But there are also very
-few of this kind. Anxiety about the technique and the beauty of
-the picture for the most part obscures the feeling. For instance,
-Grme's "Pollice Verso" expresses, not so much horror at what is
-being perpetrated as attraction by the beauty of the spectacle.[121]
-
- [121] In this picture the spectators in the Roman Amphitheater are
- turning down their thumbs to show that they wish the vanquished
- gladiator to be killed.--TR.
-
-To give examples, from the modern art of our upper classes, of art
-of the second kind, good universal art or even of the art of a whole
-people, is yet more difficult, especially in literary art and music.
-If there are some works which by their inner contents might be
-assigned to this class (such as "Don Quixote," Molire's comedies,
-"David Copperfield" and "The Pickwick Papers" by Dickens, Gogol's
-and Pushkin's tales, and some things of Maupassant's), these works
-are for the most part--from the exceptional nature of the feelings
-they transmit, and the superfluity of special details of time
-and locality, and, above all, on account of the poverty of their
-subject-matter in comparison with examples of universal ancient
-art (such, for instance, as the story of Joseph)--comprehensible
-only to people of their own circle. That Joseph's brethren, being
-jealous of his father's affection, sell him to the merchants; that
-Potiphar's wife wishes to tempt the youth; that having attained the
-highest station, he takes pity on his brothers, including Benjamin,
-the favorite,--these and all the rest are feelings accessible alike
-to a Russian peasant, a Chinese, an African, a child, or an old man,
-educated or uneducated; and it is all written with such restraint,
-is so free from any superfluous detail, that the story may be told
-to any circle and will be equally comprehensible and touching to
-every one. But not such are the feelings of Don Quixote or of
-Molire's heroes (though Molire is perhaps the most universal,
-and therefore the most excellent, artist of modern times), nor of
-Pickwick and his friends. These feelings are not common to all
-men, but very exceptional; and therefore, to make them infectious,
-the authors have surrounded them with abundant details of time and
-place. And this abundance of detail makes the stories difficult
-of comprehension to all people not living within reach of the
-conditions described by the author.
-
-The author of the novel of Joseph did not need to describe in
-detail, as would be done nowadays, the blood-stained coat of
-Joseph, the dwelling and dress of Jacob, the pose and attire of
-Potiphar's wife, and how, adjusting the bracelet on her left arm,
-she said, "Come to me," and so on, because the subject-matter of
-feelings in this novel is so strong that all details, except the
-most essential,--such as that Joseph went out into another room to
-weep,--are superfluous, and would only hinder the transmission of
-feelings. And therefore this novel is accessible to all men, touches
-people of all nations and classes, young and old, and has lasted to
-our times, and will yet last for thousands of years to come. But
-strip the best novels of our times of their details, and what will
-remain?
-
-It is therefore impossible in modern literature to indicate works
-fully satisfying the demands of universality. Such works as exist
-are, to a great extent, spoilt by what is usually called "realism,"
-but would be better termed "provincialism," in art.
-
-In music the same occurs as in verbal art, and for similar reasons.
-In consequence of the poorness of the feeling they contain,
-the melodies of the modern composers are amazingly empty and
-insignificant. And to strengthen the impression produced by these
-empty melodies, the new musicians pile complex modulations on to
-each trivial melody, not only in their own national manner, but
-also in the way characteristic of their own exclusive circle and
-particular musical school. Melody--every melody--is free, and may
-be understood of all men; but as soon as it is bound up with a
-particular harmony, it ceases to be accessible except to people
-trained to such harmony, and it becomes strange, not only to
-common men of another nationality, but to all who do not belong
-to the circle whose members have accustomed themselves to certain
-forms of harmonization. So that music, like poetry, travels in a
-vicious circle. Trivial and exclusive melodies, in order to make
-them attractive, are laden with harmonic, rhythmic, and orchestral
-complications, and thus become yet more exclusive; and, far from
-being universal, are not even national, _i.e._ they are not
-comprehensible to the whole people but only to some people.
-
-In music, besides marches and dances by various composers, which
-satisfy the demands of universal art, one can indicate very few
-works of this class: Bach's famous violin _aria_, Chopin's nocturne
-in E-flat major, and perhaps a dozen bits (not whole pieces,
-but parts) selected from the works of Haydn, Mozart, Schubert,
-Beethoven, and Chopin.[122]
-
- [122] While offering as examples of art those that seem to me the
- best, I attach no special importance to my selection; for, besides
- being insufficiently informed in all branches of art, I belong
- to the class of people whose taste has, by false training, been
- perverted. And therefore my old, inured habits may cause me to
- err, and I may mistake for absolute merit the impression a work
- produced on me in my youth. My only purpose in mentioning examples
- of works of this or that class is to make my meaning clearer, and
- to show how, with my present views, I understand excellence in art
- in relation to its subject-matter. I must, moreover, mention that
- I consign my own artistic productions to the category of bad art,
- excepting the story "God sees the Truth," which seeks a place in the
- first class, and "The Prisoner of the Caucasus," which belongs to
- the second.
-
-Although in painting the same thing is repeated as in poetry and
-music,--namely, that in order to make them more interesting, works
-weak in conception are surrounded by minutely studied accessories
-of time and place, which give them a temporary and local interest
-but make them less universal,--still, in painting, more than in the
-other spheres of art, may be found works satisfying the demands
-of universal Christian art; that is to say, there are more works
-expressing feelings in which all men may participate.
-
-In the arts of painting and sculpture, all pictures and statues
-in so-called genre style, depictions of animals, landscapes and
-caricatures with subjects comprehensible to every one, and also
-all kinds of ornaments, are universal in subject-matter. Such
-productions in painting and sculpture are very numerous (_e.g._
-china dolls), but for the most part such objects (for instance,
-ornaments of all kinds) are either not considered to be art or are
-considered to be art of a low quality. In reality all such objects,
-if only they transmit a true feeling experienced by the artist and
-comprehensible to every one (however insignificant it may seem to us
-to be) are works of real good Christian art.
-
-I fear it will here be urged against me that having denied that
-the conception of beauty can supply a standard for works of art, I
-contradict myself by acknowledging ornaments to be works of good
-art. The reproach is unjust, for the subject-matter of all kinds of
-ornamentation consists not in the beauty, but in the feeling (of
-admiration of, and delight in, the combination of lines and colors)
-which the artist has experienced and with which he infects the
-spectator. Art remains what it was and what it must be: nothing
-but the infection by one man of another, or of others, with the
-feelings experienced by the infector. Among those feelings is the
-feeling of delight at what pleases the sight. Objects pleasing the
-sight may be such as please a small or a large number of people,
-or such as please all men. And ornaments for the most part are of
-the latter kind. A landscape representing a very unusual view, or a
-genre picture of a special subject, may not please every one, but
-ornaments, from Yakutsk ornaments to Greek ones, are intelligible
-to every one and evoke a similar feeling of admiration in all, and
-therefore this despised kind of art should, in Christian society, be
-esteemed far above exceptional, pretentious pictures and sculptures.
-
-So that there are only two kinds of good Christian art: all the rest
-of art not comprised in these two divisions should be acknowledged
-to be bad art, deserving not to be encouraged, but to be driven
-out, denied, and despised, as being art not uniting but dividing
-people. Such, in literary art, are all novels and poems which
-transmit Church or patriotic feelings, and also exclusive feelings
-pertaining only to the class of the idle rich; such as aristocratic
-honor, satiety, spleen, pessimism, and refined and vicious feelings
-flowing from sex-love--quite incomprehensible to the great majority
-of mankind.
-
-In painting we must similarly place in the class of bad art all
-the Church, patriotic, and exclusive pictures; all the pictures
-representing the amusements and allurements of a rich and idle life;
-all the so-called symbolic pictures, in which the very meaning of
-the symbol is comprehensible only to the people of a certain circle;
-and, above all, pictures with voluptuous subjects--all that odious
-female nudity which fills all the exhibitions and galleries. And to
-this class belongs almost all the chamber and opera music of our
-times,--beginning especially from Beethoven (Schumann, Berlioz,
-Liszt, Wagner), by its subject-matter devoted to the expression of
-feelings accessible only to people who have developed in themselves
-an unhealthy, nervous irritation evoked by this exclusive,
-artificial, and complex music.
-
-"What! the '_Ninth Symphony_' not a good work of art!" I hear
-exclaimed by indignant voices.
-
-And I reply, Most certainly it is not. All that I have written I
-have written with the sole purpose of finding a clear and reasonable
-criterion by which to judge the merits of works of art. And this
-criterion, coinciding with the indications of plain and sane sense,
-indubitably shows me that that symphony by Beethoven is not a good
-work of art. Of course, to people educated in the adoration of
-certain productions and of their authors, to people whose taste
-has been perverted just by being educated in such adoration, the
-acknowledgment that such a celebrated work is bad is amazing and
-strange. But how are we to escape the indications of reason and of
-common sense?
-
-Beethoven's "Ninth Symphony" is considered a great work of art.
-To verify its claim to be such, I must first ask myself whether
-this work transmits the highest religious feeling? I reply in the
-negative, for music in itself cannot transmit those feelings; and
-therefore I ask myself next, Since this work does not belong to the
-highest kind of religious art, has it the other characteristic of
-the good art of our time,--the quality of uniting all men in one
-common feeling: does it rank as Christian universal art? And again I
-have no option but to reply in the negative; for not only do I not
-see how the feelings transmitted by this work could unite people not
-specially trained to submit themselves to its complex hypnotism,
-but I am unable to imagine to myself a crowd of normal people who
-could understand anything of this long, confused, and artificial
-production, except short snatches which are lost in a sea of what
-is incomprehensible. And therefore, whether I like it or not, I am
-compelled to conclude that this work belongs to the rank of bad art.
-It is curious to note in this connection, that attached to the end
-of this very symphony is a poem of Schiller's which (though somewhat
-obscurely) expresses this very thought, namely, that feeling
-(Schiller speaks only of the feeling of gladness) unites people and
-evokes love in them. But though this poem is sung at the end of the
-symphony, the music does not accord with the thought expressed in
-the verses; for the music is exclusive and does not unite all men,
-but unites only a few, dividing them off from the rest of mankind.
-
-And just in this same way, in all branches of art, many and many
-works considered great by the upper classes of our society will have
-to be judged. By this one sure criterion we shall have to judge the
-celebrated "Divine Comedy" and "Jerusalem Delivered," and a great
-part of Shakespear's and Goethe's works, and in painting every
-representation of miracles, including Raphael's "Transfiguration,"
-etc.
-
-Whatever the work may be and however it may have been extolled,
-we have first to ask whether this work is one of real art or a
-counterfeit. Having acknowledged, on the basis of the indication of
-its infectiousness even to a small class of people, that a certain
-production belongs to the realm of art, it is necessary, on the
-basis of the indication of its accessibility, to decide the next
-question, Does this work belong to the category of bad, exclusive
-art, opposed to religious perception, or to Christian art, uniting
-people? And having acknowledged an article to belong to real
-Christian art, we must then, according to whether it transmits
-the feelings flowing from love to God and man, or merely the
-simple feelings uniting all men, assign it a place in the ranks of
-religious art or in those of universal art.
-
-Only on the basis of such verification shall we find it possible to
-select from the whole mass of what, in our society, claims to be
-art, those works which form real, important, necessary spiritual
-food, and to separate them from all the harmful and useless art,
-and from the counterfeits of art which surround us. Only on the
-basis of such verification shall we be able to rid ourselves of
-the pernicious results of harmful art, and to avail ourselves of
-that beneficent action which is the purpose of true and good art,
-and which is indispensable for the spiritual life of man and of
-humanity.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVII
-
-
-Art is one of two organs of human progress. By words man
-interchanges thoughts, by the forms of art he interchanges feelings,
-and this with all men, not only of the present time, but also of the
-past and the future. It is natural to human beings to employ both
-these organs of intercommunication, and therefore the perversion of
-either of them must cause evil results to the society in which it
-occurs. And these results will be of two kinds: first, the absence,
-in that society, of the work which should be performed by the organ;
-and secondly, the harmful activity of the perverted organ. And just
-these results have shown themselves in our society. The organ of
-art has been perverted, and therefore the upper classes of society
-have, to a great extent, been deprived of the work that it should
-have performed. The diffusion in our society of enormous quantities
-of, on the one hand, those counterfeits of art which only serve
-to amuse and corrupt people, and, on the other hand, of works of
-insignificant, exclusive art, mistaken for the highest art, have
-perverted most men's capacity to be infected by true works of art,
-and have thus deprived them of the possibility of experiencing the
-highest feelings to which mankind has attained, and which can only
-be transmitted from man to man by art.
-
-All the best that has been done in art by man remains strange to
-people who lack the capacity to be infected by art, and is replaced
-either by spurious counterfeits of art or by insignificant art,
-which they mistake for real art. People of our time and of our
-society are delighted with Baudelaires, Verlaines, Morases, Ibsens,
-and Maeterlincks in poetry; with Monets, Manets, Puvis de Chavannes,
-Burne-Joneses, Stucks, and Bcklins in painting; with Wagners,
-Liszts, Richard Strausses, in music; and they are no longer capable
-of comprehending either the highest or the simplest art.
-
-In the upper classes, in consequence of this loss of capacity to be
-infected by works of art, people grow up, are educated, and live,
-lacking the fertilizing, improving influence of art, and therefore
-not only do not advance toward perfection, do not become kinder,
-but, on the contrary, possessing highly developed external means of
-civilization, they yet tend to become continually more savage, more
-coarse, and more cruel.
-
-Such is the result of the absence from our society of the activity
-of that essential organ--art. But the consequences of the perverted
-activity of that organ are yet more harmful. And they are numerous.
-
-The first consequence, plain for all to see, is the enormous
-expenditure of the labor of working people on things which are
-not only useless, but which, for the most part, are harmful;
-and more than that, the waste of priceless human lives on this
-unnecessary and harmful business. It is terrible to consider with
-what intensity, and amid what privations, millions of people--who
-lack time and opportunity to attend to what they and their families
-urgently require--labor for 10, 12, or 14 hours on end, and even at
-night, setting the type for pseudo-artistic books which spread vice
-among mankind, or working for theaters, concerts, exhibitions, and
-picture-galleries, which, for the most part, also serve vice; but
-it is yet more terrible to reflect that lively, kindly children,
-capable of all that is good, are devoted from their early years to
-such tasks as these: that for 6, 8, or 10 hours a day, and for 10
-or 15 years, some of them should play scales and exercises; others
-should twist their limbs, walk on their toes, and lift their legs
-above their heads; a third set should sing solfeggios; a fourth
-set, showing themselves off in all manner of ways, should pronounce
-verses; a fifth set should draw from busts or from nude models and
-paint studies; a sixth set should write compositions according
-to the rules of certain periods; and that in these occupations,
-unworthy of a human being, which are often continued long after full
-maturity, they should waste their physical and mental strength and
-lose all perception of the meaning of life. It is often said that
-it is horrible and pitiful to see little acrobats putting their
-legs over their necks, but it is not less pitiful to see children
-of 10 giving concerts, and it is still worse to see school-boys of
-10 who, as a preparation for literary work, have learnt by heart
-the exceptions to the Latin grammar. These people not only grow
-physically and mentally deformed, but also morally deformed, and
-become incapable of doing anything really needed by man. Occupying
-in society the rle of amusers of the rich, they lose their sense of
-human dignity, and develop in themselves such a passion for public
-applause that they are always a prey to an inflated and unsatisfied
-vanity which grows in them to diseased dimensions, and they expend
-their mental strength in efforts to obtain satisfaction for this
-passion. And what is most tragic of all is that these people, who
-for the sake of art are spoilt for life, not only do not render
-service to this art, but, on the contrary, inflict the greatest harm
-on it. They are taught in academies, schools, and conservatoires how
-to counterfeit art, and by learning this they so pervert themselves
-that they quite lose the capacity to produce works of real art, and
-become purveyors of that counterfeit, or trivial, or depraved art
-which floods our society. This is the first obvious consequence of
-the perversion of the organ of art.
-
-The second consequence is that the productions of amusement-art,
-which are prepared in such terrific quantities by the armies of
-professional artists, enable the rich people of our times to live
-the lives they do, lives not only unnatural, but in contradiction
-to the humane principles these people themselves profess. To live
-as do the rich, idle people, especially the women, far from nature
-and from animals, in artificial conditions, with muscles atrophied
-or misdeveloped by gymnastics, and with enfeebled vital energy,
-would be impossible were it not for what is called art--for this
-occupation and amusement which hides from them the meaninglessness
-of their lives, and saves them from the dullness that oppresses
-them. Take from all these people the theaters, concerts,
-exhibitions, piano-playing, songs, and novels with which they now
-fill their time, in full confidence that occupation with these
-things is a very refined, sthetical, and therefore good occupation;
-take from the patrons of art who buy pictures, assist musicians,
-and are acquainted with writers, their rle of protectors of that
-important matter art, and they will not be able to continue such a
-life, but will all be eaten up by ennui and spleen, and will become
-conscious of the meaninglessness and wrongness of their present mode
-of life. Only occupation with what, among them, is considered art
-renders it possible for them to continue to live on, infringing all
-natural conditions, without perceiving the emptiness and cruelty of
-their lives. And this support afforded to the false manner of life
-pursued by the rich is the second consequence, and a serious one, of
-the perversion of art.
-
-The third consequence of the perversion of art is the perplexity
-produced in the minds of children and of plain folk. Among people
-not perverted by the false theories of our society, among workers
-and children, there exists a very definite conception of what
-people may be respected and praised for. In the minds of peasants
-and children the ground for praise or eulogy can only be either
-physical strength: Hercules, the heroes and conquerors; or moral,
-spiritual, strength: Sakya Muni giving up a beautiful wife and a
-kingdom to save mankind, Christ going to the cross for the truth he
-professed, and all the martyrs and the saints. Both are understood
-by peasants and children. They understand that physical strength
-must be respected, for it compels respect; and the moral strength of
-goodness an unperverted man cannot fail to respect, because all his
-spiritual being draws him toward it. But these people, children, and
-peasants, suddenly perceive that besides those praised, respected,
-and rewarded for physical or moral strength, there are others who
-are praised, extolled, and rewarded much more than the heroes
-of strength and virtue, merely because they sing well, compose
-verses, or dance. They see that singers, composers, painters,
-ballet-dancers, earn millions of roubles and receive more honor than
-the saints do: and peasants and children are perplexed.
-
-When fifty years had elapsed after Pushkin's death, and,
-simultaneously, the cheap edition of his works began to circulate
-among the people and a monument was erected to him in Moscow, I
-received more than a dozen letters from different peasants asking
-why Pushkin was raised to such dignity. And only the other day a
-literate[123] man from Saratoff called on me who had evidently gone
-out of his mind over this very question. He was on his way to Moscow
-to expose the clergy for having taken part in raising a "monament"
-to Mr. Pushkin.
-
- [123] In Russian it is customary to make a distinction between
- literate and illiterate people, _i.e._ between those who can and
- those who cannot read. _Literate_ in this sense does not imply that
- the man would speak or write correctly.--TR.
-
-Indeed, one need only imagine to oneself what the state of mind
-of such a man of the people must be when he learns, from such
-rumors and newspapers as reach him, that the clergy, the Government
-officials, and all the best people in Russia are triumphantly
-unveiling a statue to a great man, the benefactor, the pride of
-Russia--Pushkin, of whom till then he had never heard. From all
-sides he reads or hears about this, and he naturally supposes that
-if such honors are rendered to any one, then without doubt he must
-have done something extraordinary--either some feat of strength
-or of goodness. He tries to learn who Pushkin was, and having
-discovered that Pushkin was neither a hero nor a general, but was
-a private person and a writer, he comes to the conclusion that
-Pushkin must have been a holy man and a teacher of goodness, and he
-hastens to read or to hear his life and works. But what must be his
-perplexity when he learns that Pushkin was a man of more than easy
-morals, who was killed in a duel, _i.e._ when attempting to murder
-another man, and that all his service consisted in writing verses
-about love, which were often very indecent.
-
-That a hero, or Alexander the Great, or Genghis Khan, or Napoleon
-were great, he understands, because any one of them could have
-crushed him and a thousand like him; that Buddha, Socrates, and
-Christ were great he also understands, for he knows and feels that
-he and all men should be such as they were; but why a man should be
-great because he wrote verses about the love of women he cannot make
-out.
-
-A similar perplexity must trouble the brain of a Breton or Norman
-peasant who hears that a monument, "_une statue_" (as to the
-Madonna), is being erected to Baudelaire, and reads, or is told,
-what the contents of his "Fleurs du Mal" are; or, more amazing
-still, to Verlaine, when he learns the story of that man's wretched,
-vicious life, and reads his verses. And what confusion it must
-cause in the brains of peasants when they learn that some Patti or
-Taglioni is paid 10,000 for a season, or that a painter gets as
-much for a picture, or that authors of novels describing love-scenes
-have received even more than that.
-
-And it is the same with children. I remember how I passed through
-this stage of amazement and stupefaction, and only reconciled myself
-to this exaltation of artists to the level of heroes and saints by
-lowering in my own estimation the importance of moral excellence,
-and by attributing a false, unnatural meaning to works of art. And a
-similar confusion must occur in the soul of each child and each man
-of the people when he learns of the strange honors and rewards that
-are lavished on artists. This is the third consequence of the false
-relation in which our society stands toward art.
-
-The fourth consequence is that people of the upper classes, more
-and more frequently encountering the contradictions between
-beauty and goodness, put the ideal of beauty first, thus freeing
-themselves from the demands of morality. These people, reversing
-the rles, instead of admitting, as is really the case, that the
-art they serve is an antiquated affair, allege that morality is an
-antiquated affair, which can have no importance for people situated
-on that high plane of development on which they opine that they are
-situated.
-
-This result of the false relation to art showed itself in our
-society long ago; but recently, with its prophet Nietzsche and his
-adherents, and with the decadents and certain English sthetes who
-coincide with him, it is being expressed with especial impudence.
-The decadents, and sthetes of the type at one time represented by
-Oscar Wilde, select as a theme for their productions the denial of
-morality and the laudation of vice.
-
-This art has partly generated, and partly coincides with, a similar
-philosophic theory. I recently received from America a book
-entitled, "The Survival of the Fittest: Philosophy of Power," 1896,
-by Ragnar Redbeard, Chicago. The substance of this book, as it is
-expressed in the editor's preface, is that to measure "right" by the
-false philosophy of the Hebrew prophets and "weepful" Messiahs is
-madness. Right is not the offspring of doctrine, but of power. All
-laws, commandments, or doctrines as to not doing to another what
-you do not wish done to you, have no inherent authority whatever,
-but receive it only from the club, the gallows, and the sword. A
-man truly free is under no obligation to obey any injunction, human
-or divine. Obedience is the sign of the degenerate. Disobedience
-is the stamp of the hero. Men should not be bound by moral rules
-invented by their foes. The whole world is a slippery battlefield.
-Ideal justice demands that the vanquished should be exploited,
-emasculated, and scorned. The free and brave may seize the world.
-And, therefore, there should be eternal war for life, for land, for
-love, for women, for power, and for gold. (Something similar was
-said a few years ago by the celebrated and refined academician,
-Vog.) The earth and its treasures is "booty for the bold."
-
-The author has evidently by himself, independently of Nietzsche,
-come to the same conclusions which are professed by the new artists.
-
-Expressed in the form of a doctrine these positions startle us. In
-reality they are implied in the ideal of art serving beauty. The
-art of our upper classes has educated people in this ideal of the
-over-man,[124]--which is, in reality, the old ideal of Nero, Stenka
-Razin,[125] Genghis Khan, Robert Macaire,[126] or Napoleon, and all
-their accomplices, assistants, and adulators--and it supports this
-ideal with all its might.
-
-[Foootnote 124: The over-man (Uebermensch), in the Nietzschean
-philosophy, is that superior type of man whom the struggle for
-existence is to evolve, and who will seek only his own power and
-pleasure, will know nothing of pity, and will have the right,
-because he will possess the power, to make ordinary people serve
-him.--TR.]
-
-[125] Stenka Razin was by origin a common Cossack. His brother
-was hung for a breach of military discipline, and to this event
-Stenka Razin's hatred of the governing classes has been attributed.
-He formed a robber band, and subsequently headed a formidable
-rebellion, declaring himself in favor of freedom for the serfs,
-religious toleration, and the abolition of taxes. Like the
-government he opposed, he relied on force, and, though he used it
-largely in defense of the poor against the rich, he still held to
-
- "The good old rule, the simple plan,
- That they should take who have the power,
- And they should keep who can."
-
-Like Robin Hood, he is favorably treated in popular legends.--TR.
-
-[126] Robert Macaire is a modern type of adroit and audacious
-rascality. He was the hero of a popular play produced in Paris in
-1834.--TR.
-
-It is this supplanting of the ideal of what is right by the ideal of
-what is beautiful, _i.e._ of what is pleasant, that is the fourth
-consequence, and a terrible one, of the perversion of art in our
-society. It is fearful to think of what would befall humanity were
-such art to spread among the masses of the people. And it already
-begins to spread.
-
-Finally, the fifth and chief result is, that the art which
-flourishes in the upper classes of European society has a directly
-vitiating influence, infecting people with the worst feelings and
-with those most harmful to humanity,--superstition, patriotism, and,
-above all, sensuality.
-
-Look carefully into the causes of the ignorance of the masses, and
-you may see that the chief cause does not at all lie in the lack
-of schools and libraries, as we are accustomed to suppose, but in
-those superstitions, both ecclesiastical and patriotic, with which
-the people are saturated, and which are unceasingly generated by
-all the methods of art. Church superstitions are supported and
-produced by the poetry of prayers, hymns, painting, by the sculpture
-of images and of statues, by singing, by organs, by music, by
-architecture, and even by dramatic art in religious ceremonies.
-Patriotic superstitions are supported and produced by verses and
-stories, which are supplied even in schools, by music, by songs, by
-triumphal processions, by royal meetings, by martial pictures, and
-by monuments.
-
-Were it not for this continual activity in all departments of art,
-perpetuating the ecclesiastical and patriotic intoxication and
-embitterment of the people, the masses would long ere this have
-attained to true enlightenment.
-
-But it is not only in Church matters and patriotic matters that art
-depraves; it is art in our time that serves as the chief cause of
-the perversion of people in the most important question of social
-life,--in their sexual relations. We nearly all know by our own
-experience, and those who are fathers and mothers know in the case
-of their grown-up children also, what fearful mental and physical
-suffering, what useless waste of strength, people suffer merely as a
-consequence of dissoluteness in sexual desire.
-
-Since the world began, since the Trojan war, which sprang from
-that same sexual dissoluteness, down to and including the suicides
-and murders of lovers described in almost every newspaper, a great
-proportion of the sufferings of the human race have come from this
-source.
-
-And what is art doing? All art, real and counterfeit, with very
-few exceptions, is devoted to describing, depicting, and inflaming
-sexual love in every shape and form. When one remembers all those
-novels and their lust-kindling descriptions of love, from the most
-refined to the grossest, with which the literature of our society
-overflows; if one only remembers all those pictures and statues
-representing women's naked bodies, and all sorts of abominations
-which are reproduced in illustrations and advertisements; if one
-only remembers all the filthy operas and operettas, songs, and
-_romances_ with which our world teems, involuntarily it seems as
-if existing art had but one definite aim,--to disseminate vice as
-widely as possible.
-
-Such, though not all, are the most direct consequences of that
-perversion of art which has occurred in our society. So that what in
-our society is called art not only does not conduce to the progress
-of mankind, but, more than almost anything else, hinders the
-attainment of goodness in our lives.
-
-And therefore the question which involuntarily presents itself to
-every man free from artistic activity and therefore not bound to
-existing art by self-interest, the question asked by me at the
-beginning of this work: Is it just that to what we call art, to a
-something belonging to but a small section of society, should be
-offered up such sacrifices of human labor, of human lives, and of
-goodness as are now being offered up? receives the natural reply:
-No; it is unjust, and these things should not be! So also replies
-sound sense and unperverted moral feeling. Not only should these
-things not be, not only should no sacrifices be offered up to what
-among us is called art, but, on the contrary, the efforts of those
-who wish to live rightly should be directed toward the destruction
-of this art, for it is one of the most cruel of the evils that
-harass our section of humanity. So that, were the question put:
-Would it be preferable for our Christian world to be deprived of
-_all_ that is now esteemed to be art, and, together with the false,
-to lose _all_ that is good in it? I think that every reasonable
-and moral man would again decide the question as Plato decided it
-for his "Republic," and as all the Church Christian and Mohammedan
-teachers of mankind decided it, _i.e._ would say, "Rather let there
-be no art at all than continue the depraving art, or simulation of
-art, which now exists." Happily, no one has to face this question,
-and no one need adopt either solution. All that man can do, and that
-we--the so-called educated people, who are so placed that we have
-the possibility of understanding the meaning of the phenomena of our
-life--can and should do, is to understand the error we are involved
-in, and not harden our hearts in it, but seek for a way of escape.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVIII
-
-
-The cause of the lie into which the art of our society has fallen
-was that people of the upper classes, having ceased to believe in
-the Church teaching (called Christian), did not resolve to accept
-true Christian teaching in its real and fundamental principles
-of sonship to God and brotherhood to man, but continued to live
-on without any belief, endeavoring to make up for the absence of
-belief--some by hypocrisy, pretending still to believe in the
-nonsense of the Church creeds; others by boldly asserting their
-disbelief; others by refined agnosticism; and others, again, by
-returning to the Greek worship of beauty, proclaiming egotism to be
-right, and elevating it to the rank of a religious doctrine.
-
-The cause of the malady was the non-acceptance of Christ's teaching
-in its real, _i.e._ its full, meaning. And the only cure for the
-illness lies in acknowledging that teaching in its full meaning.
-And such acknowledgment in our time is not only possible, but
-inevitable. Already to-day a man, standing on the height of the
-knowledge of our age, whether he be nominally a Catholic or a
-Protestant, cannot say that he really believes in the dogmas of
-the Church: in God being a Trinity, in Christ being God, in the
-scheme of redemption, and so forth; nor can he satisfy himself by
-proclaiming his unbelief or skepticism, nor by relapsing into the
-worship of beauty and egotism. Above all, he can no longer say
-that we do not know the real meaning of Christ's teaching. That
-meaning has not only become accessible to all men of our times, but
-the whole life of man to-day is permeated by the spirit of that
-teaching, and, consciously or unconsciously, is guided by it.
-
-However differently in form people belonging to our Christian
-world may define the destiny of man; whether they see it in human
-progress in whatever sense of the words, in the union of all men in
-a socialistic realm, or in the establishment of a commune; whether
-they look forward to the union of mankind under the guidance of
-one universal Church, or to the federation of the world,--however
-various in form their definitions of the destination of human
-life may be, all men in our times already admit that the highest
-well-being attainable by men is to be reached by their union with
-one another.
-
-However people of our upper classes (feeling that their ascendancy
-can only be maintained as long as they separate themselves--the rich
-and learned--from the laborers, the poor, and the unlearned) may
-seek to devise new conceptions of life by which their privileges
-may be perpetuated,--now the ideal of returning to antiquity, now
-mysticism, now Hellenism, now the cult of the superior person
-(over-man-ism),--they have, willingly or unwillingly, to admit the
-truth which is elucidating itself from all sides, voluntarily and
-involuntarily, namely, that our welfare lies only in the unification
-and the brotherhood of man.
-
-Unconsciously this truth is confirmed by the construction of means
-of communication,--telegraphs, telephones, the press, and the ever
-increasing attainability of material well-being for every one,--and
-consciously it is affirmed by the destruction of superstitions which
-divide men, by the diffusion of the truths of knowledge, and by the
-expression of the ideal of the brotherhood of man in the best works
-of art of our time.
-
-Art is a spiritual organ of human life which cannot be destroyed,
-and therefore, notwithstanding all the efforts made by people of
-the upper classes to conceal the religious ideal by which humanity
-lives, that ideal is more and more clearly recognized by man, and
-even in our perverted society is more and more often partially
-expressed by science and by art. During the present century works
-of the higher kind of religious art have appeared more and more
-frequently, both in literature and in painting, permeated by a truly
-Christian spirit, as also works of the universal art of common
-life, accessible to all. So that even art knows the true ideal of
-our times, and tends toward it. On the one hand, the best works
-of art of our times transmit religious feelings urging toward the
-union and the brotherhood of man (such are the works of Dickens,
-Hugo, Dostoievsky; and in painting, of Millet, Bastien Lepage, Jules
-Breton, L'Hermitte, and others); on the other hand, they strive
-toward the transmission, not of feelings which are natural to people
-of the upper classes only, but of such feelings as may unite every
-one without exception. There are as yet few such works, but the
-need of them is already acknowledged. In recent times we also meet
-more and more frequently with attempts at publications, pictures,
-concerts, and theaters for the people. All this is still very far
-from accomplishing what should be done, but already the direction
-in which good art instinctively presses forward to regain the path
-natural to it can be discerned.
-
-The religious perception of our time--which consists in
-acknowledging that the aim of life (both collective and individual)
-is the union of mankind--is already so sufficiently distinct that
-people have now only to reject the false theory of beauty, according
-to which enjoyment is considered to be the purpose of art, and
-religious perception will naturally take its place as the guide of
-the art of our time.
-
-And as soon as the religious perception, which already unconsciously
-directs the life of man, is consciously acknowledged, then
-immediately and naturally the division of art, into art for the
-lower and art for the upper classes, will disappear. There will
-be one common, brotherly, universal art; and first, that art will
-naturally be rejected which transmits feelings incompatible with
-the religious perception of our time,--feelings which do not unite,
-but divide men,--and then that insignificant, exclusive art will be
-rejected to which an importance is now attached to which it has no
-right.
-
-And as soon as this occurs, art will immediately cease to be what
-it has been in recent times,--a means of making people coarser and
-more vicious; and it will become, what it always used to be and
-should be, a means by which humanity progresses toward unity and
-blessedness.
-
-Strange as the comparison may sound, what has happened to the art
-of our circle and time is what happens to a woman who sells her
-womanly attractiveness, intended for maternity, for the pleasure of
-those who desire such pleasures.
-
-The art of our time and of our circle has become a prostitute. And
-this comparison holds good even in minute details. Like her it is
-not limited to certain times, like her it is always adorned, like
-her it is always salable, and like her it is enticing and ruinous.
-
-A real work of art can only arise in the soul of an artist
-occasionally as the fruit of the life he has lived, just as a child
-is conceived by its mother. But counterfeit art is produced by
-artisans and handicraftsmen continually, if only consumers can be
-found.
-
-Real art, like the wife of an affectionate husband, needs no
-ornaments. But counterfeit art, like a prostitute, must always be
-decked out.
-
-The cause of the production of real art is the artist's inner need
-to express a feeling that has accumulated, just as for a mother the
-cause of sexual conception is love. The cause of counterfeit art, as
-of prostitution, is gain.
-
-The consequence of true art is the introduction of a new feeling
-into the intercourse of life, as the consequence of a wife's love is
-the birth of a new man into life.
-
-The consequences of counterfeit art are the perversion of man,
-pleasure which never satisfies, and the weakening of man's spiritual
-strength.
-
-And this is what people of our day and of our circle should
-understand, in order to avoid the filthy torrent of depraved and
-prostituted art with which we are deluged.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIX
-
-
-People talk of the art of the future, meaning by "art of the future"
-some especially refined, new art, which, as they imagine, will
-be developed out of that exclusive art of one class which is now
-considered the highest art. But no such new art of the future can
-or will be found. Our exclusive art, that of the upper classes of
-Christendom, has found its way into a blind alley. The direction
-in which it has been going leads nowhere. Having once let go of
-that which is most essential for art (namely, the guidance given
-by religious perception), that art has become ever more and more
-exclusive, and therefore ever more and more perverted, until,
-finally, it has come to nothing. The art of the future, that which
-is really coming, will not be a development of present-day art, but
-will arise on completely other and new foundations, having nothing
-in common with those by which our present art of the upper classes
-is guided.
-
-Art of the future, that is to say, such part of art as will be
-chosen from among all the art diffused among mankind, will consist,
-not in transmitting feelings accessible only to members of the rich
-classes, as is the case to-day, but in transmitting such feelings
-as embody the highest religious perception of our times. Only
-those productions will be considered art which transmit feelings
-drawing men together in brotherly union, or such universal feelings
-as can unite all men. Only such art will be chosen, tolerated,
-approved, and diffused. But art transmitting feelings flowing from
-antiquated, worn-out religious teaching,--Church art, patriotic art,
-voluptuous art, transmitting feelings of superstitious fear, of
-pride, of vanity, of ecstatic admiration of national heroes,--art
-exciting exclusive love of one's own people, or sensuality, will
-be considered bad, harmful art, and will be censured and despised
-by public opinion. All the rest of art, transmitting feelings
-accessible only to a section of people, will be considered
-unimportant, and will be neither blamed nor praised. And the
-appraisement of art in general will devolve, not, as is now the
-case, on a separate class of rich people, but on the whole people;
-so that for a work to be esteemed good, and to be approved of and
-diffused, it will have to satisfy the demands, not of a few people
-living in identical and often unnatural conditions, but it will have
-to satisfy the demands of all those great masses of people who are
-situated in the natural conditions of laborious life.
-
-And the artists producing art will also not be, as now, merely a
-few people selected from a small section of the nation, members of
-the upper classes or their hangers-on, but will consist of all those
-gifted members of the whole people who prove capable of, and are
-inclined toward, artistic activity.
-
-Artistic activity will then be accessible to all men. It will
-become accessible to the whole people, because, in the first place,
-in the art of the future, not only will that complex technique,
-which deforms the productions of the art of to-day and requires so
-great an effort and expenditure of time, not be demanded, but, on
-the contrary, the demand will be for clearness, simplicity, and
-brevity--conditions mastered, not by mechanical exercises, but by
-the education of taste. And secondly, artistic activity will become
-accessible to all men of the people because, instead of the present
-professional schools which only some can enter, all will learn music
-and depictive art (singing and drawing) equally with letters in
-the elementary schools, and in such a way that every man, having
-received the first principles of drawing and music, and feeling a
-capacity for, and a call to, one or other of the arts, will be able
-to perfect himself in it.
-
-People think that if there are no special art schools the technique
-of art will deteriorate. Undoubtedly, if by technique we understand
-those complications of art which are now considered an excellence,
-it will deteriorate; but if by technique is understood clearness,
-beauty, simplicity, and compression in works of art, then, even
-if the elements of drawing and music were not to be taught in the
-national schools, the technique will not only not deteriorate, but,
-as is shown by all peasant art, will be a hundred times better.
-It will be improved, because all the artists of genius now hidden
-among the masses will become producers of art and will give models
-of excellence, which (as has always been the case) will be the best
-schools of technique for their successors. For every true artist,
-even now, learns his technique, chiefly, not in the schools, but
-in life, from the examples of the great masters; then--when the
-producers of art will be the best artists of the whole nation,
-and there will be more such examples, and they will be more
-accessible--such part of the school training as the future artist
-will lose will be a hundredfold compensated for by the training he
-will receive from the numerous examples of good art diffused in
-society.
-
-Such will be one difference between present and future art. Another
-difference will be that art will not be produced by professional
-artists receiving payment for their work and engaged on nothing else
-besides their art. The art of the future will be produced by all the
-members of the community who feel the need of such activity, but
-they will occupy themselves with art only when they feel such need.
-
-In our society people think that an artist will work better, and
-produce more, if he has a secured maintenance. And this opinion
-would serve once more to show clearly, were such demonstration
-still needed, that what among us is considered art is not art, but
-only its counterfeit. It is quite true that for the production of
-boots or loaves division of labor is very advantageous, and that
-the bootmaker or baker who need not prepare his own dinner or fetch
-his own fuel will make more boots or loaves than if he had to busy
-himself about these matters. But art is not a handicraft; it is
-the transmission of feeling the artist has experienced. And sound
-feeling can only be engendered in a man when he is living on all
-its sides the life natural and proper to mankind. And therefore
-security of maintenance is a condition most harmful to an artist's
-true productiveness, since it removes him from the condition natural
-to all men,--that of struggle with nature for the maintenance of
-both his own life and that of others,--and thus deprives him of
-opportunity and possibility to experience the most important and
-natural feelings of man. There is no position more injurious to an
-artist's productiveness than that position of complete security and
-luxury in which artists usually live in our society.
-
-The artist of the future will live the common life of man, earning
-his subsistence by some kind of labor. The fruits of that highest
-spiritual strength which passes through him he will try to
-share with the greatest possible number of people, for in such
-transmission to others of the feelings that have arisen in him he
-will find his happiness and his reward. The artist of the future
-will be unable to understand how an artist, whose chief delight is
-in the wide diffusion of his works, could give them only in exchange
-for a certain payment.
-
-Until the dealers are driven out, the temple of art will not be a
-temple. But the art of the future will drive them out.
-
-And therefore the subject-matter of the art of the future, as I
-imagine it to myself, will be totally unlike that of to-day. It
-will consist, not in the expression of exclusive feelings: pride,
-spleen, satiety, and all possible forms of voluptuousness, available
-and interesting only to people who, by force, have freed themselves
-from the labor natural to human beings; but it will consist in the
-expression of feelings experienced by a man living the life natural
-to all men and flowing from the religious perception of our times,
-or of such feelings as are open to all men without exception.
-
-To people of our circle who do not know and cannot or will not
-understand the feelings which will form the subject-matter of
-the art of the future, such subject-matter appears very poor in
-comparison with those subtleties of exclusive art with which they
-are now occupied. "What is there fresh to be said in the sphere of
-the Christian feeling of love of one's fellow-man? The feelings
-common to every one are so insignificant and monotonous," think
-they. And yet, in our time, the really fresh feelings can only be
-religious, Christian feelings, and such as are open, accessible,
-to all. The feelings flowing from the religious perception of our
-times, Christian feelings, are infinitely new and varied, only not
-in the sense some people imagine,--not that they can be evoked by
-the depiction of Christ and of gospel episodes, or by repeating in
-new forms the Christian truths of unity, brotherhood, equality, and
-love,--but in that all the oldest, commonest, and most hackneyed
-phenomena of life evoke the newest, most unexpected, and touching
-emotions as soon as a man regards them from the Christian point of
-view.
-
-What can be older than the relations between married couples, of
-parents to children, of children to parents; the relations of men
-to their fellow-countrymen and to foreigners, to an invasion, to
-defense, to property, to the land, or to animals? But as soon as
-a man regards these matters from the Christian point of view,
-endlessly varied, fresh, complex, and strong emotions immediately
-arise.
-
-And, in the same way, that realm of subject-matter for the art of
-the future which relates to the simplest feelings of common life
-open to all will not be narrowed, but widened. In our former art
-only the expression of feelings natural to people of a certain
-exceptional position was considered worthy of being transmitted
-by art, and even then only on condition that these feelings were
-transmitted in a most refined manner, incomprehensible to the
-majority of men; all the immense realm of folk-art, and children's
-art--jests, proverbs, riddles, songs, dances, children's games, and
-mimicry--was not esteemed a domain worthy of art.
-
-The artist of the future will understand that to compose a
-fairy-tale, a little song which will touch, a lullaby or a riddle
-which will entertain, a jest which will amuse, or to draw a sketch
-which will delight dozens of generations or millions of children and
-adults, is incomparably more important and more fruitful than to
-compose a novel or a symphony, or paint a picture which will divert
-some members of the wealthy classes for a short time, and then be
-forever forgotten. The region of this art of the simple feelings
-accessible to all is enormous, and it is as yet almost untouched.
-
-The art of the future, therefore, will not be poorer, but infinitely
-richer in subject-matter. And the form of the art of the future will
-also not be inferior to the present forms of art, but infinitely
-superior to them. Superior, not in the sense of having a refined and
-complex technique, but in the sense of the capacity briefly, simply,
-and clearly to transmit, without any superfluities, the feeling
-which the artist has experienced and wishes to transmit.
-
-I remember once speaking to a famous astronomer who had given public
-lectures on the spectrum analysis of the stars of the Milky Way,
-and saying it would be a good thing if, with his knowledge and
-masterly delivery, he would give a lecture merely on the formation
-and movements of the earth, for certainly there were many people
-at his lecture on the spectrum analysis of the stars of the Milky
-Way, especially among the women, who did not well know why night
-follows day and summer follows winter. The wise astronomer smiled as
-he answered, "Yes, it would be a good thing, but it would be very
-difficult. To lecture on the spectrum analysis of the Milky Way is
-far easier."
-
-And so it is in art. To write a rhymed poem dealing with the times
-of Cleopatra, or paint a picture of Nero burning Rome, or compose
-a symphony in the manner of Brahms or Richard Strauss, or an opera
-like Wagner's, is far easier than to tell a simple story without any
-unnecessary details, yet so that it should transmit the feelings of
-the narrator, or to draw a pencil-sketch which should touch or amuse
-the beholder, or to compose four bars of clear and simple melody,
-without any accompaniment, which should convey an impression and be
-remembered by those who hear it.
-
-"It is impossible for us, with our culture, to return to a primitive
-state," say the artists of our time. "It is impossible for us now to
-write such stories as that of Joseph or the 'Odyssey,' to produce
-such statues as the Venus of Milo, or to compose such music as the
-folk-songs."
-
-And indeed, for the artists of our society and day, it is
-impossible, but not for the future artist, who will be free from
-all the perversion of technical improvements hiding the absence
-of subject-matter, and who, not being a professional artist and
-receiving no payment for his activity, will only produce art when he
-feels impelled to do so by an irresistible inner impulse.
-
-The art of the future will thus be completely distinct, both in
-subject-matter and in form, from what is now called art. The only
-subject-matter of the art of the future will be either feelings
-drawing men toward union, or such as already unite them; and
-the forms of art will be such as will be open to every one. And
-therefore, the ideal of excellence in the future will not be the
-exclusiveness of feeling, accessible only to some, but, on the
-contrary, its universality. And not bulkiness, obscurity, and
-complexity of form, as is now esteemed, but, on the contrary,
-brevity, clearness, and simplicity of expression. Only when art has
-attained to that, will art neither divert nor deprave men as it
-does now, calling on them to expend their best strength on it, but
-be what it should be,--a vehicle wherewith to transmit religious,
-Christian perception from the realm of reason and intellect into
-that of feeling, and really drawing people in actual life nearer
-to that perfection and unity indicated to them by their religious
-perception.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XX
-
-THE CONCLUSION
-
-
-I have accomplished, to the best of my ability, this work which
-has occupied me for fifteen years, on a subject near to me--that
-of art. By saying that this subject has occupied me for fifteen
-years, I do not mean that I have been writing this book fifteen
-years, but only that I began to write on art fifteen years ago,
-thinking that when once I undertook the task I should be able to
-accomplish it without a break. It proved, however, that my views
-on the matter then were so far from clear that I could not arrange
-them in a way that satisfied me. From that time I have never ceased
-to think on the subject, and I have recommenced to write on it six
-or seven times; but each time, after writing a considerable part of
-it, I have found myself unable to bring the work to a satisfactory
-conclusion, and have had to put it aside. Now I have finished it;
-and however badly I may have performed the task, my hope is that
-my fundamental thought as to the false direction the art of our
-society has taken and is following, as to the reasons of this, and
-as to the real destination of art, is correct, and that therefore my
-work will not be without avail. But that this should come to pass,
-and that art should really abandon its false path and take the new
-direction, it is necessary that another equally important human
-spiritual activity,--science,--in intimate dependence on which art
-always rests, should abandon the false path which it too, like art,
-is following.
-
-Science and art are as closely bound together as the lungs and the
-heart, so that if one organ is vitiated the other cannot act rightly.
-
-True science investigates and brings to human perception such
-truths and such knowledge as the people of a given time and society
-consider most important. Art transmits these truths from the region
-of perception to the region of emotion. Therefore, if the path
-chosen by science be false, so also will be the path taken by art.
-Science and art are like a certain kind of barge with kedge-anchors
-which used to ply on our rivers. Science, like the boats which took
-the anchors up-stream and made them secure, gives direction to the
-forward movement; while art, like the windlass worked on the barge
-to draw it toward the anchor, causes the actual progression. And
-thus a false activity of science inevitably causes a correspondingly
-false activity of art.
-
-As art in general is the transmission of every kind of feeling,
-but in the limited sense of the word we only call that art which
-transmits feelings acknowledged by us to be important, so also
-science in general is the transmission of all possible knowledge;
-but in the limited sense of the word we call science that which
-transmits knowledge acknowledged by us to be important.
-
-And the degree of importance, both of the feelings transmitted by
-art and of the information transmitted by science, is decided by the
-religious perception of the given time and society, _i.e._ by the
-common understanding of the purpose of their lives possessed by the
-people of that time or society.
-
-That which most of all contributes to the fulfilment of that purpose
-will be studied most; that which contributes less will be studied
-less; that which does not contribute at all to the fulfilment of the
-purpose of human life will be entirely neglected, or, if studied,
-such study will not be accounted science. So it always has been, and
-so it should be now; for such is the nature of human knowledge and
-of human life. But the science of the upper classes of our time,
-which not only does not acknowledge any religion, but considers
-every religion to be mere superstition, could not and cannot make
-such distinctions.
-
-Scientists of our day affirm that they study _everything_
-impartially; but as everything is too much (is in fact an infinite
-number of objects), and as it is impossible to study all alike, this
-is only said in the theory, while in practice not everything is
-studied, and study is applied far from impartially, only that being
-studied which, on the one hand, is most wanted by, and on the other
-hand, is pleasantest to, those people who occupy themselves with
-science. And what the people, belonging to the upper classes, who
-are occupying themselves with science most want is the maintenance
-of the system under which those classes retain their privileges; and
-what is pleasantest are such things as satisfy idle curiosity, do
-not demand great mental efforts, and can be practically applied.
-
-And therefore one side of science, including theology and philosophy
-adapted to the existing order, as also history and political economy
-of the same sort, are chiefly occupied in proving that the existing
-order is the very one which ought to exist; that it has come into
-existence and continues to exist by the operation of immutable
-laws not amenable to human will, and that all efforts to change
-it are therefore harmful and wrong. The other part, experimental
-science,--including mathematics, astronomy, chemistry, physics,
-botany, and all the natural sciences,--is exclusively occupied with
-things that have no direct relation to human life: with what is
-curious, and with things of which practical application advantageous
-to people of the upper classes can be made. And to justify that
-selection of objects of study which (in conformity to their own
-position) the men of science of our times have made, they have
-devised a theory of science for science's sake, quite similar to the
-theory of art for art's sake.
-
-As by the theory of art for art's sake it appears that occupation
-with all those things that please us--is art, so, by the theory of
-science for science's sake, the study of that which interests us--is
-science.
-
-So that one side of science, instead of studying how people should
-live in order to fulfil their mission in life, demonstrates the
-righteousness and immutability of the bad and false arrangements
-of life which exist around us; while the other part, experimental
-science, occupies itself with questions of simple curiosity or with
-technical improvements.
-
-The first of these divisions of science is harmful, not only because
-it confuses people's perceptions and gives false decisions, but also
-because it exists, and occupies the ground which should belong to
-true science. It does this harm, that each man, in order to approach
-the study of the most important questions of life, must first refute
-these erections of lies which have during ages been piled around
-each of the most essential questions of human life, and which are
-propped up by all the strength of human ingenuity.
-
-The second division--the one of which modern science is so
-particularly proud, and which is considered by many people to be the
-only real science--is harmful in that it diverts attention from the
-really important subjects to insignificant subjects, and is also
-directly harmful in that, under the evil system of society which the
-first division of science justifies and supports, a great part of
-the technical gains of science are turned, not to the advantage, but
-to the injury of mankind.
-
-Indeed, it is only to those who are devoting their lives to such
-study that it seems as if all the inventions which are made in the
-sphere of natural science were very important and useful things.
-And to these people it seems so only when they do not look around
-them and do not see what is really important. They only need tear
-themselves away from the psychological microscope under which they
-examine the objects of their study, and look about them, in order
-to see how insignificant is all that has afforded them such nave
-pride, all that knowledge not only of geometry of _n_-dimensions,
-spectrum analysis of the Milky Way, the form of atoms, dimensions
-of human skulls of the Stone Age, and similar trifles, but even our
-knowledge of micro-organisms, X-rays, etc., in comparison with such
-knowledge as we have thrown aside and handed over to the perversions
-of the professors of theology, jurisprudence, political economy,
-financial science, etc. We need only look around us to perceive that
-the activity proper to real science is not the study of whatever
-happens to interest us, but the study of how man's life should be
-established,--the study of those questions of religion, morality,
-and social life, without the solution of which all our knowledge of
-nature will be harmful or insignificant.
-
-We are highly delighted and very proud that our science renders it
-possible to utilize the energy of a waterfall and make it work in
-factories, or that we have pierced tunnels through mountains, and so
-forth. But the pity of it is that we make the force of the waterfall
-labor, not for the benefit of the workmen, but to enrich capitalists
-who produce articles of luxury or weapons of man-destroying war.
-The same dynamite with which we blast the mountains to pierce
-tunnels we use for wars, from which latter we not only do not intend
-to abstain, but which we consider inevitable, and for which we
-unceasingly prepare.
-
-If we are now able to inoculate preventatively with diphtheritic
-microbes, to find a needle in a body by means of X-rays, to
-straighten a hunched-back, cure syphilis, and perform wonderful
-operations, we should not be proud of these acquisitions either
-(even were they all established beyond dispute) if we fully
-understood the true purpose of real science. If but one-tenth of
-the efforts now spent on objects of pure curiosity or of merely
-practical application were expended on real science organizing the
-life of man, more than half the people now sick would not have the
-illnesses from which a small minority of them now get cured in
-hospitals. There would be no poor-blooded and deformed children
-growing up in factories, no death-rates, as now, of fifty per
-cent among children, no deterioration of whole generations, no
-prostitution, no syphilis, and no murdering of hundreds of thousands
-in wars, nor those horrors of folly and of misery which our present
-science considers a necessary condition of human life.
-
-We have so perverted the conception of science that it seems strange
-to men of our day to allude to sciences which should prevent the
-mortality of children, prostitution, syphilis, the deterioration
-of whole generations, and the wholesale murder of men. It seems
-to us that science is only then real science when a man in a
-laboratory pours liquids from one jar into another, or analyzes
-the spectrum, or cuts up frogs and porpoises, or weaves in a
-specialized, scientific jargon an obscure network of conventional
-phrases--theological, philosophical, historical, juridical, or
-politico-economical--semi-intelligible to the man himself, and
-intended to demonstrate that what now is, is what should be.
-
-But science, true science,--such science as would really deserve
-the respect which is now claimed by the followers of one (the
-least important) part of science,--is not at all such as this:
-real science lies in knowing what we should and what we should not
-believe, in knowing how the associated life of man should and should
-not be constituted; how to treat sexual relations, how to educate
-children, how to use the land, how to cultivate it oneself without
-oppressing other people, how to treat foreigners, how to treat
-animals, and much more that is important for the life of man.
-
-Such has true science ever been and such it should be. And such
-science is springing up in our times; but, on the one hand, such
-true science is denied and refuted by all those scientific people
-who defend the existing order of society, and, on the other hand, it
-is considered empty, unnecessary, unscientific science by those who
-are engrossed in experimental science.
-
-For instance, books and sermons appear, demonstrating the
-antiquatedness and absurdity of Church dogmas, as well as the
-necessity of establishing a reasonable religious perception suitable
-to our times, and all the theology that is considered to be real
-science is only engaged in refuting these works and in exercising
-human intelligence again and again to find support and justification
-for superstitions long since outlived, and which have now become
-quite meaningless. Or a sermon appears showing that land should
-not be an object of private possession, and that the institution
-of private property in land is a chief cause of the poverty of
-the masses. Apparently science, real science, should welcome such
-a sermon and draw further deductions from this position. But the
-science of our times does nothing of the kind: on the contrary,
-political economy demonstrates the opposite position; namely, that
-landed property, like every other form of property, must be more
-and more concentrated in the hands of a small number of owners.
-Again, in the same way, one would suppose it to be the business of
-real science to demonstrate the irrationality, unprofitableness,
-and immorality of war and of executions; or the inhumanity and
-harmfulness of prostitution; or the absurdity, harmfulness,
-and immorality of using narcotics or of eating animals; or the
-irrationality, harmfulness, and antiquatedness of patriotism. And
-such works exist, but are all considered unscientific; while works
-to prove that all these things ought to continue, and works intended
-to satisfy an idle thirst for knowledge lacking any relation to
-human life, are considered to be scientific.
-
-The deviation of the science of our time from its true purpose is
-strikingly illustrated by those ideals which are put forward by some
-scientists, and are not denied, but admitted, by the majority of
-scientific men.
-
-These ideals are expressed not only in stupid, fashionable books,
-describing the world as it will be in 1000 or 3000 years' time, but
-also by sociologists who consider themselves serious men of science.
-These ideals are that food, instead of being obtained from the land
-by agriculture, will be prepared in laboratories by chemical means,
-and that human labor will be almost entirely superseded by the
-utilization of natural forces.
-
-Man will not, as now, eat an egg laid by a hen he has kept, or bread
-grown on his field, or an apple from a tree he has reared and which
-has blossomed and matured in his sight; but he will eat tasty,
-nutritious, food which will be prepared in laboratories by the
-conjoint labor of many people in which he will take a small part.
-Man will hardly need to labor, so that all men will be able to yield
-to idleness as the upper, ruling classes now yield to it.
-
-Nothing shows more plainly than these ideals to what a degree the
-science of our times has deviated from the true path.
-
-The great majority of men in our times lack good and sufficient food
-(as well as dwellings and clothes and all the first necessaries of
-life). And this great majority of men is compelled, to the injury of
-its well-being, to labor continually beyond its strength. Both these
-evils can easily be removed by abolishing mutual strife, luxury, and
-the unrighteous distribution of wealth, in a word, by the abolition
-of a false and harmful order and the establishment of a reasonable,
-human manner of life. But science considers the existing order of
-things to be as immutable as the movements of the planets, and
-therefore assumes that the purpose of science is--not to elucidate
-the falseness of this order and to arrange a new, reasonable way of
-life--but, under the existing order of things, to feed everybody and
-enable all to be as idle as the ruling classes, who live a depraved
-life, now are.
-
-And, meanwhile, it is forgotten that nourishment with corn,
-vegetables, and fruit raised from the soil by one's own labor is the
-pleasantest, healthiest, easiest, and most natural nourishment, and
-that the work of using one's muscles is as necessary a condition of
-life as is the oxidation of the blood by breathing.
-
-To invent means whereby people might, while continuing our false
-division of property and labor, be well nourished by means of
-chemically prepared food, and might make the forces of nature work
-for them, is like inventing means to pump oxygen into the lungs of a
-man kept in a closed chamber, the air of which is bad, when all that
-is needed is to cease to confine the man in the closed chamber.
-
-In the vegetable and animal kingdoms a laboratory for the
-production of food has been arranged, such as can be surpassed by
-no professors, and to enjoy the fruits of this laboratory, and
-to participate in it, man has only to yield to that ever joyful
-impulse to labor, without which man's life is a torment. And lo and
-behold! the scientists of our times, instead of employing all their
-strength to abolish whatever hinders man from utilizing the good
-things prepared for him, acknowledge the conditions under which man
-is deprived of these blessings to be unalterable, and instead of
-arranging the life of man so that he might work joyfully and be fed
-from the soil, they devise methods which will cause him to become an
-artificial abortion. It is like not helping a man out of confinement
-into the fresh air, but devising means, instead, to pump into him
-the necessary quantity of oxygen and arranging so that he may live
-in a stifling cellar instead of living at home.
-
-Such false ideals could not exist if science were not on a false
-path.
-
-And yet the feelings transmitted by art grow up on the bases
-supplied by science.
-
-But what feelings can such misdirected science evoke? One side of
-this science evokes antiquated feelings, which humanity has used
-up, and which, in our times, are bad and exclusive. The other side,
-occupied with the study of subjects unrelated to the conduct of
-human life, by its very nature cannot serve as a basis for art.
-
-So that art in our times, to be art, must either open up its own
-road independently of science, or must take direction from the
-unrecognized science which is denounced by the orthodox section of
-science. And this is what art, when it even partially fulfils its
-mission, is doing.
-
-It is to be hoped that the work I have tried to perform concerning
-art will be performed also for science--that the falseness of the
-theory of science for science's sake will be demonstrated; that
-the necessity of acknowledging Christian teaching in its true
-meaning will be clearly shown, that on the basis of that teaching
-a reappraisement will be made of the knowledge we possess, and of
-which we are so proud; that the secondariness and insignificance
-of experimental science, and the primacy and importance of
-religious, moral, and social knowledge will be established; and
-that such knowledge will not, as now, be left to the guidance of
-the upper classes only, but will form a chief interest of all free,
-truth-loving men, such as those who, not in agreement with the
-upper classes, but in their despite, have always forwarded the real
-science of life.
-
-Astronomical, physical, chemical, and biological science, as also
-technical and medical science, will be studied only in so far as
-they can help to free mankind from religious, juridical, or social
-deceptions, or can serve to promote the well-being of all men, and
-not of any single class.
-
-Only then will science cease to be what it is now,--on the one hand
-a system of sophistries, needed for the maintenance of the existing
-worn-out order of society, and, on the other hand, a shapeless mass
-of miscellaneous knowledge, for the most part good for little or
-nothing,--and become a shapely and organic whole, having a definite
-and reasonable purpose comprehensible to all men; namely, the
-purpose of bringing to the consciousness of men the truths that flow
-from the religious perception of our times.
-
-And only then will art, which is always dependent on science, be
-what it might and should be, an organ co-equally important with
-science for the life and progress of mankind.
-
-Art is not a pleasure, a solace, or an amusement; art is a great
-matter. Art is an organ of human life, transmitting man's reasonable
-perception into feeling. In our age the common religious perception
-of men is the consciousness of the brotherhood of man--we know
-that the well-being of man lies in union with his fellow-men.
-True science should indicate the various methods of applying this
-consciousness to life. Art should transform this perception into
-feeling.
-
-The task of art is enormous. Through the influence of real art,
-aided by science guided by religion, that peaceful coperation of
-man which is now obtained by external means--by our law-courts,
-police, charitable institutions, factory inspection, etc.--should
-be obtained by man's free and joyous activity. Art should cause
-violence to be set aside.
-
-And it is only art that can accomplish this.
-
-All that now, independently of the fear of violence and punishment,
-makes the social life of man possible (and already now this is
-an enormous part of the order of our lives)--all this has been
-brought about by art. If by art it has been inculcated how people
-should treat religious objects, their parents, their children,
-their wives, their relations, strangers, foreigners; how to conduct
-themselves to their elders, their superiors, to those who suffer,
-to their enemies, and to animals; and if this has been obeyed
-through generations by millions of people, not only unenforced by
-any violence, but so that the force of such customs can be shaken in
-no way but by means of art--then, by the same art, other customs,
-more in accord with the religious perception of our time, may be
-evoked. If art has been able to convey the sentiment of reverence
-for images, for the eucharist, and for the king's person; of shame
-at betraying a comrade, devotion to a flag, the necessity of revenge
-for an insult, the need to sacrifice one's labor for the erection
-and adornment of churches, the duty of defending one's honor or
-the glory of one's native land--then that same art can also evoke
-reverence for the dignity of every man and for the life of every
-animal; can make men ashamed of luxury, of violence, of revenge, or
-of using for their pleasure that of which others are in need; can
-compel people freely, gladly, and without noticing it, to sacrifice
-themselves in the service of man.
-
-The task for art to accomplish is to make that feeling of
-brotherhood and love of one's neighbor, now attained only by the
-best members of society, the customary feeling and the instinct of
-all men. By evoking, under imaginary conditions, the feeling of
-brotherhood and love, religious art will train men to experience
-those same feelings under similar circumstances in actual life; it
-will lay in the souls of men the rails along which the actions of
-those whom art thus educates will naturally pass. And universal
-art, by uniting the most different people in one common feeling,
-by destroying separation, will educate people to union, will show
-them, not by reason, but by life itself, the joy of universal union
-reaching beyond the bounds set by life.
-
-The destiny of art in our time is to transmit from the realm of
-reason to the realm of feeling the truth that well-being for men
-consists in being united together, and to set up, in place of the
-existing reign of force, that kingdom of God, _i.e._ of love, which
-we all recognize to be the highest aim of human life.
-
-Possibly, in the future, science may reveal to art yet newer and
-higher ideals, which art may realize; but, in our time, the destiny
-of art is clear and definite. The task for Christian art is to
-establish brotherly union among men.
-
-
-
-
-APPENDIX I
-
-
-This is the first page of Mallarm's book, "Divagations":--
-
-LE PHNOMNE FUTUR
-
- Un ciel ple, sur le monde qui finit de dcrpitude, va
- peut-tre partir avec les nuages: les lambeaux de la pourpre
- use des couchants dteignent dans une rivire dormant
- l'horizon submerg de rayons et d'eau. Les arbres s'ennuient,
- et, sous leur feuillage blanchi (de la poussire du temps plutt
- que celle des chemins) monte la maison en toile de Montreur
- de choses Passes: maint rverbre attend le crpuscule et
- ravive les visages d'une malheureuse foule, vaincue par la
- maladie immortelle et le pch des sicles, d'hommes prs de
- leurs chtives complices enceintes des fruits misrables avec
- lesquels prira la terre. Dans le silence inquiet de tous les
- yeux suppliant l-bas le soleil qui, sous l'eau, s'enfonce
- avec le dsespoir d'un cri, voici le simple boniment: "Nulle
- enseigne ne vous rgale du spectacle intrieur, car il n'est
- pas maintenant un peintre capable d'en donner une ombre triste.
- J'apporte, vivante (et prserve travers les ans par la
- science souveraine) une Femme d'autrefois. Quelque folie,
- originelle et nave, une extase d'or, je ne sais quoi! par elle
- nomm sa chevelure, se ploie avec la grce des toffes autour
- d'un visage qu' claire la nudit sanglante de ses lvres. A la
- place du vtement vain, elle a un corps; et les yeux, semblables
- aux pierres rares! ne valent pas ce regard qui sort de sa chair
- heureuse: des seins levs comme s'ils taient pleins d'un lait
- ternel, la pointe vers le ciel, les jambes lisses qui gardent
- le sel de la mer premire." Se rappelant leurs pauvres pouses,
- chauves, morbides et pleines d'horreur, les maris se pressent:
- elles aussi par curiosit, mlancoliques, veulent voir.
-
- Quand tous auront contempl la noble crature, vestige de
- quelque poque dj maudite, les uns indiffrents, car ils
- n'auront pas eu la force de comprendre, mais d'autres navrs et
- la paupire humide de larmes rsignes, se regarderont; tandis
- que les potes de ces temps, sentant se rallumer leur yeux
- teints, s'achemineront vers leur lampe, le cerveau ivre un
- instant d'une gloire confuse, hants du Rythme et dans l'oubli
- d'exister une poque qui survit la beaut.
-
-THE FUTURE PHENOMENON--BY MALLARM.
-
- A pale sky, above the world that is ending through decrepitude,
- going, perhaps, to pass away with the clouds: shreds of worn-out
- purple of the sunsets wash off their color in a river sleeping
- on the horizon, submerged with rays and water. The trees are
- weary and, beneath their foliage, whitened (by the dust of
- time rather than that of the roads), rises the canvas house
- of "Showman of things Past." Many a lamp awaits the gloaming,
- and brightens the faces of a miserable crowd vanquished by the
- immortal illness and the sin of ages, of men by the sides of
- their puny accomplices pregnant with the miserable fruit with
- which the world will perish. In the anxious silence of all the
- eyes supplicating the sun there, which sinks under the water
- with the desperation of a cry, this is the plain announcement:
- "No sign-board now regales you with the spectacle that is
- inside, for there is no painter now capable of giving even a
- shadow of it. I bring living (and preserved by sovereign science
- through the years) a Woman of other days. Some kind of folly,
- nave and original, an ecstasy of gold, I know not what, by her
- called her hair, clings with the grace of some material round a
- face brightened by the blood-red nudity of her lips. In place of
- vain clothing, she has a body; and her eyes, resembling precious
- stones! are not worth that look, which comes from her happy
- flesh: breasts raised as if full of eternal milk, the points
- toward the sky; the smooth legs, that keep the salt of the first
- sea." Remembering their poor spouses, bald, morbid, and full
- of horrors, the husbands press forward: the women, too, from
- curiosity, gloomily wish to see.
-
- When all shall have contemplated the noble creature, vestige of
- some epoch already damned, some indifferently, for they will not
- have had strength to understand, but others, broken-hearted, and
- with eyelids wet with tears of resignation, will look at each
- other; while the poets of those times, feeling their dim eyes
- rekindled, will make their way toward their lamp, their brain
- for an instant drunk with confused glory, haunted by Rhythm, and
- forgetful that they exist at an epoch which has survived beauty.
-
-
-
-
-APPENDIX II[127]
-
-[127] The translations in Appendices I., II., and IV., are by Louise
-Maude. The aim of these renderings has been to keep as close to the
-originals as the obscurity of meaning allowed. The sense (or absence
-of sense) has therefore been more considered than the form of the
-verses.
-
-
-No. 1
-
-The following verses are by Viel-Griffin, from page 28 of a volume
-of his Poems:--
-
-OISEAU BLEU COULEUR DU TEMPS
-
- 1
-
- Sait-tu l'oubli
- D'un vain doux rve,
- Oiseau moqueur
- De la fort?
- Le jour plit,
- La nuit se lve,
- Et dans mon coeur
- L'ombre a pleur;
-
- 2
-
- O chante-moi
- Ta folle gamme,
- Car j'ai dormi
- Ce jour durant;
- Le lche emoi
- O fut mon me
- Sanglote ennui
- Le jour mourant....
-
- 3
-
- Sais-tu le chant
- De sa parole
- Et de sa voix,
- Toi qui redis
- Dans le couchant
- Ton air frivole
- Comme autrefois
- Sous les midis?
-
- 4
-
- O chante alors
- La mlodie
- De son amour,
- Mon fol espoir,
- Parmi les ors
- Et l'incendie
- Du vain doux jour
- Qui meurt ce soir.
-
- FRANCIS VIEL-GRIFFIN.
-
-BLUE BIRD
-
- 1
-
- Canst thou forget,
- In dreams so vain,
- Oh, mocking bird
- Of forest deep?
- The day doth set,
- Night comes again,
- My heart has heard
- The shadows weep;
-
- 2
-
- Thy tones let flow
- In maddening scale,
- For I have slept
- The livelong day;
- Emotions low
- In me now wail,
- My soul they've kept:
- Light dies away....
-
- 3
-
- That music sweet,
- Ah, do you know
- Her voice and speech?
- Your airs so light
- You who repeat
- In sunset's glow,
- As you sang, each,
- At noonday's height.
-
- 4
-
- Of my desire,
- My hope so bold,
- Her love--up, sing,
- Sing, 'neath this light,
- This flaming fire,
- And all the gold
- The eve doth bring
- Ere comes the night.
-
-
-No. 2
-
-And here are some verses by the esteemed young poet Verhaeren, which
-I also take from page 28 of his Works:--
-
-ATTIRANCES
-
- Lointainement, et si trangement pareils,
- De grands masques d'argent que la brume recule,
- Vaguent, au jour tombant, autour des vieux soleils.
-
- Les doux lointaines!--et comme, au fond du crpuscule,
- Ils nous fixent le coeur, immensment le coeur,
- Avec les yeux _dfunts de leur_ visage d'me.
-
- C'est toujours du silence, moins, dans la pleur
- Du soir, un jet de feu soudain, un cri de flamme,
- Un dpart de lumire inattendu vers Dieu.
-
- On se laisse charmer et troubler de mystre,
- Et l'on dirait des morts qui taisent un adieu
- Trop mystique, pour tre cout par la terre!
-
- Sont-ils le souvenir matriel et clair
- Des phbes chrtiens couchs aux catacombes
- Parmi les lys? Sont-ils leur regard et leur chair?
-
- Ou seul, ce qui survit de merveilleux aux tombes
- De ceux qui sont partis, vers leurs rves, un soir,
- Conqurir la folie l'assaut des nues?
-
- Lointainement, combien nous les sentons vouloir
- Un peu d'amour pour leurs oeuvres destitues,
- Pour leur errance et leur tristesse aux horizons.
-
- Toujours! aux horizons du coeur et des penses,
- Alors que les vieux soirs clatent en blasons
- Soudains, pour les gloires noires et angoisses.
-
- MILE VERHAEREN,
- _Pomes_.
-
-ATTRACTIONS
-
- Large masks of silver, by mists drawn away,
- So strangely alike, yet so far apart.
- Float round the old suns when faileth the day.
-
- They transfix our heart, so immensely our heart,
- Those distances mild, in the twilight deep,
- Looking out of dead faces with their spirit eyes.
-
- All around is now silence, except when there leap
- In the pallor of evening, with fiery cries,
- Some fountains of flame that God-ward do fly.
-
- Mysterious trouble and charms us infold,
- You might think that the dead spoke a silent good-by,
- Oh! too mystical far on earth to be told!
-
- Are they the memories, material and bright,
- Of the Christian youths that in catacombs sleep
- 'Mid the lilies? Are they their flesh or their sight?
-
- Or the marvel alone that survives, in the deep,
- Of those that, one night, returned to their dream
- Of conquering folly by assaulting the skies?
-
- For their destitute works--we feel it seems,
- For a little love their longing cries
- From horizons far--for their errings and pain.
-
- In horizons ever of heart and thought,
- While the evenings old in bright blaze wane
- Suddenly, for black glories anguish fraught.
-
-
-No. 3
-
-And the following is a poem by Moras, evidently an admirer of Greek
-beauty. It is from page 28 of a volume of his Poems:--
-
-ENONE AU CLAIR VISAGE
-
- Enone, j'avais cru qu'en aimant ta beaut
- O l'me avec le corps trouvent leur unit,
- J'allais, m'affermissant et le coeur et l'esprit,
- Monter jusqu' cela qui jamais ne prit,
- N'ayant t cre, qui n'est froideur ou feu,
- Qui n'est beau quelque part et laid en autre lieu;
- Et me flattais encor' d'une belle harmonie
- Que j'eusse compos du meilleur et du pire,
- Ainsi que le chanteur qui chrit Polimnie,
- En accordant le grave avec l'aigu, retire
- Un son bien lev sur les nerfs de sa lyre.
- Mais mon courage, hlas! se pmant comme mort,
- M'enseigna que le trait qui m'avait fait amant
- Ne fut pas de cet arc que courbe sans effort
- La Vnus qui naquit du mle seulement,
- Mais que j'avais souffert cette Vnus dernire,
- Qui a le coeur couard, n d'une faible mre.
- Et pourtant, ce mauvais garon, chasseur habile,
- Qui charge son carquois de sagette subtile,
- Qui secoue en riant sa torche, pour un jour,
- Qui ne pose jamais que sur de tendres fleurs,
- C'est sur un teint charmant qu'il essuie les pleurs,
- Et c'est encore un Dieu, Enone, cet Amour.
- Mais, laisse, les oiseaux du printemps sont partis,
- Et je vois les rayons du soleil amortis.
- Enone, ma douleur, harmonieux visage,
- Superbe humilit, doux honnte langage,
- Hier me remirant dans cet tang glac
- Qui au bout du jardin se couvre de feuillage,
- Sur ma face je vis que les jours ont pass.
-
- JEAN MORAS.
-
-ENONE
-
- Enone, in loving thy beauty, I thought,
- Where the soul and the body to union are brought,
- That mounting by steadying my heart and my mind,
- In that which can't perish, myself I should find.
- For it ne'er was created, is not ugly and fair;
- Is not coldness in one part, while on fire it is there.
- Yes, I flattered myself that a harmony fine
- I'd succeed to compose of the worst and the best,
- Like the bard who adores Polyhymnia divine,
- And mingling sounds different from the nerves of his lyre,
- From the grave and the smart draws melodies higher.
- But, alas! my courage, so faint and nigh spent,
- The dart that has struck me proves without fail
- Not to be from that bow which is easily bent
- By the Venus that's born alone of the male.
- No, 'twas that other Venus that caused me to smart,
- Born of frail mother with cowardly heart.
- And yet that naughty lad, that little hunter bold,
- Who laughs and shakes his flowery torch just for a day,
- Who never rests but upon tender flowers and gay,
- On sweetest skin who dries the tears his eyes that fill,
- Yet oh, Enone mine, a God's that Cupid still.
- Let it pass; for the birds of the Spring are away,
- And dying I see the sun's lingering ray.
- Enone, my sorrow, oh, harmonious face,
- Humility grand, words of virtue and grace,
- I looked yestere'en in the pond frozen fast,
- Strewn with leaves at the end of the garden's fair space,
- And I read in my face that those days are now past.
-
-
-No. 4
-
-And this is also from page 28 of a thick book, full of similar
-poems, by M. Montesquiou.
-
-BERCEUSE D'OMBRE
-
- Des formes, des formes, des formes
- Blanche, bleue, et rose, et d'or
- Descendront du haut des ormes
- Sur l'enfant qui se rendort.
- Des formes!
-
- Des plumes, des plumes, des plumes
- Pour composer un doux nid.
- Midi sonne: les enclumes
- Cessent; la rumeur finit....
- Des plumes!
-
- Des roses, des roses, des roses
- Pour embaumer son sommeil,
- Vos ptales sont moroses
- Prs du sourire vermeil.
- O roses!
-
- Des ailes, des ailes, des ailes
- Pour bourdonner sont front,
- Abeilles et demoiselles,
- Des rythmes qui berceront.
- Des ailes!
-
- Des branches, des branches, des branches
- Pour tresser un pavillon,
- Par o des clarts moins franches
- Descendront sur l'oisillon.
- Des branches!
-
- Des songes, des songes, des songes
- Dans ses pensers entr' ouverts
- Glissez un peu de mensonges
- A voir le vie au travers
- Des songes!
-
- Des fes, des fes, des fes
- Pour filer leurs cheveaux
- Des mirages, de bouffes
- Dans tous ces petits cerveaux.
- Des fes!
-
- Des anges, des anges, des anges
- Pour emporter dans l'ther
- Les petits enfants tranges
- Qui ne veulent pas rester....
- Nos anges!
-
- COMTE ROBERT DE MONTESQUIOU-FEZENSAC,
- _Les Hortensias Bleus_.
-
-THE SHADOW LULLABY
-
- Oh forms, oh forms, oh forms
- White, blue, and gold, and red
- Descending from the elm trees,
- On sleeping baby's head.
- Oh forms!
-
- Oh feathers, feathers, feathers
- To make a cozy nest.
- Twelve striking: stops the clamor;
- The anvils are at rest....
- Oh feathers!
-
- Oh roses, roses, roses
- To scent his sleep awhile,
- Pale are your fragrant petals
- Beside his ruby smile.
- Oh roses!
-
- Oh wings, oh wings, oh wings
- Of bees and dragon-flies,
- To hum around his forehead,
- And lull him with your sighs.
- Oh wings!
-
- Branches, branches, branches
- A shady bower to twine,
- Through which, oh daylight, faintly
- Descend on birdie mine.
- Branches!
-
- Oh dreams, oh dreams, oh dreams
- Into his opening mind,
- Let in a little falsehood
- With sights of life behind.
- Dreams!
-
- Oh fairies, fairies, fairies
- To twine and twist their threads
- With puffs of phantom visions
- Into these little heads.
- Fairies!
-
- Angels, angels, angels
- To the ether far away,
- Those children strange to carry
- That here don't wish to stay....
- Our angels!
-
-
-
-
-APPENDIX III
-
-
-These are the contents of "The Nibelung's Ring":--
-
-The first part tells that the nymphs, the daughters of the Rhine,
-for some reason guard gold in the Rhine, and sing: Weia, Waga, Woge
-du Welle, Walle zur Wiege, Wagala-weia, Wallala, Weiala, Weia, and
-so forth.
-
-These singing nymphs are pursued by a gnome (a nibelung) who desires
-to seize them. The gnome cannot catch any of them. Then the nymphs
-guarding the gold tell the gnome just what they ought to keep
-secret, namely, that whoever renounces love will be able to steal
-the gold they are guarding. And the gnome renounces love, and steals
-the gold. This ends the first scene.
-
-In the second scene a god and a goddess lie in a field in sight of
-a castle which giants have built for them. Presently they wake up
-and are pleased with the castle, and they relate that in payment for
-this work they must give the goddess Freia to the giants. The giants
-come for their pay. But the god Wotan objects to parting with Freia.
-The giants get angry. The gods hear that the gnome has stolen the
-gold, promise to confiscate it, and to pay the giants with it. But
-the giants won't trust them, and seize the goddess Freia in pledge.
-
-The third scene takes place underground. The gnome Alberich, who
-stole the gold, for some reason beats a gnome, Mime, and takes from
-him a helmet which has the power both of making people invisible
-and of turning them into other animals. The gods, Wotan and others,
-appear and quarrel with one another and with the gnomes, and wish to
-take the gold, but Alberich won't give it up, and (like everybody
-all through the piece) behaves in a way to insure his own ruin. He
-puts on the helmet, and becomes first a dragon and then a toad. The
-gods catch the toad, take the helmet off it, and carry Alberich away
-with them.
-
-Scene IV. The gods bring Alberich to their home, and order him to
-command his gnomes to bring them all the gold. The gnomes bring
-it. Alberich gives up the gold, but keeps a magic ring. The gods
-take the ring. So Alberich curses the ring, and says it is to bring
-misfortune on any one who has it. The giants appear; they bring
-the goddess Freia, and demand her ransom. They stick up staves of
-Freia's height, and gold is poured in between these staves: this is
-to be the ransom. There is not enough gold, so the helmet is thrown
-in, and they also demand the ring. Wotan refuses to give it up,
-but the goddess Erda appears and commands him to do so, because it
-brings misfortune. Wotan gives it up. Freia is released. The giants,
-having received the ring, fight, and one of them kills the other.
-This ends the Prelude, and we come to the First Day.
-
-The scene shows a house in a tree. Siegmund runs in tired, and lies
-down. Sieglinda, the mistress of the house (and wife of Hunding),
-gives him a drugged draught, and they fall in love with each other.
-Sieglinda's husband comes home, learns that Siegmund belongs to
-a hostile race, and wishes to fight him next day; but Sieglinda
-drugs her husband, and comes to Siegmund. Siegmund discovers that
-Sieglinda is his sister, and that his father drove a sword into the
-tree so that no one can get it out. Siegmund pulls the sword out,
-and commits incest with his sister.
-
-Act II. Siegmund is to fight with Hunding. The gods discuss the
-question to whom they shall award the victory. Wotan, approving of
-Siegmund's incest with his sister, wishes to spare him, but, under
-pressure from his wife, Fricka, he orders the Valkyrie Brnnhilda to
-kill Siegmund. Siegmund goes to fight; Sieglinda faints. Brnnhilda
-appears and wishes to slay Siegmund. Siegmund wishes to kill
-Sieglinda also, but Brnnhilda does not allow it; so he fights with
-Hunding. Brnnhilda defends Siegmund, but Wotan defends Hunding.
-Siegmund's sword breaks, and he is killed. Sieglinda runs away.
-
-Act III. The Valkyries (divine Amazons) are on the stage. The
-Valkyrie Brnnhilda arrives on horseback, bringing Siegmund's body.
-She is flying from Wotan, who is chasing her for her disobedience.
-Wotan catches her, and as a punishment dismisses her from her post
-as a Valkyrie. He casts a spell on her, so that she has to go to
-sleep and to continue asleep until a man wakes her. When some one
-wakes her she will fall in love with him. Wotan kisses her; she
-falls asleep. He lets off fire, which surrounds her.
-
-We now come to the Second Day. The gnome Mime forges a sword in
-a wood. Siegfried appears. He is a son born from the incest of
-brother with sister (Siegmund with Sieglinda), and has been brought
-up in this wood by the gnome. In general the motives of the actions
-of everybody in this production are quite unintelligible. Siegfried
-learns his own origin, and that the broken sword was his father's.
-He orders Mime to reforge it, and then goes off. Wotan comes in the
-guise of a wanderer, and relates what will happen: that he who has
-not learnt to fear will forge the sword, and will defeat everybody.
-The gnome conjectures that this is Siegfried, and wants to poison
-him. Siegfried returns, forges his father's sword, and runs off,
-shouting, Heiho! heiho! heiho! Ho! ho! Aha! oho! aha! Heiaho!
-heiaho! heiaho! Ho! ho! Hahei! hoho! hahei!
-
-And we get to Act II. Alberich sits guarding a giant, who, in form
-of a dragon, guards the gold he has received. Wotan appears, and
-for some unknown reason foretells that Siegfried will come and kill
-the dragon. Alberich wakes the dragon, and asks him for the ring,
-promising to defend him from Siegfried. The dragon won't give up
-the ring. Exit Alberich. Mime and Siegfried appear. Mime hopes the
-dragon will teach Siegfried to fear. But Siegfried does not fear.
-He drives Mime away and kills the dragon, after which he puts his
-finger, smeared with the dragon's blood, to his lips. This enables
-him to know men's secret thoughts, as well as the language of birds.
-The birds tell him where the treasure and the ring are, and also
-that Mime wishes to poison him. Mime returns, and says out loud
-that he wishes to poison Siegfried. This is meant to signify that
-Siegfried, having tasted dragon's blood, understands people's secret
-thoughts. Siegfried, having learnt Mime's intentions, kills him. The
-birds tell Siegfried where Brnnhilda is, and he goes to find her.
-
-Act III. Wotan calls up Erda. Erda prophesies to Wotan, and gives
-him advice. Siegfried appears, quarrels with Wotan, and they fight.
-Suddenly Siegfried's sword breaks Wotan's spear, which had been
-more powerful than anything else. Siegfried goes into the fire to
-Brnnhilda: kisses her; she wakes up, abandons her divinity, and
-throws herself into Siegfried's arms.
-
-Third Day. Prelude. Three Norns plait a golden rope, and talk about
-the future. They go away. Siegfried and Brnnhilda appear. Siegfried
-takes leave of her, gives her the ring, and goes away.
-
-Act I. By the Rhine. A king wants to get married, and also to give
-his sister in marriage. Hagen, the king's wicked brother, advises
-him to marry Brnnhilda and to give his sister to Siegfried.
-Siegfried appears; they give him a drugged draught, which makes
-him forget all the past and fall in love with the king's sister,
-Gutrune. So he rides off with Gunther, the king, to get Brnnhilda
-to be the king's bride. The scene changes. Brnnhilda sits with
-the ring. A Valkyrie comes to her and tells her that Wotan's spear
-is broken, and advises her to give the ring to the Rhine nymphs.
-Siegfried comes, and by means of the magic helmet turns himself into
-Gunther, demands the ring from Brnnhilda, seizes it, and drags her
-off to sleep with him.
-
-Act II. By the Rhine. Alberich and Hagen discuss how to get the
-ring. Siegfried comes, tells how he has obtained a bride for Gunther
-and spent the night with her, but put a sword between himself and
-her. Brnnhilda rides up, recognizes the ring on Siegfried's hand,
-and declares that it was he, and not Gunther, who was with her.
-Hagen stirs everybody up against Siegfried, and decides to kill him
-next day when hunting.
-
-Act III. Again the nymphs in the Rhine relate what has happened.
-Siegfried, who has lost his way, appears. The nymphs ask him for
-the ring, but he won't give it up. Hunters appear. Siegfried tells
-the story of his life. Hagen then gives him a draught, which causes
-his memory to return to him. Siegfried relates how he aroused and
-obtained Brnnhilda, and every one is astonished. Hagen stabs him
-in the back, and the scene is changed. Gutrune meets the corpse of
-Siegfried. Gunther and Hagen quarrel about the ring, and Hagen
-kills Gunther. Brnnhilda cries. Hagen wishes to take the ring
-from Siegfried's hand, but the hand of the corpse raises itself
-threateningly. Brnnhilda takes the ring from Siegfried's hand, and
-when Siegfried's corpse is carried to the pyre, she gets on to a
-horse and leaps into the fire. The Rhine rises, and the waves reach
-the pyre. In the river are three nymphs. Hagen throws himself into
-the fire to get the ring, but the nymphs seize him and carry him
-off. One of them holds the ring; and that is the end of the matter.
-
-The impression obtainable from my recapitulation is, of course,
-incomplete. But however incomplete it may be, it is certainly
-infinitely more favorable than the impression which results from
-reading the four booklets in which the work is printed.
-
-
-
-
-APPENDIX IV
-
-
-Translations of French poems and prose quoted in Chapter X.
-
-BAUDELAIRE'S "FLOWERS OF EVIL"
-
-No. XXIV
-
- I adore thee as much as the vaults of night,
- O vase full of grief, taciturnity great,
- And I love thee the more because of thy flight.
- It seemeth, my night's beautifier, that you
- Still heap up those leagues--yes! ironically heap!
- That divide from my arms the immensity blue.
-
- I advance to attack, I climb to assault,
- Like a choir of young worms at a corpse in the vault;
- Thy coldness, oh cruel, implacable beast!
- Yet heightens thy beauty, on which my eyes feast!
-
-
-BAUDELAIRE'S "FLOWERS OF EVIL"
-
-No. XXXVI
-
-DUELLUM
-
- Two warriors come running, to fight they begin,
- With gleaming and blood they bespatter the air;
- These games, and this clatter of arms, is the din
- Of youth that's a prey to the surgings of love.
-
- The rapiers are broken! and so is our youth,
- But the dagger's avenged, dear! and so is the sword,
- By the nail that is steeled and the hardened tooth.
- Oh, the fury of hearts aged and ulcered by love!
-
- In the ditch, where the ounce and the pard have their lair,
- Our heroes have rolled in an angry embrace;
- Their skin blooms on brambles that erewhile were bare.
-
- That ravine is a friend-inhabited hell!
- Then let us roll in, oh woman inhuman,
- To immortalize hatred that nothing can quell!
-
-
-FROM BAUDELAIRE'S PROSE WORK ENTITLED "LITTLE POEMS"
-
-THE STRANGER
-
-Whom dost thou love best? say, enigmatical man--thy father, thy
-mother, thy brother, or thy sister?
-
-"I have neither father, nor mother, nor sister, nor brother."
-
-Thy friends?
-
-"You there use an expression the meaning of which till now remains
-unknown to me."
-
-Thy country?
-
-"I ignore in what latitude it is situated."
-
-Beauty?
-
-"I would gladly love her, goddess and immortal."
-
-Gold?
-
-"I hate it as you hate God."
-
-Then what do you love, extraordinary stranger?
-
-"I love the clouds ... the clouds that pass ... there ... the
-marvelous clouds!"
-
-
-BAUDELAIRE'S PROSE POEM
-
-THE SOUP AND THE CLOUDS
-
-My beloved little silly was giving me my dinner, and I was
-contemplating, through the open window of the dining-room, those
-moving architectures which God makes out of vapors, the marvelous
-constructions of the impalpable. And I said to myself, amid my
-contemplations, "All these phantasmagoria are almost as beautiful as
-the eyes of my beautiful beloved, the monstrous little silly with
-the green eyes."
-
-Suddenly I felt the violent blow of a fist on my back, and I heard a
-harsh, charming voice, an hysterical voice, as it were hoarse with
-brandy, the voice of my dear little well-beloved, saying, "Are you
-going to eat your soup soon, you d---- b---- of a dealer in clouds?"
-
-
-BAUDELAIRE'S PROSE POEM
-
-THE GALLANT MARKSMAN
-
-As the carriage was passing through the forest, he ordered it to be
-stopped near a shooting-gallery, saying that he wished to shoot off
-a few bullets to _kill_ Time. To kill this monster, is it not the
-most ordinary and the most legitimate occupation of every one? And
-he gallantly offered his arm to his dear, delicious, and execrable
-wife--that mysterious woman to whom he owed so much pleasure, so
-much pain, and perhaps also a large part of his genius.
-
-Several bullets struck far from the intended mark--one even
-penetrated the ceiling; and as the charming creature laughed madly,
-mocking her husband's awkwardness, he turned abruptly toward her and
-said, "Look at that doll there on the right with the haughty mien
-and her nose in the air; well, dear angel, _I imagine to myself that
-it is you!_" And he closed his eyes and pulled the trigger. The doll
-was neatly decapitated.
-
-Then, bowing toward his dear one, his delightful, execrable wife,
-his inevitable pitiless muse, and kissing her hand respectfully, he
-added, "Ah! my dear angel, how I thank you for my skill!"
-
-
-VERLAINE'S "FORGOTTEN AIRS"
-
-No. I
-
- "The wind in the plain
- Suspends its breath."--FAVART.
-
- 'Tis ecstasy languishing,
- Amorous fatigue,
- Of woods all the shudderings
- Embraced by the breeze,
- 'Tis the choir of small voices
- Toward the gray trees.
-
- Oh, the frail and fresh murmuring!
- The twitter and buzz,
- The soft cry resembling
- That's expired by the grass....
- Oh, the roll of the pebbles
- 'Neath waters that pass!
-
- Oh, this soul that is groaning
- In sleepy complaint!
- In us is it moaning?
- In me and in you?
- Low anthem exhaling
- While soft falls the dew.
-
-
-VERLAINE'S "FORGOTTEN AIRS"
-
-No. VIII
-
- In the unending
- Dullness of this land,
- Uncertain the snow
- Is gleaming like sand.
-
- No kind of brightness
- In copper-hued sky,
- The moon you might see
- Now live and now die.
-
- Gray float the oak trees--
- Cloudlike they seem--
- Of neighboring forests,
- The mists in between.
-
- Wolves hungry and lean,
- And famishing crow,
- What happens to you
- When acid winds blow?
-
- In the unending
- Dullness of this land,
- Uncertain the snow
- Is gleaming like sand.
-
-
-SONG BY MAETERLINCK
-
- When he went away,
- (Then I heard the door)
- When he went away,
- On her lips a smile there lay....
-
- Back he came to her,
- (Then I heard the lamp)
- Back he came to her,
- Someone else was there....
-
- It was death I met,
- (And I heard her soul)
- It was death I met,
- For her he's waiting yet....
-
- Someone came to say,
- (Child, I am afraid)
- Someone came to say
- That he would go away....
-
- With my lamp alight,
- (Child, I am afraid)
- With my lamp alight,
- Approached I in affright....
-
- To one door I came,
- (Child, I am afraid)
- To one door I came,
- A shudder shook the flame....
-
- At the second door,
- (Child, I am afraid)
- At the second door
- Forth words of flame did pour....
-
- To the third I came,
- (Child, I am afraid)
- To the third I came,
- Then died the little flame....
-
- Should he one day return
- Then what shall we say?
- Waiting, tell him, one
- And dying for him lay....
-
- If he asks for you,
- Say what answer then?
- Give him my gold ring
- And answer not a thing....
-
- Should he question me
- Concerning the last hour?
- Say I smiled for fear
- That he should shed a tear....
-
- Should he question more
- Without knowing me?
- Like a sister speak;
- Suffering he may be....
-
- Should he question why
- Empty is the hall?
- Show the gaping door,
- The lamp alight no more....
-
-
- * * * * *
-
-Transcriber's note:
-
-Text enclosed by underscores is in italics (_italics_).
-
-Text enclosed by the plus symbol is transliterated Greek (+metanoeta+).
-
-Small capital text has been replaced with all capitals.
-
-Variations in spelling, punctuation and hyphenation have been
-retained except in obvious cases of typographical error.
-
-Missing page numbers are page numbers that were not shown in the
-original text.
-
-Page 5: The transcriber has completed the word "meeting". "In 1838,
-on the occasion of a meet- of the Society for the Promotion of
-Peace" ...
-
-Page 372: Footnote 86, Knight, pp. 139-141. The number the
-transcriber has rendered as 139 is unclear.
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Kingdom of God is Within You, What
-is Art, by Lyof N. Tolstoi
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK KINGDOM OF GOD IS WITHIN YOU ***
-
-***** This file should be named 43409-8.txt or 43409-8.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/4/3/4/0/43409/
-
-Produced by David Edwards and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive)
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
-will be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
-one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
-(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
-permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
-set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
-copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
-protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
-Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
-charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
-do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
-rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
-such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
-research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
-practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
-subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
-redistribution.
-
-
-
-*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
- www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
-all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
-If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
-terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
-entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
-and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
-or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
-collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
-individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
-located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
-copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
-works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
-are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
-Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
-freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
-this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
-the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
-keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
-a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
-the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
-before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
-creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
-Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
-the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
-States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
-access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
-whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
-copied or distributed:
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
-from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
-posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
-and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
-or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
-with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
-work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
-through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
-Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
-1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
-terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
-to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
-permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
-word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
-distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
-"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
-posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
-you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
-copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
-request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
-form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
-that
-
-- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
- owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
- has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
- Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
- must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
- prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
- returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
- sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
- address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
- the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or
- destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
- and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
- Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
- money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
- of receipt of the work.
-
-- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
-forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
-both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
-Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
-Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
-collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
-"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
-corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
-property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
-computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
-your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
-your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
-the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
-refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
-providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
-receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
-is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
-opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO OTHER
-WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
-WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
-If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
-law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
-interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
-the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
-provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
-with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
-promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
-harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
-that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
-or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
-work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
-Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
-
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
-including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
-because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
-people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
-To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
-and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
-Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
-permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
-Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
-throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at 809
-North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email
-contact links and up to date contact information can be found at the
-Foundation's web site and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
-SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
-particular state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
-To donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
-with anyone. For forty years, he produced and distributed Project
-Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
-unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
-keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
-
- www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/43409-8.zip b/43409-8.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index d96e827..0000000
--- a/43409-8.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/43409-h.zip b/43409-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index bd2e1da..0000000
--- a/43409-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/43409-h/43409-h.htm b/43409-h/43409-h.htm
index 2a3a019..01ad4de 100644
--- a/43409-h/43409-h.htm
+++ b/43409-h/43409-h.htm
@@ -2,10 +2,10 @@
"http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
<head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=iso-8859-1" />
+ <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=UTF-8" />
<meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
<title>
- The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Kingdom of God is Within You/What is Art? by Lyof N. Tolsto, translated by Mrs. Aline Delano.
+ The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Kingdom of God is Within You/What is Art? by Lyof N. Tolstoï, translated by Mrs. Aline Delano.
</title>
<link rel="titlepage" href="images/titlepage.jpg"/>
<style type="text/css">
@@ -118,54 +118,14 @@ div.tn {
</style>
</head>
<body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Kingdom of God is Within You, What is
-Art, by Lyof N. Tolstoi
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-Title: The Kingdom of God is Within You, What is Art
-
-Author: Lyof N. Tolstoi
-
-Translator: Aline Delano
-
-Release Date: August 7, 2013 [EBook #43409]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK KINGDOM OF GOD IS WITHIN YOU ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by David Edwards and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
+<div>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 43409 ***</div>
<hr class="chap" />
<p class="center">
-LYOF N. TOLSTO</p>
+LYOF N. TOLSTOÏ</p>
<p class="center">XIX</p>
@@ -184,7 +144,7 @@ IS WITHIN YOU</p>
<div class="figcenter bord" style="width: 600px;">
<img src="images/frontis.jpg" width="600" height="428" alt="Plowing" />
-<div class="caption"><p class="center">COUNT TOLSTO PLOWING</p>
+<div class="caption"><p class="center">COUNT TOLSTOÏ PLOWING</p>
<p class="center"><span class="smcap">From the Painting by Repin</span></p></div>
</div>
@@ -195,7 +155,7 @@ IS WITHIN YOU</p>
<p class="center">
THE NOVELS AND OTHER WORKS OF<br />
<br />
-LYOF N. TOLSTO</p>
+LYOF N. TOLSTOÏ</p>
<h1>THE KINGDOM OF<br />
GOD IS WITHIN YOU<br />
@@ -227,7 +187,7 @@ By THOMAS V. CROWELL &amp; CO.</span>
<p>The present volume contains two contrasting treatises.
-The first is religious, and shows in Count Tolsto's earnest
+The first is religious, and shows in Count Tolstoï's earnest
and eloquent manner the meaning of Christ's words
which he takes for his text,&mdash;"The Kingdom of God
is within you." The outward forms of religion, however
@@ -242,13 +202,13 @@ and prohibitions.</p>
the world should take love for its guiding star, it is
evident that all the evils of the world would cease,&mdash;wars,
crimes, poverty, ambitions; the millennium would
-come! Count Tolsto shows how that blessed period
+come! Count Tolstoï shows how that blessed period
may begin in every man. The translation of this beautiful
and inspiring book has been made by Mrs. Aline
Delano of Boston.</p>
<p>In answering the question, "What is Art?" Count
-Tolsto analyzes and tests the various definitions given
+Tolstoï analyzes and tests the various definitions given
by other writers. He shows up with merciless severity
what he considers the fallacy in the popular delusion
that the fetish of Art pardons bestiality, obscenity, and
@@ -277,7 +237,7 @@ cannot be denied that the general tone of the treatise
is helpful and uplifting, and that it is based on sound
common sense. Mr. Aylmer Maude of England is the
translator of this work, and has had the benefit of
-Count Tolsto's own suggestions in regard to certain
+Count Tolstoï's own suggestions in regard to certain
points. As the special preface explains, the translation
accurately represents the author's views, while the edition
published in Russia was in many ways garbled and
@@ -443,7 +403,7 @@ the opportunity of carefully revising their work.</p>
</tr>
<tr>
- <td align="left"><p class="hanging">Does art compensate for so much evil?&mdash;What is art?&mdash;Confusion of opinions&mdash;Is it "that which produces beauty"?&mdash;The word "beauty" in Russian&mdash;Chaos in sthetics</p></td>
+ <td align="left"><p class="hanging">Does art compensate for so much evil?&mdash;What is art?&mdash;Confusion of opinions&mdash;Is it "that which produces beauty"?&mdash;The word "beauty" in Russian&mdash;Chaos in æsthetics</p></td>
<td align="right"><a href="#Page_351">351</a></td>
</tr>
@@ -452,7 +412,7 @@ the opportunity of carefully revising their work.</p>
</tr>
<tr>
- <td align="left"><p class="hanging">Summary of various sthetic theories and definitions, from Baumgarten to to-day</p></td>
+ <td align="left"><p class="hanging">Summary of various æsthetic theories and definitions, from Baumgarten to to-day</p></td>
<td align="right"><a href="#Page_360">360</a></td>
</tr>
@@ -470,7 +430,7 @@ the opportunity of carefully revising their work.</p>
</tr>
<tr>
- <td align="left"><p class="hanging">Definitions not founded on beauty&mdash;Tolsto's definition&mdash;The extent and necessity of art&mdash;How people in the past have distinguished good from bad in art</p></td>
+ <td align="left"><p class="hanging">Definitions not founded on beauty&mdash;Tolstoï's definition&mdash;The extent and necessity of art&mdash;How people in the past have distinguished good from bad in art</p></td>
<td align="right"><a href="#Page_383">383</a></td>
</tr>
@@ -488,7 +448,7 @@ the opportunity of carefully revising their work.</p>
</tr>
<tr>
- <td align="left"><p class="hanging">An sthetic theory framed to suit this view of life</p></td>
+ <td align="left"><p class="hanging">An æsthetic theory framed to suit this view of life</p></td>
<td align="right"><a href="#Page_396">396</a></td>
</tr>
@@ -569,7 +529,7 @@ the opportunity of carefully revising their work.</p>
</tr>
<tr>
- <td align="left"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xi" id="Page_xi">[xi]</a></span><p class="hanging"><span class="smcap">The quality of art, considered according to its subject-matter</span>&mdash;The better the feeling the better the art&mdash;The cultured crowd&mdash;The religious perception of our age&mdash;The new ideals put fresh demands to art&mdash;Art unites&mdash;Religious art&mdash;Universal art&mdash;Both coperate to one result&mdash;The new appraisement of art&mdash;Bad art&mdash;Examples of art&mdash;How to test a work claiming to be art</p></td><td align="right"><a href="#Page_479">479</a></td>
+ <td align="left"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_xi" id="Page_xi">[xi]</a></span><p class="hanging"><span class="smcap">The quality of art, considered according to its subject-matter</span>&mdash;The better the feeling the better the art&mdash;The cultured crowd&mdash;The religious perception of our age&mdash;The new ideals put fresh demands to art&mdash;Art unites&mdash;Religious art&mdash;Universal art&mdash;Both coöperate to one result&mdash;The new appraisement of art&mdash;Bad art&mdash;Examples of art&mdash;How to test a work claiming to be art</p></td><td align="right"><a href="#Page_479">479</a></td>
</tr>
<tr>
@@ -683,11 +643,11 @@ which he considers to be true.</p>
<hr class="tb" />
<p><em>The above is an extract (slightly adapted) from an
-article on Count Tolsto which appeared in the London</em>
+article on Count Tolstoï which appeared in the London</em>
Daily Chronicle <em>of 26th December,1893. Sent by Miss
-Tatiana Tolsto, on behalf of her father, to the publishers
+Tatiana Tolstoï, on behalf of her father, to the publishers
of this edition of his work, it is inserted here as a Preface
-at the suggestion of Count Tolsto.</em></p>
+at the suggestion of Count Tolstoï.</em></p>
<hr class="tb" />
<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_1" id="Page_1">[1]</a></span></p>
@@ -1060,7 +1020,7 @@ to adopt in carrying our object into effect.</p>
preaching,&mdash;striving to commend ourselves unto every
man's conscience, in the sight of God. From the press
we shall promulgate our sentiments as widely as practicable.
-We shall endeavor to secure the coperation of
+We shall endeavor to secure the coöperation of
all persons, of whatever name or sect. The triumphant
progress of the cause of Temperance and of Abolition
in our land, through the instrumentality of benevolent
@@ -1429,7 +1389,7 @@ become of them?</p>
others should agree to crucify him, would it not be more
glorious for him to die in the glory of non-resisting love,
praying for his enemies, than live wearing the crown of
-Csar, besprinkled with the blood of the murdered? But
+Cæsar, besprinkled with the blood of the murdered? But
whether it be one man or thousands of men who are
firmly determined not to resist evil by evil, still, whether
in the midst of civilized or uncivilized neighbors, men
@@ -1721,7 +1681,7 @@ responsible for its crimes. We are, indeed, not responsible
for the crimes of our rulers, but we are responsible
for our own; and the crimes of our rulers are our own,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_24" id="Page_24">[24]</a></span>
if, whilst we believe them to be crimes, we promote
-them by our coperation....</p>
+them by our coöperation....</p>
<p>"Those who suppose that obedience in all things is
required, or that responsibility in political affairs is transferred
@@ -2001,7 +1961,7 @@ manifestation of it.</p>
<p>"The publication of this book ('The Net of Faith') was ended
[completed] by the Academy in the last months of the present
-year (1893)."&mdash;<em>Note received by the Publisher from Count Tolsto
+year (1893)."&mdash;<em>Note received by the Publisher from Count Tolstoï
while this work was going to press.</em></p></blockquote>
@@ -2342,7 +2302,7 @@ American magazine, <cite>The Forum</cite>, for October, 1888.</p>
<p>After briefly but conscientiously setting forth the subject-matter
of my book, Farrar says:&mdash;"After repeated
search the central principle of all Christ's teaching seemed
-to him [Tolsto] to be, 'Resist not evil' or 'him that is
+to him [Tolstoï] to be, 'Resist not evil' or 'him that is
evil.' He came to the conclusion that a coarse deceit
had been palmed upon the world when these words were
held by civil society to be compatible with war, courts
@@ -2376,7 +2336,7 @@ should be accepted, or declaring that it is erroneous, proving
his point, and offering a more correct interpretation
of the words which I have misconstrued. But no; Farrar
merely expresses his belief that "though actuated by the
-noblest sincerity, Count Tolsto has been misled by partial
+noblest sincerity, Count Tolstoï has been misled by partial
and one-sided interpretations of the meaning of the
gospel and the mind and will of Christ." In what this
error consists he does not explain, but says: "<em>To enter
@@ -2394,7 +2354,7 @@ lay down great eternal principles, but not to disturb the
bases and revolutionize the institutions as well as all inevitable
conditions. Were it my object to prove how
untenable is the doctrine of communism, based by Count
-Tolsto upon the divine paradoxes, which can be interpreted
+Tolstoï upon the divine paradoxes, which can be interpreted
on only historical principles in accordance with
the whole method of the teaching of Jesus, it would
require an ampler canvas than I have here at my
@@ -2585,7 +2545,7 @@ doctrines dreaded by despotism, and dangerous to its
existence, this is the chief one. Since the creation of
the world the opposite principle of resistance by violence
has been the corner-stone of every despotic institution,
-from the Inquisition to the fortress of Schlsselburg.</p>
+from the Inquisition to the fortress of Schlüsselburg.</p>
<p>Moreover, the Russian critics declared that the progress
of civilization itself would be checked were this
@@ -2611,7 +2571,7 @@ but unpractical visions of the "charmant docteur," as
Renan says, suited to the artless, half-civilized Galileans
who lived 1800 years ago, or to the Russian and semi-barbarous
peasants, to Sutaev and Bondarev, and to the
-Russian mystic Tolsto, but which are by no means
+Russian mystic Tolstoï, but which are by no means
adapted to the lofty plane of European culture. The
foreign secular critics, in a courteous way, in order not
to wound my feelings, have endeavored to show that my
@@ -2628,7 +2588,7 @@ journalism, strikes, and constitutions, not to mention
the Eiffel Tower,&mdash;on which the entire population of
Europe is at present reposing.</p>
-<p>Thus wrote Vog, thus wrote Leroy-Beaulieu, Matthew
+<p>Thus wrote Vogüé, thus wrote Leroy-Beaulieu, Matthew
Arnold, the American writer Talmage, who is also
a popular preacher, the free-thinker Ingersoll, and others.</p>
@@ -2884,7 +2844,7 @@ more or less, depends, according to this doctrine, not
on the degree of perfection at which it arrives, but on
the comparative rate of progress toward that perfection.</p>
-<p>The advance toward perfection of Zacchus the
+<p>The advance toward perfection of Zacchæus the
publican, of the adulteress, of the thief on the cross, is,
according to this doctrine, better than the stagnation of
the righteous Pharisee. The shepherd rejoices more
@@ -3062,7 +3022,7 @@ less it was understood, the more the infallibility of its
conceptions was insisted upon, and the more slender
grew the possibility of understanding its true meaning.
Already, about the time of Constantine, the entire conception
-of the doctrine amounted to the <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">rsum</i> formulated
+of the doctrine amounted to the <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">résumé</i> formulated
by the temporal power,&mdash;the outcome of discussions
that took place in the council,&mdash;to the Credo, in
which it is said: I believe in this and that, etc., and at
@@ -3117,11 +3077,11 @@ no doubt as to its authenticity; yet this was not the case,
and now, as always, one finds different institutions, each
one calling itself the only true Church.</p>
-<p>The Catholic catechism says: "L'Eglise est la socit
-des fidles tablie par N.-S. Jsus-Christ, rpandue sur
-toute la terre et soumise l'autorit de pasteurs lgitimes,
+<p>The Catholic catechism says: "L'Eglise est la société
+des fidèles établie par N.-S. Jésus-Christ, répandue sur
+toute la terre et soumise à l'autorité de pasteurs légitimes,
principalement notre S.-P. le pape,"&mdash;meaning
-by "pasteurs lgitimes,"<a name="FNanchor_3_3" id="FNanchor_3_3"></a><a href="#Footnote_3_3" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> a human institution made up
+by "pasteurs légitimes,"<a name="FNanchor_3_3" id="FNanchor_3_3"></a><a href="#Footnote_3_3" class="fnanchor">[3]</a> a human institution made up
of a number of men bound together by a certain organization
of which the Pope is the head.</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_56" id="Page_56">[56]</a></span></p>
@@ -3193,7 +3153,7 @@ Orthodox, and the Lutheran, express this in the plainest
language.</p>
<p>The Catholic catechism says: "Quels sont ceux qui
-sont hors de l'Eglise? Les infidles, hrtiques, et<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_58" id="Page_58">[58]</a></span>
+sont hors de l'Eglise? Les infidèles, hérétiques, et<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_58" id="Page_58">[58]</a></span>
schismatiques."<a name="FNanchor_5_5" id="FNanchor_5_5"></a><a href="#Footnote_5_5" class="fnanchor">[5]</a> By schismatics it means the so-called
Orthodox, and by heretics the Lutherans; so that, according
to the Catholic catechism, the Church is composed
@@ -3291,7 +3251,7 @@ even the shadow of a definition of heresy.</p>
<p>As an instance of the complete absence of the definition
of what is understood by the word heresy, we will
quote the opinion of a learned Christian historian, E. de
-Pressens in "Histoire du Dogme," with its epigraph,
+Pressensé in "Histoire du Dogme," with its epigraph,
"Ubi Christus, ibi Ecclesia" (Paris, 1869). This is what
he says in his preface (p. 4):&mdash;</p>
@@ -3351,7 +3311,7 @@ are.</p>
is the actual truth, may likewise find in the history
of the Church a consistent explanation of the faith
it professes, and apply all the arguments to its own use.
-Pressens simply calls his own creed Christian truth,
+Pressensé simply calls his own creed Christian truth,
precisely as every heretical sect has done.</p>
<p>The primary definition of the word heresy (the word
@@ -3472,7 +3432,7 @@ of Christ's doctrine itself.</p>
church, as a church, has always been, and always must
be, an institution not only foreign, but absolutely hostile,
to the doctrine of Christ. It is not without reason that
-Voltaire called it "<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">l'infme</i>"; it is not without reason
+Voltaire called it "<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">l'infâme</i>"; it is not without reason
that all so-called Christian sects believe the Church to
be the Scarlet Woman prophesied by the Revelation; it
is not without reason that the history of the Church is
@@ -3528,7 +3488,7 @@ arguments, these exhortations, these professions of faith,
elaborated through centuries, that now and then sound
sincere, one is almost ready to doubt if the churches can
be inimical to Christianity. "It cannot be possible that
-men like John Chrysostom, Fnelon, Butler, and other
+men like John Chrysostom, Fénelon, Butler, and other
Christian preachers, could be inimical to it." One would
like to say, "The churches may have gone astray from
Christianity, may have committed errors, but they cannot
@@ -3542,8 +3502,8 @@ these men served was not Christian. The goodness and<span class="pagenum"><a nam
virtue of certain individuals who served the churches
were peculiar to themselves, and not to the cause which
they served. All these excellent men, like Francis of
-Assisi and Francis de Sales, Tichon Zadnsky, Thomas
- Kempis, and others, were good men, even though they
+Assisi and Francis de Sales, Tichon Zadònsky, Thomas
+à Kempis, and others, were good men, even though they
served a cause hostile to Christianity; and they would
have been still more charitable and more exemplary had
they not yielded obedience to false doctrines.</p>
@@ -3851,7 +3811,7 @@ Christianity that exists in the people side by side with
this idolatry.</p>
<p>I remember being once in a book-shop of the monastery
-of Optin Desert while an old peasant was
+of Optinæ Desert while an old peasant was
selecting spiritual reading for his educated grandson.
The monk was offering him a description of relics, of
holy days, of miraculous ikons, the Book of Psalms,
@@ -4728,7 +4688,7 @@ human progress toward the unattainable perfection,
and therefore of equal importance with all the others.
Any spiritual quickening, according to this doctrine, is
simply an accelerated movement toward perfection.
-Therefore the impulse of Zacchus the publican, of the
+Therefore the impulse of Zacchæus the publican, of the
adulteress, and the thief on the cross, show forth a
higher order of life than does the passive righteousness
of the Pharisee. This doctrine, therefore, can never be<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_93" id="Page_93">[93]</a></span>
@@ -4993,7 +4953,7 @@ in other words, not the love of God, but the love of
man.</p>
<p>But there can be no such love; it has no <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">raison
-d'tre</i>. Christian love comes only from a Christian life-conception,
+d'étre</i>. Christian love comes only from a Christian life-conception,
whose sole manifestation is the love and
service of God.</p>
@@ -5065,7 +5025,7 @@ arguments on the subject have originated.</p>
which preceded it, promulgates rules which men must
obey, and that these rules are impracticable. The other,
that the whole meaning of Christianity is contained in
-the doctrine of a coperative union of mankind, in one
+the doctrine of a coöperative union of mankind, in one
family, to attain which, leaving aside the question of
love of God, one should obey only the rule of love of
one's fellow-men.</p>
@@ -5704,7 +5664,7 @@ millions, at a cost of four milliards of francs a year. By
increasing its armament it paralyzes more and more the
springs of social and individual welfare, and may be compared
to a man who, in order to obtain weapons, condemns
-himself to anmia, thereby depriving himself of
+himself to anæmia, thereby depriving himself of
the strength to use the weapons he is accumulating,
whose weight will eventually overpower him."</p>
@@ -5755,7 +5715,7 @@ What is socialism but a protest against the abnormal situation
in which the majority of mankind of our continent
finds itself?"</p>
-<p>"We are being ruined," says Frdric Passy, in a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_116" id="Page_116">[116]</a></span>
+<p>"We are being ruined," says Frédéric Passy, in a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_116" id="Page_116">[116]</a></span>
paper read before the last Peace Congress in London
(1890), "to enable us to take part in the senseless wars
of the future, or to pay the interest of debts left us by
@@ -5828,10 +5788,10 @@ Christianity. They looked upon me as an arrant fanatic.
The idea that we could get on without war was regarded
as unmitigated weakness and folly."</p>
-<p>A Catholic priest, the Abb Defourny, has spoken in
+<p>A Catholic priest, the Abbé Defourny, has spoken in
a similar spirit. "One of the first commandments of
the eternal law, engraved in every man's conscience,"
-says the Abb Defourny, "forbids a man to take his
+says the Abbé Defourny, "forbids a man to take his
neighbor's life or shed his blood" (without sufficient
cause, being forced to it by stress of circumstance).
"This is a commandment more deeply engraved in the
@@ -6053,7 +6013,7 @@ Revues&mdash;Proposition of Maxime du Camp&mdash;Significance of Courts of
Arbitration and Disarmament&mdash;Relations of governments to these, and
the business they pursue&mdash;Those who regard war as a cruel inevitable
phenomenon&mdash;Maupassant&mdash;Rod&mdash;Those who regard it as indispensable,
-even useful&mdash;Camille Doucet, Claretie, Zola, Vog.</p></blockquote>
+even useful&mdash;Camille Doucet, Claretie, Zola, Vogüé.</p></blockquote>
<p>The contradictions of life and of consciousness may
@@ -6449,7 +6409,7 @@ of gratitude to Almighty God for the remarkable
harmony and concord which have characterized the
meetings of the Assembly, in which so many men and
women of varied nations, creeds, tongues, and races have
-gathered in closest coperation; and in the conclusion
+gathered in closest coöperation; and in the conclusion
of the labors of this Congress, it expresses its firm and
unshaken belief in the ultimate triumph of the cause of
<em>Peace</em>, and of the principles which have been advocated
@@ -6698,7 +6658,7 @@ this to others so long that they have ended by believing
it themselves, and they really seem to think that justice
is one of the duties of governments. History, however,
shows us that governments, as seen from the reign of
-Csar to those of the two Napoleons and Prince Bismarck,
+Cæsar to those of the two Napoleons and Prince Bismarck,
are in their very essence a violation of justice;
a man or a body of men having at command an army
of trained soldiers, deluded creatures who are ready for
@@ -7240,7 +7200,7 @@ talking about what no one intends to do, and what ought
not in any event to be done. When fighting is in order,
there is no alternative but to fight.</p>
-<p>mile Zola, the most popular novelist in Europe, gives
+<p>Émile Zola, the most popular novelist in Europe, gives
utterance to his views on the subject of war in the following
terms:&mdash;</p>
@@ -7285,7 +7245,7 @@ their progress."</p></blockquote>
<p>But chief among the advocates of these views, and
the most talented of all the writers of this tendency,
-is the academician Vog, who, in an article on the
+is the academician Vogüé, who, in an article on the
military section of the Exhibition of 1889, writes as
follows:&mdash;</p>
@@ -7326,7 +7286,7 @@ various demands of historical moments."</p></blockquote>
<p>This idea, namely, that the proof of the necessity of
war may be found in the writings of De Maistre and of
Darwin, two great thinkers, as he calls them, pleases
-Vog so much that he repeats it.</p>
+Vogüé so much that he repeats it.</p>
<p>"Sir," he writes to the editor of the <cite>Revue des Revues</cite>,
"you ask my opinion in regard to the possible success
@@ -7357,7 +7317,7 @@ but I doubt if it can disprove history, and the law
of God and of nature.&mdash;Accept my assurance, etc.,</p>
<p class="sig">
-<span class="smcap">"E. M. de Vog."</span>
+<span class="smcap">"E. M. de Vogüé."</span>
</p>
<p>This may be summed up as follows: History and
@@ -7381,7 +7341,7 @@ ceased to discuss a subject which should not be discussed,
and ceased to do that which is both painful and
repulsive for them to do!</p>
-<p>One may wonder at them; but men who, like Vog<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_152" id="Page_152">[152]</a></span>
+<p>One may wonder at them; but men who, like Vogüé<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_152" id="Page_152">[152]</a></span>
and others, believe in the law of evolution, and look
upon war as not only unavoidable, but even useful, and
therefore desirable,&mdash;such men are fairly shocking,
@@ -7545,7 +7505,7 @@ to one will, forms what is called an army. The army
has ever been and still is the basis of an authority,
vested in the commanding generals; and the most engrossing
interest of every sovereign, from the Roman
-Csars to the Russian and German emperors, has
+Cæsars to the Russian and German emperors, has
always been to protect and flatter the army, for they
realize that when the army is on their side, power is
also in their hands.</p>
@@ -7930,7 +7890,7 @@ protect.</p>
<p>The advantages of social life are those guarantees
which it offers for the protection of property and labor,
-as well as coperation for the purposes of mutual advantage;
+as well as coöperation for the purposes of mutual advantage;
the general military conscription destroys all
this.</p>
@@ -7998,7 +7958,7 @@ make; they do not wish to give up their nationality.
And I, if I am performing military duty, must come
forward and strike these men down. I cannot take part
in such proceedings without asking myself if they be
-right. And ought I to coperate in carrying them
+right. And ought I to coöperate in carrying them
out?</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_166" id="Page_166">[166]</a></span></p>
@@ -8097,7 +8057,7 @@ Such was the case with the abolition of corporal
punishment, torture, and slavery; with the establishment
of freedom of the press and liberty of meeting. Furthermore,
State authorities and governments nowadays not
-only do not coperate, but they directly hinder the
+only do not coöperate, but they directly hinder the
activity by means of which men work out new forms
of life. The solution of labor and land questions, of
political and religious problems, is not only unencouraged,
@@ -8930,7 +8890,7 @@ men.</p>
men hate the very order of things which they themselves
support.</p>
-<p>I believe it is Max Mller who describes the astonishment
+<p>I believe it is Max Müller who describes the astonishment
of an Indian converted to Christianity, who, having
apprehended the essence of the Christian doctrine, came
to Europe and beheld the life of Christians. He could
@@ -9360,7 +9320,7 @@ entirely free from all human authority that he will cease
to regard it as a possible obstacle.</p>
<p>A man needs but to realize that the object of his life
-is the fulfilment of God's law; then the preminence of
+is the fulfilment of God's law; then the preëminence of
that law, claiming as it does his entire allegiance, will of
necessity invalidate the authority and restrictions of all
human laws.</p>
@@ -9425,7 +9385,7 @@ obey human laws, but he cannot promise to do or
abstain from doing anything definite at any given
time, because he can never tell at what hour or in
what manner the Christian law of love, on which his
-life-conception is based, will demand his coperation.
+life-conception is based, will demand his coöperation.
A Christian, promising in advance to obey unconditionally
the laws of men, admits by that promise that
the inner law of God does not constitute for him the
@@ -9817,7 +9777,7 @@ upon such occurrences with more apprehension than
upon all the socialists, anarchists, and communists, with
their conspiracies and their dynamite bombs.</p>
-<p>A new <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">rgime</i> is inaugurated. Each subject, according
+<p>A new <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">régime</i> is inaugurated. Each subject, according
to custom, is required to take the oath of allegiance
to the new government. A proclamation is issued, and
all are bidden to assemble in the cathedral to take the
@@ -10023,7 +9983,7 @@ Such contumacy cannot go unpunished; consequently
he is court-martialed for an infringement of military
discipline, convicted, and sentenced to two years' confinement
in a military prison. And once again, with
-the criminals, he is sent by <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">tape</i> to the Caucasus and
+the criminals, he is sent by <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">étape</i> to the Caucasus and
then thrown into prison, his fate being left to the discretionary
power of the jailer. There he is tortured
for a year and a half, but still his resolution to avoid
@@ -10446,7 +10406,7 @@ matured sufficiently to enable them to dispense with
the State is disposed of without reference to former
arguments. A man who has outgrown the State can
no more be coerced into submission to its laws than
-can the fledgling be made to renter its shell.</p>
+can the fledgling be made to reënter its shell.</p>
<p>"The State may have been necessary at one time,
and for aught that I know it may even now serve the
@@ -10953,7 +10913,7 @@ who have accepted it. For, owing to the growing intelligibility
of the truth itself, it becomes easier for men
to grasp it, especially for those lower intellectually, until
finally the greater number readily adopt it, and help to
-found a new <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">rgime</i>.</p>
+found a new <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">régime</i>.</p>
<p>The men who go over to the new truth, once it has
gained a certain hold, go over <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">en masse</i>, of one accord,
@@ -11449,7 +11409,7 @@ their respective positions has undergone a change.
The oppressors, that is, those who take part in the
government, and those who are benefited by oppression,
the wealthy classes, do not constitute, as formerly,
-the <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">lite</i> of society, nor does their condition suggest that
+the <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">élite</i> of society, nor does their condition suggest that
ideal of human prosperity and greatness to which formerly
all the oppressed aspired. Now, it often happens
that the oppressors renounce of their own accord the
@@ -11993,7 +11953,7 @@ religion, men of the wealthy classes base the justification of their position&md
consequence of this hypocrisy, maintained by violence and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_256" id="Page_256">[256]</a></span>
falsehood, they can pretend before each other to be Christians, and rest
content&mdash;The same hypocrisy allows men who preach the Christian
-doctrine to take part in a <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">rgime</i> of violence&mdash;No external improvements
+doctrine to take part in a <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">régime</i> of violence&mdash;No external improvements
of life can make it less miserable; its miseries are caused by
disunion; disunion springs from following falsehood instead of truth&mdash;Union
is possible only in truth&mdash;Hypocrisy forbids such a union, for
@@ -13436,7 +13396,7 @@ organization of violence. What they do fear is its
abolition; so they support it.</p>
<p>One wonders why men of independent means, who
-are not obliged to become soldiers, the so-called <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">lite</i>
+are not obliged to become soldiers, the so-called <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">élite</i>
of society, enter military service in Russia, in England,
in Germany, in Austria, and even in France, and desire
the chance of killing? Why do parents, why do moral
@@ -13768,7 +13728,7 @@ selling wine, and thus depriving the treasury of 25 roubles'
revenue. This man feels no remorse. Another still
more surprising case is that of a man, ordinarily kind
and good, who, because he wears a uniform or carries a
-medal, and is told that he is a keeper [<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">garde-champtre</i>]
+medal, and is told that he is a keeper [<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">garde-champêtre</i>]
or custom-house officer, considers himself justified in
shooting men down, and no one ever dreams of blaming
him for it, nor does he think himself in the wrong; but
@@ -14293,7 +14253,7 @@ never dream of calling himself Christian or liberal while
he continues a merchant. But, according to the new
metaphysic of hypocrisy, he may pass for a virtuous man
and still pursue his evil career; the religious man has
-but to believe, the liberal man but to coperate, in the
+but to believe, the liberal man but to coöperate, in the
reform of external conditions to promote the general
progress of commerce; the rest does not signify. So
this merchant (who, besides, often sells bad commodities,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_308" id="Page_308">[308]</a></span>
@@ -15549,7 +15509,7 @@ and since many of them were extremely confused,
the chapter cannot, in the nature of things, be easy
reading.</p>
-<p>I should like to remark, in passing, that though Tolsto
+<p>I should like to remark, in passing, that though Tolstoï
in this chapter (presumably for convenience of verification)
refers chiefly to the compilations of Schasler,
Kralik, and Knight, he has gone behind these authorities
@@ -15560,7 +15520,7 @@ music may be traced back to the call of the males to
the females in the animal world will be found in Darwin,
but will not be found in Knight.</p>
-<p>In Chapter V. we come to Tolsto's definition of art,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_340" id="Page_340">[340]</a></span>
+<p>In Chapter V. we come to Tolstoï's definition of art,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_340" id="Page_340">[340]</a></span>
which definition should be kept well in mind while reading
the rest of the book.</p>
@@ -15653,7 +15613,7 @@ consolation in the thought that the book, even in this
form, if it contains something that is good, would be of
use to Russian readers whom it would otherwise not have
reached. Things, however, turned out otherwise. <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Nous
-comptions sans notre hte.</i> After the legal term of four
+comptions sans notre hôte.</i> After the legal term of four
days had already elapsed, the book was seized, and, on
instructions received from Petersburg, it was handed
over to the "Spiritual Censor." Then Grote declined
@@ -15756,7 +15716,7 @@ of novels.</p>
<p>Promptly, and in detail, as soon as it has occurred, an
account is published of how such and such an actress
-or actor played this or that rle in such and such a drama,
+or actor played this or that rôle in such and such a drama,
comedy, or opera; and of the merits of the performance,
as well as of the contents of the new drama, comedy, or
opera, with its defects and merits. With as much care
@@ -15836,7 +15796,7 @@ to flute and harp, were seated), to the dark pit-stalls.</p>
<p>On an elevation, between two lamps with reflectors,
and in an arm-chair placed before a music-stand, sat the
-director of the musical part, <em>bton</em> in hand, managing
+director of the musical part, <em>bâton</em> in hand, managing
the orchestra and singers, and, in general, the production
of the whole opera.</p>
@@ -16049,7 +16009,7 @@ rich people, or through subsidies given by government
to theaters, conservatoires, and academies). This money
is collected from the people, some of whom have to sell
their only cow to pay the tax, and who never get those
-sthetic pleasures which art gives.</p>
+æsthetic pleasures which art gives.</p>
<p>It was all very well for a Greek or Roman artist, or
even for a Russian artist of the first half of our century
@@ -16107,7 +16067,7 @@ useful, and on the other by unsuccessful attempts
at art. How is art to be marked off from each of these?
The ordinary educated man of our circle, and even the
artist who has not occupied himself especially with
-sthetics, will not hesitate at this question either. He
+æsthetics, will not hesitate at this question either. He
thinks the solution has been found long ago, and is well
known to every one.</p>
@@ -16133,24 +16093,24 @@ in most cases, deny that their activity belongs to the
sphere of art. But in this the ordinary man makes a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_354" id="Page_354">[354]</a></span>
mistake, just because he is an ordinary man and not a
specialist, and because he has not occupied himself with
-sthetic questions. Had he looked into these matters,
+æsthetic questions. Had he looked into these matters,
he would have seen in the great Renan's book, "Marc
Aurele," a dissertation showing that the tailor's work is
art, and that those who do not see in the adornment of
woman an affair of the highest art are very small-minded
and dull. "<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">C'est le grand art</i>," says Renan. Moreover,
-he would have known that in many sthetic systems&mdash;for
-instance, in the sthetics of the learned Professor
-Kralik, "Weltschnheit, Versuch einer allgemeinen sthetik,
-von Richard Kralik," and in "Les Problmes de
-l'Esthtique Contemporaine," by Guyau&mdash;the arts of
+he would have known that in many æsthetic systems&mdash;for
+instance, in the æsthetics of the learned Professor
+Kralik, "Weltschönheit, Versuch einer allgemeinen Æsthetik,
+von Richard Kralik," and in "Les Problèmes de
+l'Esthétique Contemporaine," by Guyau&mdash;the arts of
costume, of taste, and of touch are included.</p>
-<p>"<i lang="de" xml:lang="de">Es Folgt nun ein Fnfblatt von Knsten, die der subjectiven
+<p>"<i lang="de" xml:lang="de">Es Folgt nun ein Fünfblatt von Künsten, die der subjectiven
Sinnlichkeit entkeimen</i>" (There results then a
pentafoliate of arts, growing out of the subjective perceptions),
-says Kralik (p. 175). "<i lang="de" xml:lang="de">Sie sind die sthetische
-Behandlung der fnf Sinne.</i>" (They are the sthetic
+says Kralik (p. 175). "<i lang="de" xml:lang="de">Sie sind die ästhetische
+Behandlung der fünf Sinne.</i>" (They are the æsthetic
treatment of the five senses.)</p>
<p>These five arts are the following:&mdash;</p>
@@ -16164,57 +16124,57 @@ of smell (p. 177).</p>
<p><i lang="de" xml:lang="de">Die Kunst des Tastsinns</i>&mdash;The art of the sense of
touch (p. 180).</p>
-<p><i lang="de" xml:lang="de">Die Kunst des Gehrsinns</i>&mdash;The art of the sense of
+<p><i lang="de" xml:lang="de">Die Kunst des Gehörsinns</i>&mdash;The art of the sense of
hearing (p. 182).</p>
<p><i lang="de" xml:lang="de">Die Kunst des Gesichtsinns</i>&mdash;The art of the sense
of sight (p. 184).</p>
<p>Of the first of these&mdash;<i lang="de" xml:lang="de">die Kunst des Geschmacksinns</i>&mdash;he
-says: "<i lang="de" xml:lang="de">Man hlt zwar gewhnlich nur zwei oder
-hchstens drei Sinne fr wrdig, den Stoff knstlerischer
+says: "<i lang="de" xml:lang="de">Man hält zwar gewöhnlich nur zwei oder
+höchstens drei Sinne für würdig, den Stoff künstlerischer
Behandlung abzugeben, aber ich glaube nur mit bedingtem
Recht. Ich will kein allzugrosses Gewicht darauf legen,
-dass der gemeine Sprachgebrauch manch andere Knste,
+dass der gemeine Sprachgebrauch manch andere Künste,
wie zum Beispiel die Kochkunst kennt.</i>"<a name="FNanchor_39_39" id="FNanchor_39_39"></a><a href="#Footnote_39_39" class="fnanchor">[39]</a></p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_355" id="Page_355">[355]</a></span></p>
-<p>And further: "<i lang="de" xml:lang="de">Und es ist doch gewiss eine sthetische
+<p>And further: "<i lang="de" xml:lang="de">Und es ist doch gewiss eine ästhetische
Leistung, wenn es der Kochkunst gelingt ans einem thierischen
Kadaver einen Gegenstand des Geschmacks in
jedem Sinne zu machen. Der Grundsatz der Kunst des
Geschmacksinns (die weiter ist als die sogenannte Kochkunst)
ist also dieser: Es soll alles Geniessbare als Sinnbild
einer Idee behandelt werden und in jedesmaligem
-Einklang zur auszudrckenden Idee.</i>"<a name="FNanchor_40_40" id="FNanchor_40_40"></a><a href="#Footnote_40_40" class="fnanchor">[40]</a></p>
+Einklang zur auszudrückenden Idee.</i>"<a name="FNanchor_40_40" id="FNanchor_40_40"></a><a href="#Footnote_40_40" class="fnanchor">[40]</a></p>
-<p>This author, like Renan, acknowledges a <i lang="de" xml:lang="de">Kostmkunst</i>
+<p>This author, like Renan, acknowledges a <i lang="de" xml:lang="de">Kostümkunst</i>
(Art of Costume) (p. 200), etc.</p>
<p>Such is also the opinion of the French writer, Guyau,
who is highly esteemed by some authors of our day. In his
-book, "Les Problmes de l'Esthtique Contemporaine,"
+book, "Les Problèmes de l'Esthétique Contemporaine,"
he speaks seriously of touch, taste, and smell as giving,
-or being capable of giving, sthetic impressions: "<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Si la
+or being capable of giving, æsthetic impressions: "<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Si la
couleur manque au toucher, il nous fournit en revanche
une notion que l'&oelig;il seul ne peut nous donner, et qui a une
-valeur esthtique considrable, celle du</i> doux, <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">du</i> soyeux,
-<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">du</i> poli. <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Ce qui caractrise la beaut du velours, c'est sa
+valeur esthétique considérable, celle du</i> doux, <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">du</i> soyeux,
+<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">du</i> poli. <i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Ce qui caractérise la beauté du velours, c'est sa
douceur au toucher non moins que son brillant. Dans
-l'ide que nous nous faisons de la beaut d'une femme, le
-velout de sa peau entre comme lment essentiel.</i>"</p>
+l'idée que nous nous faisons de la beauté d'une femme, le
+velouté de sa peau entre comme élément essentiel.</i>"</p>
<p>"<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Chacun de nous probablement avec un peu d'attention
-se rappellera des jouissances du got, qui ont t de vritables
-jouissances esthtiques.</i>"<a name="FNanchor_41_41" id="FNanchor_41_41"></a><a href="#Footnote_41_41" class="fnanchor">[41]</a> And he recounts how a
+se rappellera des jouissances du goût, qui ont été de véritables
+jouissances esthétiques.</i>"<a name="FNanchor_41_41" id="FNanchor_41_41"></a><a href="#Footnote_41_41" class="fnanchor">[41]</a> And he recounts how a
glass of milk drunk by him in the mountains gave him
-sthetic enjoyment.</p>
+æsthetic enjoyment.</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_356" id="Page_356">[356]</a></span></p>
<p>So it turns out that the conception of art, as consisting
in making beauty manifest, is not at all so simple as
it seemed, especially now, when in this conception of
beauty are included our sensations of touch and taste
-and smell, as they are by the latest sthetic writers.</p>
+and smell, as they are by the latest æsthetic writers.</p>
<p>But the ordinary man either does not know, or does not
wish to know, all this, and is firmly convinced that all
@@ -16242,18 +16202,18 @@ by every one. And yet not only is this not known, but,
after whole mountains of books have been written on the
subject by the most learned and profound thinkers during
one hundred and fifty years (ever since Baumgarten
-founded sthetics in the year 1750), the question, What
+founded æsthetics in the year 1750), the question, What
is beauty? remains to this day quite unsolved, and in
-each new work on sthetics it is answered in a new
-way. One of the last books I read on sthetics is a
-not ill-written booklet by Julius Mithalter, called "Rtsel
-des Schnen" (The Enigma of the Beautiful). And that
+each new work on æsthetics it is answered in a new
+way. One of the last books I read on æsthetics is a
+not ill-written booklet by Julius Mithalter, called "Rätsel
+des Schönen" (The Enigma of the Beautiful). And that
title precisely expresses the position of the question,
What is beauty? After thousands of learned men have
discussed it during one hundred and fifty years, the
meaning of the word beauty remains an enigma still.
The Germans answer the question in their manner,
-though in a hundred different ways. The physiologist-stheticians,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_357" id="Page_357">[357]</a></span>
+though in a hundred different ways. The physiologist-æstheticians,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_357" id="Page_357">[357]</a></span>
especially the Englishmen, Herbert Spencer,
Grant Allen, and his school, answer it, each in his own
way; the French eclectics, and the followers of Guyau
@@ -16262,7 +16222,7 @@ people know all the preceding solutions given by
Baumgarten, and Kant, and Schelling, and Schiller, and
Fichte, and Winckelmann, and Lessing, and Hegel, and
Schopenhauer, and Hartmann, and Schasler, and Cousin,
-and Lvque, and others.</p>
+and Lévêque, and others.</p>
<p>What is this strange conception "beauty," which
seems so simple to those who talk without thinking,
@@ -16310,13 +16270,13 @@ and conceptions "good" and "beautiful."</p>
<p>In all the European languages, <em>i.e.</em> the languages
of those nations among whom the doctrine has spread
that beauty is the essential thing in art, the words
-"beau," "schn," "beautiful," "bello," etc., while keeping
+"beau," "schön," "beautiful," "bello," etc., while keeping
their meaning of beautiful in form, have come to
also express "goodness," "kindness," <em>i.e.</em> have come
to act as substitutes for the word "good."</p>
<p>So that it has become quite natural in those languages
-to use such expressions as "belle ame," "schne Gedanken,"
+to use such expressions as "belle ame," "schöne Gedanken,"
of "beautiful deed." Those languages no
longer have a suitable word wherewith expressly to
indicate beauty of form, and have to use a combination
@@ -16326,7 +16286,7 @@ look at," etc., to convey that idea.</p>
<p>Observation of the divergent meanings which the
words "beauty" and "beautiful" have in Russian on
the one hand, and in those European languages now
-permeated by this sthetic theory on the other hand,
+permeated by this æsthetic theory on the other hand,
shows us that the word "beauty" has, among the latter,
acquired a special meaning, namely, that of "good."</p>
@@ -16347,28 +16307,28 @@ to be assimilated by Russian society.</p>
<p>In order to answer this question, I must here quote<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_359" id="Page_359">[359]</a></span>
at least a small selection of those definitions of beauty
-most generally adopted in existing sthetic systems. I
+most generally adopted in existing æsthetic systems. I
especially beg the reader not to be overcome by dullness,
but to read these extracts through, or, still better, to
-read some one of the erudite sthetic authors. Not to
-mention the voluminous German stheticians, a very
+read some one of the erudite æsthetic authors. Not to
+mention the voluminous German æstheticians, a very
good book for this purpose would be either the German
book by Kralik, the English work by Knight, or the
-French one by Lvque. It is necessary to read one
-of the learned sthetic writers in order to form at firsthand
+French one by Lévêque. It is necessary to read one
+of the learned æsthetic writers in order to form at firsthand
a conception of the variety in opinion and the
frightful obscurity which reigns in this region of speculation;
not, in this important matter, trusting to another's
report.</p>
-<p>This, for instance, is what the German sthetician
+<p>This, for instance, is what the German æsthetician
Schasler says in the preface to his famous, voluminous,
-and detailed work on sthetics:&mdash;</p>
+and detailed work on æsthetics:&mdash;</p>
<p>"Hardly in any sphere of philosophic science can we
find such divergent methods of investigation and exposition,
amounting even to self-contradiction, as in the
-sphere of sthetics. On the one hand, we have elegant
+sphere of æsthetics. On the one hand, we have elegant
phraseology without any substance, characterized
in great part by most one-sided superficiality; and on
the other hand, accompanying undeniable profundity
@@ -16385,35 +16345,35 @@ a pedantic erudition.... A style of exposition that falls
into none of these three defects but it is truly concrete,
and, having important matter, expresses it in clear and
popular philosophic language, can nowhere be found
-less frequently than in the domain of sthetics."<a name="FNanchor_42_42" id="FNanchor_42_42"></a><a href="#Footnote_42_42" class="fnanchor">[42]</a></p>
+less frequently than in the domain of æsthetics."<a name="FNanchor_42_42" id="FNanchor_42_42"></a><a href="#Footnote_42_42" class="fnanchor">[42]</a></p>
<p>It is only necessary, for instance, to read Schasler's<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_360" id="Page_360">[360]</a></span>
own book to convince oneself of the justice of this observation
of his.</p>
-<p>On the same subject the French writer Vron, in the
-preface to his very good work on sthetics, says: "<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Il
-n'y a pas de science, qui ait t plus que l'esthtique livre
-aux rveries des mtaphysiciens. Depuis Platon jusqu'aux
+<p>On the same subject the French writer Véron, in the
+preface to his very good work on æsthetics, says: "<i lang="fr" xml:lang="fr">Il
+n'y a pas de science, qui ait été plus que l'esthétique livrée
+aux rêveries des métaphysiciens. Depuis Platon jusqu'aux
doctrines officielles de nos jours, on a fait de l'art je
-ne sais quel amalgame de fantaisies quintessencies, et de
-mystres transcendantaux qui trouvent leur expression suprme
-dans la conception absolue du Beau idal, prototype
-immuable et divin des choses relles</i>" ("L'Esthtique,"
+ne sais quel amalgame de fantaisies quintessenciées, et de
+mystères transcendantaux qui trouvent leur expression suprême
+dans la conception absolue du Beau idéal, prototype
+immuable et divin des choses réelles</i>" ("L'Esthétique,"
1878, p. 5).<a name="FNanchor_43_43" id="FNanchor_43_43"></a><a href="#Footnote_43_43" class="fnanchor">[43]</a></p>
<p>If the reader will only be at the pains to peruse the
following extracts, defining beauty, taken from the chief
-writers on sthetics, he may convince himself that this
+writers on æsthetics, he may convince himself that this
censure is thoroughly deserved.</p>
<p>I shall not quote the definitions of beauty attributed
to the ancients,&mdash;Socrates, Plato, Aristotle, etc., down
to Plotinus,&mdash;because, in reality, the ancients had not
that conception of beauty separated from goodness
-which forms the basis and aim of sthetics in our time.
+which forms the basis and aim of æsthetics in our time.
By referring the judgments of the ancients on beauty to
-our conception of it, as is usually done in sthetics, we
+our conception of it, as is usually done in æsthetics, we
give the words of the ancients a meaning which is not
theirs.<a name="FNanchor_44_44" id="FNanchor_44_44"></a><a href="#Footnote_44_44" class="fnanchor">[44]</a></p>
@@ -16423,11 +16383,11 @@ theirs.<a name="FNanchor_44_44" id="FNanchor_44_44"></a><a href="#Footnote_44_44
<h2>CHAPTER III</h2>
-<p>I begin with the founder of sthetics, Baumgarten
+<p>I begin with the founder of æsthetics, Baumgarten
(1714-1762).</p>
<p>According to Baumgarten,<a name="FNanchor_45_45" id="FNanchor_45_45"></a><a href="#Footnote_45_45" class="fnanchor">[45]</a> the object of logical<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_361" id="Page_361">[361]</a></span>
-knowledge is Truth, the object of sthetic (<em>i.e.</em> sensuous)
+knowledge is Truth, the object of æsthetic (<em>i.e.</em> sensuous)
knowledge is Beauty. Beauty is the Perfect (the
Absolute) recognized through the senses; Truth is the
Perfect perceived through reason; Goodness is the Perfect
@@ -16446,7 +16406,7 @@ considers that the highest embodiment of beauty
is seen by us in nature, and he therefore thinks that the
highest aim of art is to copy nature. (This position also
is directly contradicted by the conclusions of the latest
-stheticians.)</p>
+æstheticians.)</p>
<p>Passing over the unimportant followers of Baumgarten,&mdash;Maier,
Eschenburg, and Eberhard,&mdash;who only
@@ -16471,15 +16431,15 @@ the carrying forward of the beautiful, obscurely recognized
by feeling, till it becomes the true and good. The
aim of art is moral perfection.<a name="FNanchor_46_46" id="FNanchor_46_46"></a><a href="#Footnote_46_46" class="fnanchor">[46]</a></p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_362" id="Page_362">[362]</a></span></p>
-<p>For the stheticians of this school, the ideal of beauty
+<p>For the æstheticians of this school, the ideal of beauty
is a beautiful soul in a beautiful body. So that these
-stheticians completely wipe out Baumgarten's division
+æstheticians completely wipe out Baumgarten's division
of the Perfect (the Absolute), into the three forms of
Truth, Goodness, and Beauty; and Beauty is again
united with the Good and the True.</p>
<p>But this conception is not only not maintained by the
-later stheticians, but the sthetic doctrine of Winckelmann
+later æstheticians, but the æsthetic doctrine of Winckelmann
arises, again in complete opposition. This divides
the mission of art from the aim of goodness in the sharpest
and most positive manner, makes external beauty the
@@ -16497,15 +16457,15 @@ is attained in antique art; modern art should therefore
aim at imitating ancient art.<a name="FNanchor_47_47" id="FNanchor_47_47"></a><a href="#Footnote_47_47" class="fnanchor">[47]</a></p>
<p>Art is similarly understood by Lessing, Herder, and
-afterwards by Goethe and by all the distinguished stheticians
+afterwards by Goethe and by all the distinguished æstheticians
of Germany till Kant, from whose day, again, a
different conception of art commences.</p>
-<p>Native sthetic theories arose during this period in
+<p>Native æsthetic theories arose during this period in
England, France, Italy, and Holland, and they, though
not taken from the German, were equally cloudy and
contradictory. And all these writers, just like the German
-stheticians, founded their theories on a conception
+æstheticians, founded their theories on a conception
of the Beautiful, understanding beauty in the sense of
a something existing absolutely, and more or less intermingled
with Goodness or having one and the same
@@ -16560,10 +16520,10 @@ which is bound up with it, is the source of beauty.<a name="FNanchor_50_50" id="
beauty in the eighteenth century.</p>
<p>During that period, in France, the writers on art were
-Pre Andr and Batteux, with Diderot, D'Alembert,
+Père André and Batteux, with Diderot, D'Alembert,
and, to some extent, Voltaire, following later.</p>
-<p>According to Pre Andr ("Essai sur le Beau,"
+<p>According to Père André ("Essai sur le Beau,"
1741), there are three kinds of beauty,&mdash;divine beauty,
natural beauty, and artificial beauty.<a name="FNanchor_51_51" id="FNanchor_51_51"></a><a href="#Footnote_51_51" class="fnanchor">[51]</a></p>
@@ -16577,7 +16537,7 @@ taste are not only not laid down, but it is granted that
they cannot be settled. The same view was held by
D'Alembert and Voltaire.<a name="FNanchor_53_53" id="FNanchor_53_53"></a><a href="#Footnote_53_53" class="fnanchor">[53]</a></p>
-<p>According to the Italian sthetician of that period,
+<p>According to the Italian æsthetician of that period,
Pagano, art consists in uniting the beauties dispersed in
nature. The capacity to perceive these beauties is taste,
the capacity to bring them into one whole is artistic
@@ -16593,7 +16553,7 @@ egotistical sensation, founded (as with Burke) on the
desire for self-preservation and society.</p>
<p>Among Dutch writers, Hemsterhuis (1720-1790), who
-had an influence on the German stheticians and on
+had an influence on the German æstheticians and on
Goethe, is remarkable. According to him, beauty is
that which gives most pleasure, and that gives most
pleasure which gives us the greatest number of ideas in
@@ -16601,14 +16561,14 @@ the shortest time. Enjoyment of the beautiful, because
it gives the greatest quantity of perceptions in the shortest
time, is the highest notion to which man can attain.<a name="FNanchor_56_56" id="FNanchor_56_56"></a><a href="#Footnote_56_56" class="fnanchor">[56]</a></p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_365" id="Page_365">[365]</a></span></p>
-<p>Such were the sthetic theories outside Germany during
+<p>Such were the æsthetic theories outside Germany during
the last century. In Germany, after Winckelmann,
-there again arose a completely new sthetic theory, that
+there again arose a completely new æsthetic theory, that
of Kant (1724-1804), which, more than all others, clears
up what this conception of beauty, and consequently of
art, really amounts to.</p>
-<p>The sthetic teaching of Kant is founded as follows:
+<p>The æsthetic teaching of Kant is founded as follows:
Man has a knowledge of nature outside him and of
himself in nature. In nature, outside himself, he seeks
for truth; in himself, he seeks for goodness. The first
@@ -16616,8 +16576,8 @@ is an affair of pure reason, the other of practical reason
(free will). Besides these two means of perception, there
is yet the judging capacity (<i lang="de" xml:lang="de">Urteilskraft</i>), which forms
judgments without reasonings and produces pleasure
-without desire (<i>Urtheil ohne Begriff und Vergngen ohne
-Begehren</i>). This capacity is the basis of sthetic feeling.
+without desire (<i>Urtheil ohne Begriff und Vergnügen ohne
+Begehren</i>). This capacity is the basis of æsthetic feeling.
Beauty, according to Kant, in its subjective meaning is
that which, in general and necessarily, without reasonings
and without practical advantage, pleases. In its
@@ -16627,7 +16587,7 @@ of its utility.<a name="FNanchor_57_57" id="FNanchor_57_57"></a><a href="#Footno
<p>Beauty is defined in the same way by the followers
of Kant, among whom was Schiller (1759-1805). According
-to Schiller, who wrote much on sthetics, the
+to Schiller, who wrote much on æsthetics, the
aim of art is, as with Kant, beauty, the source of which
is pleasure without practical advantage. So that art
may be called a game, not in the sense of an unimportant
@@ -16636,13 +16596,13 @@ of the beauties of life itself without other aim than
that of beauty.<a name="FNanchor_58_58" id="FNanchor_58_58"></a><a href="#Footnote_58_58" class="fnanchor">[58]</a></p>
<p>Besides Schiller, the most remarkable of Kant's
-followers in the sphere of sthetics was Wilhelm
+followers in the sphere of æsthetics was Wilhelm
Humboldt, who, though he added nothing to the definition
of beauty, explained various forms of it,&mdash;the
drama, music, the comic, etc.<a name="FNanchor_59_59" id="FNanchor_59_59"></a><a href="#Footnote_59_59" class="fnanchor">[59]</a></p>
<p>After Kant, besides the second-rate philosophers,
-the writers on sthetics were Fichte, Schelling, Hegel,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_366" id="Page_366">[366]</a></span>
+the writers on æsthetics were Fichte, Schelling, Hegel,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_366" id="Page_366">[366]</a></span>
and their followers. Fichte (1762-1814) says that perception
of the beautiful proceeds from this: the world&mdash;<i>i.e.</i>
nature&mdash;has two sides: it is the sum of our
@@ -16655,7 +16615,7 @@ inner completeness, vitality, regeneration&mdash;and we see
beauty. So that the deformity or beauty of an object,
according to Fichte, depends on the point of view of
the observer. Beauty therefore exists, not in the world,
-but in the beautiful soul (<i>schner Geist</i>). Art is the
+but in the beautiful soul (<i>schöner Geist</i>). Art is the
manifestation of this beautiful soul, and its aim is the
education, not only of the mind&mdash;that is the business
of the <i>savant</i>, not only of the heart&mdash;that is the affair
@@ -16664,16 +16624,16 @@ the characteristic of beauty lies, not in anything external,
but in the presence of a beautiful soul in the artist.<a name="FNanchor_60_60" id="FNanchor_60_60"></a><a href="#Footnote_60_60" class="fnanchor">[60]</a></p>
<p>Following Fichte, and in the same direction, Friedrich
-Schlegel and Adam Mller also defined beauty.
+Schlegel and Adam Müller also defined beauty.
According to Schlegel (1772-1829), beauty in art is
understood too incompletely, one-sidedly, and disconnectedly.
Beauty exists, not only in art, but also in
nature and in love; so that the truly beautiful is expressed
by the union of art, nature, and love. Therefore,
-as inseparably one with sthetic art, Schlegel
+as inseparably one with æsthetic art, Schlegel
acknowledges moral and philosophic art.<a name="FNanchor_61_61" id="FNanchor_61_61"></a><a href="#Footnote_61_61" class="fnanchor">[61]</a></p>
-<p>According to Adam Mller (1779-1829), there are
+<p>According to Adam Müller (1779-1829), there are
two kinds of beauty: the one, general beauty, which
attracts people as the sun attracts the planet&mdash;this is
found chiefly in antique art; and the other, individual
@@ -16688,7 +16648,7 @@ The highest art is the art of life.<a name="FNanchor_63_63" id="FNanchor_63_63">
<p>Next after Fichte and his followers came a contemporary
of his, the philosopher Schelling (1775-1854),
-who has had a great influence on the sthetic conceptions
+who has had a great influence on the æsthetic conceptions
of our times. According to Schelling's philosophy,
art is the production or result of that conception
of things by which the subject becomes its own object,
@@ -16705,7 +16665,7 @@ or skill produces the beautiful, but the idea of
beauty in him itself produces it.<a name="FNanchor_64_64" id="FNanchor_64_64"></a><a href="#Footnote_64_64" class="fnanchor">[64]</a></p>
<p>Of Schelling's followers the most noticeable was
-Solger (1780-1819&mdash;"Vorlesungen ber sthetik").
+Solger (1780-1819&mdash;"Vorlesungen über Æsthetik").
According to him, the idea of beauty is the fundamental
idea of everything. In the world we see only distortions
of the fundamental idea, but art, by imagination,
@@ -16720,7 +16680,7 @@ The highest stage of art is the art of life, which directs
its activity toward the adornment of life so that it may
be a beautiful abode for a beautiful man.<a name="FNanchor_66_66" id="FNanchor_66_66"></a><a href="#Footnote_66_66" class="fnanchor">[66]</a></p>
-<p>After Schelling and his followers came the new sthetic
+<p>After Schelling and his followers came the new æsthetic
doctrine of Hegel, which is held to this day, consciously
by many, but by the majority unconsciously.
This teaching is not only no clearer or better defined
@@ -16761,7 +16721,7 @@ Arnold Ruge, Rosenkrantz, Theodor Vischer, and others.</p>
beauty into external, dead, indifferent matter, the perception
of which latter, apart from the beauty brought
into it, presents the negation of all existence in itself
-(<i>Negation alles Frsichseins</i>).</p>
+(<i>Negation alles Fürsichseins</i>).</p>
<p>In the idea of truth, Weisse explains, lies a contradiction
between the subjective and the objective sides of
@@ -16789,8 +16749,8 @@ link of the system. The highest form of the Idea is
personality, and therefore the highest art is that which
has for its subject-matter the highest personality.<a name="FNanchor_70_70" id="FNanchor_70_70"></a><a href="#Footnote_70_70" class="fnanchor">[70]</a></p>
-<p>Such were the theories of the German stheticians in
-the Hegelian direction, but they did not monopolize sthetic
+<p>Such were the theories of the German æstheticians in
+the Hegelian direction, but they did not monopolize æsthetic
dissertations. In Germany, side by side and simultaneously
with the Hegelian theories, there appeared
theories of beauty not only independent of Hegel's position
@@ -16802,20 +16762,20 @@ by Schopenhauer.</p>
<p>According to Herbart (1776-1841), there is not, and
cannot be, any such thing as beauty existing in itself.
What does exist is only our opinion, and it is necessary
-to find the base of this opinion (<i>sthetisches Elementarurtheil</i>).
+to find the base of this opinion (<i>Ästhetisches Elementarurtheil</i>).
Such bases are connected with our impressions.
There are certain relations which we term beautiful; and
art consists in finding these relations, which are simultaneous
in painting, the plastic art, and architecture,
successive and simultaneous in music, and purely successive
-in poetry. In contradiction to the former stheticians,
+in poetry. In contradiction to the former æstheticians,
Herbart holds that objects are often beautiful
which express nothing at all, as, for instance, the rainbow,
which is beautiful for its lines and colors, and not for its
mythological connection with Iris or Noah's rainbow.<a name="FNanchor_71_71" id="FNanchor_71_71"></a><a href="#Footnote_71_71" class="fnanchor">[71]</a></p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_370" id="Page_370">[370]</a></span></p>
<p>Another opponent of Hegel was Schopenhauer, who
-denied Hegel's whole system, his sthetics included.</p>
+denied Hegel's whole system, his æsthetics included.</p>
<p>According to Schopenhauer (1788-1860), Will objectivizes
itself in the world on various planes; and although
@@ -16832,7 +16792,7 @@ manifest.<a name="FNanchor_72_72" id="FNanchor_72_72"></a><a href="#Footnote_72_
<p>After these more eminent writers there followed, in
Germany, less original and less influential ones, such as
Hartmann, Kirkmann, Schnasse, and, to some extent,
-Helmholtz (as an sthetician), Bergmann, Jungmann,
+Helmholtz (as an æsthetician), Bergmann, Jungmann,
and an innumerable host of others.</p>
<p>According to Hartmann (1842), beauty lies, not in the
@@ -16848,7 +16808,7 @@ approach toward it. Art gives what nature cannot
give. In the energy of the free <i>ego</i>, conscious of harmony
not found in nature, beauty is disclosed.<a name="FNanchor_74_74" id="FNanchor_74_74"></a><a href="#Footnote_74_74" class="fnanchor">[74]</a></p>
-<p>Kirkmann wrote on experimental sthetics. All aspects
+<p>Kirkmann wrote on experimental æsthetics. All aspects
of history in his system are joined by pure chance.
Thus, according to Kirkmann (1802-1884), there are
six realms of history: The realm of Knowledge, of
@@ -16862,23 +16822,23 @@ are not known to the artist; so that beauty is manifested
by the artist unconsciously, and cannot be subjected to
analysis.<a name="FNanchor_76_76" id="FNanchor_76_76"></a><a href="#Footnote_76_76" class="fnanchor">[76]</a></p>
-<p>According to Bergmann (1840) ("Ueber das Schne,"
+<p>According to Bergmann (1840) ("Ueber das Schöne,"
1887), to define beauty objectively is impossible. Beauty
is only perceived subjectively, and therefore the problem
-of sthetics is to define what pleases whom.<a name="FNanchor_77_77" id="FNanchor_77_77"></a><a href="#Footnote_77_77" class="fnanchor">[77]</a></p>
+of æsthetics is to define what pleases whom.<a name="FNanchor_77_77" id="FNanchor_77_77"></a><a href="#Footnote_77_77" class="fnanchor">[77]</a></p>
<p>According to Jungmann (d. 1885), firstly, beauty is a
suprasensible quality of things; secondly, beauty produces
in us pleasure by merely being contemplated; and,
thirdly, beauty is the foundation of love.<a name="FNanchor_78_78" id="FNanchor_78_78"></a><a href="#Footnote_78_78" class="fnanchor">[78]</a></p>
-<p>The sthetic theories of the chief representatives of
+<p>The æsthetic theories of the chief representatives of
France, England, and other nations in recent times have
been the following:&mdash;</p>
<p>In France, during this period, the prominent writers
-on sthetics were Cousin, Jouffroy, Pictet, Ravaisson,
-Lvque.</p>
+on æsthetics were Cousin, Jouffroy, Pictet, Ravaisson,
+Lévêque.</p>
<p>Cousin (1792-1867) was an eclectic, and a follower of
the German idealists. According to his theory, beauty
@@ -16889,7 +16849,7 @@ that it essentially consists in variety in unity.<a name="FNanchor_79_79" id="FN
<p>After Cousin came Jouffroy (1796-1842), who was a
pupil of Cousin's and also a follower of the German
-stheticians. According to his definition, beauty is the
+æstheticians. According to his definition, beauty is the
expression of the invisible by those natural signs which
manifest it. The visible world is the garment by means
of which we see beauty.<a name="FNanchor_80_80" id="FNanchor_80_80"></a><a href="#Footnote_80_80" class="fnanchor">[80]</a></p>
@@ -16898,16 +16858,16 @@ of which we see beauty.<a name="FNanchor_80_80" id="FNanchor_80_80"></a><a href=
supposing beauty to exist in the direct and free manifestation
of the divine Idea revealing itself in sense forms.<a name="FNanchor_81_81" id="FNanchor_81_81"></a><a href="#Footnote_81_81" class="fnanchor">[81]</a></p>
-<p>Lvque was a follower of Schelling and Hegel. He
+<p>Lévêque was a follower of Schelling and Hegel. He
holds that beauty is something invisible behind nature&mdash;a
force or spirit revealing itself in ordered energy.<a name="FNanchor_82_82" id="FNanchor_82_82"></a><a href="#Footnote_82_82" class="fnanchor">[82]</a></p>
<p>Similar vague opinions about the nature of beauty<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_372" id="Page_372">[372]</a></span>
were expressed by the French metaphysician Ravaisson,
who considered beauty to be the ultimate aim and purpose
-of the world. "<i>La beaut la plus divine et principalement
+of the world. "<i>La beauté la plus divine et principalement
la plus parfaite contient le secret du monde.</i>"<a name="FNanchor_83_83" id="FNanchor_83_83"></a><a href="#Footnote_83_83" class="fnanchor">[83]</a>
-And again, "<i>Le monde entier est l'&oelig;uvre d'une beaut
+And again, "<i>Le monde entier est l'&oelig;uvre d'une beauté
absolue, qui n'est la cause des choses que par l'amour
qu'elle met en elles.</i>"</p>
@@ -16919,15 +16879,15 @@ in uniting heterogeneous conceptions into one expression,
and putting forward one meaning or another indiscriminately.
For instance, the French philosopher Renouvier,
when discussing beauty, says, "<i>Ne craignons pas
-de dire qu'une vrit qui ne serait pas belle, ne serait qu'un
-jeu logique de notre esprit et que la seule vrit solide et
-digne de ce nom c'est la beaut.</i>"<a name="FNanchor_84_84" id="FNanchor_84_84"></a><a href="#Footnote_84_84" class="fnanchor">[84]</a></p>
+de dire qu'une vérité qui ne serait pas belle, ne serait qu'un
+jeu logique de notre esprit et que la seule vérité solide et
+digne de ce nom c'est la beauté.</i>"<a name="FNanchor_84_84" id="FNanchor_84_84"></a><a href="#Footnote_84_84" class="fnanchor">[84]</a></p>
-<p>Besides the sthetic idealists who wrote and still write
+<p>Besides the æsthetic idealists who wrote and still write
under the influence of German philosophy, the following
recent writers have also influenced the comprehension
of art and beauty in France: Taine, Guyau, Cherbuliez,
-Coster, and Vron.</p>
+Coster, and Véron.</p>
<p>According to Taine (1828-1893), beauty is the manifestation
of the essential characteristic of any important
@@ -16979,26 +16939,26 @@ of his individuality.</p>
<p>Then again, Sar Peladan's "L'Art Idealiste et Mystique"
(1894), says that beauty is one of the manifestations
-of God. "<i>Il n'y a pas d'autre Ralit que Dieu,
-il n'y a pas d'autre Vrit que Dieu, il n'y a pas d'autre
-Beaut que Dieu</i>" (p. 33). This book is very fantastic
+of God. "<i>Il n'y a pas d'autre Réalité que Dieu,
+il n'y a pas d'autre Vérité que Dieu, il n'y a pas d'autre
+Beauté que Dieu</i>" (p. 33). This book is very fantastic
and very illiterate, but is characteristic in the positions it
takes up, and noticeable on account of a certain success
it is having with the younger generation in France.</p>
-<p>All the sthetics diffused in France up to the present
-time are similar in kind, but among them Vron's
-"L'Esthtique" (1878) forms an exception, being reasonable
+<p>All the æsthetics diffused in France up to the present
+time are similar in kind, but among them Véron's
+"L'Esthétique" (1878) forms an exception, being reasonable
and clear. That work, though it does not give an<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_374" id="Page_374">[374]</a></span>
-exact definition of art, at least rids sthetics of the
+exact definition of art, at least rids æsthetics of the
cloudy conception of an absolute beauty.</p>
-<p>According to Vron (1825-1889), art is the manifestation
+<p>According to Véron (1825-1889), art is the manifestation
of emotion transmitted externally by a combination
of lines, forms, colors, or by a succession of movements,
sounds, or words subjected to certain rhythms.<a name="FNanchor_88_88" id="FNanchor_88_88"></a><a href="#Footnote_88_88" class="fnanchor">[88]</a></p>
-<p>In England, during this period, the writers on sthetics
+<p>In England, during this period, the writers on æsthetics
define beauty more and more frequently, not by its own
qualities, but by taste; and the discussion about beauty
is superseded by a discussion on taste.</p>
@@ -17015,8 +16975,8 @@ in our conception with what we love. Richard
Knight's work, "An Analytical Inquiry into the Principles
of Taste," also tends in the same direction.</p>
-<p>Most of the English theories of sthetics are on the
-same lines. The prominent writers on sthetics in
+<p>Most of the English theories of æsthetics are on the
+same lines. The prominent writers on æsthetics in
England during the present century have been Charles
Darwin (to some extent), Herbert Spencer, Grant Allen,
Ker, and Knight.</p>
@@ -17037,7 +16997,7 @@ in life-maintenance and race-maintenance; in man, however,
there remains, after these needs are satisfied,
some superfluous strength. This excess is used in play,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_375" id="Page_375">[375]</a></span>
which passes over into art. Play is an imitation of real
-activity; so is art. The sources of sthetic pleasure
+activity; so is art. The sources of æsthetic pleasure
are threefold: (1) That "which exercises the faculties
affected in the most complete ways, with the fewest
drawbacks from exercise," (2) "the difference of a
@@ -17058,8 +17018,8 @@ helpfulness toward a reasonable aim. Beauty is the
reconciliation of contradictions.<a name="FNanchor_91_91" id="FNanchor_91_91"></a><a href="#Footnote_91_91" class="fnanchor">[91]</a></p>
<p>Grant Allen is a follower of Spencer, and in his
-"Physiological sthetics" (1877) he says that beauty
-has a physical origin. sthetic pleasures come from
+"Physiological Æsthetics" (1877) he says that beauty
+has a physical origin. Æsthetic pleasures come from
the contemplation of the beautiful, but the conception of
beauty is obtained by a physiological process. The
origin of art is play; when there is a superfluity of
@@ -17091,19 +17051,19 @@ of that which is common to all nature.</p>
<p>The opinions on beauty and on art here mentioned
are far from exhausting what has been written on the
-subject. And every day fresh writers on sthetics arise,
+subject. And every day fresh writers on æsthetics arise,
in whose disquisitions appear the same enchanted confusion
and contradictoriness in defining beauty. Some,
-by inertia, continue the mystical sthetics of Baumgarten
+by inertia, continue the mystical æsthetics of Baumgarten
and Hegel with sundry variations; others transfer the
question to the region of subjectivity, and seek for the
foundation of the beautiful in questions of taste; others&mdash;the
-stheticians of the very latest formation&mdash;seek
+æstheticians of the very latest formation&mdash;seek
the origin of beauty in the laws of physiology; and
finally, others again investigate the question quite independently
of the conception of beauty. Thus Sully, in
his "Sensation and Intuition: Studies in Psychology
-and sthetics" (1874), dismisses the conception of beauty
+and Æsthetics" (1874), dismisses the conception of beauty
altogether, art, by his definition, being the production of
some permanent object or passing action fitted to supply
active enjoyment to the producer, and a pleasurable impression
@@ -17124,7 +17084,7 @@ to a purpose, or in symmetry, or in order, or in proportion,<span class="pagenum
or in smoothness, or in harmony of the parts, or
in unity amid variety, or in various combinations of
these&mdash;not reckoning these unsatisfactory attempts at
-objective definition, all the sthetic definitions of beauty
+objective definition, all the æsthetic definitions of beauty
lead to two fundamental conceptions. The first is that
beauty is something having an independent existence
(existing in itself), that it is one of the manifestations
@@ -17136,7 +17096,7 @@ for its object.</p>
<p>The first of these definitions was accepted by Fichte,
Schelling, Hegel, Schopenhauer, and the philosophizing
Frenchmen, Cousin, Jouffroy, Ravaisson, and others,
-not to enumerate the second-rate sthetic philosophers.
+not to enumerate the second-rate æsthetic philosophers.
And this same objective-mystical definition of beauty is
held by a majority of the educated people of our day.
It is a conception very widely spread, especially among
@@ -17144,7 +17104,7 @@ the elder generation.</p>
<p>The second view, that beauty is a certain kind of
pleasure received by us, not having personal advantage
-for its aim, finds favor chiefly among the English sthetic
+for its aim, finds favor chiefly among the English æsthetic
writers, and is shared by the other part of our
society, principally by the younger generation.</p>
@@ -17173,20 +17133,20 @@ the pleasure derived from drink, from food, from touching
a delicate skin, etc., as is acknowledged by Guyau,
Kralik, and others.</p>
-<p>It is true that, following the development of the sthetic
+<p>It is true that, following the development of the æsthetic
doctrines on beauty, we may notice that, though
at first (in the times when the foundations of the science
-of sthetics were being laid) the metaphysical definition
+of æsthetics were being laid) the metaphysical definition
of beauty prevailed, yet the nearer we get to our own
times the more does an experimental definition (recently
assuming a physiological form) come to the front, so
-that at last we even meet with such stheticians as
-Vron and Sully, who try to escape entirely from the
-conception of beauty. But such stheticians have very
+that at last we even meet with such æstheticians as
+Véron and Sully, who try to escape entirely from the
+conception of beauty. But such æstheticians have very
little success, and with the majority of the public, as
well as of artists and the learned, a conception of
beauty is firmly held which agrees with the definitions
-contained in most of the sthetic treatises, <i>i.e.</i> which
+contained in most of the æsthetic treatises, <i>i.e.</i> which
regards beauty either as something mystical or metaphysical,
or as a special kind of enjoyment.</p>
@@ -17216,9 +17176,9 @@ should apply to all artistic productions, and by reference
to which we might decide whether a certain article belonged
to the realm of art or not. But no such definition
is supplied, as the reader may see from those
-summaries of the sthetic theories which I have given,
+summaries of the æsthetic theories which I have given,
and as he may discover even more clearly from the original
-sthetic works, if he will be at the pains to read
+æsthetic works, if he will be at the pains to read
them. All attempts to define absolute beauty in itself&mdash;whether
as an imitation of nature, or as suitability to
its object, or as a correspondence of parts, or as symmetry,
@@ -17233,7 +17193,7 @@ definitions (both the metaphysical and the experimental)
amount only to one and the same subjective
definition, which (strange as it seems to say so) is, that
art is that which makes beauty manifest, and beauty is
-that which pleases (without exciting desire). Many stheticians
+that which pleases (without exciting desire). Many æstheticians
have felt the insufficiency and instability of
such a definition, and, in order to give it a firm basis,
have asked themselves why a thing pleases. And they
@@ -17241,10 +17201,10 @@ have converted the discussion on beauty into a question
concerning taste, as did Hutcheson, Voltaire, Diderot,
and others. But all attempts to define what taste is
must lead to nothing, as the reader may see both from
-the history of sthetics and experimentally. There is
+the history of æsthetics and experimentally. There is
and can be no explanation of why one thing pleases
one man and displeases another, or <i>vice versa</i>. So that
-the whole existing science of sthetics fails to do what
+the whole existing science of æsthetics fails to do what
we might expect from it, being a mental activity calling
itself a science; namely, it does not define the qualities
and laws of art, or of the beautiful (if that be the content
@@ -17252,7 +17212,7 @@ of art), or the nature of taste (if taste decides the
question of art and its merit), and then, on the basis of
such definitions, acknowledge as art those productions<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_380" id="Page_380">[380]</a></span>
which correspond to these laws, and reject those which
-do not come under them. But this science of sthetics
+do not come under them. But this science of æsthetics
consists in first acknowledging a certain set of productions
to be art (because they please us), and then framing
such a theory of art that all those productions which
@@ -17261,8 +17221,8 @@ exists an art canon, according to which certain productions
favored by our circle are acknowledged as being
art,&mdash;Phidias, Sophocles, Homer, Titian, Raphael,
Bach, Beethoven, Dante, Shakespear, Goethe, and
-others,&mdash;and the sthetic laws must be such as to
-embrace all these productions. In sthetic literature
+others,&mdash;and the æsthetic laws must be such as to
+embrace all these productions. In æsthetic literature
you will incessantly meet with opinions on the merit
and importance of art, founded not on any certain laws
by which this or that is held to be good or bad, but
@@ -17283,7 +17243,7 @@ which shall fit the works; and instead of a demand for
morality, Folgeldt postulates as the basis of art a
demand for the important (<i>Bedeutungsvolles</i>).</p>
-<p>All the existing sthetic standards are built on this
+<p>All the existing æsthetic standards are built on this
plan. Instead of giving a definition of true art, and
then deciding what is and what is not good art by judging
whether a work conforms or does not conform to
@@ -17313,7 +17273,7 @@ infallible, may be seen by what is being done in the art
of our circle to-day.</p>
<p>So that the theory of art, founded on beauty, expounded
-by sthetics, and, in dim outline, professed by
+by æsthetics, and, in dim outline, professed by
the public, is nothing but the setting up as good of
that which has pleased and pleases us, <i>i.e.</i> pleases a
certain class of people.</p>
@@ -17386,7 +17346,7 @@ of confusing the whole matter.</p>
<p>To the question, What is this art, to which is offered
up the labor of millions, the very lives of men, and even
morality itself? we have extracted replies from the
-existing sthetics, which all amount to this that the
+existing æsthetics, which all amount to this that the
aim of art is beauty, that beauty is recognized by the enjoyment
it gives, and that artistic enjoyment is a good
and important thing, because it <i>is</i> enjoyment. In a
@@ -17416,7 +17376,7 @@ excitement of the nervous system (Grant Allen).
This is the physiological-evolutionary definition. (2)
Art is the external manifestation, by means of lines,
colors, movements, sounds, or words, of emotions felt
-by man (Vron). This is the experimental definition.
+by man (Véron). This is the experimental definition.
According to the very latest definition (Sully), (3) Art
is "the production of some permanent object or passing
action, which is fitted, not only to supply an active
@@ -17436,7 +17396,7 @@ of the derivation of art. The modification of it (1 <i>b</i>),
based on the physiological effects on the human organism,
is inexact, because within the limits of such definition
many other human activities can be included, as
-has occurred in the neo-sthetic theories, which reckon
+has occurred in the neo-æsthetic theories, which reckon
as art the preparation of handsome clothes, pleasant
scents, and even of victuals.</p>
@@ -17581,7 +17541,7 @@ them.</i></p>
<p>Art is not, as the metaphysicians say, the manifestation
of some mysterious Idea of beauty, or God; it is
-not, as the sthetical physiologists say, a game in which
+not, as the æsthetical physiologists say, a game in which
man lets off his excess of stored-up energy; it is not the
expression of man's emotions by external signs; it is not
the production of pleasing objects; and, above all, it is
@@ -17988,11 +17948,11 @@ of art was formulated.</p>
<p>From the time that people of the upper classes lost
faith in Church Christianity, beauty (<i>i.e.</i> the pleasure received
from art) became their standard of good and bad
-art. And, in accordance with that view, an sthetic
+art. And, in accordance with that view, an æsthetic
theory naturally sprang up among those upper classes
justifying such a conception,&mdash;a theory according to
which the aim of art is to exhibit beauty. The partizans
-of this sthetic theory, in confirmation of its truth, affirmed<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_397" id="Page_397">[397]</a></span>
+of this æsthetic theory, in confirmation of its truth, affirmed<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_397" id="Page_397">[397]</a></span>
that it was no invention of their own, but that it
existed in the nature of things, and was recognized even
by the ancient Greeks. But this assertion was quite
@@ -18035,24 +17995,24 @@ very essence of things; that beauty and goodness must
coincide; and that the word and conception &#954;&#945;&#955;&#959;-&#954;&#7936;&#947;&#945;&#952;&#8055;&#945;
(which had a meaning for Greeks, but has none at all for
Christians) represents the highest ideal of humanity. On
-this misunderstanding the new science of sthetics was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_398" id="Page_398">[398]</a></span>
+this misunderstanding the new science of æsthetics was<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_398" id="Page_398">[398]</a></span>
built up. And, to justify its existence, the teachings of
the ancients on art were so twisted as to make it appear
-that this invented science of sthetics had existed among
+that this invented science of æsthetics had existed among
the Greeks.</p>
<p>In reality, the reasoning of the ancients on art was
-quite unlike ours. As Benard, in his book on the sthetics
+quite unlike ours. As Benard, in his book on the æsthetics
of Aristotle, quite justly remarks, "<i>Pour qui veut
-y regarder de prs, la thorie du beau et celle de l'art sont
-tout fait spares dans Aristote, comme elles le sont dans
-Platon et chez tous leurs successeurs</i>" ("L'Esthtique
+y regarder de près, la théorie du beau et celle de l'art sont
+tout à fait séparées dans Aristote, comme elles le sont dans
+Platon et chez tous leurs successeurs</i>" ("L'Esthétique
d'Aristote et de ses Successeurs," Paris, 1889, p. 28).<a name="FNanchor_98_98" id="FNanchor_98_98"></a><a href="#Footnote_98_98" class="fnanchor">[98]</a>
And indeed the reasoning of the ancients on art not
-only does not confirm our science of sthetics, but rather
+only does not confirm our science of æsthetics, but rather
contradicts its doctrine of beauty. But nevertheless all
-the sthetic guides, from Schasler to Knight, declare
-that the science of the beautiful&mdash;sthetic science&mdash;was
+the æsthetic guides, from Schasler to Knight, declare
+that the science of the beautiful&mdash;æsthetic science&mdash;was
commenced by the ancients, by Socrates, Plato,
Aristotle; and was continued, they say, partially by
the Epicureans and Stoics: by Seneca and Plutarch,
@@ -18066,11 +18026,11 @@ in Germany, 1750 <small>A.D.</small>, in Baumgarten's doctrine.</p>
away during which there was not the slightest scientific
interest felt for the world of beauty and art. These one
and a half thousand years, says he, have been lost to
-sthetics, and have contributed nothing toward the
+æsthetics, and have contributed nothing toward the
erection of the learned edifice of this science.<a name="FNanchor_99_99" id="FNanchor_99_99"></a><a href="#Footnote_99_99" class="fnanchor">[99]</a></p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_399" id="Page_399">[399]</a></span></p>
<p>In reality nothing of the kind happened. The science
-of sthetics, the science of the beautiful, neither did nor
+of æsthetics, the science of the beautiful, neither did nor
could vanish, because it never existed. Simply, the
Greeks (just like everybody else, always and everywhere)
considered art (like everything else) good only when it
@@ -18079,14 +18039,14 @@ when it was in opposition to that goodness. And the
Greeks themselves were so little developed morally, that
goodness and beauty seemed to them to coincide. On
that obsolete Greek view of life was erected the science
-of sthetics, invented by men of the eighteenth century,
+of æsthetics, invented by men of the eighteenth century,
and especially shaped and mounted in Baumgarten's
theory. The Greeks (as any one may see who will read
Benard's admirable book on Aristotle and his successors
and Walter's work on Plato) never had a science of
-sthetics.</p>
+æsthetics.</p>
-<p>sthetic theories arose about one hundred and fifty
+<p>Æsthetic theories arose about one hundred and fifty
years ago among the wealthy classes of the Christian
European world, and arose simultaneously among different
nations,&mdash;German, Italian, Dutch, French, and
@@ -18142,10 +18102,10 @@ who lived 2000 years ago, who imitated the nude human
body extremely well, and erected buildings pleasant to
look at. All these incompatibilities pass completely
unnoticed. Learned people write long, cloudy treatises
-on beauty as a member of the sthetic trinity of Beauty,
-Truth, and Goodness: <i>das Schne</i>, <i>das Wahre</i>, <i>das Gute</i>;
+on beauty as a member of the æsthetic trinity of Beauty,
+Truth, and Goodness: <i>das Schöne</i>, <i>das Wahre</i>, <i>das Gute</i>;
<i>le Beau</i>, <i>le Vrai</i>, <i>le Bon</i>, are repeated, with capital letters,
-by philosophers, stheticians, and artists, by private individuals,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_401" id="Page_401">[401]</a></span>
+by philosophers, æstheticians, and artists, by private individuals,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_401" id="Page_401">[401]</a></span>
by novelists, and by <i>feuilletonistes</i>, and they
all think, when pronouncing these sacrosanct words,
that they speak of something quite definite and solid&mdash;something
@@ -18176,7 +18136,7 @@ pleasure?</p>
<p>In order to answer this question, it is necessary, first
of all, to correct the current error people make in
attributing to our art the significance of true, universal
-art. We are so accustomed, not only navely to consider
+art. We are so accustomed, not only naïvely to consider
the Circassian family the best stock of people, but
also the Anglo-Saxon race the best race if we are Englishmen
or Americans, or the Teutonic if we are Germans,
@@ -18239,7 +18199,7 @@ remaining ninety-nine per cent live and die, generation
after generation, crushed by toil, and never tasting this
art, which, moreover, is of such a nature that, if they
could get it, they would not understand anything of it.
-We, according to the current sthetic theory, acknowledge
+We, according to the current æsthetic theory, acknowledge
art as one of the highest manifestations of the
Idea, God, Beauty, or as the highest spiritual enjoyment;
furthermore, we hold that all people have equal rights,
@@ -18362,7 +18322,7 @@ These people simply and boldly speak out (what lies at
the heart of the matter), and say that the participators
in and utilizers of what, in their esteem, is highly beautiful
art, <i>i.e.</i> art furnishing the greatest enjoyment, can
-only be "schne Geister," "the elect," as the romanticists
+only be "schöne Geister," "the elect," as the romanticists
called them, the "Uebermenschen," as they are
called by the followers of Nietzsche; the remaining
vulgar herd, incapable of experiencing these pleasures,
@@ -18469,10 +18429,10 @@ and the rich, who have no experience of labor for the
support of life, is far poorer, more limited, and more
insignificant than the range of feelings natural to working-people.</p>
-<p>People of our circle, stheticians, usually think and
+<p>People of our circle, æstheticians, usually think and
say just the contrary of this. I remember how Gontchareff,
the author, a very clever and educated man, but
-a thorough townsman and an sthetician, said to me
+a thorough townsman and an æsthetician, said to me
that after Tourgenieff's "Memoirs of a Sportsman" there
was nothing left to write about in peasant life. It was
all used up. The life of working-people seemed to him
@@ -18545,19 +18505,19 @@ by Heine, has latterly become fashionable, and is
expressed by most ordinary and empty people. Most
justly does the French critic Doumic characterize the
works of the new writers: "<i>C'est la lassitude de vivre,
-le mpris de l'poque prsente, le regret d'un autre temps
-aperu &nbsp;travers l'illusion de l'art, le got du paradoxe,
-le besoin de se singulariser, une aspiration de raffins
-vers la simplicit, l'adoration enfantine du merveilleux,
-la sduction maladive de la rverie, l'branlement des
-nerfs,&mdash;surtout l'appel exaspr de la sensualit</i>" ("Les
-Jeunes," Ren Doumic).<a name="FNanchor_102_102" id="FNanchor_102_102"></a><a href="#Footnote_102_102" class="fnanchor">[102]</a> And, as a matter of fact, of
+le mépris de l'époque présente, le regret d'un autre temps
+aperçu à&nbsp;travers l'illusion de l'art, le goût du paradoxe,
+le besoin de se singulariser, une aspiration de raffinés
+vers la simplicité, l'adoration enfantine du merveilleux,
+la séduction maladive de la rêverie, l'ébranlement des
+nerfs,&mdash;surtout l'appel exaspéré de la sensualité</i>" ("Les
+Jeunes," René Doumic).<a name="FNanchor_102_102" id="FNanchor_102_102"></a><a href="#Footnote_102_102" class="fnanchor">[102]</a> And, as a matter of fact, of
these three feelings it is sensuality, the lowest (accessible
not only to all men, but even to all animals), which
forms the chief subject-matter of works of art of recent
times.</p>
-<p>From Boccaccio to Marcel Prvost, all the novels,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_411" id="Page_411">[411]</a></span>
+<p>From Boccaccio to Marcel Prévost, all the novels,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_411" id="Page_411">[411]</a></span>
poems, and verses invariably transmit the feeling of
sexual love in its different forms. Adultery is not only
the favorite, but almost the only theme of all the novels.
@@ -18572,13 +18532,13 @@ French literature there is hardly a page or a poem in
which nakedness is not described, and in which, relevantly
or irrelevantly, their favorite thought and word
<i>nu</i> is not repeated a couple of times. There is a certain
-writer, Ren de Gourmond, who gets printed, and is
+writer, René de Gourmond, who gets printed, and is
considered talented. To get an idea of the new writers,
-I read his novel, "Les Chevaux de Diomde." It is a
+I read his novel, "Les Chevaux de Diomède." It is a
consecutive and detailed account of the sexual connections
some gentleman had with various women. Every
page contains lust-kindling descriptions. It is the same
-in Pierre Lous' book, "Aphrodite," which met with
+in Pierre Louÿs' book, "Aphrodite," which met with
success; it is the same in a book I lately chanced upon,
Huysmans' "Certains," and, with but few exceptions,
it is the same in all the French novels. They are all
@@ -18641,34 +18601,34 @@ out the masses) elevated to the rank of a merit and
a condition of poetic art, but even incorrectness, indefiniteness,
and lack of eloquence are held in esteem.</p>
-<p>Thophile Gautier, in his preface to the celebrated
+<p>Théophile Gautier, in his preface to the celebrated
"Fleurs du Mal," says that Baudelaire, as far as possible,
banished from poetry eloquence, passion, and truth
-too strictly copied ("<i>l'loquence, la passion, et la vrit
-calque trop exactement</i>").</p>
+too strictly copied ("<i>l'éloquence, la passion, et la vérité
+calquée trop exactement</i>").</p>
<p>And Baudelaire not only expressed this, but maintained<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_413" id="Page_413">[413]</a></span>
his thesis in his verses, and yet more strikingly
-in the prose of his "Petits Pomes en Prose," the meanings
+in the prose of his "Petits Poèmes en Prose," the meanings
of which have to be guessed like a rebus, and
remain for the most part undiscovered.</p>
<p>The poet Verlaine (who followed next after Baudelaire,
and was also esteemed great) even wrote an "Art
-Potique," in which he advises this style of composition:&mdash;</p>
+Poétique," in which he advises this style of composition:&mdash;</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0"><i>De la musique avant toute chose</i>,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Et pour cela prfre l'Impair</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Et pour cela préfère l'Impair</i><br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>Plus vague et plus soluble dans l'air</i>,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Sans rien en lui qui pse ou qui pose.</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Sans rien en lui qui pèse ou qui pose.</i><br /></span>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0"><i>Il faut aussi que tu n'ailles point</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Choisir tes mots sans quelque mprise:</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Choisir tes mots sans quelque méprise:</i><br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>Rien de plus cher que la chanson grise</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>O l'Indcis au Prcis se joint.</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Où l'Indécis au Précis se joint.</i><br /></span>
<span class="i0">&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;*&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;*&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;*&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;*</span>
</div></div>
@@ -18677,55 +18637,55 @@ Potique," in which he advises this style of composition:&mdash;</p>
<div class="poem">
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0"><i>De la musique encore et toujours!</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Que ton vers soit la chose envole</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Qu'on sent qui fuit d'une me en alle</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Vers d'autres cieux d'autres amours.</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Que ton vers soit la chose envolée</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Qu'on sent qui fuit d'une âme en allée</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Vers d'autres cieux à d'autres amours.</i><br /></span>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0"><i>Que ton vers soit la bonne aventure</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Eparse au vent crisp du matin</i>,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Eparse au vent crispé du matin</i>,<br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>Qui va fleurant la menthe et le thym</i>....<br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Et tout le reste est littrature.</i><a name="FNanchor_103_103" id="FNanchor_103_103"></a><a href="#Footnote_103_103" class="fnanchor">[103]</a><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Et tout le reste est littérature.</i><a name="FNanchor_103_103" id="FNanchor_103_103"></a><a href="#Footnote_103_103" class="fnanchor">[103]</a><br /></span>
</div></div>
<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_414" id="Page_414">[414]</a></span></p>
-<p>After these two comes Mallarm, considered the most
+<p>After these two comes Mallarmé, considered the most
important of the young poets, and he plainly says that
the charm of poetry lies in our having to guess its
meaning&mdash;that in poetry there should always be a
puzzle:&mdash;</p>
<p><i>Je pense qu'il faut qu'il n'y ait qu'allusion</i>, says he.
-<i>La contemplation des objets, l'image s'envolant des rveries
-suscites par eux, sont le chant: les Parnassiens,
-eux, prennent la chose entirement et la montrent; par
-l ils manquent de mystre; ils retirent aux esprits cette
-joie dlicieuse de croire qu'ils crent.</i> Nommer un objet,
+<i>La contemplation des objets, l'image s'envolant des rêveries
+suscitées par eux, sont le chant: les Parnassiens,
+eux, prennent la chose entièrement et la montrent; par
+là ils manquent de mystère; ils retirent aux esprits cette
+joie délicieuse de croire qu'ils créent.</i> Nommer un objet,
c'est supprimer les trois quarts de la jouissance du
-pome, qui est faite du bonheur de deviner peu peu:
-le suggrer, voil le rve. <i>C'est le par fait usage de ce
-mystre qui constitue le symbole: voquer petit petit
-un objet pour montrer un tat d'me, ou, inversement,
-choisir un objet et en dgager un tat d'me, par une srie
-de dchiffrements.</i></p>
-
-<p>.... <i>Si un tre d'une intelligence moyenne, et d'une
-prparation littraire insuffisante, ouvre par hasard un
-livre ainsi fait et prtend en jouir, il y a malentendu,
-il faut remettre les choses leur place.</i> Il doit y avoir
-toujours nigme en posie, <i>et c'est le but de la littrature,
-il n'y en a pas d'autre,&mdash;d'voquer les objets</i>.&mdash;"Enqute
-sur l'volution Littraire," Jules Huret, pp. 60, 61.<a name="FNanchor_104_104" id="FNanchor_104_104"></a><a href="#Footnote_104_104" class="fnanchor">[104]</a></p>
+poème, qui est faite du bonheur de deviner peu à peu:
+le suggérer, voilà le rêve. <i>C'est le par fait usage de ce
+mystère qui constitue le symbole: évoquer petit à petit
+un objet pour montrer un état d'âme, ou, inversement,
+choisir un objet et en dégager un état d'âme, par une sèrie
+de déchiffrements.</i></p>
+
+<p>.... <i>Si un être d'une intelligence moyenne, et d'une
+préparation littéraire insuffisante, ouvre par hasard un
+livre ainsi fait et prétend en jouir, il y a malentendu,
+il faut remettre les choses à leur place.</i> Il doit y avoir
+toujours énigme en poèsie, <i>et c'est le but de la littérature,
+il n'y en a pas d'autre,&mdash;d'évoquer les objets</i>.&mdash;"Enquête
+sur l'Évolution Littéraire," Jules Huret, pp. 60, 61.<a name="FNanchor_104_104" id="FNanchor_104_104"></a><a href="#Footnote_104_104" class="fnanchor">[104]</a></p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_415" id="Page_415">[415]</a></span></p>
<p>Thus is obscurity elevated into a dogma among the
new poets. As the French critic Doumic (who has not
yet accepted the dogma) quite correctly says:&mdash;</p>
<p>"<i>Il serait temps aussi d'en finir avec cette fameuse
-'thorie de l'obscurite' que la nouvelle cole a leve, en
-effet, la hauteur d'un dogme.</i>"&mdash;"Les Jeunes, par
-Ren Doumic."<a name="FNanchor_105_105" id="FNanchor_105_105"></a><a href="#Footnote_105_105" class="fnanchor">[105]</a></p>
+'théorie de l'obscurite' que la nouvelle école a élevée, en
+effet, à la hauteur d'un dogme.</i>"&mdash;"Les Jeunes, par
+René Doumic."<a name="FNanchor_105_105" id="FNanchor_105_105"></a><a href="#Footnote_105_105" class="fnanchor">[105]</a></p>
<p>But it is not French writers only who think thus. The
poets of all other countries think and act in the same
@@ -18736,7 +18696,7 @@ and in music. Relying on Nietzsche and Wagner, the
artists of the new age conclude that it is unnecessary
for them to be intelligible to the vulgar crowd; it is
enough for them to evoke poetic emotion in "the finest
-nurtured," to borrow a phrase from an English sthetician.</p>
+nurtured," to borrow a phrase from an English æsthetician.</p>
<p>In order that what I am saying may not seem to be
mere assertion, I will quote at least a few examples from
@@ -18748,13 +18708,13 @@ most European writers.</p>
<p>Besides those whose names are already considered
famous, such as Baudelaire and Verlaine, here are the
-names of a few of them: Jean Moras, Charles Morice,
-Henri de Rgnier, Charles Vignier, Adrien Remacle,
-Ren Ghil, Maurice Maeterlinck, G. Albert Aurier, Rmy
+names of a few of them: Jean Moréas, Charles Morice,
+Henri de Régnier, Charles Vignier, Adrien Remacle,
+René Ghil, Maurice Maeterlinck, G. Albert Aurier, Rémy
de Gourmont, Saint-Pol-Roux-le-Magnifique, Georges
Rodenbach, le comte Robert de Montesquiou-Fezensac.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_416" id="Page_416">[416]</a></span>
These are Symbolists and Decadents. Next we have
-the "Magi": Josphin Pladan, Paul Adam, Jules Bois,
+the "Magi": Joséphin Péladan, Paul Adam, Jules Bois,
M. Papus, and others.</p>
<p>Besides these, there are yet one hundred and forty-one
@@ -18771,19 +18731,19 @@ poem from his celebrated "Fleurs du Mal":&mdash;</p>
<p class="center space-above">No. XXIV</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0"><i>Je t'adore &nbsp;l'gal de la vote nocturne</i>,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>O vase de tristesse, grande taciturne</i>,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Je t'adore à&nbsp;l'égal de la voûte nocturne</i>,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>O vase de tristesse, ô grande taciturne</i>,<br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>Et t'aime d'autant plus, belle, que tu me fuis</i>,<br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>Et que tu me parais, ornement de mes nuits</i>,<br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>Plus ironiquement accumuler les lieues</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Qui sparent mes bras des immensits bleues.</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Qui séparent mes bras des immensités bleues.</i><br /></span>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0"><i>Je m'avance l'attaque, et je grimpe aux assauts</i>,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Comme aprs un cadavre un ch&oelig;ur de vermisseaux</i>,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Et je chris, bte implacable et cruelle</i>,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Jusqu'&nbsp;cette froideur par o tu m'es plus belle!</i><a name="FNanchor_106_106" id="FNanchor_106_106"></a><a href="#Footnote_106_106" class="fnanchor">[106]</a><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Je m'avance à l'attaque, et je grimpe aux assauts</i>,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Comme après un cadavre un ch&oelig;ur de vermisseaux</i>,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Et je chéris, ô bête implacable et cruelle</i>,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Jusqu'à&nbsp;cette froideur par où tu m'es plus belle!</i><a name="FNanchor_106_106" id="FNanchor_106_106"></a><a href="#Footnote_106_106" class="fnanchor">[106]</a><br /></span>
</div></div>
<p>And this is another by the same writer:&mdash;</p>
@@ -18795,28 +18755,28 @@ poem from his celebrated "Fleurs du Mal":&mdash;</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0"><i>Deux guerriers ont couru l'un sur l'autre; leurs armes</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Ont clabouss l'air de lueurs et de sang</i>.<br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Ont éclaboussé l'air de lueurs et de sang</i>.<br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>Ces jeux, ces cliquetis du fer sont les vacarmes</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>D'une jeunesse en proie l'amour vagissant.</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>D'une jeunesse en proie à l'amour vagissant.</i><br /></span>
</div>
<div class="stanza"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_417" id="Page_417">[417]</a></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Les glaives sont briss! comme notre jeunesse</i>,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Ma chre! Mais les dents, les ongles acrs</i>,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Vengent bientt l'pe et la dague tratresse</i>.<br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>O fureur des c&oelig;urs mrs par l'amour ulcrs!</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Les glaives sont brisés! comme notre jeunesse</i>,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Ma chère! Mais les dents, les ongles acérés</i>,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Vengent bientôt l'épée et la dague traîtresse</i>.<br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>O fureur des c&oelig;urs mûrs par l'amour ulcérés!</i><br /></span>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0"><i>Dans le ravin hant des chats-pards et des onces</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Nos hros, s'treignant mchamment, ont roul</i>,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Et leur peau fleurira l'aridit des ronces.</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Dans le ravin hanté des chats-pards et des onces</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Nos héros, s'étreignant méchamment, ont roulé</i>,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Et leur peau fleurira l'aridité des ronces.</i><br /></span>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0"><i>Ce gouffre, c'est l'enfer, de nos amis peupl</i>!<br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Ce gouffre, c'est l'enfer, de nos amis peuplé</i>!<br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>Roulons-y sans remords, amazone inhumaine</i>,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Afin d'terniser l'ardeur de notre haine!</i><a name="FNanchor_107_107" id="FNanchor_107_107"></a><a href="#Footnote_107_107" class="fnanchor">[107]</a><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Afin d'éterniser l'ardeur de notre haine!</i><a name="FNanchor_107_107" id="FNanchor_107_107"></a><a href="#Footnote_107_107" class="fnanchor">[107]</a><br /></span>
</div></div>
<p>To be exact, I should mention that the collection contains
@@ -18830,40 +18790,40 @@ premeditated obscurity is especially noticeable in his
prose, where the author could, if he liked, speak plainly.</p>
<p>Take, for instance, the first piece from his "Petits
-Pomes":&mdash;</p>
+Poèmes":&mdash;</p>
<p class="center space-above"><i>L'ETRANGER</i></p>
<blockquote>
-<p><i>Qui aimes-tu le mieux, homme nigmatique, dis? ton
-pre, ta mre, ta s&oelig;ur, ou ton frre?</i></p>
+<p><i>Qui aimes-tu le mieux, homme énigmatique, dis? ton
+père, ta mère, ta s&oelig;ur, ou ton frère?</i></p>
-<p><i>Je n'ai ni pre, ni mre, ni s&oelig;ur, ni frre.</i></p>
+<p><i>Je n'ai ni père, ni mère, ni s&oelig;ur, ni frère.</i></p>
<p><i>Tes amis?</i></p>
-<p><i>Vous vous servez l d'une parole dont le sens m'est rest
-jusqu' ce jour inconnu.</i></p>
+<p><i>Vous vous servez là d'une parole dont le sens m'est restê
+jusqu'à ce jour inconnu.</i></p>
<p><i>Ta patrie?</i></p>
-<p><i>J'ignore sous quelle latitude elle est situe.</i></p>
+<p><i>J'ignore sous quelle latitude elle est située.</i></p>
-<p><i>La beaut?</i></p>
+<p><i>La beauté?</i></p>
<p><i>Je l'aimerais volontiers, desse et immortelle.</i></p>
<p><i>L'or?</i></p>
-<p><i>Je le hais comme vous hassez Dieu.</i></p>
+<p><i>Je le hais comme vous haïssez Dieu.</i></p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_418" id="Page_418">[418]</a></span></p>
-<p><i>Et qu'aimes-tu donc, extraordinaire tranger?</i></p>
+<p><i>Et qu'aimes-tu donc, extraordinaire étranger?</i></p>
-<p><i>J'aime les nuages .... les nuages qui passent .... l bas, ....
+<p><i>J'aime les nuages .... les nuages qui passent .... là bas, ....
les merveilleux nuages!</i><a name="FNanchor_108_108" id="FNanchor_108_108"></a><a href="#Footnote_108_108" class="fnanchor">[108]</a></p></blockquote>
<p>The piece called "La Soupe et les Nuages" is probably
@@ -18872,19 +18832,19 @@ to her whom he loves. This is the piece in question:&mdash;</p>
<blockquote>
-<p><i>Ma petite folle bien-aime me donnait &nbsp;dner, et par la
-fentre ouverte de la salle &nbsp;manger je contemplais les
+<p><i>Ma petite folle bien-aimée me donnait à&nbsp;dîner, et par la
+fenêtre ouverte de la salle à&nbsp;manger je contemplais les
mouvantes architectures que Dieu fait avec les vapeurs,
les merveilleuses constructions de l'impalpable. Et je me
-disais, travers ma contemplation: "Toutes ces fantasmagories
+disais, à travers ma contemplation: "Toutes ces fantasmagories
sont presque aussi belles que les yeux de ma belle
-bien-aime, la petite folle monstrueuse aux yeux verts."</i></p>
+bien-aimée, la petite folle monstrueuse aux yeux verts."</i></p>
-<p><i>Et tout coup je reus un violent coup de poing dans le
+<p><i>Et tout à coup je reçus un violent coup de poing dans le
dos, et j'entendis une voix rauque et charmante, une voix
-hystrique et comme enroue par l'eau-de-vie, la voix de
-ma chre petite bien-aime, qui me disait, "Allez-vous
-bientt manger votre soupe, s.... b.... de marchand de
+hystérique et comme enrouée par l'eau-de-vie, la voix de
+ma chère petite bien-aimée, qui me disait, "Allez-vous
+bientôt manger votre soupe, s.... b.... de marchand de
nuages?"</i><a href="#Footnote_108_108" class="fnanchor">[108]</a></p></blockquote>
<p>However artificial these two pieces may be, it is still
@@ -18898,37 +18858,37 @@ Tireur" is a piece I was quite unable to understand.</p>
<blockquote>
-<p><i>Comme la voiture traversait le bois, il la fit arrter
-dans le voisinage d'un tir, disant qu'il lui serait agrable
+<p><i>Comme la voiture traversait le bois, il la fit arrêter
+dans le voisinage d'un tir, disant qu'il lui serait agréable
de tirer quelques balles pour tuer le Temps. Tuer ce
-monstre-l, n'est-ce pas l'occupation la plus ordinaire et la
-plus lgitime de chacun?&mdash;Et il offrit galamment la
-main sa chre, dlicieuse et excrable femme, cette
-mystrieuse femme laquelle il doit tant de plaisirs, tant
-de douleurs, et peut-tre aussi une grande partie de son
-gnie.</i></p>
+monstre-là, n'est-ce pas l'occupation la plus ordinaire et la
+plus légitime de chacun?&mdash;Et il offrit galamment la
+main à sa chère, délicieuse et exécrable femme, à cette
+mystérieuse femme à laquelle il doit tant de plaisirs, tant
+de douleurs, et peut-être aussi une grande partie de son
+génie.</i></p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_419" id="Page_419">[419]</a></span></p>
-<p><i>Plusieurs balles frapprent loin du but propos, l'une
-d'elles s'enfona mme dans le plafond; et comme la
-charmante crature riait follement, se moquant de la
-maladresse de son poux, celui-ci se tourna brusquement
-vers elle, et lui dit: "Observez cette poupe, l-bas,
+<p><i>Plusieurs balles frappèrent loin du but proposè, l'une
+d'elles s'enfonça même dans le plafond; et comme la
+charmante créature riait follement, se moquant de la
+maladresse de son époux, celui-ci se tourna brusquement
+vers elle, et lui dit: "Observez cette poupée, là-bas, à
droite, qui porte le nez en l'air et qui a la mine si hautaine.
Eh bien! cher ange</i>, je me figure que c'est
-vous." <i>Et il ferma les yeux et il lcha la dtente. La
-poupe fut nettement dcapite.</i></p>
+vous." <i>Et il ferma les yeux et il lâcha la détente. La
+poupée fut nettement décapitée.</i></p>
-<p><i>Alors s'inclinant vers sa chre, sa dlicieuse, son
-excrable femme, son invitable et impitoyable Muse, et
+<p><i>Alors s'inclinant vers sa chère, sa délicieuse, son
+exécrable femme, son inévitable et impitoyable Muse, et
lui baisant respectueusement la main, il ajouta: "Ah!
mon cher ange, combien je vous remercie de mon
adresse!"</i><a name="FNanchor_109_109" id="FNanchor_109_109"></a><a href="#Footnote_109_109" class="fnanchor">[109]</a></p></blockquote>
<p>The productions of another celebrity, Verlaine, are not
less affected and unintelligible. This, for instance, is
-the first poem in the section called "Ariettes Oublis."</p>
+the first poem in the section called "Ariettes Oubliés."</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i8">"<i>Le vent dans la plaine</i><br /></span>
@@ -18939,27 +18899,27 @@ the first poem in the section called "Ariettes Oublis."</p>
<span class="i0"><i>C'est l'extase langoureuse</i>,<br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>C'est la fatigue amoureuse</i>,<br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>C'est tous les frissons des bois</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Parmi l'treinte des brises</i>,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Parmi l'étreinte des brises</i>,<br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>C'est, vers les ramures grises</i>,<br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>Le ch&oelig;ur des petites voix.</i><br /></span>
</div><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0"><i>O le frle et frais murmure</i>!<br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>O le frêle et frais murmure</i>!<br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>Cela gazouille et susurre,</i><br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>Cela ressemble au cri doux</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Que l'herbe agite expire</i>....<br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Que l'herbe agitée expire</i>....<br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>Tu dirais, sous l'eau qui vire</i>,<br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>Le roulis sourd des cailloux.</i><br /></span>
</div><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0"><i>Cette me qui se lamente</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Cette âme qui se lamente</i><br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>En cette plainte dormante</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>C'est la ntre, n'est-ce pas?</i><br /></span><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_420" id="Page_420">[420]</a></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>C'est la nôtre, n'est-ce pas?</i><br /></span><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_420" id="Page_420">[420]</a></span>
<span class="i0"><i>La mienne, dis, et la tienne</i>,<br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>Dont s'exhale l'humble antienne</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Par ce tide soir, tout bas?</i><a name="FNanchor_110_110" id="FNanchor_110_110"></a><a href="#Footnote_110_110" class="fnanchor">[110]</a><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Par ce tiède soir, tout bas?</i><a name="FNanchor_110_110" id="FNanchor_110_110"></a><a href="#Footnote_110_110" class="fnanchor">[110]</a><br /></span>
</div></div>
<p>What "<i>ch&oelig;ur des petites voix</i>"? and what "<i>cri doux
-que l'herbe agite expire</i>"? and what it all means,
+que l'herbe agitée expire</i>"? and what it all means,
remains altogether unintelligible to me.</p>
<p>And here is another "Ariette":&mdash;</p>
@@ -18982,10 +18942,10 @@ remains altogether unintelligible to me.</p>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0"><i>Comme des nues</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Flottent gris les chnes</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Des forts prochaines</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Parmi les bues.</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Comme des nuées</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Flottent gris les chênes</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Des forêts prochaines</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Parmi les buées.</i><br /></span>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
@@ -19025,16 +18985,16 @@ and patriotic sentiments. For instance, one meets with
verses such as this:&mdash;</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0"><i>Je ne veux plus penser qu'&nbsp;ma mre Marie</i>,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Sige de la sagesse et source de pardons</i>,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Mre de France aussi</i> de qui nous attendons<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Inbranlablement l'honneur de la patrie.<a name="FNanchor_112_112" id="FNanchor_112_112"></a><a href="#Footnote_112_112" class="fnanchor">[112]</a><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Je ne veux plus penser qu'à&nbsp;ma mère Marie</i>,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Siège de la sagesse et source de pardons</i>,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Mère de France aussi</i> de qui nous attendons<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Inébranlablement l'honneur de la patrie.<a name="FNanchor_112_112" id="FNanchor_112_112"></a><a href="#Footnote_112_112" class="fnanchor">[112]</a><br /></span>
</div></div>
<p>Before citing examples from other poets, I must pause
to note the amazing celebrity of these two versifiers,
Baudelaire and Verlaine, who are now accepted as being
-great poets. How the French, who had Chnier, Musset,
+great poets. How the French, who had Chénier, Musset,
Lamartine, and, above all, Hugo,&mdash;and among whom
quite recently flourished the so-called Parnassiens: Leconte
de Lisle, Sully-Prudhomme, etc.,&mdash;could attribute
@@ -19054,7 +19014,7 @@ real water.</p>
in weak profligacy, confession of his moral impotence,
and, as an antidote to that impotence, in the grossest
Roman Catholic idolatry. Both, moreover, were quite
-lacking in navet, sincerity, and simplicity, and both
+lacking in naïveté, sincerity, and simplicity, and both
overflowed with artificiality, forced originality and self-assurance.
So that in their least bad productions one
sees more of M. Baudelaire or M. Verlaine than of what
@@ -19069,8 +19029,8 @@ And all amusements grow wearisome by repetition.
And, in order to make wearisome amusement
again tolerable, it is necessary to find some means to
freshen it up. When, at cards, ombre grows stale, whist
-is introduced; when whist grows stale, cart is substituted;
-when cart grows stale, some other novelty is
+is introduced; when whist grows stale, écarté is substituted;
+when écarté grows stale, some other novelty is
invented, and so on. The substance of the matter remains
the same, only its form is changed. And so it is
with this kind of art. The subject-matter of the art of
@@ -19091,38 +19051,38 @@ Baudelaire and Verlaine only, but of all the Decadents.</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_423" id="Page_423">[423]</a></span></p>
-<p>For instance, there are poems by Mallarm and
+<p>For instance, there are poems by Mallarmé and
Maeterlinck which have no meaning, and yet for all
that, or perhaps on that very account, are printed by
tens of thousands, not only in various publications, but
even in collections of the best works of the younger
poets.</p>
-<p>This, for example, is a sonnet by Mallarm:&mdash;</p>
+<p>This, for example, is a sonnet by Mallarmé:&mdash;</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0"><i>A la nue accablante tu</i><br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>Basse de basalte et de laves</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>A mme les chos esclaves</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>A même les échos esclaves</i><br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>Par une trompe sans vertu.</i><br /></span>
</div><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0"><i>Quel spulcral naufrage (tu</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Le soir, cume, mais y baves)</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Suprme une entre les paves</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Abolit le mt dvtu.</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Quel sépulcral naufrage (tu</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Le soir, écume, mais y baves)</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Suprême une entre les épaves</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Abolit le mât dévêtu.</i><br /></span>
</div><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0"><i>Ou cela que furibond faute</i><br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>De quelque perdition haute</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Tout l'abme vain ploy</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Dans le si blanc cheveu qui trane</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Avarement aura noy</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Le flanc enfant d'une sirne.</i><a name="FNanchor_113_113" id="FNanchor_113_113"></a><a href="#Footnote_113_113" class="fnanchor">[113]</a><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Tout l'abîme vain éployé</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Dans le si blanc cheveu qui traîne</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Avarement aura noyé</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Le flanc enfant d'une sirène.</i><a name="FNanchor_113_113" id="FNanchor_113_113"></a><a href="#Footnote_113_113" class="fnanchor">[113]</a><br /></span>
<span class="i8">("Pan," 1895, No. 1.)</span>
</div></div>
<p>This poem is not exceptional in its incomprehensibility.
-I have read several poems by Mallarm, and
+I have read several poems by Mallarmé, and
they also had no meaning whatever. I give a sample
of his prose in Appendix I. There is a whole volume
of this prose called "Divagations." It is impossible to
@@ -19143,12 +19103,12 @@ author of to-day:&mdash;</p>
<span class="i0"><i>Mais quand il entra</i><br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>(J'entendis la lampe)</i><br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>Mais quand il entra</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Une autre tait l ....</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Une autre était là ....</i><br /></span>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0"><i>Et j'ai vu la mort</i>,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>(J'entendis son me)</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>(J'entendis son âme)</i><br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>Et j'ai vu la mort</i><br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>Qui l'attend encore ....</i><br /></span>
</div>
@@ -19161,65 +19121,65 @@ author of to-day:&mdash;</p>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0"><i>Ma lampe allume</i>,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Ma lampe allumée</i>,<br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>(Mon enfant j'ai peur)</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Ma lampe allume</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Me suis approche ....</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Ma lampe allumée</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Me suis approchée ....</i><br /></span>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0"><i>A la premire porte</i>,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>A la première porte</i>,<br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>(Mon enfant j'ai peur)</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>A la premire porte</i>,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>La flamme a trembl ....</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>A la première porte</i>,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>La flamme a tremblé ....</i><br /></span>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0"><i>A la seconde porte</i>,<br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>(Mon enfant j'ai peur)</i><br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>A la seconde porte</i>,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>La flamme a parl ....</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>La flamme a parlé ....</i><br /></span>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0"><i>A la troisime porte</i>,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>A la troisième porte</i>,<br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>(Mon enfant j'ai peur)</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>A la troisime porte</i>,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>La lumire est morte ....</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>A la troisième porte</i>,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>La lumière est morte ....</i><br /></span>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0"><i>Et s'il revenait un jour</i><br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>Que faut-il lui dire?</i><br /></span><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_425" id="Page_425">[425]</a></span>
<span class="i0"><i>Dites-lui qu'on l'attendit</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Jusqu' s'en mourir ....</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Jusqu'à s'en mourir ....</i><br /></span>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0"><i>Et s'il demande o vous tes</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Que faut-il rpondre?</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Et s'il demande où vous êtes</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Que faut-il répondre?</i><br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>Donnez-lui mon anneau d'or</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Sans rien lui rpondre ....</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Sans rien lui répondre ....</i><br /></span>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0"><i>Et s'il m'interroge alors</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Sur la dernire heure?</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Sur la dernière heure?</i><br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>Dites lui que j'ai souri</i><br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>De peur qu'il ne pleure ....</i><br /></span>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0"><i>Et s'il m'interroge encore</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Sans me reconnatre?</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Sans me reconnaître?</i><br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>Parlez-lui comme une s&oelig;ur,</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Il souffre peut-tre ....</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Il souffre peut-être ....</i><br /></span>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0"><i>Et s'il veut savoir pourquoi</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>La salle est dserte?</i><br /></span>
-<span class="i0"><i>Montrez lui la lampe teinte</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>La salle est déserte?</i><br /></span>
+<span class="i0"><i>Montrez lui la lampe éteinte</i><br /></span>
<span class="i0"><i>Et la porte ouverte ....</i><a name="FNanchor_114_114" id="FNanchor_114_114"></a><a href="#Footnote_114_114" class="fnanchor">[114]</a><br /></span>
<span class="i8">("Pan," 1895, No. 2.)</span>
</div></div>
@@ -19229,7 +19189,7 @@ Who died?</p>
<p>I beg the reader to be at the pains of reading through
the samples I cite in Appendix II. of the celebrated
-and esteemed young poets&mdash;Griffin, Verhaeren, Moras,
+and esteemed young poets&mdash;Griffin, Verhaeren, Moréas,
and Montesquiou. It is important to do so in order to
form a clear conception of the present position of art,
and not to suppose, as many do, that Decadentism is an
@@ -19322,7 +19282,7 @@ their hands: in monotone, out of drawing, and either
quite blurred or else marked out with wide black outlines."</p>
<p>This was in 1894; the same tendency is now even
-more strongly defined, and we have Bcklin, Stuck,
+more strongly defined, and we have Böcklin, Stuck,
Klinger, Sasha Schneider, and others.</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_428" id="Page_428">[428]</a></span></p>
@@ -19355,7 +19315,7 @@ is transmitted to you except weariness. The execution
lasts long, or at least it seems very long to you,
because you do not receive any clear impression, and
involuntarily you remember the words of Alphonse
-Karr, "<i>Plus a va vite, plus a dure longtemps</i>."<a name="FNanchor_115_115" id="FNanchor_115_115"></a><a href="#Footnote_115_115" class="fnanchor">[115]</a> And
+Karr, "<i>Plus ça va vite, plus ça dure longtemps</i>."<a name="FNanchor_115_115" id="FNanchor_115_115"></a><a href="#Footnote_115_115" class="fnanchor">[115]</a> And
it occurs to you that perhaps it is all a mystification;
perhaps the performer is trying you&mdash;just throwing his
hands and fingers wildly about the keyboard in the
@@ -19377,7 +19337,7 @@ after piece.</p>
hard to be unintelligible,&mdash;in the sphere of novels and
short stories.</p>
-<p>Read "L Bas," by Huysmans, or some of Kipling's
+<p>Read "Là Bas," by Huysmans, or some of Kipling's
short stories, or "L'Annonciateur," by Villiers de l'Isle
Adam in his "Contes Cruels," etc., and you will find
them not only "abscons" (to use a word adopted by the
@@ -19615,7 +19575,7 @@ only because it is very good&mdash;as artists of our day are
fond of telling us. Rather we are bound to conclude
that this art is unintelligible to the great masses only
because it is very bad art, or even is not art at all. So
-that the favorite argument (navely accepted by the
+that the favorite argument (naïvely accepted by the
cultured crowd), that in order to feel art one has first
to understand it (which really only means habituate
oneself to it), is the truest indication that what we are
@@ -19644,7 +19604,7 @@ concerning artists who do not, by their works,
evoke feeling in him. To say that the reason a man is
not touched by my art is because he is still too stupid,
besides being very self-conceited and also rude, is to
-reverse the rles, and for the sick to send the hale to
+reverse the rôles, and for the sick to send the hale to
bed.</p>
<p>Voltaire said that "<i>Tous les genres sont bons, hors le
@@ -19740,12 +19700,12 @@ with a heroine who, in a poetic white dress, and with
poetically flowing hair, was reading poetry near some
water in a poetic wood. The scene was in Russia, but
suddenly from behind the bushes the hero appears,
-wearing a hat with a feather <i> la Guillaume Tell</i> (the
+wearing a hat with a feather <i>à la Guillaume Tell</i> (the
book specially mentioned this) and accompanied by two
poetical white dogs. The authoress deemed all this
highly poetical, and it might have passed muster if
only it had not been necessary for the hero to speak.
-But as soon as the gentleman in the hat <i> la Guillaume
+But as soon as the gentleman in the hat <i>à la Guillaume
Tell</i> began to converse with the maiden in the white
dress, it became obvious that the authoress had nothing
to say, but had merely been moved by poetic memories
@@ -19757,7 +19717,7 @@ himself, experienced the feeling which he transmits, and
not when he passes on another man's feeling previously
transmitted to him. Such poetry from poetry cannot
infect people, it can only simulate a work of art, and
-even that only to people of perverted sthetic taste.
+even that only to people of perverted æsthetic taste.
The lady in question being very stupid and devoid of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_438" id="Page_438">[438]</a></span>
talent, it was at once apparent how the case stood; but
when such borrowing is resorted to by people who are
@@ -19947,15 +19907,15 @@ the girl is pursued and beaten by her drunken father.
The girl shrinks&mdash;screams&mdash;groans&mdash;and falls.
Angels appear and carry her away. And the audience,
experiencing some excitement while this is going on,
-are fully convinced that this is true sthetic feeling.
-But there is nothing sthetic in such excitement; for
+are fully convinced that this is true æsthetic feeling.
+But there is nothing æsthetic in such excitement; for
there is no infecting of man by man, but only a mingled
feeling of pity for another, and of self-congratulation
that it is not I who am suffering: it is like what we
feel at the sight of an execution, or what the Romans
felt in their circuses.</p>
-<p>The substitution of effectfulness for sthetic feeling
+<p>The substitution of effectfulness for æsthetic feeling
is particularly noticeable in musical art&mdash;that art which
by its nature has an immediate physiological action on
the nerves. Instead of transmitting by means of a melody
@@ -20021,14 +19981,14 @@ transmit the sequence of sounds. And a man, in our
times, if only he possesses such a talent and selects
some specialty, may, after learning the methods of
counterfeiting used in his branch of art,&mdash;if he has
-patience and if his sthetic feeling (which would render
+patience and if his æsthetic feeling (which would render
such productions revolting to him) be atrophied,&mdash;unceasingly,
till the end of his life, turn out works which
will pass for art in our society.</p>
<p>To produce such counterfeits, definite rules or recipes
exist in each branch of art. So that the talented man,
-having assimilated them, may produce such works <i>
+having assimilated them, may produce such works <i>à
froid</i>, cold drawn, without any feeling.</p>
<p>In order to write poems a man of literary talent needs
@@ -20131,7 +20091,7 @@ universal art.</p>
<h2>CHAPTER XII</h2>
-<p>In our society three conditions coperate to cause the
+<p>In our society three conditions coöperate to cause the
production of objects of counterfeit art. They are&mdash;(1)
the considerable remuneration of artists for their
productions, and the professionalization of artists which
@@ -20229,7 +20189,7 @@ criterion,&mdash;religious perception; upper-class art lacks
this, and therefore the appreciators of that art are
obliged to cling to some external criterion. And they
find it in "the judgments of the finest-nurtured," as an
-English sthetician has phrased it, that is, in the authority
+English æsthetician has phrased it, that is, in the authority
of the people who are considered educated, nor
in this alone, but also in a tradition of such authorities.
This tradition is extremely misleading, both because the
@@ -20265,7 +20225,7 @@ under the influence of false criticism extolling Shakespear,
he writes "Boris Godunoff," a cold, brain-spun
work, and this production is lauded by the critics, set up
as a model, and imitations of it appear: "Minin," by
-Ostrovsky, and "Tsar Boris," by Alexe Tolsto, and
+Ostrovsky, and "Tsar Boris," by Alexée Tolstoï, and
such imitations of imitations as crowd all literatures
with insignificant productions. The chief harm done by
the critics is this,&mdash;that themselves lacking the capacity
@@ -20291,14 +20251,14 @@ crowd in.</p>
<p>It is solely due to the critics, who in our times still praise
rude, savage, and, for us, often meaningless works of the
-ancient Greeks: Sophocles, Euripides, schylus, and
+ancient Greeks: Sophocles, Euripides, Æschylus, and
especially Aristophanes; or, of modern writers, Dante,
Tasso, Milton, Shakespear; in painting, all of Raphael,
all of Michael Angelo, including his absurd "Last Judgment";
in music, the whole of Bach, and the whole of
Beethoven, including his last period,&mdash;thanks only to
-them have the Ibsens, Maeterlincks, Verlaines, Mallarms,
-Puvis de Chavannes, Klingers, Bcklins, Stucks,
+them have the Ibsens, Maeterlincks, Verlaines, Mallarmés,
+Puvis de Chavannes, Klingers, Böcklins, Stucks,
Schneiders; in music, the Wagners, Liszts, Berliozes,
Brahmses, and Richard Strausses, etc., and all that immense
mass of good-for-nothing imitators of these imitators,
@@ -20746,7 +20706,7 @@ sounds of spear and of fire are heard. The orchestra
accompanies the conversation, and the <i>motiv</i> of the
people and things spoken of are always artfully intermingled.
Besides this the music expresses feelings in
-the most nave manner: the terrible by sounds in the
+the most naïve manner: the terrible by sounds in the
bass, the frivolous by rapid touches in the treble, etc.</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_461" id="Page_461">[461]</a></span></p>
@@ -20777,10 +20737,10 @@ surely as on the question of the merits of my lady
acquaintance's novel when she read me the scene between
the loose-haired maiden in the white dress and
the hero with two white dogs and a hat with a feather
-<i> la Guillaume Tell</i>.</p>
+<i>à la Guillaume Tell</i>.</p>
<p>From an author who could compose such spurious
-scenes, outraging all sthetic feeling, as those which I
+scenes, outraging all æsthetic feeling, as those which I
had witnessed, there was nothing to be hoped; it may
safely be decided that all that such an author can write
will be bad, because he evidently does not know what
@@ -20944,7 +20904,7 @@ action.</p>
<p>Moreover, everything is imitative; the decorations
are imitated, and the costumes are imitated. All are just
-as, according to the data supplied by archology, they
+as, according to the data supplied by archæology, they
would have been in antiquity. The very sounds are imitative;
for Wagner, who was not destitute of musical
talent, invented just such sounds as imitate the strokes
@@ -20995,7 +20955,7 @@ And this just proves that we have here no
question of art, but one of hypnotism. It is just what
the spiritualists say. To convince you of the reality of
their apparitions they usually say, "You cannot judge;
-you must try it, be present at several sances," <i>i.e.</i> come
+you must try it, be present at several séances," <i>i.e.</i> come
and sit silent in the dark for hours together in the same
room with semi-sane people, and repeat this some ten
times over, and you shall see all that we see.</p>
@@ -21292,7 +21252,7 @@ Bourget, Huysmans, Kipling, and others, handling the
most harrowing subjects, did not touch me for one
moment, and I was provoked with the authors all the
while, as one is provoked with a man who considers you
-so nave that he does not even conceal the trick by
+so naïve that he does not even conceal the trick by
which he intends to take you in. From the first lines
you see the intention with which the book is written,
and the details all become superfluous, and one feels
@@ -21302,7 +21262,7 @@ or a novel, and so one receives no artistic impression.
On the other hand, I could not tear myself away from
the unknown author's tale of the children and the
chickens, because I was at once infected by the feeling
-which the author had evidently experienced, revoked in
+which the author had evidently experienced, reëvoked in
himself, and transmitted.</p>
<p>Vasnetsoff is one of our Russian painters. He has
@@ -21435,7 +21395,7 @@ spiritual union with another (the author) and with others
that there are people who have forgotten what the action
of real art is, who expect something else from art (in our
society the great majority are in this state), and that
-therefore such people may mistake for this sthetic feeling
+therefore such people may mistake for this æsthetic feeling
the feeling of divertisement and a certain excitement
which they receive from counterfeits of art. But though
it is impossible to undeceive these people, just as it is
@@ -21673,7 +21633,7 @@ that this is the opinion current in the pseudo-cultured<span class="pagenum"><a
circles of to-day. People who do not acknowledge
Christianity in its true meaning because it undermines
all their social privileges, and who, therefore, invent all
-kinds of philosophic and sthetic theories to hide from
+kinds of philosophic and æsthetic theories to hide from
themselves the meaninglessness and wrongness of their
lives, cannot think otherwise. These people intentionally,
or sometimes unintentionally, confusing the conception
@@ -21985,7 +21945,7 @@ these kinds of art, then, as examples of the highest art,
flowing from love of God and man (both of the higher,
positive, and of the lower, negative kind), in literature
I should name, "The Robbers," by Schiller; Victor
-Hugo's "Les Pauvres Gens" and "Les Misrables"; the
+Hugo's "Les Pauvres Gens" and "Les Misérables"; the
novels and stories of Dickens,&mdash;"The Tale of Two
Cities," "The Christmas Carol," "The Chimes," and
others; "Uncle Tom's Cabin;" Dostoievsky's works&mdash;especially
@@ -22028,7 +21988,7 @@ may serve, and also Leizen-Mayer's, "Signing the Death
Warrant." But there are also very few of this kind.
Anxiety about the technique and the beauty of the picture
for the most part obscures the feeling. For instance,
-Grme's "Pollice Verso" expresses, not so much horror
+Gérôme's "Pollice Verso" expresses, not so much horror
at what is being perpetrated as attraction by the beauty
of the spectacle.<a name="FNanchor_121_121" id="FNanchor_121_121"></a><a href="#Footnote_121_121" class="fnanchor">[121]</a></p>
@@ -22037,7 +21997,7 @@ classes, of art of the second kind, good universal art or
even of the art of a whole people, is yet more difficult,
especially in literary art and music. If there are some
works which by their inner contents might be assigned
-to this class (such as "Don Quixote," Molire's comedies,
+to this class (such as "Don Quixote," Molière's comedies,
"David Copperfield" and "The Pickwick Papers"
by Dickens, Gogol's and Pushkin's tales, and some
things of Maupassant's), these works are for the most
@@ -22058,7 +22018,7 @@ and it is all written with such restraint, is so
free from any superfluous detail, that the story may be
told to any circle and will be equally comprehensible and
touching to every one. But not such are the feelings of
-Don Quixote or of Molire's heroes (though Molire is
+Don Quixote or of Molière's heroes (though Molière is
perhaps the most universal, and therefore the most excellent,
artist of modern times), nor of Pickwick and his
friends. These feelings are not common to all men, but
@@ -22328,9 +22288,9 @@ strange to people who lack the capacity to be infected
by art, and is replaced either by spurious counterfeits
of art or by insignificant art, which they mistake for
real art. People of our time and of our society are
-delighted with Baudelaires, Verlaines, Morases, Ibsens,
+delighted with Baudelaires, Verlaines, Moréases, Ibsens,
and Maeterlincks in poetry; with Monets, Manets, Puvis
-de Chavannes, Burne-Joneses, Stucks, and Bcklins in
+de Chavannes, Burne-Joneses, Stucks, and Böcklins in
painting; with Wagners, Liszts, Richard Strausses, in
music; and they are no longer capable of comprehending
either the highest or the simplest art.</p>
@@ -22386,7 +22346,7 @@ literary work, have learnt by heart the exceptions to
the Latin grammar. These people not only grow
physically and mentally deformed, but also morally
deformed, and become incapable of doing anything
-really needed by man. Occupying in society the rle
+really needed by man. Occupying in society the rôle
of amusers of the rich, they lose their sense of human
dignity, and develop in themselves such a passion for
public applause that they are always a prey to an inflated
@@ -22422,9 +22382,9 @@ that oppresses them. Take from all these people the<span class="pagenum"><a name
theaters, concerts, exhibitions, piano-playing, songs, and
novels with which they now fill their time, in full confidence
that occupation with these things is a very refined,
-sthetical, and therefore good occupation; take from
+æsthetical, and therefore good occupation; take from
the patrons of art who buy pictures, assist musicians,
-and are acquainted with writers, their rle of protectors
+and are acquainted with writers, their rôle of protectors
of that important matter art, and they will not be able
to continue such a life, but will all be eaten up by ennui
and spleen, and will become conscious of the meaninglessness
@@ -22515,7 +22475,7 @@ and reads, or is told, what the contents of his
when he learns the story of that man's wretched,
vicious life, and reads his verses. And what confusion
it must cause in the brains of peasants when they learn
-that some Patti or Taglioni is paid 10,000 for a season,
+that some Patti or Taglioni is paid £10,000 for a season,
or that a painter gets as much for a picture, or
that authors of novels describing love-scenes have
received even more than that.</p>
@@ -22536,7 +22496,7 @@ in which our society stands toward art.</p>
classes, more and more frequently encountering the contradictions
between beauty and goodness, put the ideal
of beauty first, thus freeing themselves from the demands
-of morality. These people, reversing the rles,
+of morality. These people, reversing the rôles,
instead of admitting, as is really the case, that the art
they serve is an antiquated affair, allege that morality is
an antiquated affair, which can have no importance for
@@ -22548,9 +22508,9 @@ which they opine that they are situated.</p>
<p>This result of the false relation to art showed itself
in our society long ago; but recently, with its prophet
Nietzsche and his adherents, and with the decadents
-and certain English sthetes who coincide with him,
+and certain English æsthetes who coincide with him,
it is being expressed with especial impudence. The
-decadents, and sthetes of the type at one time represented
+decadents, and æsthetes of the type at one time represented
by Oscar Wilde, select as a theme for their
productions the denial of morality and the laudation
of vice.</p>
@@ -22578,7 +22538,7 @@ The free and brave may seize the world. And, therefore,
there should be eternal war for life, for land, for
love, for women, for power, and for gold. (Something
similar was said a few years ago by the celebrated and
-refined academician, Vog.) The earth and its treasures
+refined academician, Vogüé.) The earth and its treasures
is "booty for the bold."</p>
<p>The author has evidently by himself, independently
@@ -23330,7 +23290,7 @@ do not see what is really important. They only need
tear themselves away from the psychological microscope
under which they examine the objects of their
study, and look about them, in order to see how insignificant
-is all that has afforded them such nave pride,
+is all that has afforded them such naïve pride,
all that knowledge not only of geometry of <i>n</i>-dimensions,
spectrum analysis of the Milky Way, the form of atoms,
dimensions of human skulls of the Stone Age, and similar
@@ -23600,7 +23560,7 @@ this perception into feeling.</p>
<p>The task of art is enormous. Through the influence
of real art, aided by science guided by religion, that
-peaceful coperation of man which is now obtained by
+peaceful coöperation of man which is now obtained by
external means&mdash;by our law-courts, police, charitable
institutions, factory inspection, etc.&mdash;should be obtained
by man's free and joyous activity. Art should cause
@@ -23670,51 +23630,51 @@ among men.</p>
<h2>APPENDIX I</h2>
-<p>This is the first page of Mallarm's book, "Divagations":&mdash;</p>
+<p>This is the first page of Mallarmé's book, "Divagations":&mdash;</p>
-<p class="center space-above">LE PHNOMNE FUTUR</p>
+<p class="center space-above">LE PHÉNOMÈNE FUTUR</p>
<blockquote>
-<p>Un ciel ple, sur le monde qui finit de dcrpitude, va peut-tre
-partir avec les nuages: les lambeaux de la pourpre use
-des couchants dteignent dans une rivire dormant &nbsp;l'horizon<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_529" id="Page_529">[529]</a></span>
-submerg de rayons et d'eau. Les arbres s'ennuient, et, sous
-leur feuillage blanchi (de la poussire du temps plutt que
+<p>Un ciel pâle, sur le monde qui finit de décrépitude, va peut-être
+partir avec les nuages: les lambeaux de la pourpre usée
+des couchants déteignent dans une rivière dormant à&nbsp;l'horizon<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_529" id="Page_529">[529]</a></span>
+submergé de rayons et d'eau. Les arbres s'ennuient, et, sous
+leur feuillage blanchi (de la poussière du temps plutôt que
celle des chemins) monte la maison en toile de Montreur de
-choses Passes: maint rverbre attend le crpuscule et ravive
+choses Passées: maint réverbère attend le crépuscule et ravive
les visages d'une malheureuse foule, vaincue par la maladie immortelle
-et le pch des sicles, d'hommes prs de leurs chtives
-complices enceintes des fruits misrables avec lesquels prira
-la terre. Dans le silence inquiet de tous les yeux suppliant l-bas
-le soleil qui, sous l'eau, s'enfonce avec le dsespoir d'un cri,
-voici le simple boniment: "Nulle enseigne ne vous rgale du
-spectacle intrieur, car il n'est pas maintenant un peintre capable
-d'en donner une ombre triste. J'apporte, vivante (et prserve
- travers les ans par la science souveraine) une Femme
-d'autrefois. Quelque folie, originelle et nave, une extase d'or,
-je ne sais quoi! par elle nomm sa chevelure, se ploie avec la
-grce des toffes autour d'un visage qu' claire la nudit sanglante
-de ses lvres. A la place du vtement vain, elle a un
+et le péché des siècles, d'hommes près de leurs chétives
+complices enceintes des fruits misérables avec lesquels périra
+la terre. Dans le silence inquiet de tous les yeux suppliant là-bas
+le soleil qui, sous l'eau, s'enfonce avec le désespoir d'un cri,
+voici le simple boniment: "Nulle enseigne ne vous régale du
+spectacle intérieur, car il n'est pas maintenant un peintre capable
+d'en donner une ombre triste. J'apporte, vivante (et préservée
+à travers les ans par la science souveraine) une Femme
+d'autrefois. Quelque folie, originelle et naïve, une extase d'or,
+je ne sais quoi! par elle nommé sa chevelure, se ploie avec la
+grâce des étoffes autour d'un visage qu' éclaire la nudité sanglante
+de ses lèvres. A la place du vêtement vain, elle a un
corps; et les yeux, semblables aux pierres rares! ne valent pas
-ce regard qui sort de sa chair heureuse: des seins levs comme
-s'ils taient pleins d'un lait ternel, la pointe vers le ciel, les
-jambes lisses qui gardent le sel de la mer premire." Se rappelant
-leurs pauvres pouses, chauves, morbides et pleines
-d'horreur, les maris se pressent: elles aussi par curiosit, mlancoliques,
+ce regard qui sort de sa chair heureuse: des seins levés comme
+s'ils étaient pleins d'un lait éternel, la pointe vers le ciel, les
+jambes lisses qui gardent le sel de la mer première." Se rappelant
+leurs pauvres épouses, chauves, morbides et pleines
+d'horreur, les maris se pressent: elles aussi par curiosité, mélancoliques,
veulent voir.</p>
-<p>Quand tous auront contempl la noble crature, vestige de
-quelque poque dj&nbsp;maudite, les uns indiffrents, car ils n'auront
-pas eu la force de comprendre, mais d'autres navrs et la
-paupire humide de larmes rsignes, se regarderont; tandis
-que les potes de ces temps, sentant se rallumer leur yeux
-teints, s'achemineront vers leur lampe, le cerveau ivre un instant
-d'une gloire confuse, hants du Rythme et dans l'oubli
-d'exister &nbsp;une poque qui survit &nbsp;la beaut.</p></blockquote>
+<p>Quand tous auront contemplé la noble créature, vestige de
+quelque époque déjà&nbsp;maudite, les uns indifférents, car ils n'auront
+pas eu la force de comprendre, mais d'autres navrés et la
+paupière humide de larmes résignées, se regarderont; tandis
+que les poètes de ces temps, sentant se rallumer leur yeux
+éteints, s'achemineront vers leur lampe, le cerveau ivre un instant
+d'une gloire confuse, hantés du Rythme et dans l'oubli
+d'exister à&nbsp;une époque qui survit à&nbsp;la beauté.</p></blockquote>
-<p class="center space-above">THE FUTURE PHENOMENON&mdash;<span class="smcap">by Mallarm</span>.</p>
+<p class="center space-above">THE FUTURE PHENOMENON&mdash;<span class="smcap">by Mallarmé</span>.</p>
<blockquote>
@@ -23733,7 +23693,7 @@ the water with the desperation of a cry, this is the plain announcement:
"No sign-board now regales you with the spectacle that is
inside, for there is no painter now capable of giving even a shadow
of it. I bring living (and preserved by sovereign science through
-the years) a Woman of other days. Some kind of folly, nave and
+the years) a Woman of other days. Some kind of folly, naïve and
original, an ecstasy of gold, I know not what, by her called her hair,
clings with the grace of some material round a face brightened by
the blood-red nudity of her lips. In place of vain clothing, she has
@@ -23761,7 +23721,7 @@ exist at an epoch which has survived beauty.</p></blockquote>
<p class="center">No. 1</p>
-<p>The following verses are by Viel-Griffin, from page
+<p>The following verses are by Vielé-Griffin, from page
28 of a volume of his Poems:&mdash;</p>
<p class="center space-above">OISEAU BLEU COULEUR DU TEMPS</p>
@@ -23772,13 +23732,13 @@ exist at an epoch which has survived beauty.</p></blockquote>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Sait-tu l'oubli<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">D'un vain doux rve,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">D'un vain doux rêve,<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Oiseau moqueur<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">De la fort?<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Le jour plit,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">La nuit se lve,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">De la forêt?<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Le jour pâlit,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">La nuit se lève,<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Et dans mon c&oelig;ur<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">L'ombre a pleur;<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">L'ombre a pleuré;<br /></span>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
@@ -23788,8 +23748,8 @@ exist at an epoch which has survived beauty.</p></blockquote>
<span class="i0">Ta folle gamme,<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Car j'ai dormi<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Ce jour durant;<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Le lche emoi<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">O fut mon me<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Le lâche emoi<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Où fut mon âme<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Sanglote ennui<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Le jour mourant....<br /></span><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_531" id="Page_531">[531]</a></span>
</div>
@@ -23811,7 +23771,7 @@ exist at an epoch which has survived beauty.</p></blockquote>
<span class="i5">4<br /></span>
</div><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">O chante alors<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">La mlodie<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">La mélodie<br /></span>
<span class="i0">De son amour,<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Mon fol espoir,<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Parmi les ors<br /></span>
@@ -23821,7 +23781,7 @@ exist at an epoch which has survived beauty.</p></blockquote>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
-<span class="i8"><span class="smcap">Francis Viel-Griffin.</span><br /></span>
+<span class="i8"><span class="smcap">Francis Vielé-Griffin.</span><br /></span>
</div></div>
<p class="center space-above">BLUE BIRD</p>
@@ -23892,56 +23852,56 @@ Works:&mdash;</p>
<p class="center space-above">ATTIRANCES</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">Lointainement, et si trangement pareils,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Lointainement, et si étrangement pareils,<br /></span>
<span class="i0">De grands masques d'argent que la brume recule,<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Vaguent, au jour tombant, autour des vieux soleils.<br /></span>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">Les doux lointaines!&mdash;et comme, au fond du crpuscule,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Ils nous fixent le c&oelig;ur, immensment le c&oelig;ur,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Avec les yeux <i>dfunts de leur</i> visage d'me.<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Les doux lointaines!&mdash;et comme, au fond du crépuscule,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Ils nous fixent le c&oelig;ur, immensément le c&oelig;ur,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Avec les yeux <i>défunts de leur</i> visage d'âme.<br /></span>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">C'est toujours du silence, moins, dans la pleur<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">C'est toujours du silence, à moins, dans la pâleur<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Du soir, un jet de feu soudain, un cri de flamme,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Un dpart de lumire inattendu vers Dieu.<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Un départ de lumière inattendu vers Dieu.<br /></span>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">On se laisse charmer et troubler de mystre,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">On se laisse charmer et troubler de mystère,<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Et l'on dirait des morts qui taisent un adieu<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Trop mystique, pour tre cout par la terre!<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Trop mystique, pour être écouté par la terre!<br /></span>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">Sont-ils le souvenir matriel et clair<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Des phbes chrtiens couchs aux catacombes<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Sont-ils le souvenir matériel et clair<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Des éphèbes chrétiens couchés aux catacombes<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Parmi les lys? Sont-ils leur regard et leur chair?<br /></span>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Ou seul, ce qui survit de merveilleux aux tombes<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">De ceux qui sont partis, vers leurs rves, un soir,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Conqurir la folie l'assaut des nues?<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">De ceux qui sont partis, vers leurs rêves, un soir,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Conquérir la folie à l'assaut des nuées?<br /></span>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Lointainement, combien nous les sentons vouloir<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Un peu d'amour pour leurs &oelig;uvres destitues,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Un peu d'amour pour leurs &oelig;uvres destituées,<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Pour leur errance et leur tristesse aux horizons.<br /></span>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">Toujours! aux horizons du c&oelig;ur et des penses,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Alors que les vieux soirs clatent en blasons<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Soudains, pour les gloires noires et angoisses.<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Toujours! aux horizons du c&oelig;ur et des pensées,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Alors que les vieux soirs éclatent en blasons<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Soudains, pour les gloires noires et angoissées.<br /></span>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
-<span class="i16"><span class="smcap">mile Verhaeren</span>,<br /></span>
-<span class="i16"><i>Pomes</i>.<br /></span>
+<span class="i16"><span class="smcap">Émile Verhaeren</span>,<br /></span>
+<span class="i16"><i>Poèmes</i>.<br /></span>
</div></div>
<p class="center space-above">ATTRACTIONS</p>
@@ -23997,31 +23957,31 @@ Works:&mdash;</p>
<p class="center space-above">No. 3</p>
-<p>And the following is a poem by Moras, evidently
+<p>And the following is a poem by Moréas, evidently
an admirer of Greek beauty. It is from page 28 of a
volume of his Poems:&mdash;</p>
<p class="center space-above">ENONE AU CLAIR VISAGE</p>
<div class="poem">
-<span class="i0">Enone, j'avais cru qu'en aimant ta beaut<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">O l'me avec le corps trouvent leur unit,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Enone, j'avais cru qu'en aimant ta beauté<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Où l'âme avec le corps trouvent leur unité,<br /></span>
<span class="i0">J'allais, m'affermissant et le c&oelig;ur et l'esprit,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Monter jusqu' cela qui jamais ne prit,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">N'ayant t cre, qui n'est froideur ou feu,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Monter jusqu'à cela qui jamais ne périt,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">N'ayant été crée, qui n'est froideur ou feu,<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Qui n'est beau quelque part et laid en autre lieu;<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Et me flattais encor' d'une belle harmonie<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Que j'eusse compos du meilleur et du pire,<br /></span><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_534" id="Page_534">[534]</a></span>
-<span class="i0">Ainsi que le chanteur qui chrit Polimnie,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Que j'eusse composé du meilleur et du pire,<br /></span><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_534" id="Page_534">[534]</a></span>
+<span class="i0">Ainsi que le chanteur qui chérit Polimnie,<br /></span>
<span class="i0">En accordant le grave avec l'aigu, retire<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Un son bien lev sur les nerfs de sa lyre.<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Mais mon courage, hlas! se pmant comme mort,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Un son bien élevé sur les nerfs de sa lyre.<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Mais mon courage, hélas! se pâmant comme mort,<br /></span>
<span class="i0">M'enseigna que le trait qui m'avait fait amant<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Ne fut pas de cet arc que courbe sans effort<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">La Vnus qui naquit du mle seulement,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Mais que j'avais souffert cette Vnus dernire,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Qui a le c&oelig;ur couard, n d'une faible mre.<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Et pourtant, ce mauvais garon, chasseur habile,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">La Vénus qui naquit du mâle seulement,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Mais que j'avais souffert cette Vénus dernière,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Qui a le c&oelig;ur couard, né d'une faible mère.<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Et pourtant, ce mauvais garçon, chasseur habile,<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Qui charge son carquois de sagette subtile,<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Qui secoue en riant sa torche, pour un jour,<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Qui ne pose jamais que sur de tendres fleurs,<br /></span>
@@ -24030,11 +23990,11 @@ volume of his Poems:&mdash;</p>
<span class="i0">Mais, laisse, les oiseaux du printemps sont partis,<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Et je vois les rayons du soleil amortis.<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Enone, ma douleur, harmonieux visage,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Superbe humilit, doux honnte langage,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Hier me remirant dans cet tang glac<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Superbe humilité, doux honnête langage,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Hier me remirant dans cet étang glacé<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Qui au bout du jardin se couvre de feuillage,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Sur ma face je vis que les jours ont pass.<br /></span>
-<span class="i16"><span class="smcap">Jean Moras.</span></span>
+<span class="i0">Sur ma face je vis que les jours ont passé.<br /></span>
+<span class="i16"><span class="smcap">Jean Moréas.</span></span>
</div>
@@ -24099,14 +24059,14 @@ of similar poems, by M. Montesquiou.</p>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Des roses, des roses, des roses<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Pour embaumer son sommeil,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Vos ptales sont moroses<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Prs du sourire vermeil.<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Vos pétales sont moroses<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Près du sourire vermeil.<br /></span>
<span class="i8">O roses!<br /></span>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Des ailes, des ailes, des ailes<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Pour bourdonner sont front,<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Pour bourdonner à sont front,<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Abeilles et demoiselles,<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Des rythmes qui berceront.<br /></span>
<span class="i8">Des ailes!<br /></span><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_536" id="Page_536">[536]</a></span>
@@ -24115,7 +24075,7 @@ of similar poems, by M. Montesquiou.</p>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Des branches, des branches, des branches<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Pour tresser un pavillon,<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Par o des clarts moins franches<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Par où des clartés moins franches<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Descendront sur l'oisillon.<br /></span>
<span class="i8">Des branches!<br /></span>
</div>
@@ -24129,17 +24089,17 @@ of similar poems, by M. Montesquiou.</p>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
-<span class="i0">Des fes, des fes, des fes<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Pour filer leurs cheveaux<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Des mirages, de bouffes<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Des fées, des fées, des fées<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Pour filer leurs écheveaux<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Des mirages, de bouffées<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Dans tous ces petits cerveaux.<br /></span>
-<span class="i8">Des fes!<br /></span>
+<span class="i8">Des fées!<br /></span>
</div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Des anges, des anges, des anges<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Pour emporter dans l'ther<br /></span>
-<span class="i0">Les petits enfants tranges<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Pour emporter dans l'éther<br /></span>
+<span class="i0">Les petits enfants étranges<br /></span>
<span class="i0">Qui ne veulent pas rester....<br /></span>
<span class="i8">Nos anges!<br /></span>
</div>
@@ -24297,17 +24257,17 @@ sword out, and commits incest with his sister.</p>
gods discuss the question to whom they shall award the
victory. Wotan, approving of Siegmund's incest with
his sister, wishes to spare him, but, under pressure from
-his wife, Fricka, he orders the Valkyrie Brnnhilda to
+his wife, Fricka, he orders the Valkyrie Brünnhilda to
kill Siegmund. Siegmund goes to fight; Sieglinda
-faints. Brnnhilda appears and wishes to slay Siegmund.
+faints. Brünnhilda appears and wishes to slay Siegmund.
Siegmund wishes to kill Sieglinda also, but
-Brnnhilda does not allow it; so he fights with Hunding.
-Brnnhilda defends Siegmund, but Wotan defends
+Brünnhilda does not allow it; so he fights with Hunding.
+Brünnhilda defends Siegmund, but Wotan defends
Hunding. Siegmund's sword breaks, and he is killed.
Sieglinda runs away.</p>
<p>Act III. The Valkyries (divine Amazons) are on the
-stage. The Valkyrie Brnnhilda arrives on horseback,
+stage. The Valkyrie Brünnhilda arrives on horseback,
bringing Siegmund's body. She is flying from Wotan,
who is chasing her for her disobedience. Wotan catches
her, and as a punishment dismisses her from her post
@@ -24354,42 +24314,42 @@ that he wishes to poison Siegfried. This is meant to
signify that Siegfried, having tasted dragon's blood,
understands people's secret thoughts. Siegfried, having
learnt Mime's intentions, kills him. The birds tell
-Siegfried where Brnnhilda is, and he goes to find her.</p>
+Siegfried where Brünnhilda is, and he goes to find her.</p>
<p>Act III. Wotan calls up Erda. Erda prophesies to
Wotan, and gives him advice. Siegfried appears,
quarrels with Wotan, and they fight. Suddenly Siegfried's
sword breaks Wotan's spear, which had been
more powerful than anything else. Siegfried goes into<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_541" id="Page_541">[541]</a></span>
-the fire to Brnnhilda: kisses her; she wakes up,
+the fire to Brünnhilda: kisses her; she wakes up,
abandons her divinity, and throws herself into Siegfried's
arms.</p>
<p>Third Day. Prelude. Three Norns plait a golden
rope, and talk about the future. They go away.
-Siegfried and Brnnhilda appear. Siegfried takes leave
+Siegfried and Brünnhilda appear. Siegfried takes leave
of her, gives her the ring, and goes away.</p>
<p>Act I. By the Rhine. A king wants to get married,
and also to give his sister in marriage. Hagen, the
-king's wicked brother, advises him to marry Brnnhilda
+king's wicked brother, advises him to marry Brünnhilda
and to give his sister to Siegfried. Siegfried appears;
they give him a drugged draught, which makes him
forget all the past and fall in love with the king's sister,
Gutrune. So he rides off with Gunther, the king, to
-get Brnnhilda to be the king's bride. The scene
-changes. Brnnhilda sits with the ring. A Valkyrie
+get Brünnhilda to be the king's bride. The scene
+changes. Brünnhilda sits with the ring. A Valkyrie
comes to her and tells her that Wotan's spear is broken,
and advises her to give the ring to the Rhine nymphs.
Siegfried comes, and by means of the magic helmet
turns himself into Gunther, demands the ring from
-Brnnhilda, seizes it, and drags her off to sleep with
+Brünnhilda, seizes it, and drags her off to sleep with
him.</p>
<p>Act II. By the Rhine. Alberich and Hagen discuss
how to get the ring. Siegfried comes, tells how he has
obtained a bride for Gunther and spent the night with
-her, but put a sword between himself and her. Brnnhilda
+her, but put a sword between himself and her. Brünnhilda
rides up, recognizes the ring on Siegfried's hand,
and declares that it was he, and not Gunther, who was
with her. Hagen stirs everybody up against Siegfried,
@@ -24401,13 +24361,13 @@ The nymphs ask him for the ring, but he won't
give it up. Hunters appear. Siegfried tells the story
of his life. Hagen then gives him a draught, which
causes his memory to return to him. Siegfried relates
-how he aroused and obtained Brnnhilda, and every one
+how he aroused and obtained Brünnhilda, and every one
is astonished. Hagen stabs him in the back, and the
scene is changed. Gutrune meets the corpse of Siegfried.
Gunther and Hagen quarrel about the ring, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_542" id="Page_542">[542]</a></span>
-Hagen kills Gunther. Brnnhilda cries. Hagen wishes
+Hagen kills Gunther. Brünnhilda cries. Hagen wishes
to take the ring from Siegfried's hand, but the hand
-of the corpse raises itself threateningly. Brnnhilda
+of the corpse raises itself threateningly. Brünnhilda
takes the ring from Siegfried's hand, and when Siegfried's
corpse is carried to the pyre, she gets on to a
horse and leaps into the fire. The Rhine rises, and
@@ -24733,7 +24693,7 @@ added, "Ah! my dear angel, how I thank you for my skill!"</p>
<div class="footnote">
-<p><a name="Footnote_1_1" id="Footnote_1_1"></a><a href="#FNanchor_1_1"><span class="label">[1]</span></a> From the Russian version, which Count Tolsto calls a free translation
+<p><a name="Footnote_1_1" id="Footnote_1_1"></a><a href="#FNanchor_1_1"><span class="label">[1]</span></a> From the Russian version, which Count Tolstoï calls a free translation
made with some omissions. After diligent search and inquiry I have been
unable to find this catechism among Ballou's works.&mdash;<span class="smcap">Tr.</span></p></div>
@@ -24741,7 +24701,7 @@ unable to find this catechism among Ballou's works.&mdash;<span class="smcap">Tr
<p><a name="Footnote_2_2" id="Footnote_2_2"></a><a href="#FNanchor_2_2"><span class="label">[2]</span></a> I know of but one criticism, or rather essay, for it can hardly be
termed criticism, in the strict sense of the word, which treats of the same
-subject, having my book in view. It is a pamphlet by Trotzky, called
+subject, having my book in view. It is a pamphlet by Troïtzky, called
"The Sermon on the Mount" (printed in Kazan). Evidently the author
acknowledges the doctrine of Christ in the fullness of its meaning. He
declares that the commandment of non-resistance to evil means what it
@@ -24853,7 +24813,7 @@ mankind.&mdash;<span class="smcap">Author.</span></p></div>
<div class="footnote">
-<p><a name="Footnote_11_11" id="Footnote_11_11"></a><a href="#FNanchor_11_11"><span class="label">[11]</span></a> <i>La Revue des Revues</i>, "La guerre, tat de la question, jug par nos
+<p><a name="Footnote_11_11" id="Footnote_11_11"></a><a href="#FNanchor_11_11"><span class="label">[11]</span></a> <i>La Revue des Revues</i>, "La guerre, état de la question, jugé par nos
grands hommes contemporains."&mdash;<span class="smcap">Tr.</span></p></div>
<div class="footnote">
@@ -24983,15 +24943,15 @@ continues to oppress.</p></div>
<div class="footnote">
-<p><a name="Footnote_37_37" id="Footnote_37_37"></a><a href="#FNanchor_37_37"><span class="label">[37]</span></a> Tolsto's remarks on Church religion were re-worded so as to seem to
+<p><a name="Footnote_37_37" id="Footnote_37_37"></a><a href="#FNanchor_37_37"><span class="label">[37]</span></a> Tolstoï's remarks on Church religion were re-worded so as to seem to
relate only to the Western Church, and his disapproval of luxurious life was
-made to apply, not, say, to Queen Victoria or Nicholas II., but to the Csars
+made to apply, not, say, to Queen Victoria or Nicholas II., but to the Cæsars
or the Pharaohs.&mdash;<span class="smcap">Tr.</span></p></div>
<div class="footnote">
<p><a name="Footnote_38_38" id="Footnote_38_38"></a><a href="#FNanchor_38_38"><span class="label">[38]</span></a> The Russian peasant is usually a member of a village commune, and
-has therefore a right to a share in the land belonging to the village. Tolsto
+has therefore a right to a share in the land belonging to the village. Tolstoï
disapproves of the order of society which allows less land for the support
of a village full of people than is sometimes owned by a single landed
proprietor. The "Censor" will not allow disapproval of this state of
@@ -25009,7 +24969,7 @@ speech recognizes many other arts, as, for instance, the art of cookery.</p></di
<div class="footnote">
-<p><a name="Footnote_40_40" id="Footnote_40_40"></a><a href="#FNanchor_40_40"><span class="label">[40]</span></a> And yet it is certainly an sthetic achievement when the art of cooking
+<p><a name="Footnote_40_40" id="Footnote_40_40"></a><a href="#FNanchor_40_40"><span class="label">[40]</span></a> And yet it is certainly an æsthetic achievement when the art of cooking
succeeds in making of an animal's corpse an object in all respects tasteful.
The principle of the Art of Taste (which goes beyond the so-called
Art of Cookery) is therefore this: All that is eatable should be treated as
@@ -25020,22 +24980,22 @@ expressed.</p></div>
<p><a name="Footnote_41_41" id="Footnote_41_41"></a><a href="#FNanchor_41_41"><span class="label">[41]</span></a> If the sense of touch lacks color, it gives us, on the other hand,
a notion which the eye alone cannot afford, and one of considerable
-sthetic value, namely, that of <i>softness</i>, <i>silkiness</i>, <i>polish</i>. The beauty
+æsthetic value, namely, that of <i>softness</i>, <i>silkiness</i>, <i>polish</i>. The beauty
of velvet is characterized not less by its softness to the touch than by
its luster. In the idea we form of a woman's beauty, the softness of
her skin enters as an essential element.
</p>
<p>
Each of us, probably, with a little attention, can recall pleasures of taste
-which have been real sthetic pleasures.</p></div>
+which have been real æsthetic pleasures.</p></div>
<div class="footnote">
-<p><a name="Footnote_42_42" id="Footnote_42_42"></a><a href="#FNanchor_42_42"><span class="label">[42]</span></a> M. Schasler, "Kritische Geschichte der sthetik," 1872, vol. i., p. 13.</p></div>
+<p><a name="Footnote_42_42" id="Footnote_42_42"></a><a href="#FNanchor_42_42"><span class="label">[42]</span></a> M. Schasler, "Kritische Geschichte der Æsthetik," 1872, vol. i., p. 13.</p></div>
<div class="footnote">
-<p><a name="Footnote_43_43" id="Footnote_43_43"></a><a href="#FNanchor_43_43"><span class="label">[43]</span></a> There is no science which, more than sthetics, has been handed over
+<p><a name="Footnote_43_43" id="Footnote_43_43"></a><a href="#FNanchor_43_43"><span class="label">[43]</span></a> There is no science which, more than æsthetics, has been handed over
to the reveries of the metaphysicians. From Plato down to the received
doctrines of our day, people have made of art a strange amalgam of quintessential
fancies and transcendental mysteries, which find their supreme
@@ -25044,8 +25004,8 @@ divine prototype of actual things.</p></div>
<div class="footnote">
-<p><a name="Footnote_44_44" id="Footnote_44_44"></a><a href="#FNanchor_44_44"><span class="label">[44]</span></a> See on this matter Benard's admirable book, "L'Esthtique d'Aristote,"
-also Walter's "Geschichte der sthetik in Altertum."</p></div>
+<p><a name="Footnote_44_44" id="Footnote_44_44"></a><a href="#FNanchor_44_44"><span class="label">[44]</span></a> See on this matter Benard's admirable book, "L'Esthétique d'Aristote,"
+also Walter's "Geschichte der Æsthetik in Altertum."</p></div>
<div class="footnote">
@@ -25069,7 +25029,7 @@ also Walter's "Geschichte der sthetik in Altertum."</p></div>
<div class="footnote">
-<p><a name="Footnote_50_50" id="Footnote_50_50"></a><a href="#FNanchor_50_50"><span class="label">[50]</span></a> R. Kralik, "Weltschnheit, Versuch einer allgemeinen sthetik," pp.
+<p><a name="Footnote_50_50" id="Footnote_50_50"></a><a href="#FNanchor_50_50"><span class="label">[50]</span></a> R. Kralik, "Weltschönheit, Versuch einer allgemeinen Æsthetik," pp.
304-306.</p></div>
<div class="footnote">
@@ -25222,7 +25182,7 @@ also Walter's "Geschichte der sthetik in Altertum."</p></div>
<div class="footnote">
-<p><a name="Footnote_88_88" id="Footnote_88_88"></a><a href="#FNanchor_88_88"><span class="label">[88]</span></a> "L'Esthtique," p. 106.</p></div>
+<p><a name="Footnote_88_88" id="Footnote_88_88"></a><a href="#FNanchor_88_88"><span class="label">[88]</span></a> "L'Esthétique," p. 106.</p></div>
<div class="footnote">
@@ -25265,7 +25225,7 @@ Church's rendering of Christ's teaching, and were cruelly persecuted.&mdash;<spa
<p><a name="Footnote_97_97" id="Footnote_97_97"></a><a href="#FNanchor_97_97"><span class="label">[97]</span></a> Keltchitsky, a Bohemian of the fifteenth century, was the author of a
remarkable book, "The Net of Faith," directed against Church and State.
-It is mentioned in Tolsto's "The Kingdom of God is Within You."&mdash;<span class="smcap">Tr.</span></p></div>
+It is mentioned in Tolstoï's "The Kingdom of God is Within You."&mdash;<span class="smcap">Tr.</span></p></div>
<div class="footnote">
@@ -25275,26 +25235,26 @@ successors.</p></div>
<div class="footnote">
-<p><a name="Footnote_99_99" id="Footnote_99_99"></a><a href="#FNanchor_99_99"><span class="label">[99]</span></a> Die Lcke von fnf Jahrhunderten, welche zwischen den Kunst-philosophischen
+<p><a name="Footnote_99_99" id="Footnote_99_99"></a><a href="#FNanchor_99_99"><span class="label">[99]</span></a> Die Lücke von fünf Jahrhunderten, welche zwischen den Kunst-philosophischen
Betrachtungen des Plato und Aristoteles und die des Plotins
-fllt, kann zwar auffllig erscheinen; dennoch kann man eigentlich nicht
-sagen, dass in dieser Zwischenzeit berhaupt von sthetischen Dingen
-nicht die Rede gewesen; oder dass gar ein vlliger Mangel an Zusammenhang
+fällt, kann zwar auffällig erscheinen; dennoch kann man eigentlich nicht
+sagen, dass in dieser Zwischenzeit überhaupt von ästhetischen Dingen
+nicht die Rede gewesen; oder dass gar ein völliger Mangel an Zusammenhang
zwischen den Kunst-anschauungen des letztgenannten Philosophen
-und denen der ersteren existire. Freilich wurde die von Aristoteles begrndete
-Wissenschaft in Nichts dadurch gefrdert; immerhin aber zeigt
-sich in jener Zwischenzeit noch ein gewisses Interesse fr sthetische
+und denen der ersteren existire. Freilich wurde die von Aristoteles begründete
+Wissenschaft in Nichts dadurch gefördert; immerhin aber zeigt
+sich in jener Zwischenzeit noch ein gewisses Interesse für ästhetische
Fragen. Nach Plotin aber, die wenigen, ihm in der Zeit nahestehenden
Philosophen, wie Longin, Augustin, u. s. f. kommen, wie wir gesehen, kaum
-in Betracht und schliessen sich brigens in ihrer Anschauungsweise an
-ihn an,&mdash;vergehen nicht fnf, sondern <i>fnfzehn Jahrhunderte</i>, in denen
-von irgend einer wissenschaftlichen Interesse fr die Welt des Schnen
-und der Kunst nichts zu spren ist.
+in Betracht und schliessen sich übrigens in ihrer Anschauungsweise an
+ihn an,&mdash;vergehen nicht fünf, sondern <i>fünfzehn Jahrhunderte</i>, in denen
+von irgend einer wissenschaftlichen Interesse für die Welt des Schönen
+und der Kunst nichts zu spüren ist.
</p>
<p>
Diese anderthalbtausend Jahre, innerhalb deren der Weltgeist durch die
-mannigfachsten Kmpfe hindurch zu einer vllig neuen Gestaltung des
-Lebens sich durcharbeitete, sind fr die Aesthetik, hinsichtlich des weiteren
+mannigfachsten Kämpfe hindurch zu einer völlig neuen Gestaltung des
+Lebens sich durcharbeitete, sind für die Aesthetik, hinsichtlich des weiteren
Ausbaus dieser Wissenschaft verloren.&mdash;<span class="smcap">Max Schasler.</span></p></div>
<div class="footnote">
@@ -25536,382 +25496,6 @@ of the Society for the Promotion of Peace" ...</p>
</div>
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Kingdom of God is Within You, What
-is Art, by Lyof N. Tolstoi
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK KINGDOM OF GOD IS WITHIN YOU ***
-
-***** This file should be named 43409-h.htm or 43409-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/4/3/4/0/43409/
-
-Produced by David Edwards and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive)
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
-will be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
-one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
-(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
-permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
-set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
-copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
-protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
-Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
-charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
-do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
-rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
-such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
-research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
-practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
-subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
-redistribution.
-
-
-
-*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
- www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
-all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
-If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
-terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
-entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
-and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
-or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
-collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
-individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
-located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
-copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
-works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
-are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
-Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
-freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
-this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
-the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
-keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
-a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
-the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
-before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
-creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
-Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
-the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
-States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
-access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
-whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
-copied or distributed:
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
-from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
-posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
-and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
-or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
-with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
-work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
-through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
-Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
-1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
-terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
-to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
-permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
-word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
-distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
-"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
-posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
-you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
-copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
-request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
-form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
-that
-
-- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
- owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
- has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
- Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
- must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
- prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
- returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
- sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
- address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
- the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or
- destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
- and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
- Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
- money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
- of receipt of the work.
-
-- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
-forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
-both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
-Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
-Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
-collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
-"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
-corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
-property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
-computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
-your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
-your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
-the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
-refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
-providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
-receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
-is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
-opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO OTHER
-WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
-WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
-If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
-law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
-interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
-the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
-provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
-with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
-promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
-harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
-that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
-or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
-work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
-Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
-
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
-including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
-because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
-people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
-To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
-and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
-Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
-permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
-Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
-throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at 809
-North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email
-contact links and up to date contact information can be found at the
-Foundation's web site and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
-SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
-particular state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
-To donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
-with anyone. For forty years, he produced and distributed Project
-Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
-unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
-keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
-
- www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-</pre>
-
+<div>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 43409 ***</div>
</body>
</html>
diff --git a/43409.txt b/43409.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index 083b1d4..0000000
--- a/43409.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,21688 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Kingdom of God is Within You, What is
-Art, by Lyof N. Tolstoi
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-Title: The Kingdom of God is Within You, What is Art
-
-Author: Lyof N. Tolstoi
-
-Translator: Aline Delano
-
-Release Date: August 7, 2013 [EBook #43409]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: ASCII
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK KINGDOM OF GOD IS WITHIN YOU ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by David Edwards and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
- LYOF N. TOLSTOI
-
- XIX
-
- THE KINGDOM OF GOD
- IS WITHIN YOU
-
- WHAT IS ART?
-
- [Illustration: COUNT TOLSTOI PLOWING
-
- FROM THE PAINTING BY REPIN]
-
-
-
-
- THE NOVELS AND OTHER WORKS OF
-
- LYOF N. TOLSTOI
-
- THE KINGDOM OF
- GOD IS WITHIN YOU
-
- WHAT IS ART?
-
- [Illustration: publisher mark]
-
- NEW YORK
- CHARLES SCRIBNER'S SONS
- 1902
-
-
-
-
- COPYRIGHT, 1899,
- BY THOMAS V. CROWELL & CO.
-
-
-
-
-INTRODUCTION
-
-
-The present volume contains two contrasting treatises. The first is
-religious, and shows in Count Tolstoi's earnest and eloquent manner
-the meaning of Christ's words which he takes for his text,--"The
-Kingdom of God is within you." The outward forms of religion,
-however helpful they may be to some souls, are not essential; the
-superstitions with which Faith sometimes clothes or masks herself
-may or may not be uplifting; but the foundation of Christianity is
-the truth contained in Christ's words, his simple, plain, undogmatic
-commands and prohibitions.
-
-One word sums it all up, and that word is Love. If the world should
-take love for its guiding star, it is evident that all the evils
-of the world would cease,--wars, crimes, poverty, ambitions; the
-millennium would come! Count Tolstoi shows how that blessed period
-may begin in every man. The translation of this beautiful and
-inspiring book has been made by Mrs. Aline Delano of Boston.
-
-In answering the question, "What is Art?" Count Tolstoi analyzes and
-tests the various definitions given by other writers. He shows up
-with merciless severity what he considers the fallacy in the popular
-delusion that the fetish of Art pardons bestiality, obscenity, and
-whatever conduces to stimulating the passions. The work is strongly
-controversial, and attacks unsparingly many of the popular notions
-of the day, as, for instance, that "Art is the manifestation of some
-mysterious idea of God," or "the expression of man's emotions by
-external signs," or the production of pleasing objects. He believes
-that art has a loftier function, and he proceeds elaborately to
-argue in favor of this universal activity, which should be to effect
-a union among men so that they may have the same noble feelings and
-progress together toward universal and individual well-being. "Art
-for art's sake" is meaningless to him. It is interesting to notice
-that the most original and independent of the French critics has
-recently taken practically the same ground in a lecture, in which he
-asserts that it is the critic's business to test art and literature,
-and that art has a most intimate relation with morality.
-
-Much of the book is racy and amusing; much of it is abstruse,
-and requires close attention. But whether one follows the author
-in his individual opinions or not, it cannot be denied that the
-general tone of the treatise is helpful and uplifting, and that it
-is based on sound common sense. Mr. Aylmer Maude of England is the
-translator of this work, and has had the benefit of Count Tolstoi's
-own suggestions in regard to certain points. As the special preface
-explains, the translation accurately represents the author's views,
-while the edition published in Russia was in many ways garbled
-and distorted. The translators of both treatises have seized the
-opportunity of carefully revising their work.
-
-
-
-
-CONTENTS
-
-
- THE KINGDOM OF GOD IS WITHIN YOU
-
- PAGE
-
- INTRODUCTORY 1
-
- CHAPTER I
-
- Doctrine of non-resistance to evil, from the origin
- of Christianity, has been, and still is, professed
- by the minority of men 3
-
- CHAPTER II
-
- Opinions of believers and unbelievers in regard to
- non-resistance 30
-
- CHAPTER III
-
- Misconception of Christianity by non-believers 47
-
- CHAPTER IV
-
- Misconception of Christianity by scientists 79
-
- CHAPTER V
-
- Contradiction of our life and Christian consciousness 100
-
- CHAPTER VI
-
- Attitude of men of the present day toward war 122
-
- CHAPTER VII
-
- Significance of the military conscription 152
-
- CHAPTER VIII
-
- Certainty of the acceptance of the Christian doctrine
- of non-resistance to evil by violence by the men
- of our world 171
-
- CHAPTER IX
-
- The acceptance of the Christian life-conception
- delivers men from the miseries of our pagan life 194
-
- CHAPTER X
-
- Uselessness of violence for the destruction of
- evil--The moral advance of mankind is accomplished,
- not only through the knowledge of truth, but also
- through the establishment of public opinion 218
-
- CHAPTER XI
-
- Christian public opinion already arises in our
- society, and will inevitably destroy the system
- of violence of our life--When this will come about 242
-
- CHAPTER XII
-
- Conclusion: "Repent, for the Kingdom of Heaven is at
- hand!" 254
-
-
-
-
- WHAT IS ART?
-
- TRANSLATOR'S PREFACE 339
-
- AUTHOR'S PREFACE 341
-
- CHAPTER I
-
- Time and labor spent on art--Lives stunted in its
- service--Morality sacrificed to and anger
- justified by art--The rehearsal of an opera
- described 345
-
- CHAPTER II
-
- Does art compensate for so much evil?--What is
- art?--Confusion of opinions--Is it "that which
- produces beauty"?--The word "beauty" in
- Russian--Chaos in aesthetics 351
-
- CHAPTER III
-
- Summary of various aesthetic theories and definitions,
- from Baumgarten to to-day 360
-
- CHAPTER IV
-
- Definitions of art founded on beauty--Taste not
- definable--A clear definition needed to enable
- us to recognize works of art 376
-
- CHAPTER V
-
- Definitions not founded on beauty--Tolstoi's
- definition--The extent and necessity of
- art--How people in the past have distinguished
- good from bad in art 383
-
- CHAPTER VI
-
- How art for pleasure has come into esteem--Religions
- indicate what is considered good and bad--Church
- Christianity--The Renaissance--Skepticism of the
- upper classes--They confound beauty with goodness 389
-
- CHAPTER VII
-
- An aesthetic theory framed to suit this view of life 396
-
- CHAPTER VIII
-
- Who have adopted it?--Real art needful for all men--Our
- art too expensive, too unintelligible, and too
- harmful for the masses--The theory of "the elect"
- in art 401
-
- CHAPTER IX
-
- Perversion of our art--It has lost its natural
- subject-matter--Has no flow of fresh
- feeling--Transmits chiefly three base emotions 406
-
- CHAPTER X
-
- Loss of comprehensibility--Decadent art--Recent French
- art--Have we a right to say it is bad and that what
- we like is good art?--The highest art has always
- been comprehensible to normal people--What fails
- to infect normal people is not art 412
-
- CHAPTER XI
-
- Counterfeits of art produced by: Borrowing; Imitating;
- Striking; Interesting--Qualifications needful for
- production of real works of art, and those
- sufficient for production of counterfeits 436
-
- CHAPTER XII
-
- Causes of production of counterfeits--Professionalism--
- Criticism--Schools of art 446
-
- CHAPTER XIII
-
- Wagner's "Nibelung's Ring" a type of counterfeit
- art--Its success, and the reasons thereof 455
-
- CHAPTER XIV
-
- Truths fatal to preconceived views are not readily
- recognized--Proportion of works of art to
- counterfeits--Perversion of taste and incapacity
- to recognize art--Examples 468
-
- CHAPTER XV
-
- THE QUALITY OF ART, CONSIDERED APART FROM ITS
- SUBJECT-MATTER--The sign of art: Infectiousness--
- Incomprehensible to those whose taste is
- perverted--Conditions of infection: Individuality;
- Clearness; Sincerity 476
-
- CHAPTER XVI
-
- THE QUALITY OF ART, CONSIDERED ACCORDING TO ITS
- SUBJECT-MATTER--The better the feeling the better
- the art--The cultured crowd--The religious
- perception of our age--The new ideals put fresh
- demands to art--Art unites--Religious art--Universal
- art--Both cooperate to one result--The new
- appraisement of art--Bad art--Examples of art--How
- to test a work claiming to be art 479
-
- CHAPTER XVII
-
- Results of absence of true art--Results of perversion
- of art: Labor and lives spent on what is useless
- and harmful--The abnormal life of the rich--
- Perplexity of children and plain folk--Confusion
- of right and wrong--Nietzsche and Redbeard--
- Superstition, Patriotism, and Sensuality 497
-
- CHAPTER XVIII
-
- The purpose of human life is the brotherly union of
- man--Art must be guided by this perception 507
-
- CHAPTER XIX
-
- The art of the future not a possession of a select
- minority, but a means toward perfection and unity 510
-
- CHAPTER XX
-
- The connection between science and art--The mendacious
- sciences; the trivial sciences--Science should deal
- with the great problems of human life, and serve as
- a basis for art 517
-
- APPENDICES
-
- APPENDIX I 528
-
- APPENDIX II 530
-
- APPENDIX III 537
-
- APPENDIX IV 542
-
-
-
-
- THE KINGDOM OF GOD IS
- WITHIN YOU
-
- OR,
-
- CHRISTIANITY NOT AS A MYSTICAL DOCTRINE,
- BUT AS A NEW-LIFE CONCEPTION
-
-
-
-
-AUTHOR'S PREFACE
-
-
-In this book I have endeavored to show that our modern Christianity
-has been tried and found wanting, that the armed camp of Europe
-is not Christian, but Pagan, as is latter-day religion, of which
-the present state of affairs is the outcome. The book contains
-three principal ideas,--the first, that Christianity is not only
-the worship of God and a doctrine of salvation, but is, above all
-things, a new conception of life, which is changing the whole fabric
-of human society; the second, that from the first appearance of
-Christianity there entered into it two opposite currents,--the one
-establishing the true and new conception of life, which it gave to
-humanity, and the other perverting the true Christian doctrine and
-converting it into a Pagan religion, and that this contradiction
-has attained in our days the highest degree of tension which now
-expresses itself in universal armaments, and on the Continent in
-general conscription; and the third, that this contradiction, which
-is masked by hypocrisy, can only be solved by an effort of sincerity
-on the part of every individual endeavoring to conform the acts of
-his life,--independent of what are regarded as the exigencies of
-family, society, and the State,--with those moral principles which
-he considers to be true.
-
- * * * * *
-
-_The above is an extract (slightly adapted) from an article on
-Count Tolstoi which appeared in the London_ Daily Chronicle _of
-26th December,1893. Sent by Miss Tatiana Tolstoi, on behalf of
-her father, to the publishers of this edition of his work, it is
-inserted here as a Preface at the suggestion of Count Tolstoi._
-
-
-
- THE KINGDOM OF GOD IS
- WITHIN YOU;
-
- OR,
-
- CHRISTIANITY NOT AS A MYSTICAL DOCTRINE,
- BUT AS A NEW LIFE-CONCEPTION
-
- "And ye shall know the truth, and the truth shall make you
- free."--JOHN viii. 32.
-
- "And fear not them which kill the body, but are not able to kill
- the soul; but rather fear him which is able to destroy both soul
- and body in hell."--MATTHEW x. 28.
-
- "Ye are bought with a price; be not ye the servants of men."--I
- CORINTHIANS vii. 23.
-
-
-INTRODUCTORY
-
-In 1884 I wrote a book entitled "My Religion," wherein I formulated
-my creed.
-
-While affirming my faith in the doctrine taught by Christ, I could
-not refrain from manifesting at the same time the reason why I look
-upon the ecclesiastical doctrine commonly called Christianity as
-erroneous, and to me incredible.
-
-Among the many deviations of the latter from the doctrine of Christ,
-I called attention to the principal one; namely--the evasion of
-the commandment that forbids man to resist evil by violence, as a
-striking example of the perversion of the doctrine of Christ by
-ecclesiastical interpretation.
-
-I knew but little, no more than other men, of what had been taught
-or written on the subject of non-resistance in former times. I
-was familiar with the opinions of the Fathers of the Church,
-Origen, Tertullian, and others; and I also knew of the existence
-of certain sects called Mennonites, Herrnhuters, and Quakers, all
-of which forbid Christians the use of arms, and will not submit to
-conscription, but I never knew the arguments by which these sects
-sought to maintain their views.
-
-My book, as I had anticipated, was prohibited by the Russian
-censors, but partly in consequence of my reputation as a writer,
-partly because it excited curiosity, it had a circulation in
-manuscript, and while, on the one hand, it called forth from those
-persons who sympathized with my ideas, information concerning works
-written on the same subject, on the other, it excited criticisms on
-the opinions therein maintained.
-
-These two results, together with the historical events of recent
-years, made many things clear to me, and led me to many new
-deductions and conclusions which I now desire to set forth.
-
-I shall speak in the first place of the information I received in
-regard to the history of this matter of non-resistance to evil;
-and in the second place, of the arguments upon the subject offered
-by religious critics, that is, by critics who profess the religion
-of Christ, as well as those of secular critics, that is to say, of
-men who make no such profession; and finally, the conclusions which
-I drew from the arguments of both parties, as well as from the
-historical events of later years.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I
-
-DOCTRINE OF NON-RESISTANCE TO EVIL FROM THE ORIGIN OF CHRISTIANITY,
-HAS BEEN, AND STILL IS, PROFESSED BY THE MINORITY OF MEN
-
- Concerning the book "My Religion"--Information called forth by
- this book--Letters of Quakers--Professions of Garrison--Adin
- Ballou, his works and Catechism--"The Net of Faith" of
- Helchitsky--Relations of men toward works that explain the
- teachings of Christ--The book of Dymond "On War"--Assertion of
- Non-resistance by Musser--Relations of government in 1818 toward
- those who refuse to join the military service--General inimical
- attitude of governments and liberal men toward those who refused
- to take part in the violence of governments and their conscious
- effort to conceal and ignore these demonstrations of Christian
- Non-resistance.
-
-
-Among the early responses called forth by my book were letters
-from American Quakers. In these letters, while expressing their
-sympathy with my ideas in regard to the unlawfulness of violence
-and war where Christians are concerned, the Quakers made known to
-me many details in relation to their sect, which for more than two
-hundred years has professed the doctrine of Christ in the matter of
-non-resistance, and which never has, nor does it now use weapons for
-self-defense. Together with the letters, the Quakers sent me many
-of their pamphlets, periodicals, and books. From these publications
-I learned that already, many years ago, they had demonstrated the
-Christian's duty of keeping the commandment of non-resistance to
-evil by violence, and the error of the church which countenances
-wars and executions.
-
-Having shown by a succession of arguments and texts that war--the
-slaughter and mutilation of men--is inconsistent with a religion
-founded on peace and good-will to men, the Quakers go on to assert
-that nothing is so conducive to the defamation of Christ's truth in
-the eyes of the heathen, or so successful in arresting the spread
-of Christianity throughout the world, as the refusal to obey this
-commandment, made by men who call themselves Christians, and by the
-sanction thus given to war and violence. The doctrine of Christ,
-which has entered into the consciousness of men, not by force or by
-the sword, as they say, but by non-resistance to evil, by humility,
-meekness, and the love of peace, can only be propagated among men by
-the example of peace, love, and concord given by its followers.
-
-A Christian, according to the teaching of the Lord, should be guided
-in his relations toward men only by the love of peace, and therefore
-there should be no authority having power to compel a Christian to
-act in a manner contrary to God's law, and contrary to his chief
-duty toward his fellow-men.
-
-The requirements of the civil law, they say, may oblige men, who,
-to win some worldly advantages, seek to conciliate that which is
-irreconcilable, to violate the law of God; but for a Christian,
-who firmly believes that his salvation depends upon following the
-teaching of Christ, this law can have no meaning.
-
-My acquaintance with the activity of the Quakers and with their
-publications, with Fox, Paine, and particularly with a work
-published by Dymond in 1827, proved to me not only that men have
-long since recognized the impossibility of harmonizing Christianity
-and war, but that this incompatibility has been proved so clearly
-and irrefragably, that one can only wonder how it is possible for
-this incongruous union of Christianity with violence--a doctrine
-which is still taught by the church--to remain in force.
-
-Besides the information obtained from the Quakers, I also received
-from America about the same time advices on the subject from another
-and hitherto unknown source. The son of William Lloyd Garrison, the
-famous anti-slavery champion, wrote to me that, having read my book,
-wherein he had found ideas similar to those expressed by his father
-in 1838, and taking it for granted that I should be interested to
-know that fact, he sent me a book written by Mr. Garrison some fifty
-years ago, entitled "Non-resistance."
-
-This avowal of principle took place under the following
-circumstances:--In 1838, on the occasion of a meeting of the Society
-for the Promotion of Peace, William Lloyd Garrison, while discussing
-means for the suppression of war, arrived at the conclusion that the
-establishment of universal peace can have no solid foundation save
-in the literal obedience to the commandment of non-resistance by
-violence (Matthew v. 39), as understood by the Quakers, with whom
-Garrison was on friendly terms. Having arrived at this conclusion,
-he wrote, offering to the Society the following proclamation, which
-at that time, in 1838, was signed by many of its members:--
-
- "_Declaration of Sentiments adopted by the Peace Convention,
- held in Boston, September 18, 19, and 20, 1838_:--
-
- "Assembled in Convention, from various sections of the American
- Union, for the promotion of Peace on earth and Good-will among
- men, We, the undersigned, regard it as due to ourselves, to the
- cause which we love, to the country in which we live, and to the
- world, to publish a Declaration, expressive of the principles
- we cherish, the purposes we aim to accomplish, and the measures
- we shall adopt to carry forward the work of peaceful, universal
- reformation.
-
- "We cannot acknowledge allegiance to any human government;
- neither can we oppose any such government by a resort to
- physical force. We recognize but one King and Lawgiver, one
- Judge and Ruler of mankind. We are bound by the laws of a
- Kingdom which is not of this world; the subjects of which are
- forbidden to fight; in which Mercy and Truth are met together,
- and Righteousness and Peace have kissed each other; which has no
- state lines, no national partitions, no geographical boundaries;
- in which there is no distinction of rank or division of caste,
- or inequality of sex; the officers of which are Peace, its
- exactors Righteousness, its walls Salvation, and its gates
- Praise; and which is destined to break in pieces and consume
- all other kingdoms. Our country is the world, our countrymen
- are all mankind. We love the land of our nativity only as
- we love all other lands. The interests, rights, liberties of
- American citizens are no more dear to us than are those of the
- whole human race. Hence, we can allow no appeal to patriotism to
- revenge any national insult or injury; the Principle of Peace,
- under whose stainless banner we rally, came not to destroy, but
- to save, even the worst of enemies. He has left us an example,
- that we should follow His steps. God commendeth his love toward
- us, in that while we were yet sinners, Christ died for us.
-
- "We conceive that if a nation has no right to defend itself
- against foreign enemies, or to punish its invaders, no
- individual possesses that right in his own case. The unit
- cannot be of greater importance than the aggregate. If one
- man may take life, to obtain or defend his rights, the same
- license must necessarily be granted to communities, states,
- and nations. If _he_ may use a dagger or a pistol, _they_ may
- employ cannon, bombshells, land and naval forces. The means
- of self-preservation must be in proportion to the magnitude
- of interests at stake, and the number of lives exposed to
- destruction. But if a rapacious and bloodthirsty soldiery,
- thronging these shores from abroad, with intent to commit
- rapine and destroy life, may not be resisted by the people
- or magistracy, then ought no resistance to be offered to
- domestic troubles of the public peace or of private security.
- No obligation can rest upon Americans to regard foreigners as
- more sacred in their persons than themselves, or to give them a
- monopoly of wrong-doing with impunity.
-
- "The dogma, that all the governments of the world are
- approvingly ordained of God, and that the powers that be in the
- United States, in Russia, in Turkey, are in accordance with His
- will, is not less absurd than impious. It makes the impartial
- Author of human freedom and equality unequal and tyrannical. It
- cannot be affirmed that the powers that be, in any nation, are
- actuated by the spirit or guided by the example of Christ, in
- the treatment of enemies; therefore, they cannot be agreeable
- to the will of God; and therefore their overthrow, by a
- spiritual regeneration of their subjects, is inevitable.
-
- "We register our testimony not only against all wars, whether
- offensive or defensive, but all preparations for war; against
- every naval ship, every arsenal, every fortification; against
- the militia system and a standing army; against all military
- chieftains and soldiers; against all monuments commemorative
- of victory over a fallen foe, all trophies won in battle, all
- celebrations in honor of military or naval exploits; against all
- appropriations for the defense of a nation by force and army,
- on the part of any legislative body; against every edict of
- government requiring of its subjects military service. Hence we
- deem it unlawful to bear arms, or to hold a military office.
-
- "As every human government is upheld by physical strength, and
- its laws are enforced virtually at the point of the bayonet,
- we cannot hold any office which imposes upon its incumbent the
- obligation to compel men to do right, on pain of imprisonment
- or death. We therefore voluntarily exclude ourselves from every
- legislative and judicial body, and repudiate all human politics,
- worldly honors, and stations of authority. If we cannot occupy
- a seat in the legislature or on the bench, neither can we elect
- _others_ to act as our substitutes in any such capacity.
-
- "It follows that we cannot sue any man at law, to compel him by
- force to restore anything which he may have wrongfully taken
- from us or others; but if he has seized our coat, we shall
- surrender up our cloak, rather than subject him to punishment.
-
- "We believe that the penal code of the old covenant, 'An eye
- for an eye, and a tooth for a tooth,' has been abrogated by
- Jesus Christ; and that under the new covenant, the forgiveness
- instead of the punishment of enemies has been enjoined upon all
- His disciples, in all cases whatsoever. To extort money from
- enemies, or set them upon a pillory, or cast them into prison,
- or hang them upon gallows, is obviously not to forgive, but to
- take retribution. 'Vengeance is mine, I will repay, saith the
- Lord.'
-
- "The history of mankind is crowded with evidences proving that
- physical coercion is not adapted to moral regeneration; that the
- sinful disposition of men can be subdued only by love; that evil
- can be exterminated from the earth only by goodness; that it is
- not safe to rely upon an arm of flesh, upon man whose breath is
- in his nostrils, to preserve us from harm; that there is great
- security in being gentle, harmless, long-suffering, and abundant
- in mercy; that it is only the meek who shall inherit the earth,
- for the violent who resort to the sword are destined to perish
- with the sword. Hence, as a measure of sound policy--of safety
- to property, life, and liberty--of public quietude and private
- enjoyment--as well as on the ground of allegiance to Him who
- is King of kings and Lord of lords, we cordially adopt the
- non-resistance principle; being confident that it provides for
- all possible consequences, will insure all things needful to us,
- is armed with omnipotent power, and must ultimately triumph over
- every assailing force.
-
- "We advocate no jacobinical doctrine. The spirit of jacobinism
- is the spirit of retaliation, violence, and murder. It neither
- fears God nor regards man. We would be filled with the spirit of
- Jesus Christ. If we abide by our principles, it is impossible
- for us to be disorderly, or plot treason, or participate in any
- evil work; we shall submit to every ordinance of man, for the
- Lord's sake; obey all the requirements of government, except
- such as we deem contrary to the commands of the gospel; and in
- no case resist the operation of law, except by meekly submitting
- to the penalty of disobedience.
-
- "But while we shall adhere to the doctrine of non-resistance and
- passive submission, we purpose, in a moral and spiritual sense,
- to speak and act boldly in the cause of God; to assail iniquity
- in high places and in low places; to apply our principles
- to all existing civil, political, legal, and ecclesiastical
- institutions; and to hasten the time when the kingdoms of this
- world will have become the kingdoms of our Lord and of His
- Christ, and He shall reign forever.
-
- "It appears to us a self-evident truth, that, whatever the
- gospel is designed to destroy at any period of the world, being
- contrary to it, ought now to be abandoned. If, then, the time
- is predicted when swords shall be beaten into plowshares, and
- spears into pruning-hooks, and men shall not learn the art of
- war any more, it follows that all who manufacture, sell, or
- wield those deadly weapons do thus array themselves against the
- peaceful dominion of the Son of God on earth.
-
- "Having thus briefly stated our principles and purposes, we
- proceed to specify the measures we propose to adopt in carrying
- our object into effect.
-
- "We expect to prevail through the foolishness of
- preaching,--striving to commend ourselves unto every man's
- conscience, in the sight of God. From the press we shall
- promulgate our sentiments as widely as practicable. We shall
- endeavor to secure the cooperation of all persons, of whatever
- name or sect. The triumphant progress of the cause of Temperance
- and of Abolition in our land, through the instrumentality of
- benevolent and voluntary associations, encourages us to combine
- our own means and efforts for the promotion of a still greater
- cause. Hence, we shall employ lecturers, circulate tracts
- and publications, form societies, and petition our state and
- national governments, in relation to the subject of Universal
- Peace. It will be our leading object to devise ways and means
- for effecting a radical change in the views, feelings, and
- practices of society, respecting the sinfulness of war and the
- treatment of enemies.
-
- "In entering upon the great work before us, we are not unmindful
- that, in its prosecution, we may be called to test our sincerity
- even as in a fiery ordeal. It may subject us to insult, outrage,
- suffering, yea, even death itself. We anticipate no small amount
- of misconception, misrepresentation, calumny. Tumults may arise
- against us. The ungodly and violent, the proud and pharisaical,
- the ambitious and tyrannical, principalities and powers, and
- spiritual wickedness in high places, may contrive to crush
- us. So they treated the Messiah, whose example we are humbly
- striving to imitate. If we suffer with Him we know that we
- shall reign with Him. We shall not be afraid of their terror,
- neither be troubled. Our confidence is in the Lord Almighty,
- not in man. Having withdrawn from human protection, what can
- sustain us but that faith which overcomes the world? We shall
- not think it strange concerning the fiery trial which is to
- try us, as though some strange thing had happened unto us; but
- rejoice, inasmuch as we are partakers of Christ's sufferings.
- Wherefore, we commit the keeping of our souls to God, in
- well-doing, as unto a faithful Creator. For every one that
- forsakes house, or brethren, or sisters, or father, or mother,
- or wife, or children, or lands, for Christ's sake, shall receive
- a hundredfold, and shall inherit everlasting life.
-
- "Firmly relying upon the certain and universal triumph of the
- sentiments contained in this declaration, however formidable may
- be the opposition arrayed against them--in solemn testimony of
- our faith in their divine origin--we hereby affix our signatures
- to it, commending it to the reason and conscience of mankind,
- giving ourselves no anxiety as to what may befall us, and
- resolving in the strength of the Lord God calmly and meekly to
- abide the issue."
-
-Later on, Garrison founded a Non-resistance Society and started
-a periodical entitled _The Non-resistant_, wherein the full
-significance and consequences of the doctrine were plainly
-set forth, as has been stated in the proclamation. I gained,
-subsequently, further information concerning the fate of this
-society and the periodical from a biography of William Lloyd
-Garrison, written by his sons.
-
-Neither the periodical nor the society enjoyed a long life. The
-majority of Garrison's associates in the work of liberating the
-slaves, apprehensive lest the too radical views expressed in
-the _The Non-resistant_ might alienate men from the practical
-business of the abolition of slavery, renounced the doctrine of
-non-resistance as expressed in the declaration, and both periodical
-and society passed out of existence.
-
-One would suppose that this declaration of Garrison, formulating,
-as it did, an important profession of faith in terms both energetic
-and eloquent, would have made a deeper impression on men, and have
-become a subject for universal consideration. On the contrary, not
-only is it unknown in Europe, but even among those Americans who
-honor the memory of Garrison there are but few who are familiar with
-this.
-
-A similar fate befell another American champion of the same
-doctrine, Adin Ballou, who died recently, and who for fifty years
-had preached in favor of non-resistance to evil. How little is known
-in regard to the question of non-resistance may be gathered from
-the fact that the younger Garrison (who has written an excellent
-biography of his father in four large volumes), in answer to my
-inquiry whether any society for the defense of the principles of
-non-resistance was yet alive and possessed adherents, wrote me
-that, so far as he knew, the society had dissolved and its members
-were no longer interested, while at this very time Adin Ballou, who
-had shared Garrison's labors, and who had devoted fifty years of
-his life to the teaching of the doctrine of non-resistance, both
-by pen and by tongue, was still living in Hopedale, Massachusetts.
-Afterward I received a letter from Wilson, a disciple and co-worker
-of Ballou, and subsequently I entered into correspondence with
-Ballou himself. I wrote to him, and he sent me his works, from
-one of which I made the following extract:--"Jesus Christ is my
-Lord and Master," says Ballou in one of his articles, written to
-show the inconsistency of Christians who believe in the right of
-defensive and offensive warfare. "I have covenanted to forsake all
-and follow Him, through good and evil report, until death. But I am
-nevertheless a Democratic Republican citizen of the United States,
-implicitly sworn to bear true allegiance to my country, and to
-support its Constitution, if need be, with my life. Jesus Christ
-requires me to do unto others as I would that others should do
-unto me. The Constitution of the United States requires me to do
-unto twenty-seven hundred thousand slaves" (they had slaves then;
-now they could easily be replaced by workmen) "the very contrary
-of what I would have them do unto me--viz., assist to keep in a
-grievous bondage.... But I am quite easy. I vote on. I help govern
-on. I am willing to hold any office I may be elected to under the
-Constitution. And I am still a Christian. I profess on. I find
-difficulty in keeping covenant both with Christ and the Constitution.
-
-"Jesus Christ forbids me to resist evil-doers by taking
-'eye for eye, tooth for tooth, blood and life for life.' My
-government requires the very reverse, and depends, for its own
-self-preservation, on the halter, the musket, and the sword,
-seasonably employed against its domestic and foreign enemies.
-
-"In the maintenance and use of this expensive life-destroying
-apparatus we can exemplify the virtues _of forgiving our injuries,
-loving our enemies, blessing them that curse us, and doing good
-to those that hate us_. For this reason we have regular Christian
-chaplains to pray for us and call down the smiles of God on our holy
-murders.
-
-"I see it all" (that is, the contradiction between profession and
-life), "and yet I insist that I am as good a Christian as ever. I
-fellowship all; I vote on; I help govern on; I profess on; _and I
-glory in being at once a devoted Christian and a no less devoted
-adherent to the existing government_. I will not give in to those
-miserable non-resistant notions. I will not throw away my political
-influence, and leave unprincipled men to carry on government alone.
-
-"The Constitution says--'Congress shall have power to declare
-war, grant letters of marque and reprisal,' and I agree to this,
-I indorse it. I swear to help carry it through. I vote for men to
-hold office who are sworn to support all this. What, then, am I less
-a Christian? Is not war a Christian service? Is it not perfectly
-Christian to murder hundreds of thousands of fellow human beings; to
-ravish defenseless females, sack and burn cities, and enact all the
-other cruelties of war? Out upon these new-fangled scruples! This is
-the very way to forgive injuries, and love our enemies! If we only
-do it all in true love nothing can be more Christian than wholesale
-murder!"
-
-In another pamphlet, entitled "How many does it take?" he says--"One
-man must not kill. If he does, it is murder; two, ten, one hundred
-men, acting on their responsibility, must not kill. If they do, it
-is still murder. But a state or nation may kill as many as they
-please, and it is no murder. It is just, necessary, commendable, and
-right. Only get people enough to agree to it, and the butchery of
-myriads of human beings is perfectly innocent. But how many does it
-take? This is the question. Just so with theft, robbery, burglary,
-and all other crimes. Man-stealing is a great crime in one man, or
-a very few men only. But a whole nation can commit it, and the act
-becomes not only innocent, but highly honorable."
-
-The following is, in substance, a catechism of Ballou, compiled for
-the use of his congregation:--
-
-
-THE CATECHISM OF NON-RESISTANCE.[1]
-
- [1] From the Russian version, which Count Tolstoi calls a free
- translation made with some omissions. After diligent search and
- inquiry I have been unable to find this catechism among Ballou's
- works.--TR.
-
-_Q._ Whence comes the word non-resistance?
-
-_A._ From the utterance: "But I say unto you, That ye resist not
-evil."--Matthew v. 39.
-
-_Q._ What does this word denote?
-
-_A._ It denotes a lofty Christian virtue, commanded by Christ.
-
-_Q._ Are we to understand the word non-resistance in its broad
-sense, that is, as meaning that one should offer no resistance to
-evil whatsoever?
-
-_A._ No; it should be understood literally as Christ taught it--that
-is, not to return evil for evil. Evil should be resisted by all
-lawful means, but not by evil.
-
-_Q._ From what does it appear that Christ gave that meaning to
-non-resistance?
-
-_A._ From the words which he used on that occasion. He said: "Ye
-have heard that it hath been said, An eye for an eye, and a tooth
-for a tooth. But I say unto you, That ye resist not evil: but
-whosoever shall smite thee on thy right cheek, turn to him the other
-also. And if any man will sue thee at the law, and take away thy
-coat, let him have thy cloke also."
-
-_Q._ Whom did he mean by the words: "Ye have heard that it hath been
-said"?
-
-_A._ The patriarchs and the prophets, and that which they spoke and
-which is contained in the Old Testament, that the Jews generally
-call the Law and Prophets.
-
-_Q._ To what laws did Christ allude in the words: "Ye have heard"?
-
-_A._ To those in which Noah, Moses, and other prophets grant the use
-of personal violence against those who commit it, for the purpose of
-punishing and destroying evil deeds.
-
-_Q._ Mention such commandments.
-
-_A._ "Whoso sheddeth man's blood, by man shall his blood be
-shed."--Genesis ix. 6.
-
-"He that smiteth a man, so that he die, shall be surely put to
-death. And if any mischief follow, then thou shalt give life for
-life, eye for eye, tooth for tooth, hand for hand, foot for foot,
-burning for burning, wound for wound, stripe for stripe."--Exodus
-xxi. 12, 23, 24, 25.
-
-"And he that killeth any man shall surely be put to death. And if
-a man cause a blemish in his neighbor; as he hath done, so shall
-it be done to him; breach for breach, eye for eye, tooth for
-tooth."--Leviticus xxiv. 17, 19, 20.
-
-"And the judges shall make diligent inquisition: and, behold, if
-the witness be a false witness, and hath testified falsely against
-his brother; then shall ye do unto him, as he had thought to have
-done unto his brother. And thine eye shall not pity; but life shall
-go for life, eye for eye, tooth for tooth, hand for hand, foot for
-foot."--Deuteronomy xix. 18, 19, 21.
-
-These are the injunctions of which Jesus speaks.
-
-Noah, Moses, and the prophets taught that he who murders, mutilates,
-or tortures his neighbor doeth evil. In order to combat and destroy
-this evil, the evil-doer must be chastised by death, mutilation,
-or some personal torture. Transgressions are to be avenged by
-transgressions, murder by murder, torture by torture, evil by evil.
-Thus taught Noah, Moses, and the prophets. But Christ forbids all
-this. The gospel says: "I say unto you, resist ye not evil, avenge
-not one transgression by another, but rather bear a repetition of
-the offense from the evil-doer." That which has been allowed is now
-forbidden. Having understood what resistance we have been taught, we
-know exactly what Christ meant by non-resistance.
-
-_Q._ Did the teaching of the Ancients admit of resisting
-transgression by transgression?
-
-_A._ Yes; but Christ forbade it. A Christian has no right in any
-case to take the life of, or to offend against, the evil-doer.
-
-_Q._ May he not kill or wound another in self-defense?
-
-_A._ No.
-
-_Q._ May he enter a complaint to the magistrates for the purpose of
-chastising the offender?
-
-_A._ No. For that which he does through others, he practically does
-himself.
-
-_Q._ May he fight in the army against foreign or domestic enemies?
-
-_A._ Certainly not. He can take no part in war, or in the
-preparation therefor. He cannot make use of weapons. He cannot
-resist one transgression by another, whether he is alone or in
-company, either personally or through other agents.
-
-_Q._ May he voluntarily select or drill soldiers for the government?
-
-_A._ He cannot do this, if he wishes to be _faithful_ to the law of
-Christ.
-
-_Q._ May he voluntarily contribute money to assist a government
-which is supported by military power, executions, and violence in
-general?
-
-_A._ No; unless the money is to be used for some special purpose,
-justifiable in itself, where the object and the means employed are
-good.
-
-_Q._ May he pay taxes to such a government?
-
-_A._ No; he should not pay taxes on his own accord, but he should
-not resist the levying of a tax. A tax imposed by the government
-is levied independently of the will of the citizens. It may not be
-resisted without recourse to violence, and a Christian should not
-use violence; therefore he must deliver his property to the forced
-damage caused by authorities.
-
-_Q._ May a Christian vote at elections and take part in courts of
-law or in the government?
-
-_A._ No. To take a part in elections, courts of law, or in the
-administration of government is the same thing as a participation in
-the violence of the government.
-
-_Q._ What is the chief significance of the doctrine of
-non-resistance?
-
-_A._ To show that it is possible to extirpate evil from one's own
-heart, as well as from that of one's neighbor. This doctrine forbids
-men to do that which perpetuates and multiplies evil in this world.
-He who attacks another, and does him an injury, excites a feeling
-of hatred, the worst of all evil. To offend our neighbor because he
-has offended us, with ostensible motive of self-defense, means but
-to repeat the evil act against him as well as against ourselves,--it
-means to beget, or at least to let loose, or to encourage the Evil
-Spirit whom we wish to expel. Satan cannot be driven out by Satan,
-falsehood cannot be purged by falsehood, nor can evil be conquered
-by evil. True non-resistance is the only real method of resisting
-evil. It crushes the serpent's head. It destroys and exterminates
-all evil feeling.
-
-_Q._ But admitting that the idea of the doctrine is correct, is it
-practicable?
-
-_A._ As practicable as any virtue commanded by the law of God.
-Good deeds cannot be performed under all circumstances without
-self-sacrifice, privations, suffering, and, in extreme cases,
-without the loss of life itself. But he who prizes life more than
-the fulfilment of God's will is already dead to the only true life.
-Such a man, in trying to save his life, will lose it. Furthermore,
-wherever non-resistance costs the sacrifice of one's life, or of
-some essential advantage of life, resistance costs thousands of such
-sacrifices.
-
-_Non-resistance preserves; resistance destroys._
-
-It is much safer to act justly than unjustly; to endure an offense
-rather than resist it by violence; safer even in regard to the
-present life. If all men refused to resist evil, the world would be
-a happy one.
-
-_Q._ But if only a few were to act thus, what would become of them?
-
-_A._ Even if but one man were to act thus, and the others should
-agree to crucify him, would it not be more glorious for him to die
-in the glory of non-resisting love, praying for his enemies, than
-live wearing the crown of Caesar, besprinkled with the blood of the
-murdered? But whether it be one man or thousands of men who are
-firmly determined not to resist evil by evil, still, whether in the
-midst of civilized or uncivilized neighbors, men who do not rely
-on violence are safer than those who do. A robber, a murderer, a
-villain, will be less likely to harm them if he finds them offering
-no armed resistance. "All they that take the sword shall perish with
-the sword," and he who seeks peace, who acts like a friend, who is
-inoffensive, who forgives and forgets injuries, generally enjoys
-peace, or if he dies, he dies a blessed death.
-
-Hence, if all were to follow the commandment of non-resistance,
-there would manifestly be neither offense nor evil-doing. If even
-the majority were composed of such men they would establish the rule
-of love and good-will even toward the offenders, by not resisting
-evil by evil nor using violence. Even if such men formed a numerous
-minority, they would have such an improving moral influence over
-society that every severe punishment would be revoked, and violence
-and enmity would be replaced by peace and good-will. If they formed
-but a small minority, they would rarely experience anything worse
-than the contempt of the world, while the world, without preserving
-it or feeling grateful therefor, would become better and wiser from
-its latent influence. And if, in the most extreme cases, certain
-members of the minority might be persecuted unto death, these men,
-thus dying for the truth, would have left their doctrine already
-sanctified by the blood of martyrdom.
-
-Peace be with all ye who seek peace; and may the all-conquering love
-be the imperishable inheritance of every soul who submits of its own
-accord to the law of Christ.
-
-_Resist not evil by violence._--ADIN BALLOU.
-
- * * * * *
-
-For fifty years Ballou wrote and published books chiefly on the
-subject of non-resistance. In these writings, remarkable for their
-eloquence and simplicity of style, the question is considered in
-all its aspects. He proved it to be the duty of every Christian
-who professes to believe that the Bible is a revelation from God,
-to obey this commandment. He enumerates the arguments against the
-commandment of non-resistance, drawn from the Old as well as the
-New Testament, the expulsion from the Temple, among others, and
-answers each one in turn. Setting the Bible aside, he points out the
-practical good sense on which this principle is founded, sums up the
-arguments against it, and refutes them. For instance, in one chapter
-of his work he treats of non-resistance to evil in exceptional
-cases, and affirms that granting the truth of the supposition that
-there are cases to which the rule of non-resistance cannot be
-applied, that would prove that the rule in general is inconsistent.
-Citing such exceptional cases, he proves that these are the very
-occasions when the application of this rule is both wise and
-necessary. The question has been viewed from every side, and no
-argument, whether of opponent or sympathizer, has been neglected or
-left unanswered. I mention this in order to call attention to the
-deep interest which works of this class ought to excite in men who
-profess Christianity; and it would seem therefore that Ballou's
-zeal should have been recognized, and the ideas he expressed either
-accepted or disproved. But such was not the case.
-
-The life-work of Garrison, the father, his founding the society
-of the Non-resistant, and his declaration, convinced me, more
-even than my intercourse with the Quakers, that the divergence of
-the Christianity of the State from Christ's law of non-resistance
-by violence has been long since noticed and pointed out, and men
-have labored and still do labor to counteract it. Thus Ballou's
-earnestness has fortified my opinion. But the fate of Garrison, and
-particularly that of Ballou, almost unknown, notwithstanding fifty
-years of active and persistent work in one direction, has confirmed
-me in the belief that there exists a certain inexpressed but fixed
-determination to oppose all such attempts by a wall of silence.
-
-In August of 1890 Ballou died, and his obituary appeared in the
-American _Religio-Philosophical Journal_ of August 23d.
-
-From this obituary we learn that Ballou was the spiritual leader of
-a community, that he had preached from 8000 to 9000 sermons, married
-1000 couples, and written 500 articles, but in regard to the object
-of his life's devotion not a word is said; the word "non-resistance"
-is never mentioned.
-
-All the exhortations of the Quakers for 200 years, all the efforts
-of Garrison, the father, the foundation of his society, his
-periodical, and his declarations, as well as the life-work of
-Ballou, are the same as if they had never existed.
-
-Another striking example of the obscurity into which a work written
-for the purpose of explaining the principle of non-resistance, and
-to denounce those who refuse to recognize this commandment, may
-fall, is the fate of a book by the Czech Helchitsky, which has only
-recently been discovered, and which up to the present time has never
-been printed.
-
-Shortly after the publication of my book in German, I received a
-letter from a professor of the Prague University, who wrote to tell
-me of a book which had never been printed, a work written in the
-fifteenth century by the Czech Helchitsky, and entitled "The Net of
-Faith." In this work, written four centuries ago, Helchitsky, as
-the professor tells me, has expressed exactly the same opinion in
-regard to true and false Christianity that I did in my work entitled
-"My Religion." The professor wrote that the work of Helchitsky was
-to appear in print for the first time in the Czech language in one
-of the publications of the St. Petersburg Academy of Science. As I
-was unable to obtain the book, I endeavored to ascertain all that
-was known of Helchitsky himself, and this knowledge I gained from
-a German book sent to me by the same professor in Prague. Besides
-that I learned something from Pipin's "History of Czech Literature."
-Pipin says:--
-
- "'The Net of Faith' is the doctrine of Christ, wherewith man
- is to be raised from the gloomy depths of the social sea of
- iniquity. True faith is to believe the words of God; but we are
- living in times when men call the true faith heresy; hence it is
- upon our own reason that we must rely to discover the truth if
- we possess it not. Darkness has concealed it from men, and they
- no longer recognize the true law of Christ.
-
- "As an illustration of the law, Helchitsky cites the original
- social organization of Christian society, which is considered by
- the Church of Rome of the present time as rank heresy.
-
- "This primitive church was his own ideal of a social order
- founded upon equality, liberty, and fraternity. Christianity,
- according to Helchitsky, still preserves this foundation, and
- has but to return to its pure teaching to render any other
- social order, whose existence requires the authority of pope or
- king, quite superfluous. The law of love will suffice for all....
-
- "Historically, Helchitsky assigns the decadence of Christianity
- to the time of Constantine the Great, whom the Pope Silvester
- received into the Church in spite of his pagan life and morals.
- Constantine, in return, rewarded the Pope by endowing him with
- riches and temporal power. Since then these two forces have
- played into each other's hands, seeking only outward glory.
- Doctors, men of learning, and the clergy, caring only to
- maintain their influence over the world, excited the nations one
- against the other, encouraging the crimes of murder and rapine,
- and thus destroying Christianity, both in faith and practice.
- Helchitsky totally denies the right of man to wage war or to
- exact the penalty of death. According to him, every soldier,
- even if he be a 'knight,' is only a transgressor, a criminal,
- and a murderer."
-
-All this, with the addition of some biographical details and
-extracts from the correspondence of Helchitsky, is related in the
-German book.
-
-Having thus become acquainted with the essence of Helchitsky's
-teachings, I waited with still greater impatience the appearance of
-"The Net of Faith" in the Academy's periodical. But one, two, three
-years passed, and the book was not forthcoming. It was only in 1888
-that I learned that the printing had been suspended. I obtained
-the proof-sheets of what had been printed, and read them. In many
-respects it was a wonderful book.
-
-Its contents have been accurately summarized by Pipin. Helchitsky's
-principal idea is that Christianity, in league with sovereignty
-during the reign of Constantine the Great, and continuing to
-develop under these conditions, became corrupted, and ceased to be
-Christianity. He called his book "The Net of Faith" because he had
-chosen for his motto that verse from the New Testament which speaks
-of the disciples as fishers of men. He carries on the simile thus:
-"Through His disciples, Christ caught the world in the net of His
-faith, but the larger fishes, breaking the net, escaped; then others
-followed through these same holes made by the large fishes, and the
-net was left almost empty." By the big fish he means the popes,
-emperors, and sovereigns who, without giving up their authority,
-accepted Christianity, not in its reality, but in its semblance.
-
-Helchitsky teaches the same doctrine that is now taught by the
-non-resistant Mennonites and Quakers, and in former times by
-the Bogomiles, the Paulicians, and other sects. He teaches that
-Christianity, requiring, as it does from its followers, humility,
-gentleness, a forgiving spirit, the turning of the other cheek when
-one is struck, and the love of one's enemies, is not compatible
-with that violence which is an essential element of authority. A
-Christian, according to Helchitsky, should not only refuse to be a
-commander or a soldier, but he should take no part in government,
-neither should he become a tradesman, nor even a landowner. He
-might be an artisan or a farmer. This book is among the few which
-have been saved from the flame into which books denouncing official
-Christianity were commonly cast. As all such so-called heretical
-works were usually burned with their authors, very few of those
-which denounce official Christianity have been preserved--and for
-this reason the book of which we speak has a special interest.
-
-But apart from its interest, concerning which there may be
-differences of opinion, it is one of the most remarkable results of
-human thought, both on account of its profundity and the wonderful
-power and beauty of its language, not to mention its antiquity. And
-yet this book has remained unprinted for centuries, and continues to
-be unknown except to a few specialists. (_See Note, end of Chapter._)
-
-One would think that works like these of the Quakers, of Garrison,
-of Ballou, and of Helchitsky,--which affirm and prove by the
-authority of the Bible that the world misinterprets the teaching of
-Christ,--would arouse an interest, would make a sensation, would
-give rise to discussions between the clergy and their flocks.
-
-One might suppose that works which deal with the very essence of the
-Christian doctrine would be reviewed, and either acknowledged to be
-just, or else refuted and condemned.
-
-Not at all. Every one of these works suffers the same fate. Men
-of widely differing opinions, believers, and, what is still more
-surprising, unbelieving liberals, as though by common consent,
-preserve an obstinate silence in regard to them. Thus every attempt
-to explain the true meaning of Christ's doctrine goes for nothing.
-
-And more astonishing still is the ignorance concerning two works
-whose existence was made known to me after the publication of my
-own book. One is a work by Dymond, "On War," printed for the first
-time in London in 1824, and the other by Daniel Musser, entitled
-"Non-resistance Asserted," was written in 1864.
-
-The ignorance in regard to these books is amazing; the more so, that
-apart from their merit, both treat, not so much of the theory as of
-its practical application to life; of the relations of Christianity
-to military service, which is particularly interesting in view of
-the system of conscription. It may be asked, perhaps, what action is
-befitting for a subject who believes that war is incompatible with
-religion when his government calls upon him for military service?
-
-One would take this to be a vital question, whose answer, in view
-of our present system of conscription, becomes one of serious
-importance. All men, or the majority of mankind, are Christians,
-and every male is required to do military duty. How man, in his
-Christian character, is to meet this demand, Dymond gives the
-following reply:--
-
-"_It is his duty, mildly and temperately, yet firmly, to refuse to
-serve._
-
-"There are some persons who, without any determinate process of
-reasoning, appear to conclude that responsibility for national
-measures attaches solely to those who direct them; that it is the
-business of governments to consider what is good for the community,
-and that, in these cases, the duty of the subject is merged in the
-will of the sovereign. Considerations like these are, I believe,
-often voluntarily permitted to become opiates of the conscience. I
-have no part, it is said, in the councils of the government, and
-am not, therefore, responsible for its crimes. We are, indeed, not
-responsible for the crimes of our rulers, but we are responsible for
-our own; and the crimes of our rulers are our own, if, whilst we
-believe them to be crimes, we promote them by our cooperation....
-
-"Those who suppose that obedience in all things is required, or that
-responsibility in political affairs is transferred from the subject
-to the sovereign, reduce themselves to a great dilemma. It is to
-say that we must resign our conduct and our consciences to the will
-of others, and act wickedly, or well, as their good or evil may
-preponderate, without merit for virtue or responsibility for crime."
-
-It is worthy of notice that the same is expressed in a maxim to
-soldiers, which they are required to memorize. Dymond says that only
-a commander answers for the consequences of his order. But this
-is unjust. A man cannot remove the responsibility for his actions
-from himself. And this is evident from the following: "If your
-superior orders you to kill your child, your neighbor, your father,
-or your mother, will you obey? If you will not, there is an end of
-the argument; for if you may reject his authority in one instance,
-where is the limit to rejection? There is no rational limit but that
-which is assigned by Christianity, and that is both rational and
-practicable....
-
-"We think, then, that it is the business of every man who believes
-that war is inconsistent with our religion, respectfully, but
-steadfastly, to refuse to engage in it. Let such as these remember
-that an honorable and an awful duty is laid upon them. It is upon
-their fidelity, so far as human agency is concerned, that the
-cause of peace is suspended. Let them, then, be willing to avow
-their opinions and to defend them. Neither let them be contented
-with words, if more than words, if suffering also, is required.
-It is only by the unyielding fidelity of virtue that corruption
-can be extirpated. If you believe that Jesus Christ has prohibited
-slaughter, let not the opinions or the commands of a world induce
-you to join in it. By this 'steady and determinate pursuit of
-virtue,' the benediction which attaches to those who hear the
-sayings of God, and do them, will rest upon you, and the time will
-come when even the world will honor you as contributors to the work
-of human reformation."
-
-Musser's work, entitled "Non-resistance Asserted; or, Kingdom of
-Christ and Kingdom of this World Separated," was published in 1864.
-
-This book deals with the same question, drawing its illustrations
-from the drafting of the United States citizens during the time of
-the Civil War. In setting forth the reasons why men should have
-the right to decline military service, his arguments are no less
-applicable to the present time. In his Introduction the author says:
-"It is well known that there are great numbers of people in the
-United States who profess to be conscientiously opposed to war. They
-are mostly called non-resistants, or defenseless Christians, and
-refuse to defend their country, or take up arms at the call of the
-government and go forth to battle against its enemies. Hitherto this
-conscientious scruple has been respected by the government in this
-country; and those claiming it have been relieved or excused from
-this service.
-
-"Since the commencement of the present civil war in the United
-States the public mind has been unusually agitated on this subject.
-It is not unreasonable that such persons as feel it to be their
-duty to go forth and endure the hardships of camp life, and imperil
-health, life, and limb in defense of their country and government,
-should feel some jealousy of those who have, with themselves, long
-enjoyed the protection and benefits of the government, and yet, in
-the hour of its need, refuse to share the burden of its defense
-and protection. Neither is it strange that such a position should
-be looked upon as most unreasonable and monstrous, and those who
-hold it be regarded with some suspicion. "Many able speakers and
-writers," says the author, "have raised their voices and pens
-to refute the idea of non-resistance, as both unreasonable and
-unscriptural. This is not to be wondered at, seeing that those who
-profess the principle and do not possess it, or correctly understand
-it, act inconsistently, and thereby bring the profession into
-disrepute and contempt. However much misapplication or abuse of a
-principle may prejudice the minds of those who are unacquainted with
-a subject, it is yet no argument against its truth."
-
-The author at first proves it to be the duty of each Christian to
-obey the rule of non-resistance. He says that the rule is perfectly
-explicit, and that it has been given by Christ to all Christianity
-without any possibility of being misinterpreted. "Judge for
-yourselves, whether it is right or wrong to obey man more than you
-do the Lord," said both Peter and John; and in exactly the same way
-every man who wishes to be a Christian should regard the requirement
-of his nation to be a soldier, remembering that Christ has told him,
-"Do not resist evil."
-
-This, in the opinion of Musser, decides the question of principle.
-Another point, as to the right of declining military duty while
-one enjoys the advantages accruing through violence, the author
-considers in detail, and arrives at the conclusion that should a
-Christian who follows the teaching of Christ refuse to go to the
-war, he must also decline to take any position under the government
-or any part in the elections, neither must he have recourse to any
-officer of the law for his own personal advantage. Our author goes
-on to consider the relation between the Old and New Testaments,
-and the significance of government for non-Christians; arguments
-against the doctrine of non-resistance are enumerated and refuted.
-The author closes his book with the following words:--"Christians
-need no governments: for they ought not to obey it in those matters
-wherein Christ's teaching is set at naught, and still less should
-they take an active part in it. Christ has chosen His disciples out
-of the world. They have no promise of temporal good or happiness,
-but the contrary. Their promise is in the world to come. The spirit
-which they possess renders them happy and contented in any sphere of
-life. So long as the world tolerates them, they are contented; but
-if it will not let them dwell in peace, they flee to another city or
-place; and so they are true pilgrims and strangers on earth, having
-no certain abiding place.... They are well contented that the dead
-may bury their dead, if they are only permitted to follow Christ."
-
-Without deciding upon the merits of this definition of a Christian's
-duty in regard to war, which we find set down in these two works, we
-cannot fail to see the urgent need for a decision in regard to the
-question itself.
-
-There are men--hundreds of thousands of Quakers, Mennonites, our
-own Duhobortzi, Molokani, men who belong to no sect whatsoever--who
-believe that violence and therefore military service is incompatible
-with Christianity; every year, for instance, we see in Russia a
-number of men refusing to obey the conscription because of their
-religious opinions. And how does the government deal with them?
-Does it release them? Oh, no!... Does it use force, and in case
-of disobedience punish them? Not exactly.... In 1818, government
-managed the affair in this wise.
-
-The following is an extract, hardly known to any one in Russia, from
-a letter of Muraviev-Karsky, which was prohibited by the Russian
-censor:--
-
- "TIFLIS, _October 2d, 1818_.
-
- "This morning the commander of the fortress told me that five
- peasants belonging to the landowners of the government of Tambov
- had been recently sent into the province of Grusia. These men
- were intended to serve as soldiers, but they refused to obey.
- They were flogged several times and made to run the gantlet,
- but they were ready to give themselves up to the most cruel
- tortures, yea, even to death itself, to escape military service.
- 'Let us go our way and harm us not; we do no harm ourselves. All
- men are equal. The sovereign is a man like one of us, why should
- we pay him taxes, and wherefore should we risk our lives to
- kill in battle those who have never done us any harm? Draw and
- quarter us, if you will, and we shall never change our minds; we
- will never wear the uniform, nor mess at the soldier's table.
- Some pitying soul may give us alms but from the government we
- neither have had nor will have anything whatsoever.' Such are
- the words of these peasants, who assure us that there are many
- men in Russia like themselves. Four times they were brought
- before the Committee of Ministers, and it was finally decided
- that a report be made to the Czar, who ordered them to be sent
- to Grusia for discipline, and desired the Commander-in-Chief to
- forward a monthly report of the progress made in bringing these
- peasants to a proper frame of mind."
-
-The final result of this discipline is not known, for the matter was
-kept a profound secret, and the episode may never have been made
-public.
-
-This was the conduct of the government seventy-five years ago in the
-greater number of cases, always carefully hiding the truth from the
-people; and it pursues the same policy at the present day, except
-in regard to the German Mennonites, who live in the government of
-Kherson, and who in lieu of military duty serve a corresponding term
-as foresters,--the justice of their refusal to obey the conscription
-being recognized.
-
-But they are the sole exception; all others who, from religious
-scruples, refuse to perform military duty are treated in the manner
-just described.
-
-At first the government employs all the methods of coercion now in
-use to discipline and _convert_ the rebels, while at the same time
-the most profound secrecy envelops all these proceedings. I know of
-a process which was begun in 1884 against a man who had declined to
-serve,--a long-drawn-out trial which was guarded by the Ministry as
-a great secret.
-
-The first step is usually to send the accused to the priests,
-and, be it said to their shame, they always try to win over the
-insubordinate. But as the influence exercised in the name of Christ
-is generally unsuccessful, the delinquent is sent from the clergy to
-the gendarmes, who, finding in him no political offense, send him
-back; whereupon he is despatched to the scientists, the doctors, and
-thence into the insane hospital. While he is thus sent to and fro,
-the delinquent, deprived of his liberty like a condemned convict,
-is made to endure every kind of indignity and suffering. Four such
-cases have come to my knowledge. The doctors generally release the
-man from the insane hospital, and then every underhanded and crafty
-device is employed to delay the accused, because his release might
-encourage others to follow his example. He is not allowed to remain
-among the soldiers lest they discover from him that conscription
-is not, as they are taught to believe, in accordance with the law
-of God, but opposed to it. The most satisfactory arrangement for a
-government would be either to execute the delinquent, or beat him
-with rods until he died, as was done in former times. But it is
-awkward to condemn a man to public execution because he is true to
-the doctrine which we all profess to believe. Nor is it possible to
-take no notice of a man when he refuses to obey. So the government
-either tortures the man in order to compel him to deny Christ, or
-tries to rid itself of him by some means which will hide both the
-man and the crime from the eyes of the world, rather than resort to
-public execution. All sorts of cunning manoeuvers and tricks are
-employed to torment the man. He is either banished to some remote
-province, or exasperated to disobedience and then imprisoned, or
-sent to the reform battalion, where he may be subjected to torture
-without publicity or restriction; or he is pronounced insane and
-locked up in the insane asylum. For instance, one was exiled to
-Tashkent; that is to say, a pretense was made of transferring him
-thither. Another was sent to Omsk, a third was court-martialed for
-disobedience and imprisoned, and a fourth was put into a house for
-the insane. The same thing is repeated on every side. Not only
-the government, but the majority of liberal free-thinkers, as
-though by preconcerted agreement, carefully avoid alluding to what
-has been said, written, or done in this matter of denouncing the
-inconsistency of violence, as embodied in its most shocking, crude,
-and striking form, in the person of a soldier,--this readiness to
-commit murder,--not only with the precepts of Christianity, but with
-the dictates of mere humanity, which the world professes to obey.
-
-Hence all the information that I have gathered concerning what
-has been accomplished, and what is still going on in this work of
-explaining the doctrine of Christ and the light in which it is
-regarded by the ruling powers of Europe and America, has confirmed
-me in the conviction that a spirit inimical to true Christianity
-dwells in these authorities, exhibited chiefly by the conspiracy of
-silence with which they enshroud any manifestation of it.
-
-NOTE
-
- "The publication of this book ('The Net of Faith') was ended
- [completed] by the Academy in the last months of the present
- year (1893)."--_Note received by the Publisher from Count
- Tolstoi while this work was going to press._
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II
-
-OPINIONS OF BELIEVERS AND UNBELIEVERS IN REGARD TO NON-RESISTANCE
-
- The fate of the book, "My Religion"--The evasive answers
- of religious critics to the questions propounded in that
- book--1st answer, Violence does not contradict Christianity--2d
- answer, Necessity of violence for the purpose of repressing
- evil-doers--3d answer, Necessity of violence for the defense of
- one's neighbor--4th answer, The violation of the commandment of
- Non-resistance regarded as a weakness--5th answer, Evasion of
- the answer by a pretense that this matter has long since been
- decided--The cloak of church authority, antiquity, the holiness
- of religious men, explain for many the contradictions between
- violence and Christianity, in theory as well as in life--Usual
- attitude of the clergy and authorities in regard to the
- profession of true Christianity--General character of Russian
- secular writers--Foreign secular critics--Incorrectness of the
- opinions of the former and the latter caused by a failure to
- understand the true meaning of the doctrine of Christ.
-
-
-All the criticisms of the statements contained in my own book have
-given me a similar impression of a wish to ignore the subject.
-
-As I had anticipated, no sooner was the book published than it
-was prohibited, and should, according to law, have been burned.
-But instead of being consumed by the flames, every copy was taken
-by the government officials and circulated in large numbers,
-both in manuscript and in the lithographed sheets, as well as in
-translations which were published abroad. It was not long before
-criticisms began to appear, not only from the clergy, but from the
-secular world, which the government, so far from forbidding, took
-pains to encourage. Hence the very refutation of the book, the
-existence of which they assumed to be unknown, was made the theme of
-theological controversy.
-
-These criticisms, both foreign and domestic, may be divided into two
-classes, religious and secular; the former by persons who consider
-themselves believers, and the latter by free-thinkers. I shall
-begin by considering the former. In my book I accuse the clergy
-of inculcating doctrines contrary to the commandments of Christ,
-plainly and clearly expressed in the Sermon on the Mount, and
-particularly in regard to the commandment of non-resistance to evil,
-thereby depriving the doctrine of Christ of all its significance.
-Do the ministers of the gospel believe the Sermon on the Mount,
-including the commandment of non-resistance, to be of divine origin?
-Having felt themselves obliged to review my book, it would seem as
-if they must first of all answer the principal charge, and declare
-at once whether they do or do not consider the Sermon on the Mount
-and the commandment of non-resistance obligatory upon a Christian.
-Instead of making the usual reply, couched in words such as, "Though
-one cannot deny, neither can one affirm, the more so as," etc.,
-let them give a categorical answer to my question: Did Christ
-practically require his disciples to do that which he taught in
-the Sermon on the Mount, and therefore may a Christian appeal to a
-legal tribunal, either for defense or prosecution, and still remain
-a Christian? May he consistently take a part in a government which
-is the instrument of violence? And that most important question,
-which, since the introduction of the general conscription, concerns
-us all: May a Christian remain a Christian and still disobey the
-direct command of Christ; may he promise to conduct himself in a
-manner directly opposed to the doctrine of Christ, by entering into
-military service and putting himself in training to be a murderer?
-
-The questions are put plainly and directly, and would seem to call
-for plain and direct answers. But no; my book has been received
-just as all previous denunciations have been, those denunciations
-of the clergy who have deviated from the law of Christ, with which
-history abounds since the time of Constantine the Great. Many
-words have been expended in noting the errors of my interpretation
-of this or that passage of the Scriptures, of how wrong I am in
-referring to the Trinity, the Redemption, and the Immortality of
-the soul, but never a word of that vital question: How are we to
-reconcile those lessons of forgiveness, humility, patience, and
-love toward all mankind, our neighbors as well as our enemies,
-taught us by the Teacher, which dwell in the heart of each of us,
-with the necessities caused by military aggressions against our
-own countrymen as well as against foreigners? All that deserves
-the name of a response to these questions may be summed up under
-five headings. I have endeavored to bring together in this book not
-only the criticisms upon my book, but everything that has ever been
-written on this subject.
-
-The first criticisms with which I deal come mostly from men of high
-position, either in Church or State, who feel quite sure that no one
-will venture to combat their assertions; should any one make the
-attempt, they would never hear the arguments. These men, intoxicated
-for the most part by their authority, have forgotten that there is a
-Christianity in whose name they hold their places. They condemn as
-sectarian all that which is truly Christ-like in Christianity, while
-on the other hand, every text in both Old and New Testaments which
-can be wrested from its meaning so as to justify an anti-Christian
-or pagan sentiment--upon these they establish the foundation of
-Christianity. In order to confirm their statement that Christianity
-is not opposed to violence, these men generally quote, with the
-greatest assurance, equivocal passages from the Old and New
-Testaments, interpreting them in the most anti-Christian spirit--the
-death of Ananias and Sapphira, the execution of Simon the Sorcerer,
-etc. All of Christ's words that can possibly be misinterpreted are
-quoted in vindication of cruelty--the expulsion from the Temple, the
-words "... it shall be more tolerable in that day for Sodom than
-for that city" (Luke x. 12), and other passages. According to these
-men, a Christian is not at all obliged to be guided by the spirit
-of humility, forgiveness, and love of his enemies. It is useless
-to try to refute such a doctrine, because men who affirm it refute
-themselves, or rather they turn away from Christ Himself, to invent
-an ideal and a form of religion all their own, forgetful of Him in
-whose name both the Church and the offices they hold exist. If men
-but knew that the Church preaches an unforgiving, murder-loving, and
-belligerent Christ, they would not believe in that Church, and its
-doctrines would be defended by none.
-
-The second method, somewhat more awkward, consists in affirming that
-though Christ did, in point of fact, teach us to turn the other
-cheek, and to share our cloak, and that these are indeed lofty
-moral laws, still ... the world abounds in evil-doers, and if these
-wretches are not subdued by force, the righteous will perish and the
-world will be destroyed. I met with this argument for the first time
-in St. John Chrysostom, and have called attention to its unfairness
-in my book entitled "My Religion."
-
-This argument is groundless, because if we allow ourselves to look
-upon our fellow-men as evil-doers, outcasts (Raka), we sap the very
-foundations of the Christian doctrine, which teaches us that we,
-the children of the Heavenly Father, are brothers, and equal one to
-the other. In the second place, if the same Father had permitted
-us to use violence toward wrong-doers, as there is no infallible
-rule for distinguishing the good from the evil, every individual
-or every community might class its neighbors under the head of
-evil-doers, which is practically the case at the present time. In
-the third place, if it were possible to distinguish the righteous
-from the unrighteous, even then it would not be expedient in a
-Christian community to put to death, to cripple, or to imprison the
-evil-doers, as in such a community there would be no one to execute
-these sentences, since every man in his quality of Christian is
-forbidden to do violence to a malefactor.
-
-The third mode of reply, more ingenious than the preceding ones,
-consists in affirming that while to obey the commandment of
-non-resistance is every Christian's duty, when the injury is a
-personal one, it ceases to be obligatory when harm is done to one's
-neighbor, and that in such an emergency a Christian is bound to
-break the commandment and use force against the evil-doer. This
-assertion is purely arbitrary, and one finds no justification for it
-throughout the whole body of the doctrine of Christ.
-
-Such an interpretation is not only a narrow one, but actually
-amounts to a direct negation. If every man has the right to employ
-violence whenever his neighbor is threatened with danger, then the
-question becomes reduced to this: How may one define what is called
-danger to one's neighbor? If, however, my private judgment is to be
-arbiter in this matter, then any violence which I might commit on
-any occasion whatever could be excused by the declaration that my
-neighbor was in danger. Magicians have been burned, aristocrats and
-Girondists put to death, because the men in power considered them
-dangerous.
-
-If this important condition, which destroys the significance of the
-commandment, ever entered into the thought of Christ, it would have
-been formulated somewhere. Not only is no such exception to the
-commandment to be found throughout the Teacher's life and lessons,
-but there is on the other hand a warning against an interpretation
-so false and misleading.
-
-The error and the impracticability of such a definition is vividly
-illustrated in the Bible story of Caiaphas, who made use of this
-very same interpretation. He admitted that it was not well to put
-to death the innocent Jesus, but at the same time he perceived the
-existence of a danger, not for himself, but for all the people, and
-therefore declared it better for one man to die, rather than that a
-whole nation should perish.
-
-And we have a still more explicit proof of the fallacy of this
-interpretation in the words addressed to Peter, when he tried to
-revenge by violence the attack upon Jesus (Matthew xxvi. 51). Peter
-was defending not himself, but his beloved and divine Master, and
-Christ distinctly forbade him, saying, "For all they that take
-the sword shall perish with the sword" (Matthew xxvi. 52). One
-can never justify an act of violence against one's fellow-man by
-claiming to have done it in defense of another who was enduring some
-wrong, because in committing an act of violence, it is impossible
-to compare the one wrong with the other, and to say which is the
-greater, that which one is about to commit, or the wrong done
-against one's neighbor. We release society from the presence of a
-criminal by putting him to death, but we cannot possibly know that
-the former might not have so changed by the morrow as to render the
-execution a useless cruelty. We imprison another, we believe him a
-dangerous man; but no later than next day this very man may have
-ceased to be dangerous, and his imprisonment has become unnecessary.
-I see a robber, a man known to me, pursuing a girl; I hold a gun
-in my hand; I wound or perhaps kill the robber, and save the girl.
-The fact that I have either wounded or killed the robber remains,
-but I know not what might have happened had I not done so. And what
-a vast amount of harm must and does accrue from the assurance that
-a man feels of his right to provide against a possible calamity.
-Ninety-nine parts of the world's iniquity, from the Inquisition to
-the bomb-throwing of the present day, and the execution of tens of
-thousands of political criminals, so called, result from this very
-assurance.
-
-The fourth and still more ingenious reply to this question of
-the Christian's responsibility in regard to the commandment of
-Christ concerning non-resistance to evil by violence, consists in
-asserting that this commandment is not denied, but acknowledged,
-like all the others; it is only the special significance attributed
-to it by sectarians that is denied. Our critics declare that the
-views of Garrison, Ballou, and Dymond, as well as those professed
-by the Quakers, the Shakers, the Mennonites, the Moravians, the
-Waldenses, Albigenses, Bogomiles, and Paulicians, are those of
-bigoted sectarians. This commandment, they say, has the importance,
-no more and no less, of all the others; and one who through weakness
-has transgressed against any of the commandments, whether that of
-non-resistance or another, does not for that cause cease to be a
-Christian, provided his creed be true.
-
-This is a very cunning and persuasive subterfuge, especially for
-those who are willing to be deceived, reducing the direct negation
-of the commandment to its accidental infraction. One has, however,
-but to compare the attitude of the clergy toward this or any of the
-other commandments which they do acknowledge, to be convinced that
-it is quite different from their attitude toward this one.
-
-The commandment against fornication they acknowledge without
-reservation, and in no case will they ever admit that this sin is
-not an evil. There are no circumstances mentioned by the clergy
-when the commandment against fornication may be broken, and they
-always insist that the occasions for this sin must be avoided.
-But in regard to non-resistance it is a very different matter.
-Every clergyman believes that there are circumstances wherein this
-commandment may be held in abeyance, and they preach accordingly.
-So far from teaching their parishioners to avoid the temptations
-to this sin, chief among which is the oath of allegiance, they
-take the oath themselves. Clergymen have never been known to
-advocate the breaking of any other commandment; but in regard to
-the doctrine of non-resistance, they distinctly teach that this
-prohibition must not be taken too literally, that so far from
-always obeying this commandment, one should on occasion follow
-the opposite course--that is, one should sit in judgment, should
-go to war, and should execute criminals. Thus in most of the cases
-where non-resistance to evil by violence is in question, the
-preachers will be found to advocate disobedience. Obedience to this
-commandment, they say, is difficult, and can only be practicable
-in a state of society whose members are perfect. But how is it to
-become less difficult, when its infraction is not only condoned, but
-directly encouraged, when legal tribunals, prisons, the implements
-of warfare, the cannon and muskets, armies and battles, receive the
-blessing of the Church? Therefore this reply is not true. Evidently
-the statement that this commandment is acknowledged by the clergy to
-be of equal validity with the other commandments cannot be true.
-
-Clergymen do not really acknowledge it, yet, unwilling to admit this
-fact, they try by evasion to conceal their non-acknowledgment.
-
-Such is the fourth method of answering.
-
-The fifth, more ingenious than its predecessor, is the popular one
-of all. It consists in quietly evading reply, pretending that the
-question was solved ages ago, in a cogent and satisfactory manner,
-and that it would be a waste of words to reopen the subject. This
-method is employed by all the more cultured authors, who, if they
-made answer at all, would feel themselves bound to be logical.
-Realizing that the inconsistency between that doctrine of Christ,
-of which we make a verbal profession, and the scheme of our daily
-lives, is not to be solved by words, and that the more it is talked
-the more glaring this inconsistency becomes, they evade it with
-more or less circumspection, pretending that the question of union
-between Christianity and the law of violence has either been already
-solved, or else that it cannot be solved at all.[2]
-
- [2] I know of but one criticism, or rather essay, for it can hardly
- be termed criticism, in the strict sense of the word, which treats
- of the same subject, having my book in view. It is a pamphlet by
- Troitzky, called "The Sermon on the Mount" (printed in Kazan).
- Evidently the author acknowledges the doctrine of Christ in the
- fullness of its meaning. He declares that the commandment of
- non-resistance to evil means what it says, and the same with the
- commandment as to taking an oath. He does not deny, as others have
- done, the meaning of Christ's teaching, but unfortunately neither
- does he draw those inevitable conclusions which must result from
- a conception such as his own of Christ's doctrine. If one is not
- to resist evil by violence, nor to take an oath, it is but natural
- to ask: Then what is the duty of a soldier? And what is to be done
- about taking the oath of allegiance? But to these questions the
- author makes no reply, and surely a reply should have been given. If
- he had none to make, it would have been better to have said nothing
- at all.
-
-Most of my clerical critics have made use of this method. I might
-quote scores of criticisms of this class, wherein everything
-is discussed except the vital principle of the book. As a
-characteristic specimen of these criticisms I will quote from an
-article by that well-known and scholarly Englishman, the writer and
-preacher, Canon Farrar, who, like so many other learned theologians,
-is an expert in the art of silently ignoring and evading a
-statement. The article appeared in an American magazine, _The
-Forum_, for October, 1888.
-
-After briefly but conscientiously setting forth the subject-matter
-of my book, Farrar says:--"After repeated search the central
-principle of all Christ's teaching seemed to him [Tolstoi] to be,
-'Resist not evil' or 'him that is evil.' He came to the conclusion
-that a coarse deceit had been palmed upon the world when these words
-were held by civil society to be compatible with war, courts of
-justice, capital punishment, divorce, oaths, national prejudice,
-and indeed with most of the institutions of civil and social life.
-He now believes that the Kingdom of God would come if all men
-kept these five commandments, which he holds to be the pith of
-all Christ's teaching--viz.: 1. Live in peace with all men. 2. Be
-pure. 3. Take no oaths. 4. Never resist evil. 5. Renounce national
-distinctions.... Most of the Bible does not seem to him to reflect
-the spirit of Christ at all, though it has been brought into
-artificial and unwarrantable connection with it. Hence he rejects
-the chief doctrines of the Church: that of the Atonement by blood,
-that of the Trinity, that of the descent of the Holy Ghost upon the
-Apostles and the transmission to the priesthood by laying on of
-hands, that of the need of the seven sacraments for salvation. He
-sets aside the authority of Paul, of councils, of fathers, popes,
-or patriarchs, and believes himself to be the immediate disciple of
-Christ alone.... But we are compelled to ask, Is this interpretation
-of Christ a true one? Are all men bound, or is any man bound, to act
-as this great writer has done?"
-
-One might naturally expect that this vital question, which alone
-could induce a man to write a dissertation on the book, would be
-answered either by admitting that my interpretation of the doctrine
-of Christ is correct and should be accepted, or declaring that
-it is erroneous, proving his point, and offering a more correct
-interpretation of the words which I have misconstrued. But no;
-Farrar merely expresses his belief that "though actuated by the
-noblest sincerity, Count Tolstoi has been misled by partial and
-one-sided interpretations of the meaning of the gospel and the
-mind and will of Christ." In what this error consists he does not
-explain, but says: "_To enter into the proof of this is impossible
-in this article, for I have already exceeded the space at my
-command_." And concludes with equanimity: "Meanwhile the reader
-who feels troubled lest it should be his duty also to forsake all
-the conditions of his life, and to take up the position and work
-of a common laborer, may rest for the present on the principle,
-'Securus judicat orbis terrarum.' With few and rare exceptions the
-whole of Christendom, from the days of the Apostles down to our
-own, has come to the firm conclusion that it was the object of
-Christ to lay down great eternal principles, but not to disturb the
-bases and revolutionize the institutions as well as all inevitable
-conditions. Were it my object to prove how untenable is the doctrine
-of communism, based by Count Tolstoi upon the divine paradoxes,
-which can be interpreted on only historical principles in accordance
-with the whole method of the teaching of Jesus, it would require an
-ampler canvas than I have here at my disposal." What a pity that he
-has no space! And, wonderful to relate, no one for fifteen centuries
-ever had the space to prove that the Christ whom we profess said one
-thing and meant another. And of course they could prove it if they
-would! But it is not worth while to prove what everybody knows to be
-true. It is enough to say: "Securus judicat orbis terrarum."
-
-The criticisms of all educated believers are very much alike,
-because realizing as they must the danger of their position, they
-feel that their only safeguard lies in the hope that by sheltering
-themselves behind the authority and holiness of the Church, they may
-succeed in intimidating their readers, or diverting them from any
-idea of reading the Bible for themselves or using their own reason
-to solve this question. And this is a method that succeeds. To whom
-would it ever occur, indeed, that all these assurances, repeated
-with so much solemnity, century after century, by archdeacons,
-bishops, and archbishops, synods and popes, are a base falsehood,
-a calumny against the character of Christ, uttered for the purpose
-of assuring to themselves the money they require to lead a life
-of ease at the expense of others,--a falsehood and a calumny so
-palpable, particularly now, that the only chance of perpetuating
-this falsehood lies in holding the people in awe by their arrogance
-and audacity?
-
-The very same thing has been going on of late years in the Bureau
-of military conscription. A number of aged officials, decorated
-and self-important, are at a table, a full-lengthed portrait of
-the Emperor with the mirror of justice before them, and, while
-leisurely chatting with each other, they write, call out the names,
-and give their orders. Here also, with a cross upon his breast, his
-hair blowing over his stole, a genial and venerable-looking priest
-dressed in a silk robe sits before a pulpit on which is placed a
-golden cross and a Bible with gilt clasps.
-
-Ivan Petrov is called. An untidy, poorly clad youth, with a
-frightened expression, twitching muscles, and gleaming eyes that
-have a wandering look, steps forward, and in a hesitating, broken
-voice almost whispers: "I ... according to law ... as a Christian
-... I ... I cannot...." "What is he muttering?" asks the chairman,
-impatiently, squinting and making an effort to hear, as he raises
-his head from the book. "Speak louder!" exclaims the colonel with
-the glittering shoulder-straps. "As a Christian ... I ... I...."
-And at last it becomes plain that the youth refuses to enter the
-military service because he is a Christian. "Don't talk nonsense!
-Measure him! Doctor, be kind enough to look at the measure. Will he
-do?" "He will do." "Holy Father, let him take the oath."
-
-Not only is there no uneasiness on the part of the officers, but no
-one pays the least attention to the muttering of this frightened,
-pitiable youth. "They always mutter, and we are in a hurry; we have
-still so many more to receive."
-
-The recruit tries to speak again. "This is against the law of
-Christ!" "Move on! move on! We know what is lawful and what is not!
-Move on! Father, make him understand! Next! Vassili Nikitin!"
-
-Then the trembling youth is led away. Now which of all these men,
-the soldiers, Vassili Nikitin, the new man on the list, or any other
-witness of the scene,--which of these would ever dream that the
-unintelligible, broken utterances of the youth, silenced forthwith
-by the magistrates, embodied the real truth, while the loud,
-arrogant speeches of the officials, of the priest, uttered with
-authority, were actually false?
-
-The same impression is made not only by Farrar's essay, but by
-all those grandiloquent sermons, reviews, and other publications
-which spring into existence on every side wherever truth is found
-combating the arrogance of falsehood. At once these orators and
-writers, subtle or bombastic, begin by dwelling upon points closely
-allied to the vital question, while preserving an artful silence on
-the question itself.
-
-And this is the fifth and most efficacious method of accounting for
-the inconsistent attitude of ecclesiastical Christianity, which,
-while professing Christ, with its own life denies, and teaches
-others to deny, this doctrine in the practice of daily life.
-They who employ the first method of justification by boldly and
-distinctly affirming that Christ sanctioned violence, meaning wars
-and murders, put themselves beyond the pale of Christ's teaching;
-while they who defend themselves according to the second, third, and
-fourth methods soon become entangled, and are easily convicted of
-falsehood; but the fifth class, they who condescend not to reason,
-use their dignity for a screen, and insist that all these questions
-were settled ages ago, and need no reconsideration; they, apparently
-invulnerable, will maintain an undisputed authority, and men will
-repose under the hypnotic suggestion of Church and State, nor seek
-to throw off the yoke.
-
-Such were the views of the clergy, of the professors of
-Christianity, in regard to my book, nor could anything different
-have been expected: they are in bonds to their inconsistent
-position, believers in the divinity of the Teacher, and yet
-discrediting His plainest words,--an inconsistency which they are
-bound to reconcile in some way. Hence it is not to be supposed
-that they would give unbiased opinions in regard to the essential
-question of that change which must take place in the life of one
-who makes a practical application of the doctrine of Christ to
-the existing order. From secular critics and free-thinkers, who
-acknowledge no obligation to the doctrine of Christ, and who might
-be expected to judge them without prejudice, I had prepared myself
-for criticisms such as these. I thought that the Liberals would look
-upon Christ not only as the founder of a religion involving personal
-salvation (as understood by the ecclesiastics and their followers),
-but, to use their own expression, as upon a reformer who tears down
-the old foundations to make way for new ones, and whose reformation
-is not even yet complete.
-
-To set forth that conception of Christ and his doctrine has been
-the object of my book. But to my surprise not one out of the many
-criticisms, Russian or foreign, that have appeared, has accepted my
-view, or even discussed it from my standpoint, which is, that the
-teaching of Christ is a philosophical, moral, and social doctrine.
-(I use the phraseology of the scientists.) The Russian secular
-critics, conceiving the sum and substance of my book to be a plea
-in favor of resistance to evil, and taking it for granted (probably
-for the sake of argument) that the doctrine forbade any struggle
-whatsoever against the wrong, made a virulent, and for several
-years, most successful attack upon this doctrine, proving that the
-teaching of Christ must be false, since it forbids any effort to
-overcome evil. Their refutations of this so-called _false_ doctrine
-had all the more chance of success, because the censorship had
-prohibited, not only the book itself, but also all articles in its
-defense, and consequently they knew beforehand that their arguments
-could not be assailed.
-
-It is worthy of note that here in Russia, where not a word against
-the Holy Scriptures is allowed by the censor, for several years
-in succession the distinct and unmistakable commandment of Christ
-(Matthew v. 39) was criticized, distorted, condemned, and mocked at
-in all the leading periodicals.
-
-The Russian secular critics, apparently ignorant of all that had
-been said and done in regard to non-resistance to evil, seemed to
-think that I had invented the principle myself, and attacked it
-as if it were my idea, first distorting and then refuting it with
-great ardor, bringing forward time-worn arguments that had been
-analyzed and refuted over and over again, showing that the oppressed
-and downtrodden should be defended by violence, and declaring the
-doctrine of Christ concerning non-resistance to be immoral.
-
-All the significance that the Russian critics saw in Christ's
-preaching was, that it seemed expressly intended to hamper them
-in their struggles against what they believe to be an evil in the
-present day. Thus it came about that the principle of non-resistance
-to evil by violence was attacked from two opposite camps; the
-Conservatives, because this principle interfered with them in their
-efforts to suppress sedition, and as opposed to all persecution,
-as well as to the punishment of death; the Revolutionists, because
-this principle forbade them to resist the oppression of the
-Conservatives, or to attempt their overthrow. The Conservatives were
-indignant that the doctrine of non-resistance to evil by violence
-should thwart an energetic suppression of revolutionary elements,
-which might imperil the welfare of a nation; the Revolutionists
-in the like manner were indignant because this same doctrine
-averted the downfall of the Conservatives, who, in their opinion,
-imperil the welfare of the people. It is a circumstance worthy
-of notice that the Revolutionists should attack the principle of
-non-resistance to evil by violence; for of all the doctrines dreaded
-by despotism, and dangerous to its existence, this is the chief one.
-Since the creation of the world the opposite principle of resistance
-by violence has been the corner-stone of every despotic institution,
-from the Inquisition to the fortress of Schluesselburg.
-
-Moreover, the Russian critics declared that the progress of
-civilization itself would be checked were this commandment of
-non-resistance applied to everyday life, by which they mean the
-civilization of Europe, which is, according to them, the model for
-all mankind.
-
-Such was the substance of Russian criticism.
-
-Foreign critics start from the same premises, but their deductions
-differ somewhat from those of the Russian critics; not only are they
-less captious and more cultivated, but their modes of analysis are
-not the same.
-
-In discussing my book, and more particularly the gospel doctrine
-as it is expressed in the Sermon on the Mount, the foreign critics
-affirmed that the latter could not really be called Christian
-doctrine (they believe that the Christian doctrine is embodied in
-Catholicism or Protestantism), and that the precepts of the Sermon
-on the Mount are only a series of the delightful but unpractical
-visions of the "charmant docteur," as Renan says, suited to the
-artless, half-civilized Galileans who lived 1800 years ago, or to
-the Russian and semi-barbarous peasants, to Sutaev and Bondarev, and
-to the Russian mystic Tolstoi, but which are by no means adapted to
-the lofty plane of European culture. The foreign secular critics, in
-a courteous way, in order not to wound my feelings, have endeavored
-to show that my belief that mankind may be guided by so simple a
-doctrine as the Sermon on the Mount arises partly from my limited
-knowledge of history and ignorance of the many vain attempts to
-carry out in daily life the principles of the Sermon on the Mount,
-which history tells us have always proved an utter failure, and
-partly from my misconception of the significance of our modern
-civilization, with its Krupp guns, its smokeless powder, its African
-colonization, its Home Rule, its parliaments, journalism, strikes,
-and constitutions, not to mention the Eiffel Tower,--on which the
-entire population of Europe is at present reposing.
-
-Thus wrote Voguee, thus wrote Leroy-Beaulieu, Matthew Arnold, the
-American writer Talmage, who is also a popular preacher, the
-free-thinker Ingersoll, and others.
-
-"The teaching of Christ is no longer practicable, because it does
-not suit our industrial times," Ingersoll ingenuously remarks, and
-thereby he no doubt gives utterance to the views which this cultured
-generation holds in regard to the doctrine of Christ. The doctrine
-has no affinity with the industrialism of the present age, as though
-industrialism were a sacred institution which can suffer no change.
-A drunkard might thus reply to one who calls upon him to be sober,
-that a man in liquor finds such advice absurd.
-
-The arguments of all secular writers, Russian as well as foreign,
-however varied in form or expression, are substantially alike;
-they all agree in misapprehending the doctrine of Christ, with its
-outcome of non-resistance, and in affirming that it is not expedient
-because it implies a need of a change of life.
-
-The doctrine of life is inexpedient, because if we lived up to it
-our lives could not go on as they have done hitherto; in other
-words, if we were to begin to live like righteous men, as Christ
-bids us, we must abandon the wicked ways to which we have grown
-accustomed. So far from discussing the question of non-resistance of
-evil by violence, the very mention of the fact that the precepts of
-Christ include such a command is considered as sufficient proof of
-the inexpediency of the whole doctrine.
-
-And yet it would seem necessary to offer some solution of this
-question, as it lies at the root of all that most interests us.
-
-The question is how to settle these differences among men, when the
-very action that is considered evil by one man is considered good by
-another. It is no answer to say that I think an action evil although
-my adversary may consider it a good one. There are but two ways of
-solving the difficulty. One is to find a positive and indisputable
-standard of evil, and the other is to obey the command, resist not
-evil by violence.
-
-Men have tried to achieve the former from the earliest historical
-ages, and we all know with what unsuccessful results.
-
-The second solution--that is, the non-resistance of what we must
-consider evil until we have found a universal standard: that
-solution has been suggested by Christ himself.
-
-It might be thought that the solution suggested by Christ was the
-wrong one, and a better one might be substituted after the standard
-had been found which is to define evil once and for all. One might
-not know of the existence of such a question, as is the case with
-the barbarous races, but no one can be permitted to pretend,
-like the learned critics of the Christian doctrine, that no such
-question does exist, or that the recognition of the right of certain
-individuals or groups of individuals, and still less of one's own
-right, to define evil, and to resist it by violence, decides the
-question, because we all know that such a recognition does not
-decide it at all, for there are always persons who will refuse to
-admit that such a prerogative can exist.
-
-And yet this very acknowledgment, that anything that seems evil to
-us is evil, or else an utter misconception of the question, affords
-a basis for the conclusions of secular critics concerning the
-doctrine of Christ; hence not only the utterances of the clerical,
-but also those of the secular critics in regard to my book, have
-made it evident to me that most men totally fail to comprehend
-either the doctrine of Christ, or the questions which it is intended
-to decide.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III
-
-MISCONCEPTION OF CHRISTIANITY BY NON-BELIEVERS
-
- The meaning of the Christian doctrine, which is clear for
- the minority, has become unintelligible for the majority of
- men--The cause of it is the false conception of Christianity
- and the misguided assurance of believers, as well as of
- unbelievers, that they apprehend it--The apprehension of
- Christianity for believers is concealed by the Church--The
- apprehension of Christianity--Its essence and its unlikeness
- to the pagan doctrines--Misunderstood at first, it has grown
- clear to those who embrace it owing to its correspondence with
- the truth--Contemporaneously with it arose the assertion that
- the true meaning of the doctrine was understood, and had been
- confirmed by miraculous transmission--The Council of Disciples
- according to the Acts--Authoritative and miraculous assertion
- of the true conception of Christ's doctrine has found its
- logical conclusion in the acknowledgment of the Credo and
- the Church--The Church could not have been established by
- Christ--Definition of Churches according to the Catechism--There
- are various Churches, ever antagonistic to one another--Where is
- heresy?--The work of Mr. Arnold concerning heresies--Heresies
- are the sign of activity in the Churches--Churches always divide
- mankind, and are ever inimical to Christianity--In what the
- activity of the Russian Church consists--Matthew xxiv. 23--The
- Sermon on the Mount, or the Credo--The Orthodox Church conceals
- from the people the true meaning of Christianity--The same is
- done by other Churches--All the contemporary external conditions
- are such that they destroy the doctrine of the Church, and
- therefore Churches use all their efforts to defend it.
-
-
-The knowledge which I obtained after the publication of my book in
-regard to the views which the minority of mankind have held, and
-still hold, concerning the doctrine of Christ in its simplicity
-and real significance, as well as the criticisms of clerical and
-secular writers, who deny the possibility of apprehending it in
-its actual meaning, have convinced me that while the minority has
-not only always possessed a true conception of this doctrine, and
-that this conception has grown steadily more and more clear, for
-the majority, on the other hand, its sense has become more and more
-vague, reaching at last such a degree of obscurity that men fail to
-understand the simplest commands expressed in the Bible, even when
-couched in the plainest possible language.
-
-The inability that prevails at the present time to comprehend the
-doctrine of Christ in its true, simple, and actual meaning, when
-its light has penetrated into the remotest recesses of the human
-understanding, when, as Christ said, they proclaim from the roofs
-that which He whispered in the ear; when this doctrine penetrates
-every phase of human life, domestic, economical, civil, politic, and
-international,--this failure to apprehend it would be inexplicable,
-if one had not discovered the reasons for it.
-
-One of the reasons is, that believers as well as unbelievers are
-perfectly sure that they long ago understood the doctrine of Christ
-so completely, unquestionably, and finally, that it can have no
-other meaning but the one which they attribute to it. That is
-because the tradition of this false conception has been handed down
-for ages,--and therefore its misconception.
-
-The most powerful stream of water cannot add one single drop to a
-vessel that is already full.
-
-One might succeed in explaining to the dullest of men the most
-difficult of problems, if he had no previous conception in regard to
-them; but it is impossible to explain to the cleverest man even the
-simplest matters, if he is perfectly sure that he knows everything
-about it.
-
-The Christian doctrine appears to men of the present times to be a
-doctrine of that kind, known for ages, and never to be questioned
-in its most trivial details, and which is susceptible of no other
-interpretation.
-
-At the present time Christianity is conceived by those who profess
-the doctrines of the Church as a supernatural, miraculous revelation
-of all that is expressed in the Credo; while unbelievers look upon
-it as an affair of the past, a manifestation of the demand of
-humanity for a belief in the supernatural, as an historical fact,
-which has found its fullest expression in Catholicism, Orthodoxy,
-and Protestantism, and which has for us no vital meaning. For the
-believers the real significance of the doctrine is concealed by the
-Church; for the unbelievers it is hidden by science.
-
-Let us begin by considering the former.
-
-Eighteen hundred years ago, in the pagan world of Rome, there
-appeared a strange and novel doctrine, unlike any of its
-predecessors, which was ascribed to the man Christ.
-
-It was a doctrine wholly new in form as well as in substance, both
-for the Hebrew world, from whose midst it had sprung, as well as for
-the Roman world, in whose midst it was preached and promulgated.
-
-Among the accurately defined religious precepts of the Jews, where,
-according to Isaiah, there was precept upon precept, and among the
-highly perfected Roman legislative assemblies, there appeared a
-doctrine that not only repudiated all deities, all fear of them,
-all augury and all faith in it, but also denied the necessity for
-any human institutions whatsoever. Instead of the precepts and
-creeds of former times, this doctrine presented only an image of
-interior perfection, truth, and love in the person of Christ, and
-the attainment of this interior perfection possible for men, and, as
-a consequence, of the outward perfection foretold by the prophets:
-the coming of the Kingdom of God, when all enmity shall cease, when
-every man will hear the word of the Lord and be united with another
-in brotherly love, and when the lion and the lamb shall lie down
-together. Instead of threats of punishment for the non-observance of
-the commandments of the old laws, religious no less than secular,
-instead of tempting men by promise of rewards to observe these laws,
-this doctrine attracted mankind only by proclaiming itself to be the
-truth.
-
-"If any man will do his will, he shall know of the doctrine, whether
-it be of God, or whether I speak of myself."--John vii. 17.
-
-"Which of you convinceth me of sin? And if I say the truth, why do
-ye not believe me?"--John viii. 46.
-
-"But now ye seek to kill me, a man that hath told you the
-truth...."--John viii. 40.
-
-"And ye shall know the truth, and the truth shall make you
-free."--John viii. 32.
-
-God must be worshiped in truth. All the doctrine will be made plain
-by the Spirit of Truth. Do as I command you, and you will know
-whether what I say is the truth.
-
-No evidence was brought to prove the doctrine, except the truth and
-its harmony therewith. The whole substance consisted in learning the
-truth and in following its guidance, drawing nearer and nearer to it
-in the affairs of everyday life.
-
-According to this doctrine, there is no mode of action that can
-justify a man or make him righteous; as regards interior perfection
-we have only the image of truth, in the person of Christ, to win our
-hearts, and outward perfection is expressed by a realization of the
-Kingdom of God. In order to fulfil the doctrine it needs but to take
-Christ for our model, and to advance in the direction of interior
-perfection by the road which has been pointed out to us, as well as
-in that of exterior perfection, which is the establishment of the
-Kingdom of God. The degree of human happiness, whether it be more
-or less, depends, according to this doctrine, not on the degree
-of perfection at which it arrives, but on the comparative rate of
-progress toward that perfection.
-
-The advance toward perfection of Zacchaeus the publican, of the
-adulteress, of the thief on the cross, is, according to this
-doctrine, better than the stagnation of the righteous Pharisee.
-The shepherd rejoices more over the one sheep which was lost and
-is found than over the ninety and nine which are in the fold. The
-prodigal returned, the piece of money which was lost and is found,
-is more precious unto God than that which was never lost.
-
-According to this doctrine, each state is but a step on the road
-toward the unattainable interior and exterior perfection, and
-therefore it has no significance in itself. The progress of this
-movement toward perfection is its merit; the least cessation of this
-movement means the cessation of good works.
-
-"Let not thy left hand know what thy right hand doeth," and "No
-man, having put his hand to the plow, and looking back, is fit for
-the kingdom of God." "Rejoice not that the spirits are subject unto
-you; but rather rejoice, because your names are written in heaven."
-"Be ye therefore perfect, even as your Father which is in heaven is
-perfect." "Seek ye first the kingdom of God and his righteousness."
-
-The fulfilment of the doctrine lies in a continual progress toward
-the attainment of a higher truth, and in the growing realization of
-that truth within one's self, by means of an ever increasing love;
-as well as in a more and more keen realization of the Kingdom of
-God in the world around us. It is evident that the doctrine that
-appeared in the midst of the Hebrew and pagan world could not be
-accepted by the majority of men, who lived a life so totally unlike
-the one prescribed by this new doctrine; and even those who did
-accept it could not comprehend its full meaning, because of its
-contradiction of all former ideas.
-
-It is only through a series of misapprehensions, errors, one-sided
-explanations, corrected and supplemented by generations of men,
-that the meaning of the Christian doctrine has become more and more
-plain. The Christian world-conception and that of the Hebrew and
-pagan peoples mutually acted and reacted upon each other, and the
-Christian principle being the more vital, it penetrated deeper and
-deeper into the Hebrew and pagan principles that had outlived their
-usefulness, and became more clearly defined, freeing itself from
-the spurious admixtures imposed upon it. Men understood its meaning
-better and better, and realized it more and more unmistakably in
-life.
-
-The older the world grew, the more lucid became its apprehension of
-Christianity, as must always be the case with any doctrine relating
-to human life.
-
-Successive generations rectified the mistakes of the preceding ones
-and approached nearer and nearer to the apprehension of its true
-meaning. Thus it was from the very beginning of Christianity. And
-it was then that certain men came to the front who affirmed that
-the only true interpretation was the one which they themselves
-proclaimed, adducing the miracles as a proof thereof.
-
-This was the principal cause of its misapprehension in the first
-place, and of its complete perversion in the second.
-
-The doctrine of Christ was supposed to be transmitted to mankind not
-like any other truth, but in a peculiar, supernatural manner; hence
-they propose to prove its authority, not because it satisfies the
-demands of reason and of human nature in general, but because of the
-miraculous character of its transmission, which is supposed to be
-an incontrovertible proof of the validity of its conception. This
-idea sprang from a misconception, and the result was that it became
-impossible to understand it.
-
-It originated at the very beginning, when the doctrine was so
-imperfectly understood and often so erroneously construed; as, for
-example, in the Gospels and the Acts. The less men understood it,
-the more mysterious it appeared, and the greater need was there for
-visible proof of its authenticity. The rule for doing unto others as
-you would wish them to do unto you, called for no miraculous proof,
-neither did it require faith, because the proposition is convincing
-in itself, both to reason and to human nature. But the proposition
-that Christ was God needed miraculous testimony.
-
-The more mystical grew the apprehension of Christ's teaching, the
-more the miraculous element entered into it; and the more miraculous
-it became, the farther it was from its original meaning; and the
-more complicated, mystical, and remote from its original meaning it
-came to be, the more necessary it was to declare its infallibility,
-and the less intelligible it became.
-
-From the very beginning of Christianity one could see from the
-Gospels, the Acts, and the Epistles how the misapprehension of the
-doctrine called forth the necessity of proofs--miraculous and beyond
-human intelligence.
-
-It dated from the time mentioned in the Acts, when the disciples
-went up to Jerusalem to consult with the elders in regard to the
-question that had arisen as to whether the uncircumcised and those
-who abstained not from the meat offered to idols should be baptized.
-
-The very manner of asking the question showed that those who
-discussed it misconceived the doctrine of Christ, who rejected all
-external rites, such as the washing of the feet, purification,
-fasts, and the Sabbath. It is said distinctly: "Not that which goeth
-into the mouth defileth a man; but those things which proceed out
-of the mouth come forth from the heart; and they defile the man."
-And therefore the question in regard to the baptism of those not
-circumcised could only arise among men who, loving their Teacher and
-with the intuitive perception of the grandeur of his doctrine, could
-not as yet comprehend its exact meaning. And so it was.
-
-And in proportion as the members of the assembly failed to
-comprehend the doctrine, did they stand in need of an outward
-affirmation of their incomplete conception. And in order to decide
-the question, whose very proposal proves the misconception of
-the doctrine, it was that in this assembly for the first time,
-according to the description given in the Acts, were uttered those
-awful words, productive of so much harm, by which the truth of
-certain propositions has been for the first time confirmed: "For it
-seemed good to the Holy Ghost, and to us;" that is to say, it was
-a declaration that the truth of what they said was witnessed by a
-miraculous participation of the Holy Ghost, that is--of God.
-
-But the assertion that the Holy Ghost--that is to say, God--had
-spoken through the apostles, in its turn required proof. And
-therefore it became necessary to declare that on the fiftieth day
-the Holy Ghost, in the shape of fiery tongues, descended on those
-who had made this assertion. [In the description the descent of the
-Holy Ghost precedes the council, but the Acts were written much
-later than either.] But the descent of the Holy Ghost must also
-be proved, though it would be difficult to say why a fiery tongue
-hovering over a man's head should be a proof of the truth of what
-he says any more than the miracles, the cures, the resurrections,
-the martyrdoms, and all the rest of those persuasive miracles with
-which the Acts are filled, and which serve rather to repel than to
-convince one of the truth of the Christian dogmas. The results of
-these methods were such that the more pains they took to confirm
-their statements, accumulating stories of miracles, the more the
-doctrine itself deviated from its original meaning, and the less
-intelligible it became.
-
-Thus it was from the beginning of the Christian era, and thus
-it continued to increase, until in its own time it has reached
-its logical consummation in the dogma of transubstantiation, the
-infallibility of the Pope, the bishops, and Scriptures, which is
-something utterly incomprehensible and nonsensical, requiring
-a blind faith, not in God or Christ, nor even in the doctrine,
-but a faith either in one person, as in Catholicism, or in many
-persons, as in Orthodoxy, or in a book, as in Protestantism. The
-more widely spread Christianity became, and the larger the number
-of uninstructed men it received, the less it was understood, the
-more the infallibility of its conceptions was insisted upon,
-and the more slender grew the possibility of understanding its
-true meaning. Already, about the time of Constantine, the entire
-conception of the doctrine amounted to the _resume_ formulated by
-the temporal power,--the outcome of discussions that took place in
-the council,--to the Credo, in which it is said: I believe in this
-and that, etc., and at the end, "in the one holy, Apostolic and
-OEcumenical Church," that is, in the infallibility of the persons
-who constitute it; so that it all amounted to this, that a man
-believed not in God, nor in Christ, as they revealed themselves to
-him, but in that which was believed by the Church.
-
-But the Church is holy, and was founded by Christ. God could not
-allow men to interpret His doctrine as they chose, and therefore He
-established the Church. All these propositions are so unjust and
-unfounded, that one is actually ashamed to refute them. In no place,
-and in no manner whatsoever, save in the assertion of the Church,
-is it seen that either God or Christ can ever have founded anything
-like the Church in its ecclesiastical sense. There is a distinct
-and evident warning in the New Testament against the Church, as
-an outside authority, in the passage which bids the disciples of
-Christ call no man father or master. But nowhere is there a word
-in regard to the establishment of what the ecclesiastics call the
-Church. The word "church" is used in the New Testament twice, once
-in speaking of the assembly which is to decide a dispute; the second
-time in connection with the obscure words in regard to the rock,
-Peter, and the gates of hell. From these two references, where the
-word is used only in the sense of an assembly, men have derived the
-institution which we recognize at present under the same of the
-Church.
-
-But Christ could by no means have founded a church, that is, what we
-understand by that word at the present time, because nothing like
-our Church, as we know it in these days, with the sacraments, the
-hierarchy, and above all the establishment of infallibility, was to
-be found either in the words of Christ, or in the ideas of the men
-of those times.
-
-Because men have called something which has been established since,
-by the same word that Christ used in regard to another thing, by no
-means gives them a right to assert that Christ founded only one true
-Church.
-
-Moreover, if Christ had it in his mind to establish a church which
-was to be the depository of the whole doctrine and faith, He would
-surely have expressed this so plainly and clearly, and would have
-given, apart from all stories of miracles which are repeated with
-every variety of superstition, such signs as would leave no doubt as
-to its authenticity; yet this was not the case, and now, as always,
-one finds different institutions, each one calling itself the only
-true Church.
-
-The Catholic catechism says: "L'Eglise est la societe des fideles
-etablie par N.-S. Jesus-Christ, repandue sur toute la terre et
-soumise a l'autorite de pasteurs legitimes, principalement notre
-S.-P. le pape,"--meaning by "pasteurs legitimes,"[3] a human
-institution made up of a number of men bound together by a certain
-organization of which the Pope is the head.
-
- [3] The Church is the society of the faithful, established by our
- Lord Jesus Christ, diffused throughout the world, subject to the
- authority of its lawful pastors and our holy father the Pope.
-
-The Orthodox catechism says: "Our Church is a society established
-on earth by Jesus Christ, united by the divine doctrine and the
-sacraments under the government and direction of a hierarchy
-established by the Lord,"--those words, "established by the Lord,"
-signifying a Greek hierarchy, composed of certain men who are
-ordained to fill certain places.
-
-The Lutheran catechism says: "Our Church is a holy Christian society
-of believers under Christ, our Master, in which the Holy Ghost, by
-means of the Bible and the sacraments, offers, communicates, and
-dispenses the divine salvation,"--meaning by that, that the Catholic
-Church is in error, and has fallen away from grace, and that the
-genuine tradition has been preserved in Protestantism.
-
-For Catholics the divine Church is identified with the Pope and
-the Roman hierarchy. For the Orthodox it is identified with the
-institution of the Eastern and Russian hierarchy.[4] For Lutherans
-the divine Church signifies a congregation of men who acknowledge
-the Bible and the Lutheran catechism.
-
- [4] The definition of Homiakov, which had a certain success among
- the Russians, does not help the case, if one believes with him
- that the Orthodox is the only true Church. Homiakov asserts that
- a church is a society of men (without distinction between the
- ecclesiastics and the laity) united by love, and to whom the truth
- is revealed ("Let us love one another, that we may unanimously
- profess," etc.), and that such a church is, in the first place, one
- that professes the Nicene creed, and, secondly, one which, after
- the division of the churches, refused to recognize the authority of
- the Pope and the new dogmas. With such a definition as this, the
- difficulty of identifying a church which is united by love with a
- church professing the Nicene creed, and the accuracy of Photius, as
- Homiakov would have it, is still greater. Hence the statement of
- Homiakov that this church united by love, and therefore holy, is
- the same as that of the Greek hierarchy, is still more arbitrary
- than the assertions of the Catholics and the old Greek Orthodox
- believers. If we admit the existence of the Church according to the
- idea of Homiakov, that is, as a society of men united by love and
- truth, then all that any man can say in regard to it, is that it
- would be most desirable to be a member of that society,--if such
- an one exists,--that is, to live in the spirit of love and truth;
- but there are no outward manifestations by which one could either
- acknowledge one's self, or recognize others as members of this holy
- society, or exclude one's self from it, for there is no outward
- institution to be found which corresponds to that idea.
-
-When those who belong to any one of the existing churches speak of
-the beginnings of Christianity, they generally use the word "church"
-in the singular, as though there had never been but one church. This
-is quite unfair. The Church, which as an institution declares itself
-to be the depository of infallible truth, did not arise until there
-were already two.
-
-While the faithful still agreed among themselves, the congregation
-was united, and there was no occasion for calling itself a church.
-It was only when it separated into two hostile parties that each
-party felt obliged to assert its possession of the truth by claiming
-infallibility.
-
-During the course of the controversies between the two parties,
-while each one claimed infallibility for itself and declared its
-opponent heretical, arose the idea of the one church.
-
-We know that there was a church in the year 51, which granted
-the admission of the uncircumcised, and we know it only because
-there was another, the Jewish Church, which denied their right to
-membership.
-
-If at the present time there is a Catholic Church which asserts
-its infallibility, it is because there are other churches, namely,
-the Greek Orthodox and the Lutheran, each one asserting its own
-infallibility, and thus disowning all other churches. Hence the idea
-of one church is but the product of the imagination, containing not
-a shadow of reality.
-
-It is an historical fact that there have existed, and still continue
-to exist, numerous bodies, each one of whom maintains itself to be
-the true Church established by Christ, declaring at the same time
-that all the others who call themselves churches are heretical and
-schismatic.
-
-The catechisms of those churches which possess the greatest number
-of communicants, the Catholic, the Orthodox, and the Lutheran,
-express this in the plainest language.
-
-The Catholic catechism says: "Quels sont ceux qui sont hors de
-l'Eglise? Les infideles, heretiques, et schismatiques."[5] By
-schismatics it means the so-called Orthodox, and by heretics the
-Lutherans; so that, according to the Catholic catechism, the Church
-is composed only of Catholics.
-
- [5] Who are those outside the Church? The infidels, heretics, and
- schismatics.
-
-In the so-called Orthodox catechism it says: "The name Church of
-Christ means only the Orthodox Church, which has remained in perfect
-union with the universal Church. As to the Roman Church and the
-Protestant creeds" (they are not even called a church), "they cannot
-belong to the one true Church, for they have separated themselves
-from it."
-
-According to this definition the Catholics and the Protestants are
-outside of the Church, and only the Orthodox are in it.
-
-The Lutheran catechism says: "Die wahre Kirche wird darein erkannt,
-das in ihr das Wort Gottes lauter und rein ohne Menschenzusetzung
-gelehrt und die Sacramenten treu nach Christ Einsetzung gewartet
-werden."[6]
-
- [6] Thereby may be the true Church known that in it the word of God
- is taught plainly and clearly, without human additions, and that
- sacraments are administered faithfully according to the teaching of
- Christ.
-
-According to this definition, those who have added anything
-whatsoever to the teaching of Christ and the apostles, as the
-Catholic and Greek Churches have done, are outside the Church, and
-the Lutherans alone are in it.
-
-The Catholics assert that the Holy Ghost dwells perpetually with
-their hierarchy; the Orthodox assert that the same Holy Ghost
-resides also with them; the Arians claim that the Holy Ghost
-manifests itself to them (and they have the same right to assert
-this as have the prevailing religions of the present day); all the
-denominations of Protestants--Lutherans, Reformed Presbyterians,
-Methodists, Swedenborgians, and Mormons--assert that the Holy Ghost
-manifests itself only with them.
-
-If the Catholics assert that the Holy Ghost during the separation of
-the Arian and Greek Churches withdrew from the separating churches
-and remained in the one true Church, then the Protestants of any
-denomination whatsoever may assert with as much right that during
-the separation of their Church from the Catholic, the Holy Ghost
-left the Catholic Church and entered into their own. And this is
-exactly what they do say. Every church professes to derive its creed
-by an unbroken tradition from Christ and the apostles. And certainly
-every Christian creed derived from Christ must have reached the
-present generation through tradition of some sort. But this is no
-proof that any one of these traditions embodies infallible truth, to
-the exclusion of all others.
-
-Every branch proceeds from the root without interruption; but the
-fact that each one comes from one root, by no means proves it to
-be the only branch. And so it is in regard to the churches. The
-proofs which each church offers of its apostolic succession, and
-the miracles which are to prove its authenticity, are the same in
-every case; consequently there is but one exact definition of what
-is called a church (not the imaginary church which we may desire,
-but the actual church which has really existed). The Church is a
-body of men which lays claim to the exclusive possession of the
-truth. All these various societies which were afterward transformed
-by State authority into powerful organizations have really been the
-chief obstacles to the diffusion of true Christianity. It could not
-be otherwise: for the principal characteristic which distinguishes
-the doctrine of Christ from those of earlier times is that the men
-who accepted it strove to understand and to fulfil it more and more
-perfectly; whereas the doctrine of the Church affirmed that it was
-already thoroughly understood and also fulfilled.
-
-However strange this may seem to us, reared as we have been in the
-false doctrine of the Church, as if it were a Christian institution,
-and taught to despise heresy, it is nevertheless in that which men
-call heresy that true progress, that is, true Christianity, was
-manifested, and it only ceased to be such when these heresies were
-checked, and it was, so to speak, stamped with the immutable imprint
-of the Church.
-
-What, then, is heresy? Read all the theological works which treat of
-heresies, of that subject which above all others calls for an exact
-definition, for every theologian speaks of the true doctrine in the
-midst of the false ones by which it is surrounded, and nowhere will
-you find even the shadow of a definition of heresy.
-
-As an instance of the complete absence of the definition of what
-is understood by the word heresy, we will quote the opinion of a
-learned Christian historian, E. de Pressense in "Histoire du Dogme,"
-with its epigraph, "Ubi Christus, ibi Ecclesia" (Paris, 1869). This
-is what he says in his preface (p. 4):--
-
-"I know that they dispute our right to qualify thus" (that is, to
-pronounce them heretical) "the tendencies which were so actively
-resisted by the early Fathers. The very name of heresy seems an
-attack upon liberty of conscience and thought. We cannot share
-these scruples, for they would simply deprive Christianity of any
-individual character."
-
-And having said that after Constantine the Church did in fact
-abuse its authority to describe the dissenters as heretics and
-to persecute them, he says, in speaking of the early ages of
-Christianity: "The Church is a free association; there is an
-advantage to be gained in separating from it. The controversy
-against error is based on feelings and ideas; no uniform body of
-dogma has as yet been adopted; differences of secondary importance
-appear in the East and West with perfect freedom; theology is not
-limited by unalterable formulas. If amid these varying opinions a
-common groundwork of faith is discerned, have we not the right to
-see in this, not a definite system devised and formulated by the
-representatives of a school, but faith itself in its most unerring
-instinct and spontaneous manifestation? If this very unanimity
-which is revealed in the essential matters of faith is found to be
-antagonistic to certain tendencies, have we not the right to infer
-that these tendencies disagreed with the fundamental principles of
-Christianity? Will not this supposition become a certainty if we
-recognize in the doctrine rejected by the Church the characteristic
-features of one of the religions of the past? If we admit that
-gnosticism or ebionitism are legitimate forms of Christian thought,
-we must boldly declare that Christian thought does not exist, nor
-does it possess any specific characteristic by which it may be
-recognized. We should destroy it even while pretending to enlarge
-its limits. In the time of Plato no one would have dared to advocate
-a doctrine which would leave no room for the theory of ideas, and he
-would have been subjected to the well-deserved ridicule of Greece,
-if he attempted to make of Epicurus or of Zeno a disciple of the
-Academy. Let us then admit that if there exists a religion or a
-doctrine called Christianity, it may have its heresies."
-
-The writer's argument amounts to this, that every opinion which does
-not accord with the code of dogmas that we have professed at any
-given time, is a heresy. At a certain time and in a certain place
-men make a certain profession, but this profession can never be a
-fixed criterion of the truth. All is summed up in the "Ubi Christus,
-ibi Ecclesia," and Christ is wherever we are.
-
-Every so-called heresy which claims that what it professes is the
-actual truth, may likewise find in the history of the Church a
-consistent explanation of the faith it professes, and apply all
-the arguments to its own use. Pressense simply calls his own creed
-Christian truth, precisely as every heretical sect has done.
-
-The primary definition of the word heresy (the word +hairesis+
-means a part) is the name given by a society of men to any opinion
-contradicting any part of the doctrine professed by the society. A
-more specific meaning is an expression of an opinion which denies
-the truth of the creed, established and maintained by the temporal
-power.
-
-There is a remarkable, although little known, work entitled
-"Unpartheyische Kirchen und Ketzer-Historie," 1729, by Gottfried
-Arnold, which treats of this subject, and points out the illegality,
-the perversity, the lack of sense, and the cruelty of employing the
-word heresy in the sense of refutation. This book is an attempt to
-relate the history of Christianity in the form of a history of
-heresies.
-
-In his introduction the author asks a series of questions: (1) Of
-those who make heretics (Von denen Ketzermachern selbst); (2) Of
-those who have become heretics; (3) Of the subjects of heresy; (4)
-Of the ways of making heretics; and (5) Of the aims and consequences
-of the making of heretics. To each of these points he adds scores
-of other questions, giving the answers from the works of well-known
-theologians, but principally leaving it to the reader to draw his
-own deductions from the contents of the book. As instances of
-questions which are to a certain extent their own answers I will
-quote the following:--Concerning the 4th question, of the methods
-for making heretics, he asks in one of the questions (the 7th):
-"Does not all history tend to show us that the greatest makers of
-heretics, the adepts in the art, were those very wiseacres from
-whom the Father concealed his secrets--that is, the hypocrites, the
-Pharisees, and the Scribes, or utterly godless and evil-minded men?
-(Question 20-21) And in the corrupted times of Christianity did
-not the hypocrites and envious ones reject the very men, talented
-and especially indorsed by the Lord, who would have been highly
-esteemed in periods of pure Christianity? (21) And, on the other
-hand, would not those men who during the decadence of Christianity
-rose above all others, and set themselves up as teachers of the
-purest Christianity, would not they, during the times of the
-apostles of Christ and his disciples, have been considered as the
-shameful heretics and anti-Christians?" Among other things, while
-expressing the idea that the verbal declaration of the essence of
-faith which was required by the Church, the abjuration of which was
-regarded as a heresy, could never cover all the ideas and beliefs
-of the faithful, and that hence the requirement that faith shall be
-expressed by a certain formula of words is the immediate cause of
-heresy, he says in the 21st question:--
-
-"And supposing that holy acts and thoughts appear to a man so high
-and so profound that he finds no adequate words wherewith to convey
-them, should he be considered a heretic if he is unable to formulate
-his conception? (33) And was not this the reason why there were no
-heresies in the early times of Christianity, because Christians
-judged each other, not by their words, but by their hearts and by
-their deeds, enjoying a perfect freedom of expression, without the
-fear of being called heretic?" "Was it not one of the convenient and
-easiest methods of the Church," he asks in the 31st question, "when
-the ecclesiastics wished to rid themselves of any one, or ruin his
-reputation, to excite suspicion in regard to the doctrine he held,
-and by investing him in the garment of heresy, condemn and cast him
-out?"
-
-"Although it is true that among so-called heretics sins and errors
-have been committed, it is no less true, as the numerous examples
-here quoted bear testimony" (that is to say, in the history of
-the Church and of heresies), "that there has never been a sincere
-and conscientious man of any importance whose safety has not been
-endangered through the envy of the ecclesiastics."
-
-This was the interpretation of heresy almost 200 years ago, and the
-same meaning is attached to it to-day, and so long as the idea of
-the Church shall exist it will never change. Where the Church exists
-there must also exist the idea of heresy. The Church is a body of
-men claiming possession of indisputable truth. A heresy is the
-opinion of men who do not acknowledge the truth of the Church to be
-indisputable.
-
-Heresy is the manifestation of a movement in the Church; it is
-an attempt to destroy the immutable assertion of the Church, the
-attempt of a living apprehension of the doctrine. Each advance that
-has been made toward the comprehension and the practice of the
-doctrine has been accomplished by heretics: Tertullian, Origen,
-Augustine, and Luther, Huss, Savonarola, Helchitsky, and others were
-all heretics. It could not be otherwise.
-
-A disciple of Christ, who possesses an ever growing sense of
-the doctrine and of its progressive fulfilment as it advances
-toward perfection, cannot, either for himself or others, affirm,
-simply because he is a disciple of Christ, that he understands and
-practises the doctrine of Christ to its fullest extent; still less
-could he affirm this in regard to any body of men. To whatsoever
-state of comprehension and perfection he may have arrived, he
-must always feel the inadequacy both of his conception and of its
-application, and must ever strive for something more satisfactory.
-And therefore to claim for one's self, or for any body of men
-whatsoever, the possession of a complete apprehension and practice
-of the doctrine of Christ is in direct contradiction to the spirit
-of Christ's doctrine itself.
-
-However strange this statement may appear, every church, as a
-church, has always been, and always must be, an institution not
-only foreign, but absolutely hostile, to the doctrine of Christ. It
-is not without reason that Voltaire called it "_l'infame_"; it is
-not without reason that all so-called Christian sects believe the
-Church to be the Scarlet Woman prophesied by the Revelation; it is
-not without reason that the history of the Church is the history of
-cruelties and horrors.
-
-Churches in themselves are, as some persons believe, institutions
-based upon a Christian principle, from which they have deviated to a
-certain extent; but considered in the light of churches, of bodies
-of men claiming infallibility, they are anti-Christian institutions.
-Between churches in the ecclesiastical sense and Christianity,
-not only is there nothing in common except the name, but they are
-two utterly contradictory and hostile elements. One is pride,
-violence, self-assertion, inertia, and death. The other is meekness,
-repentance, submission, activity, and life.
-
-No man can serve these two masters at the same time; he must choose
-either the one or the other.
-
-The servants of the churches of every creed, especially in these
-modern times, strive to represent themselves as the partisans of
-progress in Christianity; they make concessions, they try to correct
-the abuses that have crept into the Church, and protest that it is
-wrong to deny the principle of the Christian Church on account of
-these abuses, because it is only through the medium of the Church
-that unity can be obtained, and that the Church is the only mediator
-between God and man. All this is untrue. So far from fostering the
-spirit of unity, the churches have ever been the fruitful source of
-human enmity, of hatred, wars, conflicts, inquisitions, Eves of St.
-Bartholomew, and so on; neither do the churches act as the mediators
-between God and man,--an office, moreover, quite unnecessary, and
-directly forbidden by Christ himself, who has revealed his doctrine
-unto each individual; it is but the dead formula, and not the living
-God, which the churches offer to man, and which serves rather to
-increase than diminish the distance between man and his Creator.
-The churches, which were founded upon a misconception, and which
-preserve this misconception by their immutability, must of necessity
-harass and persecute any new conception, because they know, however
-they may try to conceal it, that every advance along the road
-indicated by Christ is undermining their own existence.
-
-Whenever one reads or listens to the essays and sermons in which
-ecclesiastical writers of modern times belonging to the various
-creeds discuss the Christian truths and virtues, when one hears
-and reads these artificial arguments, these exhortations, these
-professions of faith, elaborated through centuries, that now and
-then sound sincere, one is almost ready to doubt if the churches can
-be inimical to Christianity. "It cannot be possible that men like
-John Chrysostom, Fenelon, Butler, and other Christian preachers,
-could be inimical to it." One would like to say, "The churches may
-have gone astray from Christianity, may have committed errors, but
-they cannot have been hostile to it." But one must first see the
-fruit before he can know the tree, as Christ has taught, and one
-sees that their fruits were evil, that the result of their works has
-been the distortion of Christianity; and one cannot help concluding
-that, however virtuous the men may have been, the cause of the
-church in which these men served was not Christian. The goodness
-and virtue of certain individuals who served the churches were
-peculiar to themselves, and not to the cause which they served. All
-these excellent men, like Francis of Assisi and Francis de Sales,
-Tichon Zadonsky, Thomas a Kempis, and others, were good men, even
-though they served a cause hostile to Christianity; and they would
-have been still more charitable and more exemplary had they not
-yielded obedience to false doctrines.
-
-But why do we speak of, or sit in judgment on, the past, which may
-be falsely represented, and is, in any event, but little known to
-us? The churches, with their principles and their works, are not of
-the past; we have them with us to-day, and can judge them by their
-works and by their influence over men.
-
-What, then, constitutes their power? How do they influence men? What
-is their work in the Greek, the Catholic, and in all the Protestant
-denominations? and what are the consequences of such work?
-
-The work of our Russian so-called Orthodox Church is visible to all.
-It is a factor of primary importance, which can neither be concealed
-nor disputed.
-
-In what manner is the activity of the Russian Church
-displayed,--that vast institution which labors with so much zeal,
-that institution which numbers among its servants half a million of
-men, and costs the people tens of millions?
-
-The activity of the Church consists in forcing, by every means in
-its power, upon the one hundred millions of Russian people, those
-antiquated, time-worn beliefs which have lost all significance,
-and which were formerly professed by foreigners, with whom we had
-nothing in common, beliefs in which nearly every man has lost
-his faith, even in some cases those very men whose duty it is to
-inculcate them.
-
-The endeavor to force upon the people those formulas of the
-Byzantine clergy, marvelous to them and senseless to us, concerning
-the Trinity, the Virgin, the sacraments, grace, and so forth,
-embraces one province of the activity of the Russian Church; another
-function is the encouragement given to idolatry, in the literal
-sense of the word: the veneration of holy relics and holy images,
-the sacrifices offered to them in the faith that they will hear and
-grant prayers. I will pass over in silence what is written in the
-ecclesiastical magazines by the clergy who possess a semblance of
-learning and liberality, and will speak only of what is really done
-by the clergy throughout the immense extent of Russia, among its one
-hundred millions of inhabitants. What is it that is taught to the
-people with such unremitting pains and endeavor, and with so much
-earnestness? What is required of them for the sake of the so-called
-Christian religion?
-
-I will start at the beginning, with the birth of the child. When
-a child is born, we are taught that a prayer must be read over
-the mother and child, in order to purify them, for without that
-prayer the mother remains unclean. For that purpose, and facing the
-ikons of the saints, whom the common people simply call gods, the
-priest takes the infant in his arms, reads the exhortation, and by
-that means he is supposed to cleanse the mother. Then the parents
-are instructed, nay, even ordered, under penalty of punishment
-in the event of non-compliance, to christen the child--that is,
-to let the priest immerse it three times in the water, while
-words unintelligible to all present are read, and still less
-intelligible ceremonies are performed, such as the application of
-oil to different parts of the body, the cutting of the hair, the
-blowing and spitting of the sponsors at the imaginary devil. All
-this is necessary to cleanse the child, and make a Christian of
-him. Then the parents are told that the child must receive the
-holy sacrament--that is, he is to swallow, in the form of bread
-and wine, a particle of the body of Christ, by which means the
-child will receive the blessing of Christ, and so on. Then they
-are told that as the child grows it must be taught to pray, which
-means that he is to stand in front of boards upon which the faces
-of Christ, the Virgin, and the saints are painted, bow his head
-and body, while with his right hand, his fingers being folded in
-a peculiar manner, he touches his forehead, his shoulders, and
-his stomach, and utters certain Slavonic words, the commonest of
-which, those which all children learn, are the following: "Mother
-of God, ... Virgin, rejoice," etc. Then the child is taught that he
-must repeat this--that is, that he must make the sign of the cross
-whenever he sees a church or an ikon. Furthermore, he is taught
-that on a holiday (holidays are either the day on which Christ was
-born, although no one knows when that took place, or the day of his
-circumcision, or that on which the Virgin died, or when the cross or
-the ikon was brought, or when some fanatic beheld a vision, etc.) he
-should array himself in his best clothes, go to church, buy candles,
-and set them up before the ikons of the saints, give to the priest
-memoranda bearing the names of the dead who are to be prayed for,
-receive bread with triangular pieces cut out of it, pray repeatedly
-for the health and welfare of the Czar and bishops, as well as for
-himself and his own affairs, and then kiss the cross and the hand of
-the priest.
-
-Thus is he taught to pray; and besides this, he is also taught
-that he must perform his devotions once a year. To perform one's
-devotions means to go to church and tell one's sins to the priest,
-it being assumed that this recital of one's sins to a stranger will
-have a purifying effect on a man; then he is to swallow a spoonful
-of bread and wine, which will purify him still more. Moreover,
-men are told that if a man and woman desire to have their sexual
-relation sanctified they must come to church, put crowns of metal
-upon their heads, swallow some wine, walk three times round a table,
-accompanied by the sound of singing, and this will make their sexual
-relation holy and entirely different from any others.
-
-In daily life the observation of the following rules is enjoined:
-to eat no meat nor drink no milk on certain days, to say _Te Deums_
-and _Requiems_ on certain other days, to invite the priest to
-one's house on holidays and present him with money; to take from
-the church several times a year boards upon which are painted the
-images of the saints, and to carry them on towels through fields and
-houses. Before death a man must without fail receive a spoonful of
-bread and wine; and if there be time to be anointed with oil, that
-is still better, for it insures his welfare in the future life.
-After his death his relatives are told that, in order to save his
-soul, it is well to place in his hand a printed prayer; it is also a
-good thing to read a certain book over the dead, and for his name to
-be mentioned in church at stated times.
-
-This is what constitutes every man's religious obligation. But
-if any one wishes to take a special care of his soul, this creed
-teaches that the greatest amount of happiness may be secured in
-the next world by bequeathing money for churches and monasteries,
-thereby obliging the saints to pray for one. According to this faith
-it is also well to visit monasteries and kiss the miraculous ikons
-and the relics.
-
-These are believed to impart a peculiar holiness, strength, and
-grace; and to be near these objects, as one must be in kissing them,
-placing tapers before them, crawling under them, and repeating _Te
-Deums_ before them, greatly promotes salvation.
-
-And this is the faith called Orthodox, this is the true faith,
-the one which, under the garb of a Christian religion, has been
-energetically taught to the people for many centuries, and is
-inculcated at the present time more vigorously than ever.
-
-Let it not be said that the Orthodox teachers look upon all this as
-an ancient form of faith which it was not considered worth while
-to abolish, and that the essence of the doctrine abides elsewhere.
-This is not the truth. Throughout Russia, and lately with increased
-energy, the entire Russian clergy teaches this faith, and this
-alone. Nothing else is taught. Men may write about other doctrines
-and discuss them in the capitals, but among the hundred million
-inhabitants this, and only this, is taught. The ecclesiastics may
-discuss other doctrines, but only this is what is taught.
-
-All this--the worship of relics and shrines--is included in theology
-and the catechism; the people are carefully instructed in all this,
-theoretically and practically, by every kind of solemnity, splendor,
-authority, and violence; the people are compelled to believe in it
-all; they are hypnotized, and the faith is jealously guarded against
-any attempt to deliver them from these foolish superstitions.
-
-As I said in my book, I have during the course of many years had
-frequent opportunities to remark the ridicule and rude jests
-that have been applied to Christ's words and doctrine, and the
-ecclesiastics not only failed to condemn it, they even encouraged
-this scoffing; but let a man venture to say one disrespectful word
-of the ugly idol called the Iverskaya,[7] sacrilegiously carried
-around Moscow by intoxicated men, and a groan of indignation will
-rise from these same Orthodox ecclesiastics. In fact, it is only an
-external worship in the form of idolatry that is propagated. And
-let it not be said that the one does not exclude the other, that
-"All therefore whatsoever they bid you observe, that observe and do;
-but do not ye after their works: for they say, and do not" (Matthew
-xxiii. 3). This is said concerning the Pharisees, who fulfilled
-all the outward commands of the law, and therefore the words,
-"whatsoever they bid you observe, that observe and do," refer to
-acts of benevolence and charity; whereas the words, "do not ye after
-their works, for they say and do not," refer to their observances of
-the rites and their indifference to works of charity, and directly
-contradicts the clerical interpretation of this passage, which
-explains it as a commandment which has to do only with the rites. An
-external worship is hardly compatible with the service of charity
-and truth; one is apt to exclude the other. It was so with the
-Pharisees, and the same may be said of our professing Christians.
-
- [7] The ikon of the Virgin which stands in a chapel in the heart
- of Moscow, and which is the object of a special veneration to the
- Russians.--TR.
-
-If a man is to be saved by redemption, the sacraments, and prayer,
-good works are no longer of any value to him. It must be either the
-Sermon on the Mount or the Credo. No man can believe in both, and
-the ecclesiastics have chosen the latter. The Credo is taught and
-recited as a prayer in the churches, while the Sermon on the Mount
-is excluded even from selections from the Bible which are read in
-churches, so that the congregation never hear it, except on the days
-when the entire Bible is read. It is inevitable; the men who can
-believe that a cruel and unreasonable God had condemned humanity to
-eternal death and sacrificed his own Son, and who had destined a
-certain portion of mankind to everlasting torture, cannot believe
-in a God of love. A man who believes in God, in the Christ who is
-coming in his glory to judge and punish the dead and the living,
-cannot believe in a Christ who commands us to turn the other cheek
-to the offender, who forbids us to sit in judgment, and who bids us
-to forgive our enemies and to love them. A man who believes in the
-inspiration of the Old Testament and in the holiness of David, who
-on his deathbed ordered the murder of an old man who had offended
-him, and whom he could not kill himself because he was bound by
-an oath (1 Kings ii. 8,9), and many other horrors of a similar
-character, in which the Old Testament abounds, cannot believe in the
-moral law of Christ; a man who believes in the doctrine and sermons
-of the Church, wherein the practice of war and the penalty of death
-are reconciled with Christianity, cannot believe in the brotherhood
-of humanity.
-
-But, above all, a man who believes in salvation through faith, in
-redemption, and in the sacraments, cannot strive with all his might
-to live up to the moral precepts of Christ. A man who has been
-taught by the Church the sacrilegious doctrine that he is to be
-saved through a certain medium, and not by his own efforts, will
-surely have recourse to that medium; he will not trust to his own
-efforts, on which, he has been assured, it is sinful to rely. Every
-Church, with its doctrines of redemption and salvation, and above
-all, the Orthodox faith, with its idolatry, excludes the doctrine
-of Christ. But it is said, "This has always been the faith of the
-people, and that they will continue to hold it is proved by the
-whole history of the Russian nation. It would be wrong to deprive
-them of their traditions." Herein lies the fallacy. The people,
-it is true, did once upon a time profess something like what is at
-present professed by the Church; but besides this worship of images
-and relics, the people had always a profound moral conception of
-Christianity never possessed by the Church, and only met with in
-her noblest representatives; but the people, in the better class,
-and in spite of the obstacles raised by the State and the Church,
-have long since abandoned the cruder phase of belief, a fact that
-is proved by the rationalistic sects that are beginning to spring
-up on every side, sects that Russia is filled with at the present
-day, and against which the ecclesiastics wage so hopeless a warfare.
-The people are beginning to recognize the moral, vital side of
-Christianity more and more plainly. And now the Church appears,
-failing to give them a moral support, but forcibly teaching old-time
-paganism,--the Church, with its immutable formulas, endeavoring to
-thrust men back into the gloom from which they are struggling so
-earnestly to escape.
-
-The ecclesiastics say: "We are teaching nothing new; it is the same
-faith which the people already hold, only we teach it in a more
-perfect manner." It is like binding a chicken and trying to put it
-back into the shell from which it came. I have often been struck by
-the spectacle, which would be simply absurd were not its results so
-terrible, of men traveling, so to speak, in a circle, deceived and
-deceiving, but wholly unable to escape from the charmed circle.
-
-The first question, the first doubt, that enters the head of
-every Russian when he begins to reason, is a suspicion of the
-miraculous ikons, and principally of the relics: is it true that
-they are incorruptible, and that they perform miracles? Hundreds
-and thousands of men ask these questions, and are at a loss for an
-answer, especially since bishops and metropolitans and other eminent
-persons kiss both the relics and the miraculous images. Ask the
-bishops and other personages of importance why they do this, and
-they will tell you that they do it in order to impress the masses,
-and the masses do it because the bishops and other magnates do it.
-
-The activity of the Russian Church, despite the veneer of modernity
-and the scientific and spiritual standards which its members have
-begun to establish by their essays, their religious reviews, and
-their sermons, consists not only in encouraging the people in a
-coarse and grotesque idolatry, but in strengthening and promulgating
-superstition and religious ignorance, and in endeavoring to destroy
-the vital conception of Christianity that exists in the people side
-by side with this idolatry.
-
-I remember being once in a book-shop of the monastery of Optinae
-Desert while an old peasant was selecting spiritual reading for
-his educated grandson. The monk was offering him a description of
-relics, of holy days, of miraculous ikons, the Book of Psalms, and
-the like. I asked the old man if he had a Bible. "No," he replied.
-"Give him a Russian Bible," I said to the monk. "We don't sell that
-to them," said the monk. This, in short, is the activity of our
-Church.
-
-But the European or American reader may say, "That only happens in
-barbaric Russia," and the remark will be correct, but only so far as
-it applies to the government, which supports the Church to maintain
-in our land its stupefying and demoralizing influence.
-
-It is true that there is nowhere in Europe a government so despotic,
-or that is in more perfect accord with the established Church.
-Therefore in Russia the government authorities play an important
-part in demoralizing the people; but it is not true that the Russian
-Church differs from other churches in respect to its influence over
-the people.
-
-Churches are everywhere alike, and if the Catholic, Anglican, and
-Lutheran have not at their beck so submissive a government as the
-Russian, we may be sure that they would not fail to take advantage
-of it were it within their reach.
-
-The Church as a church, whether it be Catholic, Anglican, Lutheran,
-or Presbyterian, or any denomination whatsoever, inasmuch as it is
-a church, cannot help striving after the same object as the Russian
-Church--namely, to conceal the true meaning of the doctrine of
-Christ, and to substitute a meaning of its own, which imposes no
-obligations, which excludes the possibility of understanding the
-true, living doctrine of Christ, and which above all justifies the
-existence of a priesthood living at the expense of the people.
-
-Do we not find Catholicism with its prohibition against reading the
-Bible, and with its demand for implicit obedience to the clergy
-and the infallible Pope? Wherein does Catholicism differ in its
-preaching from the Russian Church? The same external worship, the
-same relics, miracles, and statues, miracle-performing Madonnas
-and processions; the same vague and mystical utterances concerning
-Christianity in books and sermons, and all in support of the
-grossest idolatry.
-
-And is it not the same in the Anglican or in the Lutheran, or in any
-other Protestant denomination with an established form of church?
-
-The same demands that the congregation shall acknowledge a belief in
-dogmas which were defined in the fourth century, and which have lost
-all meaning for the men of our time; the same call for idol worship,
-if not of relics or ikons, at least of the Sabbath and the letter
-of the Bible; the same endeavor to conceal the real requirement of
-Christianity and the substitution of exterior rites, and "cant," as
-the English so happily define the tendency which finds such sway
-among them.
-
-This activity is more noticeable in Protestantism, because that
-creed has not even the excuse of antiquity. And is not the same
-thing going on in the present "Revivalism," a regenerated Calvinism,
-which has given birth to the Salvation Army? Inasmuch as the
-attitude of all ecclesiastical dogmas toward the doctrine of Christ
-is very much the same, so are their methods of a similar character.
-
-The attitude they have taken obliges them to make every effort to
-conceal the doctrine of that Christ in whose name they speak.
-
-The disparity between ecclesiastical creeds and the doctrine of
-Christ is so great that a special effort is required to keep mankind
-in ignorance. Indeed, one needs but to consider the position of
-any adult, I do not say educated, but one who has assimilated
-superficially the current notions concerning geology, physics,
-chemistry, cosmography, and history, when for the first time he
-actually reflects on the faith impressed upon him in his childhood,
-and maintained by the Church, concerning the creation of the world
-in six days, the appearance of light before the sun was created, the
-story of Noah's ark and the animals preserved in it,--concerning
-Jesus and his divine origin as the Son of God who created all things
-before time existed; that this God came down to earth because of
-Adam's sin; that he rose from the dead, ascended into heaven, and
-sits on the right hand of the Father; that he will come in the
-clouds to judge the living and the dead, etc.
-
-All these ideas evolved by the men of the fourth century, which had
-for them a certain meaning, have none whatever for us. The present
-generation may repeat these words, but it can never believe in them,
-because the statements that God dwells in heaven, that the heavens
-opened and a voice was heard to utter certain words, that Christ
-arose from the dead and ascended into heaven, that he will come
-again from some place in the clouds, etc., have no meaning for us.
-
-It was possible for a man who believed that heaven was a substantial
-arch of limited dimensions to believe or to disbelieve that God
-created it, that it opened, and that Christ ascended thither,--but
-for us there is no sense in such ideas. Men of our time can only
-affirm that it is one's duty to believe all this,--which they do.
-But they cannot really believe in what has no meaning in it for them.
-
-But if all these utterances are supposed to have an allegorical
-signification and are only intended as similes, then we know in the
-first place that all the churchmen will not agree to this--on the
-contrary, the majority insist on taking the Scriptures literally;
-and in the second place, that these interpretations differ greatly,
-and are supported by no reliable authority.
-
-And even if a man wished to believe the doctrine of the Church as
-it is taught, the increase of culture, the reading of the Bible,
-and the intercourse among the members of different churches, form a
-greater and more insurmountable obstacle to belief.
-
-Nowadays a man has but to buy the Bible for threepence, and to read
-the simple, indisputable words of Christ to the Samaritan woman,
-that the Father seeketh worshipers neither in Jerusalem nor in this
-or that mountain, but worshipers in spirit and truth; or the words,
-that a Christian should pray not like the heathen in the temples,
-nor at the corners of streets, but in the secrecy of his closet; or,
-that a disciple of Christ may call no one father or mother,--one has
-but to read these words to be indubitably convinced that priests who
-call themselves teachers in opposition to the teaching of Christ,
-and dispute among themselves, cannot be authorities, and that that
-which they teach is not Christian.
-
-But this is not enough. If the modern man were to go on believing
-in miracles and never read the Bible, the fellowship with men of
-other creeds and professions, which is so much a matter of course in
-these days, will compel him to question the truth of his religion.
-It was natural enough for a man who had never met a believer in a
-creed different from his own, to think that his was the only faith;
-but an intelligent man has but to encounter--and that is an everyday
-occurrence--good and bad men of all creeds, who criticize each
-other's beliefs, in order to question the truth of his own religion.
-Now, only a man either totally ignorant or indifferent to the
-problems of life as dealt with by religion can remain in the faith
-of the Church.
-
-What shrewdness is needed, and what efforts must the churches make,
-in order to go on, in the face of all these faith-destroying
-influences, building temples, saying masses, preaching, instructing,
-converting, and above all receiving for this the large compensations
-which all those priests, pastors, stewards, superintendents, abbots,
-archdeacons, bishops, and archbishops receive!
-
-A special and supernatural effort is called for, and to this the
-Church responds, exerting herself more and more. In Russia, besides
-many other measures, they employ a simple, rude violence, by virtue
-of the power invested in the Church. People who shrink from an
-outward observance of faith and who do not conceal the fact are
-simply punished or deprived of their civil rights; and to those who
-strictly comply with the rites, privileges and rewards are granted.
-
-So much for the Orthodoxy; but every church, without exception,
-makes the most of the means at its disposal, and hypnotism is one of
-the chief agents.
-
-Every art, from architecture to poetry, is enlisted, in order to
-move and intoxicate the human soul. This hypnotic and mesmerizing
-influence is markedly displayed in the activity of the Salvation
-Army, which employs novel, and to us abnormal, methods, such, for
-instance, as drums, horns, singing, banners, uniforms, processions,
-dancing, outbursts of tears, and dramatic gestures.
-
-Still, these methods are startling simply because of their novelty.
-Is not the familiar form of worship in cathedrals, with their
-peculiar illumination, the golden pomp, the candles, choirs, organs,
-bells, vestments, the weeping preachers, etc., of a similar nature?
-And yet, however powerful may be the influence of this hypnotism,
-it is by no means the chief or most harmful form which the activity
-of the Church assumes. Its most malign activity is that which is
-devoted to deceiving the children--those little ones of whom Jesus
-has said, "Woe be unto him who tempts the least of these." From
-the earliest awakening of a child's intelligence he is deceived
-and formally taught that which his teachers no longer believe
-themselves, and this goes on until the delusion becomes from habit
-a part of his nature. A child is systematically deceived concerning
-the most important affair in life, and when this deception has
-become so incorporated with his being that it is difficult to uproot
-it, then the world of science and reality is opened to him--a world
-that is wholly at variance with the faith which he has imbibed from
-his teachers--and he is left to reconcile those contradictions as
-best he may.
-
-Given the problem of how to muddle a man so that he will be unable
-to discriminate between two antagonistic conceptions that have been
-taught to him since his childhood, one could never have devised
-anything more effectual than the education of every young man in our
-so-called Christian society.
-
-Shocking as it is to contemplate the work of the churches among men,
-still, if we consider their position, we shall see that they cannot
-act otherwise. They are face to face with a dilemma: the Sermon on
-the Mount or the Nicene creed; the one excludes the other. If a man
-sincerely believes the Sermon on the Mount, the Nicene creed must
-inevitably lose all its meaning for him, and the same would hold
-true as regards the Church and its representatives; but if a man
-accepts the Nicene creed, that is to say, the Church, or those who
-call themselves its representatives, then he will find no use for
-the Sermon on the Mount. Hence it is incumbent on the churches to
-make every effort to obscure the meaning of the Sermon on the Mount
-and to endeavor to draw the people toward them. It is only due to
-their intense activity in that direction that the influence of the
-churches has not decreased. Let the Church but pause in this effort
-to influence the masses by hypnotizing men and deceiving children
-for ever so short a time, and men will comprehend the doctrine
-of Christ, and this comprehension will do away with churches and
-their influence. Therefore the churches cease not for one moment
-their compulsory activity through the hypnotism of adults and the
-deception of children. And it is this activity of the churches that
-gives people a false conception of Christ's doctrine, and prevents
-the majority of men, the so-called believers, from understanding it.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV
-
-MISCONCEPTION OF CHRISTIANITY BY SCIENTISTS
-
- The relation of scientists to religions in general--What
- are religions, and their significance to human life--Three
- conceptions of life--The Christian doctrine is the expression of
- the divine life-conception--The misconception of Christianity
- by scientists who study its outward manifestations due to
- the fact that they consider it from the standpoint of the
- social life-conception--Opinion resulting therefrom, that
- the teaching of Christ is exaggerated and unpractical--The
- expression of the life-conception of the gospel--Erroneous
- judgments of scientists concerning Christianity are based upon
- the assurance that they possess an infallible criterion of
- knowledge--Hence arise two misapprehensions in regard to the
- Christian doctrine--The first misapprehension concerning the
- impracticability of the doctrine arises from the fact that the
- Christian doctrine presents a conduct of life different from
- that of the social life-conception--Christianity offers not a
- rule, but an ideal--Christ adds the consciousness of a divine
- power to that of an animal power--Christianity seems to exclude
- the possibility of life only when the indication of the ideal
- is taken for the rule--An ideal cannot be belittled--According
- to the doctrine of Christ, life is movement--The ideal and
- the commandments--The second misapprehension arises from the
- attempt to replace the love of God and His service by the love
- and service of humanity--Scientists believe that Christianity
- and their doctrine concerning the service of humanity are
- identical--The doctrine of love toward humanity has for its
- foundation the social life-conception--The love for humanity
- which springs logically from love for the individual has no
- meaning, because humanity is a fiction--Christian love springing
- from the love of God has for its object not only humanity but
- the whole world--Christianity teaches a life in accordance with
- its divine nature--It indicates that the essence of a man's soul
- is love, and that its good is obtained from its love of God,
- whom he feels to be within him through love.
-
-
-Let us now turn our attention to another fallacious conception of
-Christianity, which is antagonistic to its actual principles,--the
-scientific conception.
-
-The Christianity of the churchmen is something which they have
-evolved for themselves, and which they believe to be the only true
-interpretation of Christian doctrine.
-
-The scientists take the professions of faith of the various
-churches for Christianity, and assuming that these dogmas embody
-an exhaustive definition of Christian doctrine, they affirm that
-Christianity has had its day.
-
-One needs but to take into consideration the important part
-which all religions, and especially Christianity, have played in
-the life of man, and the significance which science attaches to
-them, to see at once how impossible it would be to obtain any just
-apprehension of Christian doctrine through these conceptions. As
-each individual must possess certain impressions in regard to the
-meaning of his life, and, though often unconsciously, conform his
-conduct thereunto, so mankind in the aggregate, or groups of men
-living under the same conditions, must likewise possess a conception
-of the meaning of their common life and its consequent activities.
-As an individual passing from one period of life to another
-inevitably changes his ideas, the point of view of a grown-up man
-differs from that of a child, so also mankind in the aggregate--the
-nation--inevitably, and in conformity with its age, changes its
-views of life and the activity that springs therefrom.
-
-The difference in this respect between an individual and mankind
-in general lies in the fact that while the individual, in forming
-his conception of the significance and responsibilities of that new
-period of life upon which he is about to enter, may avail himself of
-the advice of his predecessors who have already passed that stage,
-mankind can have no such advantage, because it is advancing along an
-unbeaten track and there is no one of whom it can ask for the clue
-to the mystery of life, or how it shall demean itself under these
-unfamiliar conditions to which no nation has ever yet been subjected.
-
-The married man with a family of children will not continue to
-view life as he did when he was a child; neither is it possible
-for mankind, with the many changes that have taken place,--the
-density of the population, the constant intercourse of nations,
-the perfected means of combating the forces of nature, and the
-increase of knowledge generally,--to view the life of the present
-day in the light of the past; hence it becomes necessary to evolve
-a life-conception from which activities corresponding with a new
-system which is to be established will naturally develop.
-
-And this need is supplied by that peculiar capacity of the race for
-producing men able to impart a new significance to human life,--a
-significance developing a different set of activities.
-
-The birth of the life-conception, which always takes place when
-mankind enters upon new conditions and its subsequent activities, is
-what we call religion.
-
-Therefore, in the first place, religion is not, as science regards
-it, a phenomenon which formerly traveled hand in hand with the
-development of mankind, and which has since been left behind; on the
-contrary, it is a phenomenon inherent to human existence itself, and
-never more distinctly manifested than at the present day. In the
-second place, religion defines future rather than past activities;
-therefore it is evident that an investigation of the phenomena of
-the past can by no means touch the essence of religion.
-
-The longing to typify the forces of nature is no more the essence
-of religion than is the fear of those same forces, or the need of
-the miraculous and its outward manifestations, as the scientists
-suppose. The essence of religion lies in the power of man to
-foreknow and to point out the way in which mankind must walk. It is
-a definition of a new life which will give birth to new activities.
-
-This faculty of foreknowledge concerning the destiny of humanity
-is more or less common, no doubt, to all people; still from time
-to time a man appears in whom the faculty has reached a higher
-development, and these men have the power clearly and distinctly
-to formulate that which is vaguely conceived by all men, thus
-instituting a new life-conception from which is to flow an unwonted
-activity, whose results will endure for centuries to come. Thus far
-there have been three of these life-conceptions; two of them belong
-to a bygone era, while the third is of our own time and is called
-Christianity. It is not that we have merged the various conceptions
-of the significance of life into three arbitrary divisions, but that
-there really have been but three distinct conceptions, by which the
-actions of mankind have been influenced, and save through these we
-have no means of comprehending life.
-
-These three life-conceptions are--firstly, the individual or animal;
-secondly, the social or pagan; and thirdly, the universal or divine.
-
-According to the first of these, a man's life is his personality,
-and that only, and his life's object is to gratify his desires.
-According to the second, his life is not limited to his own
-personality; it includes the sum and continuity of many
-personalities,--of the family, of the race, and of the State,
-and his life's object is to gratify the will of the communities
-of individuals. And according to the third, his life is confined
-neither to his personality nor to that of the aggregate of
-individuals, but finds its significance in the eternal source of all
-life,--in God Himself.
-
-These three life-conceptions serve as the basis for the religions of
-every age.
-
-The savage sees life only through the medium of his own desires. He
-cares for nothing but himself, and for him the highest good is the
-full satisfaction of his own passions. The incentive of his life is
-personal enjoyment. His religion consists of attempts to propitiate
-the gods in his favor, and of the worship of imaginary deities, who
-exist only for their own personal ends.
-
-A member of the pagan world recognizes life as something concerning
-others besides himself; he sees it as concerning an aggregate of
-individuals,--the family, the race, the nation, the State, and is
-ready to sacrifice himself for the aggregate. The incentive of his
-life is glory. His religion consists in honoring the chiefs of his
-race, his progenitors, his ancestors, his sovereigns, and in the
-worship of those gods who are the exclusive patrons of his family,
-his tribe, his race, and his State.[8]
-
- [8] The unity of this social and pagan life-conception is by no
- means destroyed by the numerous and varied systems which grow out of
- it, such as the existence of the family, of the nation, and of the
- State, and even of that life of humanity conceived according to the
- theory of the Positivists.
-
- These multifarious systems of life are based upon the fundamental
- idea of the insignificance of the individual, and the assurance that
- the meaning of life is to be sought and found only in humanity,
- taken in its broadest sense.--AUTHOR.
-
-The man who possesses the divine life-conception neither looks upon
-life as centered in his own personality nor in that of mankind at
-large, whether family, tribe, race, nation, or State; but rather
-does he conceive of it as taking its rise in the eternal life of
-God, and to fulfil His will he is ready to sacrifice his personal,
-family, and social well-being. Love is the impelling motive of his
-life, and his religion is the worship, in deed and in truth, of the
-beginning of all things,--of God Himself.
-
-History is but the transcript of the gradual transition from the
-animal life-conception of the individual to the social, and from
-the social to the divine. The history of the ancients for thousands
-of centuries, culminating in that of Rome, is the history of the
-evolution from the animal life-conception of the individual to that
-of society and the State. From the advent of Christianity and the
-fall of Imperial Rome we have the history of that change which is
-still going on from the social to the divine life-conception.
-
-The latter, together with the Christian doctrine which is based
-upon it, and by which our lives are shaped, and our activities,
-both practical and scientific, are quickened, is regarded by the
-pseudo-scientists, who judge it only by its outward signs, as
-something outlived, which has lost all meaning for us.
-
-According to scientists this doctrine is embodied in the dogmas
-of the Trinity, the Redemption, the miracles, the Church and its
-sacraments, etc., and is only one of the many religions which have
-arisen during the progress of human history, and now, having played
-its part and outlived its time, is vanishing before the dawn of
-science and true enlightenment.
-
-The grossest of human errors spring in most cases from the fact
-that men who stand on a low intellectual plane, when they encounter
-phenomena of a higher order, instead of trying to rise to the
-higher plane from which these phenomena may be fitly regarded, and
-making an effort to understand them, judge them by their own low
-standard, and the less they know of what they speak, the more bold
-and determined are their judgments.
-
-Most scientists, who treat of the moral doctrine of Christ from the
-lower standpoint of a social life-conception, regard it as nothing
-more than an amalgam without cohesion of the asceticism of India
-with the doctrine of the Stoics and Neo-Platonists, and of vague
-anti-social dreams, devoid of all serious meaning in these latter
-days; they simply see its outward manifestation in the form of
-dogmas in Catholicism, in Protestantism, and in its struggle with
-the powers of the world. Interpreting the design of Christianity
-from its outward aspects, they are like unto deaf men, who judge
-of the meaning and excellence of music by the movements of the
-musicians.
-
-Hence it is that all such men, from Comte and Strauss to Spencer
-and Renan, not understanding the purport of Christ's words, knowing
-nothing whatever of their intention, ignorant of the question
-to which they serve as an answer, and taking no pains to learn
-it,--such men, if they are inimical to Christianity, utterly deny
-the sense of the doctrine; but if they are leniently inclined, then,
-from the height of their superior wisdom, they amend it, taking for
-granted that Christ would have said what they think He meant, had He
-known how to express himself. They treat His doctrine just as men
-of overweening self-conceit treat their inferiors, correcting them
-in their speech: "You mean so and so." And the spirit of emendation
-is always such as to reduce the doctrine of the higher, the divine
-life-conception, to that of the lower and the social conception.
-
-It is usually admitted that the moral teaching of Christianity
-is good but exaggerated; that in order to make it perfect, its
-hyperboles, which are incompatible with our present mode of life,
-should be discarded. "A doctrine which requires so much that is
-impracticable is more hurtful than one which demands of men only
-what is in proportion to their strength." Thus declare the learned
-interpreters of Christianity, thus unwittingly reiterating the
-assertion of those who misunderstood the Christian doctrine long
-years ago, and crucified the Master.
-
-The Hebrew law, "An eye for an eye, and a tooth for a tooth," the
-retributive justice known to mankind thousands of years ago, seems
-far better suited to the court of contemporary scientists than the
-law of love which Christ preached 1800 years ago, and which was to
-replace this identical law of justice.
-
-It would seem that every action of those men who accepted the
-teaching of Christ in its literal sense, and lived up to it, all the
-words and deeds of sincere Christians, and all the agencies which,
-under the guise of socialism and communism, are now transforming
-the world, are merely exaggeration, not worth discussing. Nations
-which have lived under Christian influences, and which are now
-represented by their advanced thinkers, the scientists, have
-arrived at the conclusion that the Christian doctrine is a matter
-of dogma; that its practical teaching has been a mistake and an
-exaggeration, inimical to the just requirements of morality that
-are in accord with human nature, and that the very doctrine which
-Christ repudiated, and for which he substituted a dogma of his own,
-is far better suited to us. The scientist considers the commandment
-of non-resistance to evil by violence an exaggeration, and even an
-act of folly. It would be far better, in his opinion, to reject it,
-never dreaming that it is not the doctrine of Christ which he is
-controverting, but something which he assumes to be the doctrine in
-question. He does not realize when he says that the commandment of
-non-resistance in the doctrine of Christ is an exaggeration, that
-he is like one who, teaching the theory of the circle, declares
-that the equality of the radii is an exaggeration. It is just as
-if one who has no idea of the form of a circle were to affirm that
-the law which requires that each point of its circumference shall
-be equidistant from its center, is an exaggeration. As a suggestion
-to reject or modify the proposition concerning the equality of the
-radii of a circle signifies an ignorance in regard to the circle
-itself, so also does the idea of rejecting or modifying, in the
-practical teaching of Christ, the commandment of non-resistance to
-evil by violence signify a misunderstanding of the doctrine.
-
-And those who entertain these views do not really comprehend the
-doctrine. They do not understand that it is the unfolding of a new
-conception of life, corresponding to the new phase of existence
-upon which the world entered 1800 years ago, and a definition of
-the new activity to which it gave birth. Either they do not believe
-that Christ said what He meant to say, or that what is found in the
-Sermon on the Mount and elsewhere He said either from His enthusiasm
-or lack of wisdom and simplicity of character.[9]
-
- [9] Here, for example, is a characteristic expression of opinion
- in the American periodical, _The Arena,_ for November, 1890,
- from an article entitled "New Basis of Church Life." Discussing
- the significance of the Sermon on the Mount, and especially the
- doctrine of non-resistance to evil, the author, having no reason for
- obscuring its meaning as the ecclesiastics do, says:--
-
- "Devout common sense must gradually come to look upon Christ
- as a philanthropic teacher, who, like every enthusiast who
- ever taught, went to an Utopian extreme in his own philosophy.
- Every great agitation for the betterment of the world has been
- led by men who beheld their own mission with such absorbing
- intensity that they could see little else. It is no reproach to
- Christ to say that he had the typical reformer's temperament;
- that his precepts cannot be literally accepted as a complete
- philosophy of life; and that men are to analyze them reverently,
- but, at the same time, in the spirit of ordinary truth-seeking
- criticism," etc.
-
- "Christ did in fact preach absolute communism and anarchy; but,"
- and so on. Christ would have been glad to have expressed Himself
- in more fitting terms, but He did not possess our critical
- faculty in the use of exact definitions, therefore we will set
- Him right. All He said concerning meekness, sacrifice, poverty,
- and of taking no thought for the morrow, were but haphazard
- utterances, because of His ignorance of scientific phraseology.
-
- Matt. vi. 25-34.--25. _Therefore I say unto you, Take no thought
- for your life, what ye shall eat, or what ye shall drink; nor
- yet for your body, what ye shall put on. Is not the life more
- than meat, and the body than raiment?_
-
- 26. _Behold the fowls of the air: for they sow not, neither
- do they reap, nor gather into barns; yet your heavenly Father
- feedeth them. Are ye not much better than they?_
-
- 27. _Which of you by taking thought can add one cubit unto his
- stature?_
-
- 28. _And why take ye thought for raiment? Consider the lilies of
- the field, how they grow; they toil not, neither do they spin:_
-
- 29. _And yet I say unto you, That even Solomon in all his glory
- was not arrayed like one of these._
-
- 30. _Wherefore, if God so clothe the grass of the field, which
- to-day is, and to-morrow is cast into the oven, shall he not
- much more clothe you, O ye of little faith?_
-
- 31. _Therefore take no thought, saying, What shall we eat? or,
- What shall we drink? or, Wherewithal shall we be clothed?_
-
- 32. _(For after all these things do the Gentiles seek:) for your
- heavenly Father knoweth that ye have need of all these things._
-
- 33. _But seek ye first the kingdom of God, and his
- righteousness; and all these things shall be added unto you._
-
- 34. _Take therefore no thought for the morrow: for the morrow
- shall take thought for the things of itself. Sufficient unto the
- day is the evil thereof._
-
- Luke xii. 33-34.--33. _Sell that ye have, and give alms; provide
- yourselves bags which wax not old, a treasure in the heavens
- that faileth not, where no thief approacheth, neither moth
- corrupteth._
-
- 34. _For where your treasure is, there will your heart be also._
-
- Matt. xix. 21.--"_Go and sell that thou hast, and give to the
- poor, and thou shalt have treasure in heaven: and come and
- follow me._"
-
- Mark viii. 34.--"_Whosoever will come after me, let him deny
- himself, and take up his cross, and follow me._"
-
- John iv. 34.--"_My meat is to do the will of him that sent me,
- and to finish his work._"
-
- Luke xxii. 42.--"_Not my will, but thine, be done._"
-
- _Not what I wish, but what Thou wishest, and not as I wish, but
- as Thou wishest. Life consists in doing not your own will, but
- the will of God._
-
-All these doctrines are regarded by men who adhere to the lower
-life-conception as expressions of enthusiastic exaltation, with no
-special reference to daily life. And yet these doctrines are no less
-the natural outcome of the Christian life-conception than is the
-idea of giving one's labor for the common good, or of sacrificing
-one's life to defend one's country, the outcome of the social
-life-conception.
-
-As the believer in the social life-conception says to the savage:
-"Rouse yourself! Consider what you are doing! The life that man
-lives for himself alone cannot be the true one, for life is fleeting
-and full of woe. It is the life of the community at large, the
-race, the family, the State, that endures: therefore a man must
-sacrifice his personality for the life of the family and the State;"
-Christianity in like manner says unto him who believes in a social
-life-conception of the community: "Repent, +metanoeta+, that
-is, arouse yourself, consider your ways, else shall you perish. Know
-you that this bodily, animal life is born to-day and dies to-morrow;
-nothing can assure its permanence, no outward expedients, no system
-whatsoever can give it stability. Consider your ways and learn that
-the life you live is not the real life, that neither family, social,
-nor State life will save you from perdition. An honest rational
-life is possible for man provided that he be, not a participant
-of the life of the family or life of the State, but a partaker of
-the source of all life--that of the Father Himself; then his life
-is united to the life of the Father." Such is beyond a doubt the
-meaning of the Christian conception of life, clearly set forth in
-every maxim of the New Testament.
-
-One may not share such a conception of life, one may deny it, or
-prove it to be inaccurate and fallacious; but no man can possibly
-judge a doctrine without having first made himself familiar with the
-life-conception which forms its basis; and still more impossible is
-it to judge a lofty subject from a low standpoint, to pronounce upon
-the belfry from a knowledge of the foundation. Yet this is precisely
-what is done by contemporary scientists. And this is because they
-are laboring under an error similar to that of the clergy, in
-believing that they possess such infallible methods of studying
-their subject that, if they but bring their so-called scientific
-methods to bear upon the subject under consideration, there can be
-no doubt as to the accuracy of their conclusion.
-
-The possession of a guide to knowledge, which they believe to be
-infallible, is really the chief obstacle to the comprehension of
-the Christian doctrine among unbelievers and so-called scientists,
-by whose opinions the great majority of unbelievers, the so-called
-educated classes, are guided. All the errors of the scientists
-concerning Christianity, and especially two strange misapprehensions
-that avail more than anything else to blind men to its real
-signification, arise therefrom.
-
-One of these misapprehensions is that the doctrine of a Christian
-life not being practical, it remains optional with the individual
-whether he take it for his guide or no; and if he chooses to do
-so, it may then be modified to suit the exigencies of our social
-life. The second misapprehension is that the Christian doctrine of
-love of God, and therefore of the service due to Him, is a mystical
-requirement, neither clearly expressed nor offering any well-defined
-object of love: consequently the more definite and intelligible
-doctrine of love of man and of the service of humanity may be
-substituted for it.
-
-The first misapprehension which relates to the impracticability of
-the Christian doctrine arises from the fact that men who believe in
-the social life-conception, not comprehending the rule obeyed by
-men who hold the Christian doctrine, and mistaking the Christian
-standard of perfection for the guiding principle of life, believe
-and declare that it is impossible to follow the teaching of Christ,
-because implicit obedience to this doctrine would end by destroying
-life. "If man were to fulfil the precepts of Christ, he would
-destroy his life; and if all the world were to fulfil them, the
-human race would soon become extinct. If you were to take no thought
-for the morrow, neither of what ye shall eat or drink, nor what
-ye shall put on; if one may not resist evil by violence or defend
-one's life, nor even give up one's life for his friend; if one is to
-preserve absolute chastity, mankind could not long exist;" so they
-believe and affirm.
-
-And they are right, if one takes the incentives to perfection
-offered by the teaching of Christ as laws which each man must obey,
-just as, for instance, in the social order every man must pay his
-taxes, and some must serve in the courts of law, and so on.
-
-The misapprehension consists in overlooking the fact that the
-doctrine of Christ, and the doctrine formulated by a lower
-life-conception, guide men in very different ways. The doctrines of
-the social life-conception guide men in fulfilling the requirements
-of the law. The doctrine of Christ guides men by manifesting the
-infinite perfection of the Heavenly Father, to which it is natural
-for every man to aspire, whatever may be his shortcomings.
-
-The misconception of those who judge the Christian doctrine by the
-standard of the state or civil doctrine is this,--that they imagine
-that the perfection of which Christ speaks may be attained in this
-life, and ask themselves just as they would ask concerning some law
-of the State, what will happen when all this shall be fulfilled?
-This hypothesis is fallacious, because the perfection indicated
-by Christianity is infinite and can never be attained; and Christ
-promulgates his doctrine, knowing that although absolute perfection
-will never be attained, yet the aspiration toward it will ever
-contribute to the welfare of mankind, that this welfare may by this
-means be everlastingly increased.
-
-Christ is not teaching angels, but men who live and move in an
-animal life, and whose impulses are of an animal nature. And to
-this animal impulse Christ, so to speak, adds another force by
-communicating to man a sense of the divine perfection, guiding the
-current of life between these two forces.
-
-To take it for granted that human life is to follow the direction
-indicated by Christ would be like expecting the boatman, who,
-crossing a swift river, steers almost directly against the current,
-to float in that direction.
-
-Christ recognizes the fact that a parallelogram has two sides,
-and that a man's life is controlled by two indestructible forces:
-his animal nature and his consciousness of a filial relationship
-to God. Disregarding the factor of the animal life, which never
-looses its hold, and is beyond man's control, Christ speaks of the
-divine consciousness, urging man to its fuller recognition, its
-complete emancipation from all that fetters it, and to its utmost
-development.
-
-Man's true life, according to the precepts of Christ, is only to
-be found in this emancipation and in the growth of the divine
-consciousness. According to the old dispensation, a true life meant
-the fulfilment of the precepts of the law; but according to Christ,
-it means the closest approach to the divine perfection which has
-been manifested to every man, and which every man recognizes,--a
-closer and closer union of his will to the will of God; a union
-which every man is striving to attain, and which would utterly
-destroy the life we now lead.
-
-God's perfection is the asymptote of human life, toward which it is
-forever aspiring and drawing nearer, although it can only reach its
-goal in the infinite.
-
-It is only when men mistake the suggestion of an ideal for a rule
-of conduct that the Christian doctrine seems at odds with life.
-Indeed, the reverse is true, for it is by the doctrine of Christ,
-and that alone, that a true life is rendered possible. "It is a
-mistake to require too much," men usually say, when discussing the
-demands of the Christian religion. "One ought not to be required
-to take no thought for the morrow, as the Bible teaches, but of
-course one should not be over-anxious; one cannot give all that he
-possesses to the poor, still he should bestow a certain portion of
-his goods in charity; one ought not to remain unmarried, but let him
-avoid a dissolute life; one need not renounce his wife and children,
-although one must not idolize them."
-
-These arguments are equivalent to telling a man who is crossing a
-swift river and steering his boat against the current, that no one
-can cross a river by steering against the current, but that he must
-direct his boat in a straight line toward the point he wishes to
-reach.
-
-The doctrine of Christ differs from former doctrines in that it
-influences men, not by outward observances, but by the interior
-consciousness that divine perfection may be attained.
-
-It is this illimitable and divine perfection that absorbs the soul
-of man, not restricted laws of justice and philanthropy. It needs
-but the aspiration toward this divine perfection to impel the
-course of human life from the animal to the divine, so far as may be
-humanly possible.
-
-In order to land at any given point one must steer beyond it. To
-lower the standard of an ideal means not only to lessen the chances
-of attaining perfection, but to destroy the ideal itself. The
-ideal that influences mankind is not an ingenious invention; it is
-something that dwells in the soul of each individual. It is this
-ideal of utter and infinite perfection that excites men and urges
-them to action. A possible degree of perfection would have no appeal
-to the souls of men.
-
-It is because the doctrine of Christ requires illimitable
-perfection, that is to say, the blending of the divine essence,
-which is in each man's soul, with the will of God, the union of
-the Son with the Father, that it has authority. It is only the
-emancipation of the Son of God, who dwells with each one of us, from
-the animal element within us, and the drawing near to the Father,
-that can, in the Christian sense of the word, be called life.
-
-The presence of the animal element in man is not enough of itself to
-constitute human life. Neither is a spiritual life, which is guided
-only by the will of God, a human life. A true human life is composed
-of an animal and of a spiritual life united to the will of God, and
-the nearer this component life approaches to the life of God, the
-more it has life.
-
-According to the Christian doctrine, life is a condition of progress
-toward the perfection of God; hence no one condition can be either
-higher or lower than another, because each is in itself a certain
-stage in human progress toward the unattainable perfection, and
-therefore of equal importance with all the others. Any spiritual
-quickening, according to this doctrine, is simply an accelerated
-movement toward perfection. Therefore the impulse of Zacchaeus the
-publican, of the adulteress, and the thief on the cross, show forth
-a higher order of life than does the passive righteousness of the
-Pharisee. This doctrine, therefore, can never be enforced by
-obligatory laws. The man who, from a lower plane, lives up to the
-doctrine he professes, ever advancing toward perfection, leads a
-higher life than one who may perhaps stand on a superior plane of
-morality, but who is making no progress toward perfection.
-
-Thus the stray lamb is dearer to the Father than those which are in
-the fold; the prodigal returned, the coin that was lost and is found
-again, more highly prized than those that never were lost.
-
-Since the fulfilment of this doctrine is an impulse from self toward
-God, it is evident that there can be no fixed laws for its movement.
-It may spring from any degree of perfection or of imperfection; the
-fulfilment of rules and fulfilment of the doctrine are by no means
-synonymous; there could be no rules or obligatory laws for its
-fulfilment.
-
-The difference between social laws and the doctrine of Christ
-is the natural result of the radical dissimilarity between the
-doctrine of Christ and those earlier doctrines which had their
-source in a social life-conception. The latter are for the most
-part positive, enjoining certain acts, by the performance of which
-men are to be justified and made righteous, whereas the Christian
-precepts (the precept of love is not a commandment in the strict
-sense of the word, but the expression of the very essence of the
-doctrine), the five commandments of the Sermon on the Mount, are all
-negative, only meant to show men who have reached a certain degree
-of development what they must avoid. These commandments are, so to
-speak, mile-stones on the infinite road to perfection, toward which
-humanity is struggling; they mark the degrees of perfection which it
-is possible for it to attain at a certain period of its development.
-
-In the Sermon on the Mount Christ expressed the eternal ideal to
-which mankind instinctively aspires, showing at the same time the
-point of perfection to which human nature in its present stage may
-attain.
-
-The ideal is to bear no malice, excite no ill-will, and to love all
-men. The commandment which forbids us to offend our neighbor is one
-which a man who is striving to attain this ideal must not do less
-than obey. And this is the first commandment.
-
-The ideal is perfect chastity in thought, no less than in deed; and
-the commandment which enjoins purity in married life, forbidding
-adultery, is one which every man who is striving to attain this
-ideal must not do less than obey. And this is the second commandment.
-
-The ideal is to take no thought for the morrow, to live in the
-present, and the commandment, the fulfilment of which is the point
-beneath which we must not fall, is against taking oath or making
-promises for the future. Such is the third commandment.
-
-The ideal--to use no violence whatsoever--shows us that we must
-return good for evil, endure injuries with patience, and give up the
-cloak to him who has taken the coat. Such is the fourth commandment.
-
-The ideal is to love your enemies, to do good to them that
-despitefully use you. In order to keep the spirit of this
-commandment one must at least refrain from injuring one's enemies,
-one must speak kindly of them, and treat all one's fellow-creatures
-with equal consideration. Such is the fifth commandment.
-
-All these commandments are reminders of that which we, in our
-striving for perfection, must and can avoid; reminders, too, that we
-must labor now to acquire by degrees habits of self-restraint, until
-such habits become second nature. But these commandments, far from
-exhausting the doctrine, do not by any means cover it. They are but
-stepping-stones on the way to perfection, and must necessarily be
-followed by higher and still higher ones, as men pursue the course
-toward perfection.
-
-That is why a Christian doctrine would make higher demands than
-those embodied in the commandments, and not in the least decrease
-its demands, as they who judge the Christian doctrine from a social
-life-conception seem to think.
-
-This is one of the mistakes of the scientists in regard to the
-significance of Christ's doctrine. And the substitution of the
-love of humanity for the love and service of God is another, and it
-springs from the same source.
-
-In the Christian doctrine of loving and of serving God, and (as
-the natural consequence of such love and service) of loving and
-serving one's neighbor, there seems to the scientific mind a certain
-mysticism, something at once confused and arbitrary; and, believing
-that the doctrine of love for humanity rests on a firmer basis and
-is altogether more intelligible, they utterly reject the requirement
-of love and service of God.
-
-The theory of a scientist is that a virtuous life, a life with a
-purpose, must be useful to the world at large; and in a life of this
-kind they discover the solution of the Christian doctrine, to which
-they reduce Christianity itself. Assuming their own doctrine to be
-identical with that of Christianity, they seek and believe that they
-find in the latter an affirmation of their own views.
-
-This is a fallacy. The Christian doctrine, and the doctrine of the
-Positivists, and of all advocates of the universal brotherhood of
-man, founded on the utility of such a brotherhood, have nothing
-in common, and especially do they differ in that the doctrine of
-Christianity has a solid and a clearly defined foundation in the
-human soul, whereas love of humanity is but a theoretical conclusion
-reached through analogy.
-
-The doctrine of the love of humanity has for its basis the social
-life-conception.
-
-The essence of the social life-conception consists in replacing the
-sense of individual life by that of the life of the group. In its
-first steps, this is a simple and natural progression, as from the
-family to the tribe; from the family to the race is more difficult,
-and requires special education,--which has arrived at its utmost
-limits when the State has been reached.
-
-It is natural for every man to love himself, and he needs no
-incentive thereto; to love his tribe, which lends both support and
-protection; to love his wife, the delight and comfort of his daily
-life; the children, who are his consolation and his future hope; his
-parents, who gave him life and cherished him,--all this, although
-not so intense as love of self, is natural and common to mankind.
-
-To love one's race, one's people, for their own sake, although not
-so instinctive, is also common. To love one's ancestors, one's
-kinsfolk, through pride, is also natural and frequent; and a man may
-feel love for his fellow-countrymen, who speak the same language
-and profess the same faith as himself, although the emotion is
-less strong than love of self or love of family. But love for a
-nation, Turkey, for instance, or Germany, England, Austria, Russia,
-is almost impossible, and notwithstanding the training given in
-that direction, it is only a fictitious semblance; it has no real
-existence. At this aggregate ceases man's power of transfusing
-his innermost consciousness; for such a fiction he can feel no
-direct sentiment. And yet the Positivists and all the preachers
-of the scientific fraternity, not taking into consideration the
-fact that this feeling is weakened in proportion to the expansion
-of its object, continue to theorize on the same lines. They say:
-"If it were to the advantage of an individual to transfuse his
-consciousness into the family, and thence into the nation and the
-State, it follows that it will be to his further advantage to
-transfuse his consciousness into the universal entity, mankind, that
-all men may live for humanity, as they have lived for the family and
-for the State."
-
-And theoretically they are right.
-
-After having transferred the consciousness and love for the
-individual to the family, and from the family to the race, the
-nation, and the State, it would be perfectly logical for men, in
-order to escape the strife and disasters that result from the
-division of mankind into nations and states, to transfer their love
-to humanity at large. This would appear to be the logical outcome,
-and it has been offered as a theory by those who forget that love
-is an innate sentiment, which can never be inspired by preaching;
-that it must have a real object, and that the entity which men call
-humanity is not a real object, but a fiction.
-
-A family, a race, even a State, are no inventions of men; these
-things have formed themselves like a hive of bees, or a colony of
-ants, and possess an actual existence. The man who loves his family,
-after a human fashion, knows whom he is loving--Ann, Maria, John, or
-Peter. The man who loves his ancestors, and is proud of them, knows
-that he loves the Guelphs, for instance, or the Ghibellines; the man
-who loves his country knows that he loves France from the Rhine to
-the Pyrenees, that he loves its capital, Paris, and all its history.
-But the man who loves humanity, what is it that he loves? There is a
-State, there is a people, there is the abstract conception of man.
-But humanity as a concrete conception is impossible.
-
-Humanity? Where is its limit? Where does it end and where does
-it begin? Does it exclude the savage, the idiot, the inebriate,
-the insane? If one were to draw a line of demarcation so as to
-exclude the lower representatives of the human race, where ought
-it to be drawn? Ought it to exclude the Negro, as they do in the
-United States, or the Hindoos, as some Englishmen do, or the Jews,
-as does another nation? But if we include all humanity without
-exception, why should we restrict ourselves to men? Why should we
-exclude the higher animals, some of whom are superior to the lowest
-representatives of the human race?
-
-We do not know humanity in the concrete, nor can we fix its limits.
-Humanity is a fiction, and therefore it cannot be loved. Indeed,
-it would be advantageous if men could love humanity as they love
-the family. It would be very useful, as the communists say, to
-substitute a community of interests for individual competition,
-or the universal for the personal; in a word, to make the whole
-world a mutual benefit society,--only that there are no motives to
-bring about such a result. The Positivists, communists, and all
-the exponents of the scientific fraternity exhort us to extend
-the love which men feel for themselves, their families, their
-fellow-countrymen, over humanity at large, forgetting that the love
-of which they speak is a personal love, which may be kindled for the
-family, and even extend to include one's native country, but which
-expires altogether when it is appealed to in behalf of an artificial
-state, such as Austria, England, or Turkey; and when claimed for
-that mystical object, humanity in general, one cannot even grasp the
-idea.
-
-"A man loves himself, his physical personality, he loves his family,
-he even loves his country. Why should he not also love mankind?
-It would seem such a happy consummation! And it so happens that
-Christianity inculcates the same precept." These are the opinions of
-the Positivist, the communist, and the socialist fraternities.
-
-It would indeed be fortunate, but it is impossible, because love
-founded on a personal and social life-conception can go no further
-than the love of country.
-
-The flaw in the argument arises from the fact that the social
-life-conception, the basis of family love and of patriotism, is
-itself an individual love, and such a love, in its transference from
-a person to a family, a race, a nation, and a State, gradually loses
-its efficiency, and in the State has reached its final limit, and
-can go no further.
-
-The necessity for widening the sphere of love is not to be denied,
-and yet it is the very attempt to satisfy this requirement that
-destroys its possibility, and proves the inadequacy of personal
-human love.
-
-And here it is that the advocates of the Positivist, communist, and
-socialist brotherhood offer as a prop to the humanitarianism that
-has proved its inefficiency, a Christian love, not in its essence,
-but only in its results; in other words, not the love of God, but
-the love of man.
-
-But there can be no such love; it has no _raison d'etre_. Christian
-love comes only from a Christian life-conception, whose sole
-manifestation is the love and service of God.
-
-By a natural sequence in the extension of love from the individual
-to the family, and thence to the race, the nation, and the State,
-the social life-conception has brought men not to the consciousness
-of love for humanity,--which is illimitable--the unification of
-every living creature,--but to a condition which evokes no feeling
-in man, to a contradiction for which it provides no reconciliation.
-
-It is only the Christian doctrine which, by lending to human life
-a new significance, is able to solve the difficulty. Christianity
-presents the love of self and the love of the family, as well as
-patriotism and the love of humanity, but it is not to be restricted
-to humanity alone; it is to be given to every living creature; it
-recognizes the possibility of an indefinite expansion of the kingdom
-of love, but its object is not to be found outside itself, in the
-aggregate of individuals, neither in the family, nor in the race,
-nor in the State, nor in mankind, nor all the wide world, but in
-itself, in its personality,--a divine personality, whose essence is
-the very love which needed a wider sphere.
-
-The distinction between the Christian doctrine and those which
-preceded it may be thus defined. The social doctrine says: Curb thy
-nature (meaning the animal nature alone); subject it to the visible
-law of the family, of society, and of the State. Christianity says:
-Live up to thy nature (meaning the divine nature); make it subject
-to nothing; neither to thine own animal nature, nor to that of
-another, and then thou shalt attain what thou seekest by subjecting
-thine outward personality to visible laws. The Christian doctrine
-restores to man his original consciousness of self, not the animal
-self, but the godlike self, the spark of divinity, as the son
-of God, like unto the Father, but clothed in a human form. This
-consciousness of one's self as a son of God, whose essence is love,
-satisfies at once all those demands made by the man who professes
-the social life-conception for a broader sphere of love. Again, in
-the social life-conception the enlargement of the domain of love was
-a necessity for the salvation of the individual; it was attached
-to certain objects, to one's self, to one's family, to society,
-and to humanity. With the Christian world-conception love is not a
-necessity, neither is it attached to any special object; it is the
-inherent quality of a man's soul; he loves because he cannot help
-loving.
-
-The Christian doctrine teaches to man that the essence of his soul
-is love; that his well-being may be traced, not to the fact that he
-loves this object or that one, but to the fact that he loves the
-principle of all things--God, whom he recognizes in himself through
-love, and will by the love of God love all men and all things.
-
-This is the essential difference between the Christian doctrine and
-that of the Positivists, and all other non-Christian theorists of a
-universal brotherhood.
-
-Such are the two chief misapprehensions in regard to the Christian
-doctrine, and from those most of the false arguments on the subject
-have originated.
-
-One is, that the doctrine of Christ, like the doctrines which
-preceded it, promulgates rules which men must obey, and that these
-rules are impracticable. The other, that the whole meaning of
-Christianity is contained in the doctrine of a cooperative union of
-mankind, in one family, to attain which, leaving aside the question
-of love of God, one should obey only the rule of love of one's
-fellow-men.
-
-Finally, the mistake of scientists, in supposing that the doctrine
-of the supernatural contains the essence of Christianity, that
-its life-teaching is not practicable, together with the general
-misapprehensions that result from such a misconception, further
-explains why men of our time have so misunderstood Christianity.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V
-
-CONTRADICTION OF OUR LIFE AND CHRISTIAN CONSCIOUSNESS
-
- Men consider that they may accept Christianity without changing
- their life--The pagan life-conception no longer corresponds to
- the present age of humanity, which the Christian life-conception
- alone can satisfy--The Christian life-conception is still
- misunderstood by men, but our life itself necessitates its
- acceptance--The requirements of a new life-conception always
- seem unintelligible, mystical, and supernatural--Such, for
- the majority of men, seem the requirements of the Christian
- life-conception--The acceptance of a Christian life-conception
- will inevitably be accomplished both through spiritual and
- material agencies--The fact that men, conscious of a higher
- life-conception, continue to entertain the lower forms of
- life, causes contradiction and suffering, which embitter life
- and require its alteration--Contradictions of our life--The
- economical contradiction, and the suffering it causes to the
- working-men and to the rich--The contradiction of State, and
- the sufferings that arise from obedience to State laws--The
- international contradiction, and its acknowledgment by
- contemporary writers: Komarvosky, Ferri, Booth, Passy, Lawson,
- Wilson, Bartlett, Defourny, Moneta--The military contradiction
- the extreme.
-
-
-Many causes have contributed toward the misunderstanding of the
-teaching of Christ. One of these is that men assumed to understand
-the doctrine, when, like the faithful of the Church, they accepted
-the statement that it had been transmitted in a supernatural
-manner; or, like the scientists, after having investigated certain
-of its outward manifestations. Another reason may be found in the
-conviction that it is impracticable, and that it may be replaced by
-the doctrine of love of humanity. But the principal reason of all
-such misconceptions is that men look upon the doctrine of Christ as
-one that may be accepted or rejected without any special change in
-one's life.
-
-Men, attached by habit to the existing order, shrink from
-attempting to change it, hence they agree to consider this doctrine
-as a mass of revelations and laws that may be accepted without
-making any change in one's life: whereas the doctrine of Christ
-is not a doctrine of rules for man to obey, but unfolds a new
-life-conception, meant as a guide for men who are now entering upon
-a new period, one entirely different from the past.
-
-The life of humanity continues its course and has its stages, like
-the life of an individual; each age has its own life-conception,
-which a man must adopt whether he will or no. Those who do not adopt
-it consciously, adopt it unconsciously. The same change that takes
-place in the views of the individual, as life goes on, occurs also
-in the existence of nations and of humanity in general.
-
-If a father were to conduct his affairs like a child, his life would
-certainly become so unbearable that he would cast about for a
-different plan of life, and would eagerly grasp at one better suited
-to his years.
-
-And the human race is at the present time passing through a
-similar experience, in its transition from a pagan to a Christian
-life-conception. A man of the society of the present day finds that
-the pagan life-conception is no longer suited to the times, hence he
-is induced to submit to the requirements of the Christian religion,
-whose truths, however misunderstood and falsely interpreted they
-may be, are yet familiar to his ears, and seem to offer the only
-practical solution of the contradictions that beset his path. If the
-demands of the Christian doctrine seem unintelligible, peculiar, and
-dangerous to a man who has hitherto held the social life-conception,
-the demands of the latter seemed none the less so to a savage of a
-previous age, who neither fully apprehended them, nor was able to
-foresee their consequences.
-
-The savage reasoned thus: "It would be folly for me to sacrifice
-my peace or my life to defend an incomprehensible, intangible, and
-uncertain ideal, family, race, country, and, above all, it would be
-dangerous to deliver myself into the hands of an unknown power." But
-there came a time in the life of the savage when, on the one hand,
-he had begun, although vaguely, to understand the meaning of social
-life, as well as that of its chief incentive,--social approval or
-condemnation: glory,--while, on the other hand, the sufferings
-of his personal life had become so severe that it was no longer
-possible for him to go on believing in the truth of his former
-life-conception; whereupon he accepted the social and State doctrine
-and submitted to its laws.
-
-And he who holds the social life-conception is now undergoing a
-similar experience.
-
-"It is madness"--thus reasons the man holding such views--"to
-sacrifice one's interests or those of one's family and of one's
-country, in order to fulfil the requirements of a law that would
-compel one to renounce the most natural and praiseworthy feelings
-toward one's self, one's family, and one's country, and, above all,
-the guarantee of protection afforded by the State."
-
-But there comes a time when, on the one hand, a vague awakening
-consciousness stirs the soul, the consciousness of the higher law,
-love of God and one's neighbor, and the sufferings a man endures
-from the contradictions of life, compel him to renounce the social
-life-conception and to adopt the new Christian life-conception which
-is offered him. And this time has now arrived.
-
-To us, who underwent the transition from the individual to the
-social life-conception thousands of years ago, this transition
-appears to have been both natural and inevitable, just as the
-present transition, through which we have been passing these last
-1800 years, seems arbitrary, unnatural, and overwhelming. But it
-seems so for the simple reason that the former change is a thing
-of the past, and has fixed in us certain habits, whereas we are
-still practically accomplishing the present transition, and have to
-accomplish it consciously.
-
-It was centuries, indeed thousands of years, before the social
-life-conception was adopted by all mankind; it passed through
-various phases, and we ourselves possess it through heredity,
-education, and unconscious habit; hence it seems natural to us. But
-5000 years ago it seemed as strange and unnatural to men as the
-Christian doctrine in its true meaning seems to them now.
-
-The universal brotherhood of man, the equality of races, the
-abolition of property, the anomalous doctrine of non-resistance,
-all these requirements of the Christian religion seem to us
-impossibilities. But in olden times, thousands of years ago, not
-only the requirements of the State, but even those of the family,
-as, for instance, the obligation of parents to feed their children,
-of children to support their aged parents, and that of conjugal
-fidelity, seemed equally impossible. And still more unreasonable
-seemed the demands of the State, requiring citizens to submit
-to established authority, to pay taxes, to perform military
-duty in defense of their country, etc. We find no difficulty in
-comprehending these requirements now; they seem perfectly simple
-and natural, with nothing mystical or alarming in their aspect;
-but five or even three thousand years ago, such demands seemed
-intolerable.
-
-Thus the social life-conception served as a foundation for religion,
-for at the time when it was first manifested to men it seemed to
-them to be utterly incomprehensible, mystical, and supernatural. Now
-that we have passed that phase of human life, we can understand the
-reasons for the aggregation of men into families, communities, and
-states. But in the early ages the demand for these aggregations was
-made in the name of the supernatural, and its fulfilment assured by
-the same authority.
-
-The patriarchal religion deified the family, the race, the people.
-State religions deified the sovereigns and the State. Even at
-the present day the uneducated masses, the Russian peasants, for
-instance, who call the Czar a God upon earth, obey the laws from
-religious instinct, not because their reason counsels them to do so,
-nor because they have the least idea of a State.
-
-And to those men of our own times who hold the social
-life-conception, the Christian doctrine seems to be a supernatural
-religion, whereas in reality there is nothing mystical or
-supernatural about it; it is only a doctrine concerning human life,
-corresponding with the degree of development which man has attained,
-and one which he cannot refuse to accept.
-
-The time will come, and it is already near at hand, when the
-Christian foundations of life--equality, brotherly love, community
-of goods, non-resistance of evil by violence--will seem as natural
-and simple as the foundations of family, social, and State life
-appear to us at the present time.
-
-There can be no retrogression for humanity. Men have outgrown the
-lower life-conception of the family and the State, and must press
-forward to embrace the next higher conception, as they have already
-begun to do.
-
-This movement is accomplished in two ways: consciously, by moral
-causes; unconsciously, by material ones. It rarely happens that a
-man changes his mode of life at the dictates of reason; however
-conscious he may be of the new design and purpose revealed to him by
-his reason, he goes on in the old fashion until his life has become
-intolerably inconsistent, and therefore distressing. Likewise, the
-larger portion of mankind, after learning through its religious
-teachers a new conception of life and its objects, to which it has
-yet to adjust itself, will for a long time pursue its wonted course,
-and only make the change in the end because its former life has
-become impossible.
-
-In spite of the necessity for a change of life, acknowledged and
-proclaimed by our religious guides and admitted by the wisest men,
-in spite of the religious respect entertained for these guides, the
-majority of men continue to be influenced in life, now additionally
-complicated, by their former views. It is as if the father of a
-family, knowing well enough how to conduct himself properly, should
-through force of habit or thoughtlessness continue to live as if he
-were still a child.
-
-At this very moment we are experiencing one of these transitions.
-Humanity has outgrown its social, its civic age, and has entered
-upon a new epoch. It knows the doctrine that must underlie the
-foundations of life in this new epoch; but, yielding to inertia,
-it still clings to its former habits. From this inconsistency
-between the theory of life and its practice follow a series of
-contradictions and sufferings that embitter man's life and compel
-him to make a change.
-
-One needs but to compare the practice of life with its theory to be
-horrified at the extraordinary contradictions between the conditions
-of life and our inner consciousness.
-
-Man's whole life is a continual contradiction of what he knows to
-be his duty. This contradiction prevails in every department of
-life, in the economical, the political, and the international. As
-though his intelligence were forgotten and his faith temporarily
-eclipsed,--for he must have faith, else would his life have no
-permanence,--he acts in direct opposition to the dictates of his
-conscience and his common sense.
-
-In our economical and international relations we are guided by
-the fundamental principles of bygone ages,--principles quite
-contradictory to our mental attitude and the conditions of our
-present life.
-
-It was right for a man who believed in the divine origin of
-slavery, and in its necessity, to live in the relation of a master
-to his slaves. But is such a life possible in these days? A man
-of antiquity might believe himself justified in taking advantage
-of his fellow-man, oppressing him for generations, merely because
-he believed in diversity of origin, noble or base, descent from
-Ham or Japheth. Not only have the greatest philosophers of ancient
-times, the teachers of mankind, Plato and Aristotle, justified the
-existence of slavery and adduced proofs of its legality, but no
-longer than three centuries ago those who described an ideal state
-of society could not picture it without slaves.
-
-In ancient times, and even in the Middle Ages, it was honestly
-thought that men were not born equal, that the men worthy of respect
-were only Persians, only Greeks, only Romans, or only Frenchmen;
-but no one believes it now. And the enthusiastic advocates of the
-principles of aristocracy and patriotism at this present day cannot
-believe in their own statements.
-
-We all know, and cannot help knowing, even if we had never heard
-it defined and never attempted to define it ourselves, that we all
-possess an inherent conviction deep in our hearts of the truth of
-that fundamental doctrine of Christianity, that we are all children
-of one Father, yea, every one of us, wheresoever we may live,
-whatsoever language we may speak; that we are all brothers, subject
-only to the law of love implanted in our hearts by our common Father.
-
-Whatever may be the habits of thought or the degree of education of
-a man of our time, whether he be an educated liberal, whatsoever
-his shade of opinion, a philosopher, whatsoever may be his system,
-a scientist, an economist of any of the various schools, an
-uneducated adherent of any religious faith,--every man in these
-days knows that in the matter of life and worldly goods all men
-have equal rights; that no man is either better or worse than his
-fellow-men, but that all men are born free and equal. Every man
-has an instinctive assurance of this fact, and yet he sees his
-fellow-beings divided into two classes, the one in poverty and
-distress, which labors and is oppressed, the other idle, tyrannical,
-luxurious; and not only does he see all this, but, whether
-voluntarily or otherwise, he falls in line with one or the other of
-these divisions,--a course repugnant to his reason. Hence he must
-suffer both from his sense of the incongruity and his own share in
-it.
-
-Whether he be master or slave, a man in these days is forever
-haunted by this distressing inconsistency between his ideal and the
-actual fact, nor can he fail to perceive the suffering that springs
-therefrom.
-
-The masses--that is to say, the majority of mankind, who suffer
-and toil, their lives dull and uninteresting, never enlivened by a
-ray of brightness, enduring numberless privations--are those who
-recognize most clearly the sharp contrasts between what is and what
-ought to be, between the professions of mankind and their actions.
-
-They know that they work like slaves, that they are perishing in
-want and in darkness, that they may minister to the pleasures of
-the minority. And it is this very consciousness that enhances its
-bitterness; indeed, it constitutes the essence of their suffering.
-
-A slave in old times knew that he was a slave by birth, whereas the
-working-man of our day, while he feels himself to be a slave, knows
-that he ought not to be one, and suffers the tortures of Tantalus
-from his unsatisfied yearning for that which not only could be
-granted him, but which is really his due. The sufferings of the
-working-classes that spring from the contradictions of their fate
-are magnified tenfold by the envy and hatred which are the natural
-fruits of the sense of these contradictions.
-
-A working-man in our period, even though his work may be less
-fatiguing than the labor of the ancient slave, and even were he to
-succeed in obtaining the eight-hour system and twelve-and-sixpence
-a day, still has the worst of it, because he manufactures objects
-which he will never use or enjoy;--he is not working for himself;
-he works in order to gratify the luxurious and idle, to increase
-the wealth of the capitalist, the mill-owner, or manufacturer. He
-knows that all this goes on in a world where men acknowledge certain
-propositions such as the economic principle that labor is wealth,
-that it is an act of injustice to employ another man's labor for
-one's own benefit, that an illegal act is punishable by law, in a
-world, moreover, where the doctrine of Christ is professed,--that
-doctrine which teaches us that all men are brothers, and that it
-is the duty of a man to serve his neighbor and to take no unfair
-advantage of him.
-
-He realizes all this, and must suffer keenly from the shocking
-contradiction between the world as it should be and the world as
-it is. "According to what I am told and what I hear men profess,"
-says a working-man to himself, "I ought to be a free man equal to
-any other man, and loved; I am a slave, hated and despised." Then
-he in his turn is filled with hatred, and seeks to escape from his
-position, to overthrow the enemy that oppresses him, and to get the
-upper hand himself.
-
-They say: "It is wrong for a workman to wish himself in the place
-of a capitalist, or for a poor man to envy the rich." But this is
-false. If this were a world where God had ordained masters and
-slaves, rich and poor, it would be wrong for the working-man or the
-poor man to wish himself in the place of the rich: but this is not
-so; he wishes it in a world which professes the doctrine of the
-gospel, whose first principle is embodied in the relation of the
-son to the Father, and consequently of fraternity and equality.
-And however reluctant men may be to acknowledge it, they cannot
-deny that one of the first conditions of Christian life is love,
-expressed, not in words, but in deeds.
-
-The man of education suffers even more from these inconsistencies. If
-he has any faith whatever he believes, perhaps, in fraternity,--at
-least in the sentiment humanity; and if not in the sentiment
-humanity, then in justice; and if not in justice, then surely
-in science; and he cannot help knowing all the while that
-the conditions of his life are opposed to every principle of
-Christianity, humanity, justice, and science.
-
-He knows that the habits of life in which he has been bred, and
-whose abandonment would cause him much discomfort, can only be
-supported by the weary and often suicidal labor of the down-trodden
-working-class--that is, by the open infraction of those principles
-of Christianity, humanity, justice, and even of science (political
-science), in which he professes to believe. He affirms his faith
-in the principles of fraternity, humanity, justice, and political
-science, and yet the oppression of the working-class is an
-indispensable factor in his daily life, and he constantly employs it
-to attain his own ends in spite of his principles; and he not only
-lives in this manner, but he devotes all his energies to maintain a
-system which is directly opposed to all his beliefs.
-
-We are brothers: but every morning my brother or my sister performs
-for me the most menial offices. We are brothers: but I must have
-my morning cigar, my sugar, my mirror, or what not,--objects whose
-manufacture has often cost my brothers and sisters their health,
-yet I do not for that reason forbear to use these things; on the
-contrary, I even demand them. We are brothers: and yet I support
-myself by working in some bank, commercial house, or shop, and am
-always trying to raise the price of the necessities of life for
-my brothers and sisters. We are brothers: I receive a salary for
-judging, convicting, and punishing the thief or the prostitute,
-whose existence is the natural outcome of my own system of life, and
-I fully realize that I should neither condemn nor punish. We are all
-brothers: yet I make my living by collecting taxes from the poor,
-that the rich may live in luxury and idleness. We are brothers:
-and yet I receive a salary for preaching a pseudo-Christian
-doctrine, in which I do not myself believe, thus hindering men from
-discovering the true one; I receive a salary as priest or bishop for
-deceiving people in a matter which is of vital importance to them.
-We are brothers: but I make my brother pay for all my services,
-whether I write books for him, educate him, or prescribe for him
-as a physician. We are all brothers: but I receive a salary for
-fitting myself to be a murderer, for learning the art of war, or for
-manufacturing arms and ammunition and building fortresses.
-
-The whole existence of our upper classes is utterly contradictory,
-and the more sensitive a man's nature the more painful is the
-incongruity.
-
-A man with a sensitive conscience can enjoy no peace of mind in such
-a life. Even supposing that he succeeds in stifling the reproaches
-of his conscience, he is still unable to conquer his fears.
-
-Those men and women of the dominant classes who have hardened
-themselves, and have succeeded in stifling their consciences,
-must still suffer through their fear of the hatred they inspire.
-They are quite well aware of its existence among the laboring
-classes; they know that it can never die; they know, too, that
-the working-men realize the deceits practised upon them, and the
-abuses that they endure; that they have started organizations to
-throw off the yoke, and to take vengeance on their oppressors. The
-happiness of the upper classes is poisoned by fear of the impending
-calamity, foreshadowed by the unions, the strikes, and First of
-May demonstrations. Recognizing the calamity that threatens them,
-their fear turns to defiance and hatred. They know that if they
-relax for one moment in this conflict with the oppressed, they are
-lost, because their slaves, already embittered, grow more and more
-so with every day's oppression. The oppressors, though they may
-see it, cannot cease to oppress. They realize that they themselves
-are doomed from the moment they abate one jot of their severity.
-So they go on in their career of oppression, notwithstanding their
-affectation of interest in the welfare of the working-men, the
-eight-hour system, the laws restricting the labor of women and
-children, the pensions, and the rewards. All this is mere pretense,
-or at best the natural anxiety of the master to keep his slave in
-good condition; but the slave remains a slave all the while, and the
-master, who cannot live without the slave, is less willing than ever
-to set him free. The governing classes find themselves in regard to
-the working-men very much in the position of one who has overthrown
-his opponent, and who holds him down, not so much because he does
-not choose to let him escape, but because he knows that should he
-for one moment lose his hold on him, he would lose his own life, for
-the vanquished man is infuriated, and holds a knife in his hand.
-
-Hence our wealthy classes, whether their consciences be tender or
-hardened, cannot enjoy the advantages they have wrung from the poor,
-as did the ancients, who were convinced of the justice of their
-position. All the pleasures of life are poisoned either by remorse
-or fear.
-
-Such is the economic inconsistency. Still more striking is that of
-the civil power.
-
-A man is trained first of all in habits of obedience to state laws.
-At the present time every act of our lives is under the supervision
-of the State, and in accordance with its dictates a man marries and
-is divorced, rears his children, and in some countries accepts the
-religion it prescribes. What is this law, then, that determines the
-life of mankind? Do men believe in it? Do they consider it true? Not
-at all. In most cases they recognize its injustice, they despise
-it, and yet they obey it. It was fit that the ancients should obey
-their law. It was chiefly religious, and they sincerely believed
-it to be the only true law, to which all men owed obedience. Is
-that the case with us? We cannot refuse to acknowledge that the
-law of our State is not the eternal law, but only one of the many
-laws of many states, all equally imperfect, and frequently wholly
-false and unjust,--a law that has been openly discussed in all its
-aspects by the public press. It was fit that the Hebrew should obey
-his laws, since he never doubted that the finger of God Himself
-had traced them; or for the Roman, who believed that he received
-them from the nymph Egeria; or even for those peoples who believed
-that the rulers who made the laws were anointed of God, or that
-legislative assemblies have both the will and the ability to devise
-laws as good as possible. But we know that laws are the offspring
-of party conflicts, false dealing, and the greed of gain, that they
-are not, and can never be, the depository of true justice; and
-therefore it is impossible for people of the present day to believe
-that obedience to civil or state laws can ever satisfy the rational
-demands of human nature. Men have long since realized that there
-is no sense in obeying a law whose honesty is more than doubtful,
-and therefore they must suffer when, though privately denying its
-prerogative, they still conform to it. When a man's whole life is
-held in bondage by laws whose injustice, cruelty, and artificiality
-he plainly discerns, and yet is compelled to obey these laws under
-penalty of punishment, he must suffer; it cannot be otherwise.
-
-We recognize the disadvantages of custom-houses and import duties,
-but we are yet obliged to pay them; we see the folly of supporting
-the court and its numerous officials, we admit the harmful influence
-of church preaching, and still we are compelled to support both; we
-also admit the cruel and iniquitous punishments inflicted by the
-courts, and yet we play our part in them; we acknowledge that the
-distribution of land is wrong and immoral, but we have to submit to
-it; and despite the fact that we deny the necessity for armies or
-warfare, we are made to bear the heavy burden of supporting armies
-and waging war.
-
-These contradictions, however, are but trifling in comparison with
-the one which confronts us in the problem of our international
-relations, and which cries aloud for solution, since both human
-reason and human life are at stake, and this is the antagonism
-between the Christian faith and war.
-
-We, Christian nations, whose spiritual life is one and the same,
-who welcome the birth of every wholesome and profitable thought
-with joy and pride, from whatsoever quarter of the globe it may
-spring, regardless of race or creed; we, who love not only the
-philanthropists, the poets, the philosophers, and the scientists
-of other lands; we, who take as much pride in the heroism of a
-Father Damien as if it was our own; we, who love the French, the
-Germans, the Americans, and the English, not only esteeming their
-qualities, but ready to meet them with cordial friendship; we, who
-not only would be shocked to consider war with them in the light of
-an exploit,--when we picture to ourselves the possibility that at
-some future day a difference may arise between us that can only be
-reconciled by murder, and that any one of us may be called upon to
-play his part in an inevitable tragedy,--we shudder at the thought.
-
-It was well enough for a Hebrew, a Greek, or a Roman to maintain
-the independence of his country by murder, and even to subdue other
-nations by the same means, because he firmly believed himself a
-member of the one favored people beloved by God, and that all the
-others were Philistines and barbarians. Also, in the times of the
-Middle Ages men might well have held these opinions, and even they
-who lived toward the end of the last century and at the beginning
-of this. But we, whatever provocation may be offered us, we cannot
-possibly believe as they did; and this difficulty is so painful for
-us in these times that it has become impossible to live without
-trying to solve it.
-
-"We live in a time replete with contradictions," writes Count
-Komarovsky, the Professor of International Law, in his learned
-treatise. "Everywhere the tone of the public press seems to indicate
-a general desire for peace, and shows the need of it for all
-nations. And the representatives of the government, in their private
-as well as in their public capacity, in parliamentary speeches and
-diplomatic negotiations, express themselves in the same temper.
-Nevertheless, the governments increase the military force year after
-year, impose new taxes, negotiate loans, and will leave as a legacy
-to future generations the responsibilities of the present mistaken
-policy. How are the word and the deed at variance!
-
-"By way of justification the governments claim that all their
-armaments and the consequent outlay are simply defensive in their
-character, but to the uninitiated the question naturally suggests
-itself: Whence is to come the attack if all the great powers are
-devoting themselves _to a defensive policy_? It certainly looks as
-if each one of them lived in hourly expectation of attack from his
-neighbor, and the consequence is a strife between the different
-governments to surpass each other in strength. The very existence of
-this spirit of rivalry favors the chances of war: the nations, no
-longer able to support the increased armament, will sooner or later
-prefer open war to the tension in which they live and the ruin which
-menaces them, so that the slightest pretext will avail to kindle
-in Europe the conflagration of a general war. It is a mistake to
-suppose that such a crisis will heal the political and economic ills
-under which we groan. The experience of late wars shows us that each
-one served only to exacerbate the animosity of the nations against
-each other, to increase the unbearable burden of military despotism,
-and has involved the political and economic situation of Europe in a
-more melancholy and pitiable plight than ever."
-
-"Contemporary Europe keeps under arms nine millions of men," says
-Enrico Ferri, "and a reserve force of fifteen millions, at a cost
-of four milliards of francs a year. By increasing its armament
-it paralyzes more and more the springs of social and individual
-welfare, and may be compared to a man who, in order to obtain
-weapons, condemns himself to anaemia, thereby depriving himself of
-the strength to use the weapons he is accumulating, whose weight
-will eventually overpower him."
-
-The same idea has been expressed by Charles Booth, in his address
-delivered in London, July 26, 1887, before the Association for the
-Reform and Codification of National Laws. Having mentioned the same
-numbers,--over nine millions in active service and fifteen millions
-in reserve, and the enormous sums required to support these armies
-and armaments,--he says, in substance: "These numbers represent
-but a small part of the actual expenditure, because outside of the
-expenses enumerated in the budgets of the nations we must take
-into consideration the great losses to society from the removal
-of so many able-bodied men, lost to industry in all its branches,
-and moreover, the interest on the enormous sums spent in military
-preparations, which yield no returns. As might be expected, the
-constantly increasing national debts are the inevitable result of
-these outlays in preparation for war. By far the greater proportion
-of the debt of Europe has been contracted for munitions of war.
-The sum total is four milliards of pounds, or forty milliards of
-roubles, and these debts are increasing every year."
-
-Komarovsky, whom we lately quoted, says elsewhere: "We are living
-in hard times. Everywhere we hear complaints of the stagnation of
-commerce and industry, and of the wretched economical situation.
-They tell us of the hard conditions of life among the laboring
-classes and the general impoverishment of the people. But regardless
-of this, governments, determined to maintain their independence, go
-to the utmost limits of folly. Additional taxes are levied on every
-side, and the financial oppression of the people knows no bounds.
-If we glance at the budgets of European states for the last hundred
-years, we shall be struck with their constantly increasing figures.
-How can we explain this abnormal condition that sooner or later
-threatens to overwhelm us with inevitable bankruptcy?
-
-"Most assuredly it is caused by the expense of maintaining armies,
-which absorbs one-third, or even one-half, of the budget of all
-European nations. The saddest part of it, however, is that there is
-no end to this increase of budgets and consequent impoverishment of
-the masses. What is socialism but a protest against the abnormal
-situation in which the majority of mankind of our continent finds
-itself?"
-
-"We are being ruined," says Frederic Passy, in a paper read before
-the last Peace Congress in London (1890), "to enable us to take part
-in the senseless wars of the future, or to pay the interest of debts
-left us by the criminal and insane wars and contests of the past. We
-shall perish with hunger, to have success in murder."
-
-Going on to speak of the opinion of France in regard to this
-matter, he says: "We believe that now, a hundred years after the
-proclamation formulating the belief in the rights of men and
-citizens, the time has come to declare the rights of nations and
-to repudiate once and for all time those undertakings of fraud and
-violence, which, under the name of conquests, are actually crimes
-against humanity, and which, however much the pride of nations or
-the ambition of monarchs may seek to justify them, serve only to
-enervate the conquerors."
-
-"I am always very much surprised at the way religion is carried on
-in this country," says Sir Wilfred Lawson before the same Congress.
-"You send a boy to the Sunday-school, and you tell him: 'My dear
-boy, you must love your enemies; if any boy strikes you, don't
-strike him again; try to reform him by loving him.' Well, the boy
-goes to the Sunday-school till he is fourteen or fifteen years of
-age, and then his friends say, 'Put him in the army.' What has he to
-do in the army? Why, not love his enemies, but whenever he sees an
-enemy, to run him through the body with a bayonet is the nature of
-all religious teaching in this country. I do not think that that is
-a very good way of carrying out the precepts of religion. I think if
-it is a good thing for the boy to love his enemy, it is a good thing
-for the man to love his enemy."...
-
-And later!
-
-"In Europe great Christian nations keep among them 28,000,000 of
-armed men to settle quarrels by killing one another, instead of
-by arguing. This is what the Christian nations of the world are
-doing at this moment. It is a very expensive way also; for in a
-publication which I saw--I believe it was correct--it was made
-out that since the year 1812 these nations had spent the almost
-incredible amount of 1,500,000,000 of money in preparing and
-settling their quarrels by killing one another. Now it seems to
-me that with that state of things one of two positions must be
-accepted,--either that Christianity is a failure, or that those
-who profess to expound Christianity have failed in expounding it
-properly."
-
-"So long as our men-of-war are not disarmed and our army not
-disbanded, we have no right to be called a Christian nation," said
-Mr. F. L. Wilson.
-
-In a conversation in regard to the duty of Christian ministers in
-the matter of preaching against war, Mr. G. D. Bartlett remarked,
-among other things:--
-
-"If I understand the Scriptures, I say that men are only playing
-with Christianity when they ignore this question.... I have lived
-a long life, I have heard many sermons, and I can say without any
-exaggeration that I never heard universal peace recommended from
-the pulpit half a dozen times in my life.... Some twenty years
-ago I happened to stand in a drawing-room where there were forty
-or fifty people, and I dared to make the proposition that war was
-incompatible with Christianity. They looked upon me as an arrant
-fanatic. The idea that we could get on without war was regarded as
-unmitigated weakness and folly."
-
-A Catholic priest, the Abbe Defourny, has spoken in a similar
-spirit. "One of the first commandments of the eternal law, engraved
-in every man's conscience," says the Abbe Defourny, "forbids a man
-to take his neighbor's life or shed his blood" (without sufficient
-cause, being forced to it by stress of circumstance). "This is a
-commandment more deeply engraved in the human heart than all the
-others.... But as soon as it becomes a question of war, that is,
-a question of the wholesale shedding of human blood, men in these
-days do not wait for a sufficient cause. Those who are active in
-war forget to ask themselves if there is any justification for the
-numerous manslaughters that take place, whether they are just or
-unjust, legal or illegal, innocent or criminal, or whether they
-break the principal law that forbids us to commit murder" (without
-just cause). "Their conscience is silent.... War has ceased to be a
-matter connected with morality. The soldier, amid all the fatigues
-and dangers he undergoes, knows no joy but conquest, no sorrow but
-defeat. Don't tell me that they serve the country. A great genius
-has long ago answered this statement in words that have since become
-a proverb: 'Take away justice, and what is then a nation but a great
-band of robbers? And is not a band of robbers in itself a small
-state? They, too, have their laws. They, too, fight for booty, and
-even honor.'
-
-"The aim of this organization" (it was a question of establishing
-international tribunals) "is to influence the European nations until
-they cease to be nations of thieves, and their armies bands of
-robbers. Yes, our armies are nothing less than a rabble of slaves
-belonging to one or two monarchs and their ministers, who, as we all
-know, rule them tyrannically and without any responsibility other
-than nominal, as we know.
-
-"It is the characteristic of a slave that he is a tool in the hands
-of his master. Such are the soldiers, officers, and generals, who
-at the beck of their sovereign go forth to slay or to be slain.
-There is a military slavery, and it is the worst of all slaveries,
-particularly now, when by means of conscription it forges chains for
-the necks of all the free and strong men of the nation, in order to
-use them as instruments of murder, to make them executioners and
-butchers of human flesh, since that is the sole reason why they are
-drafted and drilled....
-
-"Two or three potentates in their cabinets make treaties, without
-protocols, without publicity, and therefore without responsibility,
-sending men to the slaughter.
-
-"'Protests against increased armaments began before our time,' said
-Signor E. G. Moneta. Listen to Montesquieu: 'France' (for France we
-might now substitute Europe) 'is perishing from an overgrown army. A
-new disease is spreading throughout Europe. It has affected kings,
-and obliges them to maintain an incredible number of troops. It is
-like a rash, and therefore contagious; for no sooner does one nation
-increase its troops than all the others follow suit. Nothing can
-result from this condition of affairs but general calamity.
-
-"'Each government maintains as many troops as it would require if
-its people were threatened with destruction, and this state of
-tension is called peace. Europe is in truth ruined. If private
-individuals were reduced to such straits as these, the richest man
-among them would be practically destitute. The wealth of the world
-and its commerce are in our hands, and yet we are poor.'
-
-"This was written almost 150 years ago. It seems like a picture of
-the present. One thing alone has changed--the form of government.
-In the time of Montesquieu it was said that the reason for the
-maintenance of large armies might be found in the unlimited power of
-kings, who carried on war in the hope of increasing their private
-property and their glory.
-
-"Then it was said: 'Ah! if the people could but choose
-representatives who would have a right to refuse the governments
-when they called for soldiers and money--there would be an end of
-a military policy.' Now, almost everywhere in Europe there are
-representative governments, and still the military expenditure in
-preparation for war has increased in frightful proportion.
-
-"It looks as though the folly of the rulers had passed into the
-ruling classes. Now they no longer fight because one king has
-been rude to another king's mistress, as in the time of Louis
-XIV., but by exaggerating the importance of national dignity
-and patriotism,--emotions which are natural and honorable in
-themselves,--and exciting the public opinion of one country against
-the other, until they have arrived at such a pitch of sensitiveness
-that it is enough to say, for instance (even were the report to
-prove false), one country has refused to receive the ambassador
-of another, to precipitate the most frightful and disastrous war.
-Europe maintains under arms at the present time more soldiers than
-were in the field during the great wars of Napoleon. Every citizen
-on our continent, with a few exceptions, is forced to spend several
-years in the barracks. Fortresses, arsenals, men-of-war are built,
-new firearms are invented, which in a short time are replaced by
-others, because science, which should always be devoted to the
-promotion of human welfare, contributes, it must be regretfully
-acknowledged, to human destruction, inventing ever new means of
-killing greater numbers of men in the shortest possible time.
-
-"In these stupendous preparations for slaughter, and in the
-maintenance of these vast numbers of troops, hundreds of millions
-are yearly expended--sums that would suffice to educate the masses,
-and to carry on the most important works of public improvement,
-thereby contributing toward a perfect solution of the social problem.
-
-"Therefore, notwithstanding all our scientific victories, Europe
-finds herself in this respect not one whit better off than she was
-in the most barbarous times of the Middle Ages. Every one laments
-a state of things which is neither war nor peace, and longs to be
-delivered from it. The heads of governments emphatically affirm
-that they desire peace, and eagerly emulate each other in their
-pacific utterances, but almost immediately thereafter they propose
-to the legislative assemblies measures for increasing the armament,
-asserting that they take these precautions for the preservation of
-peace.
-
-"But this is not the sort of peace we care for, and the nations
-are not deceived by it. True peace has for its foundation mutual
-confidence, whereas these appalling armaments show, if not a
-declared hostility, at least a secret distrust among the different
-nations. What should we say of a man who, wishing to show his
-friendly feelings to his neighbor, should invite him to consider a
-certain scheme, holding a loaded pistol while he unfolds it before
-him?
-
-"It is this monstrous contradiction between the assurances of peace
-and the military policy of the governments, that good citizens wish
-to put an end to, at any cost."
-
-One is amazed to learn that there are 60,000 suicides reported in
-Europe, not including Turkey and Russia, every year, and these are
-all well-substantiated cases; but it would be far more remarkable
-if the number were less. Any man in these times who investigates the
-antagonism between his convictions and his actions, finds himself
-in a desperate plight. Setting aside the many other contradictions
-between actual life and conviction which abound in the life of a
-man of the present day, to view the military situation in Europe in
-the light of its profession of Christianity is enough to make a man
-doubt the existence of human reason, and drive him to escape from a
-barbarous and insane world by putting an end to his own life. This
-inconsistency, which is the very quintessence of all the others, is
-so shocking, that one can only go on living and taking any part in
-it, by dint of trying not to think about it,--to forget it all.
-
-What can it mean? We are Christians, who not only profess to love
-one another, but are actually leading one common life; our pulses
-beat in harmony; we meet each other in love and sympathy, deriving
-support and counsel from our mutual intercourse. Were it not for
-this sympathy life would have no meaning. But at any moment some
-demented ruler may utter a few rash words, to which another gives
-reply, and lo! I am ordered to march at the risk of my life, to slay
-those who have never injured me, whom I really love. And it is no
-remote contingency, but an inevitable climax for which we are all
-preparing ourselves.
-
-Fully to realize this is enough to drive one to madness and to
-suicide, and this is but too common an occurrence, especially among
-soldiers.
-
-A moment's reflection shows us why this seems an inevitable
-conclusion.
-
-It explains the frightful intensity with which men plunge into all
-kinds of dissipation,--wine, tobacco, cards, newspaper reading,
-travel, all manner of shows and pleasures. They pursue all these
-amusements in deadly earnest, as if they were serious avocations,
-as indeed they are. If men possessed none of these distractions,
-half of them would kill themselves out of hand, for to live a life
-that is made up of contradictions is simply unbearable, and such is
-the life that most of us lead at the present day. We are living in
-direct contradiction to our inmost convictions. This contradiction
-is evident both in economic and in political relations; it
-is manifested most unmistakably in the inconsistency of the
-acknowledgment of the Christian law of brotherly love and military
-conscription, which obliges men to hold themselves in readiness
-to take each other's lives,--in short, every man to be at once a
-Christian and a gladiator.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI
-
-ATTITUDE OF MEN OF THE PRESENT DAY TOWARD WAR
-
- Men do not endeavor to destroy the contradiction between life
- and consciousness by a change of life, but educated men use
- all their power to stifle the demands of consciousness and to
- justify their lives, and thus degrade society to a condition
- worse than pagan, to a state of primeval savagery--Uncertainty
- of the attitude of our leading men toward war, universal
- armament, and general military conscription--Those who regard
- war as an accidental political phenomenon easily to be remedied
- by external measures--The Peace Congress--Article in the Revue
- des Revues--Proposition of Maxime du Camp--Significance of
- Courts of Arbitration and Disarmament--Relations of governments
- to these, and the business they pursue--Those who regard war as
- a cruel inevitable phenomenon--Maupassant--Rod--Those who regard
- it as indispensable, even useful--Camille Doucet, Claretie,
- Zola, Voguee.
-
-
-The contradictions of life and of consciousness may be solved in two
-ways: by change of life, or by change of consciousness; and it would
-seem as if there could be no hesitation in a choice between the two.
-
-When a man acknowledges a deed to be evil he may refrain from the
-deed itself, but he can never cease to regard it as evil. Indeed,
-the whole world might cease from evil-doing, and yet have no power
-to transform, or even to check for a season, the progress of
-knowledge in regard to that which is evil, and which ought not to
-exist. One would think that the alternative of a change of life to
-accord with consciousness might be settled without question, and
-that it would therefore seem unavoidable for the Christian world of
-the present day to abandon those pagan forms which it condemns, and
-regulate its life by the Christian precepts which it acknowledges.
-
-Such would be the result were it not for the principle of inertia
-(a principle no less unalterable in human life than in the world
-of matter), which finds its expression in the psychological law
-defined in the gospel by the words: "Men loved darkness rather than
-light, because their deeds were evil" (John iii. 19). Most persons,
-in conformity to this principle, do not use their reason in order
-to ascertain the truth, but rather to persuade themselves that they
-possess it, and that their daily life, which is pleasant for them,
-is in harmony with the precepts of truth.
-
-Slavery conflicted with all the moral principles taught by Plato
-and Aristotle, and yet neither of them perceived this, because the
-disavowal of slavery must have destroyed that life by which they
-lived. And the same thing is repeated in our times.
-
-The division of mankind into two classes, the existence of political
-and military injustice, is opposed to all those moral principles
-which our society professes, and yet the most progressive and
-cultivated men of the age seem not to perceive this.
-
-Almost every educated man at the present day is striving
-unconsciously to preserve the old-time conception of society, which
-justifies his attitude, and to conceal from others and from himself
-its inconsistencies, chief among which is the necessity of adopting
-the Christian ideal, which is subversive of the very structure of
-our social existence. It is this antiquated social system, in which
-they no longer believe, because it is really a thing of the past,
-that men are trying to uphold.
-
-Contemporary literature, philosophical, political, and
-artistic,--all contemporary literature affords a striking proof
-of the truth of my statement. What wealth of imagination, what
-form and color, what erudition and art, but what a lack of serious
-purpose, what reluctance to face any exact thought! Ambiguity of
-expression, indirect allusion, witticisms, vague reflection, but no
-straightforward or candid dealing with the subject they treat of,
-namely, life.
-
-Indeed, our writers treat of obscenities and improprieties; in the
-guise of refined paradox they convey suggestions which thrust men
-back to primeval savagery, to the lowest dregs, not only of pagan
-life, but animal life, which we outlived 5000 years ago. Delivering
-themselves from the Christian life-conception, which for some simply
-interferes with the accustomed current of their lives, while for
-others it interferes with certain advantages, men must of necessity
-return to the pagan life-conception and to the doctrines to which it
-gave rise. Not only are patriotism and the rights of the aristocracy
-preached at the present time as they used to be 2000 years ago, but
-also the coarsest epicureanism and sensuality, with this difference
-only,--that the teachers of old believed in the doctrines they
-taught, whereas those of the present day neither do nor can possess
-any faith in what they utter, because there is no longer any sense
-in it. When the ground is shifting under our feet, we cannot stand
-still, we must either recede or advance. It sounds exaggerated to
-say that the enlightened men of our time, the advanced thinkers, are
-speciously degrading society, plunging it into a condition worse
-than pagan,--into a state of primeval barbarism.
-
-In no other matter has this tendency of the leading men of our
-time been so plainly shown as in their attitude toward that
-phenomenon in which at present all the inconsistency of social life
-is concentrated,--toward war, universal armament, and military
-conscription.
-
-The equivocal, if not unscrupulous, attitude of the educated men
-of our time toward this question is a striking one. It may be
-stated from three points of view. Some regard this phenomenon as
-an accidental state of affairs, which has sprung from the peculiar
-political situation of Europe, and believe it to be susceptible
-of adjustment by diplomatic and international mediation, without
-injury to the structure of nations. Others look upon it as something
-appalling and cruel, fatal yet unavoidable,--like disease or
-death. Still others, in cold blood, calmly pronounce war to be an
-indispensable, salutary, and therefore desirable event.
-
-Men may differ in their views in regard to this matter, but all
-discuss it as something with which the will of the individuals who
-are to take part in it has nothing whatever to do; therefore they
-do not even admit the natural question which presents itself to
-most men; viz., "Is it my duty to take part in it?" In the opinion
-of these judges there is no reason in such a question, and every
-man, whatever may be his personal prejudices in regard to war, must
-submit in this matter to the demands of the ruling powers.
-
-The attitude of those in the first category, who expect deliverance
-from war by means of diplomatic and international mediation, is
-well defined in the results of the London Peace Congress, and in
-an article, together with letters concerning war from prominent
-writers, which may be found in the _Revue des Revues_ (No. 8, 1891).
-
-These are the results of the Congress.
-
-Having collected from all parts of the globe the opinions of
-scientists, both written and oral, the Congress, opening with a _Te
-Deum_ in the cathedral, and closing with a dinner and speeches,
-listened for five days to numerous addresses, and arrived at the
-following conclusions:--
-
-Resolution I. The Congress affirms its belief that the brotherhood
-of man involves as a necessary consequence a brotherhood of
-nations, in which, the true interests of all are acknowledged to
-be identical. The Congress is convinced that the true basis for an
-enduring peace will be found in the application by nations of this
-great principle in all their relations one to another.
-
-II. The Congress recognizes the important influence which
-Christianity exercises upon the moral and political progress of
-mankind, and earnestly urges upon ministers of the gospel and other
-teachers of religion and morality the duty of setting forth these
-principles of Peace and Good-will, which occupy such a central
-place in the teaching of Jesus Christ, of philosophers and of
-moralists, and _it recommends that the third Sunday in December in
-each year be set apart for that purpose_.
-
-III. The Congress expresses its opinion that all teachers of history
-should call the attention of the young to the grave evils inflicted
-on mankind in all ages by war, and to the fact that such war has
-been waged, as a rule, for most inadequate causes.
-
-IV. The Congress protests against the use of military drill in
-connection with the physical exercises of schools, and suggests
-the formation of brigades for saving life rather than any of
-quasi-military character; and it urges the desirability of
-impressing on the Board of Examiners, who formulate the questions
-for examination, the propriety of guiding the minds of children into
-the principles of Peace.
-
-V. The Congress holds that the doctrine of the universal rights
-of man requires that aboriginal and weaker races shall be guarded
-from injustice and fraud when brought into contact with civilized
-peoples, alike as to their territories, their liberties, and their
-property, and that they shall be shielded from the vices which are
-so prevalent among the so-called advanced races of men. It further
-expresses its conviction that there should be concert of action
-among the nations for the accomplishment of these ends. The Congress
-desires to express its hearty appreciation of the conclusions
-arrived at by the late Anti-Slavery Conference, held in Brussels,
-for the amelioration of the condition of the peoples of Africa.
-
-VI. The Congress believes that the warlike prejudices and traditions
-which are still fostered in the various nationalities, and the
-misrepresentations by leaders of public opinion in legislative
-assemblies, or through the press, are not infrequently indirect
-causes of war. The Congress is therefore of opinion that these ends
-should be counteracted by the publication of accurate statements
-and information that would tend to the removal of misunderstanding
-amongst nations, and recommends to the Inter-Parliamentary
-Committee the importance of considering the question of starting an
-international newspaper, which should have such a purpose as one of
-its primary objects.
-
-VII. The Congress proposes to the Inter-Parliamentary Conference
-that the utmost support should be given to every project for the
-unification of weights and measures, of coinage, tariffs, postal
-and telegraphic arrangements, means of transport, etc., which would
-assist in constituting a commercial, industrial, and scientific
-union of the peoples.
-
-VIII. In view of the vast moral and social influence of woman, the
-Congress urges upon every woman throughout the world to sustain, as
-wife, mother, sister, or citizen, the things that make for peace,
-as otherwise she incurs grave responsibilities for the continuance
-of the systems of war and militarism, which not only desolate
-but corrupt the home-life of the nation. To concentrate and to
-practically apply this influence, the Congress recommends that
-women should unite themselves with societies for the promotion of
-international peace.
-
-IX. This Congress expresses the hope that the Financial Reform
-Association and other similar societies in Europe and America should
-unite in convoking at an early date a conference to consider the
-best means of establishing equitable commercial relations between
-States by the reduction of import duties as a step toward Free
-Trade. The Congress feels that it can affirm that the whole of
-Europe desires Peace, and is impatiently waiting for the moment when
-it shall see the end of those crushing armaments which, under the
-plea of defense, become in their turn a danger, by keeping alive
-mutual distrust, and are, at the same time, the cause of the general
-economic disturbance which stands in the way of settling in a
-satisfactory manner the problems of labor and poverty, which should
-take precedence of all others.
-
-X. This Congress, recognizing that a general disarmament would be
-the best guarantee of _Peace_, and would lead to the solution,
-in the general interest, of those questions which now must divide
-States, expresses the wish that a Congress of Representatives of
-all the States of Europe may be assembled as soon as possible to
-consider the means of effecting a gradual general disarmament, which
-already seems feasible.
-
-XI. This Congress, considering that the timidity of a single Power
-or other cause might delay indefinitely the convocation of the
-above-mentioned Congress, is of the opinion that the Government
-which should first dismiss any considerable number of soldiers would
-confer a signal benefit on Europe and mankind, because it would
-oblige other Governments, urged on by public opinion, to follow its
-example, and by the moral force of this accomplished fact would have
-increased rather than diminished the conditions of its national
-defense.
-
-XII. This Congress, considering the question of disarmament, as
-well as the Peace question generally, depends upon public opinion,
-recommends the Peace Societies here represented, and all friends of
-Peace, to carry on an active propaganda among the people, especially
-at the time of Parliamentary elections, in order that the electors
-should give their votes to those candidates who have included in
-their programme Peace, Disarmament, and Arbitration.
-
-XIII. This Congress congratulates the friends of Peace on the
-resolution adopted by the International American Conference
-(with the exception of the representatives of Chili and Mexico)
-at Washington in April last, by which it was recommended that
-arbitration should be obligatory in all controversies concerning
-diplomatic and consular privileges, boundaries, territories,
-indemnities, right of navigation, and the validity, construction,
-and enforcement of treaties, and in all other causes, whatever
-their origin, nature, or occasion, except only those which, in the
-judgment of any of the nations involved in the controversy, may
-imperil its independence.
-
-XIV. This Congress respectfully recommends this resolution to the
-statesmen of Europe, and expresses the ardent desire that treaties
-in similar terms be speedily entered into between the other nations
-of the world.
-
-XV. This Congress expresses its satisfaction at the adoption
-by the Spanish Senate, on June 18th last, of a project of law
-authorizing the Government to negotiate general or special treaties
-of arbitration for the settlement of all disputes, except those
-relating to the independence and internal government of the States
-affected; also at the adoption of resolutions to a like effect
-by the Norwegian Storthing on March 6th last, and by the Italian
-Chamber on July 11th.
-
-XVI. That a committee of five be appointed to prepare and address
-communications, in the name of the Congress, to the principal
-religious, political, economical, labor, and peace organizations
-in civilized countries, requesting them to send petitions to the
-governmental authorities of their respective countries, praying that
-measures be taken for the formation of suitable tribunals for the
-adjudication of international questions, so as to avoid the resort
-to war.
-
-XVII. Seeing (1) that the object pursued by all Peace Societies is
-the establishment of juridical order between nations:
-
-(2) That neutralization by international treaties constitutes a step
-toward this juridical state, and lessens the number of districts in
-which war can be carried on:
-
-This Congress recommends a larger extension of the rule of
-neutralization, and expresses the wish:--
-
-(1) That all treaties which at present assure to certain States
-the benefit of neutrality remain in force, or, if necessary, be
-amended in a manner to render the neutrality more effective, either
-by extending neutralization to the whole of the State, of which
-a part only may be neutralized, or by ordering the demolition of
-fortresses, which constitute rather a peril than a guarantee for
-neutrality.
-
-(2) That new treaties, provided that they are in harmony with the
-wishes of the populations concerned, be concluded for establishing
-the neutralization of other States.
-
-XVIII. The Committee Section proposes:--
-
-(1) That the next Congress be held immediately before or immediately
-after the next session of the Inter-Parliamentary Conference, and at
-the same places.
-
-(2) That the question of an international Peace Emblem be postponed
-_sine die_.
-
-(3) The adoption of the following resolutions:--
-
-(_a_) Resolved, that we express our satisfaction at the formal and
-official overtures of the Presbyterian Church in the United States
-of America, addressed to the highest representatives of each church
-organization in Christendom, inviting the same to unite with itself
-in a general conference, the object of which shall be to promote the
-substitution of international arbitration for war.
-
-(_b_) That this Congress, assembled in London from the 14th to
-the 19th July, desires to express its profound reverence for the
-memory of Aurelio Salfi, the great Italian jurist, a member of the
-Committee of the International League of Peace and Liberty.
-
-(4) That the memorial to the various heads of the civilized States
-adopted by this Congress, and signed by the President, should, so
-far as practicable, be presented to each Power by an influential
-deputation.
-
-(5) That the Organization Committee be empowered to make the needful
-verbal emendations in the papers and resolutions presented.
-
-(6) That the following resolutions be adopted:--
-
-(_a_) A resolution of thanks to the Presidents of the various
-sittings of the Congress.
-
-(_b_) A resolution of thanks to the chairman, the secretary, and the
-members of the Bureau of this Congress.
-
-(_c_) A resolution of thanks to the conveners and members of the
-sectional committees.
-
-(_d_) A resolution of thanks to Rev. Canon Scott Holland, Rev. Dr.
-Reuan Thomas, and Rev. J. Morgan Gibbon, for their pulpit addresses
-before the Congress, and that they be requested to furnish copies
-of the same for publication; and also Stamford Hall Congregational
-Church for the use of those buildings for public services.
-
-(_e_) A letter of thanks to Her Majesty for permission to visit
-Windsor Castle.
-
-(_f_) And also a resolution of thanks to the Lord Mayor and Lady
-Mayoress, to Mr. Passmore Edwards, and other friends who have
-extended their hospitality to the members of the Congress.
-
-XIX. This Congress places on record a heartfelt expression of
-gratitude to Almighty God for the remarkable harmony and concord
-which have characterized the meetings of the Assembly, in which so
-many men and women of varied nations, creeds, tongues, and races
-have gathered in closest cooperation; and in the conclusion of
-the labors of this Congress, it expresses its firm and unshaken
-belief in the ultimate triumph of the cause of _Peace_, and of the
-principles which have been advocated at these meetings.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The fundamental idea of the Congress is--firstly, that it is
-necessary to disseminate by all means among all men the belief that
-war is not advantageous for mankind, and that peace is a great
-benefit; and secondly, to influence governments, impressing upon
-them the advantages and necessity of disarmament.
-
-To accomplish the first end, the Congress advises teachers of
-history, women, and ministers of the gospel, to teach people, every
-third Sunday of December, the evils of war and the benefits of
-peace; to accomplish the second, the Congress addresses itself to
-governments, suggesting to them disarmament and arbitration.
-
-To preach the evils of war and the benefits of peace! But the evils
-of war are so well known to men, that from the earliest ages the
-most welcome greeting was always: "Peace be unto you!"
-
-Not only Christians but all pagans were fully aware of the benefits
-of peace and of the evils of war thousands of years ago, so that the
-advice to the ministers of the gospel to preach against the evils
-of war and to advocate the benefits of peace every third Sunday in
-December is quite superfluous.
-
-A real Christian cannot do otherwise than preach thus, constantly,
-as long as he lives. But if there are those who are called
-Christians, or Christian preachers, who do not do this, there must
-be a cause for it, and so long as this cause exists no advice will
-avail. Still less effective will be the advice to governments
-to disband armies and have recourse to International Courts of
-Arbitration. Governments know very well all the difficulties and
-burdens of conscription and of maintaining armies, and if in the
-face of such difficulties and burdens they still continue to do
-so, it is evident that they have no means of doing otherwise, and
-the advice of a Congress could in no way bring about a change.
-But scientists will not admit this, and still hope to find some
-combination of influences by means of which those governments which
-make war may be induced to restrain themselves.
-
-"Is it possible to avoid war?" writes a scientist in the _Revue des
-Revues_ (No. 8 of 1891). "All agree in recognizing the fact that
-if war should ever break out in Europe, its consequences would be
-similar to those of the great invasions. It would imperil the very
-existence of nations; it would be bloody, atrocious, desperate. This
-consideration, and the consideration of the terrible nature of the
-engines of destruction at the command of modern science, retards
-its declaration and temporarily maintains the present system,--a
-system which might be continued indefinitely, if it were not for the
-enormous expenses that burden the European nations and threaten to
-culminate in disasters fully equal to those occasioned by war.
-
-"Impressed with these thoughts, men of all nationalities have
-sought for means to arrest, or at least to diminish, the shocking
-consequences of the carnage that threatens us.
-
-"Such are the questions which are to be debated by the next Congress
-of Universal Peace to be held in Rome, which have already been
-discussed in a recently published pamphlet on Disarmament.
-
-"Unfortunately, it is quite certain that with the present
-organization of the greater number of the European states, isolated
-one from the other and controlled by different interests, the
-absolute cessation of war is an illusion which it would be folly to
-cherish. Still, the adoption of somewhat wiser rules and regulations
-in regard to these international duels would at least tend to
-limit their horrors. It is equally Utopian to build one's hope on
-projects of disarmament, whose execution, owing to considerations of
-a national character, which exist in the minds of all our readers,
-is practically impossible." (This probably means that France cannot
-disarm until she has retaliated.) "Public opinion is not prepared
-to accept them, and, furthermore, the international relations make
-it impossible to adopt them. Disarmament demanded by one nation
-of another, under conditions imperiling its security, would be
-equivalent to a declaration of war.
-
-"Still, we must admit that an exchange of opinions between the
-nations interested may to a certain extent aid in establishing an
-international understanding, and also contribute to lessen the
-military expenses that now crush European nations, to the great
-detriment of the solution of social questions, the necessity of the
-solution of which is realized by each nation individually, under the
-penalty of being confronted by a civil war, due to the efforts made
-to prevent a foreign one.
-
-"One may at least hope for a decrease of the enormous expenses
-necessary for the present military organization, which is maintained
-for the purpose of invading a foreign territory in twenty-four
-hours, or of a decisive battle a week after the declaration of war."
-
-It ought not to be possible for one nation to attack another and
-take possession of its territory within twenty-four hours. This
-practical sentiment was expressed by Maxime du Camp, and is the
-conclusion of his study of the subject.
-
-Maxime du Camp offers the following propositions:--
-
-"1st. A Diplomatic Congress, to assemble every year.
-
-"2d. No war to be declared until two months after the incident
-which gave rise to it." (Here the difficulty lies in determining
-the nature of the incident that kindled the war--that is, every
-declaration of war is caused by several circumstances, and it would
-be necessary to determine from which one the two months are to be
-reckoned.)
-
-"3d. No war shall be declared until the vote of the people shall
-have been taken.
-
-"4th. Hostilities must not begin until a month after the declaration
-of war."
-
-"_No war shall be declared_ ..." etc. But who is to _prevent_
-hostilities _beginning_? Who will compel men to do this or that?
-Who will compel governments to wait a certain stated time? Other
-nations. But all the other nations are in the very same position,
-requiring to be restrained and kept within bounds, in other words,
-_coerced_. And who will _coerce_ them? And how is it to be done?
-By public opinion. But if public opinion has sufficient influence
-to force a nation to postpone its action until a stated time, this
-public opinion can prevent it from waging war at any time.
-
-But, it is said, there might be a balance of power, which would
-oblige nations to restrain themselves. This very experiment has been
-and is still being tried; this was the object of the Holy Alliance,
-the League of Peace, etc.
-
-But all would agree to this, it is said. If all would agree to this,
-then wars would cease, and there would be no need of Courts of
-Appeal or of Arbitration.
-
-"A Court of Arbitration would take the place of war. Disputes would
-be decided by a Board of Arbitrators, like that which pronounced
-on the Alabama claims. The Pope has been requested to decide the
-question concerning the Caroline Islands: Switzerland, Belgium,
-Denmark, and Holland have declared that they prefer the decision of
-a Court of Arbitration to war."
-
-I believe Monaco has expressed a similar wish. It is a pity that
-Germany, Russia, Austria, and France have thus far shown no sign of
-imitating their example.
-
-It is astonishing how easily men can deceive themselves when they
-feel inclined.
-
-The governments will agree to allow their disputes to be decided
-by a Board of Arbitration and to dismiss their armies. The trouble
-between Russia and Poland, England and Ireland, Austria and the
-Czechs, Turkey and the Slavs, France and Germany, will be settled
-by mutual consent. This is very much like suggesting to merchants
-and bankers that they shall sell at cost price, and devote their
-services gratuitously to the distribution of property.
-
-Of course the essence of commerce and banking consists in buying
-cheap and selling dear, and therefore the suggestion to sell at cost
-price and the consequent overthrow of money amounts to a proposal of
-self-destruction.
-
-The same is true in regard to governments.
-
-The suggestion to governments to desist from violence, and to adjust
-all differences by arbitration, would be to recommend a suicidal
-policy, and no government would ever agree to that. Learned men
-found societies (there are more than one hundred of them), they
-assemble in Congresses (like those held in London and Paris and the
-one which is to be held in Rome), they read essays, hold banquets,
-make speeches, edit journals devoted to the subject, and by all
-these means they endeavor to prove that the strain upon nations who
-are obliged to support millions of soldiers has become so severe
-that something must be done about it; that this armament is opposed
-to the character, the aims, and the wishes of the populations;
-but they seem to think that if they consume a good deal of paper,
-and devote a good deal of eloquence to the subject, that they may
-succeed in conciliating opposing parties and conflicting interests,
-and at last effect the suppression of war.
-
-When I was a child I was told that if I wished to catch a bird I
-must put salt on its tail. I took a handful and went in pursuit of
-the birds, but I saw at once that if I could sprinkle salt on their
-tails I could catch them, and that what I had been told was only a
-joke. Those who read essays and works on Courts of Arbitration and
-the disarmament of nations must feel very much the same.
-
-If it were possible to sprinkle salt on a bird's tail it would be
-tantamount to saying that the bird could not fly, and therefore it
-would be no effort to catch it. If a bird has wings and does not
-wish to be caught, it will not allow any salt to be put on its tail,
-for it is the nature of a bird to fly. Likewise it is the nature
-of a government not to be ruled, but to rule its subjects. And a
-government rightly is named such only when it is able to rule its
-subjects, and not be ruled by them. This, therefore, is its constant
-aim, and it will never voluntarily resign its power. And as it
-derives its power from the army it will never give up the army, nor
-will it ever renounce that for which the army is designed,--war.
-
-The misapprehension springs from the fact that the learned jurists,
-deceiving themselves as well as others, depict in their books an
-ideal of government,--not as it really is, an assembly of men who
-oppress their fellow-citizens, but in accordance with the scientific
-postulate, as a body of men who act as the representatives of the
-rest of the nation. They have gone on repeating this to others
-so long that they have ended by believing it themselves, and
-they really seem to think that justice is one of the duties of
-governments. History, however, shows us that governments, as seen
-from the reign of Caesar to those of the two Napoleons and Prince
-Bismarck, are in their very essence a violation of justice; a man or
-a body of men having at command an army of trained soldiers, deluded
-creatures who are ready for any violence, and through whose agency
-they govern the State, will have no keen sense of the obligation of
-justice. Therefore governments will never consent to diminish the
-number of those well-trained and submissive servants, who constitute
-their power and influence.
-
-Such is the attitude of certain scientists toward that
-self-contradiction under which the world groans, and such are their
-expedients for its relief. Tell these scientists that the question
-deals only with the personal relations of each individual toward
-the moral and religious question, and then ask them what they think
-of the lawfulness or unlawfulness of taking part in the general
-conscription, and their sole reply will be a shrug of the shoulders;
-they will not even deign to give a thought to your question. Their
-way of solving the difficulty is to make speeches, write books,
-choose their presidents, vice-presidents, and secretaries; assembled
-in a body, to hold forth in one city or another. They think that
-the result of their efforts will be to induce governments to
-cease to recruit soldiers, on whom all their power depends; they
-expect that their appeals will be heard, and that armies will be
-disbanded, leaving governments defenseless, not only in the presence
-of neighbors, but of their subjects; that they, like highwaymen
-who, having bound their defenseless victims in order to rob them,
-no sooner hear the outcries of pain than they loosen the rope that
-causes it, and let their prisoners go free.
-
-And there really are men who believe in this, who spend their time
-in promoting Leagues of Peace, in delivering addresses, and in
-writing books; and of course the governments sympathize with it all,
-pretending that they approve of it; just as they pretend to support
-temperance, while they actually derive the larger part of their
-income from intemperance; just as they pretend to maintain liberty
-of the constitution, when it is the absence of liberty to which they
-owe their power; just as they pretend to care for the improvement
-of the laboring classes, while on oppression of the workman rest
-the very foundations of the State; just as they pretend to uphold
-Christianity, when Christianity is subversive of every government.
-
-In order to accomplish these ends they have long since instituted
-laws in regard to intemperance that can never avail to destroy it;
-educational projects that not only do not prevent the spread of
-ignorance, but do everything to increase it; decrees in the name
-of liberty that are no restraint upon despotism; measures for the
-benefit of the working-man which will never liberate him from
-slavery; they have established a Christianity which serves to prop
-the government rather than destroy it. And now another interest
-is added to their cares,--the promotion of peace. Governments,
-or rather those rulers who are going about at present with their
-ministers of state, making up their minds on such radical questions
-as, for instance, whether the slaughter of millions shall begin
-this year or next,--they are quite well assured that discussions on
-peace are not going to prevent them from sending millions of men to
-slaughter whenever they see fit to do so. They like to hear these
-discussions, they encourage them, and even take part themselves.
-
-It does no harm to the government; on the contrary, it is useful, by
-way of diverting observation from that radical question: When a man
-is drafted, ought he or ought he not to fulfil his military duty?
-
-Thanks to all these unions and congresses, peace will presently be
-established; meanwhile put on your uniforms, and be prepared to
-worry and harass each other for our benefit, say the governments.
-And the scientists, the essayists, and the promoters of congresses
-take the same view.
-
-This is one way of looking at it, and so advantageous for the State
-that all prudent governments encourage it.
-
- * * * * *
-
-The way another class has of regarding it is more tragic. They
-declare that although it is the fate of humanity to be forever
-striving after love and peace, it is nevertheless abnormal and
-inconsistent. Those who affirm this are mostly the sensitive men of
-genius, who see and realize all the horror, folly, and cruelty of
-war, but by some strange turn of mind never look about them for any
-means of escape, but who seem to take a morbid delight in realizing
-to the utmost the desperate condition of mankind. The view of the
-famous French writer, Maupassant, on the subject of war, affords a
-noteworthy example of this kind. Gazing from his yacht upon a drill
-and target-practice of French soldiers, the following thoughts arise
-in his mind:--
-
- "I have but to think of the word 'war' and a paralyzing sense
- of horror creeps over me, as though I were listening to stories
- of witchcraft, or tales of the Inquisition, or of things
- abominable, monstrous, unnatural, of ages past.
-
- "When people talk of cannibals we smile contemptuously with a
- sense of superiority to such savages. But who are the savages,
- the true savages? Those who fight that they may drive off the
- conquered, or those who fight for the pure pleasure of killing?
- Those sharp-shooters running over yonder are destined to be
- killed like a flock of sheep who are driven by the butcher to
- the slaughter-house. Those men will fall on some battlefield
- with a sabre-cut in the head, or with a ball through the heart.
- Yet they are young men, who might have done useful work. Their
- fathers are old and poor; their mothers, who have idolized them
- for twenty years as only mothers can idolize, will learn after
- six months, or perhaps a year, that the son, the baby, the
- grown-up child on whom so much love and pains were lavished,
- who was reared at such an expense, has been torn by a bullet,
- trampled under foot, or crushed by a cavalry charge, and finally
- flung like a dead dog into some ditch. Why must her boy, her
- beautiful, her only boy, the hope and pride of her life, why
- must he be killed? She knows not; she can but ask why.
-
- "War!... The fighting!... The murdering!... The slaughter of
- men!... And to-day, with all our wisdom, civilization, with the
- advancement of science, the degree of philosophy to which the
- human spirit has attained, we have schools where the art of
- murder, of aiming with deadly accuracy and killing large numbers
- of men at a distance, is actually taught, killing poor, harmless
- devils who have families to support, killing them without even
- the pretext of the law.
-
- "_It is stupefying that the people do not rise up in arms
- against the governments. What difference is there between
- monarchies and republics? It is stupefying that society does not
- revolt as a unit at the very sound of the word war._
-
- "Alas! we shall never be free from oppression of the hateful,
- hideous customs, the criminal prejudices, and the ferocious
- impulses of our barbarous ancestors, for we are beasts; and
- beasts we shall remain, moved by our instincts and susceptible
- of no improvement.
-
- "Any one but Victor Hugo would have been banished when he
- uttered his sublime cry of freedom and truth:--
-
- "'To-day force is called violence, and the nations condemn it;
- they inveigh against war. Civilization, listening to the appeal
- of humanity, undertakes the case and prepares the accusation
- against the victors and the generals. The nations begin to
- understand that the magnitude of a crime cannot lessen its
- wickedness; that if it be criminal to kill one man, the killing
- of numbers cannot be regarded in the light of extenuation; that
- if it be shameful to steal, it cannot be glorious to lead an
- invading army.
-
- "'Let us proclaim these absolute truths, let us dishonor the
- name of war!'
-
- "But the wrath and indignation of the poet are all in vain,"
- continues Maupassant. "War is more honored than ever.
-
- "A clever expert in this business, a genius in the art of
- murder, Von Moltke, once made to a peace-delegate the following
- astonishing reply:--
-
- "'War is sacred; it is a divine institution; it fosters
- every lofty and noble sentiment in the human heart: honor,
- self-sacrifice, virtue, courage, and saves men, so to speak,
- from settling into the most shocking materialism.'
-
- "Assembling in herds by the hundred thousand, marching night and
- day without rest, with no time for thought or for study, never
- to read, learning nothing, of no use whatsoever to any living
- being, rotting with filth, sleeping in the mud, living like a
- wild beast in a perennial state of stupidity, plundering cities,
- burning villages, ruining whole nations; then to encounter
- another mountain of human flesh, rush upon it, cause rivers
- of blood to flow, and strew the fields with the dead and the
- dying, all stained with the muddy and reddened soil, to have
- one's limbs severed, one's brain scattered as wanton waste, and
- to perish in the corner of a field while one's aged parents,
- one's wife and children, are dying of hunger at home,--this
- is what it means to be saved from falling into the grossest
- materialism!
-
- "Soldiers are the scourge of the world. We struggle against
- nature, ignorance, all kinds of obstacles, in the effort to make
- our wretched lives more endurable. There are men, scientists
- and philanthropists, who devote their whole lives to benefit
- their fellow-men, seeking to improve their condition. They
- pursue their efforts tirelessly, adding discovery to discovery,
- expanding the human intelligence, enriching science, opening
- new fields of knowledge, day by day increasing the well-being,
- comfort, and vigor of their country.
-
- "Then war comes upon the scene, and in six months all the
- results of twenty years of patient labor and of human genius are
- gone forever, crushed by victorious generals.
-
- "And this is what they mean when they speak of man's rescue from
- materialism!
-
- "We have seen war. We have seen men maddened; returned to the
- condition of the brutes, we have seen them kill in wanton sport,
- out of terror, or for mere bravado and show. Where right exists
- no longer, and law is dead, where all sense of justice has
- been lost, we have seen innocent men shot down on the highway,
- because they were timid and thus excited suspicion. We have
- seen dogs chained to their masters' doors killed by way of
- target-practice, we have seen cows lying in a field fired at by
- the mitrailleuses, just for the fun of shooting at something.
-
- "And this is what they call saving men from the most shocking
- materialism!
-
- "To invade a country, to kill the man who defends his home
- because he wears a blouse and does not wear a _kepi_, to burn
- the dwellings of starving wretches, to ruin or plunder a man's
- household goods, to drink the wine found in the cellars, to
- violate the women found in the streets, consume millions of
- francs in powder, and to leave misery and cholera in their track.
-
- "This is what they mean by saving men from the most shocking
- materialism!
-
- "What have military men ever done to prove that they possess the
- smallest degree of intelligence? Nothing whatever. What have
- they invented? The cannon and the musket; nothing more.
-
- "Has not the inventor of the wheelbarrow, by the simple and
- practical contrivance of a wheel and a couple of boards,
- accomplished more than the inventor of modern fortification?
-
- "What has Greece bequeathed to the world? Its literature and its
- marbles. Was she great because she conquered, or because she
- produced? Was it the Persian invasion that saved Greece from
- succumbing to the most shocking materialism?
-
- "Did the invasions of the Barbarians save and regenerate Rome?
-
- "Did Napoleon I. continue the great intellectual movement
- started by the philosophers at the end of the last century?
-
- "Very well, then; can it be a matter of surprise, since
- governments usurp the rights of life and death over the people,
- that the people from time to time assume the right of life and
- death over their governments?
-
- "They defend themselves, and they have the right. No man has an
- inalienable right to govern others. It is allowable only when it
- promotes the welfare of the governed. It is as much the duty of
- those who govern to avoid war as it is that of a captain of a
- ship to avoid shipwreck.
-
- "When a captain has lost his ship he is indicted, and if he
- is found to have been careless or even incompetent, he is
- convicted. As soon as war has been declared why should not the
- people sit in judgment upon the act of the government?
-
- "If they could once be made to understand the power that would
- be theirs, _if they were the judges of the rulers who lead them
- on to slay their fellow-men, if they refused to allow themselves
- to be needlessly slaughtered, if they were to turn their weapons
- against the very men who have put them into their hands--that
- day would see the last of war.... But never will that day
- arrive."_--"Sur l'Eau."
-
-The author perceives the full horror of war, realizes that the
-government is its author, that government forces men to go slay, or
-be slain, when there is no need for it; he realizes that the men who
-make up the armies might turn their weapons against the government
-and demand a reckoning. Still the author does not believe that this
-will ever happen, or that there is any possible deliverance from the
-existing condition of affairs.
-
-He grants that the result of war is shocking, but he believes it
-to be inevitable; assuming that the never ceasing requisition of
-soldiers on the part of government is as inevitable as death, then
-wars must follow as a matter of course.
-
-These are the words of a writer of talent, endowed with a faculty of
-vividly realizing his subject, which is the essence of the poetic
-gift. He shows us all the cruel contradictions between creed and
-deed; but since he fails to offer a solution, it is evident that
-he feels that such a contradiction must exist, and regards it as a
-contribution to the romantic tragedy of life. Another and an equally
-gifted writer, Edouard Rod, paints with colors still more vivid the
-cruelty and folly of the present situation, but he, like Maupassant,
-feels the influence of the dramatic element, and neither suggests a
-remedy nor anticipates any change.
-
- "Why do we toil? Why do we plan and hope to execute? And how
- can one even love one's neighbor in these troublous times,
- when the morrow is nothing but a menace?... Everything that
- we have begun, our ripening schemes, our plans for work, the
- little good that we might accomplish, will it not all be swept
- away by the storm that is gathering?... Everywhere the soil
- quakes beneath our feet, and threatening clouds hang low on the
- horizon. Ah! if we had nothing more to fear than the bugbear of
- the Revolution!... Unable to conceive a society worse than our
- own, I am more inclined to distrust than to fear the one that
- may replace it, and if I should suffer in consequence of the
- change, I should console myself with the reflection that the
- executioners of the present were victims of the past, and the
- hope of a change for the better would make me endure the worst.
- But it is not this remote danger which alarms me. I see another
- close at hand and far more cruel, since it is both unjustifiable
- and irrational, and nothing good can come out of it. Day by day
- the chances of war are weighed, and day by day they become more
- pitiless.
-
- "The human mind refuses to believe in the catastrophe which even
- now looms up before us, and which the close of this century
- must surely witness, a catastrophe which will put an end to all
- the progress of our age, and yet we must try to realize it.
- Science has devoted all her energy these twenty years to the
- invention of destructive weapons, and soon a few cannon-balls
- will suffice to destroy an army;[10] not the few thousands of
- wretched mercenaries, whose life-blood has been bought and paid
- for, but whole nations are about to exterminate each other;
- during conscription their time is stolen from them in order to
- steal their lives with more certainty. By way of stimulating a
- thirst for blood mutual animosities are excited, and gentle,
- kind-hearted men allow themselves to be deluded, and it will
- not be long before they attack each other with all the ferocity
- of wild beasts; multitudes of peace-loving citizens will obey
- a foolish command, God only knows on what pretext,--some
- stupid frontier quarrel, perhaps, or it may be some colonial
- mercantile interest.... They will go like a flock of sheep to
- the slaughter, yet knowing where they go, conscious that they
- are leaving their wives and their children to suffer hunger;
- anxious, but unable to resist the enticement of those plausible
- and treacherous words that have been trumpeted into their ears.
- _Unresistingly they go; although they form a mass and a force,
- they fail to realize the extent of their power, and that if
- they were all agreed they might establish the reign of reason
- and fraternity_, instead of lending themselves to the barbarous
- trickeries of diplomacy.
-
- [10] The book was published a year ago, and since then dozens
- of new weapons and smokeless powder have been invented for the
- annihilation of mankind.--AUTHOR.
-
- "So self-deceived are they that bloodshed takes on the aspect of
- duty, and they implore the blessing of God upon their sanguinary
- hopes. As they march, they trample underfoot the harvests which
- they themselves have planted, burning the cities which they have
- helped to build, with songs, shouts of enthusiasm, and music.
- And their sons will raise a statue to those who have slain them
- by the most approved methods.... The fate of a whole generation
- hangs on the hour when some saturnine politician shall make the
- sign, and the nations will rush upon each other. We know that
- the noblest among us will be cut down, and that our affairs
- will go to destruction. _We know this, we tremble in anger, yet
- are powerless._ We have been caught in a snare of bureaucracy
- and waste paper from which we can only escape by measures too
- energetic for us. We belong to the laws which we have made for
- our protection, and which oppress us. _We are nothing more
- than the creatures of that antinomic abstraction, the State,
- which makes of each individual a slave in the name of all, each
- individual of which all, taken separately, would desire the
- exact contrary of what he will be made to do._
-
- "And if it were but the sacrifice of a single generation! But
- many other interests are involved.
-
- "Paid orators, demagogues, taking advantage of the passions
- of the masses and of the simple-minded who are dazzled by
- high-sounding phrases, have so embittered national hatreds
- that to-morrow's war will decide the fate of a race: one of
- the component parts of the modern world is threatened; the
- vanquished nation will morally disappear; it matters not which
- chances to be the victim, a power will disappear (as though
- there had ever been one too many for the good). A new Europe
- will then be established on a basis so unjust, so brutal, so
- bloodstained, that it cannot fail to be worse than that of
- to-day,--more iniquitous, more barbarous, and more aggressive....
-
- "Thus a fearful depression hangs over us. We are like men
- dashing up and down a narrow passageway, with muskets pointed at
- us from all the roofs. We work like sailors executing their last
- manoeuver after the ship has begun to sink. Our pleasures are
- those of the prisoner to whom a choice dish is offered a quarter
- of an hour before his execution. Anxiety paralyzes our thought,
- and the utmost we can do is to wonder, as we con the vague
- utterances of ministers, or construe the meaning of the words
- of monarchs, or turn over those ascribed to the diplomatists,
- retailed at random by the newspapers, never sure of their
- information, whether all this is to happen to-morrow or the day
- after, whether it is this year or next that we are all to be
- killed. In truth, one might seek in vain throughout the pages
- of history for an epoch more unsettled or more pregnant with
- anxiety."--"Le Sens de la Vie."
-
-He shows us that the power is really in the hands of those who allow
-themselves to be destroyed, in the hands of separate individuals who
-compose the mass; that the root of all evil is the State. It would
-seem as if the contradiction between one's faith and one's actual
-life had reached its utmost limit, and that the solution could not
-be far to seek.
-
-But the author is of a different opinion. All that he sees in
-this is the tragedy of human life, and having given us a detailed
-description of the horror of this state of things, he perceives
-no reason why human life should not be spent in the midst of this
-horror. Such are the views of the second class of writers, who
-consider only the fatalistic and tragic side of war.
-
-There is still another view, and this is the one held by men who
-have lost all conscience, and are consequently dead to common sense
-and human feeling.
-
-To this class belong Moltke, whose opinions are quoted by
-Maupassant, and nearly all military men who have been taught to
-believe this cruel superstition, who are supported by it, and who
-naturally regard war not only as an inevitable evil, but as a
-necessary and even profitable occupation. And there are civilians
-too, scientists, men of refinement and education, who hold very much
-the same views.
-
-The famous academician Doucet, in reply to a query of the editor of
-the _Revue des Revues_ in regard to his opinions on war, replies as
-follows in the number containing letters concerning war:[11]--
-
- "DEAR SIR,--When you ask of the least belligerent of all the
- academicians if he is a partizan of war, his reply is already
- given. Unfortunately you yourself classify the peaceful
- contemplations which inspire your fellow-countrymen at the
- present hour as idle visions.
-
- "Ever since I was born I have always heard good men protesting
- against this shocking custom of international carnage. All
- recognize this evil and lament it. But where is its remedy?
-
- "The effort to suppress duelling has often been made. It seems
- to be so easy. Far from it. All that has been accomplished
- toward achieving this noble purpose amounts to nothing, nor
- will it ever amount to more. Against war and duelling the
- congresses of the two hemispheres vote in vain. Superior to all
- arbitrations, conventions, and legislations will ever remain
- human honor, which has always demanded the duel, and national
- interests, which have always called for war. Nevertheless, I
- wish with all my heart that the Universal Peace Congress may
- succeed at last in its difficult and honorable task.--Accept the
- assurance, etc.,
-
- "CAMILLE DOUCET."
-
- [11] _La Revue des Revues_, "La guerre, etat de la question, juge
- par nos grands hommes contemporains."--TR.
-
-It amounts to this, that honor obliges men to fight, that it is for
-the interest of nations that they should attack and destroy one
-another, and that all endeavors to abolish war can but excite a
-smile.
-
-Jules Claretie expresses himself in similar terms:--
-
- "DEAR SIR,--A sensible man can have but one opinion on the
- question of war and peace. Humanity was created to live--to
- live for the purpose of perfecting its existence by peaceful
- labor. The mutual relations of cordiality which are promoted and
- preached by the Universal Congress of Peace may be but a dream
- perhaps, yet certainly is the most delightful of dreams. The
- vision of the land of promise is ever before the eyes, and upon
- the soil of the future the harvest will ripen, secure from the
- plowing of the projectile, or the crushing of cannon-wheels.
- But, alas!... Since philosophers and philanthropists are not the
- rulers of mankind, it is fit that our soldiers should guard our
- frontiers and our homes, and their weapons, skilfully wielded,
- are perhaps the surest guarantees of the peace we love so well.
- Peace is given only to the strong and the courageous.--Accept
- the assurances of, etc.,
-
- "JULES CLARETIE."
-
-The substance of this is, that there is no harm in talking about
-what no one intends to do, and what ought not in any event to be
-done. When fighting is in order, there is no alternative but to
-fight.
-
-Emile Zola, the most popular novelist in Europe, gives utterance to
-his views on the subject of war in the following terms:--
-
- "I look upon war as a fatal necessity which seems to us
- indispensable because of its close connection with human nature
- and all creation. Would that it might be postponed as long as
- possible! Nevertheless a time will come when we shall be forced
- to fight. At this moment I am regarding the subject from the
- universal standpoint, and am not hinting at our unfriendly
- relations with Germany, which are but a trifling incident in the
- world's history. I affirm that war is useful and necessary,
- since it is one of the conditions of human existence. The
- fighting instinct is to be found not only among the different
- tribes and peoples, but in domestic and private life as
- well. It is one of the chief elements of progress, and every
- advancing step taken by mankind up to the present time has been
- accompanied by bloodshed.
-
- "Men have talked, and still do talk, of disarmament; and yet
- disarmament is utterly impossible, for even though it were
- possible, we should be compelled to renounce it. It is only an
- armed nation that can be powerful and great. I believe that a
- general disarmament would be followed by a moral degradation,
- assuming the form of a widespread effeminacy which would impede
- the progress of humanity. Warlike nations have always been
- vigorous. The military art has contributed to the development
- of other arts. History shows us this. In Athens and Rome, for
- instance, commerce, industry, and literature reached their
- highest development when these cities ruled the world by the
- force of arms. And nearer to our own time we found an example
- in the reign of Louis XIV. The wars of the great king, so far
- from impeding the advance of arts and sciences, seemed rather to
- promote and to favor their progress."
-
-War is useful!
-
-But chief among the advocates of these views, and the most talented
-of all the writers of this tendency, is the academician Voguee, who,
-in an article on the military section of the Exhibition of 1889,
-writes as follows:--
-
- "On the Esplanade des Invalides, the center of exotic and
- colonial structures, a building of a more severe order stands
- out from the midst of the picturesque bazaar; these various
- fragments of our terrestrial globe adjoin the palace of war. A
- magnificent theme and antithesis for humanitarian rhetoric which
- never loses a chance to lament a juxtaposition of this kind, and
- to utter its 'this will kill that' [_ceci tuera cela_[12]];
- that the confederacy of nations brought about by science and
- labor will overpower the military instinct. Let it cherish this
- vision of a golden age, caressing it with fond hopes. We have
- no objection; but should it ever be realized, it would very
- soon become an age of corruption. History teaches us that the
- former has been accomplished by the means of the latter, that
- blood is necessary to hasten and to seal the confederacy of
- nations. In our own time the natural sciences have strengthened
- the mysterious law which revealed itself to Joseph de Maistre
- through the inspiration of his genius and meditation on
- primordial dogmas; he saw how the world would redeem its
- hereditary fall by offering a sacrifice. Science shows us that
- the world is made better by struggle and violent selection;
- this affirmation of the same law, with varied utterance, comes
- from two sources. It is by no means a pleasant one. The laws
- of the world, however, are not established for our pleasure,
- but for our perfection. Let us then enter this necessary and
- indispensable palace of war, and we shall have the opportunity
- to observe how our most inveterate instinct, losing nothing
- of its power, is transformed in its adaptation to the various
- demands of historical moments."
-
- [12] Words taken from Victor Hugo's "Notre Dame," where he says that
- printing will kill architecture.--AUTHOR.
-
-This idea, namely, that the proof of the necessity of war may
-be found in the writings of De Maistre and of Darwin, two great
-thinkers, as he calls them, pleases Voguee so much that he repeats it.
-
-"Sir," he writes to the editor of the _Revue des Revues_, "you ask
-my opinion in regard to the possible success of the Universal Peace
-Congress. I believe, with Darwin, that vehement struggle is the
-law governing all being, and I believe, with Joseph de Maistre,
-that it is a divine law,--two different modes of characterizing
-the same principle. If, contrary to all expectations, a certain
-fraction of humanity--for example, all the civilized West--should
-succeed in arresting the issue of this law, the more primitive races
-would execute it against us; in these races the voice of nature
-would prevail over human intellect. And they would succeed, because
-the certainty of _peace_--I do not say peace, but the absolute
-_certainty of peace_--would in less than half a century produce a
-corruption and a decadence in men more destructive than the worst of
-wars. I believe that one should act in regard to war--that criminal
-law of humanity--as in regard to all criminal laws: modify it, or
-endeavor to make its execution as rare as possible, and use every
-means in our power to render it superfluous. But experience of all
-history teaches us that it cannot be suppressed, so long as there
-shall be found on earth two men, bread, money, and a woman between
-them. I should be very glad if the Congress could prove to me the
-contrary; but I doubt if it can disprove history, and the law of God
-and of nature.--Accept my assurance, etc.,
-
- "E. M. DE VOGUeE."
-
-This may be summed up as follows: History and nature, God and man,
-show us that so long as there are two men left on earth, and the
-stakes are bread, money, and woman, just so long there will be war.
-That is, that no amount of civilization will ever destroy that
-abnormal concept of life which makes it impossible for men to divide
-bread, money (of all absurdities), and woman without a fight. It is
-odd that people meet in congresses and hold forth as to the best
-method of catching birds by putting salt on their tails, although
-they must know that this can never be done! It is astonishing that
-men like Rod, Maupassant, and others, clearly realizing all the
-horrors of war, and all the contradictions that ensue from men not
-doing what they ought to do, and what it would be to their advantage
-to do, who bemoan the tragedy of life, and yet fail to see that
-this tragic element would vanish as soon as men ceased to discuss a
-subject which should not be discussed, and ceased to do that which
-is both painful and repulsive for them to do!
-
-One may wonder at them; but men who, like Voguee and others, believe
-in the law of evolution, and look upon war as not only unavoidable,
-but even useful, and therefore desirable,--such men are fairly
-shocking, horrible in their moral aberration. The former at least
-declare that they hate evil and love good, but the latter believe
-there is neither good nor evil.
-
-All this discussion of the possibility of establishing peace instead
-of continual warfare is but the mischievous sentimentalism of idle
-talkers. There is a law of evolution which seems to prove that I
-must live and do wrong. What, then, can I do? I am an educated
-man,--I am familiar with the doctrine of evolution; hence it follows
-that I shall work evil. "Entrons au palais de la guerre." There is a
-law of evolution, and therefore there can be no real evil; and one
-must live one's life and leave the rest to the law of evolution.
-This is the last expression of refined civilization; it is with
-this idea that the educated classes at the present day deaden their
-conscience.
-
-The desire of these classes to preserve their favorite theories and
-the life that they have built up on them can go no further. They
-lie, and by their specious arguments deceive themselves as well as
-others, obscuring and deadening their intuitive perceptions.
-
-Rather than adapt their lives to their consciousness, they try by
-every means to befog and to silence it. But the light shines in the
-darkness, and even now it begins to dawn.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII
-
-SIGNIFICANCE OF THE MILITARY CONSCRIPTION
-
- General military conscription is not a political accident, but
- the extreme limit of contradiction contained in the social
- life-conception--Rise of power in society--The basis of power
- is personal violence--The organization of armed men, an army,
- is required by power to enable it to accomplish violence--The
- rise of power in society, that is, of violence, destroys by
- degrees the social life-conception--Attitude of power toward
- the masses, that is to say, the oppressed--Governments endeavor
- to make workmen believe in the necessity of State violence for
- their preservation from external foes--But the army is needed
- principally to defend government from its own subjects, the
- oppressed working-men--Address of Caprivi--All the privileges of
- the ruling classes are assured by violence--Increase of armies
- leads to a general military conscription--General military
- conscription destroys all the advantages of social life which it
- is the duty of the State to guard--General military conscription
- is the extreme limit of obedience, as it demands in the name of
- the State the abnegation of all that may be dear to man--Is the
- State needed?--The sacrifices which it requires from citizens
- through the general military conscription have no longer any
- basis--Hence it is more advantageous for man to rebel against
- the demands of the State than to submit to them.
-
-
-The efforts which the educated men of the upper classes are making
-to silence the growing consciousness that the present system of
-life must be changed, are constantly on the increase, while life
-itself, continuing to develop and to become more complex without
-changing its direction, as it increases the incongruities and
-suffering of human existence, brings men to the extreme limit of
-this contradiction. An example of this uttermost limit is found in
-the general military conscription.
-
-It is usually supposed that this conscription, together with the
-increasing armaments and the consequent increase of the taxes and
-national debts of all countries, are the accidental results of a
-certain crisis in European affairs, which might be obviated by
-certain political combinations, without change of the interior life.
-
-This is utterly erroneous. The general conscription is nothing
-but an internal contradiction which has crept into the social
-life-conception, and which has only become evident because it has
-arrived at its utmost limits at a period when men have attained a
-certain degree of material development.
-
-The social life-conception transfers the significance of life
-from the individual to mankind in general, through the unbroken
-continuity of the family, the tribe, and the State.
-
-According to the social life-conception it is supposed that as the
-significance of life is comprised in the sum total of mankind, each
-individual will of his own accord sacrifice his interests to those
-of the whole. This in fact has always been the case with certain
-aggregates, like the family or the tribe.
-
-In consequence of custom, transmitted by education and confirmed by
-religious suggestion, and without compulsion, the individual merges
-his interests in those of the group, and sacrifices himself for the
-benefit of the whole.
-
-But the more complex became societies, the larger they
-grew,--conquest especially contributing to unite men in social
-organizations,--the more individuals would be found striving to
-attain their ends at the expense of their fellow-men; and thus the
-necessity for subjugation by power, or, in other words, by violence,
-became more and more frequent.
-
-The advocates of the social life-conception usually attempt to
-combine the idea of authority, otherwise violence, with that of
-moral influence; but such a union is utterly impossible.
-
-The result of moral influence upon man is to change his desires,
-so that he willingly complies with what is required of him. A man
-who yields to moral influence takes pleasure in conforming his
-actions to its laws; whereas authority, as the word is commonly
-understood, is a means of coercion, by which a man is forced to act
-in opposition to his wishes. A man who submits to authority does not
-do as he pleases, he yields to compulsion, and in order to force
-a man to do something for which he has an aversion, the threat of
-physical violence, or violence itself, must be employed: he may be
-deprived of his liberty, flogged, mutilated, or he may be threatened
-with these punishments. And this is what constitutes power both in
-the past and in the present.
-
-Despite the unremitting efforts of rulers to conceal these facts,
-and to attribute a different significance to authority, it simply
-means the rope and chain wherewith a man is bound and dragged, the
-lash wherewith he is flogged, the knife or ax wherewith his limbs,
-nose, ears, and head are hewed off. Authority is either the menace
-or the perpetration of these acts. This was the practice in the
-times of Nero and Genghis Khan, and is still in force even in the
-most liberal governments, like the republics of France and America.
-If men submit to authority, it is only because they fear that if
-they were to resist, they would be subjected to violence. All the
-requisitions of the State, such as the payment of taxes and the
-fulfilment of public duties, the submission to penalties in the form
-of exile, fines, etc., to which men seem to yield voluntarily, are
-always enforced by the physical threat or the reality of physical
-punishment.
-
-Physical violence is the basis of authority.
-
-It is the military organization that makes it possible to inflict
-physical violence, that organization wherein the entire armed force
-acts as one man, obeying a single will. This assemblage of armed
-men, submitting to one will, forms what is called an army. The army
-has ever been and still is the basis of an authority, vested in
-the commanding generals; and the most engrossing interest of every
-sovereign, from the Roman Caesars to the Russian and German emperors,
-has always been to protect and flatter the army, for they realize
-that when the army is on their side, power is also in their hands.
-
-It is the drilling and the increase of the troops required for
-the maintenance of authority which has brought into the social
-life-conception an element of dissolution.
-
-The aim of authority, and its consequent justification, is to
-restrain those men who are endeavoring, by methods which are
-detrimental to those of mankind in general, to promote their own
-interests. But whether authority has been acquired by force of arms,
-or by hereditary succession, or by election, men who have gained
-authority are in no way different from their fellow-men; they are
-just like all others, not inclined to waive their own interests in
-favor of the many, but, since they hold power in their hands, are
-more likely to make the interests of the many give way to their
-own. Whatever measures may have been devised by way of restraining
-those in authority who might seek their own ends at the expense of
-the public, or to vest authority in the hands of infallible men, no
-satisfactory results have as yet been attained.
-
-Attributing divine right to kings, hereditary succession, election;
-congresses, parliaments, and senates;--none of these have ever
-yet proved effectual. Everybody knows that no expedient has
-ever succeeded either in committing authority into the hands of
-infallible men, or of preventing its abuses. On the contrary, we
-know that men who have the authority, be they emperors, ministers of
-State, chiefs of police, or even policemen, always are more liable,
-because of their position, to become immoral,--that is, to put their
-own private interests before those of the public,--than men who do
-not possess such an authority; and this is inevitable.
-
-The social life-conception could be justified only while all
-men voluntarily sacrificed their private interests to those of
-the public in general; but no sooner did men appear who refused
-to sacrifice their interests, than authority, in other words,
-violence, was required to restrain these men. Thus there entered
-into the social life-conception, and the organization based on it,
-a principle containing within itself the germs of dissolution,--the
-principle of authority, or the tyranny of the few over the many.
-In order that the authority held by certain men might fulfil its
-object, which is to restrain those who are trying to further their
-own interests to the detriment of society in general, it would be
-necessary to have it in the hands of infallible men, as is supposed
-to be the case in China, or as it was believed to be in the Middle
-Ages, and is even at the present time by those who have faith in
-consecration by unction. It is only under such conditions that the
-social organization can be justified.
-
-But as no such conditions exist, and, furthermore, as men who are
-in authority, from the very fact of its possession, must ever be
-far from being saints, the social organization that is based upon
-authority cannot possibly have any justification.
-
-If there ever was a time when a low standard of morality, and the
-general tendency of men toward violence, called for an authority
-possessing the power to restrict this violence, an authority whose
-existence may have been an advantage,--that is, when the violence
-of the State was less than the violence of individuals toward
-each other,--we cannot help seeing now that this prerogative of
-the State, when violence no longer exists, cannot go on forever.
-Morals improved in proportion to the gradual decrease of individual
-violence, while the prerogative of authority lost ground in measure
-as it became corrupted by the possession of unbridled power.
-
-The entire history of the last 2000 years will have been told
-when we have described this change in the relations between the
-moral development of man and the demoralization of governments.
-In its simplest form it runs thus: men lived together in tribes,
-in families, and in races, and were at enmity one with another;
-they employed violence, they spread desolation, they murdered one
-another. Thus devastation was on a scale both great and small: man
-fought with man, tribe with tribe, family with family, race with
-race, nation with nation. The larger and more powerful communities
-absorbed the weaker ones; and the greater and more vigorous became
-the aggregation of men, the more seldom did one hear of acts
-of violence within these communities, and the more secure the
-continuity of their existence appeared.
-
-When the members of a tribe or a family unite together to form one
-community, they are naturally less hostile to each other, and the
-tribes and families are not so likely to die out; while among the
-citizens of a State subjected to one authority the contentions seem
-even less frequent, and hence is the life of the State on a basis
-still more assured.
-
-These fusions into larger and larger aggregates took place, not
-because men realized that it would be to their advantage, as is
-illustrated by the fable that tells of the falling of the Varegs in
-Russia, but are due rather to natural growth on the one hand, and
-struggle and conquest on the other.
-
-When conquest was achieved, the authority of the conqueror put
-an end to internal strife, and the social life-conception was
-justified. But this justification is only temporary. Internal feuds
-cease only when the pressure of authority is brought to bear with
-greater weight upon individuals formerly inimical to one another.
-The violence of the internal struggle, not annihilated by authority,
-is the offspring of authority itself. Authority is in the hands
-of men who, like all the rest, are ever ready to sacrifice the
-common weal if their own personal interests are at stake; with the
-sole difference that these men, encountering no resistance from
-the oppressed, are wholly subject to the corrupting influence of
-authority itself.
-
-Therefore it is that the evil principle of violence relegated
-to authority is ever increasing, and the evil becomes in time
-worse than that which it is supposed to control: whereas, in the
-individual members of society, the inclination to violence is always
-diminishing, and the violence of authority becomes less and less
-necessary.
-
-As its power increases in measure of its duration, State authority,
-though it may eradicate internal violence, introduces into life
-other and new forms of violence, always increasing in intensity.
-And though the violence of authority in the State is less striking
-than that of individual members of society toward each other, its
-principal manifestation being not that of strife, but of oppression,
-it exists none the less, and in the highest degree.
-
-It cannot be otherwise; for not only does the possession of
-authority corrupt men, but, either from design or unconsciously,
-rulers are always striving to reduce their subjects to the lowest
-degree of weakness,--for the more feeble the subject, the less the
-effort required to subdue him.
-
-Therefore violence employed against the oppressed is pushed to its
-utmost limit, just stopping short of killing the hen that lays the
-golden egg. But if the hen has ceased to lay, like the American
-Indians, the Fiji Islanders, or the Negroes, then it is killed,
-despite the sincere protests of the philanthropists against that
-mode of procedure.
-
-The most conclusive proof of this assertion, at the present time, is
-the position of the working-men, who are in truth simply vanquished
-men.
-
-Despite all the pretended efforts of the upper classes to lighten
-their position, all the working-men of the world are subjected to an
-immutable iron rule, which prescribes that they shall have scarcely
-enough to live upon, in order that their necessities may urge them
-to unremitting toil, the fruits of which are to be enjoyed by their
-masters, in other words, their conquerors.
-
-It has always been the case that, after the long continuance and
-growth of power, the advantages accruing to those who have submitted
-to it have failed, while the disadvantages have multiplied.
-
-Thus it is and thus it always has been, under whatsoever form of
-government the nation may have lived; only that where despotism
-prevails authority is confined to a limited number of oppressors,
-and violence takes on a ruder form, while in the constitutional
-monarchies, and in the republics of France and America, authority
-is distributed among a greater number of oppressors, and its
-manifestations are less rude; but the result, in which the
-disadvantages of dominion are greater than the advantages, and the
-method--reduction of the oppressed to the lowest possible degree of
-abjection, for the benefit of the oppressors, remain ever the same.
-
-Such has been the position of all the oppressed, but until lately
-they have been unaware of the fact, and for the most part have
-innocently believed that governments were instituted for their
-benefit, to preserve them from destruction, and that to permit the
-idea that men might live without governments would be a thought
-sacrilegious beyond expression; it would be the doctrine of anarchy,
-with all its attendant horrors.
-
-Men believed, as in something so thoroughly proved that it needed no
-further testimony, that as all nations had hitherto developed into
-the State form, this was to remain the indispensable condition for
-the development of mankind forever.
-
-And so it has gone on for hundreds, nay, thousands of years, and the
-governments, that is to say, their representatives, have endeavored,
-and still go on endeavoring, to preserve this delusion among the
-people.
-
-As it was during the time of the Roman emperors, so it is now.
-Although the idea of the uselessness, and even of the detriment,
-of power enters more and more into the consciousness of men, it
-might endure forever, if governments did not think it necessary to
-increase the armies in order to support their authority.
-
-It is the popular belief that governments increase armies as a
-means of defense against other nations, forgetting that troops are
-principally needed by governments to protect them against their own
-enslaved subjects.
-
-This has always been necessary, and has grown more so with the
-spread of education, the increase of intercourse among different
-nationalities; and at the present time, in view of the communist,
-socialist, anarchist, and labor movements, it is a more urgent
-necessity than ever. Governments realize this fact, and increase
-their principal means of defense,--the disciplined army.[13]
-
- [13] That the abuse of authority exists in America, despite the
- small number of troops, by no means refutes our argument; on the
- contrary, it serves rather as a testimony in its favor. In America
- there are fewer troops than in other States, and nowhere do we find
- less oppression of the downtrodden classes, and nowhere have men
- come so near to the abolition of governmental abuses, and even of
- government itself. However, it is in America that, owing to the
- growing unity among the working-men, voices have been heard, more
- and more frequently of late, calling for an increase of troops,
- and this when no foreign invasion threatens the States. The ruling
- classes are fully aware that an army of 50,000 men is insufficient,
- and, having lost confidence in Pinkerton's forces, they believe that
- their salvation can only be secured by the increase of the army.
-
-It was but recently that in the German Reichstag, in giving the
-reason why more money was needed to increase the pay of the
-subaltern officers, the German Chancellor answered candidly that
-trusty subaltern officers are needed in order to fight against
-socialism. Caprivi put into words what every one knows, although
-it has been carefully concealed from the people. The reason why
-the Swiss and Scottish Guards were hired to protect the popes and
-the French kings, and why the Russian regiments are so carefully
-shuffled, is in order that those which are posted in the interior
-may be recruited by men from the borders, and those on the borders
-by men from the interior. The meaning of Caprivi's reply, translated
-into simple, everyday language, means that money is needed, not to
-repel a foreign enemy, but to bribe the subaltern officers to hold
-themselves in readiness to act against the oppressed working-men.
-
-Caprivi incidentally expressed what every man knows--or if he does
-not know it he feels it--namely, that the existing system of life is
-such as it is, not because it is natural for it to be so, or that
-the people are content to have it so, but because violence on the
-part of governments, the army, with its bribed subaltern officers,
-its captains and generals, sustains it.
-
-If a working-man has no land, if he is not allowed to enjoy the
-natural right possessed by every man, to draw from the soil the
-means of subsistence for himself and his family, it is not so
-because the people oppose it, but because the right to grant or
-to withhold this privilege from working-men is given to certain
-individuals--namely, to the landed proprietors. And this unnatural
-order of things is maintained by the troops. If the enormous wealth
-earned and saved by working-men is not regarded as common property,
-but as something to be enjoyed by the chosen few; if certain men
-are invested with the power of levying taxes on labor, and with
-the right of using that money for whatsoever purposes they deem
-necessary; if the strikes of the working-men are suppressed, and
-the trusts of the capitalists are encouraged; if certain men are
-allowed to choose in the matter of religious and civil education
-and the instruction of children; if to certain others the right
-is given to frame laws which all men must obey, and if they are
-to enjoy the control of human life and property,--all this is not
-because the people wish it, or because it has come about in the
-course of nature, but because the governments will have it so for
-their own advantage and that of the ruling classes; and all this is
-accomplished by means of physical violence.
-
-If every man is not yet aware of this, he will find it out whenever
-attempts are made to change the present order of things.
-
-And therefore all the governments and the ruling classes stand in
-need of troops above all things, in order to maintain a system of
-life which, far from having developed from the needs of the people,
-is often detrimental to them, and is only advantageous for the
-government and the ruling classes.
-
-Every government requires troops to enforce obedience, that it may
-profit by the labor of its subjects. But no government exists alone:
-side by side with it stands the government of the adjacent country,
-which is also profiting by the enforced labor of its subjects, and
-ever ready to pounce upon its neighbor and take possession of the
-goods which it has won from the labor of its own subjects. Hence it
-is that every government needs an army, not only for home use, but
-to guard its plunder from foreign depredations. Thus each government
-finds itself obliged to outdo its neighbor in the increase of its
-army, and, as Montesquieu said one hundred and fifty years ago, the
-expansion of armies is a veritable contagion.
-
-One State makes additions to its army in order to overawe its own
-subjects; its neighbor takes alarm, and straightway follows the
-example.
-
-Armies have reached the millions which they now number not only
-from the fear of foreign invasion; the increase was first caused
-by the necessity for putting down all attempts at rebellion on the
-part of the subjects of the State. The causes for the expansion of
-armies are contemporary, the one depending on the other; armies
-are needed against internal attempts at revolt, as well as for
-external defense. The one depends upon the other. The despotism of
-governments increases exactly in proportion to the increase of their
-strength and their internal successes, and their foreign aggression
-with the increase of internal despotism.
-
-European governments try to outdo one another, ever increasing their
-armaments, and compelled at last to adopt the expedient of a general
-conscription as a means of enrolling the greatest number of troops
-at the smallest possible expense.
-
-Germany was the first to whom this plan suggested itself. And no
-sooner was it done by one nation than all the others were forced
-to do likewise. Thus all the citizens took up arms to assist in
-upholding the wrongs that were committed against them; in fact, they
-became their own oppressors.
-
-General military conscription was the inevitable and logical
-consummation at which it was but natural to arrive; at the same
-time it is the last expression of the innate contradiction of the
-social life-conception which sprang into existence when violence was
-required for its support.
-
-General military conscription made this contradiction a conspicuous
-fact. Indeed, the very significance of the social life-conception
-consists in this,--that a man, realizing the cruelty of the struggle
-of individuals among themselves, and the peril that the individual
-incurs, seeks protection by transferring his private interests to a
-social community; whereas the result of the system of conscription
-is that men, after having made every sacrifice to escape from the
-cruel struggle and uncertainties of life, are once more called upon
-to undergo all the dangers they had hoped to escape, and moreover,
-the community--the State for which the individuals gave up their
-previous advantages--is now exposed to the same risk of destruction
-from which the individual himself formerly suffered. Governments
-should have set men free from the cruelty of the personal struggle,
-and given them confidence in the inviolable structure of State life;
-but instead of doing this they impose on individuals a repetition
-of the same dangers, with this difference, that in the place of
-struggle between individuals of the same group, it is a case of
-struggle between groups.
-
-The establishment of a general military conscription is like the
-work of a man who props a crumbling house. The walls have settled,
-sloping inward--he braces them; the ceiling begins to hang down--he
-supports that; and when the boards between give way, other braces
-are supplied. At last it reaches the point when, although the braces
-hold the house together, they actually make it uninhabitable.
-
-The same may be said of the general conscription system. The general
-military conscription nullifies all those advantages of social life
-which it is expected to protect.
-
-The advantages of social life are those guarantees which it offers
-for the protection of property and labor, as well as cooperation for
-the purposes of mutual advantage; the general military conscription
-destroys all this.
-
-The taxes collected from the people for purposes of war absorb the
-greater part of the productions of their labor, which the army ought
-to protect.
-
-When men are taken from the ordinary avocations of daily life, labor
-is practically destroyed. Where war is ever threatening to break
-forth, it does not seem worth while to improve social conditions.
-
-If a man had formerly been told that unless he submitted to the
-civil authority he would run the risk of being assaulted by wicked
-men, that he would be in danger from domestic as well as from
-foreign foes, against whom he would be forced to defend himself,
-that he might be murdered, and therefore he would find it for
-his advantage to suffer certain privations if by that means he
-succeeded in escaping all these perils, he might have believed this,
-especially as the sacrifices required by the State promised him the
-hope of a peaceful existence within the well-established community
-in whose name he had made them. But now, when these sacrifices are
-not only multiplied, but the promised advantages are not realized,
-it is quite natural for men to think that their subjection to
-authority is utterly useless.
-
-But the fatal significance of the general conscription, as the
-manifestation of that contradiction which dwells in the social
-life-conception, lies not in this. Wherever military conscription
-exists, every citizen who becomes a soldier likewise becomes a
-supporter of the State system, and a participant in whatsoever the
-State may do, at the same time that he does not acknowledge its
-validity; and this may be called its chief manifestation.
-
-Governments declare that armies are principally required for
-external defense; but this is untrue. They are, in the first place,
-needed to overawe their own subjects, and every man who yields to
-military conscription becomes an involuntary participator in all the
-oppressive acts of government toward its subjects. It is necessary
-to remember what goes on in every State in the name of order and
-the welfare of the community, all the while enforced by military
-authority, to be convinced that every man who fulfils military
-duty becomes a participant in acts of the State of which he cannot
-approve. Every dynastic and political feud, all the executions
-resulting from such feuds, the crushing of rebellions, the use
-of the military in dispersing mobs, in putting down strikes, all
-extortionate taxation, the injustice of land ownership and the
-limitations of freedom of labor,--all this is done, if not directly
-by the troops, then by the police supported by the troops. He who
-performs his military duty becomes a participant in all these acts,
-about which he often feels more than dubious, and which are in most
-cases directly opposed to his conscience. Men do not wish to leave
-the land which they have tilled for generations; they do not wish to
-disperse on the bidding of the government; they do not wish to pay
-the taxes which are extorted from them; neither do they willingly
-submit to laws which they have not helped to make; they do not wish
-to give up their nationality. And I, if I am performing military
-duty, must come forward and strike these men down. I cannot take
-part in such proceedings without asking myself if they be right. And
-ought I to cooperate in carrying them out?
-
-General military conscription is the last step in the process of
-coercion required by governments for the support of the whole
-structure; for subjects it is the extreme limit of obedience. It is
-the keystone of the arch that supports the walls, the abstraction
-of which would destroy the whole fabric. The time has come when
-the ever growing abuses of governments, and their mutual contests,
-have required from all their subjects not only material but moral
-sacrifices, till each man pauses and asks himself, Can I make these
-sacrifices? And for whose sake am I to make them? These sacrifices
-are demanded in the name of the State. In the name of the State I am
-asked to give up all that makes life dear to a man,--peace, family,
-safety, and personal dignity. What, then, is this State in whose
-name such appalling sacrifices are demanded? And of what use is it?
-
-We are told that the State is necessary, in the first place, because
-were it not for that no man would be safe from violence and the
-attacks of wicked men; in the second place, without the State
-we should be like savages, possessing neither religion, morals,
-education, instruction, commerce, means of communication, nor any
-other social institutions; and, in the third place, because without
-the State we should be subject to the invasion of the neighboring
-nations.
-
-"Were it not for the State," we are told, "we should be subjected to
-violence and to the attacks of evil men in our own land."
-
-But who are these evil men from whose violence and attacks the
-government and the army saves us? If such men existed three or
-four centuries ago, when men prided themselves on their military
-skill and strength of arm, when a man proved his valor by killing
-his fellow-men, we find none such at the present time: men of
-our time neither use nor carry weapons, and, believing in the
-precepts of humanity and pity for their neighbors, they are as
-desirous for peace and a quiet life as we are ourselves. Hence this
-extraordinary class of marauders, against whom the State might
-defend us, no longer exists. But if, when they speak of the men
-from whose attacks the government defends us, we understand that
-they mean the criminal classes, in that case we know that they are
-not extraordinary beings, like beasts of prey among sheep, but are
-men very much like ourselves, who are naturally just as reluctant
-to commit crimes as those against whom they commit them. We know
-now that threats and punishments are powerless to decrease the
-numbers of such men, but that their numbers may be decreased by
-change of environment and by moral influence. Hence the theory of
-the necessity of State violence in order to protect mankind against
-evil-doers, if it had any foundation three or four centuries ago,
-has none whatever at the present time. One might say quite the
-reverse nowadays, for the activity of governments, with their
-antiquated and merciless methods of punishment, their galleys,
-prisons, gallows, and guillotines, so far below the general plane
-of morality, tends rather to lower the standard of morals than to
-elevate it, and therefore rather to increase than to lessen the
-number of criminals.
-
-It is said that "without the State there would be no institutions,
-educational, moral, religious, or international; there would be no
-means of communication. Were it not for the State, we should be
-without organizations necessary to all of us."
-
-An argument like this could only have had a basis several centuries
-ago. If there ever was a time when men had so little international
-communication, and were so unused to intercourse or interchange
-of thought that they could not come to an agreement on matters of
-general interest--commercial, industrial, or economical--without
-the assistance of the State, such is not the case at present. The
-widely diffused means of communication and transmission of thought
-have achieved this result,--that when the modern man desires to
-found societies, assemblies, corporations, congresses, scientific,
-economical, or political institutions, not only can he easily
-dispense with the assistance of governments, but in the majority
-of cases governments are more of a hindrance than a help in the
-pursuit of such objects.
-
-Since the end of the last century almost every progressive movement
-on the part of mankind has been not only discouraged, but invariably
-hampered, by governments. Such was the case with the abolition of
-corporal punishment, torture, and slavery; with the establishment
-of freedom of the press and liberty of meeting. Furthermore, State
-authorities and governments nowadays not only do not cooperate,
-but they directly hinder the activity by means of which men work
-out new forms of life. The solution of labor and land questions,
-of political and religious problems, is not only unencouraged, but
-distinctly opposed, by the government authority.
-
-"If there were no State and government authority, nations would be
-subjugated by their neighbors."
-
-It is not worth while to answer this last argument. It refutes
-itself.
-
-We are told that the government and its armies are necessary for our
-defense against the neighboring States which might subject us. But
-all the governments say this of one another; and yet we know that
-every European nation professes the same principles of liberty and
-fraternity, and therefore needs no defense against its neighbor.
-But if one speaks of defense against barbarians, then one per cent
-of the troops under arms at the present time would suffice. It is
-not only that the increase of armed force fails to protect us from
-danger of attack from our neighbors, it actually provokes the very
-attack which it deprecates.
-
-Hence no man who reflects on the significance of the State, in
-whose name he is required to sacrifice his peace, his safety, and
-his life, can escape the conviction that there is no longer any
-reasonable ground for such sacrifices.
-
-Even regarding the subject theoretically, a man must realize that
-the sacrifices demanded by the State are without sufficient reason;
-and when he considers the matter from a practical point of view,
-weighing all the different conditions in which he has been placed
-by the State, every man must see that so far as he himself is
-concerned, the fulfilment of the requirements of the State and his
-own subjection to military conscription is indubitably and in every
-case less advantageous for him than if he refused to comply with it.
-If the majority of people prefer obedience to insubordination, it is
-not because they have given the subject dispassionate consideration,
-weighing the advantages and disadvantages, but because they are,
-so to speak, under the influence of hypnotic suggestion. Men
-submit to demands like this without using their reason or making
-the least effort of the will. It requires independent reasoning,
-as well as effort, to refuse submission,--effort which some men
-are incapable of making. But supposing we exclude the moral
-significance of submission and non-submission, and consider only
-their advantages, then non-submission will always prove more
-advantageous than submission. Whoever I may be, whether I belong to
-the well-to-do--the oppressing class--or to the oppressed laboring
-class, in either case the disadvantages of non-submission are less
-numerous than the disadvantages of submission, and the advantages of
-non-submission greater than those of submission.
-
-If I belong to the oppressive, which is the smallest class, and
-refuse to submit to the demands of the government, I shall be tried
-as one who refuses to fulfil his obligations,--I shall be tried, and
-in case my trial terminates favorably, I shall either be declared
-not guilty, or I may be dealt with as they treat the Mennonites
-in Russia--that is, be compelled to serve my term of military
-service by performing some non-military work; if, on the contrary,
-an unfavorable verdict is rendered, I shall be condemned to exile
-or imprisonment for two or three years (I am speaking of cases in
-Russia); or possibly my term of imprisonment may be longer. And I
-may even be condemned to suffer the penalty of death, although that
-is not at all probable. Such are the disadvantages of non-submission.
-
-The disadvantages of submission are as follows:--If I am fortunate
-I shall not be sent to murder men, neither shall I run the risk
-myself of being disabled or killed; they will simply make a military
-slave of me. I shall be arrayed in the garments of a clown; my
-superior officers, from the corporal to the field-marshal, will
-order me about. At their word of command I shall be put through
-a series of gymnastic contortions, and after being detained from
-one to five years I shall be released, but still obliged for ten
-years longer to hold myself in readiness at any moment I may be
-summoned to execute the orders these people give me. And if I am
-less fortunate I shall be sent to the wars, still in the same
-condition of slavery, and there I shall be forced to slay fellow-men
-of other countries who never did me any harm. Or I may be sent to a
-place where I may be mutilated or killed; perhaps find myself, as
-at Sevastopol, sent to certain death; these things happen in every
-war. Worse than all things else, I may be sent to fight against my
-fellow-countrymen, and compelled to kill my own brethren for some
-matter dynastic or governmental, and to me of foreign interest. Such
-are the comparative disadvantages.
-
-The comparative advantages of submission and non-submission are as
-follows:--For him who has submitted the advantages are these: after
-he has subjected himself to all the degradations and committed all
-the cruel deeds required of him, he may, provided he be not killed,
-receive some scarlet or golden bauble to decorate his clown's
-attire; or if he be especially favored, hundreds of thousands of
-just such brutal men like himself may be put under his command, and
-he be called field-marshal, and receive large sums of money.
-
-By refusing to submit he will possess the advantages of preserving
-his manly dignity, of winning the respect of good men, and, above
-all, he will enjoy the assurance that he is doing God's business,
-and therefore an unquestionable benefit to mankind.
-
-Such are the advantages and disadvantages, on either side, for
-the oppressor, a member of the wealthy class. For a man of the
-working-class--a poor man--the advantages and disadvantages
-are about the same, if we include one important addition to
-the disadvantages. The special disadvantage for a man of the
-working-class who has not refused to perform military service is
-that, when he enters the service, his participation and his tacit
-consent go toward confirming the oppression in which he finds
-himself.
-
-But the question concerning the State, whether its continued
-existence is a necessity, or whether it would be wiser to abolish
-it, cannot be decided by discussion on its usefulness for the men
-who are required to support it by taking part in the military
-service, and still less by weighing the comparative advantages and
-disadvantages of submission or non-submission for the individual
-himself. It is decided irrevocably and without appeal by the
-religious consciousness, by the conscience of each individual, to
-whom no sooner does military conscription become a question than it
-is followed by that of the necessity or non-necessity of the State.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII
-
-CERTAINTY OF THE ACCEPTANCE OF THE CHRISTIAN DOCTRINE OF
-NON-RESISTANCE TO EVIL BY VIOLENCE BY THE MEN OF OUR WORLD
-
- Christianity is not a legislation but a new life-conception;
- hence it was not obligatory, nor has it been accepted by all men
- in its full meaning, but only by a few; the rest have accepted
- it in a corrupted form--Moreover, Christianity is a prophecy
- of the disappearance of the pagan life, and therefore of the
- necessity of accepting the Christian doctrine--Non-resistance
- of evil by violence is one of the principles of the Christian
- doctrine which must inevitably be accepted by men at the present
- day--Two methods of solving every struggle--The first method
- consists in believing the general definitions of evil to be
- binding upon all, and to resist this evil by violence--The
- second, the Christian method, consists in not resisting evil
- by violence--Although the failure of the first method was
- recognized in the first centuries of Christianity, it is still
- employed; but as humanity advanced it has become more evident
- that there is not, nor can there be, a general definition of
- evil--Now this has become evident to all, and if the violence
- which is destined to combat evil exists, it is not because it
- is considered necessary, but because men do not know how to
- dispense with it--The difficulty of dispensing with it is due
- to the skilfulness and complexity of political violence--This
- violence is supported by four methods: by threats, bribes,
- hypnotism, and the employment of military force--Deliverance
- from State violence cannot be accomplished by overthrowing
- the State--Through experience of the misery of pagan life men
- are compelled to acknowledge the doctrine of Christ, with its
- non-resistance to evil,--a doctrine which they have hitherto
- ignored--To this same necessity of acknowledging the Christian
- doctrine we are brought by the consciousness of its truth--This
- consciousness is in utter contradiction to our life, and is
- especially evident in regard to general military conscription;
- but, in consequence of habit and the four methods of State
- violence, men do not see this inconsistency of Christianity
- with the duties of a soldier--Men do not see it even when the
- authorities themselves show them plainly all the immorality of
- the duties of a soldier--The call of the general conscription is
- the extreme trial for every man,--the command to choose between
- the Christian doctrine of non-resistance or servile submission
- to the existing organization of the State--Men generally submit
- to the demands of the State organization, renouncing all that
- is sacred, as though there were no other issue--For men of the
- pagan life-conception, indeed, no other issue does exist; they
- are compelled to acknowledge it, regardless of all the dreadful
- calamities of war--Society composed of such men must inevitably
- perish, and no social changes can save it--The pagan life has
- reached its last limits; it works its own destruction.
-
-
-It is frequently said that if Christianity be a truth, it would
-have been accepted by all men on its first appearance, and would
-straightway have changed and improved the lives of men. One might
-as well say that if the seed is alive it must instantly sprout and
-produce its flower or its fruit.
-
-The Christian doctrine is not a law which, being introduced by
-violence, can forthwith change the life of mankind. Christianity
-is a life-conception more lofty and excellent than the ancient;
-and such a new conception of life cannot be enforced; it must be
-adopted voluntarily, and by two processes, the spiritual or interior
-process, and the experimental or external process.
-
-Some men there are--but the smaller proportion--who instantly,
-and as though by prophetic intuition, divine the truth, surrender
-themselves to its influence, and live up to its precepts;
-others--and they are the majority--are brought to the knowledge of
-the truth, and the necessity for its adoption, by a long series of
-errors, by experience and suffering.
-
-It is to this necessity of adopting the doctrine by the external
-process of experience that Christendom has at last arrived.
-
-Now and then one wonders why the mistaken presentment of
-Christianity, which even at the present time prevents men from
-accepting it in its true significance, could have been necessary.
-And yet the very errors, having brought men to their present
-position, have been the medium through which it has become possible
-for the majority to accept Christianity in its true meaning.
-
-If instead of that corrupted form of Christianity which was given
-to the people, it had been offered to them in its purity, the
-greater portion of mankind would have refused it, like the Asiatic
-peoples to whom it is yet unknown. But having once accepted it in
-its corrupted form, the nations embracing it were subjected to its
-slow but sure influence, and by a long succession of errors, and
-the suffering that ensued therefrom, have now been brought to the
-necessity of adopting it in its true meaning.
-
-The erroneous presentation of Christianity, and its acceptance by
-the majority of mankind, with all its errors, was then a necessity,
-just as the seed, if it is to sprout, must for a time be buried in
-the soil.
-
-The Christian doctrine is the doctrine of truth as well as of
-prophecy.
-
-Eighteen hundred years ago the Christian doctrine revealed to men
-the true conduct of life, and at the same time foretold the result
-of disobeying its injunctions and of continuing to pursue their
-former course, guided only by the precepts which were taught before
-the dawn of Christianity; and it also showed them what life may
-become if they accept the Christian doctrine and obey its dictates.
-
-Having taught in the Sermon on the Mount those precepts by which men
-should order their daily lives, Christ said: "Therefore whosoever
-heareth these sayings of mine, and doeth them, I will liken him
-unto a wise man, which built his house upon a rock: and the rain
-descended, and the floods came, and the winds blew, and beat upon
-that house; and it fell not: for it was founded upon a rock. And
-every one that heareth these sayings of mine, and doeth them not,
-shall be likened unto a foolish man, which built his house upon the
-sand: and the rain descended, and the floods came, and the winds
-blew, and beat upon that house; and it fell: and great was the fall
-of it" (Matthew vii. 24-27).
-
-And thus, after eighteen centuries, the prophecy has been fulfilled.
-As the result of the abandonment of Christ's teachings, having
-disregarded the principle of non-resistance to evil, men have
-unwittingly fallen into the condition of imminent peril foretold by
-Christ to those who refused to follow His precepts.
-
-Men often think that the question of resistance or non-resistance to
-evil by violence is an artificial question, which may be evaded. And
-yet this is the question that life presents to mankind in general,
-and to each thinking man in particular, and it is one that must be
-solved. In social life, ever since Christianity was first preached,
-this question has been like the doubt that confronts the traveler
-when he comes to a place where the road which he has followed
-divides, and he knows not which branch to choose. He must pursue
-his way, and he can no longer go on without pausing to deliberate,
-because there are now two roads from which to choose, whereas before
-there was but one; he must make up his mind which he will take.
-
-In like manner, since the doctrine of Christ has been made known to
-men, they can no longer say, I will go on living as I did before,
-without deciding the question of resistance or non-resistance to
-evil by violence. One must decide at the beginning of every fresh
-struggle whether one ought or ought not to resist by violence that
-which one believes to be evil.
-
-The question of resistance or non-resistance of evil by violence
-arose with the first contest among men, for every contest is simply
-the resistance by violence of something which each combatant
-believes to be an evil. But before the time of Christ men did not
-understand that resistance by violence of whatever the individual
-believed to be evil--only the same action which seems evil to one
-man may seem good to another--is simply one mode of settling the
-difficulty, and that the other method consists in not resisting evil
-by violence.
-
-Before the appearance of the doctrine of Christ men believed
-that there could be but one way of deciding the contest, that of
-resisting evil by violence, and acted accordingly, while each
-combatant strove to persuade himself and others that what he
-regarded as evil was in fact the actual and absolute evil. For this
-purpose, dating from the oldest times, men began to invent certain
-definitions of evil which should be obligatory for all, and for the
-purpose of establishing definitions which should be thus binding,
-were issued, either certain laws supposed to have been received in a
-supernatural manner, or commands of individuals or of bodies of men
-to whom an infallible wisdom was ascribed. Men used violence against
-their fellow-men and assured themselves and others that they were
-but using such violence against an evil acknowledged by all.
-
-This was the custom from the most ancient times, particularly among
-men who had usurped authority, and men have been long in seeing its
-baselessness.
-
-But the longer mankind existed the more complex grew its mutual
-relations, and the more evident it became that to resist by violence
-everything that is considered evil is unwise; that the struggle is
-not diminished thereby, and that no human wisdom can ever define an
-infallible standard of evil.
-
-When Christianity first appeared in the Roman Empire it had already
-become evident to most men that whatever Nero or Caligula called
-evil, and sought to overcome by violence, was not necessarily an
-evil for the rest of mankind. Even then men had already begun to
-realize that the human laws for which a divine origin was claimed
-were really written by men; that men cannot be infallible, no
-matter with what external authority they may be invested; and that
-fallible men will not become infallible because they meet together
-and call themselves a Senate, or any other similar name. Even then
-this had been perceived and understood by many. And it was then
-that Christ preached His doctrine, which not only embodied the
-principle of non-resistance, but which revealed a new conception
-of life, of which the application to social life would lead to the
-suppression of strife among men, not by obliging one class to yield
-to whatsoever authority shall ordain, but by forbidding all men, and
-especially those in power, to employ violence against others.
-
-The doctrine was at that time embraced by a very limited number
-of disciples, while the majority of men, particularly those who
-were in authority, although they nominally accepted Christianity,
-continued to follow the practice of resisting by violence whatever
-they regarded as evil. So it was during the times of the Roman and
-Byzantine emperors, and so it went on in later times.
-
-The inconsistency of an authoritative definition of evil and its
-resistance by violence, already apparent in the first centuries
-of Christianity, had grown still more evident at the time of the
-dissolution of the Roman Empire and its subdivision into numerous
-independent states hostile to one another and torn by internal
-dissensions.
-
-But men were not yet ready to accept the law of Christ, and
-the former method of defining an evil to be resisted by the
-establishment of laws, enforced by coercion and binding upon all
-men, continued to be employed. The arbiter, whose office it was
-to decide upon the nature of the evil to be resisted by violence,
-was alternately the Emperor, the Pope, the elected body, or the
-nation at large. But both within and without the State men were
-always to be found who refused to hold themselves bound, either by
-those laws which were supposed to be the expression of the divine
-will, or by the human laws which claimed to manifest the will of
-the people;--men whose views on the subject of evil were quite at
-variance with those of the existing authorities, men who resisted
-the authorities, employing the same methods of violence that had
-been directed against themselves.
-
-Men invested with religious authority would condemn as evil a
-matter which to men and institutions invested with a temporal
-authority commended itself as desirable, and _vice versa_, and more
-and more furious grew the struggle. And the oftener men had recourse
-to violence in settling the difficulty, the more evident it became
-that it was ill chosen, because there is not, nor can there ever be,
-a standard authority of evil to which all mankind would agree.
-
-Thus matters went on for eighteen centuries, and at last arrived at
-their present condition, which is, that no man can dispute the fact
-that an infallible definition of evil will never be made. We have
-reached the point when men have ceased not only to believe in the
-possibility of finding a universal definition which all men will
-admit, but they have even ceased to believe in the necessity of
-such a definition. We have reached the point when men in authority
-no longer seek to prove that that which they consider evil is evil,
-but candidly acknowledge that they consider that to be evil which
-does not please them, and those who are subject to authority obey,
-not because they believe that the definitions of evil made by
-authority are just, but only because they have no power to resist.
-The annexation of Nice to France, Lorraine to Germany, the Czechs
-to Austria, the partition of Poland, the subjection of Ireland and
-India to the English rule, the waging of war against China, the
-slaughter of Africans, the expulsion of the Chinese, the persecution
-of the Jews in Russia, or the derivation of profits by landowners
-from land which they do not cultivate, and by capitalists from the
-results of labor performed by others,--none of all this is done
-because it is virtuous, or because it will benefit mankind and is
-essentially opposed to evil, but because those who hold authority
-will have it so. The result at the present time is this: certain
-men use violence, no longer in the name of resistance to evil, but
-from caprice, or because it is for their advantage; while certain
-other men submit to violence, not because they believe, like those
-of former ages, that violence is used to defend them from evil, but
-simply because they cannot escape it.
-
-If a Roman, or a man of the Middle Ages, or a Russian, such
-a man as I can remember fifty years ago, believed implicitly
-that the existing violence of authority was needed to save him
-from evil,--that taxes, duties, serfdom, prisons, the lash, the
-knout, galleys, executions, military conscription, and wars were
-unavoidable,--it would be difficult to find a man at the present
-time who believes that all the violences committed saves a single
-man from evil; on the contrary, not one could be found who had not
-a distinct assurance that most of the violations to which he is
-subjected, and in which he himself participates, are in themselves a
-great and unprofitable calamity.
-
-There is hardly a man to be found at the present time who fails
-to realize all the uselessness and absurdity of collecting taxes
-from the laboring classes for the purpose of enriching idle
-officials; or the folly of punishing weak and immoral men by exile
-or imprisonment, where, supported as they are, and living in
-idleness, they become still weaker and more depraved; or, again, the
-unspeakable folly and cruelty of those preparations for war, which
-can neither be explained nor justified, and which ruin and imperil
-the safety of nations. Nevertheless these violations continue, and
-the very men who realize and even suffer from their uselessness,
-absurdity, and cruelty, contribute to their encouragement.
-
-If fifty years ago it was possible that the wealthy man of leisure
-and the illiterate laborer should both believe that their positions,
-the one a continual holiday, the other a life of incessant labor,
-were ordained by God--in these days, not only throughout Europe, and
-even in Russia, owing to the activity of the people, the growth of
-education, and the art of printing, it is hardly possible to find
-a man, either rich or poor, who in one way or another would not
-question the justice of such an order of things. Not only do the
-rich realize that the possession of wealth is in itself a fault,
-for which they strive to atone by donations to science and art,
-as formerly they redeemed their sins by endowing churches; but
-even the majority of the laboring class now understand that the
-existing order is false, and should be altered, if not abolished.
-Men who profess religion, of whom we have millions in Russia, the
-so-called sectarians, acknowledge, because they interpret the gospel
-doctrine correctly, that this order of things is false and should
-be destroyed. The working-men consider it false because of the
-socialistic, communistic, or anarchical theories that have already
-found way into their ranks. In these days the principle of violence
-is maintained, not because it is considered necessary, but simply
-because it has been so long in existence, and is so thoroughly
-organized by those who profit by it--that is to say, by the
-governments and ruling classes--that those who are in their power
-find it impossible to escape.
-
-Nowadays every government, the despotic as well as the most
-liberal, has become what Herzen has so cleverly termed a Genghis
-Khan with a telegraphic equipment, that is, with an organization
-of violence, having for basis nothing less than the most brutal
-tyranny, and converting all the means invented by science for the
-inter-communication and peaceful activities of free and equal men to
-its own tyrannous and oppressive ends.
-
-The existing governments and the ruling classes no longer care
-to present even the semblance of justice, but rely, thanks to
-scientific progress, on an organization so ingenious that it is able
-to inclose all men within a circle of violence through which it is
-impossible to break. This circle is made up of four expedients, each
-connected with and supporting the other like the rings of a chain.
-
-The first and the oldest expedient is intimidation. It consists
-in representing the actual organization of the State, whether it
-be that of a liberal republic or of an arbitrary despotism, as
-something sacred and immutable, which therefore punishes by the most
-cruel penalties any attempt at revolution. This expedient has been
-put into practice recently wherever a government exists: in Russia
-against the so-called nihilists, in America against the anarchists,
-in France against the imperialists, monarchists, communists, and
-anarchists. Railroads, telegraphs, telephones, photography, the
-improved method of disposing of criminals by imprisoning them in
-solitary confinement for the remainder of their lives in cells,
-where, hidden from human view, they die forgotten, as well as
-numerous other modern inventions upon which governments have the
-prior claim, give them such power, that if once the authority
-fell into certain hands, and the regular and secret police,
-administrative officials, and all kinds of procureurs, jailers, and
-executioners labored zealously to support it, there would be no
-possibility whatsoever of overthrowing the government, however cruel
-or senseless it might be.
-
-The second expedient is bribery. This consists in taking the
-property of the laboring classes by means of taxation and
-distributing it among the officials, who, in consideration of this,
-are bound to maintain and increase the bondage of the people. The
-bribed officials, from the prime ministers to the lowest scribes,
-form one unbroken chain of individuals, united by a common interest,
-supported by the labor of the people, fulfilling the will of the
-government with a submission proportionate to their gains, never
-hesitating to use any means in any department of business to promote
-the action of that governmental violence on which their well-being
-rests.
-
-The third expedient I can call by no other name than hypnotism.
-It consists in retarding the spiritual development of men, and,
-by means of various suggestions, influencing them to cling to the
-theory of life which mankind has already left behind, and upon
-which rests the foundation of governmental authority. We have at
-the present time a hypnotizing system, organized in a most complex
-manner, beginning in childhood and continued until the hour of
-death. This hypnotism begins during the early years of a man's life
-in a system of compulsory education. Children receive in school
-the same ideas in regard to the universe which their ancestors
-entertained, and which are in direct contradiction to contemporary
-knowledge. In countries where a State religion exists, children
-are taught the senseless and sacrilegious utterances of church
-catechisms, with the duty of obedience to authorities; in the
-republics they are taught the absurd superstition of patriotism,
-and the same obligation of obedience to the government. In maturer
-years this hypnotizing process is continued by the encouragement
-of religious and patriotic superstition. Religious superstition is
-encouraged by the erection of churches built from money collected
-from the people, by holidays, processions, painting, architecture,
-music, by incense that stupefies the brain, and, above all, by
-the maintenance of the so-called clergy, whose duty consists in
-befogging the minds of men and keeping them in a continual state
-of imbecility, what with the solemnity of their services, their
-sermons, their intervention with the private lives of men in time
-of marriage, birth, and death. The patriotic superstition is
-encouraged by the governments and the ruling classes by instituting
-national festivals, spectacles, and holidays, by erecting monuments
-with money collected from the people, which will influence men to
-believe in the exclusive importance and greatness of their own State
-or country and its rulers, and encourage a feeling of hostility
-and even of hatred toward other nations. Furthermore, autocratic
-governments directly forbid the printing and circulation of books
-and the delivery of speeches that might enlighten men; and those
-teachers who have the power to rouse the people from its torpor
-are either banished or imprisoned. And every government, without
-exception, conceals from the masses all that would tend to set them
-free, and encourages all that would demoralize them,--all those
-writings, for instance, that tend to confirm them in the crudeness
-of their religious and patriotic superstition; all kinds of sensual
-pleasures, shows, circuses, theaters; and all means for producing
-physical stupor, especially those, like tobacco or brandy, which are
-among the principal sources of national income. Even prostitution is
-encouraged; it is not only recognized, but organized by the majority
-of governments. Such is the third expedient.
-
-The fourth expedient consists in this: certain individuals are
-selected from among the mass of enslaved and stupefied beings,
-and these, after having been subjected to a still more vigorous
-process of brutalization, are made the passive instruments of the
-cruelties and brutalities indispensable to the government. This
-state of brutality and imbecility is produced by taking men in their
-youth, before they have yet had time to gain any clear conception
-of morality; and then, having removed them from all the natural
-conditions of human life, from home, family, birthplace, and the
-possibility of intelligent labor, by shutting them up together in
-barracks, where, dressed in a peculiar uniform, to the accompaniment
-of shouts, drums, music, and the display of glittering gewgaws, they
-are daily forced to perform certain prescribed evolutions. By these
-methods they are reduced to that hypnotic condition when they cease
-to be men and become imbecile and docile machines in the hands of
-the hypnotizer. These physically strong young men thus hypnotized
-(and at the present time, with the general conscription system,
-all young men answer to this description), supplied with murderous
-weapons, ever obedient to the authority of the government, and ready
-at its command to commit any violence whatsoever, constitute the
-fourth and the principal means for subjugating men. So the circle of
-violence is completed.
-
-Intimidation, bribery, and hypnotism force men to become soldiers;
-soldiers give power and make it possible to execute and to rob
-mankind (with the aid of bribed officials), as well as to hypnotize
-and to recruit men who are in their turn to become soldiers.
-
-The circle is complete, and there is no possibility of escape from
-it.
-
-If some men believe that deliverance from violence, or even a
-certain abatement of its energy, may be the result of its overthrow
-by the oppressed, who will then replace it by a system which will
-require no such violence and subjugation, and if, so believing,
-they attempt to bring this about, they only deceive themselves and
-others. So far from improving the position, these attempts will only
-render things worse.
-
-The activity of such men only strengthens the despotism of
-governments by giving the latter a convenient pretext for increasing
-their defenses. For even when, following a train of circumstances
-highly demoralizing to the government,--take the case of France
-in 1870, for example,--a government is overthrown by violence
-and the authority passes into other hands, this new authority
-is by no means likely to be less oppressive than the former. On
-the contrary, obliged to defend itself from its exasperated and
-overthrown enemies, it will be even more cruel and despotic than its
-predecessor, as has ever been the case in periods of revolution.
-
-If socialists and communists believe that the possession of
-individual capital is a pernicious influence in society, and
-anarchists regard government itself as an evil, there are, on the
-other hand, monarchists, conservatives, and capitalists who look
-upon the social and communal state as an evil order of society,
-no less than anarchy itself; and all these parties have nothing
-better to offer by way of reconciling mankind than violence. Thus,
-whichever party gains the upper hand, it will be forced, in order
-to introduce and maintain its own system, not only to avail itself
-of all former methods of violence, but to invent new ones as well.
-It simply means a change of slavery with new victims and a new
-organization; but the violence will remain,--nay, increase,--because
-human hatred, intensified by the struggle, will devise new means
-for reducing the conquered to subjection. This has always been the
-result of every revolution and violent overthrow of government. Each
-struggle serves but to increase the power of those in authority at
-the time to enslave their fellow-men.
-
-One domain of human activity, and only one, has hitherto escaped
-the encroachments of the governments--the domain of the family,
-the economical domain of private life and domestic labor. But now
-even this domain, in consequence of the struggle of socialists and
-communists, is gradually passing into the hands of the governments,
-so that labor and recreation, the dwellings, clothes, and food of
-the people will by degrees, if the desires of the reformers are
-accomplished, be determined and regulated by the government.
-
-The long experiment of Christian life by nation after nation, during
-eighteen centuries, has inevitably brought men to the necessity
-of deciding whether the doctrine of Christ is to be accepted or
-refused, and of deciding, too, the question of social life dependent
-thereupon,--the resistance or non-resistance of evil by violence.
-But there is this difference,--that formerly men could either accept
-or reject the decision given by Christianity, whereas now it has
-become imperative, because it affords the sole means of deliverance
-from that condition of slavery in which, as in a net, men find
-themselves entangled.
-
-Nor is it alone this sad plight that brings them to this necessity.
-
-Parallel with the negative proof of the falsehood of the pagan
-order of things there has been positive proof of the truth of the
-Christian doctrine.
-
-Indeed, in the course of the eighteen centuries, the best men in all
-Christendom, through an inner spiritual medium, having recognized
-the truths of the doctrine, have borne witness of it, regardless of
-threats, privations, miseries, and torture. These nobler men, by
-their martyrdom, have sealed the truth of the doctrine.
-
-Christianity penetrated into human consciousness, not alone by the
-method of negative proof, that, namely, it had become impossible to
-go on with the pagan life; but by its simplifying process, by its
-explanation of, and its deliverance from, superstition, and by its
-consequent spread among all classes of society.
-
-Eighteen centuries of the profession of Christianity have not
-passed in vain for those who accepted it, even if it were but in
-outward form. These eighteen centuries have made men realize all
-the miseries of the pagan state, even though they have continued
-to lead a pagan existence, out of harmony with an age of humanity;
-and at the bottom of their hearts they believe now (and herein
-lies the only reason for living at all) that salvation from such
-an existence can be found in the fulfilment of the Christian
-doctrine in its true sense. As to when and where this salvation is
-to be accomplished, opinions differ, according to the intellectual
-development of men and the prejudices among which they live; but
-every educated man recognizes that our salvation is to be found
-in the fulfilment of the Christian doctrine. Certain believers,
-those who consider the Christian doctrine divine, affirm that this
-salvation will be accomplished when all men believe in Christ and
-the time of the second advent approaches; others, who also have
-faith in the divinity of Christ's doctrine, believe that this
-salvation will come through the churches, which, having got all
-men within the fold, will implant in their hearts those Christian
-virtues which will transform their lives. Others, again, who do
-not accept the divinity of Christ, believe that the salvation of
-men will be accomplished by means of a slow, continuous progress,
-during which the groundwork of pagan life will be gradually replaced
-by the groundwork of liberty, equality, and fraternity--that is,
-by the basis of Christianity. Still others there are who preach a
-new social organization, and who believe that this salvation will
-be brought about when, by means of a violent revolution, men are
-forced to a community of goods, to the abolition of governments, to
-collective rather than individual labor--that is, by the realization
-of one of the aspects of Christianity. Thus, after one fashion
-or another, all men of our epoch not only renounce the existing
-order of life as no longer suited to the times, but acknowledge,
-often without realizing it, and regarding themselves as enemies of
-Christianity, that our salvation lies only in the adaptation to life
-of a whole or a part of the Christian doctrine in its true sense.
-
-For the majority of men Christianity, as its Teacher has expressed
-it, could not be comprehended at once, but was to grow, like unto a
-huge tree, from the tiniest seed. "The kingdom of heaven is like to
-a grain of mustard seed, ... which indeed is the least of all seeds:
-but when it is grown, it is the greatest among herbs, and becometh
-a tree." And thus it has grown and continues to grow, if not in
-manifestation, then in human consciousness.
-
-It is no longer reserved for the minority of men, who have
-always understood Christianity by its veritable truth; but it is
-acknowledged by the great majority, who, if we are to judge by their
-social life, are far removed from it.
-
-Look at the private life of individuals, listen to their estimation
-of human actions as they pronounce judgment on each other; listen
-not only to public sermons and orations, but to the precepts which
-parents and teachers offer to their charges, and you will see that,
-however far removed from the practice of Christian truths may be the
-political or social existence of men who are in bonds to violence,
-yet Christian virtues are admired and exalted by all; while, on the
-contrary, the anti-Christian vices are unhesitatingly condemned
-as harmful to all mankind. Those who sacrifice their lives in the
-service of humanity are looked upon as the better men; while those
-who take advantage of the misfortune of their neighbors to further
-their own selfish interests are universally condemned.
-
-There may still be men who, insensible to Christian ideals, have set
-up for themselves other ideals, such as power, courage, or wealth;
-but these ideals are passing away; they are not accepted by all, nor
-by the men of the better class. Indeed, the Christian ideals are the
-only ones which are recognized as obligatory for all.
-
-The position of our Christian world, looked at from without, with
-its cruelty and slavery, is indeed appalling. But if we consider
-it from the standpoint of human consciousness, it presents a very
-different aspect. All the evil of our life seems to exist only
-because it always has existed from all ages, and the men whose
-actions are evil have had neither the time nor the experience to
-overcome their evil habits, although all are willing to abandon
-them. Evil seems to exist by reason of some cause apparently
-independent of the consciousness of men.
-
-Strange and contradictory as it may seem, modern men hate the very
-order of things which they themselves support.
-
-I believe it is Max Mueller who describes the astonishment of an
-Indian converted to Christianity, who, having apprehended the
-essence of the Christian doctrine, came to Europe and beheld the
-life of Christians. He could not recover from his astonishment in
-the presence of the reality, so different from the state of things
-he had expected to find among Christian nations.
-
-If we are not surprised at the contradiction between our convictions
-and our actions, it is only because the influences which obscure
-this contradiction act upon us. We have but to look at our life
-from the standpoint of the Indian, who understood Christianity in
-its true significance, without any concessions or adaptations, and
-to behold the barbarous cruelties with which our life is filled, in
-order to be horrified at the contradictions in the midst of which we
-live, without noticing them.
-
-One has but to remember the preparations for war, the
-cartridge-boxes, the silver-plated bullets, the torpedoes, and--the
-Red Cross; the establishment of prisons for solitary confinement,
-experiments with _electrocution_, and--the care for the welfare of
-the prisoners; the philanthropic activity of the rich, and--their
-daily life, which brings about the existence of the poor, whom they
-seek to benefit. And these contradictions arise, not, as it might
-seem, because men pretend to be Christians while they are actually
-heathens, but because they lack something, or because there is some
-power which prevents them from being what they really desire to
-be, and what they even conscientiously believe themselves to be.
-It is not that modern men merely pretend to hate oppression, the
-inequality of class distinctions, and all kinds of cruelty, whether
-practised against their fellow-men or against animals. They _are_
-sincere in their hatred of these abuses; but they do not know how
-to abolish them, or they lack the courage to alter their own mode
-of life, which depends upon all this, and which seems to them so
-important.
-
-Ask, indeed, any individual if he considers it praiseworthy or
-even honorable for a man to fill a position for which he receives
-a salary so high as to be out of all proportion to the amount of
-his labor, as, for instance, that of collecting from the people,
-often from beggars, taxes which are to be devoted to the purchase
-of cannon, torpedoes, and other instruments for murdering the men
-with whom we wish to live in peace, and who wish to live in peace
-with us; or, to receive a salary for spending his life either
-in perfecting these instruments of murder, or in the military
-exercises by which men are trained for slaughter? Ask whether it
-be praiseworthy or compatible with the dignity of man, or becoming
-to a Christian, to undertake, also for money, to arrest some
-unfortunate man, some illiterate drunkard, for some petty theft not
-to be compared with the magnitude of our own appropriation, or for
-manslaughter not conducted by our advanced methods; and for such
-offenses to throw people into prison, or put them to death? Ask
-whether it be laudable and becoming in a man and a Christian, also
-for money, to teach the people foolish and injurious superstitions
-instead of the doctrine of Christ? Whether, again, it be laudable
-and worthy of a man to wrench from his neighbor, in order to
-gratify his own caprice, the very necessaries of life, as the great
-landowners do; or to exact from his fellow-man an excessive and
-exhausting toil for the purpose of increasing his own wealth, as
-the mill-owners and manufacturers do; or to take advantage of human
-necessities to build up colossal fortunes, as the merchants do?
-
-Every individual would reply not, especially if the question
-regarded his neighbor. And at the same time the very man who
-acknowledges all the ignominy of such deeds, when the case is
-presented to him, will often, of his own accord, and for no
-advantage of a salary, but moved by childish vanity, the desire to
-possess a trinket of enamel, a decoration, a stripe, voluntarily
-enter the military service, or become an examining magistrate, a
-justice of the peace, a minister of state, an _uriadnik_, a bishop,
-accepting an office whose duties will oblige him to do things, the
-shame and ignominy of which he cannot help realizing.
-
-Many of these men will, I am sure, defend themselves on the ground
-of the lawfulness and necessity of their position; they will argue
-that the authorities are of God, that the functions of State are
-indispensable for the good of mankind, that Christianity is not
-opposed to wealth, that the rich youth was bidden to give up his
-goods only if he wished to be perfect, that the present distribution
-of wealth and commerce is beneficial to all men, and that it
-is right and lawful. But however much they may try to deceive
-themselves and others, they all know that what they do is opposed to
-the highest interests of life, and at the bottom of their hearts,
-when they listen only to their consciences, they are ashamed and
-pained to think of what they are doing, especially when the baseness
-of their deeds has been pointed out to them. A man in modern life,
-whether he does or does not profess to believe in the divinity
-of Christ, must know that to be instrumental either as a czar,
-minister, governor, or policeman, as in selling a poor family's last
-cow to pay taxes to the treasury, the money of which is devoted to
-the purchase of cannon or to pay the salaries or pensions of idle
-and luxurious officials, is to do more harm than good; or to be
-a party to the imprisonment of the father of a family, for whose
-demoralization we are ourselves responsible, and to bring his family
-to beggary; or to take part in piratical and murderous warfare;
-or to teach absurd superstitions of idol-worship instead of the
-doctrine of Christ; or to impound a stray cow belonging to a man
-who has no land; or to deduct the value of an accidentally injured
-article from the wages of a mechanic; or to sell something to a poor
-man for double its value, only because he is in dire necessity;--the
-men of our modern life cannot but know that all such deeds are
-wrong, shameful, and that they ought not to commit them. They do all
-know it. They know that they are doing wrong, and would abstain from
-it, had they but the strength to oppose those forces which blind
-them to the criminality of their actions while drawing them on to do
-wrong.
-
-But there is nothing that demonstrates so vividly the degree of
-contradiction to which human life has attained as the system that
-embodies both the method and the expression of violence,--the
-general conscription system. It is only because a general armament
-and military conscription have come imperceptibly and by slow
-degrees, and that governments employ for their support all the means
-of intimidation at their disposal,--bribery, bewilderment, and
-violence,--that we do not realize the glaring contradiction between
-this state of affairs and those Christian feelings and ideas with
-which all modern men are penetrated.
-
-This contradiction has become so common that we fail to see the
-shocking imbecility and immorality of the actions, not only of
-those men who, of their own accord, choose the profession of murder
-as something honorable, but of those unfortunates who consent to
-serve in the army, and of those who, in countries where military
-conscription has not yet been introduced, give of their own free
-will the fruits of their labor to be used for the payment of
-mercenaries and for the organization for murder. All these men are
-either Christians or men professing humanitarianism and liberalism,
-who know that they participate in the most imbecile, aimless, and
-cruel murders; yet still they go on committing them. But this
-is not all. In Germany, where the system of general military
-conscription originated, Caprivi has revealed something that has
-always been carefully hidden: that the men who run the risk of
-being killed are not only foreigners, but are quite as likely to
-be fellow-countrymen,--working-men,--from which class most of the
-soldiers are obtained. Nevertheless, this admission neither opened
-men's eyes nor shocked their sensibilities. They continue just as
-they did before, to go like sheep, and submit to anything that
-is demanded of them. And this is not all. The German Emperor has
-recently explained with minute precision the character and vocation
-of a soldier, having distinguished, thanked, and rewarded a private
-for killing a defenseless prisoner who attempted to escape. In
-thanking and rewarding a man for an act which is looked upon even
-by men of the lowest type of morality as base and cowardly, Wilhelm
-pointed out that the principal duty of a soldier, and one most
-highly prized by the authorities, is that of an executioner,--not
-like the professional executioners who put to death condemned
-prisoners only, but an executioner of the innocent men whom his
-superiors order him to kill.
-
-Yet more. In 1891 this same Wilhelm, the _enfant terrible_ of State
-authority, who expresses what other men only venture to think, in a
-talk with certain soldiers, uttered publicly the following words,
-which were repeated the next day in thousands of papers:--
-
-"Recruits! You have given _me_ the oath of allegiance before the
-altar and the servant of the Lord. You are still too young to
-comprehend the true meaning of what has been said here, but first of
-all take care ever to follow the orders and instructions that are
-given to you. You have taken the oath of allegiance to _me_; this
-means, children of my guards, that you are now _my_ soldiers, that
-you have given yourselves up to me, body and soul.
-
-"But one enemy exists for you--_my_ enemy. With the present
-socialistic intrigues _it may happen that I shall command you to
-shoot your own relatives, your brothers, even your parents_ (from
-which may God preserve us!), _and then you are in duty bound to obey
-my orders unhesitatingly_."
-
-This man expresses what is known, but carefully concealed, by all
-wise rulers. He says outright that the men who serve in the army
-serve _him_and _his_ advantage, and should be ready for that purpose
-to kill their brothers and fathers.
-
-Roughly but distinctly he lays bare all the horror of the crime
-for which men who become soldiers prepare themselves,--all that
-abyss of self-abasement into which they fling themselves when they
-promise obedience. Like a bold hypnotizer, he tests the depth of the
-slumber; he applies red-hot iron to the sleeper's body; it smokes
-and shrivels, but the sleeper does not awaken.
-
-Poor, sick, miserable man, intoxicated with power, who by these
-words insults all that is sacred to men of modern civilization!
-And we, Christians, liberals, men of culture, so far from feeling
-indignant at this insult, pass it over in silence. Men are put to
-the final test in its rudest form; but they hardly observe that a
-test is in question, that a choice is put before them. It seems
-to them as if there were no choice, but only the one necessity
-of slavish submission. It would seem as if these insane words,
-offensive to all that a civilized human being holds sacred, ought
-to rouse indignation,--but nothing of the kind happens. Year after
-year every young man in Europe is subjected to the same test, and
-with very few exceptions they all forswear what is and should be
-sacred to every man; all manifest a readiness to kill their brothers
-and even their fathers, at the order of the first misguided man who
-wears a red and gold livery, asking only when and whom they are to
-be ordered to kill--for they are ready to do it.
-
-Even by savages certain objects are held sacred, for whose sake
-they are ready to suffer rather than submit. But what is sacred for
-the man of the modern world? He is told: Be my slave, in a bondage
-where you may have to murder your own father; and he, oftentimes a
-man of learning, who has studied all the sciences in the university,
-submissively offers his neck to the halter. He is dressed in a
-clown's garments, ordered to leap, to make contortions, to salute,
-to kill--and he submissively obeys; and when at last allowed to
-return to his former life, he continues to hold forth on the dignity
-of man, freedom, equality, and brotherhood.
-
-"But what is to be done?" we often hear men ask in perplexity. "If
-every man were to refuse, it would be a different matter; but, as it
-is, I should suffer alone without benefiting any one." And they are
-right; for a man who holds the social life-conception cannot refuse.
-Life has no significance for him except as it concerns his personal
-welfare; it is for his advantage to submit, therefore he does so.
-
-To whatever torture or injury he may be subjected he will submit,
-because he can do nothing alone; he lacks the foundation which
-alone would enable him to resist violence, and those who are in
-authority over him will never give him the chance of uniting with
-others.
-
-It has often been said that the invention of the terrible military
-instruments of murder will put an end to war, and that war will
-exhaust itself. This is not true. As it is possible to increase the
-means for killing men, so it is possible to increase the means for
-subjecting those who hold the social life-conception. Let them be
-exterminated by thousands and millions, let them be torn to pieces,
-men will still continue like stupid cattle to go to the slaughter,
-some because they are driven thither under the lash, others that
-they may win the decorations and ribbons which fill their hearts
-with pride.
-
-And it is with material like this that the public
-leaders--conservatives, liberals, socialists, anarchists--discuss
-the ways and means of organizing an intelligent and moral society,
-with men who have been so thoroughly confused and bewildered
-that they will promise to murder their own parents. What kind of
-intelligence and morality can there be in a society organized from
-material like this? Just as it is impossible to build a house
-from bent and rotten timber, however manipulated, so also is it
-impossible with such materials to organize an intelligent and moral
-society. They can only be governed like a drove of cattle, by the
-shouts and lash of the herdsman. And so, indeed, they are governed.
-
-Again, while on the one hand we find men, Christians in name,
-professing the principles of liberty, equality, and fraternity, on
-the other hand we see these same men ready, in the name of liberty,
-to yield the most abject and slavish obedience; in the name of
-equality, to approve of the most rigid and senseless subdivision of
-men into classes; and in the name of fraternity, ready to slay their
-own brothers.[14]
-
- [14] The fact that some nations, like the English and American, have
- no general conscription system (although one hears already voices in
- its favor), but a system of recruiting and hiring soldiers, nowise
- alters the case as regards the slavery of the citizens under the
- government. In the former system every man must go himself to kill
- or be killed; in the latter, he must give the proceeds of his labor
- to employ and drill murderers.
-
-The contradiction of the moral consciousness, and hence the misery
-of life, has reached its utmost limit, beyond which it can go no
-further. Life, based on principles of violence, has culminated in
-the negation of the basis on which it was founded. The organization,
-on principles of violence, of a society whose object was to insure
-the happiness of the individual and the family, and the social
-welfare of humanity, has brought men to such a pass that these
-benefits are practically annulled.
-
-The first part of the prophecy in regard to those men and their
-descendants who adopted this doctrine has been fulfilled, and now
-their descendants are forced to realize the justice of its second
-part.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX
-
-THE ACCEPTANCE OF THE CHRISTIAN LIFE-CONCEPTION DELIVERS MEN FROM
-THE MISERIES OF OUR PAGAN LIFE
-
- The external life of Christian nations remains pagan, but they
- are already penetrated by the Christian life-conception--The
- issue from this contradiction is in the acceptance of the
- Christian life-conception--In it alone is every man free, and
- it alone frees him from all human authority--This deliverance
- is brought about, not by a change of external conditions,
- but only by a change in the conception of one's life--The
- Christian life-conception demands the renunciation of violence,
- and, in delivering the man who accepts it, it frees the world
- from all external authority--The issue from the present
- apparently hopeless position consists in every man accepting
- the Christian life-conception and living accordingly--But
- men consider this method too slow, and see their salvation
- in change of the material conditions of life made with the
- aid of the authority of the State--This method will have no
- issue, because men themselves cause the evil from which they
- suffer--This is especially evident in regard to the submissive
- acceptance of military duty, for it is more advantageous for
- a man to refuse than accept--Human freedom will be brought
- about only through the liberation of each individual man, and
- already there are signs of this liberation, which threatens to
- destroy State organization--The repudiation of the un-Christian
- demands of governments undermines their authority and makes
- men free--Therefore instances of such refusals are feared by
- governments more than conspiracies or violence--Instances, in
- Russia, of refusals to take the oath of allegiance, to pay
- taxes, to accept passports or positions in the police, to take
- part in courts of law, or to be drafted as soldiers--Similar
- instances in other countries--Governments know not how to
- dispose of men who refuse to obey their requirements because of
- the Christian doctrine--These men destroy without a struggle
- the foundations of governments from the inside--To punish them
- would mean for governments to deny Christianity themselves, and
- to contribute to the diffusion of that consciousness from which
- such refusals spring--Hence the position of governments is a
- desperate one, and men who preach the uselessness of personal
- deliverance only arrest the destruction of the existing system
- of government founded on violence.
-
-
-The Christian nations of the present day are in a position no less
-cruel than that of pagan times. In many respects, especially in the
-matter of oppression, their position has grown worse.
-
-A contrast like that of modern and ancient times may be seen in the
-vegetation of the last days of autumn as compared with that of the
-early days of spring. In the autumn the outward decay and death
-correspond to the interior process, which is the suspension of life;
-in the spring the apparent lifelessness is in direct contradiction
-to the real vitality within, and the approaching transition to new
-forms of life.
-
-And thus it is as regards the apparent resemblance between pagan
-life and that of the present day. It exists only in appearance. The
-inner lives of men in the times of paganism were quite unlike those
-of the men of our days.
-
-In the former the external aspect of cruelty and slavery
-corresponded with the inner consciousness of men, a conformity which
-only increased as time went on; in the latter the external condition
-of cruelty and slavery is in utter contradiction to the Christian
-consciousness of men, a contradiction which grows more and more
-striking every year.
-
-The misery and suffering resulting therefrom seem so useless. It is
-like prolonged suffering in child-labor. Everything is ready for the
-coming life, and yet no life appears.
-
-Apparently the situation is without deliverance. It would indeed
-be so were it not that to men, and therefore to the world, there
-has been vouchsafed the capacity for a loftier conception of life,
-which has the power to set free, and at once, from all fetters,
-however firmly riveted.
-
-And this is the Christian life-conception presented to men 1800
-years ago.
-
-A man has but to assimilate this life-conception and he will be set
-free, as a matter of course, from the fetters that now restrain him,
-and feel free as a bird who spreads his wings and flies over the
-wall that has kept him a prisoner.
-
-They talk of setting the Christian Church free from the State, of
-granting freedom to or withholding it from Christians. Such thoughts
-and expressions are strangely misleading. Liberty can neither be
-granted to nor withheld from a Christian or Christians.
-
-But if there is a question of granting or withholding liberty, then
-evidently it is not the true Christians who are meant, but only men
-who call themselves by that name. A Christian cannot help being
-free, because in the pursuit and attainment of his object no one can
-either hinder or retard him.
-
-A man has but to understand his life as Christianity teaches him to
-understand it; that is, he must realize that it does not belong to
-himself, nor to his family, nor to the State, but to Him who sent
-him into the world; he must therefore know that it is his duty to
-live, not in accordance with the law of his own personality, nor of
-that of his family or State, but to fulfil the infinite law of Him
-who gave him life, in order to feel himself so entirely free from
-all human authority that he will cease to regard it as a possible
-obstacle.
-
-A man needs but to realize that the object of his life is the
-fulfilment of God's law; then the preeminence of that law, claiming
-as it does his entire allegiance, will of necessity invalidate the
-authority and restrictions of all human laws.
-
-The Christian who contemplates that law of love implanted in every
-human soul, and quickened by Christ, the only guide for all mankind,
-is set free from human authority.
-
-A Christian may suffer from external violence, may be deprived of
-his personal freedom, may be a slave to his passions,--the man who
-commits sin is the slave of the sin,--but he cannot be controlled
-or coerced by threats into committing an act contrary to his
-consciousness. He cannot be forced to this, because the privations
-and sufferings that are so powerful an influence over men who hold
-the social life-conception have no influence whatever over him. The
-privations and sufferings that destroy the material welfare which is
-the object of the social life-conception produce no effect upon the
-welfare of the Christian's life, which rests on the consciousness
-that he is doing God's will--nay, they may even serve to promote
-that welfare when they are visited upon him for fulfilling that will.
-
-A Christian, therefore, who submits to the inner, the divine law,
-is not only unable to execute the biddings of the outward law when
-they are at variance with his consciousness of God's law of love,
-as in the case of the demands made upon him by the government; but
-he cannot acknowledge the obligation of obeying any individual
-whomsoever, cannot acknowledge himself to be what is called a
-subject. For a Christian to promise to subject himself to any
-government whatsoever--a subjection which may be considered the
-foundation of State life--is a direct negation of Christianity;
-since an individual who promises beforehand to obey implicitly every
-law that men may enact, by that promise utters an emphatic denial of
-Christianity, whose very essence is obedience in all contingencies
-to the law which he feels to be within him--the law of love.
-
-With the pagan life-conception it was possible to promise to obey
-the will of temporal authorities without violating the laws of
-God, which were supposed to consist in carrying out such customs
-as circumcision, the observance of the Sabbath, the utterance of
-prayer at certain periods, abstinence from certain kinds of food,
-etc. The one did not contradict the other. But Christianity differs
-from paganism inasmuch as its requirements are not of an external
-or negative character; on the contrary, they are such as reverse
-man's former relations toward his fellow-men, and may call for
-acts on his part which could not be anticipated, and consequently
-are not defined. Hence it is that a Christian can neither promise
-to obey nor to disobey the will of another, ignorant as he must
-be of the nature of its requirements; not only must he refuse to
-obey human laws, but he cannot promise to do or abstain from doing
-anything definite at any given time, because he can never tell at
-what hour or in what manner the Christian law of love, on which his
-life-conception is based, will demand his cooperation. A Christian,
-promising in advance to obey unconditionally the laws of men, admits
-by that promise that the inner law of God does not constitute for
-him the sole law of his life.
-
-When a Christian promises to obey the commands or laws of men, he
-is like a craftsman who, having hired himself out to one master,
-promises at the same time to execute the orders of other persons. No
-man can serve two masters.
-
-A Christian is freed from human authority by acknowledging
-the supremacy of one authority alone, that of God, whose law,
-revealed to him through Christ, he recognizes within himself, and
-obeys,--that and no other.
-
-And this deliverance is accomplished neither by means of a struggle,
-nor by the destruction of previous customs of life, but only through
-a change in his life-conception. The deliverance proceeds, in the
-first place, from the Christian's acknowledgment of the law of love,
-as revealed to him by his Teacher, which suffices to determine the
-relations of men, and according to which every act of violence seems
-superfluous and unlawful. Secondly, because those privations and
-miseries, or the anticipations of such, which influence a man who
-holds the social life-conception and reduces him to obedience, seem
-to him no more than the inevitable consequences of existence, which
-he would never dream of opposing by violence, but bears patiently,
-as he would bear disease, hunger, or any other misery; which,
-indeed, have no possible influence over his actions. The Christian's
-only guide must be the divine indwelling element, subject neither to
-restriction nor to control.
-
-A Christian lives in accordance with the words spoken by the Master:
-"He shall not strive, nor cry; neither shall any man hear his voice
-in the streets. A bruised reed shall he not break, and smoking flax
-shall he not quench, _till he send forth judgment unto victory_."[15]
-
- [15] Matthew xii. 19, 20.
-
-A Christian enters into no dispute with his neighbor, he neither
-attacks nor uses violence; on the contrary, he suffers violence
-himself without resistance, and by his very attitude toward evil not
-only sets himself free, but helps to free the world at large from
-all outward authority.
-
-"And ye shall know the truth, and the truth shall make you
-free."[16] If there were any doubt of the truth of Christianity
-there could be no more indubitable proof of its authenticity than
-the complete freedom, recognizing no fetters, which a man feels as
-soon as he assimilates the Christian life-conception.
-
- [16] John viii. 32.
-
-Human beings in their present condition may be likened to bees in
-the act of swarming, as we see them clinging in a mass to a single
-bough. Their position is a temporary one, and must inevitably be
-changed. They must rise and find themselves a new abode. Every bee
-knows this, and is eager to shift its own position, as well as that
-of the others, but not one of them will do so until the whole swarm
-rises. The swarm cannot rise, because one bee clings to the other
-and prevents it from separating itself from the swarm, and so they
-all continue to hang. It might seem as if there were no deliverance
-from this position, precisely as it seems to men of the world who
-have become entangled in the social net. Indeed, there would be no
-outlet for the bees if each one were not a living creature possessed
-of a pair of wings. Neither would there be any issue for men if
-each one were not a living individual, being gifted with a capacity
-for assimilating the Christian life-conception.
-
-If among these bees who are able to fly not one could be found
-willing to start, the swarm would never change its position. And it
-is the same among men. If the man who has assimilated the Christian
-life-conception waits for others before he proceeds to live in
-accordance with it, mankind will never change its attitude. And as
-all that is needed to change a solid mass of bees into a flying
-swarm is for one bee to spread its wings and fly away, when the
-second, the third, the tenth, and the hundredth will follow suit; so
-all that is needed to break through the magic circle of social life,
-deliverance from which seems so hopeless, is, that one man should
-view life from a Christian standpoint and begin to frame his own
-life accordingly, whereupon others will follow in his footsteps.
-
-But men think that the deliverance of mankind by this method is
-too slow a process, and that a simultaneous deliverance might be
-effected by some other method. Just as if bees, when the swarm was
-ready to rise, were to decide that it would be too long a process if
-they waited for each bee to spread its wings and rise separately,
-and that some means must be devised whereby the swarm may rise all
-at once, whenever it pleases. But that is impossible. Not until the
-first, second, third, and hundredth bee has unfolded its wings and
-flown away can the swarm take flight and find for itself a new home.
-Not until each individual man adopts the Christian life-conception,
-and begins to live in conformity with its precepts, will the
-contradictions of human life be solved, and new forms of life become
-established.
-
-One of the most striking events of our time is the propaganda
-of slavery which is spread among the masses, not only by the
-government, to whom it is of use, but by those exponents of
-socialistic theories who consider themselves the champions of
-freedom.
-
-These men preach that the amelioration in the conditions of life,
-the reconciliation between actuality and consciousness, will not be
-brought about by the personal efforts of individual men, but that it
-will evolve itself out of a certain forced reorganization of society
-by some unknown influence. Their theory is that men should not
-proceed of their own accord to the place where they wish to go, but
-that they should have a platform built under their feet, upon which
-they may be carried to the spot they desire to reach. Hence they
-must not move as far as their strength will permit, but all their
-efforts must be directed toward building this imaginary platform
-without stirring from their position.
-
-There is a theory in economics preached in these days of which the
-essential principle is this: the worse the condition of affairs,
-the better the prospect; the greater the accumulation of capital
-and oppression of the working-man resulting therefrom, the nearer
-the day of deliverance; and therefore any effort on the part of
-the individual to free himself from the oppression of capital is
-useless. In regard to the government it is declared that the greater
-its authority, which, according to this theory, should include the
-domain of private life, hitherto uninvaded, the better it will be,
-and hence one should solicit the interference of governments with
-private life. In regard to international politics, it is declared
-that the increase of armies and modes of extermination will lead
-to the necessity of a general disarmament through the agency of
-congresses, arbitration, etc. And the most surprising part of all is
-that human lethargy is so profound that men credit these theories,
-although the whole structure of life, and every stage in human
-progress, demonstrate their fallacy.
-
-Men suffer from oppression, and by way of deliverance certain
-expedients are suggested for the improvement of their condition,
-these means of relief to be administered by authority, to which they
-continue to submit. This will naturally tend to augment authority
-and to increase the consequent oppression of government.
-
-Of all the errors of humanity there is none that so retards its
-progress as this. Men will do anything in the world to achieve their
-purpose save the one simple deed, which it is every man's duty to
-perform. Men will invent the most ingenious devices for changing the
-position which is burdensome to them, but never dream of the simple
-remedy of abstaining from the acts which cause it.
-
-I was told of an incident which happened to an intrepid _stanovoy_,
-who, on arriving in a village where the peasants had revolted, and
-whither troops had been sent, undertook, like the Emperor Nicholas
-I., to quell the disturbance by his personal influence. He ordered
-several loads of rods to be brought, and having gathered all the
-peasants into the barn, he entered himself, shut himself in with
-them, and so terrified them by his shouts and threats that in
-compliance with his commands they began to flog each other. And so
-they went on flogging one another until some fool revolted, and,
-shouting to his comrades, bade them leave off. It was not until then
-that the flogging ceased, and the _stanovoy_ escaped from the barn.
-
-It is this very advice of the fool that men who believe in the
-necessity of civil government seem unable to follow. They are unable
-to stop punishing themselves, and setting an absurd example for
-others to imitate. Such is the consummation of merely human wisdom.
-
-Is it possible, indeed, to imagine a more striking imitation of
-those men flogging one another than the meekness with which the
-men of these days fulfil those social duties that lead them into
-bondage, especially the military conscription? It is clear that men
-enslave themselves; they suffer from this slavery, and yet they
-believe it inevitable; they also believe that it will not affect
-the ultimate emancipation of mankind, which they declare the final
-outcome, in spite of the fact that slavery is ever increasing.
-
-The man of modern times, whoever he may be (I do not mean a true
-Christian), educated or ignorant, a believer or an unbeliever, rich
-or poor, married or single, does his work, takes his pleasures, and
-dreads all restrictions and privations, all enmity and suffering.
-Thus he is living, peaceably. Suddenly men come to him and say:
-"First, promise on your oath that you will obey us like a slave
-in all that we command; believe that whatever we tell you is
-unquestionably true, and submit to all that we shall call laws. Or,
-secondly, give us a share in the product of your labor, that we
-may use it to keep you in bondage, and prevent you from revolting
-against our commands. Or, thirdly, choose, or be chosen among, the
-so-called officials of the government, knowing that the government
-will go on quite regardless of the foolish speeches which you, or
-others like you, may utter; that it will be carried on in accordance
-with our wishes and the wishes of those who control the army.
-Or, fourthly, come to the law-courts, and take part in all the
-senseless cruelties which we commit against men, who are erring and
-depraved men, and who have become so through our fault,--in the
-form of imprisonment, exile, solitary confinement, and execution.
-Or, lastly, although you may be on the most friendly terms with
-men who belong to other nations, you must be ready at a moment's
-notice, whenever the command is issued, to look upon such of them
-as we shall indicate as your enemies, and either personally or by
-substitute contribute to the ruin, robbery, and murder of these men,
-of old men, women, and children--even, if we require it, of your
-fellow-countrymen and your parents."
-
-One would think that in these days there could be but one reply from
-any man in his senses.
-
-"Why must I do all this? Why must I promise to obey all the orders
-of Salisbury to-day, those of Gladstone to-morrow; Boulanger to-day,
-and to-morrow the orders of an assembly composed of men like
-Boulanger; Peter III. to-day, Catharine to-morrow, and the next day
-Pugatchov; to-day the insane King of Bavaria, to-morrow the Emperor
-William? Why should I promise this to men whom I know to be wicked
-or foolish, or men whom I know nothing at all about? Why should I,
-in the form of taxes, hand over to them the fruits of my labor,
-knowing that this money will be used to bribe officials, to support
-prisons, churches, and armies, to pay for the execution of evil acts
-destined for my oppression? In other words, why should I apply the
-rod to my own back? Why should I go on wasting my time, averting
-my eyes, helping to give a semblance of legality to the acts of
-wrong-doers, play a part in elections, and pretend to participate
-in the government, when I know perfectly well that the country is
-ruled by those who control the army? Why should I go into the courts
-and be a party to the infliction of tortures and executions upon
-my erring fellow-beings, knowing, if I am a Christian, that the
-law of love has been substituted for the law of vengeance, and if
-I am an educated man, that punishment, so far from reforming its
-victims, serves only to demoralize them? Why should I, in person or
-in substitute, go and kill and despoil, and expose myself to the
-dangers of war, simply because the key of the temple of Jerusalem
-happens to be in the keeping of one bishop rather than in that
-of another; because Bulgaria is to be ruled by one German prince
-instead of another; or because the privileges of the seal fishery
-are reserved for the English to the exclusion of the American
-merchants. Why should I regard as my enemies the inhabitants of a
-neighboring country, with whom up to the present day I have lived,
-and still wish to live, in peace and amity,--why should I go myself,
-or pay for soldiers, to murder and ruin them?
-
-"And, above all, why should I contribute, whether in person or by
-paying for military service, to the enslavement and destruction of
-my brothers and parents? Why should I scourge myself? All this is
-of no use to me; on the contrary, it does me harm. It is altogether
-degrading, immoral, mean, and contemptible. Why, then, should I do
-all this? If I am told that I shall be made to suffer in any event,
-I reply that in the first place, there can be no possible suffering
-greater than that which would befall me were I to execute your
-commands. And in the second place, it is perfectly evident to me
-that if we refuse to scourge ourselves, no one else will do it for
-us. Governments are but sovereigns, statesmen, officials, who can
-no more force me against my will, than the _stanovoy_ could force
-the peasants; I should be brought before the court, or thrown into
-prison, or executed, not by the sovereign, or the high officials,
-but by men in the same position as myself; and as it would be
-equally injurious and disagreeable for them to be scourged as for
-me, I should probably open their eyes, and they would not only
-refrain from injuring me, but would doubtless follow my example.
-And in the third place, though I were made to suffer for this, it
-would still be better for me to be exiled or imprisoned, doing
-battle in the cause of common sense and truth, which must eventually
-triumph, if not to-day, then to-morrow, or before many days, than
-to suffer in the cause of folly and evil. It would rather be to my
-advantage to risk being exiled, imprisoned, or even executed, than
-remain, through my own fault, a life-long slave of evil men, to be
-ruined by an invading enemy, or mutilated like an idiot, or killed
-while defending a cannon, a useless territory, or a senseless piece
-of cloth called a flag. I have no inclination to scourge myself,
-it would be of no use. You may do it yourselves if you choose--I
-refuse."
-
-It would seem as though not only the religious and moral element
-in human nature, but ordinary common sense and wise counsel, would
-influence every man of the present day thus to make reply, and
-to suit the action to the word. But no. Men who hold the social
-life-conception consider such a course not only useless, but even
-prejudicial to the object in view,--the deliverance of mankind from
-slavery. They advise us to go on, like the peasants, punishing
-one another, comforting ourselves with the reflection that our
-chatter in parliaments and assemblies, our trade unions, our First
-of May demonstrations, our conspiracies and covert threats to the
-governments that scourge us, must result in our final deliverance,
-even though we go on strengthening our fetters. Nothing so hampers
-human liberty as this wonderful delusion. Instead of making
-individual efforts to achieve freedom, every man for himself
-devoting all his energies to that object, through the attainment of
-a new life-conception, men are looking for a universal scheme of
-deliverance, and are in the meanwhile sinking deeper and deeper into
-slavery. It is as if a man were to declare that in order to obtain
-heat one must merely place every lump of coal in a certain position,
-never minding whether it kindled or not. And yet that the liberation
-of mankind can only be accomplished by means of the deliverance of
-the individual grows more and more evident.
-
-The liberation of individuals from the dominion of the State, in
-the name of the Christian life-conception, which was formerly an
-exceptional occurrence and one that attracted but little attention,
-has attained in these days a menacing significance for the authority
-of State.
-
-If in the days of ancient Rome it happened that a Christian,
-professing his faith, refused to take a part in sacrifices, or in
-the worship of the emperors or the gods, or in the Middle Ages
-refused to worship ikons or to acknowledge the temporal authority of
-the Pope, such refusals were the exception; a man might be obliged
-to confess to his faith, but he might perhaps live all his life
-without being forced to do so. But now all men, without exception,
-are subjected to trial of faith. Every man of modern times is
-obliged, either to participate in the cruelties of pagan life, or
-to repudiate them. And secondly, in those days any refusal to bow
-before the gods, the ikons, or the Pope was of no consequence to the
-State. Whether those who bowed before the gods, the ikons, or the
-Pope were many or few, the State lost none of its power. Whereas
-at the present time every refusal to execute the un-Christian
-demands of the government undermines the authority of the State,
-because the authority of the State rests on the fulfilment of these
-anti-Christian requirements.
-
-Temporal authority, in order to maintain itself, has been forced by
-the conditions of life to demand from its subjects certain actions
-which it is impossible for men who profess true Christianity to
-perform. Therefore at the present time every man who professes
-it helps to undermine the authority of the government, and will
-eventually pave the way for the liberation of mankind.
-
-Of what apparent importance are such acts as the refusal of a score
-or two of fools, as they are called,--men who decline to take the
-oath of allegiance, to pay taxes, or to take part in courts of law,
-or to serve in the army? Such men are tried and condemned, and life
-remains unchanged. These occurrences may seem unimportant, and
-yet these are precisely the factors that undermine the authority
-of the government more than any others, and thus prepare the way
-for the liberation of mankind. These are the bees who are the
-first to separate themselves from the swarm, and, still hovering
-near, they wait for the whole swarm to rise and follow them. The
-governments are aware of this, and look upon such occurrences with
-more apprehension than upon all the socialists, anarchists, and
-communists, with their conspiracies and their dynamite bombs.
-
-A new _regime_ is inaugurated. Each subject, according to custom,
-is required to take the oath of allegiance to the new government.
-A proclamation is issued, and all are bidden to assemble in the
-cathedral to take the oath. Suddenly one man in Perm, another in
-Tula, a third in Moscow, a fourth in Kaluga, refuse to take the
-oath and (without preconcerted action) justify their refusal by
-the same argument,--that the Christian law forbids the oath; but,
-even were the oath not forbidden, they could not, according to the
-spirit of this law, promise to perform such evil deeds as the oath
-requires,--such as reporting those antagonistic to the interests
-of the government, defending that government by armed force, or
-attacking its enemies. They are summoned to appear before the
-_stanovoys_, _spravniks_, priests, governors; they are reasoned
-with, coaxed, threatened, and punished; yet they adhere to their
-determination, and refuse to take the oath. They are asked, "Is it
-true that you never took the oath?"
-
-"It is."
-
-"And what was done to you?"
-
-"Nothing."
-
-Every subject is required to pay his taxes, and the taxes are paid.
-But one man in Charkov, another in Iver, and a third in Samara,
-refuse to comply, and, as by one accord, each man alleges the same
-reason. One of them says that he will pay after he has learned the
-object for which his money is to be used. "If it is to be used for
-charity, he will give of his own free will, and even more than is
-demanded of him. But if it is to be applied to evil purposes, he
-will give nothing of his own free will, because, according to the
-law of Christ, which he obeys, he can take no part in doing evil."
-And the others who refuse to pay taxes, except on compulsion,
-express the same idea, perhaps in other words. Those who have
-property are forced to pay, and those who have none are simply let
-alone.
-
-"Then you have not paid your tax?"
-
-"No."
-
-"And what was done to you?"
-
-"Nothing."
-
-The passport system is instituted. Every man who leaves his home
-must apply for one, and pay a tax for it. Suddenly, in different
-places, are to be found those who declare that passports should
-not be used, that a man should not acknowledge his dependence upon
-the State, which is supported by violence; and these men take no
-passports, consequently they pay no tax for them. And again, there
-are no means of coercing them to comply with the demand. They are
-imprisoned, but when after a time they find themselves at liberty
-again, they go on living without passports.
-
-Every peasant is expected to perform police duty as _sotsky_ or
-_dessiatsky_,[17] etc.; but some peasant in Charkov refuses to
-fulfil this duty, because, as he says in explanation of his refusal,
-the law of Christ, which he professes, forbids him to arrest,
-imprison, or transport his fellow-men. Another peasant in Iver or
-in Tambov makes the same statement. The peasants are threatened,
-beaten, and imprisoned, but they adhere to their resolution, and
-refuse to perform actions contrary to their religious belief. And
-they cease to be elected _sotsky_, and are gradually left in peace.
-
- [17] Petty rural police.--TR.
-
-It is the duty of every citizen to serve on the jury. All at once
-men of widely different classes,--carriage-makers, professors,
-merchants, peasants, nobles,--as if moved by a single impulse,
-refuse to fulfil this duty, not for reasons valid in the eyes of
-the law, but because the tribunal itself is, in their opinion,
-illegal and un-Christian, and ought not to exist. These men are
-fined, and false reasons are ascribed for their refusal, the true
-ones meanwhile remaining hidden from the public. The same treatment
-is employed in regard to those who, for similar reasons, refuse to
-appear as witnesses in courts of law. These, too, are finally left
-undisturbed.
-
-Every man at the age of twenty-one must draw lots. Suddenly there
-is found a man in Moscow, another in Iver, another in Charkov, and
-still another in Kiev, who, as it were by agreement, go to the
-department and declare that they will neither take the oath of
-allegiance nor serve in the army, because they are Christians. Here
-are the details of an affair which was among the earlier cases,--of
-late these refusals have begun to multiply,--a case with which I am
-myself familiar,[18] which is but one example among many.
-
- [18] The details of this case are authentic.
-
-In the City Hall of Moscow a young man of average education gives
-his reasons for refusing to comply. His words are not heeded, and
-he is bidden to repeat the words of the oath with the other men.
-He still persists in his refusal, and quotes a certain passage in
-the Bible that forbids men to take an oath. No attention is paid
-to his arguments, and again he is ordered to take the oath, which
-he declines to do. Whereupon it is taken for granted that he is
-a sectarian, and therefore misunderstands Christianity; in other
-words, that he differs from the priests paid by the State. He is
-then sent under guard to the priests that they may convince him,
-which they endeavor to do; but the arguments uttered in the name
-of Christ, by which they strive to persuade him to deny Christ,
-evidently have no effect on the young man. So they declare him
-incorrigible, and send him back to the army. Still he openly refuses
-to take the oath and to fulfil his military duties.
-
-It is a case not anticipated by the law. A refusal to comply
-with the demands of the government cannot be overlooked, neither
-can this case be called one of ordinary insubordination. After
-conferring, the military authorities decide that, in order to rid
-themselves of this objectionable youth, the better way will be
-to consider him as a rebel and forward him under military escort
-to the Department of the Secret Police. The police officials and
-the gendarmes question the young man, but his replies will not
-serve to classify his offense under the heading of any crime that
-comes within their jurisdiction; they cannot either accuse him of
-revolutionary motives, or of conspiracy, because he declares that
-he has no desire to destroy anything whatsoever; on the contrary,
-he opposes all violence. He says that he has nothing to conceal;
-he desires only an opportunity for saying and doing all things in
-the most open manner. And as it resulted with the clergy, so also
-with the gendarmes, who, though rarely embarrassed as to how to put
-the law in operation, can find no pretext for an accusation against
-the young man, and send him back to the ranks. Once more there is a
-conference, and his superiors decide that, although he has not taken
-the oath of allegiance, he is to be regarded as a soldier. He is put
-into uniform, his name is entered on the lists, and he is sent under
-convoy to his post. Here his immediate superiors once more order
-him to perform his military duty, and still he refuses to obey, and
-in the presence of the other soldiers he states his reasons, saying
-that, as a Christian, he cannot of his own free will prepare himself
-to commit murder, which was forbidden even by the law of Moses.
-
-All this takes place in a provincial city. The occurrence excites
-the interest and the sympathy, not only of outsiders, but even of
-the officers, and therefore there is hesitation about employing
-the usual punishment for contumacy. However, for the sake of
-appearances, he is thrown into jail, and a request is sent to the
-higher military authorities for further instructions in the case.
-From an official standpoint this refusal to take part in a military
-organization, in which the Czar himself serves, and which is
-blessed by the Church, must be regarded as insanity, and therefore
-the message is received from St. Petersburg that the young man is
-probably insane, and that before any violent measures are used
-against him he must be sent to the insane hospital. Thither he is
-sent in the hope that he will remain there, as happened some ten
-years ago in the case of a young man from Iver, who also refused
-to serve, and who was tortured in the hospital until at last he
-was subdued. But in the present instance even this measure fails
-to relieve the military authorities from this troublesome young
-man. The doctors examine him, become interested in him, and,
-discovering no symptoms of insanity, they return him to his post.
-He is received, and pretending that his refusal and its causes are
-forgotten, he is once more invited to join the drill, and again he
-refuses, in the presence of other soldiers, stating his reasons
-for his refusal. The affair attracts more and more notice from
-soldiers as well as from civilians. Again the question is referred
-to St. Petersburg, and thence comes the order to transfer the young
-man to the frontier, where the troops are in active service, and
-where, if he refuses to obey orders, he may be shot without exciting
-attention, as there are but few Russians and Christians in that
-far-away territory, the majority being foreigners and Mohammedans.
-This is done. The young man is ordered to join the Trans-Caspian
-troops, and with other criminals he is delivered into the hands of
-commanders noted for their severity and determination.
-
-Meanwhile, during all these transportations from place to place,
-the young man has suffered from harsh treatment, from cold, hunger,
-and filth, and his life has been made miserable. Yet all these
-trials do not weaken his resolution. In the Trans-Caspian province,
-where he is once more ordered to serve as a sentry under arms, he
-refuses to obey. He consents to stand where he is sent, beside the
-hayricks, but declines to take a weapon in his hand, declaring that
-on no account will he use violence against any one whomsoever.
-All this occurs in the presence of the soldiers. Such contumacy
-cannot go unpunished; consequently he is court-martialed for an
-infringement of military discipline, convicted, and sentenced to two
-years' confinement in a military prison. And once again, with the
-criminals, he is sent by _etape_ to the Caucasus and then thrown
-into prison, his fate being left to the discretionary power of the
-jailer. There he is tortured for a year and a half, but still his
-resolution to avoid the use of weapons remains unchanged, and he
-continues to explain to every one whom he meets the reasons for his
-refusal. Toward the end of the second year, before his term has
-really expired, he is set at liberty; and although not in accordance
-with the law, they are so anxious to rid themselves of him, that his
-imprisonment is accepted as an equivalent of further active service.
-
-And in various parts of Russia others are found who, as if by a
-concerted plan, imitate his example, and in every case the action
-of the government is undecided, vacillating, and underhanded.
-Some of these men are confined in the insane hospitals, some are
-appointed military clerks and sent to serve in Siberia, some are
-made foresters, others are thrown into prison, others are fined.
-At the present time several of these men are imprisoned, not for
-their substantial offense, denying the legality of the acts of
-the government, but for disobeying the particular orders of their
-superiors. For instance, an officer of the reserve recently failed
-to give information of the place of his residence, and declined
-to serve further in the army; he was fined thirty roubles for
-disobeying the orders of the authorities,--and this he declined to
-pay, except under compulsion. Several peasants and soldiers who
-refused to take part in a drill and to use weapons were put under
-arrest for disobedience and contention.
-
-Such instances of a refusal to comply with the demands of the
-State when opposed to Christianity, especially refusals to perform
-military service, occur not only in Russia, but everywhere. I
-know that in Servia, men from the so-called sect of Nazarenes
-steadily refuse to enter the army, and the Austrian government has
-for several years made futile attempts to convert them by means
-of imprisonment. In 1885 there were 130 refusals of this kind. I
-know that in Switzerland, in 1890, there were men in confinement in
-the castle of Chillon for refusing to perform military duty whose
-determination was not to be influenced by punishment. Such refusals
-have occurred in Sweden; the men there also were imprisoned, and the
-government carefully concealed the affairs from the people. Similar
-instances occurred in Prussia. I know of one subaltern officer in
-the guards who, in 1891, in Berlin, announced to his superiors that
-he, as a Christian, could not continue his military service, and in
-spite of all remonstrances and threats he adhered to his resolution.
-In the south of France a community of men called the Hinschist has
-recently been established (my information is derived from the _Peace
-Herald_ of July, 1891), who, as professing the Christian doctrine,
-refuse to perform military duty. At first they were told off to
-serve in hospitals, but now, with the increase of the sect, they are
-punished for insubordination, while they still refuse to bear arms.
-
-Socialists, communists, and anarchists, with their bombs and their
-revolutions, are far less dangerous to governments than these men,
-who from different places proclaim their refusals, all based upon
-the same doctrine, familiar to all. Every government knows how to
-defend itself from revolutionists; it holds the means in its own
-hands, and therefore does not fear these external foes. But what can
-a government do to protect itself from men who declaim against all
-authority as useless, superfluous, and injurious, offering, however,
-no opposition to authority, merely rejecting its offices, dispensing
-with its services, and therefore refusing to participate in it?
-
-The revolutionists say: "State organization is bad, either for one
-reason or for another; it should be destroyed, and replaced by such
-and such a system." But a Christian says: "I know nothing of State
-organization, whether it be good or bad, and it is for this very
-reason that I do not wish to support it. And I cannot undertake
-submission, because such submission is contrary to my conscience."
-
-All the institutions of the State are opposed to the conscience of a
-Christian: the oath of allegiance, taxation, courts of law, armies;
-while the whole authority of government is dependent upon them.
-Revolutionary foes struggle against the government, but Christianity
-enters not into this contest; internally, it destroys the principles
-on which government is based.
-
-With the Russian people, in whose midst, particularly since the
-time of Peter I., the protest of Christianity against the State has
-never ceased; in the midst of this people, where the conditions
-of life are such that whole communes emigrate to Turkey, China,
-and uninhabited portions of the globe, who, so far from needing
-the government, always consider it an unnecessary burden, and
-only endure it as a calamity, whether it be Russian, Chinese, or
-Turkish,--the cases of isolated individuals who, from Christian
-motives, have liberated themselves from the control of government
-have grown more and more frequent in these latter days. Such
-manifestations are particularly dreaded by the government at the
-present time, because the men who protest often belong not to the
-so-called lower, the uneducated classes, but are men of average
-and even superior education, and because these men explain their
-refusals, not by some mystical belief peculiar to the individual,
-as in olden times, nor do they complicate them with superstition
-and fanaticism, like the sects of the Self-burners or Bieguni, but
-assign as the reason for their refusals the simplest, most obvious
-of truths, patent to and admitted by all the world.
-
-Thus men refuse to pay taxes of their own free will, because the
-money is used to promote violence; in other words, to pay the wages
-of the violators in the army, for building prisons and fortresses,
-or for manufacturing cannon,--in all of which, as Christians, they
-consider it wrong and immoral to take a part.
-
-They refuse to take the oath of allegiance, for were they to promise
-to obey the authorities,--that is, men who use violence,--they must
-contradict the sense of the Christian doctrine.
-
-They refuse to swear in court, because an oath is distinctly
-forbidden by the gospel.
-
-They decline police duties, because in that office they would be
-compelled to use violence against their brethren and to distress
-them, and a Christian cannot do this.
-
-They refuse to take part in courts of law, because they look upon
-every tribunal as a vehicle for the law of vengeance, and therefore
-incompatible with the Christian law of forgiveness and love.
-
-They decline to have anything to do with military preparations, or
-to enter the ranks of the army, because they neither can nor will be
-executioners, nor prepare themselves for such an office.
-
-And the reasons alleged for these refusals are of such a nature
-that, however arbitrary the governments may be, they cannot punish
-openly those who refuse.
-
-Were the governments to punish men for such refusals, they would be
-forced to abjure forever both justice and virtue, those principles
-by which, as they assure us, all their authority is supported.
-
-What are governments to do with these men? Of course they have the
-power to execute, to imprison, and to condemn to transportation
-and penal servitude all enemies who attempt to overthrow them by
-violence; they can obtain by bribery half the men they need, and
-have at their command millions of armed soldiers, who are ready to
-put to death all the enemies of authority. But what can be done with
-men who wish neither to destroy nor to establish anything, whose
-sole desire is to avoid in their own private lives any act that
-may be opposed to the Christian law, and who consequently refuse
-to perform duties which are regarded by the government as the most
-natural and obligatory of all?
-
-If they were revolutionists, preaching violence and practising it,
-it would be an easy matter to oppose them. Some might be bribed,
-some deceived, others intimidated, and those who could neither be
-bought, deceived, nor intimidated would be manifestly criminals,
-enemies of society who, as such, could be executed or beaten to
-death; and the people would approve the acts of the government. If
-they were fanatics belonging to some particular sect, one might, in
-view of the superstitions inherent in their doctrine, refute at the
-same time what truth their arguments contained. But what is to be
-done with men who neither preach rebellion nor any special dogmas,
-who wish to live in peace with all mankind, who refuse to take the
-oath of allegiance or to pay taxes, or to take part in tribunals,
-to perform military service, and the various duties of a similar
-nature, on which the whole organization of the State is founded?
-What is to be done with them? They cannot be bribed. The very risk
-they are willing to take shows their integrity. Neither can they be
-deceived when these things are represented as the commands of God,
-because their refusal is based on the indubitable law of God, by
-which the very men who are trying to coerce them to disobey this law
-profess to hold themselves bound. It is vain to hope to intimidate
-them by threats, because the very suffering and privations which
-they endure for righteousness' sake serve but to strengthen their
-devotion to their faith, whose law distinctly commands them first of
-all to obey God, to fear not them that kill the body, but to fear
-those who can kill both body and soul. Neither can they be executed
-or imprisoned for life. Their past lives, their thoughts and
-actions, their friends, speak for them; every one knows them to be
-gentle, kindly, and harmless men, and it is impossible to represent
-them in the light of criminals whose suppression is needed for the
-salvation of society. Moreover, the execution of men acknowledged
-by all to be virtuous would arouse defenders who would endeavor to
-explain the causes for their disobedience. And when all men are
-made to recognize the reasons why these Christians refuse to obey
-the demands of the State, they cannot fail to acknowledge the same
-obligation, and to admit that all men should long since have refused
-obedience.
-
-Confronted with these insubordinations, governments find themselves
-in a desperate plight. They realize that the prophecies of
-Christianity are about to be fulfilled, that it is loosening the
-fetters of them that are in bonds and setting men free; they realize
-that such freedom will inevitably destroy those who have held
-mankind in bondage. Governments realize this; they know that their
-hours are counted, that they are helpless to resist. All that they
-are able to do is to retard the hour of dissolution. And this they
-try to do; but their position is still a desperate one.
-
-It is like the predicament of a conqueror who wishes to preserve the
-town set on fire by the inhabitants. No sooner does he put the fire
-out in one place than two other fires break out; when he separates
-the burning portion from the main body of a large building the
-flames burst out at both extremities. These outbreaks are not, as
-yet, of frequent occurrence, but the spark has been kindled, and the
-fire will burn steadily until all is consumed.
-
-The position of governments in the presence of men who profess
-Christianity is so precarious that very little is needed to shake
-to pieces their power, built up through so many centuries, and
-apparently so solid in structure. And it is now that the sociologist
-comes forward, preaching that it is useless, and even hurtful and
-immoral, for the individual to emancipate himself alone.
-
-Let us suppose that men have been working for a long time to divert
-the course of a river; they have at last succeeded in digging a
-canal, and all that remains now is to make an opening and let the
-water flow through it into the canal; suppose now certain other men
-arrive upon the scene and suggest that, instead of letting the water
-flow into the canal, it would be much better to erect over the river
-some form of machinery, by means of which the water would be poured
-from one side to the other.
-
-But things have gone too far. Governments are aware of their
-weakness and helplessness, and men of the Christian faith are
-awakening from their torpor, beginning already to realize their
-power.
-
-"I am come to send fire on the earth," said Christ.
-
-And this is the fire that begins to burn.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X
-
-USELESSNESS OF VIOLENCE FOR THE DESTRUCTION OF EVIL. THE MORAL
-ADVANCE OF MANKIND IS ACCOMPLISHED, NOT ONLY THROUGH THE KNOWLEDGE
-OF TRUTH, BUT ALSO THROUGH THE ESTABLISHMENT OF PUBLIC OPINION
-
- Christianity destroys the State--Which is more necessary,
- Christianity or the State?--There are men who defend the
- necessity of the State, and others who, on the same grounds,
- deny this necessity--Neither can be proved by abstract
- reasoning--The question decides the character of a man's
- consciousness, which either allows or forbids him to participate
- in the organization of the State--Realization of the uselessness
- and immorality of taking part in the organization of the
- State, which is contradictory to Christian doctrine, decides
- this question for each one, regardless of the destiny of the
- State--Argument of the defenders of the State, as a form of
- social life indispensable for the defense of the good from the
- wicked, until all nations, and all members of each nation,
- shall have become Christians--The more wicked are always those
- in power--History is but a recital of the usurpation of power
- by the bad over the good--The acknowledgment by authority of
- the necessity of struggle with evil by violence is equivalent
- to self-destruction--The annihilation of violence is not
- only possible, but is going on before our eyes--However, it
- is not destroyed by State violence, but through those men
- who, obtaining power by violence, and recognizing its vanity
- and futility, benefit by experience and become incapable of
- using violence--This is the process through which individual
- men, as well as whole nations, have passed--It is in that
- way that Christianity penetrates into the consciousness of
- men, and not only is this accomplished despite the violence
- used by authority, but through its agency, and therefore the
- abolition of authority is not only without danger, but it goes
- on continually as life itself--Objection of the defenders
- of the State system that the diffusion of Christianity is
- improbable--Diffusion of Christian truth interdicting violence
- accomplished not only slowly and gradually, by the internal
- method, by individual recognition of the truth, by prophetic
- intuition, by the realizing of the emptiness of power and
- abandonment of it by individual men, but accomplished also by
- the external method, by which large numbers of men, inferior in
- intellectual development, at once, in view of their confidence
- in the others, adopt the new truth--The diffusion of truth at
- a certain stage creates a public opinion, which compels the
- majority of men who have previously opposed it to recognize
- the new truth at once--Therefore a universal renunciation of
- violence may very soon come to pass; namely, when a Christian
- public opinion shall be established--The conviction of the
- necessity of violence prevents the establishment of Christian
- public opinion--Violence compels men to discredit the moral
- force which can alone exalt them--Neither nations nor individual
- men have been conquered by violence, but by public opinion,
- which no violence can resist--It is possible to conquer savage
- men and nations only by the diffusion of Christian public
- opinion among them, whereas the Christian nations, in order
- to conquer them, do everything in their power to destroy the
- establishment of a Christian public opinion--These unsuccessful
- experiments cannot be cited as a proof of the impossibility of
- conquering men by Christianity--Violence which corrupts public
- opinion only prevents the social organization from becoming
- what it should be, and with the abolition of violence Christian
- public opinion will be established--Whatever may take place
- when violence has been abolished, the unknown future can be no
- worse than the present, and therefore one need not fear it--To
- penetrate to the unknown and move toward it is the essence of
- life.
-
-
-Christianity, faithfully interpreted, saps the foundations of the
-civil law, and this was always understood from the very outset.
-It was for this that Christ was crucified; and until men felt the
-necessity for justifying the establishment of the Christian state,
-they always accepted that interpretation. The cleverly constructed
-theories intended to reconcile the doctrines of Christianity with
-that of the State date back to the time when rulers of nations
-adopted a nominal external Christianity. But in these times it
-is impossible for a sincere and earnest man not to perceive the
-incompatibility of the Christian doctrine of love, meekness of
-spirit, and forgiveness of injuries, with the despotism, the
-violence, and the wars of the State. The profession of true
-Christianity not only forbids the recognition of the State, but
-strikes at its very foundations.
-
-But if it be true that Christianity is incompatible with the State,
-one naturally asks which is the better adapted to promote the
-well-being of mankind, the system prescribed by the State, or the
-precepts of Christianity?
-
-There are those who affirm that the State organization is the more
-indispensable; they declare that its overthrow would check all
-human progress, that no development is possible save through the
-channels of civil government, and that all those evils which we
-find prevailing among nations who live under State laws are not
-the result of the organization, which permits progress and the
-attainment of the highest degree of civilization.
-
-They who hold these views quote, in support of their position,
-certain historical, philosophical, and even religious arguments,
-which seem to them irrefutable. But there are others who entertain
-views diametrically opposed to these. For instance, they say
-that the fact of the world having existed at one time without a
-government, might be taken to prove the State to be only a temporary
-condition; that the time was sure to come when men would require
-a change, which time had now arrived. To support their theory,
-these men in turn adduce historical, philosophical, and religious
-arguments which seem to them irrefutable.
-
-Volumes may be and have been written in defense of the former
-position, and of late years a great deal has been written, and ably
-written too, from the opposite standpoint.
-
-It can neither be proved on the one hand, as the partizans of the
-State claim, that its destruction would be followed by a general
-upheaval, by robberies and murders, and by the nullification of all
-social laws, and the return of man to a condition of barbarism; nor
-on the other, as the enemies of the State affirm, that man has grown
-so virtuous and well disposed that, preferring peace to enmity, he
-will no longer rob and murder his neighbor; that he is quite able,
-without State assistance, to establish a community, and conduct
-his own affairs; and that the State itself, while assuming an air
-of protection, is really exerting a demoralizing influence. It is
-impossible to prove either one or the other by abstract arguments.
-And naturally neither point can be proved by experience, as it is a
-question first of all of getting the requisite experience.
-
-Whether or not the time has arrived for abolishing the State is a
-question which could not be answered were it not that we possess
-other means that will assist us to settle it beyond dispute.
-
-It needs no one to tell the young birds when it is time to burst the
-shell; they know very well when there is no longer room for them
-in the eggs, and begin of their own accord to break the shell and
-leave it behind. So it is with this question of a change in human
-affairs. Has the time come for men to cast aside the customs of the
-State and establish a new order? When a man's inner consciousness
-has so developed that he feels himself hampered by the requirements
-of the State, and can no longer submit to the restraint, realizing
-at the same time that he has ceased to need its protecting care,
-the question whether or no men have matured sufficiently to enable
-them to dispense with the State is disposed of without reference to
-former arguments. A man who has outgrown the State can no more be
-coerced into submission to its laws than can the fledgling be made
-to reenter its shell.
-
-"The State may have been necessary at one time, and for aught that
-I know it may even now serve the purposes you mention," says the
-man who holds the Christian life-conception. "I can only say that
-_I_ have no need of it, nor can _I_ conform to its requirements.
-You must decide for yourself whether it be advantageous or no. I
-shall not attempt to generalize on the subject with the expectation
-of proving my point. I only recognize what I need and what I don't
-need; what I can, and what I cannot do. I know, as far as I am
-myself concerned, that _I_ do not need to separate from the men of
-other nations, and therefore I can neither recognize an exclusive
-affiliation to this or that one, nor acknowledge myself the subject
-of any one government. I need none of the institutions established
-by the State, and therefore I am not willing to surrender the fruits
-of my labor in the form of taxes to support institutions which I
-believe to be not only unnecessary but positively injurious. I know
-that _I_ need neither magistrates, nor tribunals founded on and
-supported by violence, and therefore I can have nothing to do with
-them; I know that _I_ feel no inclination to attack other nations
-and put their citizens to death, neither do I wish to defend myself
-against them by force of arms, and therefore I can take no part
-in wars nor in preparations for wars. Doubtless there are men who
-believe that all these things are an indispensable part of human
-life,--I cannot argue with them,--but I know that for me they have
-no meaning, and that I will have nothing to do with them.
-
-"And this is not a matter of personal selection, but because I must
-obey the commands of Him who has sent me into the world, and has
-given me an unmistakable law by which I am to be guided through
-life."
-
-Whatever arguments may be advanced to prove that harm and probably
-disaster will accrue from abolishing the authority of the State,
-the man who has already outgrown the State ideal cannot possibly
-be bound by it. And whatever arguments may be adduced to prove its
-necessity, he can never return to it. He is like the young bird who
-can never return to its outgrown shell.
-
-"But granting this to be true," say the partizans of the existing
-order, "we cannot dispense with the supremacy of the State until all
-men are Christians, because even among those who claim the title
-there are many who are very far from being Christians--evil-doers,
-who seek their own gratification at the expense of their fellow-men,
-and if the governments were overthrown, so far from improving the
-condition of the people, it would greatly add to their miseries. The
-subversion of the State would be a misfortune, not only where the
-minority are true Christians, but even supposing the whole people to
-be so; while the neighboring nations are still non-Christian, these
-latter would make their lives a martyrdom by rapine and murder and
-all manner of violence. It would serve only to provide the vicious
-and unprincipled with an opportunity to oppress the innocent.
-Therefore the State should not be abolished until all the wicked
-have ceased from troubling, which will not happen just at present.
-Hence, however much certain individual Christians may wish to escape
-from the authority of the State, the greater good of the greater
-number demands its preservation." So say the defenders of the State
-principle. "If it were not," they say, "for State authority there
-would be no protection against the malice and injustice of the
-oppressor; that authority alone makes it possible to restrain the
-wicked."
-
-But in uttering these sentiments the partizans of the existing order
-take it for granted that they have proved the truth of what they
-assert. When they declare that the evil-doers would ride roughshod
-over the defenseless and the innocent were it not for the authority
-of the State, they imply that the governing power is vested at
-the present time in a body of virtuous men, who control all the
-wrong-doers. But this is a proposition which must be proved. It
-could only be a correct statement if we happened to resemble the
-inhabitants of China, where it is popularly believed, although
-the belief is not justified by fact, that the good are always in
-authority, because should it become known that the rulers are
-no better than those over whom they rule, it is the duty of the
-citizens to overthrow the government. But although this is supposed
-to be one of the customs of China, it is not, nor would it be
-possible for it to be so, since, in order to overthrow a criminal
-government, one needs the power as well as the right. Even in China
-this is a mere supposition, and in our own Christian land we have
-never so much as dreamed of it. As far as we are concerned, there
-is no reason to believe that power is in the hands of the virtuous
-and high-minded, rather than in those of men who took it by violence
-and have held it for themselves and their descendants. For surely
-it would be impossible for a high-minded man to usurp authority by
-violence and to continue to hold it.
-
-In order to gain possession of power, and to retain it, one
-must have a love for it, and the love of power is incompatible
-with goodness; it accords with the opposite qualities of pride,
-duplicity, and cruelty.
-
-Both the origin and the maintenance of power depend upon the
-exaltation of the individual, and the degradation of the people by
-means of hypocrisy and fraud, by prisons, fortresses, and murders.
-"If State authority were to be abolished, then would the more wicked
-people dominate over the less wicked," say the upholders of State
-organization. But if the Egyptians conquered the Hebrews, and the
-Persians the Egyptians, and the Macedonians the Persians, and the
-Romans the Greeks, and the barbarians the Romans, is it really
-possible that the conquerors are always better than the conquered?
-And so with political changes in the State; is the power always
-transferred to the better men? When Louis XVI. was deposed, and
-control passed into the hands of Robespierre, and when, later, he
-was in turn succeeded by Napoleon, was it the better or the worse
-man who held the power? Again, were they of Versailles or the
-communists the better men? Charles the First or Cromwell? When Peter
-III. reigned, or, after his murder, when Catharine ruled over one
-part of Russia, and Pugatchov over the other--who then was good and
-who was wicked?
-
-All those in authority affirm that their office is required in
-order that the unprincipled may be hindered from oppressing the
-innocent, implying thereby that they themselves, being virtuous,
-are protecting other virtuous men from the malice of the evil-doer.
-To possess power and to do violence are synonymous terms; to do
-violence means doing something to which the victim of violence
-objects, and which the aggressor would resent were it directed
-against himself. Therefore the possession of power really means
-doing unto others what we should not like if it were done to
-ourselves,--that is, harm.
-
-Obedience signifies that a man holds patience to be better than
-violence, and to choose patience rather than violence means to be
-good, or, at least, not so wicked as those who do unto others what
-they would not wish to have done to themselves.
-
-Therefore all the probabilities are that those in authority were
-in past times, as they are in present, worse men than those they
-ruled over. Doubtless there are wicked men among those who submit
-to authority, but it is impossible that the better men should rule
-over the worse.
-
-This might be thought in pagan times, when the definition of
-goodness was inaccurate; but with the clear and exact conception of
-the qualities of good and evil presented by Christianity before us
-we cannot imagine it. If in the pagan world they who were more or
-less good, and they who were more or less bad, might not be easily
-distinguished, the characteristics of goodness and wickedness have
-been so clearly defined by the Christian conception that it is
-impossible to mistake them. According to the doctrine of Christ, the
-good are those who submit and are long-suffering, who do not resist
-evil by violence, who forgive injuries, and love their enemies; the
-wicked are the vainglorious, who tyrannize, who are arrogant and
-violent with others. Therefore, if we are guided by the doctrine of
-Christ, we shall have no difficulty in deciding where to seek the
-good and the wicked among rulers and subjects. It is even absurd to
-speak of Christians as sovereigns or rulers.
-
-The non-Christians--that is, those to whom life is but a matter of
-temporal welfare--must always rule over the Christians, for whom
-life means self-denial and disregard of temporal things.
-
-And thus it has always been, and it has been manifested more and
-more plainly as the Christian doctrine has become more clearly
-defined and widespread.
-
-The farther true Christianity extended, the firmer the hold it
-gained on the consciousness of men, the less possible it became
-for Christians to belong to the dominant class, and the easier for
-non-Christians to gain the ascendancy.
-
-"To abolish the supremacy of the State before all men have become
-true Christians would only afford the wicked a chance to tyrannize
-over the good and maltreat them with impunity," say the upholders of
-the existing order.
-
-It has always been the same from the beginning of the world until
-this present time, and it always will be. _The wicked always
-rule over the good and do violence to them_. Cain did violence
-to Abel, the astute Jacob betrayed the trusting Esau, and was
-himself deceived by Laban; Caiaphas and Pilate sat in judgment on
-Christ; the Roman emperors ruled over Seneca, Epictetus, and other
-high-minded Romans of those times; Ivan IV. with his Opritchniks,
-the tipsy syphilitic Peter with his clowns, the prostitute Catharine
-with her lovers, ruled over the industrious, God-fearing Russian
-people of those times, and trampled upon them. William rules the
-Germans, Stambulov the Bulgarians, and the Russian officials rule
-over the Russian people; the Germans ruled over the Italians, and
-now they rule over the Hungarians and the Slavs. The Turks ruled
-over the Greeks and now rule over the Slavs, the English over the
-Hindoos, the Mongolians over the Chinese.
-
-So we see that whether the tyranny of the State is or is not to be
-abolished, the position of the innocent, who are oppressed by the
-tyrants, will not be materially affected thereby.
-
-Men are not to be frightened by being told that the wicked will
-oppress the good, because that is the natural course, and will never
-change.
-
-The whole of pagan history is a mere narrative of events wherein
-the wicked have got the upper hand, and, once in power, by craft
-and cruelty have kept their hold upon men, announcing themselves
-meanwhile as the guardians of justice and the defenders of the
-innocent against the oppressor. All revolutions are but the result
-of the appropriation of power by the wicked and their rule over the
-good. When the rulers say that if their power were to be destroyed
-the evil-doers would tyrannize over the innocent, what they really
-mean is that the tyrants in power are reluctant to yield to those
-other tyrants who would fain wrest from them their authority. When
-they protest that this authority of theirs, which is actually
-violence, is necessary to defend the people against the possible
-tyranny of others,[19] they are simply denouncing themselves. The
-reason why violence is dangerous is that, whenever it is employed,
-all the arguments which the perpetrators advanced in their own
-defense may be used against them with even greater force. They talk
-of the violence done in the past, and more frequently of future and
-imaginary violence, while they themselves are the real offenders.
-"You say that men committed robbery and murder in former times, and
-profess anxiety lest all men be robbed or murdered unless protected
-by your authority. This may or may not be true, but the fact that
-you allow thousands of men to perish in prisons by enforced labor,
-in fortresses, and in exile, that your military requisitions ruin
-millions of families and imperil, morally and physically, millions
-of men, this is not a supposititious but an actual violence, which,
-according to your own reasoning, should be resisted by violence.
-And therefore, by your own admission, the wicked ones, against whom
-one should use violence, are yourselves." Thus should the oppressed
-reply to their oppressors. And such are the language, the thoughts,
-and the actions of non-Christians. Wherever the oppressed are more
-wicked than the oppressor, they attack and overthrow them whenever
-they are able; or else--and this is more frequently the case--they
-enter the ranks of the oppressors and take part in their tyranny.
-
- [19] Such declarations on the part of Russian authorities, who are
- noted for their oppression of foreign nationalities,--the Poles, the
- Germans of the Baltic provinces, and the Jews,--strike one as both
- amusing and artless. The Russian government, which has oppressed
- its own subjects for centuries, and which has never protected the
- Malo-Russians in Poland, the Latishi in the Baltic provinces,
- nor the Russian peasants, of whom all sorts of people have taken
- advantage for hundreds of years, suddenly becomes a champion of
- the oppressed, of the very same people whom it still continues to
- oppress.
-
-Thus the dangers of which the defenders of State rights make a
-bugbear--that if authority were overthrown the wicked would prevail
-over the good--potentially exist at all times. The destruction of
-State violence, in fact, never can, for this very reason, lead to
-any real increase of violence on the part of the wicked over the
-good.
-
-If State violence disappeared, it is not unlikely that other acts
-of violence would be committed; but the sum of violence can never be
-increased simply because the power passes from the hands of one into
-those of another.
-
-"State violence can never be abolished until all the wicked
-disappear," say the advocates of the existing order, by which
-they imply that there must always be violence, because there will
-always be wicked people. This could only prove true, supposing
-the oppressors to be really beneficent, and supposing the true
-deliverance of mankind from evil must be accomplished by violence.
-Then, of course, violence could never cease. But as, on the
-contrary, violence never really overcomes evil, and since there is
-another way altogether to overcome it, the assertion that violence
-will never cease is untrue. Violence is diminishing, and clearly
-tending to disappear; though not, as is claimed by the defenders of
-the existing order, in consequence of the amelioration of those who
-live under an oppressive government (their condition really gets
-worse), but because the consciousness of mankind is becoming more
-clear. Hence even the wicked men who are in power are growing less
-and less wicked, and will at last become so good that they will be
-incapable of committing deeds of violence.
-
-The reason why humanity marches forward is not because the inferior
-men, having gained possession of power, reform their subjects
-by arbitrary methods, as is claimed both by Conservatives and
-Revolutionists, but is due above all to the fact that mankind in
-general is steadily, and with an ever increasing appreciation,
-adopting the Christian life-conception. There is a phenomenon
-observable in human life in a manner analogous to that of boiling.
-Those who profess the social life-conception are always ambitious
-to rule, and struggle to attain power. In this struggle the most
-gross and cruel, the least Christian elements of society, bubble up,
-as it were, and rise, by reason of their violence, into the ruling
-or upper classes of society. But then is fulfilled what Christ
-prophesied: "Woe unto you that are rich! Woe unto you that are full!
-Woe unto you, when all men shall speak well of you!" (Luke vi.
-24-26). The men who have attained power, and glory, and riches, and
-who have realized all their cherished aims, live to discover that
-all is vanity, and gladly return to their former estate. Charles
-V., Ivan the Terrible, Alexander I., having realized the evils of
-power and its futility, renounced it because they recognized it as
-a calamity, having lost all pleasure in the deeds of violence which
-they formerly enjoyed.
-
-But it is not alone kings like Charles V. and Alexander I. who
-arrive at this disgust of power, but every man who has attained the
-object of his ambition. Not only the statesman, the general, the
-millionaire, the merchant, but every official who has gained the
-position for which he has longed this half score of years, every
-well-to-do peasant who has saved one or two hundred roubles, finds
-at last the same disillusion.
-
-Not only individuals, but entire nations, mankind as a whole, have
-passed through this experience.
-
-The attractions of power and all it brings--riches, honors,
-luxury--seem to men really worth struggling for only until they are
-won; for no sooner does a man hold them within his grasp than they
-manifest their own emptiness and gradually lose their charm, like
-clouds, lovely and picturesque in outline seen from afar, but no
-sooner is one enveloped in them than all their beauty vanishes.
-
-Men who have obtained riches and power, those who have struggled for
-them, but more particularly those who have inherited them, cease to
-be greedy for power or cruel in its acquisition.
-
-Having learned by experience, sometimes in one generation, sometimes
-in several, how utterly worthless are the fruits of violence, men
-abandon those vices acquired by the passion for riches and power,
-and growing more humane, they lose their positions, being crowded
-out by others who are less Christian and more wicked; whereupon they
-fall back into a stratum, which, though lower in the social scale,
-is higher in that of morality, thus increasing the mean level of
-Christian consciousness. But straightway, the worse, the rougher,
-and less Christian elements rise to the surface, and being subject
-to the same experience as their predecessors, after one or two
-generations these men, too, recognize the hollowness of violent
-ambitions, and, being penetrated with the spirit of Christianity,
-fall back into the ranks of the oppressed. These are in turn
-replaced by new oppressors, less despotic than the former, but
-rougher than those whom they oppress. So that although the authority
-is to all outward seeming unchanged, yet the number of those who
-have been driven by the exigencies of life to adopt the Christian
-life-conception increases with every change of rulers. They may be
-more harsh, more cruel, and less Christian than their subjects;
-but always men less and less violent replace their predecessors in
-authority.
-
-Violence chooses its instruments from among the worst elements
-of society; men who gradually become leavened, and, softened and
-changed for the better, are returned into society.
-
-Such is the process by means of which Christianity takes fuller
-possession of men day by day. Christianity enters into the
-consciousness of men in spite of the violence of power, and even
-owing to that violence.
-
-The argument of the defenders of the State, that if power were
-abolished the wicked would tyrannize over the good, not only fails
-to prove that the domination of the wicked is a new thing to be
-dreaded,--as it exists already,--but proves, on the contrary, that
-the tyranny of the State, which allows the wicked to govern the
-good, is itself the real evil which we ought to eradicate, and which
-is constantly decreasing by the very nature of things.
-
-"But if State violence is not to cease until the rulers have become
-so far Christianized that they will renounce it of their own accord
-and no others will be found to take their places,--if these things
-are coming to pass," say the defenders of the existing order, "when
-is it to happen? If 1800 years have passed, and still so many long
-to rule, it is wholly improbable that we shall soon behold this
-change, if it ever takes place at all.
-
-"Even though there may be at present, as there always have been,
-certain individuals who would not rule if they could, who do not
-choose to benefit themselves in that way, still the number of those
-who do prefer to rule rather than to be ruled is so great that it is
-difficult to imagine a time when the number will be exhausted.
-
-"In order to accomplish the conversion of all men, to induce each
-one to exchange the pagan for the Christian life-conception,
-voluntarily resigning riches and power, there being none left to
-profit by these, it would be necessary that not only all the rude,
-half-barbarous people, unfitted either to accept Christianity or
-follow its precepts, who are always to be found in every Christian
-community, should become Christians, but that all savage and
-non-Christian nations, which are still numerous, should also become
-Christian.
-
-"Therefore were one to admit that the Christianizing process may
-at some future time embrace all humanity, we must still take into
-consideration the degree of progress that has been made in 1800
-years, and realize that this can only happen after many centuries.
-Hence we need not for the present trouble ourselves about the
-overthrow of authority; all we have to do is to look to it that it
-is in the best hands."
-
-Thus reply the partizans of the existing system. And this reasoning
-would be perfectly consistent, provided that the transition of men
-from one life-conception to another were only to be effected by the
-process of individual conversion; that is to say, that each man,
-through his personal experience, should realize the vanity of power,
-and apprehend Christian truth. This process is constantly going on,
-and in that way, one by one, men are converted to Christianity.
-
-But men do not become converted to Christianity merely in this way;
-there is an exterior influence brought to bear which accelerates
-the process. The progression of mankind from one system of life
-to another is accomplished not only gradually, as the sand glides
-through the hour-glass, grain by grain, until all has run out, but
-rather as water which enters an immersed vessel, at first slowly,
-at one side, then, borne down by its weight, suddenly plunges, and
-at once fills completely.
-
-And this is what happens in human communities during a change in
-their life-conception, which is equivalent to the change from one
-organization to another. It is only at first that men by degrees,
-one by one, accept the new truth and obey its dictates; but after
-it has been to a certain extent disseminated, it is accepted, not
-through intuition, and not by degrees, but generally and at once,
-and almost involuntarily.
-
-And therefore the argument of the advocates of the present system,
-that but a minority have embraced Christianity during the last
-1800 years, and that another 1800 years must pass away before the
-rest of mankind will accept it, is erroneous. For one must take
-into consideration another mode, in addition to the intuitive of
-assimilating new truth, and of making the transition from one mode
-of life to another. This other mode is this: men assimilate a truth
-not alone because they may have come to realize it through prophetic
-insight or through individual experience, but the truth having been
-spread abroad, those who dwell on a lower plane of intelligence
-accept it at once, because of their confidence in those who have
-received it and incorporated it in their lives.
-
-Every new truth that changes the manner of life and causes humanity
-to move onward is at first accepted by a very limited number, who
-grasp it by knowledge of it. The rest of mankind, accepting on faith
-the former truth upon which the existing system has been founded, is
-always opposed to the spread of the new truth.
-
-But as, in the first place, mankind is not stationary, but is
-ever progressing, growing more and more familiar with truth and
-approaching nearer to it in everyday life: and secondly, as all
-men progress according to their opportunities, age, education,
-nationality, beginning with those who are more, and ending with
-those who are less, capable of receiving new truth--the men nearest
-those who have perceived the truth intuitively pass, one by one,
-and with gradually diminishing intervals, over to the side of the
-new truth. So, as the number of men who acknowledge it increases,
-the truth itself becomes more clearly manifested. The feeling of
-confidence in the new truth increases in proportion to the numbers
-who have accepted it. For, owing to the growing intelligibility of
-the truth itself, it becomes easier for men to grasp it, especially
-for those lower intellectually, until finally the greater number
-readily adopt it, and help to found a new _regime_.
-
-The men who go over to the new truth, once it has gained a certain
-hold, go over _en masse_, of one accord, much as ballast is rapidly
-put into a ship to maintain its equilibrium. If not ballasted,
-the vessel would not be sufficiently immersed, and would change
-its position every moment. This ballast, which at first may seem
-superfluous and a hindrance to the progress of the ship, is
-indispensable to its equipoise and motion.
-
-Thus it is with the masses when, under the influence of some new
-idea that has won social approval, they abandon one system to adopt
-another, not singly, but in a body. It is the inertia of this mass
-which impedes the rapid and frequent transition from one system of
-life, not ratified by wisdom, to another; and which for a long time
-arrests the progress of every truth destined to become a part of
-human consciousness.
-
-It is erroneous, then, to argue that because only a small percentage
-of the human race has in these eighteen centuries adopted the
-Christian doctrine, that many, many times eighteen centuries must
-elapse before the whole world will accept it,--a period of time so
-remote that we who are now living can have no interest in it. It is
-unfair, because those men who stand on a lower plane of development,
-whom the partizans of the existing order represent as hindrances to
-the realization of the Christian system of life, are those men who
-always go over in a body to a truth accepted by those above them.
-
-And therefore that change in the life of mankind, when the powerful
-will give up their power without finding any to assume it in their
-stead, will come to pass when the Christian life-conception,
-rendered familiar, conquers, not merely men one by one, but masses
-at a time.
-
-"But even if it were true," the advocates of the existing order
-may say, "that public opinion has the power to convert the inert
-non-Christian mass of men, as well as the corrupt and gross who are
-to be found in every Christian community, how shall we know that
-a Christian mode of life is born, and that State violence will be
-rendered useless?
-
-"After renouncing the despotism by which the existing order has been
-maintained, in order to trust to the vague and indefinite force of
-public opinion, we risk permitting those savages, those existing
-among us, as well as those outside, to commit robbery, murder, and
-other outrages upon Christians.
-
-"If even with the help of authority we have a hard struggle against
-the anti-Christian elements ever ready to overpower us, and destroy
-all the progress made by civilization, how then could public
-opinion prove an efficient substitute for the use of force, and
-avail for our protection? To rely upon public opinion alone would
-be as foolhardy as to let loose all the wild beasts of a menagerie,
-because they seem inoffensive when in their cages and held in awe by
-red-hot irons.
-
-"Those men entrusted with authority, or born to rule over others by
-the divine will of God, have no right to imperil all the results of
-civilization, simply to make an experiment, and learn whether public
-opinion can or cannot be substituted for the safeguard of authority."
-
-Alphonse Karr, a French writer, forgotten to-day, once said, in
-trying to prove the impossibility of abolishing the death penalty:
-"Que Messieurs les assassins commencent par nous donner l'exemple."
-And I have often heard this witticism quoted by persons who really
-believed they were using a convincing and intellectual argument
-against the suppression of the penalty of death. Nevertheless, there
-could be no better argument against the violence of government.
-
-"Let the assassins begin by showing us an example," say the
-defenders of government authority. The assassins say the same, but
-with more justice. They say: "Let those who have set themselves up
-as teachers and guides show us an example by the suppression of
-legal assassination, and we will imitate it." And this they say, not
-by way of a jest, but in all seriousness, for such is in reality the
-situation.
-
-"We cannot cease to use violence while we are surrounded by those
-who commit violence."
-
-There is no more insuperable barrier at the present time to the
-progress of humanity, and to the establishment of a system that
-shall be in harmony with its present conception of life, than this
-erroneous argument.
-
-Those holding positions of authority are fully convinced that men
-are to be influenced and controlled by force alone, and therefore to
-preserve the existing system they do not hesitate to employ it. And
-yet this very system is supported, not by violence, but by public
-opinion, the action of which is compromised by violence. The action
-of violence actually weakens and destroys that which it wishes to
-support.
-
-At best, violence, if not employed as a vehicle for the ambition of
-those in high places, condemns in the inflexible form a law which
-public opinion has most probably long ago repudiated and condemned;
-but there is this difference, that while public opinion rejects
-and condemns all acts that are opposed to the moral law, the law
-supported by force repudiates and condemns only a certain limited
-number of acts, seeming thus to justify all acts of a like order
-which have not been included in its formula.
-
-From the time of Moses public opinion has regarded covetousness,
-lust, and cruelty as crimes, and condemned them as such. It condemns
-and repudiates every form that covetousness may assume, not only
-the acquisition of another man's property by violence, fraud, or
-cunning, but the cruel abuse of wealth as well. It condemns all
-kinds of lust, let it be impudicity with a mistress, a slave, a
-divorced wife, or with one's wife; it condemns all cruelty,--blows,
-bad usage, murder,--all cruelty, not only toward human beings, but
-toward animals. Whereas, the law, based upon violence, attacks only
-certain forms of covetousness, such as theft and fraud, and certain
-forms of lust and cruelty, such as conjugal infidelity, assault,
-and murder; and thus it seems to condone those manifestations of
-covetousness, lust, and cruelty which do not fall within its narrow
-limits.
-
-But violence not only demoralizes public opinion, it excites in the
-minds of men a pernicious conviction that they move onward, not
-through the impulsion of a spiritual power, which would help them
-to comprehend and realize the truth by bringing them nearer to that
-moral force which is the source of every progressive movement of
-mankind,--but, by means of violence,--by the very factor that not
-only impedes our progress toward truth, but withdraws us from it.
-This is a fatal error, inasmuch as it inspires in man a contempt for
-the fundamental principle of his life,--spiritual activity,--and
-leads him to transfer all his strength and energy to the practice of
-external violence.
-
-It is as though men would try to put a locomotive in motion by
-turning its wheels with their hands, not knowing that the expansion
-of steam was the real motive-power, and that the action of the
-wheels was but the effect, and not the cause. If by their hands
-and their levers they move the wheels, it is but the semblance of
-motion, and, if anything, injures the wheels and makes them useless.
-
-The same mistake is made by those who expect to move the world by
-violence.
-
-Men affirm that the Christian life cannot be established save by
-violence, because there are still uncivilized nations outside of the
-Christian world, in Africa and Asia (some regard even the Chinese
-as a menace of our civilization), and because, according to the new
-theory of heredity, there exist in society congenital criminals,
-savage and irredeemably vicious.
-
-But the savages whom we find in our own community, as well as
-those beyond its pale, with whom we threaten ourselves and others,
-have never yielded to violence, and are not yielding to it now.
-One people never conquered another by violence alone. If the
-victors stood on a lower plane of civilization than the conquered,
-they always adopted the habits and customs of the latter, never
-attempting to force their own methods of life upon them. It is by
-the influence of public opinion, not by violence, that nations are
-reduced to submission.
-
-When a people have accepted a new religion, have become Christians,
-or turned Mohammedans, it has come to pass, not because it was
-made obligatory by those in power (violence often produced quite
-the opposite result), but because they were influenced by public
-opinion. Nations constrained by violence to accept the religion of
-the conqueror have never really done so.
-
-The same may be said in regard to the savage elements found in
-all communities: neither severity nor clemency in the matter of
-punishments, nor modifications in the prison system, nor augmenting
-of the police force, have either diminished or increased the
-aggregate of crimes, which will only decrease through an evolution
-in our manner of life. No severities have ever succeeded in
-suppressing the vendetta, or the custom of dueling in certain
-countries. However many of his fellows may be put to death for
-thieving, the Tcherkess continues to steal out of vainglory. No girl
-will marry a Tcherkess who has not proved his daring by stealing a
-horse, or at least a sheep. When men no longer fight duels, and the
-Tcherkess cease to steal, it will not be from fear of punishment
-(the danger of capital punishment adds to the prestige of daring),
-but because public manners will have undergone a change. The same
-may be said of all other crimes. Violence can never suppress that
-which is countenanced by general custom. If public opinion would but
-frown upon violence, it would destroy all its power.
-
-What would happen if violence were not employed against hostile
-nations and the criminal element in society we do not know. But
-that the use of violence subdues neither we do know through long
-experience.
-
-And how can we expect to subdue by violence nations whose education,
-traditions, and even religious training all tend to glorify
-resistence to the conqueror, and love of liberty as the loftiest
-of virtues? And how is it possible to extirpate crime by violence
-in the midst of communities where the same act, regarded by the
-government as criminal, is transformed into an heroic exploit by
-public opinion?
-
-Nations and races may be destroyed by violence--it has been done.
-They cannot be subdued.
-
-The power transcending all others which has influenced individuals
-and nations since time began, that power which is the convergence
-of the invisible, intangible, spiritual forces of all humanity, is
-public opinion.
-
-Violence serves but to enervate this influence, disintegrating it,
-and substituting for it one not only useless, but pernicious to the
-welfare of humanity.
-
-In order to win over all those outside the Christian fold, all the
-Zulus, the Manchurians, the Chinese, whom many consider uncivilized,
-and the uncivilized among ourselves, there is _only one way_. This
-is by the diffusion of a Christian mode of thought, which is only to
-be accomplished by a Christian life, Christian deeds, a Christian
-example. But instead of employing this _one way_ of winning those
-who have remained outside the fold of Christianity, men of our epoch
-have done just the opposite.
-
-In order to convert uncivilized nations who do us no harm, whom we
-have no motive for oppressing, we ought, above all, to leave them
-in peace, and act upon them only by our showing them an example of
-the Christian virtues of patience, meekness, temperance, purity, and
-brotherly love. Instead of this we begin by seizing their territory,
-and establishing among them new marts for our commerce, with the
-sole view of furthering our own interests--we, in fact, rob them;
-we sell them wine, tobacco, and opium, and thereby demoralize them;
-we establish our own customs among them, we teach them violence and
-all its lessons; we teach them the animal law of strife, that lowest
-depth of human degradation, and do all that we can to conceal the
-Christian virtues we possess. Then, having sent them a score of
-missionaries, who gabble an absurd clerical jargon, we quote the
-results of our attempt to convert the heathen as an indubitable
-proof that the truths of Christianity are not adaptable to everyday
-life.
-
-And as for those whom we call criminals, who live in our midst,
-all that has just been said applies equally to them. There is
-only _one way_ to convert them, and that is by means of a public
-opinion founded on true Christianity, accompanied by the example of
-a sincere Christian life. And by way of preaching this Christian
-gospel and confirming it by Christian example, we imprison, we
-execute, guillotine, hang; we encourage the masses in idolatrous
-religions calculated to stultify them; the government authorizes the
-sale of brain-destroying poisons--wine, tobacco, opium; prostitution
-is legalized; we bestow land upon those who need it not; surrounded
-by misery, we display in our entertainments an unbridled
-extravagance; we render impossible in such ways any semblance of a
-Christian life, and do our best to destroy Christian ideas already
-established; and then, after doing all we can to demoralize men, we
-take and confine them like wild beasts in places from which they
-cannot escape, and where they will become more brutal than ever;
-or we murder the men we have demoralized, and then use them as an
-example to illustrate and prove our argument that people are only to
-be controlled by violence.
-
-Even so does the ignorant physician act, who, having placed his
-patient in the most unsanitary conditions, or having administered
-to him poisonous drugs, afterward contends that his patient has
-succumbed to the disease, when had he been left to himself he would
-have recovered long ago.
-
-Violence, which men regard as an instrument for the support of
-Christian life, on the contrary, prevents the social system from
-reaching its full and perfect development. The social system is such
-as it is, not because of violence, but in spite of it.
-
-Therefore the defenders of the existing social system are
-self-deceived when they say that, since violence barely holds the
-evil and un-Christian elements of society in awe, its subversion,
-and the substitution of the moral influence of public opinion, would
-leave us helpless in face of them. They are wrong, because violence
-does not protect mankind; but it deprives men of the only possible
-chance of an effectual defense by the establishment and propagation
-of the Christian principle of life.
-
-"But how can one discard the visible and tangible protection of the
-policeman with his baton, and trust to invisible, intangible public
-opinion? And, moreover, is not its very existence problematical?
-We are all familiar with the actual state of things; whether it be
-good or bad we know its faults, and are accustomed to them; we know
-how to conduct ourselves, how to act in the present conditions; but
-what will happen when we renounce the present organization, and
-confide ourselves to something invisible, intangible, and utterly
-unfamiliar?"
-
-Men dread the uncertainty into which they would plunge if they
-were to renounce the familiar order of things. Certainly were our
-situation an assured and stable one, it would be well to dread
-the uncertainties of change. But so far from enjoying an assured
-position, we know that we are on the verge of a catastrophe.
-
-If we are to give way to fear, then let it be before something that
-is really fearful, and not before something that we imagine may be
-so.
-
-In fearing to make an effort to escape from conditions that are
-fatal to us, only because the future is obscure and unknown, we are
-like the passengers of a sinking ship who crowd into the cabin and
-refuse to leave it, because they have not the courage to enter the
-boat that would carry them to the shore; or like sheep who, in fear
-of the fire that has broken out in the farmyard, huddle together in
-a corner and will not go out through the open gate.
-
-How can we, who stand on the threshold of a shocking and devastating
-social war, before which, as those who are preparing for it tell
-us, the horrors of 1793 will pale, talk seriously about the danger
-threatened by the natives of Dahomey, the Zulus, and others who live
-far away, and who have no intention of attacking us; or about the
-few thousands of malefactors, thieves, and murderers--men whom we
-have helped to demoralize, and whose numbers are not decreased by
-all our courts, prisons, and executions?
-
-Moreover, this anxiety lest the visible protection of the police be
-overthrown, is chiefly confined to the inhabitants of cities--that
-is, to those who live under abnormal and artificial conditions.
-Those who live normally in the midst of nature, dealing with its
-forces, require no such protection; they realize how little avails
-violence to protect us from the real danger that surrounds us. There
-is something morbid in this fear, which arises chiefly from the
-false conditions in which most of us have grown up and continue to
-live.
-
-A doctor to the insane related how, one day in summer, when he was
-about to leave the asylum, the patients accompanied him as far as
-the gate that led into the street.
-
-"Come with me into town!" he proposed to them.
-
-The patients agreed, and a little band followed him. But the farther
-they went through the streets where they met their sane fellow-men
-moving freely to and fro, the more timid they grew, and pressed more
-closely around the doctor. At last they begged to be taken back to
-the asylum, to their old but accustomed mode of insane life, to
-their keepers and their rough ways, to strait jackets and solitary
-confinement.
-
-And thus it is with those whom Christianity is waiting to set
-free, to whom it offers the untrammeled rational life of the
-future, the coming century; they huddle together and cling to their
-insane customs, to their factories, courts, and prisons, their
-executioners, and their warfare.
-
-They ask: "What security will there be for us when the existing
-order has been swept away? What kind of laws are to take the place
-of those under which we are now living? Not until we know exactly
-how our life is to be ordered will we take a single step toward
-making a change." It is as if a discoverer were to insist upon
-a detailed description of the region he is about to explore. If
-the individual man, while passing from one period of his life to
-another, could read the future and know just what his whole life
-were to be, he would have no reason for living. And so it is with
-the career of humanity. If, upon entering a new period, a program
-detailing the incidents of its future existence were possible,
-humanity would stagnate.
-
-We cannot know the conditions of the new order of things, because
-we have to work them out for ourselves. The meaning of life is to
-search out that which is hidden, and then to conform our activity to
-our new knowledge. This is the life of the individual as it is the
-life of humanity.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI
-
-CHRISTIAN PUBLIC OPINION ALREADY ARISES IN OUR SOCIETY, AND WILL
-INEVITABLY DESTROY THE SYSTEM OF VIOLENCE OF OUR LIFE. WHEN THIS
-WILL COME ABOUT
-
- The condition and organization of our society is shocking; it
- is upheld by public opinion, but can be abolished by it--Men's
- views in regard to violence have already changed; the number of
- men ready to serve the governments decreases, and functionaries
- of government themselves begin to be ashamed of their position,
- to the point of often not fulfilling their duties--These facts,
- signs of the birth of a public opinion, which, in becoming
- more and more general, will lead finally to the impossibility
- of finding men willing to serve governments--It becomes more
- and more clear that such positions are no longer needed--Men
- begin to realize the uselessness of all the institutions of
- violence; and if this is realized by a few men, it will later
- be understood by all--The time when the deliverance will be
- accomplished is unknown, but it depends on men themselves; it
- depends on how much each man is willing to live by the light
- that is within him.
-
-
-The position of the Christian nations, with their prisons, their
-gallows, their factories, their accumulations of capital, taxes,
-churches, taverns, and public brothels, their increasing armaments,
-and their millions of besotted men, ready, like dogs, to spring
-at a word from the master, would be shocking indeed if it were the
-result of violence; but such a state of things is, before all, the
-result of public opinion; and what has been established by public
-opinion not only may be, but will be, overthrown by it.
-
-Millions and millions of money, tens of millions of disciplined
-soldiers, marvelous weapons of destruction, an infinitely perfected
-organization, legions of men charged to delude and hypnotize the
-people,--this is all under the control of men who believe that this
-organization is advantageous for them, who know that without it they
-would disappear, and who therefore devote all their energy to its
-maintenance. What an indomitable array of power it seems! And yet
-we have but to realize whither we are fatally tending, for men to
-become as much ashamed of acts of violence, and to profit by them,
-as they are ashamed now of dishonesty, theft, beggary, cowardice;
-and the whole complicated and apparently omnipotent system will die
-at once without any struggle. To accomplish this transformation it
-is not necessary that any new ideas should find their way into the
-human consciousness, but only that the mist which now veils the true
-significance of violence should lift, in order that the growing
-Christian public opinion and methods may conquer the methods of the
-pagan world. And this is gradually coming to pass. We do not observe
-it, as we do not observe the movement of things when we are turning,
-and everything around us is turning as well.
-
-It is true that the social organization seems for the most part as
-much under the influence of violence as it seemed a thousand years
-ago, and in respect of armaments and war seems even more; but the
-Christian view of life is already having its effect. The withered
-tree, to all appearance, stands as firmly as ever; it seems even
-firmer, because it has grown harder, but it is already rotten at the
-heart and preparing to fall. It is the same with the present mode
-of life based upon violence. The outward position of man appears
-the same. There are the same oppressors, the same oppressed, but
-the feeling of both classes in regard to their respective positions
-has undergone a change. The oppressors, that is, those who take
-part in the government, and those who are benefited by oppression,
-the wealthy classes, do not constitute, as formerly, the _elite_
-of society, nor does their condition suggest that ideal of human
-prosperity and greatness to which formerly all the oppressed
-aspired. Now, it often happens that the oppressors renounce of their
-own accord the advantages of their position, choosing the position
-of the oppressed, and endeavor, by the simplicity of their mode of
-life, to resemble them.
-
-Not to speak of those offices and positions generally considered
-contemptible, such as that of the spy, the detective, the usurer,
-or the keeper of a tavern, a great many of the positions held by
-the oppressors, and formerly considered honorable, such as those of
-police officers, courtiers, judges, administrative functionaries,
-ecclesiastical or military, masters on a large scale, and bankers,
-are not only considered little enviable, but are already avoided
-by estimable men. Already there are men who choose to renounce
-such once envied positions, preferring others which, although less
-advantageous, are not associated with violence.
-
-It is not merely such as these who renounce their privileges; men
-influenced, not by religious motives, as was the case in former
-ages, but by growing public opinion, refuse to accept fortunes
-fallen to them by inheritance, because they believe that a man ought
-to possess only the fruits of his own labor.
-
-High-minded youths, not as yet depraved by life, when about to
-choose a career, prefer the professions of doctors, engineers,
-teachers, artists, writers, or even of farmers, who live by their
-daily toil, to the positions of judges, administrators, priests,
-soldiers in the pay of government; they decline even the position of
-living on their income.
-
-Most of the monuments at the present day are no longer erected in
-honor of statesmen or generals, still less of men of wealth, but to
-scientists, artists, and inventors, to men who not only had nothing
-in common with government or authority, but who frequently opposed
-it. It is to their memory that the arts are thus consecrated.
-
-The class of men who will govern, and of rich men, tends every day
-to grow less numerous, and so far as intellect, education, and
-especially morality, are concerned, rich men and men in power are
-not the most distinguished members of society, as was the case
-in olden times. In Russia and Turkey, as in France and America,
-notwithstanding the frequent changes of officials, the greater
-number are often covetous and venal, and so little to be commended
-from the point of view of morality that they do not satisfy even the
-elementary exigencies of honesty demanded in government posts. Thus
-one hears often the ingenuous complaints of those in government that
-the best men among us, strangely enough as it seems to them, are
-always found among those opposed to them. It is as if one complained
-that it is not the nice, good people who become hangmen.
-
-Rich men of the present day, as a general thing, are mere vulgar
-amassers of wealth, for the most part having but little care beyond
-that of increasing their capital, and that most often by impure
-means; or are the degenerate inheritors, who, far from playing an
-important part in society, often incur general contempt.
-
-Many positions have lost their ancient importance. Kings and
-emperors now hardly direct at all; they seldom effect internal
-changes or modify external policy, leaving the decision of such
-questions to the departments of State, or to public opinion. Their
-function is reduced to being the representatives of state unity and
-power. But even this duty they begin to neglect. Most of them not
-only fail to maintain themselves in their former unapproachable
-majesty, but they grow more and more democratic, they prefer even to
-be bourgeois; they lay down thus their last distinction, destroying
-precisely what they are expected to maintain.
-
-The same may be said of the army. The high officers, instead of
-encouraging the roughness and cruelty of the soldiers, which befit
-their occupation, promote the diffusion of education among them,
-preach humanity, often sympathize with the socialistic ideas of
-the masses, and deny the utility of war. In the late conspiracies
-against the Russian government many of those concerned were military
-men. It often happens, as it did recently, that the troops, when
-called upon to establish order, refuse to fire on the people.
-The barrack code of ideas is frankly deprecated by military men
-themselves, who often enough make it the subject of derision.
-
-The same may be said of judges and lawyers. Judges, whose duty it
-is to judge and condemn criminals, conduct their trials in such a
-fashion as to prove them innocent; thus the Russian government,
-when it desires the condemnation of those it wishes to punish,
-never confides them to the ordinary tribunals; it tries them by
-court-martial, which is but a parody of justice. The same may be
-said of lawyers, who often refuse to accuse, and, twisting round
-the law, defend those they should accuse. Learned jurists, whose
-duty it is to justify the violence of authority, deny more and more
-frequently the right of punishment, and in its place introduce
-theories of irresponsibility, often prescribing, not punishment, but
-medical treatment for so-called criminals.
-
-Jailers and turnkeys in convict prisons often become the protectors
-of those it is a part of their business to torture. Policemen
-and detectives are constantly saving those they ought to arrest.
-Ecclesiastics preach tolerance; they often deny the right of
-violence, and the more educated among them attempt in their sermons
-to avoid the deception which constitutes all the meaning of their
-position, and which they are expected to preach. Executioners
-refuse to perform their duty; the result is that often in Russia
-death-warrants cannot be carried out for lack of executioners,
-for, notwithstanding all the advantages of the position, the
-candidates, who are chosen from convicts, diminish in number every
-year. Governors, commissioners, and tax-collectors, pitying the
-people, often try to find pretexts for remitting the taxes. Rich
-men no longer dare to use their wealth for themselves alone, but
-sacrifice a part of it to social charities. Landowners establish
-hospitals and schools on their estates, and some even renounce their
-estates and bestow them on the cultivators of the soil, or establish
-agricultural colonies upon them. Manufacturers and mill-owners found
-schools, hospitals, and savings-banks, institute pensions, and build
-houses for the workmen; some start associations of which the profits
-are equally divided among all. Capitalists expend a portion of their
-wealth on educational, artistic, and philanthropic institutions for
-the public benefit. Many men who are unwilling to part with their
-riches during their lifetime bequeath them to public institutions.
-
-These facts might be deemed the result of chance were it not that
-they all originate from one source, as, when certain trees begin
-to bud in the spring of the year, we might believe it accidental,
-only we know the cause; and that if on some trees the buds begin to
-swell, we know that the same thing will happen to all of them.
-
-Even so is it in regard to Christian public opinion and its
-manifestations. If this public opinion already influences some of
-the more sensitive men, and makes each one in his own sphere decline
-the advantages obtained by violence or its use, it will continue to
-influence men more and more, until it brings about a change in their
-mode of life and reconciles it with that Christian consciousness
-already possessed by the most advanced.
-
-And if there are already rulers who do not venture on any
-undertaking on their own responsibility, and who try to be like
-ordinary men rather than monarchs, who declare themselves ready to
-give up their prerogatives and become the first citizens of their
-country, and soldiers who, realizing all the sin and evil of war,
-do not wish to kill either foreigners or their fellow-countrymen,
-judges and lawyers who do not wish to accuse and condemn criminals,
-priests who evade preaching lies, tax-gatherers who endeavor to
-fulfil as gently as possible what they are called upon to do, and
-rich men who give up their wealth, then surely it will ultimately
-come to pass that other rulers, soldiers, priests, and rich men will
-follow their example. And when there are no more men ready to occupy
-positions supported by violence, the positions themselves will cease
-to exist.
-
-But this is not the only way by which public opinion leads toward
-the abolition of the existing system, and the substitution of a new
-one. As the positions supported by violence become by degrees less
-and less attractive, and there are fewer and fewer applicants to
-fill them, their uselessness becomes more and more apparent.
-
-We have to-day the same rulers and governments, the same armies,
-courts of law, tax-gatherers, priests, wealthy landowners,
-manufacturers, and capitalists as formerly, but their relative
-positions are changed.
-
-The same rulers go about to their various interviews, they have the
-same meetings, hunts, festivities, balls, and uniforms; the same
-diplomatists have the same conversations about alliances and armies;
-the same parliaments, in which Eastern and African questions are
-discussed, and questions in regard to alliances, ruptures, "Home
-Rule," the eight-hour day. Changes of ministry take place just as of
-old, accompanied by the same speeches and incidents. But to those
-who know how an article in a newspaper changes perhaps the position
-of affairs more than dozens of royal interviews and parliamentary
-sessions, it becomes more and more evident that it is not these
-meetings, interviews, and parliamentary discussions that control
-affairs, but something independent of all this, something which has
-no local habitation.
-
-The same generals, officers, soldiers, cannon, fortresses, parades,
-and evolutions. But one year elapses, ten, twenty years elapse, and
-there is no war. And troops are less and less to be relied on to
-suppress insurrection, and it becomes more and more evident that
-generals, officers, and soldiers are only figure-heads in triumphal
-processions, the plaything of a sovereign, a sort of unwieldy and
-expensive _corps-de-ballet_.
-
-The same lawyers and judges, and the same sessions, but it becomes
-more and more evident that as civil courts make decisions in a great
-variety of causes without anxiety about purely legal justice, and
-that criminal courts are useless, because the punishment does not
-produce the desired result, therefore these institutions have no
-other object than the maintenance of men incapable of doing other
-things more useful.
-
-The same priests, bishops, churches, and synods, but it becomes more
-and more evident to all that these men themselves have long since
-ceased to believe what they preach, and are therefore unable to
-persuade any one of the necessity of believing what they no longer
-believe themselves.
-
-The same tax-gatherers, but more and more incapable of extorting
-money from the people by force, and it becomes more and more evident
-that, without such collectors, it would be possible to obtain by
-voluntary contribution all that is required for social needs.
-
-The same rich men, and yet it becomes more and more evident
-that they can be useful only when they cease to be personal
-administrators of their possessions, and surrender to society their
-wealth in whole or part.
-
-When this becomes as plain to all men as it now is to a few, the
-question will naturally arise: Why should we feed and support all
-those emperors, kings, presidents, members of departments, and
-ministers, if all their interviews and conversations amount to
-nothing? Would it not be better, as some wit expressed it, to set up
-an india-rubber queen?
-
-And of what use to us are armies, with their generals, their
-musicians, their horses, and drums? Of what use are they when there
-is no war, when no one wishes to conquer anybody else? And even if
-there were a war, other nations would prevent us from reaping its
-advantages; while upon their compatriots the troops would refuse to
-fire.
-
-And what is the use of judges and attorneys whose decisions in
-civil cases are not according to the law, and who, in criminal ones,
-are aware that punishments are of no avail?
-
-And of what use are tax-gatherers who are reluctant to collect the
-taxes, when all that is needed could be contributed without their
-assistance?
-
-And where is the use of a clergy which has long ceased to believe
-what it preaches?
-
-And of what use is capital in the hands of private individuals
-when it can be beneficial only when it becomes public property?
-Having once asked all these questions, men cannot but arrive at the
-conclusion that institutions which have lost their usefulness should
-no longer be supported.
-
-And furthermore, men who themselves occupy positions of privilege
-come to see the necessity of abandoning them.
-
-One day, in Moscow, I was present at a religious discussion which
-is usually held during St. Thomas's week, near the church in the
-Okhotny Ryad. A group of perhaps twenty men had gathered on the
-pavement, and a serious discussion concerning religion was in
-progress. Meanwhile, in the nobles' club near at hand, a concert
-was taking place, and a police-officer, having noticed the group of
-people gathered near the church, sent a mounted policeman to order
-them to disperse,--not that the police-officer cared in the least
-whether the group stayed where it was or dispersed. The twenty
-men who had gathered inconvenienced no one, but the officer had
-been on duty all the morning and felt obliged to do something. The
-young policeman, a smart-looking fellow, with his right arm akimbo
-and a clanking sword, rode up to us, calling out in an imperative
-tone: "Disperse, you fellows! What business have you to gather
-there?" Every one turned to look at him, while one of the speakers,
-a modest-looking man in a peasant's coat, replied calmly and
-pleasantly: "We are talking about business, and there is no reason
-why we should disperse; it might be better for you, my young friend,
-if you were to jump off from your horse and to listen to us. Very
-likely it would do you good;" and turning away he continued the
-conversation. The policeman turned his horse without a word and rode
-away.
-
-Such scenes as this must be of frequent occurrence in countries
-where violence is employed. The officer was bored; he had nothing
-to do, and the poor fellow was placed in a position where he felt
-in duty bound to give orders. He was deprived of a rational human
-existence; he could do nothing but look on and give orders, give
-orders and look on, although both were works of supererogation. It
-will not be long before all those unfortunate rulers, ministers,
-members of parliaments, governors, generals, officers, bishops,
-priests, and even rich men, will find themselves--indeed they
-have already done so--in precisely the same position. Their
-sole occupation consists in issuing orders; they send out their
-subordinates, like the officer who sent the policeman to interfere
-with the people; and as the people with whom they interfere ask not
-to be interfered with, this seems to their official intelligence
-only to prove that they are very necessary.
-
-But the time will surely come when it will be perfectly evident to
-every one that they are not only useless, but an actual impediment,
-and those whose course they obstruct will say gently and pleasantly,
-like the man in the peasant's coat: "We beg that you will let us
-alone." Then the subordinates as well as their instructors will find
-themselves compelled to take the good advice that is offered them,
-cease to prance about among men with their arms akimbo, and having
-discarded their glittering livery, listen to what is said among men,
-and unite with them to help to promote the serious work of the world.
-
-Sooner or later the time will surely come when all the present
-institutions supported by violence will cease to be; their too
-evident uselessness, absurdity, and even unseemliness, will finally
-destroy them.
-
-There must come a time when the same thing that happened to the king
-in Andersen's fairy tale, "The King's New Clothes," will happen to
-men occupying positions created by violence.
-
-The tale tells of a king who cared enormously for new clothes, and
-to whom one day came two tailors who agreed to make him a suit woven
-from a wonderful stuff. The king engaged them and they set to work,
-saying that the stuff possessed the remarkable quality of becoming
-invisible to any one unfit for the office he holds. The courtiers
-came to inspect the work of the tailors, but could see nothing,
-because these men were drawing their needles through empty space.
-However, remembering the consequences, they all pretended to see the
-cloth and to be very much pleased with it. Even the king himself
-praised it. The hour appointed for the procession when he was to
-walk wearing his new garment arrived. The king took off his clothes
-and put on the new ones--that is, he remained naked all the while,
-and thus he went in procession. But remembering the consequences, no
-one had the courage to say that he was not dressed, until a little
-child, catching sight of the naked king, innocently exclaimed, "But
-he has nothing on!" Whereupon all the others who had known this
-before, but had not acknowledged it, could no longer conceal the
-fact.
-
-Thus will it be with those who, through inertia, continue to
-fill offices that have long ceased to be of any consequence,
-until some chance observer, who happens not to be engaged, as the
-Russian proverb has it, in "washing one hand with the other," will
-ingenuously exclaim, "It is a long time since these men were good
-for anything!"
-
-The position of the Christian world, with its fortresses, cannon,
-dynamite, guns, torpedoes, prisons, gallows, churches, factories,
-custom-houses, and palaces is monstrous. But neither fortresses nor
-cannon nor guns by themselves can make war, nor can the prisons lock
-their gates, nor the gallows hang, nor the churches themselves lead
-men astray, nor the custom-houses claim their dues, nor palaces and
-factories build and support themselves; all these operations are
-performed by men. And when men understand that they need not make
-them, then these things will cease to be.
-
-And already men are beginning to understand this. If not yet
-understood by all, it is already understood by those whom the rest
-of the world eventually follows. And it is impossible to cease to
-understand what once has been understood, and the masses not only
-can, but inevitably must, follow where those who have understood
-have already led the way.
-
-Hence the prophecy: that a time will come when all men will hearken
-unto the word of God, will forget the arts of war, will melt their
-swords into plowshares and their lances into reaping-hooks;--which,
-being translated, means when all the prisons, the fortresses, the
-barracks, the palaces, and the churches will remain empty, the
-gallows and the cannon will be useless. This is no longer a mere
-Utopia, but a new and definite system of life, toward which mankind
-is progressing with ever increasing rapidity.
-
-But when will it come?
-
-Eighteen hundred years ago Christ, in answer to this question,
-replied that the end of the present world--that is, of the pagan
-system--would come when the miseries of man had increased to their
-utmost limit; and when, at the same time, the good news of the
-Kingdom of Heaven--that is, of the possibility of a new system,
-one not founded upon violence--should be proclaimed throughout the
-earth.[20]
-
- [20] Matt. xxiv. 3-28.
-
-"But of that day and hour knoweth no man, no, not the angels of
-heaven, but my Father only,"[21] said Christ. "Watch therefore: for
-ye know not what hour your Lord doth come."
-
- [21] Matt. xxiv. 36.
-
-When will the hour arrive? Christ said that we cannot know. And for
-that very reason we should hold ourselves in readiness to meet it,
-as the goodman should watch his house against thieves, or like the
-virgins who await with their lamps the coming of the bridegroom;
-and, moreover, we should work with all our might to hasten the
-coming of that hour, as the servants should use the talents they
-have received that they may increase.[22]
-
- [22] Matt. xxiv. 43; xxv. 1--13, 14-30.
-
-And there can be no other answer. The day and the hour of the advent
-of the Kingdom of God men cannot know, since the coming of that hour
-depends only on men themselves.
-
-The reply is like that of the wise man who, when the traveler asked
-him how far he was from the city, answered, "Go on!"
-
-How can we know if it is still far to the goal toward which humanity
-is aiming, when we do not know how it will move toward it; that it
-depends on humanity whether it moves steadily onward or pauses,
-whether it accelerates or retards its pace.
-
-All that we can know is what we who form humanity should or should
-not do in order to bring about this Kingdom of God. And that we all
-know; for each one has but to begin to do his duty, each one has but
-to live according to the light that is within him, to bring about
-the immediate advent of the promised Kingdom of God, for which the
-heart of every man yearns.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII
-
-CONCLUSION
-
-"REPENT, FOR THE KINGDOM OF HEAVEN IS AT HAND!"
-
-1
-
- Encounter with a train carrying soldiers to establish order
- among famine-stricken peasants--The cause of the disorder--How
- the mandates of the higher authorities are carried out in case
- of peasants' resistance--The affair at Orel as an example of
- violence and murder committed for the purpose of asserting the
- rights of the rich--All the advantages of the rich are founded
- on like acts of violence.
-
-2
-
- The Tula train and the behavior of the persons composing it--How
- men can behave as these do--The reasons are neither ignorance,
- nor cruelty, nor cowardice, nor lack of comprehension or of
- moral sense--They do these things because they think them
- necessary to maintain the existing system, to support which
- they believe to be every man's duty--On what the belief of the
- necessity and immutability of the existing order of things is
- founded--For the upper classes it is based on the advantages
- it affords them--But what compels men of the lower classes to
- believe in the immutability of this system, when they derive
- no advantage from it, and maintain it with acts contrary to
- their conscience?--The reason lies in the deceit practised by
- the upper classes upon the lower in regard to the necessity
- of the existing order, and the legitimacy of acts of violence
- for its maintenance--General deception--Special deception--The
- conscription.
-
-3
-
- How men reconcile the legitimacy of murder with the precepts of
- morality, and how they admit the existence in their midst of a
- military organization for purposes of violence which incessantly
- threatens the safety of society--Admitted only by the powers
- for whom the present organization is advantageous--Violence
- sanctioned by the higher authorities and carried out by the
- lower, notwithstanding the knowledge of its immorality, because,
- owing to the organization of the State, the moral responsibility
- is divided among a large number of participants, each of whom
- considers some other than himself responsible--Moreover, the
- loss of consciousness of moral responsibility is also due to a
- mistaken opinion as to the inequality of men, the consequent
- abuse of power by the authorities, and servility of the lower
- classes--The condition of men who commit acts contrary to their
- conscience is like the condition of a hypnotized person acting
- under the influence of suggestion--In what does submission to
- the suggestion of the State differ from submission to men of a
- higher order of consciousness or to public opinion?--The present
- system, which is the outcome of ancient public opinion, and
- which is already in contradiction to the modern, is maintained
- only through torpor of conscience, induced by auto-suggestion
- among the upper classes, and by the hypnotization of the
- lower--The conscience or intelligent consciousness of these
- men may awaken, and there are instances when it does awaken;
- therefore it cannot be said that any one of them will, or will
- not, do what he sets out to do--Everything depends on the degree
- of comprehension of the illegitimacy of the acts of violence,
- and this consciousness in men may either awaken spontaneously or
- be roused by those already awakened.
-
-4
-
- Everything depends upon the strength of conviction of each
- individual man in regard to Christian truth--But the advanced
- men of the present day consider it unnecessary to explain
- and profess Christian truth, regarding it sufficient for the
- improvement of human life to change its outward conditions
- within the limits allowed by power--Upon this scientific theory
- of hypocrisy, which has taken the place of the hypocrisy of
- religion, men of the wealthy classes base the justification of
- their position--In consequence of this hypocrisy, maintained by
- violence and falsehood, they can pretend before each other to
- be Christians, and rest content--The same hypocrisy allows men
- who preach the Christian doctrine to take part in a _regime_
- of violence--No external improvements of life can make it
- less miserable; its miseries are caused by disunion; disunion
- springs from following falsehood instead of truth--Union
- is possible only in truth--Hypocrisy forbids such a union,
- for while remaining hypocrites, men conceal from themselves
- and others the truth they know--Hypocrisy changes into evil
- everything destined to ameliorate life--It perverts the
- conception of right and wrong, and therefore is a bar to the
- perfection of men--Acknowledged malefactors and criminals do
- less harm than those who live by legalized violence cloaked by
- hypocrisy--All recognize the iniquity of our life, and would
- long since have modified it, if it were not covered by the cloak
- of hypocrisy--But it seems as if we had reached the limits of
- hypocrisy, and have but to make an effort of consciousness in
- order to awaken--like the man who has nightmare--to a different
- reality.
-
-5
-
- Can man make this effort?--According to the existing
- hypocritical theory, man is not free to change his life--He
- is not free in his acts, but is always free to acknowledge or
- disregard certain truths already known to him--The recognition
- of truth is the cause of action--The cause of the apparent
- insolvability of the question of man's freedom--It lies only
- in the acknowledgment of the truth revealed unto him--No other
- freedom exists--The acknowledgment of the truth gives freedom,
- and points the way in which a man, willingly or unwillingly,
- must walk--The recognition of truth and of true freedom allows
- man to become a participant of the work of God, to be not the
- slave but a creator of life--Men have but to forego the attempt
- to improve the external conditions of life, and direct all their
- energies toward the recognition and profession of the truth
- that is known to them, and the present painful system of life
- will vanish forthwith, and that portion of the Kingdom of God
- which is accessible to men would be established--One has only to
- cease lying and shamming to accomplish this--But what awaits us
- in the future?--What will happen to mankind when they begin to
- obey the dictates of their conscience, and how will they exist
- without the customary conditions of civilization?--Nothing truly
- good and beneficial can perish because of the realization of the
- truth, but will only increase in strength when freed from the
- admixture of falsehood and hypocrisy.
-
-6
-
- Our system of life has reached the limit of misery, and cannot
- be ameliorated by any pagan reorganization--All our life, with
- its pagan institutions, is devoid of meaning--Are we obeying
- the will of God in maintaining our present privileges and
- obligations?--We are in this position, not because such is
- the law of the universe, that it is inevitable, but because
- we wish it, because it is advantageous for some of us--All
- our consciousness contradicts this, and our deliverance
- consists in acknowledging the Christian truth, not to do to
- one's neighbor that which one would not have done to one's
- self--As our obligations in regard to ourselves should be
- subordinate to our obligations to others, so in like manner our
- obligations to others should be subordinate to our obligations
- to God--Deliverance from our position consists, if not in
- giving up our position and its rights at once, at least in
- acknowledging our guilt, and neither lying nor trying to justify
- ourselves--The true significance of our life consists in knowing
- and professing the truth, whereas our approval of, and our
- activity in, the service of the State takes all meaning from
- life--God demands that we serve Him, that is, that we seek to
- establish the greatest degree of union among all human beings,
- which union is possible only in truth.
-
-
-I was just putting the finishing touches to this two years' work
-when, on the 9th day of September,[23] I had occasion to go by
-rail to visit districts in the governments of Tula and Ryazan,
-where certain peasants were suffering from last year's famine, and
-others were enduring still greater suffering from the same causes
-this year.[24] At one of the stations the train in which I was a
-passenger met the express, which carried the Governor and troops
-supplied with rods and loaded rifles for torturing and murdering the
-famine-stricken peasants.
-
- [23] 1892.--Tr.
-
- [24] 1893.
-
-Although corporal punishment was legally abolished in Russia
-thirty years ago, the custom of flogging as a means of making the
-decisions of authority respected has been revived, and has of late
-been frequently employed. I had heard of it, had read in the papers
-of the frightful tortures of which the Governor of Nijni-Novgorod,
-Baranov, has gone so far as to boast, and of the tortures that have
-been inflicted in Tchernigov, Tambov, Saratov, Astrakhan, and Orel,
-but I had never yet witnessed, as I did now, how these things were
-actually done.
-
-And I myself saw well-meaning Russians, penetrated with the spirit
-of Christ, but armed with muskets and carrying rods, on their way to
-murder and torture their starving brothers.
-
-The pretext was as follows:--
-
-On the estate of a rich landowner, upon a piece of ground held by
-him in common with the peasants, a forest had been allowed to grow.
-(When I say that the forest "grew," I mean that the peasants had
-not only planted it, but had continued to take care of it.) They
-had always had the use of it, and therefore looked upon it as their
-own, or at least as common property; but the landowner, confiscating
-it entirely to himself, began to cut down the trees. The peasants
-lodged a complaint. The judge of the lower court pronounced an
-illegal decision (I call it illegal on the authority of the
-Procureur[25] and the Governor, who surely ought to understand the
-case) in favor of the landowner. The higher courts, as well as the
-Senate, although they could see that the case had been unfairly
-tried, confirmed the decision, and the wood was awarded to the
-landowner, who continued to fell the trees. But the peasants,
-believing it impossible that such an injustice could be perpetrated
-by the higher magistrates, refused to submit to the decision, and
-drove away the workmen sent to cut down the trees, saying that the
-forest belonged to them, and that they would appeal to the Czar
-himself before they would allow it to be touched.
-
- [25] Attorney-General.
-
-The case was reported to St. Petersburg, from whence the Governor
-received the order to enforce the decision of the courts, and in
-order to execute the command, asked for troops.
-
-Hence these soldiers who, armed with bayonets and provided with
-cartridges and rods expressly prepared for the occasion and stored
-in one of the vans, were on their way to enforce the decision of
-the higher authorities. The execution of an order from the ruling
-powers can be accomplished either by threats of torture and death,
-or by the enforcement of those threats, according to the degree of
-resistance on the part of the people.
-
-If, for instance, in Russia (it is practically the same in other
-lands where state authority and the rights of ownership exist), the
-peasants offer to resist, the result is as follows: The superior
-officer makes a speech and orders them to obey. The excited crowd,
-accustomed to be duped by those in high places, understands not
-a word that the representative of authority is saying in his
-official, conventional language, and is by no means pacified.
-Whereupon the commanding officer declares that unless they submit
-and disperse, he will be forced to have recourse to arms. If the
-crowd still refuses to yield and does not disperse, he orders his
-men to load the muskets and to fire over their heads, and then, if
-the peasants still stand their ground, he orders the soldiers to
-aim at the crowds; they fire, and men fall wounded and killed in
-the street. The crowd is dispersed, the soldiers, carrying out the
-orders of their commanders, having laid hands upon those whom they
-suppose to be the chief instigators, and arrested them. The dying,
-stained with blood, the wounded, mutilated, and dead, among whom
-are often women and children, are picked up. The dead are buried,
-the wounded sent to the hospitals. Those who are supposed to be the
-ringleaders are taken to the city and court-martialed, and if proved
-that they have used violence, they are summarily hung. This has
-happened in Russia repeatedly, and similar scenes must take place
-wherever the system of government is based upon violence. Such is
-the course adopted in cases of revolt.
-
-If, on the other hand, the peasants submit, the scene that ensues
-is entirely original and peculiarly Russian. The Governor, on his
-arrival at the place, either quarters the soldiers in the different
-houses of the village, where their maintenance ruins the peasants,
-or, satisfied by threatening the people, he graciously pardons
-them and departs. Or, as more frequently happens, he addresses the
-multitude, upbraids it for disobedience, and announces that the
-ringleaders must be punished; he seizes a certain number of men
-considered as such, and without any form of trial causes them to be
-beaten with rods in his presence.
-
-In order to give an idea of the manner in which such an affair
-is conducted, I will describe an instance of the kind which
-happened in Orel, which was approved by the higher authorities.
-Like the landowner in Tula, the landed proprietor at Orel chose
-to take possession of the peasants' property, and here, too, as
-in the former instance, the peasants resisted. In this case, the
-landowner, without the consent of the peasants, wished to dam up,
-for the benefit of his mill, a flow of water which supplied the
-meadows. The peasants resisted this.
-
-The landlord lodged a complaint with the rural commissary, who
-illegally (as was afterward admitted by the court) decided the case
-in favor of the landowner, giving him leave to divert the water. The
-landowner sent workmen to close the channel through which the water
-descended. The peasants, excited at this unfair judgment, sent their
-women to prevent the landowner's men from damming the channel. The
-women proceeded to the dam, upset the carts, and drove the workmen
-away. The landowner entered a complaint against them for committing
-a lawless act. The rural commissary gave the order to arrest and
-lock up in the village jail one woman out of every family,--an order
-rather difficult to execute, since each family included several
-women; and as it was impossible to tell which of them to arrest, the
-police could not fulfil the order. The landowner complained to the
-Governor of the laxity of the police. The Governor, without stopping
-to consider the case, gave strict orders to the _Ispravnik_ to
-carry out at once the orders of the rural commissary. In obedience
-to his superior the _Ispravnik_ arrived in the village, and with
-that contempt for the individual peculiar to Russian authorities,
-ordered the police to seize the first women they could. Disputes
-and resistance arose. The _Ispravnik_, paying no attention to
-this, persisted in his order that the police should take one
-woman, innocent or guilty, from every household, and put her under
-arrest. The peasants defended their wives and mothers; they refused
-to give them up, and resisted the police and the _Ispravnik_.
-Thus another and a greater offense was committed,--resistance to
-authority,--which was at once reported in town. Then the Governor,
-just as I saw the Governor of Tula, with a battalion of soldiers
-supplied with rods and muskets, backed by all due accessories of
-telegraph and telephone, accompanied by a learned physician who was
-to superintend the flogging from a medical standpoint, started
-on an express train for the spot, like the modern Genghis Khan
-predicted by Herzen. In the _Volostnoye Pravlenie_[26] were the
-soldiers, a detachment of police with their revolvers suspended on
-red cords, the principal peasants of the neighborhood, and the men
-accused. Around them had collected a crowd of perhaps a thousand.
-
- [26] House of the rural communal government.
-
-Driving up to the house of the _Volostnoye Pravlenie_, the Governor
-alighted from his carriage and delivered an address, which had been
-prepared in advance, after which he inquired for the criminals, and
-ordered a bench to be brought. No one understood what he meant until
-the policeman, who always accompanied the Governor and made all the
-arrangements for the punishments which had already been enforced
-several times in the government of Orel, explained that the bench
-was to be used for flogging. This bench and the rods that had been
-brought by the party were both produced. The executioners had been
-previously selected from certain horse-thieves taken from the same
-village, the military having refused to do the business.
-
-When all was ready the Governor bade the first of the twelve men who
-were pointed out to him by the landowner as the ringleaders to step
-forward. It so happened that he was the father of a family, a man
-forty-five years of age, respected in the community, whose rights he
-had manfully defended.
-
-He was led to the bench, stripped, and ordered to lie down.
-
-He would have begged for mercy, but realizing how little it
-would avail, he made the sign of the cross and stretched himself
-out on the bench. Two policemen held him down, and the learned
-doctor stood by, ready in case of need to give his scientific
-assistance. The executioners having spat upon their hands, swung
-the rods, and the flogging began. The bench, it seemed, was too
-narrow, and it was found difficult to keep the writhing victim,
-whose muscles twitched convulsively, from falling off. Then the
-Governor ordered to be brought another bench, to which a plank
-was adjusted in such a way as to support it. The soldiers, ever
-ready with their continual salutes and responses of "Yes, your
-Excellency," swiftly and obediently executed the orders, while in
-the meantime the half-naked, pale, and suffering man, trembling,
-with contracted brows and downcast eyes, stood by waiting. When the
-bench was readjusted, he was again stretched out upon it, and the
-horse-stealers renewed their blows. His back, his legs, and even his
-sides were covered with bleeding wounds, and every blow was followed
-by the muffled groan which he could no longer repress. In the crowd
-that stood by one could hear the sobs of the wife and mother, the
-children, and the kinsfolk of the man, as well as of all who had
-been called to witness the punishment.
-
-The wretched Governor, intoxicated with power, who had no doubt
-convinced himself of the necessity for this performance, counted the
-strokes on his fingers, while he smoked cigarette after cigarette,
-for the lighting of which several obliging persons hastened to offer
-him a burning match.
-
-After fifty blows had been given, the peasant lay motionless,
-without uttering a sound, and the doctor, who had been educated in
-a government school that he might devote his scientific knowledge
-to the service of his country and his sovereign, approached the
-tortured man, felt his pulse, listened to the beating of his heart,
-and reported to the representative of authority that the victim had
-become unconscious, and declared that, from a scientific point of
-view, it might prove dangerous to prolong the punishment. But the
-unfortunate Governor, utterly intoxicated by the sight of blood,
-ordered the flogging to go on until seventy strokes had been given,
-the number which he for some reason deemed necessary. After the
-seventieth blow the Governor said:--
-
-"That will do! Now bring on the next one!"
-
-They raised the mutilated and unconscious man, with his swollen
-back, and carried him away, and the next was brought forward. The
-sobs and groans of the crowd increased, but the tortures were
-continued.
-
-So it went on until each of the twelve men had received seventy
-strokes. They begged for mercy, they groaned and screamed. The
-sobs and moans of the women grew louder and more heartrending, and
-the faces of the men of the crowd more gloomy. But there stood the
-troops, and the torture did not cease until it had seemed sufficient
-to the unfortunate, half-intoxicated, erring man called the Governor.
-
-Not only did the magistrates, the officers, and the soldiers
-sanction this act by their presence, but they took part in it,
-preventing the crowd from interfering with the order of its
-execution.
-
-When I asked one of the chief officials why these tortures were
-inflicted after the men had already submitted, he replied, with
-the significant air of a man who understands all the fine points
-of political wisdom, that it was done because it had been proved
-by experience that if the peasants are not punished they will
-soon begin again to oppose the decrees of authority, and that the
-punishment of a few strengthens forever the power of authority.
-
-And now I saw the Governor of Tula, with his clerks, officers, and
-soldiers, on his way to perform a similar act. Once more by murder
-or torture the sentence of the higher authorities was to be carried
-out,--a sentence whose object was to enable a young landowner, the
-possessor of a yearly income of 100,000 roubles, to receive 3000
-more for a tract of wood of which he had basely defrauded a whole
-community of needy and starving peasants, the price of which he
-would squander in a few weeks in the restaurants of St. Petersburg,
-Moscow, and Paris. Such was the errand of the men I met.
-
-It would seem as if there must be some purpose in this encounter,
-when, after two years of incessant contemplation, of continuous
-thought in one direction, fate should, for the first time in
-my life, bring me face to face with this phenomenon, a living
-illustration of the theory I have so long cherished; namely, that
-the entire organization of our life rests, not on any principle of
-justice, as men who occupy and enjoy advantageous positions under
-the existing system like to imagine, but on the rudest and most
-barefaced violence, on the murder and torture of human beings.
-
-Those who possess large estates and large capital, or who receive
-high salaries collected from the needy working-classes, from the
-people who often lack the necessaries of life; merchants, clerks,
-doctors, lawyers, artists, scientists, writers, coachmen, cooks, and
-valets, who earn their living in the service of rich men,--fondly
-believe that the privileges which they enjoy are not the outcome
-of violence, but the natural result of a voluntary interchange of
-services; that these privileges are by no means the result of the
-outrages and floggings endured by their fellow-men, such as took
-place last summer, in Russia, in Orel and elsewhere, as the like
-took place in many parts of Europe and America. They prefer to
-believe that the privileges they enjoy are the spontaneous result
-of a mutual agreement among men; that violence is only the natural
-result of certain universal and superior laws, judicial, political,
-or economic. They try not to see that the privileges they possess
-are only held by them in consequence of some circumstance, not
-unlike that which compelled the peasants, who had tended the growing
-forest and greatly needed it, to surrender it to the rich landowner,
-who had taken no pains to preserve it, and who did not require
-it for his own use; men who will either be flogged or murdered
-if they refuse to surrender it. Now, if it is an undeniable fact
-that the mill in Orel was made to yield an increased income to the
-proprietor, and that the forest raised by the peasants was given to
-the landowner only because of the flogging and the executions either
-threatened or actually suffered, then it must be equally evident
-that all the other exclusive rights of the rich, which deprive the
-poor of the bare necessaries of life, rest on the same basis.
-
-If the peasants who need land in order to support their families
-may not cultivate the land around them, and if land sufficient to
-feed a thousand families is in the hands of one man, a Russian, an
-Englishman, an Austrian, a rich landowner of whatever nationality;
-and if the merchant who buys grain from the needy grower keeps
-it in his warehouses in the midst of a destitute and famishing
-population, or sells it for three times its value to those of whom
-he bought it at the lowest price,--it evidently springs from the
-same cause.
-
-And if, beyond a certain line called the frontier, one man is not
-allowed to purchase certain goods without paying duties to other
-men who have nothing to do with their production, and if a man is
-obliged to part with his last cow in order to pay taxes which are
-distributed by the government among its officials, or used for
-the support of soldiers who may kill the taxpayers, it would seem
-evident that all this is not the result of certain abstract rights,
-but of incidents like those which may even now be going on in the
-government of Tula, which in one form or another occur periodically
-all the world over, wherever state organization exists, and wherever
-there are rich and poor.
-
-Owing to the fact that outrage and murder do not accompany all
-social relations founded on violence, those who possess the
-exclusive privileges of the governing classes assure themselves and
-others that the advantages which they enjoy are not the result of
-violence and bloodshed, but derived from certain vague and abstract
-rights. Still it ought to be evident that if those men, who realize
-the injustice of it all (as is the case with the working-classes at
-the present day), continue to surrender the greater part of their
-earnings to the capitalist and the landowner, and if they pay taxes,
-knowing that such taxes are not put to a good use, they do this, not
-because they acknowledge the justice of certain abstract rights,
-whose meaning is unknown to them, but only because they know that
-they will be whipped and put to death if they refuse to comply.
-
-If it is not always necessary to imprison men, to flog them, or to
-put them to death when the landowner collects his rents, if the
-needy peasant pays a treble price to the merchant who deceives him,
-or the mechanic accepts wages absurdly small in comparison with the
-income of his master, or the poor man parts with his last rouble
-for duties and taxes, it is because he remembers that men have been
-flogged and put to death for trying to avoid compliance with what
-was demanded of them. Like a caged tiger, who does not touch the
-meat that lies before his eyes, and who when he is ordered to leap
-over a stick obeys at once, not because he likes it, but because
-he has not forgotten past hunger or the red-hot iron which he felt
-every time he refused to obey; so it is with men, who, when they
-submit to a law which is not for their advantage, to a law which is
-disastrous to their interests, or to one which they firmly believe
-to be unjust, do so because they remember what they will have to
-suffer if they refuse to comply.
-
-Those who benefit by privileges born of violence long since
-perpetrated, often forget, and are very glad to forget, how such
-privileges were obtained. And yet one has but to recall the annals
-of history,--not the history of the exploits of kings, but genuine
-history,--the history of the oppression of the majority by the
-minority, in order to acknowledge that the scourge, the prison, and
-the gallows have been the original and only sources whence all the
-advantages of the rich over the poor have sprung. One has but to
-remember the persistent and undying passion for gain among men, the
-mainspring of human action in these days, to become convinced that
-the advantages of the rich over the poor can be maintained in no
-other way.
-
-At rare intervals, oppression, flogging, imprisonment, executions,
-the direct object of which is not to promote the welfare of the
-rich, may possibly occur, but we can positively declare that in
-our community, where for every man who lives at ease there are
-ten overworked, hungry, and often cruelly suffering families of
-working-men, all the privileges of the rich, all their luxury, all
-their superfluities, are acquired and maintained only by tortures,
-imprisonments, and executions.
-
-The train that I met on the 9th day of September carrying soldiers,
-muskets, ammunition, and rods to the famine-stricken peasants, in
-order that the wealthy landowner might possess in peace the tract of
-wood he had wrested from the peasants, a necessity of life to them,
-to him a mere superfluity, affords a vivid proof of the degree to
-which men have unconsciously acquired the habit of committing acts
-wholly at variance with their convictions and their conscience.
-
-The express consisted of one first-class carriage for the Governor,
-officials, and officers, and several vans crowded with soldiers.
-The jaunty young fellows in their fresh new uniforms were crowded
-together, either standing, or sitting with their legs dangling
-outside the wide open sliding doors of the vans. Some were smoking,
-laughing, and jesting, some cracking seeds and spitting out the
-shells. A few who jumped down upon the platform to get a drink of
-water from the tub, meeting some of the officers, slackened their
-pace and made that senseless gesture of lifting one hand to the
-forehead; then, with serious faces, as though they had been doing
-something not only sensible but actually important, they passed by,
-watching the officers as they went. Soon they broke into a run,
-evidently in high spirits, stamping on the planks of the platform as
-they ran, and chatting, as is but natural for good-natured, healthy
-young fellows who are making a journey together. These men, who were
-on their way to murder starving fathers and grandfathers, seemed as
-unconcerned as though they were off on the pleasantest, or at least
-the most everyday, business in the world.
-
-The gaily dressed officers and officials who were scattered about
-on the platform and in the first-class waiting-room produced the
-same impression. At a table laden with bottles sat the Governor, the
-commander of the expedition, attired in his semi-military uniform,
-eating his luncheon and quietly discussing the weather with some
-friends he had met, as though the business that called him hither
-was so simple a matter that it could neither ruffle his equanimity
-nor diminish his interest in the change of the weather.
-
-At some distance, but tasting no food, sat the chief of the police
-with a mournful countenance, seemingly oppressed with the tiresome
-formalities. Officers in gaudy, gold-embroidered uniforms moved
-to and fro, talking loudly; one group was seated at a table just
-finishing a bottle of wine; an officer at the bar who had eaten a
-cake brushed away the crumbs that had fallen on his uniform, and
-with a self-sufficient air flung a coin upon the counter; some
-walked nonchalantly up and down in front of our train looking at the
-faces of the women.
-
-All these men on their way to commit murder, or to torture the
-starved and defenseless peasants, by whose toil they were supported,
-looked as if engaged upon some important business which they were
-really proud to execute.
-
-What did it mean?
-
-These men, who were within half an hour's ride of the spot where,
-in order to procure for a rich man an extra 3000 roubles, of which
-he had no need whatever, which he was unjustly confiscating from
-a community of famished peasants, might be obliged to perform the
-most shocking deeds that the imagination can conceive,--to murder
-and torture, as they did in Orel, innocent men, their brothers.
-These men were now calmly approaching the time and place when these
-horrors were to begin.
-
-Since the preparations had been made, it could not very well be
-claimed that all these men, officers and privates, did not know what
-was before them, and what they were expected to do. The Governor had
-given orders for the rods, the officials had purchased the birch
-twigs, bargained for them, and noted the purchase in their accounts.
-In the military department orders had been given and received
-concerning ball cartridges. They all knew that they were on their
-way to torture and possibly to put to death their brothers exhausted
-by famine, and that perhaps in an hour they might begin the work.
-
-To say, as they themselves would say, that they are acting from
-principle, from a conviction that the state system must be
-maintained, is untrue. Those men, in the first place, have rarely,
-if ever, bestowed a single thought upon political science; and
-in the second place, because they could never be convinced that
-the business on which they are engaged serves to support rather
-than destroy the State; and finally, because, as a matter of fact,
-the majority of these men, if not all of them, would not only be
-unwilling to sacrifice their peace and comfort to maintain the
-State, but would never miss the opportunity to promote their own
-interests at the expense of the State,--therefore it is not for the
-sake of so vague a principle as that of maintaining the State that
-they do this.
-
-What, then, does all this mean?
-
-I know these men. I may not know them as individuals, it is
-true, yet I know their dispositions, their past lives, their
-modes of thought. They have had mothers, some have wives and
-children. Actually, they are, for the most part, kindly, gentle,
-tender-hearted men, who abhor any kind of cruelty, to say nothing
-of killing or torturing; moreover, every one of them professes
-Christianity, and considers violence perpetrated against
-the defenseless a contemptible and shameful act. Each taken
-individually, in everyday life, is not only incapable, for the sake
-of personal advantage, of doing one-hundredth part of what was
-done by the Governor at Orel, but any one of them would consider
-himself insulted if it were suggested that he could be capable of
-doing anything like it in private life. And yet they are within
-a half-hour's ride of the spot where they will inevitably find
-themselves compelled to do such deeds.
-
-What can it mean, then?
-
-It is not only the men on this train who are ready to commit murder
-and violence, but those others with whom the affair originated,
-the landowner, the steward, the judge, those in St. Petersburg who
-issue orders,--the Minister of State, the Czar, also worthy men and
-professors of Christianity,--how can they, knowing the consequences,
-conceive such a scheme, and direct its execution?
-
-How can they, even, who take no active part in it,--the spectators,
-whose indignation would be aroused by accounts of private violence,
-even though it be but the ill-usage of a horse,--how can they allow
-this shocking business to go on without rising in wrath to resist
-it, crying aloud, "No, we will not allow you to flog or to kill
-starving men because they refuse to surrender their last property
-villainously attempted to be wrested from them!" And not only are
-men found willing to do these deeds, but most of them, even the
-chief instigators, like the steward, the landowner, the judge, and
-those who take part in originating prosecution and punishment, the
-Governor, the Minister of State, the Czar, remain perfectly calm,
-and show no sign of remorse over such things. And they who are about
-to execute this crime are equally calm.
-
-Even the spectators, who, it would seem, have no personal interest
-in the matter, look upon these men who are about to take part in
-this dastardly business with sympathy rather than with aversion or
-condemnation.
-
-In the same compartment with me sat a merchant who dealt in timber,
-a peasant by birth, who in loud and decided tones expressed his
-approval of the outrage which the peasants were about to suffer.
-"The government must be obeyed; that's what it's for. If we pepper
-them well, they will never rebel again. It's no more than they
-deserve!" he said.
-
-What did it all mean?
-
-It could not be said that all these men, the instigators, the
-participants, the accomplices in this business, were rascals, who,
-in defiance of conscience, realizing the utter abomination of the
-act, were, either from mercenary motives or from fear of punishment,
-determined to commit it. Any man of them would, given the requisite
-circumstances, stand up for his convictions. Not one of those
-officials would steal a purse, or read another man's letter, or
-endure an insult without demanding satisfaction from the offender.
-Not one of those officers would cheat at cards, or neglect to pay a
-gambling debt, or betray a companion, or flee from the battlefield,
-or abandon a flag. Not one of those soldiers would dare to reject
-the sacrament, or even taste meat on Good Friday. Each of these men
-would choose to endure any kind of privation, suffering, or danger,
-rather than consent to do a deed which he considered wrong. Hence
-it is evident that they are able to resist whatever is contrary to
-their convictions.
-
-Still less true would it be to pronounce these men brutes, to whom
-such deeds are congenial rather than repulsive. One needs but to
-talk with them to become convinced that all,--landowner, judge,
-minister, governor, Czar, officers, and soldiers,--at the bottom of
-their hearts not only disapprove of such deeds, but when a sense
-of their true significance is borne in upon them, really suffer at
-being forced to take part in these scenes. They can only try not to
-think of them.
-
-One needs but to speak to those who are actors in this business,
-beginning with the landowner and ending with the lowest policeman
-or soldier, to discover that at the bottom of their hearts they all
-acknowledge the wickedness of the deed, and know that it would be
-better to abstain from it; and this knowledge makes them suffer.
-
-A lady of liberal views in our train, seeing the Governor and the
-officers in the first-class waiting-room, and learning the object of
-their journey, began to talk in an ostensibly loud tone, in order
-that they might hear what she said, condemning the present laws and
-crying shame upon the men who took part in this business. This made
-everybody feel uncomfortable. The men knew not where to look, yet
-no one ventured to argue the point. The passengers pretended that
-remarks so senseless deserved no reply, but it was evident by the
-expression of their faces and their wandering eyes that they felt
-ashamed. I noticed the same in regard to the soldiers. They knew
-well enough that they were going about an evil business, and they
-preferred not to think of what was before them. When the timber
-merchant, insincerely, in my opinion, and simply by way of showing
-his superior knowledge, began to speak of the necessity of these
-measures, the soldiers who heard him turned away frowning, and
-pretended not to listen to him.
-
-The landowner, his steward, the minister, the Czar, all who are
-parties to this business, those who were traveling by this train,
-even those who, taking no part in the affair, were but lookers-on,
-all really know it to be wicked. Why, then, do they do these things,
-why do they repeat them, why do they permit them to be?
-
-Ask the landowner who started the affair; the judge who rendered a
-decision legal in form, but absolutely unjust; and those who, like
-the soldiers and the peasants, will, with their own hands, execute
-this work of beating and murdering their brothers,--all of them,
-instigators, administrators, and executioners, will make essentially
-the same reply.
-
-The officials will say that the present system requires to be
-supported in this manner, and it is for this reason that they do
-these things, because the good of the country, the welfare of
-mankind in general, of social life and civilization, demand it.
-
-The soldiers, men of the lower classes, who are forced to execute
-this violence with their own hands, will answer that the higher
-authorities, who are supposed to know their business, have commanded
-it, and that it is for them to obey. It never occurs to them to
-question the capacity of those who represent the higher authorities.
-If the possibility of error is ever admitted, it is only in the case
-of some subordinate authority; the higher power whence all things
-emanate is supposed to be absolutely infallible.
-
-Thus, while attributing their actions to various motives, both
-principals and subordinates agree that the existing order is the one
-best suited to the present time, and that it is the sacred duty of
-every man to maintain it.
-
-This assurance of the necessity and immutability of the existing
-order is continually advanced by all participators in violence
-committed by the State, and that, as the existing order never can be
-changed, the refusal of a single individual to perform the duties
-imposed on him will make no difference as far as the fundamental
-principle is concerned, and will only result in the substitution of
-another who may be more cruel and do more harm.
-
-This belief that the existing order is immutable, and that it is
-the sacred duty of every man to lend it support, encourages every
-man of good moral character to take part, with a conscience more or
-less clear, in such affairs as that which occurred in Orel, and the
-one in which those in the train for Tula were going to take part.
-
-On what, then, is this belief founded?
-
-It is but natural that it should seem pleasant and desirable to a
-landowner to believe that the existing order is indispensable and
-immutable, because it secures to him the income from his hundreds
-and thousands of _dessiatins_ by which his idle and luxurious
-existence is maintained.
-
-It is also natural that the judge should willingly admit the
-necessity of a system through which he receives fifty times more
-than the most hard-working laboring man. And the same may be said
-in regard to the other higher functionaries. It is only while the
-present system endures that he, as governor, procureur, senator,
-or member of the council, can receive his salary of several
-thousands, without which he and his family would certainly perish;
-for outside the place which he fills, more or less well according
-to his abilities and diligence, he could command only a fraction of
-what he receives. The ministers, the head of the State, and every
-person in high authority are all alike in this, save that the higher
-their rank, the more exclusive their position, the more important
-it becomes that they should believe no order possible, except that
-which now exists; for were it overthrown, not only would they find
-it impossible to gain similar positions, but they would fall lower
-in the scale than other men. The man who voluntarily hires himself
-out as a policeman for ten roubles a month, a sum which he could
-easily earn in any other position, has but little interest in the
-preservation of the existing system, and therefore may or may not
-believe in its immutability.
-
-But the king or emperor, who receives his millions, who knows that
-around him there are thousands of men envious to take his place, who
-knows that from no other quarter could he draw such an income or
-receive such homage, that, if overthrown, he might be judged for
-abuse of power,--there is neither king nor emperor who can help
-believing in the immutability and sanctity of the existing order.
-The higher the position in which a man is placed, the more unstable
-it is; and the more perilous and frightful the possible downfall,
-the more firmly will he believe in the immutability of the existing
-order; and he is able to do wicked and cruel deeds with a perfectly
-peaceful conscience, because he persuades himself that they are
-done, not for his own benefit, but for the support of the existing
-order.
-
-And so it is with every individual in authority, from obscure
-policemen to the man who occupies the most exalted rank,--the
-positions they occupy being more advantageous than those which they
-might be capable of filling if the present system did not exist. All
-these men believe more or less in its immutability, because it is
-advantageous to them.
-
-But what influences the peasants, the soldiers, who stand on
-the lowest rung of the ladder and who derive no advantage from
-the existing system, who are in the most enslaved and degraded
-condition; what induces them to believe that the existing order,
-which serves to keep them in this inferior position, is the best,
-and one which should be maintained; and why are they willing,
-in order to promote this end, to violate their consciences by
-committing wicked deeds?
-
-What urges them to the false conclusion that the existing order is
-immutable and ought therefore to be maintained, when the fact is
-that its immutability is due only to their own effort to maintain it?
-
-Why do those men, taken from the plow, whom we see masquerading in
-ugly, objectionable uniforms, with blue collars and gold buttons, go
-about armed with muskets and sabers to kill their famishing fathers
-and brothers? They derive no advantage from their present position;
-they would be no losers were they deprived of it, since it is worse
-than the one from which they were taken.
-
-Those in authority belonging to the higher classes, the landowners
-and merchants, the judges, senators, governors, ministers, and
-kings, the officials in general, participate in such actions and
-maintain the present system, because such a system is for their
-interest. Often enough they are kind-hearted and gentle men. They
-play no personal part in these acts; all they do is to institute
-inquiries, pronounce judgments, and issue commands. Those in
-authority do not themselves execute the deeds which they have
-devised and ordered. They but rarely see in what manner these
-dreadful deeds are executed. But the unfortunate members of the
-lower classes, who receive no benefit from the existing system, who,
-on the other hand, find themselves greatly despised because of the
-duties which they perform in order that a system which is opposed to
-their own interests may be maintained,--they who tear men from the
-bosom of their families to send them to the galleys, who bind and
-imprison them, who stand on guard over them, who shoot them, why do
-they do this? What is it that compels these men to believe that the
-existing order is immutable, and that it is their duty to maintain
-it? Violence exists only because there are those who with their
-own hands maltreat, bind, imprison, and murder. If there were no
-policemen, or soldiers, or armed men of any sort ready when bidden
-to use violence and to put men to death, not one of those who sign
-death-warrants, or sentence for imprisonment for life or hard labor
-in the galleys, would ever have sufficient courage himself to hang,
-imprison, or torture one thousandth part of those whom now, sitting
-in their studies, these men calmly order to be hung or tortured,
-because they do not see it done, they do not do it themselves. Their
-servants do it for them in some far-away corner.
-
-All these deeds of injustice and cruelty have become an integral
-part of the existing system of life, only because there are men ever
-ready to execute them. If there were no such men, the multitude of
-human beings who are now the victims of violence would be spared,
-and furthermore, the magistrates would never dare to issue, nor even
-dream of issuing, those commands which they now send forth with
-such assurance. If there were no men to obey the will of others
-and to execute commands to torture and murder, no one would ever
-dare to defend the declaration so confidently made by landowners
-and men of leisure; namely, that the land lying on all sides of
-the unfortunate peasants, who are perishing for the want of it, is
-the property of the man who does not till it, and that reserves
-of grain, fraudulently obtained, are to be held intact amidst a
-famine-stricken and dying population, because the merchant must
-have his profit. If there were no men ready at the bidding of the
-authorities to torture and murder, the landowner would never dream
-of seizing a forest which had been tended by the peasants; nor would
-officials consider themselves entitled to salaries paid to them from
-money wrung from the famished people whom they oppress, or which
-they derive for the prosecution, imprisonment, and exile of men who
-denounce falsehood and preach the truth.
-
-All this is done because those in authority well know that they have
-always at hand submissive agents ready to obey their commands to
-outrage and to murder.
-
-It is to this crowd of submissive slaves, ready to obey all orders,
-that we owe the deeds of the whole series of tyrants, from Napoleon
-to the obscure captain who bids his men fire upon the people. It is
-through the agency of policemen and soldiers (especially the latter,
-since the former can act only when supported by military force)
-that these deeds of violence are committed. What, then, has induced
-those who are by no means benefited by doing with their hands
-these dreadful deeds,--what is it that has led these kindly men
-into an error so gross that they actually believe that the present
-system, which is so distressing, so baleful, so fatal, is the one
-best suited to the times? Who has led them into this extraordinary
-aberration?
-
-They can never have persuaded themselves that a course which is not
-only painful and opposed to their interests, but which is fatal
-to their class, which forms nine-tenths of the entire population,
-one which, too, is opposed to their conscience, is right. "What
-reason can you give for killing men, when God's commandment says,
-'Thou shalt not kill'?" is a question I have often put to different
-soldiers. And it always embarrassed them to have a question put
-which recalled what they would rather not remember.
-
-They knew that the divine law forbade murder,--_thou shalt not
-kill_,--and they had always known of this compulsory military duty,
-but had never thought of one as contradictory to the other. The
-hesitating replies to my question were usually to the effect that
-the act of killing a man in war and the execution of criminals by
-order of the government were not included in the general prohibition
-against murder. But when I rejoined that no such limitation existed
-in the law of God, and cited the Christian doctrine of brotherhood,
-the forgiveness of injuries, the injunction to love one's neighbor,
-all of which precepts are quite contrary to murder, the men of the
-lower class would usually agree with me and ask, "How then can it be
-that the government (which they believe cannot err) sends troops to
-war and orders the execution of criminals?" When I replied that this
-was a mistake on the part of the government, my interlocutors became
-still more uncomfortable, and either dropped the conversation or
-showed annoyance.
-
-"Probably there is a law for it. I should think the bishops know
-more than you do," a Russian soldier once said to me. And he
-evidently felt relieved, confident that his superiors had found a
-law, one that had authorized his ancestors and their successors,
-millions of men like himself, to serve the State, and that the
-question I had asked is in the nature of a conundrum.
-
-Every man in Christendom has undoubtedly been taught by tradition,
-by revelation, and by the voice of conscience, which can never be
-gainsaid, that murder is one of the most heinous crimes men can
-commit; it is thus affirmed in the gospel, and they know that this
-sin of murder is not altered by conditions--that is to say, if it
-is sinful to kill one man, it is sinful to kill another. Any man
-knows that, if murder be a sin, it is not changed by the character
-or position of the man against whom it is committed, which is the
-case also with adultery, theft, and all other sins, and yet men are
-accustomed from childhood to see murder, not only acknowledged, but
-blessed by those whom they are taught to regard as their spiritual
-directors appointed by Christ, and to know that their temporal
-leaders, with calm assurance, countenance the custom of murder, and
-summon all men, in the name of the law and even the name of God, to
-its participation. Men perceive the existence of an inconsistency,
-but finding themselves unable to discern its cause, they naturally
-attribute the idea to their own ignorance. The obviousness and
-crudity of the contradiction confirms them in this belief. They
-cannot imagine that their superiors and teachers, even the
-scientists, could advocate with so much assurance two principles so
-utterly at variance as the command to follow the law of Christ, and
-the requirement to commit murder. No pure-minded, innocent child, no
-youth, could imagine that men who stand so high in his esteem, whom
-he looks upon with such reverence, could for any purpose deceive him
-so unscrupulously.
-
-And yet it is this very deception which is constantly practised. In
-the first place, to all working-men, who have personally no time to
-analyze moral and religious problems, it is taught from childhood,
-by example and precept, that tortures and murders are compatible
-with Christianity, and in certain cases they should not only be
-permitted, but must be employed; in the second place, to certain
-among them, engaged in the army either through conscription or
-voluntarily, it is conveyed that the accomplishment with their own
-hands of torture or homicide is not only their sacred duty, but a
-glorious exploit, meriting praise and recompense.
-
-This universal deception is propagated by all catechisms or their
-substitutes, those books which at the present time teachers are
-compelled to use in the instruction of the young. It is taught that
-violence,--outrage, imprisonment, execution,--the murder that takes
-place in civil or in foreign war, has for its object the maintenance
-and security of the political organization,--whether this be an
-absolute or a constitutional monarchy, consulate, republic, or
-commune,--that it is perfectly legitimate, and that it is in
-contradiction neither to morality nor Christianity.
-
-And men are so firmly convinced of this that they grow up, live, and
-die in the belief, never for a moment doubting it.
-
-So much for this universal deception. And now for another, which is
-special, and practised upon soldiers and police, the instruments by
-whose agency outrages and murders, necessary for the support and
-maintenance of the existing order, are accomplished.
-
-The military rules and regulations of every country are practically
-the same as those formulated in the Russian military code.
-
-"87. To fulfil exactly, and without comment, the orders of the
-superior officers, means--to execute orders with precision, without
-considering whether they are good or bad, or whether their execution
-be possible. Only the superior is responsible for the consequences
-of his order.
-
-"88. The only occasion on which the inferior should not obey the
-order of his superior is when he sees plainly that in obeying it
-..." (Here one naturally thinks it will surely go on to say when
-he plainly sees that in fulfilling the order of his superior he
-violates the law of God. Not at all; it goes on to say:) "_sees
-plainly that he violates the oath of allegiance and duty to his
-sovereign_."
-
-It is stated in the code that a man, in becoming a soldier, can and
-must execute _all_ the orders, without exception, which he receives
-from his superior; orders which, for a soldier, are for the most
-part connected with murder. He may violate every law, human and
-divine, as long as he does not violate his oath of allegiance to him
-who, at a given time, happens to be in power.
-
-Thus it stands in the Russian military code, and this is the
-substance of the military codes of other nations. It could not be
-otherwise. The foundations of the power of the State rest upon the
-delusion by means of which men are set free from their obligations
-to God and to their own consciences, and bound to obey the will of a
-casual superior.
-
-This is the basis of the appalling conviction that prevails among
-the lower classes, that the existing system, so ruinous to them, is
-necessary and justifiable, and that it must be maintained by outrage
-and murder.
-
-This is inevitable. In order to force the lower, the more numerous
-classes to act as their own oppressors and tormentors, to commit
-deeds contrary to their consciences, it is necessary to deceive them.
-
-And this is done.
-
-Not long since I saw again put into practice this shameful
-deception, and again wondered to see it effected without opposition
-and so audaciously.
-
-In the beginning of November, on my way through Tula, I saw at the
-gates of the _Zemskaya Uprava_ the familiar dense crowd of men and
-women, from which issued the sounds of drunken voices, blended with
-the heartrending sobs of the wives and mothers.
-
-The military conscription was in progress.
-
-As usual, I could not pass by without pausing; the sight attracts me
-as by fascination.
-
-Again I mingled with the crowd, and stood looking on, questioning,
-and marveling at the facility with which this most terrible of all
-offenses is committed in broad daylight, and in the midst of a large
-city.
-
-On the first day of November, in every village in Russia, with its
-population of one hundred millions, the _starostas_,[27] according
-to custom, take the men whose names are entered on the rolls,
-frequently their own sons, and carry them to town.
-
- [27] Elders.
-
-On the way the men drink freely, unchecked by the elder men; they
-realize that entering upon this insane business of leaving their
-wives and mothers, giving up everything that is sacred to them, only
-to become the senseless tools of murder, is too painful if one's
-senses are not stupefied with wine.
-
-And thus they journey on, carousing, brawling, singing, and
-fighting. The night is spent in a tavern, and on this morning,
-having drunk still more, they assemble before the house of the
-_Uprava_.
-
-Some in new sheepskin coats, with knit mufflers wound round their
-necks, some with their eyes swollen with drinking, some noisy and
-boisterous, by way of stimulating their courage, others silent and
-woebegone, they were gathered near the gates, surrounded by their
-wives and mothers with tear-stained faces, awaiting their turn (I
-happened to be there on the day when the recruits were received,
-that is to say, the day on which they were examined), while others
-were crowding the entry of the office.
-
-Meanwhile they are hurrying on the work within. A door opens and
-the guard calls for Piotr Sidorov. Piotr Sidorov makes the sign of
-the cross, looks around with a startled gaze, and opening a glass
-door, he enters the small room where the recruits take off their
-clothes. The man before him, his friend, who has just been enrolled,
-has but this moment stepped out of the office stark naked, and
-with chattering teeth hastens to put on his clothes. Piotr Sidorov
-has heard, and can plainly see by the look on his face, that the
-man has been enlisted. He longs to question him, but he is ordered
-to undress as quickly as possible. He pulls off his sheepskin
-coat, drops his waistcoat and his shirt, and with prominent ribs,
-trembling and reeking with the odors of liquor, tobacco, and sweat,
-steps barefooted into the office, wondering what he shall do with
-his large sinewy hands.
-
-A portrait of the Emperor in uniform, with a ribbon across his
-breast, in a large golden frame, hangs in a conspicuous place, while
-a small ikon of Christ, clad in a loose garment, with the crown of
-thorns on his head, hangs in one corner. In the middle of the room
-is a table covered with a green cloth on which papers are lying,
-and on which stands a small three-cornered object surmounted by
-an eagle and called the mirror of justice. Around the table the
-officials sit tranquilly. One smokes, another turns over the papers.
-As soon as Sidorov enters a guard comes up and measures him. His
-chin is raised and his feet are adjusted. Then a man who is smoking
-a cigarette--the doctor--approaches him, and without glancing at
-his face, but gazing in another direction, touches his body with an
-expression of disgust, measures him, orders the guard to open his
-mouth, tells him to breathe, and then proceeds to dictate to another
-man who takes down the minutes. Finally, and still without even one
-glance at his face, the doctor says: "He will do! The next!" and
-with a wearied air he seats himself at the table. Once more the
-guard hustles him about, bidding him to make haste. Somehow or other
-he pulls on his shirt, fumbling for the sleeves, hastily gets on his
-trousers, wraps his feet in the rags he uses for stockings, pulls on
-his boots, hunts for his muffler and cap, tucks his sheepskin coat
-under his arm, and is escorted to that part of the hall which is
-fenced off by a bench, where the recruits who have been admitted are
-placed. A young countryman like himself, but from another, far-away
-government, who is a soldier already, with a musket to which a
-bayonet is attached, guards him, ready to run him through the body
-if he should attempt to escape.
-
-Meanwhile the crowd of fathers, mothers, and wives, hustled by
-policemen, presses around the gates, trying to find out who has been
-taken and who rejected. A man who has been rejected comes out and
-tells them that Piotr has been admitted; then is heard the cry of
-Piotr's young wife, for whom this word means a four or five years'
-separation, and the dissolute life such as a soldier's wife in
-domestic service is.
-
-But here comes a man with flowing hair and dressed differently from
-the others, who has just arrived; he descends from his droschky and
-goes toward the house of the _Zemskaya Uprava_, while the policemen
-clear a way for him through the crowd.
-
-"The Father has arrived to swear them in." And this "Father,"
-who has always been accustomed to believe himself a special and
-privileged servant of Christ, and who is usually quite unconscious
-of his false position, enters the room where the recruits who have
-been admitted are waiting for him; he puts on, as a vestment, a sort
-of brocade curtain, disengages from it his flowing hair, opens the
-Bible wherein an oath is forbidden, lifts the cross, that cross on
-which Christ was crucified for refusing to do what this person, his
-supposed servant, commands men to do, and all these defenseless and
-deluded young men repeat after him the lie so familiar to his lips,
-which he utters with such assurance. He reads while they repeat:
-"I promise and swear to the Lord Almighty, upon His holy Bible,"
-etc. ... to defend (that is, to murder all those whom I shall be
-ordered to murder) and to do whatever those men, strangers to me,
-who regard me only as a necessary tool to be used in perpetrating
-the outrages by which they oppress my brethren and preserve their
-own positions, command me to do. All the recruits having stupidly
-repeated the words, the so-called Father departs, quite sure that
-he has performed his duty in the most accurate and conscientious
-manner, while the young men deluded by him really believe that by
-the absurd, and to them almost unintelligible, words which they have
-just uttered, they are released during their term of service from
-all obligations to their fellow-men, and are bound by new and more
-imperative ties to the duties of a soldier.
-
-And this is done publicly, but not a man comes forward to say to the
-deceived and the deceivers, "Come to your senses and go your way;
-this is all a base and treacherous lie; it imperils not only your
-bodies, but your souls."
-
-No one does this. On the contrary, as if in derision, after they
-have all been enrolled and are about to depart, the colonel enters
-the hall where these poor, drunken, and deluded creatures are locked
-in, and with a solemn air, calls out to them in military fashion:
-"Good day, men! I congratulate you upon entering _the Czar's
-service_." And they, poor fellows, mumble in their semi-drunken way,
-a reply which has already been taught them, to the effect that it
-fills their hearts with joy.
-
-The expectant crowd of fathers, mothers, and wives is still standing
-at the gates. Women, with tear-worn, wide-open eyes, watch the door.
-Suddenly it opens and the men come rolling out, assuming an air of
-bravado, the Petruhas, Vanuhas, and Makars, now enrolled, trying
-to avoid the eyes of their relatives, pretending not to see them.
-At once break out the sobs and cries of the wives and mothers.
-Some of the men clasp them in their arms, weeping, some put on a
-devil-may-care look, others make an attempt to console them. The
-wives, the mothers, realizing that they are now abandoned, without
-support, for three or four years, cry and wail bitterly. The fathers
-say little; they only sigh and make a clicking sound with their
-tongues that indicates their grief; they know that they are about
-to lose that help which they have reared and trained their sons to
-render; that when their sons return they will no longer be sober and
-industrious laborers, but soldiers, weaned from their former life of
-simplicity, grown dissolute, and vain of their uniforms.
-
-Now the whole crowd has departed, driving down the street in
-sleighs to the taverns and inns, and louder grows the chorus of
-mingled sobs, songs, and drunken cries, the moaning and muttering
-of the wives and mothers, the sounds of the accordion, the noise of
-altercations.
-
-All repair to the eating-houses and taverns, from the traffic of
-which part of the revenue of the government is derived, and there
-they give themselves up to drink, stupefying their senses so that
-they care nothing for the injustice done to them.
-
-Then they spend several weeks at home, drinking nearly all the time.
-
-When the day arrives, they are driven like cattle to the appointed
-place, where they are drilled in military exercises by those who a
-few years ago, like themselves, were deceived and brutalized. During
-the instructions the means employed are lying, blows, and _vodka_.
-And before the year is over the good, kindly, and intelligent
-fellows will have become as brutal as their teachers.
-
-"Suppose your father were arrested and attempted escape," I once
-suggested to a young soldier, "what would you do?"
-
-"It would be my duty to thrust my bayonet through his body," he
-replied, in the peculiar, meaningless monotone of the soldier. "And
-if he ran I should shoot," he added, taking pride apparently in
-thinking what he should do if his father attempted to run.
-
-When a good young fellow is reduced to a condition lower than
-that of the brute, he is ready for those who wish to use him as
-an instrument of violence. He is ready. The man is lost, and a
-new instrument of violence has been created. And all this goes on
-throughout Russia in the autumn of every year, in broad daylight, in
-the heart of a great city, witnessed by all the inhabitants, and the
-stratagem is so skilfully managed, that though men at the bottom of
-their hearts realize its infamy, still they have not the power to
-throw off the yoke.
-
-After our eyes are once opened, and we view this frightful delusion
-in its true light, it is astonishing that preachers of Christianity
-and morality, teachers of youth, or even those kindly and sensible
-parents who are to be found in every community, can advocate
-any principles of morality whatever in the midst of a society
-where torture and murder are openly recognized as constituting
-indispensable conditions in human life,--openly acknowledged by all
-churches and governments,--where certain men among us must be always
-ready to murder their brethren, and where any of us may have to do
-the same.
-
-Not to speak of Christian doctrine, how are children, how are
-youths, how are any to be taught morality, while the principle that
-murder is required in order to maintain the general welfare is
-taught; when men are made to believe that murder is lawful, that
-some men, and any of us may be among them, must kill and torture
-their neighbors, and commit every kind of crime at the command of
-those in authority? If this principle is right, then there is not,
-nor can there be, any doctrine of morality; might is right, and
-there is no other law. This principle, which some seek to justify
-on the hypothesis of the struggle for existence, in fact dominates
-society.
-
-What kind of moral doctrine can that be which permits murder for any
-object whatsoever? It is as impossible as a mathematical problem
-which would affirm that 2 = 3. It may be admitted that 2 = 3 looks
-like mathematics, but it is not mathematics at all. Every code of
-morals must be founded first of all upon the acknowledgment that
-human life is to be held sacred.
-
-The doctrine of an eye for an eye, a tooth for a tooth, and a life
-for a life, has been revoked by Christianity because that doctrine
-was but the justification of immorality, a semblance of justice, but
-without meaning. Life is a substance which can neither be weighed,
-measured, nor compared; hence the taking of one life for another has
-no sense. Moreover, the aim of every social law is amelioration of
-human life. How, then, can the destruction of certain lives improve
-the condition of other lives? The destruction of life is not an act
-that tends to improve it; it is suicide.
-
-To destroy human life, and call it justice, may be likened to the
-act of a man who, having lost one arm, cuts off the other, by way of
-making matters even.
-
-Not to speak of the deceit of presenting the most shocking crimes in
-the light of a duty, of the shocking abuse of using Christ's name
-and authority in order to confirm acts which he condemned, how can
-men, looking at the matter from the standpoint merely of personal
-safety, suffer the existence of the shocking, senseless, cruel, and
-dangerous force which every organized government, supported by the
-army, represents?
-
-The most violent and rapacious band of robbers is less to be
-feared than such an organization. Even the authority of the leader
-of a band of robbers is more or less limited by the will of each
-individual member of the band, who, retaining a certain degree of
-independence, has the right to oppose acts with which he does not
-agree. But the authority of men who form part of an organized
-government, maintained by the army with its present system of
-discipline, is unlimited. When their master, be he Boulanger,
-Pugatchov, or Napoleon, issues his commands, there is no crime too
-hideous for those who form part of the government and the army to
-commit.
-
-It must often occur to one who sees conscriptions, drills, and
-military manoeuvers taking place, who sees police going about with
-loaded revolvers, sentinels armed with bayonets,--to one who hears
-from morning till night, as I do (in the district of Hamovniky,[28]
-where I live), the whirring balls and the concussion as they
-strike the target,--to ask why these things are tolerated. And
-when one sees in the same city, where every attempt at violence is
-at once suppressed, where even the sale of powder or medicines is
-prohibited, where a doctor is not allowed to practice without a
-diploma, thousands of disciplined men, controlled by one individual,
-being trained for murder, one cannot help asking how men who have
-any regard for their own safety can calmly endure such a condition
-of affairs, and allow it to continue? Leaving aside the question
-of the immorality and pernicious influence of it, what could be
-more dangerous? What are they thinking of,--I speak not now of
-Christians, Christian pastors, philanthropists, or moralists, but
-simply those who value their lives, their safety, their welfare?
-Granting that power is at present in the hands of a moderate
-ruler, it may fall to-morrow into those of a Biron, an Elizabeth,
-a Catharine, a Pugatchov, a Napoleon. And even though the ruler be
-moderate to-day, he may become a mere savage to-morrow; he may be
-succeeded by an insane or half-insane heir, like the King of Bavaria
-or the Emperor Paul.
-
- [28] In Moscow.
-
-It is not only those who fill the highest offices, but all the
-lesser authorities scattered over the land--the chiefs of police,
-the commanders of companies, even the _stanovoys_[29]--may commit
-shocking crimes before they can be dismissed; it is an everyday
-occurrence.
-
- [29] Chiefs of rural police.
-
-Involuntarily one asks: How can men allow these things to go on? How
-can they tolerate them with any regard to their own personal safety?
-
-It may be replied that some men do oppose it. (Those who are
-deluded and live in subjection have nothing either to tolerate or
-interdict.) Those who favor the continuance of the present system
-are only those who derive some special advantage from it. They
-favor it, and even with the disadvantages of having an insane
-or tyrannical man at the head of the government and the army,
-the position is less disadvantageous to them than if the present
-organization were abolished.
-
-Whether his position be held under a Boulanger, a Republic, a
-Pugatchov, or a Catharine,--the judge, the police commissioner, the
-governor, the officer, will remain in it. But if the system which
-assures their positions were overthrown, they would lose them.
-Therefore it is a matter of indifference to these men whether one
-man or another be at the head of the organization of violence. What
-they do fear is its abolition; so they support it.
-
-One wonders why men of independent means, who are not obliged to
-become soldiers, the so-called _elite_ of society, enter military
-service in Russia, in England, in Germany, in Austria, and even in
-France, and desire the chance of killing? Why do parents, why do
-moral men, send their children to military schools? Why do mothers
-buy them such toys as helmets, swords, and muskets? (No child of
-a peasant ever plays at being a soldier.) Why do kindly men and
-women, who can have no manner of interest in war, go into ecstasies
-over the exploits of a man like Skobelev? Why do men who are
-under no obligation to do it, and who receive no pay for it, like
-Marshals of Nobility in Russia, devote months to the service which
-demands such unremitting labor, wearying to the minds as well as
-to the body,--the enlistment of recruits? Why do all emperors and
-kings wear a military dress, why do they have drills and parades
-and military rewards? Why are monuments built to generals and
-conquerors? Why do wealthy and independent men regard it as an
-honor to occupy the position of lackeys to kings, to flatter them
-and feign a belief in their special superiority? Why do men who
-have long since ceased to believe in the medieval superstitions
-of the Church still constantly and solemnly pretend to do so,
-and thus support a sacrilegious and demoralizing institution?
-Why is the ignorance of the people so zealously preserved, not
-only by the government, but by men of the higher classes? Why do
-they so energetically denounce every attempt to overthrow popular
-superstition and to promote popular education? Why do historians,
-novelists, and poets, who can derive no benefit in exchange for
-their flattery, paint in such glowing colors the emperors, kings,
-and generals of bygone times? Why do the so-called scientists devote
-their lives to formulate theories that violence committed on the
-people by power is legitimate violence--is right?
-
-One often wonders why an artist or a woman of the world, neither of
-whom, it would seem, ordinarily take much interest in sociological
-or military questions--why should they condemn strikes among
-workmen, or advocate war with such partizan zeal?
-
-But one ceases to feel surprise when one realizes that the members
-of the higher classes possess the keenest insight, an intuitive
-perception, as it were, concerning those conditions which are
-friendly and those which are hostile to the organization upon whose
-existence their privileges depend.
-
-It is true that the woman of society does not deliberately argue
-thus: "Were there no capitalists, or armies to defend them, my
-husband would have no money, and I should have neither _salon_
-nor fashionable gowns;" nor does the artist tell himself, in
-so many words, that if his pictures are to be sold there must
-be capitalists, defended by armies, to buy them; yet instinct,
-here doing duty for reason, is their surest guide. This instinct
-guides, with rare exceptions, all men who support those political,
-religious, and economic institutions which are advantageous to
-themselves.
-
-But is it possible that men who belong to the higher classes defend
-this organization only because it is for their own advantage? They
-surely cannot fail to see that as an organization it is irrational,
-incompatible with the present consciousness of men, with public
-opinion, and that it is fraught with danger. Good, intelligent,
-honest men who belong to the ruling class cannot but suffer from
-such contradictions, nor can they close their eyes to the dangers
-that menace them.
-
-And is it possible that the millions of men of the lower classes
-can go on calmly committing deeds which are so manifestly criminal,
-such as are the murders and tortures which they commit, simply from
-fear of punishment? Surely these things could not exist were not the
-falsehood and brutality of their actions hidden from all classes of
-men by the system of the political organization.
-
-When such deeds are committed, there are so many instigators,
-participants, and abettors that no single individual feels himself
-morally responsible.
-
-Assassins compel all the witnesses of an assassination to strike
-the body of the victim, with the intention of dividing the
-responsibility among the greatest number possible. And whenever
-those crimes by the aid of which the state system is maintained are
-to be committed, this same thing is observed. The rulers of State
-always endeavor to involve the greatest possible number of citizens
-in the participation of the crimes which it is to their interest to
-have committed.
-
-In these latter days this is made especially evident by the
-drawing of citizens on the jury in courts of law, by drafting them
-into the army as soldiers, and into the communal or legislative
-administration as electors or elected.
-
-As in a wicker basket all the ends are so carefully interwoven that
-they cannot be seen, so is it with the responsibility for crime.
-Individual responsibilities are so manipulated that no man perceives
-precisely what he is incurring.
-
-In olden times tyrants were responsible for the crimes which were
-committed, but in the present age the most frightful crimes are
-perpetrated, such as would hardly have been possible in the time of
-Nero, and still no one is held responsible.
-
-Some demand the crime, some propose it, some determine it, some
-confirm it, some order it, some execute it.
-
-Women and old men are hung, are flogged to death--even quite
-innocent people, as was recently the case with us in Russia, in
-the affair of the factory at Uzova; or, as is done all over in
-Europe and America, in the struggle with anarchists and other
-revolutionists, hundreds, thousands of men are shot, are killed;
-or, as happens in time of war, millions of men are massacred; or,
-as is happening always, the souls of men are destroyed by solitary
-confinement, by the debauchery of barrack life--and no one is
-responsible.
-
-On the lower scale of the social ladder are posted soldiers armed
-with muskets, pistols, swords; they go about doing violence and
-killing, and through their doing so force other men to become
-soldiers like themselves, and yet they never dream that the
-responsibility rests on their shoulders; they shift it on to their
-superiors, who give the orders.
-
-The czars, the presidents, the ministers of State, the general
-assemblies, order tortures, murders, conscriptions, and as they
-enjoy the absolute assurance that they rule by the grace of God
-or by the will of the society they govern, and that that society
-demands from them what they order, they cannot regard themselves as
-responsible.
-
-Between these two classes we find a number of intermediaries, who
-take charge of the executions, tortures, conscriptions, and they,
-too, wash their hands of all responsibility, alleging on the one
-hand the orders of their superiors, and on the other that it is for
-such as themselves, who stand lower on the social ladder, to do
-these things.
-
-The power that demands and the power that fulfils commands, the two
-extremes of governmental organization, unite like the two ends of
-a chain, each depending on and supporting the other, and all the
-intervening links.
-
-Were it not for the conviction that there are men who assume the
-whole responsibility of such deeds, no soldier would lift his hand
-to torture or murder his fellow-man. Were it not for the conviction
-that the nation demands it, no king, emperor, president, or assembly
-would venture to issue commands for murder and torture. Were it
-not that he believes that there are men above him who assume the
-responsibility of his actions, and others below him whose welfare
-requires this treatment, no man of the intermediate class would ever
-perform the functions committed to him.
-
-The organization of the State is such that on whatever position of
-the social ladder a man may stand, his irresponsibility remains
-intact. The higher he stands, the more liable he is to feel the
-pressure brought to bear on him from below, urging him to issue
-commands, and the less likely he will be to be influenced by orders
-from above, and _vice versa_.
-
-But it is not enough that all men bound by the organization of the
-State transfer their responsibility from one to the other,--the
-peasant, for instance, who becomes a soldier to the merchant who
-has become an officer; the officer to the noble who occupies the
-position of governor; the governor to the minister of State; the
-minister to the sovereign; and the sovereign who in his turn
-shifts the responsibility upon all,--officials, nobles, merchants,
-peasants. Not only do men in this way merely free themselves from
-all sense of responsibility for their actions, but because, as
-they adapt themselves to fulfil the requirements of political
-organizations, they so constantly, persistently, and strenuously
-assure themselves and others that all men are not equal that they
-begin to believe it sincerely themselves. Thus we are assured that
-some men are superior and must be especially honored and obeyed;
-while, on the other hand, we are assured in every way that others
-are inferior, and therefore bound to obey without murmur the
-commands of their superiors.
-
-It is to this inequality,--the exaltation of some upon the abasement
-of others,--that we may chiefly attribute the incapacity which men
-display for discerning the folly of the existing system, with the
-cruelty and deceptions committed by some, and suffered by others.
-
-There are certain men who have been made to believe that they are
-possessed of a peculiar importance and greatness, who have become
-so intoxicated by their imaginary superiority that they cease to
-realize their responsibility for the actions they commit; others
-who, on the contrary, have been told that they are insignificant
-beings, and that it is their duty to submit to those above them,
-and, as the natural result of this continual state of degradation,
-fall into a strange condition of stupefied servility, and in this
-state they, too, lose all sense of responsibility for their actions.
-And as to the intermediate class, subservient to those above them,
-and yet to a certain extent regarding themselves as superiors, they
-are apt to be both servile and arrogant, and they also lose the
-sense of responsibility.
-
-One needs but to glance at any official of high rank in the act
-of reviewing the troops. Accompanied by his staff, mounted on
-a magnificently caparisoned charger, equipped in a brilliant
-uniform, displaying all his decorations, he rides in front of
-the ranks, while the band plays martial music and the soldiers
-present arms, standing, as they do, as though verily petrified
-with servility,--one has but to see this to understand how in such
-moments, under such conditions, both generals and soldiers might
-commit deeds which they never would have dreamed of committing.
-
-But the intoxication to which men succumb under conditions like
-parades, pageants, religious ceremonies, and coronations, though
-acute, is not enduring, while there is another which is chronic,
-shared by all who have any authority whatsoever, from the Czar to
-the policemen on the street, shared, too, by the masses who submit
-to authority in a state of stupefied servility, and who by way of
-justifying their submission, after the usual manner of slaves,
-ascribe the greatest importance and dignity to those whom they obey.
-
-It is this delusion in regard to human inequality and the consequent
-intoxication of power and stupefaction of servility, which makes it
-possible for those who are associated in a state organization to
-commit crimes and suffer no remorse.
-
-Under the influence of this intoxication,--there is an intoxication
-of servility as well as of power,--men seem to others, no less than
-to themselves, not the ordinary human beings which they really are,
-but specially privileged beings,--nobles, merchants, governors,
-judges, officers, kings, statesmen, soldiers, having no longer
-ordinary human duties, but only the duties of the class to which
-they belong.
-
-Thus the landed proprietor who prosecuted the peasants on account of
-the forest did so because he did not regard himself as an ordinary
-man, with the same rights as the peasants, his neighbors, but as a
-great landowner and a member of the nobility, and, as such, exalted
-by the intoxication of authority, felt himself insulted by the
-opposition of the peasants. And regardless of the consequences, he
-sends in his petition to be reinstated in his pretended rights. The
-judges who rendered an unfair decision in his favor, did so because
-they fancied themselves different from ordinary men, who are guided
-only by truth; under the spell of the intoxication of authority,
-they believed themselves the guardians of a justice which cannot
-err; and at the same time, under the influence of servility, they
-considered themselves obliged to apply certain texts set forth in a
-certain book and called the laws; and all the other persons who took
-part in this affair, from the representatives of higher authority
-down to the last soldier ready to fire upon his brother,--they all
-accepted themselves in their conventionally accredited characters.
-Not one asked himself if he should take part in an act which his
-conscience reprobated, but each accepted himself as one who had
-simply to fulfil a certain function; let it be the Czar, anointed
-of God, an exceptional being called to look after the welfare of a
-hundred million men; let it be the noble; the priest, the recipient
-of grace through ordination; the soldier, bound by oath to fulfil
-commands without hesitation,--it is the same with all.
-
-All their activity, past, present, and future, is stimulated by a
-like intoxicating influence. If they had not the firm conviction
-that the title of king, statesman, governor, judge, landowner,
-marshal of nobility, officer, or soldier is of serious import and
-necessity, not one of them could contemplate without horror and
-disgust his own share in the deeds done in these latter days.
-
-Arbitrary distinctions, established hundreds of years ago,
-recognized for hundreds of years, described by special names
-and distinguished by special dress, sanctioned by all kinds of
-solemnities calculated to influence men through their emotions, have
-been so thoroughly impressed upon the human imagination that men
-have forgotten the common, everyday aspects of life; they look upon
-themselves and others from a point of view dependent upon outward
-conditions, and regard their own acts and those of their neighbors
-accordingly.
-
-Here, for instance, we see a man of advanced years, a man perfectly
-in possession of his senses, who, because he has been decorated
-with some bauble, and is attired in a ridiculous habit, or because
-he is the holder of certain keys, or has received a bit of blue
-ribbon fitter for the wear of a coquettish child, when he is called
-general, chamberlain, chevalier of the order of St. Andrew, or some
-such absurdity, becomes at once proud, arrogant, happy; if, on the
-contrary, he fails to get the gewgaw or the nickname he expected, he
-becomes unhappy and ill, really to the point of sickness.
-
-Or let us take a still more remarkable case. A man, morally
-sane, young, free, and absolutely safe from want, has no sooner
-received the name of district-attorney, of _Zemsky Nachalnik_,
-than he pounces upon some luckless widow, takes her from her small
-children, and throws her into jail, all because the poor woman has
-been secretly selling wine, and thus depriving the treasury of 25
-roubles' revenue. This man feels no remorse. Another still more
-surprising case is that of a man, ordinarily kind and good, who,
-because he wears a uniform or carries a medal, and is told that he
-is a keeper [_garde-champetre_] or custom-house officer, considers
-himself justified in shooting men down, and no one ever dreams of
-blaming him for it, nor does he think himself in the wrong; but
-if he failed to fire upon his fellow-men he would then indeed be
-culpable. I say nothing of judges and jurymen, who condemn men to
-death, nor of troops, who slaughter thousands without a vestige of
-remorse, because they are told that they are not in the position of
-ordinary men, but are jurymen, judges, generals, soldiers.
-
-This abnormal and surprising state of affairs is formulated in words
-like these: "As a man, I sympathize with him, but as a keeper, a
-judge, a general, a czar, or a soldier, I must torture or murder
-him."
-
-So it is in this present case; men are on the way to slaughter and
-torment their famine-stricken brethren, admitting all the while that
-in this dispute between the peasants and the landowner the former
-are in the right (all the superior officials told me so). They know
-that the peasants are miserable, poor, and hungry, and that the
-landowner is wealthy and one who inspires no sympathy, and yet these
-men are going to kill the peasants in order that this landowner may
-gain 3000 roubles; and all because they regard themselves at the
-moment not as men, but one as a governor, another as a general of
-gendarmerie, another as an officer, or as soldiers, as the case may
-be, and bound not by the eternal laws of the human conscience, but
-by the accidental, transitory demands of their positions.
-
-However strange it may appear, the only explanation of this
-surprising phenomenon is that men are like those under hypnotic
-influence, who, as suggested by the hypnotizers, imagine themselves
-in certain conditions. Thus, for instance, when it is suggested to
-a hypnotized patient that he is lame, he proceeds to limp; that he
-is blind, he ceases to see; that he is an animal, and he begins to
-bite. And this is the state of all those who put their social and
-political duties before, and to the detriment of, their duties as
-human beings.
-
-The essential characteristic of this condition is, that men,
-influenced by the thought that has been suggested to them, are
-unable to weigh their own actions, and simply obey the suggestion
-that has been communicated to them.
-
-The difference between men artificially hypnotized and those under
-the influence of governmental suggestion consists in this,--that
-to the former their imagined environment is suggested suddenly by
-one person, and the suggestion operates only for a short time;
-whereas to the latter, their imagined position has been the result
-of gradual suggestion, going on, not for years, but for generations,
-and proceeds not from a single individual, but from their entire
-circumstances.
-
-"But," it will be objected, "always, in all societies, the majority
-of men, all the children, all the women, absorbed in the duties
-and cares of motherhood, all the great mass of workers, who are
-completely absorbed by their labor, all those of weak mind, all the
-enfeebled, the many who have come under the subjection of nicotine,
-alcohol, opium, or what not,--all these are not in a position to
-think for themselves, and consequently they submit to those who
-stand on a higher intellectual level, or they simply act according
-to domestic or social tradition, or in accordance with public
-opinion,--and in their acting thus there is nothing abnormal or
-contradictory."
-
-Indeed, there is nothing unnatural in it, and the readiness with
-which those who reason but little submit to the guidance of men who
-stand on a higher plane of consciousness is a universal phenomenon,
-and one without which social life could not be. The minority submit
-to principles which they have considered for themselves, and in
-consequence of the accordance of these principles with their reason;
-the rest of men, the majority, submit to the same principles, not
-because of personal apprehension of their validity, but because
-public opinion demands it.
-
-Such submission to public opinion of men who can think but little
-for themselves has nothing abnormal about it so long as public
-opinion maintains its unity.
-
-But there is a period when the higher forms of truth, having been
-revealed to the few, are in process of transmission to the many;
-and when the public opinion which was based on a lower plane of
-consciousness has already begun to waver, to give place to the new,
-ready to be established. And now men begin to view their own and
-other men's actions in the light of their new consciousness, while,
-influenced by inertia and tradition, they still continue to apply
-principles which were the outcome of the once highest consciousness,
-but which are now distinctly opposed to it. Hence it is that men
-find themselves in an abnormal position, and that, while realizing
-the necessity of conforming to this new public opinion, they lack
-courage to abandon conformity to the old one. This is the attitude
-which men, not only the men on the train, but the greater part of
-mankind, occupy toward Christian truths.
-
-The attitude of those who belong to the upper classes, and who have
-all the advantages of high position, is the same as that of the
-lower classes who obey implicitly every command that is given to
-them.
-
-Men of the ruling classes, who have no reasonable explanation of
-their privileges, and who in order to retain them are forced to
-repress all their nobler and more humane tendencies, try to persuade
-themselves of the necessity of their superior position; while the
-lower classes, stultified and oppressed by labor, are kept by the
-higher classes in a state of constant subjection.
-
-This is the only possible explanation of the amazing phenomena
-which I witnessed on the train on the 9th of September, when men,
-naturally kindly and inoffensive, were to be seen going with an easy
-conscience to commit the most cruel, contemptible and idiotic of
-crimes.
-
-It cannot be said that they are devoid of the conscience which
-should forbid them to do these things, as was the case with the men
-who, centuries ago, tortured their fellow-men, scourged them to
-death, and burned them at the stake;--nay, it does exist in them,
-but it is kept dormant; auto-suggestion, as the psychologist calls
-it, keeps it thus among the upper classes, while the soldiers, the
-executioners, are under the hypnotic influence of the classes above
-them.
-
-Conscience may slumber for a time, but it is not dead, and in spite
-of suggestion and auto-suggestion, it still whispers; yet a little
-while and it will awaken.
-
-One might compare these men to a person under the influence of
-hypnotism, to whom it has been suggested that he shall commit some
-act contrary to his conception of right and wrong, as, for example,
-to murder his mother or his child. He feels himself so far coerced
-by the suggestion given him that he cannot refrain; and yet as the
-appointed time and place draw near, he seems to hear the stifled
-voice of conscience reviving, and he begins to draw back, he tries
-to awaken himself. And no one can tell whether or not hypnotic
-suggestion will conquer in the end; all depends on the relative
-strength of conflicting influences.
-
-So it was with the soldiers on that train, so it is with all men of
-our period who take part in state violence and profit by it.
-
-There was a time when, having gone forth to do violence and murder,
-to terrify by an example, men did not return until they had
-performed their mission, and then they suffered no doubt or remorse;
-but having done their fellow-men to death, they placidly returned to
-the bosom of their families, caressed their children, and with jest
-and laughter gave themselves up to all the pure joys of the hearth.
-
-The men who were then benefited by violence, landed proprietors
-and men of wealth, believed their own interests to have a direct
-connection with these cruelties. It is different now, when men know,
-or at least suspect, the real reason why they do these things. They
-may close their eyes and try to silence their consciences, but
-neither those who commit such outrages, nor those who order them,
-can longer fail to discern the significance of their acts. It may
-be that they do not fully appreciate it until they are on the point
-of committing the deed, or in some cases not until after the deed
-has been done. Those soldiers, for instance, who administered the
-tortures during the riot at the Yuzovo factory, at Nijni-Novgorod,
-Saratov, and Orel, did not fully apprehend the significance of what
-they were doing until it was all over; and now, both they who gave
-the orders, and they who executed them, suffer agonies of shame in
-the condemnation of public opinion and of their own conscience. I
-have talked with some of the soldiers about it; they either tried to
-change the subject or spoke of it with horror and repugnance.
-
-There are instances of men coming to their senses, however, just
-as they are on the point of committing deeds of the kind. I know
-of a sergeant who during the riots was beaten by two peasants;
-he reported the fact to the commander of his company, but on the
-following day, when he saw the tortures inflicted upon other
-peasants, he persuaded his superior officer to destroy his report
-and to allow the peasants who had beaten him to depart unpunished.
-I know of a case where the soldiers appointed to shoot a prisoner
-refused to obey; and of other occasions where the superior officers
-have refused to direct tortures and executions.
-
-The men who were in the train on the 9th of September started with
-the intention of torturing and murdering their fellow-men, but
-whether they would carry out their intention one could not know.
-However each one's share in the responsibility of this affair might
-be concealed from him, however strong the hypnotic suggestion
-among those taking part in it that they did so, not as men, but as
-functionaries, and so could violate all human obligations,--in spite
-of this,--the nearer they approached their destination, the more
-they must have hesitated about it.
-
-It is impossible that the Governor should not pause at the moment of
-giving the decisive order to begin to murder and torture. He knows
-that the conduct of the Governor at Orel has excited the indignation
-of the honorable men, and he himself, influenced by public opinion,
-has repeatedly expressed his own disapproval of the affair; he knows
-that the lawyer who ought to have accompanied him distinctly refused
-to do so, denouncing the whole affair as shameful; he knows that
-changes are likely to take place in the government at any moment,
-the result of which would be that those who were in favor yesterday
-may be in disgrace to-morrow; that if the Russian press remains
-silent, the foreign press may give an account of this business that
-might cover him with opprobrium. Already he feels the influence of
-the new public opinion which is to supersede and destroy the old
-one. Moreover, he has no assurance that his subordinates may not at
-the last moment refuse to obey him. He hesitates; it is impossible
-to divine what he will do.
-
-The functionaries and officers who accompany him feel more or less
-as he does. They all know at the bottom of their hearts that they
-are engaged in a shameful business, that their share in it stains
-and degrades them in the eyes of those persons whose opinion they
-value. They know that a man who participates in deeds like these
-feels shame in the presence of the woman he loves. And like the
-Governor, they, too, feel doubtful whether the soldiers will obey
-them at the last moment. What a contrast to the self-assurance of
-their bearing on the platform of the station! Not only do they
-suffer, but they actually hesitate, and it is partly to hide their
-inward agitation that they assume an air of bravado. And this
-agitation increases as they draw nearer to their destination.
-
-And, indeed, the entire body of soldiers, although they give no
-outward sign, and seem utterly submissive, are really in the same
-state of mind.
-
-They are no longer like the soldiers of former days, who gave up the
-natural life of labor, and surrendered themselves to debauchery,
-rapine, and murder, as the Roman legions did, or the veterans of
-the Thirty Years' War, or even those soldiers of more modern times,
-whose term of service lasted twenty-five years. Now they are for
-the most part men newly taken from their families, with all the
-memories of the wholesome, rational life from which they have been
-torn still fresh in their minds.
-
-These young men, peasants for the most part, know what they are
-going to do; they know that the land-owners generally ill-treat the
-peasants, and that this probably is a case in point. Furthermore,
-the majority of them can read, and the books they read are
-not always in favor of the service; some even demonstrate its
-immorality. They find comrades who are independent thinkers,
-volunteers and young officers, and the seed of doubt respecting the
-merit and rectitude of such deeds as they are about to commit has
-already been sown in their minds. True, they have all been subjected
-to that ingenious discipline, the work of centuries, which tends to
-kill the spirit of independence in every man, and are so accustomed
-to automatic obedience that at the words of command, "Fire along the
-line!... Fire!" and so forth, their muskets are raised mechanically,
-and they perform the customary movements. But now, "Fire!" means
-something more than firing at a target; it means the murder of their
-abused, downtrodden fathers and brothers, who are grouped yonder in
-the street with their wives and children, gesticulating and crying
-out one does not know what.
-
-There they are: here a man with thin beard, clad in a patched
-_kaftan_, with bast shoes on his feet, just like the father left
-behind in the province of Kazan or Ryazan; there another, with gray
-beard and bowed shoulders, leaning on a stout staff, just like the
-grandfather; and here a youth, with big boots and red shirt, just
-like himself a year ago,--the soldier who is about to shoot him. And
-there is a woman, with her bast shoes and petticoat, like the mother
-he left behind him.
-
-And he must fire upon them!
-
-And God alone knows what each soldier will do at the supreme moment.
-The slightest suggestion that they ought not to do it, that they
-must not do it,--a single word or hint,--would be enough to make
-them pause.
-
-Every one of these men at the moment of action will be like one
-hypnotized, to whom it has been suggested to chop a log, who, as
-he approaches the object which is told to him is a log, sees as
-he raises the ax that it is not a log at all, but his own brother
-who lies sleeping there. He may accomplish the act which has been
-suggested to him, or he may awake at the moment of committing it.
-It is the same with these men. If they do not awaken, then will a
-deed be done as shocking as that committed in Orel, and the reign of
-official hypnotism will thereby gain new power. If they awaken, then
-not only will the deed remain undone, but many of those who hear
-of their refusal to do it will free themselves from the suggestion
-under whose influence they have hitherto acted, or at least will
-think of the possibility of doing so.
-
-If only a few of these men come to their senses, and refuse to do
-the deed, and fearlessly express their opinion of the wickedness of
-such deeds, even such a few men might enable the rest to throw off
-the suggestion under the influence of which they act, and such evil
-deeds would not be done.
-
-And another thing: if but a few of those persons who are simply
-spectators of the affair would, from their knowledge of other
-affairs of the same kind, boldly express their opinion to those
-engaged in it, and point out to them their folly, cruelty, and
-criminality, even this would not be without a salutary influence.
-
-This is precisely what happened in the case of Tula. Partly because
-certain persons expressed reluctance to take a part in the affair;
-because a lady passenger and others showed their indignation at a
-railway station; because one of the colonels whose regiment was
-summoned to reduce the peasants to obedience declared that soldiers
-are not executioners,--because of these and other apparently
-trifling influences the affair took on a different aspect, and
-the troops, on arriving, did not commit outrages, but contented
-themselves with cutting down the trees and sending them to the
-landowner.
-
-Had it not been that certain of these men conceived a distinct idea
-that they were doing wrong, and had not the idea got abroad, the
-occurrences at Orel would have been repeated. Had the feeling been
-stronger, perhaps the Governor and his troops would not have gone
-so far as even to fell the trees and deliver them to the landowner.
-Had it been more powerful still, perhaps the Governor would not have
-dared even to set out for Tula; its influence might even have gone
-so far as to prevent the Minister from framing, and the Emperor from
-confirming, such decrees.
-
-All depends, as we come therefore to see, upon the degree of
-consciousness that men possess of Christian truth.
-
-Hence, let all men to-day who wish to promote the welfare of mankind
-direct their efforts toward the development of this consciousness of
-Christian truth.
-
-But, strange to say, those men who nowadays talk most of the
-amelioration of human life, and who are the acknowledged leaders
-of public opinion, declare this to be precisely the wrong thing
-to do, and that there are more effectual expedients for improving
-human existence. They insist that any improvement in the conditions
-of human life must be accomplished, not through individual
-moral effort, nor through the propagation of truth, but through
-progressive modifications in the general material conditions of
-life. Therefore, they say, individual effort should be devoted to
-the gradual reform of the everyday conditions of life; and seeing
-that any individual profession of the truth which may happen to
-be incompatible with the existing order is harmful, because it
-provokes, on the part of the government, an opposition which
-prevents the individual from continuing efforts which may be of
-utility to society.
-
-According to this theory, all changes in the life of mankind proceed
-from the same causes that control the lives of the brute creation.
-
-And all the religious teachers, like Moses and the Prophets,
-Confucius, Lao Tze, Buddha, and Christ, preached their doctrines,
-and their followers adopted them, not because they divined and loved
-the truth, but because the political, social, and, above all, the
-economical conditions of the nations in whose midst these doctrines
-found expression were favorable to their exposition and development.
-
-Therefore the principal activity of a man who wishes to serve the
-world and to improve the condition of his kind should be directed,
-according to this theory, not to teaching and profession of the
-truth, but to the improvement of the outward, political, social,
-and, above all, economic conditions of life. The change in these
-conditions may be accomplished by serving the government and
-introducing liberal and progressive principles, by contributing to
-the development of commerce, by propagating socialistic principles,
-but, above all, by promoting the diffusion of science.
-
-According to this doctrine, it is a matter of no consequence whether
-one profess the revealed truth or not; there is no obligation to
-live in accordance with its precepts, or to refrain from actions
-opposed to them,--as, for instance, to serve the government, though
-one considers its power detrimental; to profit by the organization
-of capital, though one disapproves of it; to subscribe to certain
-forms of religion, though one considers them superstitions. Practise
-in the courts of law, though one believes them to be corrupt; or
-enter the army, or take the oath of allegiance, or indeed lie, or
-do anything that is convenient. These things are trivial; for it is
-a matter of vital importance, instead of challenging the prevailing
-customs of the day, to conform to them, though they be contrary
-to one's convictions, satisfied meanwhile to try and liberalize
-the existing institutions, by encouraging commerce, propagating
-socialistic doctrines, and generally promoting _soi-disant_
-science and civilization. According to this convenient theory,
-it is possible for a man to remain a landowner, a merchant, a
-manufacturer, a judge, a functionary paid by the government, a
-soldier, an officer, and at the same time to be humanitarian,
-socialist, and revolutionary.
-
-Hypocrisy, formerly growing only out of such religious doctrines as
-that of original sin, redemption, the Church, has in these latter
-days, by means of the new theory, gained for itself a scientific
-basis, and those whose intellectual habit of mind renders the
-hypocrisy of the Church unendurable, are yet deceived by this new
-hypocrisy with the _cachet_ of science. If in old times a man who
-professed the doctrines taught by the Church could with a clear
-conscience take part in any political crime, and benefit by so
-doing, provided he complied with the external forms of his faith,
-men of the present day, who deny Christianity, and view the conduct
-of life from a secular and scientific standpoint, are every whit as
-sure of their own innocence, even of their lofty morality, when they
-participate in and benefit by the evil-doings of government.
-
-It is not alone in Russia, but in France, England, Germany, and
-America as well, that we find the wealthy landed proprietor, who,
-in return for having allowed the men who live on his estate and who
-supply him with the products of the soil, extorts from these men,
-who are often poverty-stricken, all that he possibly can. Whenever
-these oppressed laborers make an attempt to gain something for
-themselves from the lands which the rich man calls his own, without
-first asking his consent, troops are called out, who torture and put
-to death those who have been bold enough to take such liberties.
-
-By methods like this are claims to the ownership of land made good.
-One would hardly imagine that a man who lived in such a wicked and
-selfish manner could call himself a Christian, or even liberal.
-One would think that if a man cared to seem Christian or liberal,
-he would at least cease to plunder and to torment his fellow-men
-with the aid of the government, in order to vindicate his claims
-to the ownership of land. And such would be the case were it not
-for the metaphysical hypocrisy which teaches that from a religious
-standpoint it is immaterial whether one owns land or not, and that,
-from the scientific point of view, for a single individual to give
-up his land would be a useless sacrifice, without any effect on the
-well-being of mankind, the amelioration of which can only be brought
-about by a progressive modification of outward conditions.
-
-Meanwhile, your modern landowner will, without the least hesitation
-or doubt, organize an agricultural exhibition, or a temperance
-society, or, through his wife and daughters, distribute warm
-underclothing and soup to three old women; and he will hold forth
-before the domestic circle, or in society, or as a member of
-committees, or in the public press, upon the gospel of love for
-mankind in general and the agricultural class in particular, that
-class which he never ceases to torment and oppress. And those who
-occupy a similar position will believe in him and sing his praises,
-and take counsel together upon the best methods of improving the
-condition of those very laboring classes they spend their lives
-in exploiting; and for this purpose they suggest every possible
-expedient, save that which would effect it,--namely, to desist from
-robbing the poor of the land necessary for their subsistence.
-
-(A striking example of this hypocrisy was presented by the Russian
-landowners during the struggle with the famine of last year,[30]
-a famine of which they were themselves the cause, and by which
-they profited, not only by selling bread at the highest price, but
-even by disposing of the dried potato-plants for five roubles a
-_dessiatin_, to be used as fuel by the freezing peasants.)
-
- [30] 1892.
-
-The business of the merchant, again (as is the case with business of
-any kind), is based upon a series of frauds; he takes advantage of
-the necessities of men by buying his merchandise below, and selling
-it above, its value. One would think that a man, the mainspring
-of whose activity is what he himself in his own language calls
-shrewdness, ought to feel ashamed of this, and never dream of
-calling himself Christian or liberal while he continues a merchant.
-But, according to the new metaphysic of hypocrisy, he may pass for
-a virtuous man and still pursue his evil career; the religious man
-has but to believe, the liberal man but to cooperate, in the reform
-of external conditions to promote the general progress of commerce;
-the rest does not signify. So this merchant (who, besides, often
-sells bad commodities, adulterates, and uses false weights and
-measures, or deals exclusively in commodities that imperil human
-life, such as alcohol or opium) frankly considers himself, and is
-considered by others,--always provided he only does not cheat his
-colleagues in business and knavery, his fellow-tradesmen,--a model
-of conscientiousness and honesty. And if he spend one per cent of
-his stolen money on some public institution, hospital, museum,
-or school, men call him the benefactor of the people on whose
-exploitation all his welfare depends; and if he gives but the least
-part of this money to the Church or to the poor, then is he deemed
-an exemplary Christian indeed.
-
-Take again the factory-owner, whose entire income is derived
-from reducing the pay of his workmen to its lowest terms, and
-whose whole business is carried on by forced and unnatural labor,
-endangering the health of generations of men. One would suppose
-that if this man professed Christian or liberal principles he would
-cease to sacrifice human lives to his interests. But, according
-to the existing theory, he encourages industry, and it would be a
-positive injury to society if he were to abandon his operations,
-even supposing he were willing to do so. And, too, this man, the
-cruel slave-driver of thousands of human beings, having built for
-those injured in his service minute houses, with gardens six feet
-in extent, or established a fund, or a home for the aged, or a
-hospital, is perfectly satisfied that he has more than atoned for
-the moral and physical jeopardy into which he has plunged so many
-lives; and he continues to live calmly, proud of his work.
-
-We find that the functionary, civil, military, or ecclesiastical,
-who performs his duties to gratify his selfishness or ambition, or,
-as is more usually the case, for the sake of the stipend, collected
-in the shape of taxes from an exhausted and crippled people,--if,
-by a rare exception, he does not directly steal from the public
-treasury,--considers himself, and is considered by his equals, a
-most useful and virtuous member of society.
-
-There are judges and other legal functionaries who know that their
-decisions have condemned hundreds and thousands of unfortunate men
-to be torn from their families and thrown into prison. There these
-hapless beings are locked up in solitary confinement, or sent to
-the galleys, where they go desperate and put an end to themselves
-by starving themselves to death, by swallowing glass, or by some
-such means. And who knows what the mothers, wives, and children
-of these men suffer by the separation and imprisonment, and the
-disgrace of it,--who have vainly begged for pardon for their sons,
-husbands, brothers, or that their lot may be a little alleviated.
-But the judge or other legal functionary is so primed with the
-current hypocrisy that he himself, his colleagues, his wife, and his
-friends are all quite sure, despite what he does, that he is a good
-and sensible man. According to the current philosophy of hypocrisy,
-such a man performs a duty of great importance to the public. And
-this man, who has injured hundreds or thousands of human beings, who
-owe it to him that they have lost their belief in goodness and their
-faith in God, goes to church with a benevolent smile, listens to the
-Bible, makes liberal speeches, caresses his children, bestows moral
-lessons upon them, for their edification, and grows sentimental over
-imaginary suffering.
-
-Not only these men, their wives and children, but the entire
-community around them, all the teachers, actors, cooks, jockeys,
-live by preying upon the life-blood of the working-people, which
-in one way or another they absorb like leeches. Every one of their
-days of pleasure costs thousands of days in the lives of the
-workers. They see the suffering and privation of these workmen,
-of their wives and children, of their aged and feeble. They know
-what punishments are visited upon those who attempt to resist
-the organized system of pillage, but so far from abandoning or
-concealing their luxurious habits, they flaunt them in the faces of
-those whom they oppress and by whom they are hated. All the while
-they assure themselves and others that they have the welfare of the
-working-man greatly at heart. On Sundays, clad in rich garments,
-they drive in their carriages to churches where the mockery of
-Christianity is preached, and listen there to the words of men who
-have learned their falsehoods by heart. Some of these men wear
-stoles, some wear white cravats; they all preach the doctrine of
-love for one's neighbor, a doctrine belied by their daily lives. And
-they have all grown so accustomed to playing this part that they
-really believe themselves to be what they pretend.
-
-This universal hypocrisy, which has become to every class of
-society at the present day like the air it breathes, is so familiar
-that men are no longer exasperated by it. It is very fitting that
-hypocrisy should signify acting or playing of a part. It has become
-so much a matter of course that it no longer excites surprise when
-the representatives of Christ pronounce a blessing over murderers
-as they stand in rank holding their guns in the position which
-signifies, in military parlance, "for prayers," or when the priests
-and pastors of various Christian sects accompany the executioner
-to the scaffold, and, by lending the sanction of their presence
-to murder, make men believe it compatible with Christianity.
-(One minister was present when experiments in "electrocution"
-took place in the United States.) At the International Prison
-Exposition recently held in St. Petersburg, where instruments of
-torture, such as chains, and models of prison-cells for solitary
-confinement,--means of torture worse than the knout or the
-rod,--were on exhibition, sympathetic ladies and gentlemen went to
-see them, and seemed greatly entertained.
-
-No one marvels to find liberal science insisting upon the
-equality, fraternity, and liberty of men on the one hand, while
-on the other it is striving to prove the necessity of armies,
-executions, custom-houses, of censorship of the press, of legalized
-prostitution, of the expulsion of foreign labor, of the prohibition
-of emigration, and of the necessity and justice of colonization
-established by the pillage and extermination of whole races of
-so-called savages, etc.
-
-They talk of what will happen when all men shall profess what they
-call Christianity (by which they mean the different conflicting
-creeds); when every one will be fed and clothed; when men will
-communicate with one another all over the world by telegraph and
-telephones, and will travel in balloons; when all working-men will
-accept the doctrine of socialism; when the trade unions will embrace
-many millions of men and possess millions of money; when all men
-will be educated, will read the papers, and be familiar with all the
-sciences.
-
-But what good will this do if after all these improvements men are
-still false to the truth?
-
-The miseries of men are caused by disunion, and disunion arises from
-the fact that men follow not truth, but falsehood, of which there is
-no end. Truth is the only bond by which men may be united; and the
-more sincerely men strive after the truth the nearer they approach
-to true unity.
-
-But how are men to be united in the truth, or even approach it,
-if they not only fail to proclaim the truth which they possess,
-but actually think it useless to do so, and pretend to believe in
-something which they know to be a lie? In reality no improvement in
-the condition of mankind is possible while men continue to hide the
-truth from themselves, nor until they acknowledge that their unity,
-and consequently their welfare, can be promoted only by the spirit
-of truth; until they admit that to profess, and to act in obedience
-to the truth as it has been revealed to them, is more important than
-all things else.
-
-Let all the material progress ever dreamt of by religious and
-scientific men be made; let all men accept Christianity, and let all
-the improvements suggested by the Bellamys and Richets, with every
-possible addition and correction, be carried out; and yet if the
-hypocrisy of to-day still flourishes, if men do not make known the
-truth that is within them, but go on pretending to believe what they
-know to be untrue, showing respect where they no longer feel it,
-their condition will never improve; on the contrary, it will become
-worse. The more men are raised above want, the more telegraphs,
-telephones, books, newspapers, and reviews they possess, the more
-numerous will be the channels for the diffusion of falsehood
-and hypocrisy, and the more at variance and miserable will men
-become,--and it is even so at the present time.
-
-Let all those material changes take place, and still the position of
-humanity will in no way be improved by them; but let every man, so
-far as he is able, begin at once and live up to his highest ideal
-of the truth or, at the least, cease to defend a lie, then indeed
-should we see even in this year of 1893 such an advance in the
-establishment of the truth upon earth, and in the deliverance of
-mankind, as could hardly be hoped for in a hundred years.
-
-It was not without reason that the only harsh and denunciatory words
-that Christ uttered were addressed to hypocrites. It is neither
-theft, nor robbery, nor murder, nor fornication, nor fraud, but
-falsehood, that particular hypocritical falsehood, which destroys
-in men's conscience the distinction between good and evil, which
-corrupts them and takes from them the possibility of avoiding evil
-and of seeking good, which deprives them of that which constitutes
-the essence of a true human life,--it is this which bars the way
-to all improvement. Those men who do evil, knowing not the truth,
-inspire in the beholder compassion for their victims and repugnance
-for themselves, but they only injure the few whom they molest.
-Whereas those men who, knowing the good, yet pursue the evil,
-wearing all the while the mantle of hypocrisy, commit a wrong,
-not only against themselves and their victims, but also against
-thousands of other men who are deceived by the falsehood under which
-they conceal the wrong.
-
-Thieves, robbers, murderers, rogues, who commit acts which they
-themselves, as well as other men, know to be evil, serve as a
-warning to show men what is evil, and make them hate it. Those,
-however, who steal, rob, torture, and murder, justifying themselves
-by pretended religious, scientific, or other motives, like the
-landowners, merchants, factory-owners, and government servants of
-the present time, by provoking imitation, injure not only their
-victims, but thousands and millions of men who are corrupted
-by their influence, and who become so blinded that they cannot
-distinguish the difference between good and evil.
-
-One fortune acquired by trading in the necessaries of life or
-in articles that tend to demoralize men, or by speculations
-in the stock exchange, or by the acquisition of cheap lands
-which subsequently rise in value by reason of the increasing
-needs of the people, or by the establishment of factories that
-endanger human health and human lives, or by rendering civil or
-military service to the State, or by any occupation that tends
-to the demoralization of mankind,--a fortune acquired in any of
-these ways, not only permitted, but approved by the leaders of
-society, when, furthermore, it is supported by a show of charity,
-surely demoralizes men more than millions of thefts, frauds, or
-robberies,--sins committed against the laws of the land and subject
-to judicial prosecution.
-
-A single enforcement of capital punishment, ordained by men of
-education and wealth, sanctioned by the approval of the Christian
-clergy, and declared to be an act of justice essential to the
-welfare of the State, tends far more to degrade and brutalize
-mankind than hundreds and thousands of murders committed in passion
-by the ignorant. A more demoralizing scene than the execution
-suggested by Jukovsky, calculated as it is to excite a feeling of
-religious exaltation, it would be difficult to conceive.[31]
-
- [31] See vol. iv. of the works of Jukovsky (a Russian poet).
-
-A war, even of the shortest duration,--with all its customary
-consequences, the destruction of harvests, the thefts, the unchecked
-debauchery and murders, with the usual explanations of its necessity
-and justice, with the accompanying glorification and praise bestowed
-upon military exploits, upon patriotism, devotion to the flag, with
-the assumption of tenderness and care for the wounded,--will do more
-in one year to demoralize men than thousands of robberies, arsons,
-and murders committed in the course of centuries by individual men
-carried away by passion.
-
-The existence of one household, one not even extravagant beyond
-the ordinary limits, esteeming itself virtuous and innocent, which
-yet consumes the production of enough to support thousands of the
-men who live near in poverty and distress, has a more degrading
-influence on mankind than innumerable orgies of gross shopkeepers,
-officers, or workmen who are addicted to drink and debauchery, and
-who smash mirrors and crockery by way of amusement.
-
-One solemn procession, one religious service, or one sermon from
-the pulpit, embodying a falsehood which the preacher himself does
-not believe, does infinitely more harm than thousands of frauds,
-adulterations of food, etc.
-
-Men talk of the hypocrisy of the Pharisees; but the hypocrisy
-of our contemporaries far surpasses the comparatively harmless
-sanctimoniousness of the Pharisees. They at least had an outward
-religious law, whose fulfilment may perhaps have prevented them from
-discerning their duty toward their neighbors; indeed, those duties
-had not then been distinctly defined. To-day there is no such law.
-(I do not consider such gross and stupid men as even now believe
-that sacraments or absolution of the Pope can free them from sins.)
-On the contrary, the law of the gospel, which in one form or another
-we all profess, makes our duties perfectly plain. Indeed, those
-precepts which were but vaguely indicated by certain of the prophets
-have since been so clearly formulated, have grown to be such
-truisms, that the very school-boys and hack writers repeat them.
-Therefore men of our times cannot feign ignorance concerning them.
-
-Those men who enjoy the advantages of the existing system, and who
-are always protesting love for their neighbor, without suspicion
-that their own lives are an injury to their neighbors, are like
-the robber who, caught with an uplifted knife, his victim crying
-desperately for help, protests that he did not know that he was
-doing anything unpleasant to the man whom he was in the act of
-robbing and about to murder. Since the denial of this robber
-and murderer would be of no avail, his act being patent to all
-observers, it would seem equally futile for our fellow-citizens, who
-live by the sufferings of the oppressed, to assure themselves and
-others that they desire the welfare of those whom they never cease
-to rob, and that they had not realized the nature of the methods by
-which their prosperity had been attained.
-
-We can no longer persuade ourselves that we do not know of the
-one hundred thousand men in Russia alone who have been shut up
-in galleys or in prisons for the purpose of securing to us our
-property and our peace; and that we do not know of the existence
-of those courts of law at which we preside, to which we bring
-our accusations, which sentence those men, who have attacked our
-property or our lives, to the galleys, to imprisonment, or to exile,
-where human beings, no worse than they who have pronounced judgment
-upon them, become degraded and lost; nor that we do not know that
-everything that we possess has been won and is preserved at the
-expense of murder and violence. We cannot shut our eyes and pretend
-that we do not see the policeman, who, armed with a revolver, paces
-before our window, protecting us while we are eating our excellent
-dinner, or when we are at the theater seeing a new play; nor do
-not know of the existence of the soldiers who will appear armed
-with guns and cartridges whenever our property is menaced. We know
-perfectly well that if we finish our dinner, see the new play to its
-end, enjoy a merry-making at Christmas, take a walk, go to a ball, a
-race, or a hunt, we owe it to the policeman's revolver or the ball
-in the soldier's musket, which will pierce the hungry belly of the
-disinherited man who, with watering mouth, peeps round the corner
-at our pleasures, and who might interrupt them if the policeman
-or the soldiers in the barracks were not ready to appear at our
-first call. Hence, as the man who is caught in the act of robbery
-in broad daylight cannot deny that he threatened his victim with a
-knife for the purpose of stealing his purse, it might be supposed
-that we could no longer represent to ourselves and to others that
-the soldiers and policemen whom we see around us are here, not for
-the purpose of protecting us, but to repulse foreign enemies, to
-assure public order, to adorn by their presence public rejoicings
-and ceremonies. We cannot pretend we do not know that men are not
-fond of starving to death. We know that they do not like to die
-of hunger, being deprived of the right to earn their living from
-the soil upon which they live, that they are not anxious to work
-ten to fourteen hours a day underground, standing in water, or in
-over-heated rooms, twelve or fourteen hours a day, or at night,
-manufacturing articles which contribute to our pleasures. It would
-seem impossible to deny what is so evident, and yet it is what we do
-deny.
-
-It cannot be denied that there are people of the wealthy class,
-and I am glad to say that I meet them more and more frequently,
-particularly in the younger generation and among women, who, on
-being reminded by what means and at what a price their pleasures
-are obtained, instantly admit the truth of it, and with bowed heads
-exclaim: "Ah, do not tell us of it! If it is as you say, one cannot
-live!" If, however, there are some who are willing to admit their
-sin, though they know not how to escape from it, still, the majority
-of men nowadays have become so confirmed in hypocrisy that they
-boldly deny facts that are patent to every one who has eyes.
-
-"It is all nonsense," they say. "No one forces the people to work
-for the landowners or in the factories. It is a matter of mutual
-accommodation. Large properties and capital are indispensable,
-because they enable men to organize companies and provide work for
-the laboring classes, and the work in mills and factories is by no
-means so dreadful as you represent it. When real abuses are found
-to exist, the government and society in general take measures to
-abolish them and to render the labor of the working-men easier and
-more agreeable. The working-classes are used to physical labor,
-and are not as yet capable of doing anything else. The poverty
-of the people is caused neither by the landowners nor by the
-tyranny of the capitalists; it springs from other causes,--from
-ignorance, disorder, and intemperance. We, the governing classes,
-who counteract this state of poverty by wise administration; and
-we, the capitalists, who counteract it by the multiplication of
-useful inventions; and we, the liberals, who contribute our share
-by instituting trade unions and by diffusing education,--these are
-the methods by which we promote the welfare of the people, without
-making any radical change in our position. We do not wish all to be
-poor like the poor; we wish all to be rich like the rich.
-
-"As to torturing and killing men for the purpose of making them
-work for the rich, that is all sophistry; the troops are sent out
-to quell disturbances when men, not appreciating their advantages,
-rebel and disturb the peace essential for the general welfare. It
-is equally necessary to restrain malefactors, for whom prisons,
-gallows, and the like are established. We are anxious enough to
-abolish them as far as possible ourselves, and are working for that
-purpose."
-
-Hypocrisy, which nowadays is supported by two methods, the
-quasi-religious and the quasi-scientific, has attained such
-proportions, that if we did not live in its atmosphere continually,
-it would be impossible to believe that humanity could sink to such
-depths of self-deception. Men have reached so surprising a state,
-their hearts have become so hardened, that they look and do not see;
-listen, and do not hear or understand.
-
-For a long time they have been living a life that is contrary to
-their conscience. Were it not for the aid of hypocrisy they would be
-unable so to live, for such a life, so opposed to conscience, can
-only continue because it is veiled by hypocrisy.
-
-And the greater the difference between the practice and the
-conscience of men, the more elastic becomes hypocrisy. Yet even
-hypocrisy has its limits, and I believe that we have reached them.
-
-Every man of the present day, with the Christian consciousness that
-has involuntarily become his, may be likened to a sleeper who dreams
-that he is doing what even in his dream he knows he ought not to do.
-In the depths of his dream-consciousness he realizes his conduct,
-and yet seems unable to change his course, and to cease doing that
-which he is aware he should not do.
-
-Then, in the progress of his dream, his state of mind becoming less
-and less endurable, he begins to doubt the reality of what has
-seemed so real, and makes a conscious effort to break the spell that
-holds him.
-
-The average man of our Christian world is in exactly the same
-strait. He feels that everything going on around him is absurd,
-senseless, and impossible; that the situation is becoming more and
-more painful, that it has indeed reached the crisis.
-
-It is impossible that we of the present age, endowed with the
-Christian conscience that has become a part of our very flesh and
-blood as it were, who live with a full consciousness of the dignity
-of man and the equality of all men, who feel our need for peaceable
-relations with each other and for the unity of all nations, should
-go on living in such a way. It is impossible that all our pleasures,
-all our satisfactions, should be purchased by the sufferings and
-the lives of our brethren; impossible that we should be ready at a
-moment's notice to rush upon each other like wild beasts, one nation
-against another, and relentlessly destroy the lives and labor of
-men, only because one foolish diplomatist or ruler says or writes
-something foolish to another.
-
-It is impossible; and yet all men of our time see that this is what
-does happen every day, and all wait for the catastrophe, while the
-situation grows more and more strained and painful.
-
-And as a man in his sleep doubts the reality of his dream and longs
-to awaken and return to real life, so the average man of our day
-cannot, in the bottom of his heart, believe the terrible situation
-in which he finds himself, and which is growing worse and worse,
-to be the reality. He longs to attain to a higher reality, the
-consciousness of which is already within him.
-
-And like this sleeper, who has but to make the conscious effort
-to ask himself whether it be a dream, in order to transform its
-seeming hopelessness into a joyous awakening, our average man has
-but to make a conscious effort and ask himself, "Is not all this
-an illusion?" in order to feel himself forthwith like the awakened
-sleeper, transported from an hypocritical and horrible dream-world
-into a living, peaceful, and joyous real one.
-
-And for this he has no need of any heroic achievement; he has only
-to make the effort prompted by his moral consciousness.
-
-But is man able to make this effort?
-
-According to the existing theory, one indispensable from the point
-of view of hypocrisy, man is not free and may not change his life.
-
-"A man cannot change his life, because he is not a free agent. He
-is not a free agent, because his acts are the result of preceding
-causes. And whatever he may do, certain it is that preceding causes
-always determine that a man must act in one way rather than in
-another; therefore a man is not free to change his life,"--thus
-argue the defenders of the metaphysic of hypocrisy. And they would
-be perfectly right if man were an unconscious and stationary being,
-incapable of apprehending the truth, and unable to advance to a
-higher state by means of it. But man is a conscious being, able to
-grow more and more in the knowledge of truth. Therefore if he be
-not free in his acts, the causes of these acts, which consist in
-the recognition simply of such and such truth, are yet within his
-mastery.
-
-So that if a man is not free to do certain acts, he is yet free to
-work toward the suppression of the moral causes which prevent their
-performance. He may be likened to the engineer of a locomotive, who,
-though not at liberty to change the past or present motion of his
-engine, is yet free to determine its future progress.
-
-No matter what an intelligent man may do, he adopts a certain course
-of action only because he acknowledges to himself that at the moment
-that course alone is the right one; or because he has formerly
-recognized it as such, and now continues to act as he does through
-force of habit, or through mental inertia.
-
-Whether a man eats or abstains from food, whether he works or rests,
-whether he avoids danger or seeks it, he acts as he does because he
-considers it to be reasonable at the time, or because previously
-he saw that the truth consisted in acting in that way and not in
-another.
-
-The admission or the denial of a certain truth depends not on
-outward causes, but on certain conditions that man finds within
-himself. Thus frequently, with all the outward and, as it may seem,
-favorable conditions for recognizing the truth, one may reject it,
-while another may receive it under the most unfavorable conditions,
-and without apparent motives. As it is said in the gospel: "No
-man can come to me, except the Father which hath sent me draw
-him;"--that is to say, the recognition of truth, which is the cause
-of all the manifestations of a man's life, does not depend on
-outward conditions, but on certain inherent qualities which escape
-recognition.
-
-Therefore a man who is not free in his acts still feels himself
-free in regard to the cause of his acts; that is, in regard to the
-recognition or non-recognition of truth.
-
-Thus a man who, under the influence of passion, has committed a deed
-contrary to the truth he knows, still remains free in recognizing
-or denying the truth; in other words, denying the truth, he may
-consider his act necessary and justify himself in committing it,
-or, accepting the truth, he may acknowledge his deed to be evil and
-himself guilty.
-
-Thus a gambler or a drunkard, who has succumbed to his passion, is
-free to acknowledge gambling or drunkenness either as evils, or as
-amusements without consequence. In the first instance, if he cannot
-get rid of his passion at once, he becomes free from it gradually,
-according to the depth of his conviction of its evil. In the second
-instance, his passion grows and gradually deprives him of all chance
-of deliverance.
-
-So, too, with a man who, unable to endure the scorching flames for
-the rescue of his friend, himself escapes from a burning house,
-while he recognizes the truth that a man should save the life of his
-fellow-man at the peril of his own, is yet free to look upon his
-act as evil, and therefore to condemn himself for it; or, denying
-this truth, to judge his act to be both natural and necessary, and
-so justify himself in his own opinion. In the first instance, his
-recognition of the truth, even though he has not acted in accordance
-with it, helps him to prepare for a series of self-sacrificing
-actions that will inevitably follow such recognition. In the second
-instance, he prepares for a series of actions just as selfish.
-
-I do not say that a man is always free to recognize or not to
-recognize every truth. Certain truths there are, long since
-recognized by men, and transmitted by tradition, education, and
-mere force of habit until they have become second nature; and there
-are other truths which men perceive as but dimly and afar. A man
-is not free not to recognize the first of these; he is not free to
-recognize the second. But there is a third category of truths, which
-have not as yet become unquestioned motors of his activity, but have
-revealed themselves to man so unmistakably that he is unable to
-disregard them; he must inevitably consider them, and either accept
-or reject them. It is by his relation to these truths that a man's
-freedom is manifested.
-
-Each man in his perception of truth is like a wayfarer who walks by
-the aid of a lantern whose light he casts before him: he does not
-see what as yet has not been revealed by its beams, he does not see
-the path he has left behind, merged again in the darkness; but at
-any given point he sees that which the lantern reveals, and he is
-always at liberty to choose one side of the road or the other.
-
-There exist for each man certain concealed truths, as yet unrevealed
-to his mental vision; certain others, which he has experienced,
-assimilated, and forgotten; and yet others, that rise up before
-him demanding immediate recognition from his reason. And it is in
-the recognition or the disregard of these truths that what we call
-freedom becomes evident.
-
-All the apparent difficulty of the question of man's liberty comes
-from the fact that those who seek to solve it represent man as
-stationary in the presence of the truth.
-
-Undoubtedly he is not free if we look upon him as a stationary
-being; if we forget that the life of all humanity is an eternal
-procession from darkness to light, from the lower conception of
-truth to a higher one, from truth mingled with error to purer truth.
-
-A man would not be free if he were ignorant of all truth; neither
-would he be free, nor even have any conception of liberty, if the
-truth were suddenly revealed to him in its entire purity and without
-any admixture of error.
-
-But man is not a stationary being. And as he advances in life, every
-individual discovers an ever increasing proportion of truth, and
-thus becomes less liable to error.
-
-The relations of man to truth are threefold. Some truths are so
-familiar to him that they have become the unconscious springs of
-action; others have only been dimly revealed to him; again others,
-though still unfamiliar, are revealed to him so plainly that they
-force themselves upon his attention, and inevitably, in one way or
-another, he is obliged to consider them. He cannot ignore them, but
-must either recognize or repudiate them.
-
-And it is in the recognition or in the disregard of these truths
-that man's free agency is manifested.
-
-A man's freedom does not consist in a faculty of acting
-independently of his environment and the various influences it
-brings to bear upon his life, but in his power to become, through
-recognizing and professing the truth that has been revealed to
-him, a free and willing laborer at the eternal and infinite work
-performed by God and his universe; or, in shutting his eyes to
-truth, to become a slave and be forced against his will into a way
-in which he is loath to go.
-
-Not only does truth point out the direction a man's life _should_
-take, but it opens the only road he _can_ take. Hence, all men will
-invariably, free or not, follow the road of truth;--some willingly,
-doing the work they have set themselves to do; others involuntarily,
-by submitting in spite of themselves to the law of life. It is in
-the power of choice that a man's freedom lies.
-
-Freedom, in limits so narrow as these, appears to men so
-insignificant that they fail to perceive it. The believers in
-causation prefer to overlook it; the believers in unlimited free
-will, keeping in view their own ideal, disdain a freedom to them
-so insignificant. Freedom, confined between the limits of entire
-ignorance of the truth, or of the knowledge of only a part of it,
-does not seem to them to be freedom, the more so that whether a man
-is or is not willing to recognize the truth revealed unto him, he
-will inevitably be forced to obey it in life.
-
-A horse harnessed to a load in company with other horses is not free
-to remain in one place. If he does not pull the load, the load will
-strike him and force him to move in the direction it is going, thus
-compelling him to advance. Still, in spite of this limitation of
-freedom, the horse is still free to pull the load of his own accord,
-or be pushed forward by it. The same reasoning can be applied to
-human freedom.
-
-Be this freedom great or small as compared with the chimerical
-freedom for which we sigh, it is the only true freedom, and through
-it alone is to be found all the happiness accessible to man. And not
-only does this freedom promote the happiness of men, but it is the
-only means through which the work of the world can be accomplished.
-
-According to the doctrine of Christ, a man who limits his
-observation of life to the sphere in which there is no freedom--to
-the sphere of effects--that is, of acts--does not live a true
-life. He only lives a true life who has transferred his life
-into the sphere in which freedom lies,--into the domain of first
-causes,--that is to say, by the recognition and practice of the
-truth revealed to him.
-
-The man who consecrates his life to sensual acts is ever performing
-acts that depend on temporary causes beyond his control. Of
-himself he does nothing; it only seems to him that he is acting
-independently, whereas in reality all that he imagines he is doing
-by himself is done through him by a superior force; he is not the
-creator of life, but its slave. But the man who devotes his life to
-the acknowledgment and practice of the truth revealed to him unites
-himself with the source of universal life, and accomplishes, not
-personal, individual acts, that depend on the conditions of time and
-space, but acts that have no causes, but are in themselves causes of
-all else, and have an endless and unlimited significance.
-
-Because of their setting aside the essence of true life, which
-consists in the recognition and practice of the truth, and directing
-their efforts toward the improvement of the external conditions
-of life, men of the pagan life-conception may be likened to
-passengers on a steamer, who should, in their anxiety to reach their
-destination, extinguish the engine-fires, and instead of making use
-of steam and screw, try during a storm to row with oars which cannot
-reach the water.
-
-The Kingdom of God is attained by effort, and it is only those who
-make the effort that do attain it. It is this effort, which consists
-in sacrificing outward conditions for the sake of the truth, by
-which the Kingdom of God is attained,--an effort which can and ought
-to be made now, in our own epoch.
-
-Men have but to understand this: that they must cease to care for
-material and external matters, in which they are not free; let them
-apply one hundredth part of the energy now used by them in outward
-concerns to those in which they are free,--to the recognition and
-profession of the truth that confronts them, to the deliverance of
-themselves and others from the falsehood and hypocrisy which conceal
-the truth,--and then the false system of life which now torments us,
-which threatens us with still greater suffering, will be destroyed
-at once without struggle. Then the Kingdom of Heaven, at least in
-that first stage for which men through the development of their
-consciousness are already prepared, will be established.
-
-As one shake is sufficient to precipitate into crystals a liquid
-saturated with salt, so at the present time it may be that only the
-least effort is needed in order that the truth, already revealed
-to us, should spread among hundreds, thousands, millions of men,
-and a public opinion become established in conformity with the
-existing consciousness, and the entire social organization become
-transformed. It depends upon us to make this effort.
-
-If only each of us would try to understand and recognize the
-Christian truth, which in the most varied forms surrounds us on
-all sides, pleading to be admitted into our hearts; if we would
-cease to lie and pretend that we do not see this truth, or that
-we are anxious to fulfil it, excepting in the one thing that it
-really demands; if we would only recognize this truth which calls
-us, and would fearlessly profess it,--we should find forthwith that
-hundreds, thousands, and millions of men are in the same position as
-ourselves, fearing like ourselves to stand alone in its recognition,
-and waiting only to hear its avowal from others.
-
-If men would only cease to be hypocrites they would perceive at once
-that this cruel organization of society, which alone hampers them
-and yet appears to them like something immutable, necessary, and
-sacred, established by God, is already wavering, and is maintained
-only by the hypocrisy and the falsehood of ourselves and our
-fellow-men.
-
-But if it be true that it depends only on ourselves to change the
-existing order of life, have we the right to do it without knowing
-what we shall put in its place? What will become of the world if the
-present system be destroyed?
-
-"What is there beyond the walls of the world we leave behind us?
-
-"Fear seizes us,--emptiness, space, freedom....--how is one to go
-on, not knowing whither? How is one to lose, without the hope of
-gain?...
-
-"Had Columbus reasoned thus he never would have weighed anchor. It
-was madness to attempt to cross an unknown ocean, to set sail for a
-country whose very existence was doubtful. But he discovered a new
-world through this madness. To be sure, if people had only to move
-from one furnished house into another and a more commodious one, it
-would be an easy matter, but the trouble lies in there being no one
-to prepare the new apartments. The future looks more uncertain still
-than the ocean,--it promises nothing,--it will only be what men and
-circumstances make it.
-
-"If you are content with the old world, try to preserve it; it is
-sick, and will not live long. But if you can no longer live in the
-eternal conflict between your convictions and life, thinking one way
-and acting another, take it upon yourselves to leave the shelter
-of the blanched and ruinous arches of the Middle Ages. I am aware
-that this is not an easy matter. It is hard to part with all one has
-been accustomed to from birth. Men are ready for great sacrifices,
-but not those which the new life demands of them. Are they ready
-to sacrifice their present civilization, their mode of life,
-their religion, their conventional morality? Are they ready to be
-deprived of all the results of such prolonged efforts, the results
-we have boasted of for three centuries, of all the conveniences and
-attractions of our existence, to give the preference to wild youth
-rather than to civilized senility, to pull down the palace built
-by our fathers simply for the pleasure of laying the foundation
-of a new house, which, without doubt, will not be completed till
-long after our time."[32] Thus wrote, almost half a century ago, a
-Russian author, who, with penetrating vision, clearly discerned even
-at that time what is recognized by every man to-day who reflects a
-little,--the impossibility of continuing life on the former basis,
-and the necessity of establishing some new mode of existence.
-
- [32] Herzen, vol. v., p. 55.
-
-It is plain from the simplest and most ordinary point of view that
-it is folly to remain under a roof that threatens to fall, and
-that one must leave it. Indeed, it is difficult to imagine a more
-miserable situation than that of the present Christian world,
-with its nations arrayed in arms one against the other, with its
-ever increasing taxes for the purpose of supporting its growing
-armaments, with the burning hatred of the working-classes for the
-rich, with war suspended above all like the sword of Damocles ready
-to fall, as it may, at any moment.
-
-It is doubtful whether any revolution could be more disastrous than
-the present social order, or rather disorder, with its perpetual
-victims of overwork, misery, drunkenness, dissipation, with all the
-horrors of impending war that in one year will sacrifice more lives
-than all the revolutions of the present century.
-
-What will become of mankind if each one fulfils that which God
-demands through the conscience that is in him. Shall I be safe if,
-under the orders of my master, I accomplish in his great workshop
-the tasks he has set me, although, ignorant of his final plans, I
-may think it strange? Nor is it alone the question of the future
-that troubles men when they hesitate to do the master's bidding.
-They are concerned about the question as to how they are to live
-without the familiar conditions which we call science, art,
-civilization, culture. We feel individually all the burden of our
-present way of living; we see that were this order of things to
-continue, it would inevitably ruin us; and yet we are anxious to
-have these conditions continue, to have our science, our art, our
-civilization, and culture remain unchanged. It is as though a man
-who dwells in an old house, suffering from cold and discomfort, who
-is moreover aware that its walls may tumble at any moment, should
-consent to the remodeling of it, only on condition that he may be
-allowed to remain there, a condition that is equivalent to a refusal
-to have his dwelling rebuilt. "What, if I should leave my house,"
-he says, "I should be temporarily deprived of its comforts; the
-new house may not be built after all, or it may be constructed on
-a new plan, which will lack the conveniences to which I have been
-accustomed!" But if the materials and the workmen are ready, it is
-probable that the new house will be built, and in a better manner
-than the old one; while it is not only probable but certain that
-the old house will soon fall into ruins, crushing those who remain
-within its walls. In order that the old, everyday conditions of life
-may disappear and make room for new and better ones, we must surely
-leave behind the old conditions, which are at length become fatal
-and impossible, and issue forth to meet the future.
-
-"But science, art, civilization, and culture will cease to be!" But
-if all these are only diverse manifestations of truth, the impending
-change is to be accomplished for the sake of a further advance
-toward truth and its realization. "How, then, can the manifestations
-of truth disappear, in consequence of further realization of truth?"
-The manifestations of truth will be different, better, loftier, the
-error that has been in them will perish, while the verity that is in
-them will remain and flourish with renewed vigor.
-
-Return to yourselves, sons of men, and have faith in the gospel, and
-in its doctrine of eternal happiness! If you heed not this warning,
-you shall all perish like the men slain by Pilate, like those upon
-whom the tower of Siloam fell; like millions of other men, who slew
-and were slain, who executed and suffered execution, who tortured
-and were tortured; as perished the man who so foolishly filled his
-granaries, counting on a long life, on the very night when his soul
-was required of him. Return, sons of men, and believe in the words
-which Christ uttered 1800 years ago, words which He repeats to-day
-with greater force, warning us that the evil day He foretold is at
-hand, and that our life has reached its last descent of folly and
-wickedness.
-
-Now, after so many centuries of futile effort to protect ourselves
-by the methods of the pagan system of violence, it should be evident
-to every man that all such effort, far from insuring our safety,
-tends only to add a new element of danger both to individual and
-social existence.
-
-No matter by what names we may be called, nor what garments we may
-wear, nor in the presence of what priest we may be anointed, nor
-how many millions our subjects may number, nor how many guards
-may be posted on our journey, nor how many policemen may protect
-our property, nor how many so-called criminals, revolutionists, or
-anarchists we may execute; no matter what exploits we may perform,
-nor what states we may establish, nor what fortresses and towers
-we may erect, from the Tower of Babel to the Eiffel Tower,--we
-have before us two ever present and unavoidable conditions, that
-deprive our mode of life of all significance: (1) death, that may
-overtake each of us at any moment, and (2) the transitory nature
-of all our undertakings, that disappear, leaving no trace behind
-them. No matter what we may do, found kingdoms, build palaces and
-monuments, write poems and songs,--all is but fleeting and leaves no
-trace behind. Therefore no matter how much we may attempt to conceal
-this from ourselves, we cannot fail to perceive that the true
-significance of our life lies neither in our individual, physical
-existence, subjected to unavoidable suffering and death, nor in any
-institution or social organization.
-
-Whoever you are, you who read these lines, reflect upon your
-position and your duties, not upon the position of landowner,
-merchant, judge, emperor, president, minister, priest, or
-soldier, which you may assume but for a time, not upon the
-imaginary duties which these positions impose upon you, but upon
-your actual and eternal position as a being, who, after a whole
-eternity of non-existence, is called by the will of Some One from
-unconsciousness into life, and who may at any moment return whence
-he came by the same will. Consider your duties! Not your imaginary
-duties of landowner in regard to your estate, nor of merchant to
-your capital, nor of emperor, minister, or governor to the State,
-but of your real duties, of a being called forth into life and
-endowed with love and reason. Do that which He who has sent you
-into this world, and to whom you will shortly return, demands of
-you. Are you doing what he requires? Are you doing right when, as
-landowner or manufacturer, you take the products of the labor of
-the poor, and establish your life on this spoliation; or when, as
-governor or judge, you do violence in condemning men to death; or
-when, as soldier, you prepare for war, for fighting, robbery, and
-murder,--are you doing right?
-
-You say that the world is as you find it, that it is inevitable
-that it should be as it is, that what you do you are compelled to
-do. But can it be that, having so strongly rooted an aversion to
-the suffering of men, to violence, to murder; having such a need of
-loving your fellow-men, and of being loved by them; seeing clearly,
-too, that the greatest good possible to men comes from acknowledging
-human brotherhood, from one serving another: can it be that your
-heart tells you all this, that you are taught it by your reason,
-that science repeats it to you, and yet regardless of it, on the
-strength of some mysterious and complicated argument, you are forced
-to contradict it all in your daily conduct? Is it possible that,
-being a landowner or a capitalist, you should establish your life on
-the oppression of the people; that, being an emperor or a president,
-you should command armies, and be a leader of murderers; that,
-being a functionary of State, you should take from the poor their
-hard-earned money for your own benefit, or for the benefit of the
-rich; that, being a judge or juror, you should condemn erring men to
-torture and death, because the truth has not been revealed to them;
-or, above all, is it possible that you, a youth, should enter the
-army, doing that upon which all the evil of the world is founded,
-that, renouncing your own will, all your human sympathy, you should
-engage at the will of others to murder those whom they bid you
-murder?
-
-It is impossible!
-
-If you are told that all this is essential for the support of the
-existing system of life; that this system, with its pauperism,
-famine, prisons, executions, armies, wars, is necessary for society,
-and that if it were to be abolished worse evils would follow, you
-are told so only by those who benefit by this system; while those
-who suffer from it,--and their numbers are ten times greater,--all
-think and say the opposite. And at the bottom of your heart you
-know that this is false,--that the existing system has had its day,
-and must inevitably be remodeled on new foundations; and that there
-is no need whatsoever to support it by the sacrifice of human life.
-
-Even supposing that the existing system is necessary, how is it
-that you should have to support it by trampling upon all finer
-feelings? But who has made you a guardian of this crumbling
-structure? Neither has the State, nor society, nor has any one
-requested you individually to support it by occupying your position
-of landowner, merchant, emperor, priest, or soldier, and you are
-well aware that you have accepted and are holding it, not for
-purposes of self-denial, for the good of your fellow-men, but for
-your own selfish interest; for your greed of gain, vainglory,
-ambition, through your indolence or your cowardice. If you do not
-desire this position you should not persist in doing what is cruel,
-false, and contemptible in order to retain it. If you would once
-refrain from these things which you do continually for the purpose
-of retaining it, you would lose it at once. If you are a ruler or
-an official, make only an attempt to cease polite lying, cease to
-take part in violences and executions; if you are a priest, desist
-from deceiving; if a soldier, cease killing; if a land-owner or
-manufacturer, cease defending your property by roguery and violence;
-and forthwith you will lose the position which, as you say, is
-forced upon you and seems to you burdensome.
-
-It cannot be that a man should be placed against his will in a
-position contrary to conscience.
-
-If you are put in such a position, it is not because it is necessary
-for some one to be there, but only because you are willing to accept
-it. And therefore, knowing that such a position is directly opposed
-to the mandates of your heart, your reason, your faith, and even to
-the teaching of that science you believe in, you cannot but pause
-to consider, if you wish to keep it, and especially if you try to
-justify it, if you are doing what you ought to do.
-
-You might run the risk if you had but the time to see your mistake
-and correct it, and if you ran the risk for something worth having.
-But when you know for certain that you are liable to die at any
-moment, without the slightest possibility either for yourself or for
-those whom you have drawn in with you of rectifying your mistake;
-and, moreover, since you know that no matter what those about you
-may accomplish in the material organization of the world, it will
-all very shortly disappear as certainly as you yourself, leaving no
-trace behind,--it is surely obvious that you have no inducement to
-run the risk of making a mistake so terrible.
-
-This would seem perfectly plain and simple if we did not veil with
-hypocrisy the truth that is indubitably revealed to us.
-
-Share what you have with others; do not amass riches; be not vain;
-do not rob, torture, or murder men; do not to others what you would
-not that others should do to you,--these things have been said
-not eighteen hundred but five thousand years ago, and there can
-be no doubt of the truth of them. Save for hypocrisy, it would be
-impossible, even if one did not obey these rules, not to acknowledge
-that they ought to be obeyed, and that those who do not obey them do
-wrong.
-
-But you say that there is still the general well-being, for the sake
-of which one should deviate from these rules. It is allowable for
-the general well-being to kill, torture, and rob. "It is better that
-one man should perish than a whole nation," you say, like Caiaphas,
-when you are signing death-warrants; or you load your gun to shoot
-your fellow-man, who is to perish for the general good; or you
-imprison him or take away his goods.
-
-You say that you do these cruel things because you are a part of
-society, of the State, and must serve your government and carry out
-its laws, as landowner, judge, emperor, or soldier. But if you are
-a part of the State and have duties in consequence, you are also a
-partaker of the infinite life of God's universe, and have higher
-duties in consequence of that.
-
-As your duties to your family or to society are always subject to
-the higher duties that depend upon your citizenship in the State, so
-your duties of citizenship are subject to the duties arising from
-your relations to the life of the universe, from your sonship to
-God. And as it would be unwise to cut down telegraph poles in order
-to furnish fuel for the benefit of a family or a few people, because
-this would be breaking the laws that protect the welfare of the
-State; so it is equally unwise, in order to promote the welfare of
-the State, to execute or murder a man, because this is breaking the
-immutable laws which preserve the welfare of the world.
-
-The obligations of citizenship must be subject to the higher and
-eternal obligations on your part in the everlasting life of God, and
-must not contradict them. As it was said eighteen hundred years ago
-by the disciples of Christ, "Whether it be right in the sight of God
-to hearken unto you more than unto God, judge ye."[33] "We ought to
-obey God rather than men."[34]
-
- [33] Acts iv. 19.
-
- [34] Acts v. 29.
-
-You are told to believe that in order to maintain an ever changing
-system, established but yesterday by a few men in a corner of the
-globe, you should commit violent deeds that are against the fixed
-and eternal order established by God or reason. Can it be possible?
-
-Do not fail, then, to reflect upon your position of land-owner,
-merchant, judge, emperor, president, minister, priest, or
-soldier--associated with violence, oppression, deceit, torture, and
-murder; refuse to recognize the lawfulness of these crimes. I do
-not mean that if you are a landowner you should forthwith give your
-land to the poor; or if a capitalist, your money or your factory to
-your workmen; or if a czar, a minister, a magistrate, a judge, or a
-general, you should forthwith abdicate all your advantages; or if a
-soldier, whose occupation in its very nature is based on violence,
-you should at once refuse to continue longer a soldier, despite
-all the dangers of such a refusal. Should you do this, it will
-indeed be an heroic act; but it may happen--and most probably--that
-you will not be able to do it. You have connections, a family,
-subordinates, chiefs; you may be surrounded by temptations so
-strong that you cannot overcome them; but to acknowledge the truth
-to be the truth, and not to lie--that you are always able to do.
-You can refrain from affirming that you continue to be a landowner
-or factory-owner, a merchant, an artist, an author, because you
-are thus useful to men; from declaring that you are a governor, an
-attorney-general, a czar, not because it is agreeable or you are
-accustomed to be such, but for the good of men; from saying that you
-remain a soldier, not through fear of punishment, but because you
-consider the army indispensable for the protection of men's lives.
-To keep from speaking thus falsely before yourself and others--this
-you are always able to do, and not only able, but in duty bound to
-do, because in this alone--in freeing yourself from falsehood and in
-working out the truth--lies the highest duty of your life. And do
-but this and it will be sufficient for the situation to change at
-once of itself.
-
-One only thing in which you are free and all-powerful has been given
-you; all others are beyond you. It is this,--to know the truth and
-to profess it. And it is only because of other miserable and erring
-men like yourself that you have become a soldier, an emperor, a
-landowner, a capitalist, a priest, or a general; that you commit
-evil deeds so obviously contrary to the dictates of your heart and
-reason; that you torture, rob, and murder men, establishing your
-life on their sufferings; and that, above all, instead of performing
-your paramount duty of acknowledging and professing the truth which
-is known to you, you pretend not to know it, concealing it from
-yourself and others, doing the very opposite of what you have been
-called to do.
-
-And under what conditions are you doing this? Being liable to die
-at any moment, you sign a death-warrant, declare war or take part
-in it, pass judgment, torture and rob workmen, live in luxury
-surrounded by misery, and teach weak and trusting men that all
-this is right and for you is a matter of duty, while all the time
-you are in danger of your life being destroyed by a bullet or a
-bacillus, and you may be deprived forever of the power to rectify or
-counteract the evil you have done to others and to yourself; having
-wasted a life given you but once in all eternity, having left undone
-in it the one thing for which it was given you.
-
-No matter how trite it may appear to state it, nor how we may
-hypocritically deceive ourselves, nothing can destroy the certainty
-of the simple and obvious truth that external conditions can
-never render safe this life of ours, so fraught with unavoidable
-suffering, and ended infallibly by death, that human life can have
-no other meaning than the constant fulfilment of that for which the
-Almighty Power has sent us here, and for which He has given us one
-sure guide in this life, namely, our conscious reason.
-
-This Power does not require from us what is unreasonable and
-impossible,--the organization of our temporal, material life,
-the life of society, or of the State. He demands of us only what
-is reasonable and possible,--to serve the Kingdom of God, which
-establishes the unity of mankind, a unity possible only in the
-truth; to recognize and profess the truth revealed to us, which it
-is always in our power to do.
-
-"Seek ye first the kingdom of God, and his righteousness; and all
-these things shall be added unto you."[35]
-
- [35] Matt. vi. 33.
-
-The only significance of life consists in helping to establish
-the Kingdom of God; and this can be done only by means of the
-acknowledgment and profession of the truth by each one of us. "The
-kingdom of God cometh not with observation: neither shall they say,
-Lo here! or, lo there! for, behold the kingdom of God is within
-you."[36]
-
- [36] Luke xvii. 20, 21.
-
-
-
-
-WHAT IS ART?
-
-
-
-
-TRANSLATOR'S PREFACE
-
-
-The fundamental thought expressed in this book leads inevitably
-to conclusions so new, so unexpected, and so contrary to what is
-usually maintained in literary and artistic circles, that although
-it is clearly and emphatically expressed (and this I hope has
-not been lost in translation), most readers who wish to possess
-themselves of it will have to read the work carefully, and to digest
-it slowly.
-
-Especially the introductory Chapters II., III., IV., and V.,
-need careful perusal by any who, having adopted one or other of
-the current theories on beauty and art, may find it difficult to
-abandon a preconceived view, and to clear their minds for a fair
-appreciation of what is new to them.
-
-The first four chapters raise the problem, and tell us briefly
-what has been said by previous writers. Chapter III. gives (in
-highly condensed form) the substance of the teaching of some sixty
-philosophers on this subject, and since many of them were extremely
-confused, the chapter cannot, in the nature of things, be easy
-reading.
-
-I should like to remark, in passing, that though Tolstoi in this
-chapter (presumably for convenience of verification) refers chiefly
-to the compilations of Schasler, Kralik, and Knight, he has gone
-behind these authorities to the primary sources. To give a single
-instance: in the paragraph on Darwin, the foot-note refers us to
-Knight, but the remark that the origin of the art of music may be
-traced back to the call of the males to the females in the animal
-world will be found in Darwin, but will not be found in Knight.
-
-In Chapter V. we come to Tolstoi's definition of art, which
-definition should be kept well in mind while reading the rest of the
-book.
-
-No doubt most of those to whom it is an end in itself, who live by
-it, or make it their chief occupation, will read this book (or leave
-it unread) and go on in their former way, much as Pharaoh, of old,
-hardened his heart, and did not sympathize with what Moses had to
-say on the labor question. But for those of us who have felt that
-art is too valuable a matter to be lost out of our lives, and who,
-in their quest for social justice, have met the reproach that they
-were sacrificing the pleasures and advantages of art, this book is
-of inestimable value, in that it solves a perplexed question of
-far-reaching importance to practical life.
-
-To this class of readers neither the masterly elucidation of
-the former theories contained in the opening chapters, nor the
-explanation of how it has come about that such great importance
-is attached to the activity we call art (Chapters VI. and VII.),
-nor the explanation and illustrations of the perversion that art
-has undergone, nor even the elucidation of the terrible evils this
-perversion is producing (XVII.), will equal in significance the
-remaining chapters of the book. These show us what to look for
-in art, how to distinguish it from counterfeits (XV., XVI., and
-XVIII.), treat of the true art of the future (XIX.), and explain how
-science and art are linked together in man's life, are directed by
-his perception of the meaning of life, and inevitably react on all
-he thinks and feels.
-
-
-
-
-THE AUTHOR'S PREFACE
-
-
-This book of mine, "What is Art?" appears now for the first time
-in its true form. More than one edition has already been issued in
-Russia, but in each case it has been so mutilated by the "Censor,"
-that I request all who are interested in my views on art only to
-judge of them by the work in its present shape. The causes which led
-to the publication of the book--with my name attached to it--in a
-mutilated form were the following: In accordance with a decision I
-arrived at long ago,--not to submit my writings to the "Censorship"
-(which I consider to be an immoral and irrational institution),
-but to print them only in the shape in which they were written,--I
-intended not to attempt to print this work in Russia. However, my
-good acquaintance, Professor Grote, editor of a Moscow psychological
-magazine, having heard of the contents of my work, asked me to
-print it in his magazine, and promised me that he would get the
-book through the "Censor's" office unmutilated if I would but agree
-to a few very unimportant alterations, merely toning down certain
-expressions. I was weak enough to agree to this, and it has resulted
-in a book appearing under my name, from which not only have some
-essential thoughts been excluded, but into which the thoughts of
-other men--even thoughts utterly opposed to my own convictions--have
-been introduced.
-
-The thing occurred in this way. First, Grote softened my
-expressions, and in some cases weakened them. For instance, he
-replaced the words: _always_ by _sometimes_, _all_ by _some_,
-_Church_ religion by _Roman Catholic_ religion, "_Mother of God_"
-by _Madonna_, _patriotism_ by _pseudo-patriotism_, _palaces_
-by _palatii_,[37] etc., and I did not consider it necessary
-to protest. But when the book was already in type, the Censor
-required that whole sentences should be altered, and that instead
-of what I said about the evil of landed property, a remark should
-be substituted on the evils of a landless proletariate.[38] I
-agreed to this also, and to some further alterations. It seemed
-not worth while to upset the whole affair for the sake of one
-sentence, and when one alteration had been agreed to it seemed not
-worth while to protest against a second and a third. So, little by
-little, expressions crept into the book which altered the sense
-and attributed things to me that I could not have wished to say.
-So that by the time the book was printed it had been deprived of
-some part of its integrity and sincerity. But there was consolation
-in the thought that the book, even in this form, if it contains
-something that is good, would be of use to Russian readers whom
-it would otherwise not have reached. Things, however, turned out
-otherwise. _Nous comptions sans notre hote._ After the legal term
-of four days had already elapsed, the book was seized, and, on
-instructions received from Petersburg, it was handed over to the
-"Spiritual Censor." Then Grote declined all further participation
-in the affair, and the "Spiritual Censor" proceeded to do what he
-would with the book. The "Spiritual Censorship" is one of the most
-ignorant, venal, stupid, and despotic institutions in Russia. Books
-which disagree in any way with the recognized state religion of
-Russia, if once it gets hold of them, are almost always totally
-suppressed and burnt; which is what happened to all my religious
-works when attempts were made to print them in Russia. Probably
-a similar fate would have overtaken this work also, had not the
-editors of the magazine employed all means to save it. The result
-of their efforts was that the "Spiritual Censor," a priest who
-probably understands art and is interested in art as much as I
-understand or am interested in church services, but who gets a good
-salary for destroying whatever is likely to displease his superiors,
-struck out all that seemed to him to endanger his position, and
-substituted his thoughts for mine wherever he considered it
-necessary to do so. For instance, where I speak of Christ going
-to the Cross for the sake of the truth He professed, the "Censor"
-substituted a statement that Christ died for mankind, _i.e_. he
-attributed to me an assertion of the dogma of the Redemption, which
-I consider to be one of the most untrue and harmful of Church
-dogmas. After correcting the book in this way, the "Spiritual
-Censor" allowed it to be printed.
-
- [37] Tolstoi's remarks on Church religion were re-worded so as to
- seem to relate only to the Western Church, and his disapproval of
- luxurious life was made to apply, not, say, to Queen Victoria or
- Nicholas II., but to the Caesars or the Pharaohs.--TR.
-
- [38] The Russian peasant is usually a member of a village commune,
- and has therefore a right to a share in the land belonging to the
- village. Tolstoi disapproves of the order of society which allows
- less land for the support of a village full of people than is
- sometimes owned by a single landed proprietor. The "Censor" will not
- allow disapproval of this state of things to be expressed, but is
- prepared to admit that the laws and customs, say, of England--where
- a yet more extreme form of landed property exists, and the men who
- actually labor on the land usually possess none of it--deserve
- criticism.--TR.
-
-To protest in Russia is impossible--no newspaper would publish such
-a protest; and to withdraw my book from the magazine, and place the
-editor in an awkward position with the public, was also not possible.
-
-So the matter has remained. A book has appeared under my name
-containing thoughts attributed to me which are not mine.
-
-I was persuaded to give my article to a Russian magazine in order
-that my thoughts, which may be useful, should become the possession
-of Russian readers; and the result has been that my name is affixed
-to a work from which it might be assumed that I quite arbitrarily
-assert things contrary to the general opinion, without adducing my
-reasons; that I only consider false patriotism bad, but patriotism
-in general a very good feeling; that I merely deny the absurdities
-of the Roman Catholic Church and disbelieve in the Madonna, but
-that I believe in the Orthodox Eastern faith and in the "Mother of
-God"; that I consider all the writings collected in the Bible to be
-holy books, and see the chief importance of Christ's life in the
-Redemption of mankind by His death.
-
-I have narrated all this in such detail because it strikingly
-illustrates the indubitable truth that all compromise with
-institutions of which your conscience disapproves,--compromises
-which are usually made for the sake of the general good,--instead
-of producing the good you expected, inevitably lead you, not only
-to acknowledge the institution you disapprove of, but also to
-participate in the evil that institution produces.
-
-I am glad to be able by this statement at least to do something to
-correct the error into which I was led by my compromise.
-
-I have also to mention that besides reinstating the parts excluded
-by the Censor from the Russian editions, other corrections and
-additions of importance have been made in this edition.
-
- _29th March, 1898._
-
-
-
-
-WHAT IS ART?
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I
-
-
-Take up any one of our ordinary newspapers, and you will find a part
-devoted to the theater and music. In almost every number you will
-find a description of some art exhibition, or of some particular
-picture, and you will always find reviews of new works of art that
-have appeared, of volumes of poems, of short stories, or of novels.
-
-Promptly, and in detail, as soon as it has occurred, an account is
-published of how such and such an actress or actor played this or
-that role in such and such a drama, comedy, or opera; and of the
-merits of the performance, as well as of the contents of the new
-drama, comedy, or opera, with its defects and merits. With as much
-care and detail, or even more, we are told how such and such an
-artist has sung a certain piece, or has played it on the piano or
-violin, and what were the merits and defects of the piece and of the
-performance. In every large town there is sure to be at least one,
-if not more than one, exhibition of new pictures, the merits and
-defects of which are discussed in the utmost detail by critics and
-connoisseurs.
-
-New novels and poems, in separate volumes or in the magazines,
-appear almost every day, and the newspapers consider it their
-duty to give their readers detailed accounts of these artistic
-productions.
-
-For the support of art in Russia (where for the education of the
-people only a hundredth part is spent of what would be required to
-give every one the opportunity of instruction) the government grants
-millions of roubles in subsidies to academies, conservatoires, and
-theaters. In France twenty million francs are assigned for art, and
-similar grants are made in Germany and England.
-
-In every large town enormous buildings are erected for museums,
-academies, conservatoires, dramatic schools, and for performances
-and concerts. Hundreds of thousands of workmen--carpenters, masons,
-painters, joiners, paperhangers, tailors, hairdressers, jewelers,
-molders, type-setters--spend their whole lives in hard labor to
-satisfy the demands of art, so that hardly any other department of
-human activity, except the military, consumes so much energy as this.
-
-Not only is enormous labor spent on this activity, but in it, as in
-war, the very lives of men are sacrificed. Hundreds of thousands
-of people devote their lives from childhood to learning to twirl
-their legs rapidly (dancers), or to touch notes and strings very
-rapidly (musicians), or to draw with paint and represent what
-they see (artists), or to turn every phrase inside out and find a
-rhyme to every word. And these people, often very kind and clever,
-and capable of all sorts of useful labor, grow savage over their
-specialized and stupefying occupations, and become one-sided and
-self-complacent specialists, dull to all the serious phenomena
-of life, and skilful only at rapidly twisting their legs, their
-tongues, or their fingers.
-
-But even this stunting of human life is not the worst. I remember
-being once at the rehearsal of one of the most ordinary of the new
-operas which are produced at all the opera houses of Europe and
-America.
-
-I arrived when the first act had already commenced. To reach the
-auditorium I had to pass through the stage entrance. By dark
-entrances and passages, I was led through the vaults of an enormous
-building, past immense machines for changing the scenery and for
-illuminating; and there in the gloom and dust I saw workmen busily
-engaged. One of these men, pale, haggard, in a dirty blouse, with
-dirty, work-worn hands and cramped fingers, evidently tired and out
-of humor, went past me, angrily scolding another man. Ascending by
-a dark stair, I came out on the boards behind the scenes. Amid
-various poles and rings and scattered scenery, decorations and
-curtains, stood and moved dozens, if not hundreds, of painted and
-dressed-up men, in costumes fitting tight to their thighs and
-calves, and also women, as usual, as nearly nude as might be. These
-were all singers, or members of the chorus, or ballet-dancers,
-awaiting their turns. My guide led me across the stage and, by means
-of a bridge of boards across the orchestra (in which perhaps a
-hundred musicians of all kinds, from kettledrum to flute and harp,
-were seated), to the dark pit-stalls.
-
-On an elevation, between two lamps with reflectors, and in an
-arm-chair placed before a music-stand, sat the director of the
-musical part, _baton_ in hand, managing the orchestra and singers,
-and, in general, the production of the whole opera.
-
-The performance had already commenced, and on the stage a procession
-of Indians who had brought home a bride was being presented. Besides
-men and women in costume, two other men in ordinary clothes bustled
-and ran about on the stage; one was the director of the dramatic
-part, and the other, who stepped about in soft shoes and ran from
-place to place with unusual agility, was the dancing-master, whose
-salary per month exceeded what ten laborers earn in a year.
-
-These three directors arranged the singing, the orchestra, and
-the procession. The procession, as usual, was enacted by couples,
-with tinfoil halberds on their shoulders. They all came from one
-place, and walked round and round again, and then stopped. The
-procession took a long time to arrange: first the Indians with
-halberds came on too late; then too soon; then at the right time,
-but crowded together at the exit; then they did not crowd, but
-arranged themselves badly at the sides of the stage; and each
-time the whole performance was stopped and recommenced from the
-beginning. The procession was introduced by a recitative, delivered
-by a man dressed up like some variety of Turk, who, opening his
-mouth in a curious way, sang, "Home I bring the bri-i-ide." He
-sings and waves his arm (which is of course bare) from under his
-mantle. The procession commences, but here the French horn, in
-the accompaniment of the recitative, does something wrong; and the
-director, with a shudder as if some catastrophe had occurred, raps
-with his stick on the stand. All is stopped, and the director,
-turning to the orchestra, attacks the French horn, scolding him in
-the rudest terms, as cabmen abuse each other, for taking the wrong
-note. And again the whole thing recommences. The Indians with their
-halberds again come on, treading softly in their extraordinary
-boots; again the singer sings, "Home I bring the bri-i-ide." But
-here the pairs get too close together. More raps with the stick,
-more scolding, and a recommencement. Again, "Home I bring the
-bri-i-ide," again the same gesticulation with the bare arm from
-under the mantle, and again the couples, treading softly with
-halberds on their shoulders, some with sad and serious faces, some
-talking and smiling, arrange themselves in a circle and begin to
-sing. All seems to be going well, but again the stick raps, and
-the director, in a distressed and angry voice, begins to scold the
-men and women of the chorus. It appears that when singing they had
-omitted to raise their hands from time to time in sign of animation.
-"Are you all dead, or what? Cows that you are! Are you corpses,
-that you can't move?" Again they recommence, "Home I bring the
-bri-i-ide," and again, with sorrowful faces, the chorus-women sing,
-first one and then another of them raising their hands. But two
-chorus-girls speak to each other,--again a more vehement rapping
-with the stick. "Have you come here to talk? Can't you gossip at
-home? You there in red breeches, come nearer. Look toward me!
-Recommence!" Again, "Home I bring the bri-i-ide." And so it goes
-on for one, two, three hours. The whole of such a rehearsal lasts
-six hours on end. Raps with the stick, repetitions, placings,
-corrections of the singers, of the orchestra, of the procession, of
-the dancers,--all seasoned with angry scolding. I heard the words,
-"asses," "fools," "idiots," "swine," addressed to the musicians
-and singers at least forty times in the course of one hour. And
-the unhappy individual to whom the abuse is addressed,--flautist,
-horn-blower, or singer,--physically and mentally demoralized,
-does not reply, and does what is demanded of him. Twenty times is
-repeated the one phrase, "Home I bring the bri-i-ide," and twenty
-times the striding about in yellow shoes with a halberd over the
-shoulder. The conductor knows that these people are so demoralized
-that they are no longer fit for anything but to blow trumpets and
-walk about with halberds and in yellow shoes, and that they are also
-accustomed to dainty, easy living, so that they will put up with
-anything rather than lose their luxurious life. He therefore gives
-free vent to his churlishness, especially as he has seen the same
-thing done in Paris and Vienna, and knows that this is the way the
-best conductors behave, and that it is a musical tradition of great
-artists to be so carried away by the great business of their art
-that they cannot pause to consider the feelings of other artists.
-
-It would be difficult to find a more repulsive sight. I have seen
-one workman abuse another for not supporting the weight piled upon
-him when goods were being unloaded, or, at hay-stacking, the village
-elder scold a peasant for not making the rick right, and the man
-submitted in silence. And, however unpleasant it was to witness the
-scene, the unpleasantness was lessened by the consciousness that the
-business in hand was needful and important, and that the fault for
-which the head man scolded the laborer was one which might spoil a
-needful undertaking.
-
-But what was being done here? For what, and for whom? Very likely
-the conductor was tired out, like the workman I passed in the
-vaults; it was even evident that he was; but who made him tire
-himself? And for what was he tiring himself? The opera he was
-rehearsing was one of the most ordinary of operas for people who are
-accustomed to them, but also one of the most gigantic absurdities
-that could possibly be devised. An Indian king wants to marry; they
-bring him a bride; he disguises himself as a minstrel; the bride
-falls in love with the minstrel and is in despair, but afterwards
-discovers that the minstrel is the king, and every one is highly
-delighted.
-
-That there never were, or could be, such Indians, and that they
-were not only unlike Indians, but that what they were doing was
-unlike anything on earth except other operas, was beyond all manner
-of doubt; that people do not converse in such a way as recitative,
-and do not place themselves at fixed distances, in a quartet,
-waving their arms to express their emotions; that nowhere, except
-in theaters, do people walk about in such a manner, in pairs, with
-tinfoil halberds and in slippers; that no one ever gets angry in
-such a way, or is affected in such a way, or laughs in such a way,
-or cries in such a way; and that no one on earth can be moved by
-such performances; all this is beyond the possibility of doubt.
-
-Instinctively the question presents itself: For whom is this being
-done? Whom _can_ it please? If there are, occasionally, good
-melodies in the opera, to which it is pleasant to listen, they could
-have been sung simply, without these stupid costumes and all the
-processions and recitatives and hand-wavings.
-
-The ballet, in which half-naked women make voluptuous movements,
-twisting themselves into various sensual wreathings, is simply a
-lewd performance.
-
-So one is quite at a loss as to whom these things are done for. The
-man of culture is heartily sick of them, while to a real working-man
-they are utterly incomprehensible. If any one can be pleased by
-these things (which is doubtful), it can only be some young footman
-or depraved artisan, who has contracted the spirit of the upper
-classes but is not yet satiated with their amusements, and wishes to
-show his breeding.
-
-And all this nasty folly is prepared, not simply, nor with kindly
-merriment, but with anger and brutal cruelty.
-
-It is said that it is all done for the sake of art, and that art
-is a very important thing. But is it true that art is so important
-that such sacrifices should be made for its sake? This question is
-especially urgent, because art, for the sake of which the labor of
-millions, the lives of men, and, above all, love between man and
-man, are being sacrificed,--this very art is becoming something more
-and more vague and uncertain to human perception.
-
-Criticism, in which the lovers of art used to find support for their
-opinions, has latterly become so self-contradictory, that, if we
-exclude from the domain of art all that to which the critics of
-various schools themselves deny the title, there is scarcely any art
-left.
-
-The artists of various sects, like the theologians of the various
-sects, mutually exclude and destroy themselves. Listen to the
-artists of the schools of our times, and you will find, in all
-branches, each set of artists disowning others. In poetry the old
-romanticists deny the parnassiens and the decadents; the parnassiens
-disown the romanticists and the decadents; the decadents disown
-all their predecessors and the symbolists; the symbolists disown
-all their predecessors and _les mages_; and _les mages_ disown
-all, all their predecessors. Among novelists we have naturalists,
-psychologists, and "nature-ists," all rejecting each other. And it
-is the same in dramatic art, in painting, and in music. So that art,
-which demands such tremendous labor-sacrifices from the people,
-which stunts human lives and transgresses against human love, is not
-only _not_ a thing clearly and firmly defined, but is understood in
-such contradictory ways by its own devotees that it is difficult
-to say what is meant by art, and especially what is good, useful
-art,--art for the sake of which we might condone such sacrifices as
-are being offered at its shrine.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II
-
-
-For the production of every ballet, circus, opera, operetta,
-exhibition, picture, concert, or printed book, the intense and
-unwilling labor of thousands and thousands of people is needed at
-what is often harmful and humiliating work. It were well if artists
-made all they require for themselves, but, as it is, they all need
-the help of workmen, not only to produce art, but also for their own
-usually luxurious maintenance. And, one way or other, they get it;
-either through payments from rich people, or through subsidies given
-by government (in Russia, for instance, in grants of millions of
-roubles to theaters, conservatoires, and academies). This money is
-collected from the people, some of whom have to sell their only cow
-to pay the tax, and who never get those aesthetic pleasures which art
-gives.
-
-It was all very well for a Greek or Roman artist, or even for a
-Russian artist of the first half of our century (when there were
-still slaves, and it was considered right that there should be),
-with a quiet mind to make people serve him and his art; but in our
-day, when in all men there is at least some dim perception of the
-equal rights of all, it is impossible to constrain people to labor
-unwillingly for art, without first deciding the question whether it
-is true that art is so good and so important an affair as to redeem
-this evil.
-
-If not, we have the terrible probability to consider, that while
-fearful sacrifices of the labor and lives of men, and of morality
-itself, are being made to art, that same art may be not only useless
-but even harmful.
-
-And therefore it is necessary for a society in which works of art
-arise and are supported, to find out whether all that professes to
-be art is really art; whether (as is presupposed in our society) all
-that which is art is good; and whether it is important and worth
-those sacrifices which it necessitates. It is still more necessary
-for every conscientious artist to know this, that he may be sure
-that all he does has a valid meaning; that it is not merely an
-infatuation of the small circle of people among whom he lives which
-excites in him the false assurance that he is doing a good work; and
-that what he takes from others for the support of his often very
-luxurious life, will be compensated for by those productions at
-which he works. And that is why answers to the above questions are
-especially important in our time.
-
-What is this art, which is considered so important and necessary for
-humanity that for its sake these sacrifices of labor, of human life,
-and even of goodness may be made?
-
-"What is art? What a question! Art is architecture, sculpture,
-painting, music, and poetry in all its forms," usually replies the
-ordinary man, the art amateur, or even the artist himself, imagining
-the matter about which he is talking to be perfectly clear, and
-uniformly understood by everybody. But in architecture, one inquires
-further, are there not simple buildings which are not objects of
-art, and buildings with artistic pretensions which are unsuccessful
-and ugly and therefore cannot be considered as works of art? Wherein
-lies the characteristic sign of a work of art?
-
-It is the same in sculpture, in music, and in poetry. Art, in all
-its forms, is bounded on one side by the practically useful, and on
-the other by unsuccessful attempts at art. How is art to be marked
-off from each of these? The ordinary educated man of our circle,
-and even the artist who has not occupied himself especially with
-aesthetics, will not hesitate at this question either. He thinks the
-solution has been found long ago, and is well known to every one.
-
-"Art is such activity as produces beauty," says such a man.
-
-If art consists in that, then is a ballet or an operetta art? you
-inquire.
-
-"Yes," says the ordinary man, though with some hesitation, "a good
-ballet or a graceful operetta is also art, in so far as it manifests
-beauty."
-
-But without even asking the ordinary man what differentiates the
-"good" ballet and the "graceful" operetta from their opposites
-(a question he would have much difficulty in answering), if you
-ask him whether the activity of costumiers and hairdressers, who
-ornament the figures and faces of the women for the ballet and
-the operetta, is art; or the activity of Worth, the dressmaker;
-of scent-makers and men cooks,--then he will, in most cases, deny
-that their activity belongs to the sphere of art. But in this the
-ordinary man makes a mistake, just because he is an ordinary man
-and not a specialist, and because he has not occupied himself with
-aesthetic questions. Had he looked into these matters, he would
-have seen in the great Renan's book, "Marc Aurele," a dissertation
-showing that the tailor's work is art, and that those who do not
-see in the adornment of woman an affair of the highest art are very
-small-minded and dull. "_C'est le grand art_," says Renan. Moreover,
-he would have known that in many aesthetic systems--for instance,
-in the aesthetics of the learned Professor Kralik, "Weltschoenheit,
-Versuch einer allgemeinen AEsthetik, von Richard Kralik," and in "Les
-Problemes de l'Esthetique Contemporaine," by Guyau--the arts of
-costume, of taste, and of touch are included.
-
-"_Es Folgt nun ein Fuenfblatt von Kuensten, die der subjectiven
-Sinnlichkeit entkeimen_" (There results then a pentafoliate of arts,
-growing out of the subjective perceptions), says Kralik (p. 175).
-"_Sie sind die aesthetische Behandlung der fuenf Sinne._" (They are
-the aesthetic treatment of the five senses.)
-
-These five arts are the following:--
-
-_Die Kunst des Geschmacksinns_--The art of the sense of taste (p.
-175).
-
-_Die Kunst des Geruchsinns_--The art of the sense of smell (p. 177).
-
-_Die Kunst des Tastsinns_--The art of the sense of touch (p. 180).
-
-_Die Kunst des Gehoersinns_--The art of the sense of hearing (p. 182).
-
-_Die Kunst des Gesichtsinns_--The art of the sense of sight (p. 184).
-
-Of the first of these--_die Kunst des Geschmacksinns_--he says:
-"_Man haelt zwar gewoehnlich nur zwei oder hoechstens drei Sinne fuer
-wuerdig, den Stoff kuenstlerischer Behandlung abzugeben, aber ich
-glaube nur mit bedingtem Recht. Ich will kein allzugrosses Gewicht
-darauf legen, dass der gemeine Sprachgebrauch manch andere Kuenste,
-wie zum Beispiel die Kochkunst kennt._"[39]
-
- [39] Only two, or at most three, senses are generally held worthy
- to supply matter for artistic treatment, but I think this opinion
- is only conditionally correct. I will not lay too much stress on
- the fact that our common speech recognizes many other arts, as, for
- instance, the art of cookery.
-
-And further: "_Und es ist doch gewiss eine aesthetische Leistung,
-wenn es der Kochkunst gelingt ans einem thierischen Kadaver einen
-Gegenstand des Geschmacks in jedem Sinne zu machen. Der Grundsatz
-der Kunst des Geschmacksinns (die weiter ist als die sogenannte
-Kochkunst) ist also dieser: Es soll alles Geniessbare als Sinnbild
-einer Idee behandelt werden und in jedesmaligem Einklang zur
-auszudrueckenden Idee._"[40]
-
- [40] And yet it is certainly an aesthetic achievement when the art of
- cooking succeeds in making of an animal's corpse an object in all
- respects tasteful. The principle of the Art of Taste (which goes
- beyond the so-called Art of Cookery) is therefore this: All that is
- eatable should be treated as the symbol of some Idea, and always in
- harmony with the Idea to be expressed.
-
-This author, like Renan, acknowledges a _Kostuemkunst_ (Art of
-Costume) (p. 200), etc.
-
-Such is also the opinion of the French writer, Guyau, who is highly
-esteemed by some authors of our day. In his book, "Les Problemes
-de l'Esthetique Contemporaine," he speaks seriously of touch,
-taste, and smell as giving, or being capable of giving, aesthetic
-impressions: "_Si la couleur manque au toucher, il nous fournit en
-revanche une notion que l'oeil seul ne peut nous donner, et qui a
-une valeur esthetique considerable, celle du_ doux, _du_ soyeux,
-_du_ poli. _Ce qui caracterise la beaute du velours, c'est sa
-douceur au toucher non moins que son brillant. Dans l'idee que nous
-nous faisons de la beaute d'une femme, le veloute de sa peau entre
-comme element essentiel._"
-
-"_Chacun de nous probablement avec un peu d'attention se rappellera
-des jouissances du gout, qui ont ete de veritables jouissances
-esthetiques._"[41] And he recounts how a glass of milk drunk by him
-in the mountains gave him aesthetic enjoyment.
-
- [41] If the sense of touch lacks color, it gives us, on the
- other hand, a notion which the eye alone cannot afford, and one
- of considerable aesthetic value, namely, that of _softness_,
- _silkiness_, _polish_. The beauty of velvet is characterized not
- less by its softness to the touch than by its luster. In the idea
- we form of a woman's beauty, the softness of her skin enters as an
- essential element.
-
- Each of us, probably, with a little attention, can recall pleasures
- of taste which have been real aesthetic pleasures.
-
-So it turns out that the conception of art, as consisting in making
-beauty manifest, is not at all so simple as it seemed, especially
-now, when in this conception of beauty are included our sensations
-of touch and taste and smell, as they are by the latest aesthetic
-writers.
-
-But the ordinary man either does not know, or does not wish to know,
-all this, and is firmly convinced that all questions about art may
-be simply and clearly solved by acknowledging beauty to be the
-subject-matter of art. To him it seems clear and comprehensible that
-art consists in manifesting beauty, and that a reference to beauty
-will serve to explain all questions about art.
-
-But what is this beauty which forms the subject-matter of art? How
-is it defined? What is it?
-
-As is always the case, the more cloudy and confused the conception
-conveyed by a word, with the more _aplomb_ and self-assurance do
-people use that word, pretending that what is understood by it is so
-simple and clear that it is not worth while even to discuss what it
-actually means.
-
-This is how matters of orthodox religion are usually dealt with,
-and this is how people now deal with the conception of beauty.
-It is taken for granted that what is meant by the word beauty is
-known and understood by every one. And yet not only is this not
-known, but, after whole mountains of books have been written on
-the subject by the most learned and profound thinkers during one
-hundred and fifty years (ever since Baumgarten founded aesthetics in
-the year 1750), the question, What is beauty? remains to this day
-quite unsolved, and in each new work on aesthetics it is answered
-in a new way. One of the last books I read on aesthetics is a not
-ill-written booklet by Julius Mithalter, called "Raetsel des Schoenen"
-(The Enigma of the Beautiful). And that title precisely expresses
-the position of the question, What is beauty? After thousands of
-learned men have discussed it during one hundred and fifty years,
-the meaning of the word beauty remains an enigma still. The Germans
-answer the question in their manner, though in a hundred different
-ways. The physiologist-aestheticians, especially the Englishmen,
-Herbert Spencer, Grant Allen, and his school, answer it, each in
-his own way; the French eclectics, and the followers of Guyau and
-Taine, also each in his own way; and all these people know all the
-preceding solutions given by Baumgarten, and Kant, and Schelling,
-and Schiller, and Fichte, and Winckelmann, and Lessing, and Hegel,
-and Schopenhauer, and Hartmann, and Schasler, and Cousin, and
-Leveque, and others.
-
-What is this strange conception "beauty," which seems so simple
-to those who talk without thinking, but in defining which all the
-philosophers of various tendencies and different nationalities can
-come to no agreement during a century and a half? What is this
-conception of beauty, on which the dominant doctrine of art rests?
-
-In Russian, by the word _krasota_ (beauty) we mean only that which
-pleases the sight. And though latterly people have begun to speak of
-"an ugly deed," or of "beautiful music," it is not good Russian.
-
-A Russian of the common folk, not knowing foreign languages, will
-not understand you if you tell him that a man who has given his last
-coat to another, or done anything similar, has acted "beautifully,"
-that a man who has cheated another has done an "ugly" action, or
-that a song is "beautiful."
-
-In Russian a deed may be kind and good, or unkind and bad. Music may
-be pleasant and good, or unpleasant and bad; but there can be no
-such thing as "beautiful" or "ugly" music.
-
-Beautiful may relate to a man, a horse, a house, a view, or a
-movement. Of actions, thoughts, character, or music, if they please
-us, we may say that they are good, or, if they do not please us,
-that they are not good. But beautiful can be used only concerning
-that which pleases the sight. So that the word and conception "good"
-includes the conception of "beautiful," but the reverse is not
-the case; the conception "beauty" does not include the conception
-"good." If we say "good" of an article which we value for its
-appearance, we thereby say that the article is beautiful; but if we
-say it is "beautiful," it does not at all mean that the article is a
-good one.
-
-Such is the meaning ascribed by the Russian language, and therefore
-by the sense of the people, to the words and conceptions "good" and
-"beautiful."
-
-In all the European languages, _i.e._ the languages of those nations
-among whom the doctrine has spread that beauty is the essential
-thing in art, the words "beau," "schoen," "beautiful," "bello,"
-etc., while keeping their meaning of beautiful in form, have come
-to also express "goodness," "kindness," _i.e._ have come to act as
-substitutes for the word "good."
-
-So that it has become quite natural in those languages to use such
-expressions as "belle ame," "schoene Gedanken," of "beautiful deed."
-Those languages no longer have a suitable word wherewith expressly
-to indicate beauty of form, and have to use a combination of words
-such as "beau par la forme," "beautiful to look at," etc., to convey
-that idea.
-
-Observation of the divergent meanings which the words "beauty" and
-"beautiful" have in Russian on the one hand, and in those European
-languages now permeated by this aesthetic theory on the other hand,
-shows us that the word "beauty" has, among the latter, acquired a
-special meaning, namely, that of "good."
-
-What is remarkable, moreover, is that since we Russians have begun
-more and more to adopt the European view of art, the same evolution
-has begun to show itself in our language also, and some people
-speak and write quite confidently, and without causing surprise, of
-beautiful music and ugly actions, or even thoughts; whereas forty
-years ago, when I was young, the expressions "beautiful music"
-and "ugly actions" were not only unusual, but incomprehensible.
-Evidently this new meaning given to beauty by European thought
-begins to be assimilated by Russian society.
-
-And what really is this meaning? What is this "beauty" as it is
-understood by the European peoples?
-
-In order to answer this question, I must here quote at least a
-small selection of those definitions of beauty most generally
-adopted in existing aesthetic systems. I especially beg the reader
-not to be overcome by dullness, but to read these extracts through,
-or, still better, to read some one of the erudite aesthetic authors.
-Not to mention the voluminous German aestheticians, a very good
-book for this purpose would be either the German book by Kralik,
-the English work by Knight, or the French one by Leveque. It is
-necessary to read one of the learned aesthetic writers in order to
-form at firsthand a conception of the variety in opinion and the
-frightful obscurity which reigns in this region of speculation; not,
-in this important matter, trusting to another's report.
-
-This, for instance, is what the German aesthetician Schasler says
-in the preface to his famous, voluminous, and detailed work on
-aesthetics:--
-
-"Hardly in any sphere of philosophic science can we find such
-divergent methods of investigation and exposition, amounting even to
-self-contradiction, as in the sphere of aesthetics. On the one hand,
-we have elegant phraseology without any substance, characterized
-in great part by most one-sided superficiality; and on the other
-hand, accompanying undeniable profundity of investigation and
-richness of subject-matter, we get a revolting awkwardness of
-philosophic terminology, infolding the simplest thoughts in an
-apparel of abstract science, as though to render them worthy to
-enter the consecrated palace of the system; and finally, between
-these two methods of investigation and exposition there is a third,
-forming, as it were, the transition from one to the other, a method
-consisting of eclecticism, now flaunting an elegant phraseology, and
-now a pedantic erudition.... A style of exposition that falls into
-none of these three defects but it is truly concrete, and, having
-important matter, expresses it in clear and popular philosophic
-language, can nowhere be found less frequently than in the domain of
-aesthetics."[42]
-
- [42] M. Schasler, "Kritische Geschichte der AEsthetik," 1872, vol.
- i., p. 13.
-
-It is only necessary, for instance, to read Schasler's own book to
-convince oneself of the justice of this observation of his.
-
-On the same subject the French writer Veron, in the preface to
-his very good work on aesthetics, says: "_Il n'y a pas de science,
-qui ait ete plus que l'esthetique livree aux reveries des
-metaphysiciens. Depuis Platon jusqu'aux doctrines officielles de nos
-jours, on a fait de l'art je ne sais quel amalgame de fantaisies
-quintessenciees, et de mysteres transcendantaux qui trouvent leur
-expression supreme dans la conception absolue du Beau ideal,
-prototype immuable et divin des choses reelles_" ("L'Esthetique,"
-1878, p. 5).[43]
-
- [43] There is no science which, more than aesthetics, has been handed
- over to the reveries of the metaphysicians. From Plato down to the
- received doctrines of our day, people have made of art a strange
- amalgam of quintessential fancies and transcendental mysteries,
- which find their supreme expression in the conception of an absolute
- ideal Beauty, immutable and divine prototype of actual things.
-
-If the reader will only be at the pains to peruse the following
-extracts, defining beauty, taken from the chief writers on
-aesthetics, he may convince himself that this censure is thoroughly
-deserved.
-
-I shall not quote the definitions of beauty attributed to
-the ancients,--Socrates, Plato, Aristotle, etc., down to
-Plotinus,--because, in reality, the ancients had not that conception
-of beauty separated from goodness which forms the basis and aim of
-aesthetics in our time. By referring the judgments of the ancients on
-beauty to our conception of it, as is usually done in aesthetics, we
-give the words of the ancients a meaning which is not theirs.[44]
-
- [44] See on this matter Benard's admirable book, "L'Esthetique
- d'Aristote," also Walter's "Geschichte der AEsthetik in Altertum."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III
-
-
-I begin with the founder of aesthetics, Baumgarten (1714-1762).
-
-According to Baumgarten,[45] the object of logical knowledge is
-Truth, the object of aesthetic (_i.e._ sensuous) knowledge is Beauty.
-Beauty is the Perfect (the Absolute) recognized through the senses;
-Truth is the Perfect perceived through reason; Goodness is the
-Perfect reached by moral will.
-
- [45] Schasler, p. 361.
-
-Beauty is defined by Baumgarten as a correspondence, _i.e._ an order
-of the parts in their mutual relations to each other and in their
-relation to the whole. The aim of beauty itself is to please and
-excite a desire, "_Wohlgefallen und Erregung eines Verlangens_." (A
-position precisely the opposite of Kant's definition of the nature
-and sign of beauty.)
-
-With reference to the manifestations of beauty, Baumgarten considers
-that the highest embodiment of beauty is seen by us in nature, and
-he therefore thinks that the highest aim of art is to copy nature.
-(This position also is directly contradicted by the conclusions of
-the latest aestheticians.)
-
-Passing over the unimportant followers of Baumgarten,--Maier,
-Eschenburg, and Eberhard,--who only slightly modified the doctrine
-of their teacher by dividing the pleasant from the beautiful, I will
-quote the definitions given by writers who came immediately after
-Baumgarten, and defined beauty quite in another way. These writers
-were Sulzer, Mendelssohn, and Moritz. They, in contradiction to
-Baumgarten's main position, recognize as the aim of art, not beauty,
-but goodness. Thus Sulzer (1720-1777) says that only that can be
-considered beautiful which contains goodness. According to his
-theory, the aim of the whole life of humanity is welfare in social
-life. This is attained by the education of the moral feelings, to
-which end art should be subservient. Beauty is that which evokes and
-educates this feeling.
-
-Beauty is understood almost in the same way by Mendelssohn
-(1729-1786). According to him, art is the carrying forward of the
-beautiful, obscurely recognized by feeling, till it becomes the true
-and good. The aim of art is moral perfection.[46]
-
- [46] Schasler, p. 369.
-
-For the aestheticians of this school, the ideal of beauty is a
-beautiful soul in a beautiful body. So that these aestheticians
-completely wipe out Baumgarten's division of the Perfect (the
-Absolute), into the three forms of Truth, Goodness, and Beauty; and
-Beauty is again united with the Good and the True.
-
-But this conception is not only not maintained by the later
-aestheticians, but the aesthetic doctrine of Winckelmann arises, again
-in complete opposition. This divides the mission of art from the aim
-of goodness in the sharpest and most positive manner, makes external
-beauty the aim of art, and even limits it to visible beauty.
-
-According to the celebrated work of Winckelmann (1717-1767), the law
-and aim of all art is beauty only, beauty quite separated from and
-independent of goodness. There are three kinds of beauty: (1) beauty
-of form, (2) beauty of idea, expressing itself in the position of
-the figure (in plastic art), (3) beauty of expression, attainable
-only when the two first conditions are present. This beauty of
-expression is the highest aim of art, and is attained in antique
-art; modern art should therefore aim at imitating ancient art.[47]
-
- [47] Schasler, pp. 388-390.
-
-Art is similarly understood by Lessing, Herder, and afterwards by
-Goethe and by all the distinguished aestheticians of Germany till
-Kant, from whose day, again, a different conception of art commences.
-
-Native aesthetic theories arose during this period in England,
-France, Italy, and Holland, and they, though not taken from the
-German, were equally cloudy and contradictory. And all these
-writers, just like the German aestheticians, founded their theories
-on a conception of the Beautiful, understanding beauty in the sense
-of a something existing absolutely, and more or less intermingled
-with Goodness or having one and the same root. In England, almost
-simultaneously with Baumgarten, even a little earlier, Shaftesbury,
-Hutcheson, Home, Burke, Hogarth, and others, wrote on art.
-
-According to Shaftesbury (1670-1713), "That which is beautiful
-is harmonious and proportionable, what is harmonious and
-proportionable is true, and what is at once both beautiful and true
-is of consequence agreeable and good."[48] Beauty, he taught, is
-recognized by the mind only. God is fundamental beauty; beauty and
-goodness proceed from the same fount.
-
- [48] Knight, "Philosophy of the Beautiful," i., pp. 165, 166.
-
-So that, although Shaftesbury regards beauty as being something
-separate from goodness, they again merge into something inseparable.
-
-According to Hutcheson (1694-1747--"Inquiry into the Original of our
-Ideas of Beauty and Virtue"), the aim of art is beauty, the essence
-of which consists in evoking in us the perception of uniformity amid
-variety. In the recognition of what is art we are guided by "an
-internal sense." This internal sense may be in contradiction to the
-ethical one. So that, according to Hutcheson, beauty does not always
-correspond with goodness, but separates from it and is sometimes
-contrary to it.[49]
-
- [49] Schasler, p. 289. Knight, pp. 168, 169.
-
-According to Home, Lord Kames (1696-1782), beauty is that which is
-pleasant. Therefore beauty is defined by taste alone. The standard
-of true taste is that the maximum of richness, fullness, strength,
-and variety of impression should be contained in the narrowest
-limits. That is the ideal of a perfect work of art.
-
-According to Burke (1729-1797--"Philosophical Inquiry into the
-Origin of our Ideas of the Sublime and Beautiful"), the sublime
-and beautiful, which are the aim of art, have their origin in the
-promptings of self-preservation and of society. These feelings,
-examined in their source, are means for the maintenance of the race
-through the individual. The first (self-preservation) is attained by
-nourishment, defense, and war; the second (society) by intercourse
-and propagation. Therefore self-defense, and war, which is bound
-up with it, is the source of the sublime; sociability, and the
-sex-instinct, which is bound up with it, is the source of beauty.[50]
-
- [50] R. Kralik, "Weltschoenheit, Versuch einer allgemeinen AEsthetik,"
- pp. 304-306.
-
-Such were the chief English definitions of art and beauty in the
-eighteenth century.
-
-During that period, in France, the writers on art were Pere Andre
-and Batteux, with Diderot, D'Alembert, and, to some extent,
-Voltaire, following later.
-
-According to Pere Andre ("Essai sur le Beau," 1741), there are three
-kinds of beauty,--divine beauty, natural beauty, and artificial
-beauty.[51]
-
- [51] Knight, p. 101.
-
-According to Batteux (1713-1780), art consists in imitating the
-beauty of nature, its aim being enjoyment.[52] Such is also
-Diderot's definition of art.
-
- [52] Schasler, p. 316.
-
-The French writers, like the English, consider that it is taste that
-decides what is beautiful. And the laws of taste are not only not
-laid down, but it is granted that they cannot be settled. The same
-view was held by D'Alembert and Voltaire.[53]
-
- [53] Knight, pp. 102-104.
-
-According to the Italian aesthetician of that period, Pagano, art
-consists in uniting the beauties dispersed in nature. The capacity
-to perceive these beauties is taste, the capacity to bring them
-into one whole is artistic genius. Beauty commingles with goodness,
-so that beauty is goodness made visible, and goodness is inner
-beauty.[54]
-
- [54] R. Kralik, p. 124.
-
-According to the opinion of other Italians: Muratori
-(1672-1750),--"_Riflessioni sopra il buon gusto intorno le science
-e le arti_,"--and especially Spaletti,[55]--"_Saggio sopra la
-bellezza_" (1765),--art amounts to an egotistical sensation, founded
-(as with Burke) on the desire for self-preservation and society.
-
- [55] Spaletti, Schasler, p. 328.
-
-Among Dutch writers, Hemsterhuis (1720-1790), who had an influence
-on the German aestheticians and on Goethe, is remarkable. According
-to him, beauty is that which gives most pleasure, and that gives
-most pleasure which gives us the greatest number of ideas in the
-shortest time. Enjoyment of the beautiful, because it gives the
-greatest quantity of perceptions in the shortest time, is the
-highest notion to which man can attain.[56]
-
- [56] Schasler, pp. 331-333.
-
-Such were the aesthetic theories outside Germany during the last
-century. In Germany, after Winckelmann, there again arose a
-completely new aesthetic theory, that of Kant (1724-1804), which,
-more than all others, clears up what this conception of beauty, and
-consequently of art, really amounts to.
-
-The aesthetic teaching of Kant is founded as follows: Man has a
-knowledge of nature outside him and of himself in nature. In
-nature, outside himself, he seeks for truth; in himself, he seeks
-for goodness. The first is an affair of pure reason, the other of
-practical reason (free will). Besides these two means of perception,
-there is yet the judging capacity (_Urteilskraft_), which forms
-judgments without reasonings and produces pleasure without desire
-(_Urtheil ohne Begriff und Vergnuegen ohne Begehren_). This capacity
-is the basis of aesthetic feeling. Beauty, according to Kant, in
-its subjective meaning is that which, in general and necessarily,
-without reasonings and without practical advantage, pleases. In its
-objective meaning it is the form of a suitable object, in so far as
-that object is perceived without any conception of its utility.[57]
-
- [57] Schasler, pp. 525-528.
-
-Beauty is defined in the same way by the followers of Kant, among
-whom was Schiller (1759-1805). According to Schiller, who wrote much
-on aesthetics, the aim of art is, as with Kant, beauty, the source of
-which is pleasure without practical advantage. So that art may be
-called a game, not in the sense of an unimportant occupation, but in
-the sense of a manifestation of the beauties of life itself without
-other aim than that of beauty.[58]
-
- [58] Knight, pp. 61-63.
-
-Besides Schiller, the most remarkable of Kant's followers in the
-sphere of aesthetics was Wilhelm Humboldt, who, though he added
-nothing to the definition of beauty, explained various forms of
-it,--the drama, music, the comic, etc.[59]
-
- [59] Schasler, pp. 740-743.
-
-After Kant, besides the second-rate philosophers, the writers on
-aesthetics were Fichte, Schelling, Hegel, and their followers.
-Fichte (1762-1814) says that perception of the beautiful proceeds
-from this: the world--_i.e._ nature--has two sides: it is the
-sum of our limitations, and it is the sum of our free idealistic
-activity. In the first aspect the world is limited, in the second
-aspect it is free. In the first aspect every object is limited,
-distorted, compressed, confined--and we see deformity; in the second
-we perceive its inner completeness, vitality, regeneration--and
-we see beauty. So that the deformity or beauty of an object,
-according to Fichte, depends on the point of view of the observer.
-Beauty therefore exists, not in the world, but in the beautiful
-soul (_schoener Geist_). Art is the manifestation of this beautiful
-soul, and its aim is the education, not only of the mind--that is
-the business of the _savant_, not only of the heart--that is the
-affair of the moral preacher, but of the whole man. And so the
-characteristic of beauty lies, not in anything external, but in the
-presence of a beautiful soul in the artist.[60]
-
- [60] Schasler, pp, 769-771.
-
-Following Fichte, and in the same direction, Friedrich Schlegel and
-Adam Mueller also defined beauty. According to Schlegel (1772-1829),
-beauty in art is understood too incompletely, one-sidedly, and
-disconnectedly. Beauty exists, not only in art, but also in nature
-and in love; so that the truly beautiful is expressed by the union
-of art, nature, and love. Therefore, as inseparably one with
-aesthetic art, Schlegel acknowledges moral and philosophic art.[61]
-
- [61] Schasler, pp. 786, 787.
-
-According to Adam Mueller (1779-1829), there are two kinds of beauty:
-the one, general beauty, which attracts people as the sun attracts
-the planet--this is found chiefly in antique art; and the other,
-individual beauty, which results from the observer himself becoming
-a sun, attracting beauty--this is the beauty of modern art. A world
-in which all contradictions are harmonized is the highest beauty.
-Every work of art is a reproduction of this universal harmony.[62]
-The highest art is the art of life.[63]
-
- [62] Kralik, p. 148.
-
- [63] Kralik, p. 820.
-
-Next after Fichte and his followers came a contemporary of his, the
-philosopher Schelling (1775-1854), who has had a great influence
-on the aesthetic conceptions of our times. According to Schelling's
-philosophy, art is the production or result of that conception of
-things by which the subject becomes its own object, or the object
-its own subject. Beauty is the perception of the infinite in the
-finite. And the chief characteristic of works of art is unconscious
-infinity. Art is the uniting of the subjective with the objective,
-of nature with reason, of the unconscious with the conscious, and
-therefore art is the highest means of knowledge. Beauty is the
-contemplation of things in themselves as they exist in the prototype
-(_In den Urbildern_). It is not the artist who by his knowledge or
-skill produces the beautiful, but the idea of beauty in him itself
-produces it.[64]
-
- [64] Schasler, pp. 828, 829, 834-841.
-
-Of Schelling's followers the most noticeable was Solger
-(1780-1819--"Vorlesungen ueber AEsthetik"). According to him, the idea
-of beauty is the fundamental idea of everything. In the world we see
-only distortions of the fundamental idea, but art, by imagination,
-may lift itself to the height of this idea. Art is therefore akin to
-creation.[65]
-
- [65] Schasler, p. 891.
-
-According to another follower of Schelling, Krause (1781-1832),
-true, positive beauty is the manifestation of the Idea in an
-individual form; art is the actualization of the beauty existing in
-the sphere of man's free spirit. The highest stage of art is the art
-of life, which directs its activity toward the adornment of life so
-that it may be a beautiful abode for a beautiful man.[66]
-
- [66] Schasler, p. 917.
-
-After Schelling and his followers came the new aesthetic doctrine
-of Hegel, which is held to this day, consciously by many, but by
-the majority unconsciously. This teaching is not only no clearer or
-better defined than the preceding ones, but is, if possible, even
-more cloudy and mystical.
-
-According to Hegel (1770-1831), God manifests himself in nature
-and in art in the form of beauty. God expresses himself in two
-ways: in the object and in the subject, in nature and in spirit.
-Beauty is the shining of the Idea through matter. Only the soul,
-and what pertains to it, is truly beautiful; and therefore the
-beauty of nature is only the reflection of the natural beauty of
-the spirit--the beautiful has only a spiritual content. But the
-spiritual must appear in sensuous form. The sensuous manifestation
-of spirit is only appearance (_schein_), and this appearance is
-the only reality of the beautiful. Art is thus the production of
-this appearance of the Idea, and is a means, together with religion
-and philosophy, of bringing to consciousness and of expressing the
-deepest problems of humanity and the highest truths of the spirit.
-
-Truth and beauty, according to Hegel, are one and the same thing;
-the difference being only that truth is the Idea itself as it exists
-in itself, and is thinkable. The Idea, manifested externally,
-becomes to the apprehension not only true but beautiful. The
-beautiful is the manifestation of the Idea.[67]
-
- [67] Schasler, pp. 946, 1085, 984, 985, 990.
-
-Following Hegel came his many adherents, Weisse, Arnold Ruge,
-Rosenkrantz, Theodor Vischer, and others.
-
-According to Weisse (1801-1867), art is the introduction
-(_Einbildung_) of the absolute spiritual reality of beauty into
-external, dead, indifferent matter, the perception of which latter,
-apart from the beauty brought into it, presents the negation of all
-existence in itself (_Negation alles Fuersichseins_).
-
-In the idea of truth, Weisse explains, lies a contradiction between
-the subjective and the objective sides of knowledge, in that an
-individual _I_ discerns the Universal. This contradiction can be
-removed by a conception that should unite into one the universal and
-the individual, which fall asunder in our conceptions of truth. Such
-a conception would be reconciled (_aufgehoben_) truth. Beauty is
-such a reconciled truth.[68]
-
- [68] Schasler, pp. 966, 655, 956.
-
-According to Ruge (1802-1880), a strict follower of Hegel, beauty is
-the Idea expressing itself. The spirit, contemplating itself, either
-finds itself expressed completely, and then that full expression
-of itself is beauty; or incompletely, and then it feels the need
-to alter this imperfect expression of itself, and becomes creative
-art.[69]
-
- [69] Schasler, p. 1017.
-
-According to Vischer (1807-1887), beauty is the Idea in the form
-of a finite phenomenon. The Idea itself is not indivisible, but
-forms a system of ideas, which may be represented by ascending and
-descending lines. The higher the idea, the more beauty it contains;
-but even the lowest contains beauty, because it forms an essential
-link of the system. The highest form of the Idea is personality, and
-therefore the highest art is that which has for its subject-matter
-the highest personality.[70]
-
- [70] Schasler, pp. 1065, 1066.
-
-Such were the theories of the German aestheticians in the Hegelian
-direction, but they did not monopolize aesthetic dissertations. In
-Germany, side by side and simultaneously with the Hegelian theories,
-there appeared theories of beauty not only independent of Hegel's
-position (that beauty is the manifestation of the Idea), but
-directly contrary to this view, denying and ridiculing it. Such was
-the line taken by Herbart and, more particularly, by Schopenhauer.
-
-According to Herbart (1776-1841), there is not, and cannot be, any
-such thing as beauty existing in itself. What does exist is only
-our opinion, and it is necessary to find the base of this opinion
-(_Aesthetisches Elementarurtheil_). Such bases are connected with our
-impressions. There are certain relations which we term beautiful;
-and art consists in finding these relations, which are simultaneous
-in painting, the plastic art, and architecture, successive and
-simultaneous in music, and purely successive in poetry. In
-contradiction to the former aestheticians, Herbart holds that objects
-are often beautiful which express nothing at all, as, for instance,
-the rainbow, which is beautiful for its lines and colors, and not
-for its mythological connection with Iris or Noah's rainbow.[71]
-
- [71] Schasler, pp. 1097-1100.
-
-Another opponent of Hegel was Schopenhauer, who denied Hegel's whole
-system, his aesthetics included.
-
-According to Schopenhauer (1788-1860), Will objectivizes itself
-in the world on various planes; and although the higher the plane
-on which it is objectivized the more beautiful it is, yet each
-plane has its own beauty. Renunciation of one's individuality and
-contemplation of one of these planes of manifestation of Will gives
-us a perception of beauty. All men, says Schopenhauer, possess the
-capacity to objectivize the Idea on different planes. The genius of
-the artist has this capacity in a higher degree, and therefore makes
-a higher beauty manifest.[72]
-
- [72] Schasler, pp. 1124, 1107.
-
-After these more eminent writers there followed, in Germany, less
-original and less influential ones, such as Hartmann, Kirkmann,
-Schnasse, and, to some extent, Helmholtz (as an aesthetician),
-Bergmann, Jungmann, and an innumerable host of others.
-
-According to Hartmann (1842), beauty lies, not in the external
-world, nor in "the thing in itself," neither does it reside in the
-soul of man, but it lies in the "seeming" (_Schein_) produced by the
-artist. The thing in itself is not beautiful, but is transformed
-into beauty by the artist.[73]
-
- [73] Knight, pp. 81, 82.
-
-According to Schnasse (1798-1875), there is no perfect beauty in the
-world. In nature there is only an approach toward it. Art gives what
-nature cannot give. In the energy of the free _ego_, conscious of
-harmony not found in nature, beauty is disclosed.[74]
-
- [74] Knight, p. 83.
-
-Kirkmann wrote on experimental aesthetics. All aspects of history
-in his system are joined by pure chance. Thus, according to
-Kirkmann (1802-1884), there are six realms of history: The realm of
-Knowledge, of Wealth, of Morality, of Faith, of Politics, and of
-Beauty; and activity in the last-named realm is art.[75]
-
- [75] Schasler, p. 1121.
-
-According to Helmholtz (1821), who wrote on beauty as it relates to
-music, beauty in musical productions is attained only by following
-unalterable laws. These laws are not known to the artist; so that
-beauty is manifested by the artist unconsciously, and cannot be
-subjected to analysis.[76]
-
- [76] Knight, pp. 85, 86.
-
-According to Bergmann (1840) ("Ueber das Schoene," 1887), to
-define beauty objectively is impossible. Beauty is only perceived
-subjectively, and therefore the problem of aesthetics is to define
-what pleases whom.[77]
-
- [77] Knight, p. 88.
-
-According to Jungmann (d. 1885), firstly, beauty is a suprasensible
-quality of things; secondly, beauty produces in us pleasure by
-merely being contemplated; and, thirdly, beauty is the foundation of
-love.[78]
-
- [78] Knight, p. 88.
-
-The aesthetic theories of the chief representatives of France,
-England, and other nations in recent times have been the following:--
-
-In France, during this period, the prominent writers on aesthetics
-were Cousin, Jouffroy, Pictet, Ravaisson, Leveque.
-
-Cousin (1792-1867) was an eclectic, and a follower of the German
-idealists. According to his theory, beauty always has a moral
-foundation. He disputes the doctrine that art is imitation and
-that the beautiful is what pleases. He affirms that beauty may be
-defined objectively, and that it essentially consists in variety in
-unity.[79]
-
- [79] Knight, p. 112.
-
-After Cousin came Jouffroy (1796-1842), who was a pupil of Cousin's
-and also a follower of the German aestheticians. According to his
-definition, beauty is the expression of the invisible by those
-natural signs which manifest it. The visible world is the garment by
-means of which we see beauty.[80]
-
- [80] Knight, p. 116.
-
-The Swiss writer Pictet repeated Hegel and Plato, supposing beauty
-to exist in the direct and free manifestation of the divine Idea
-revealing itself in sense forms.[81]
-
- [81] Knight, pp. 118, 119.
-
-Leveque was a follower of Schelling and Hegel. He holds that beauty
-is something invisible behind nature--a force or spirit revealing
-itself in ordered energy.[82]
-
- [82] Knight, pp. 123, 124.
-
-Similar vague opinions about the nature of beauty were expressed by
-the French metaphysician Ravaisson, who considered beauty to be the
-ultimate aim and purpose of the world. "_La beaute la plus divine et
-principalement la plus parfaite contient le secret du monde._"[83]
-And again, "_Le monde entier est l'oeuvre d'une beaute absolue, qui
-n'est la cause des choses que par l'amour qu'elle met en elles._"
-
- [83] "La Philosophie en France," p. 232.
-
-I purposely abstain from translating these metaphysical expressions,
-because, however cloudy the Germans may be, the French, once
-they absorb the theories of the Germans and take to imitating
-them, far surpass them in uniting heterogeneous conceptions
-into one expression, and putting forward one meaning or another
-indiscriminately. For instance, the French philosopher Renouvier,
-when discussing beauty, says, "_Ne craignons pas de dire qu'une
-verite qui ne serait pas belle, ne serait qu'un jeu logique de notre
-esprit et que la seule verite solide et digne de ce nom c'est la
-beaute._"[84]
-
- [84] "Du Fondement de l'Induction."
-
-Besides the aesthetic idealists who wrote and still write under the
-influence of German philosophy, the following recent writers have
-also influenced the comprehension of art and beauty in France:
-Taine, Guyau, Cherbuliez, Coster, and Veron.
-
-According to Taine (1828-1893), beauty is the manifestation of the
-essential characteristic of any important idea more completely than
-it is expressed in reality.[85]
-
- [85] "Philosophie de l'Art," vol. i., 1893, p. 47.
-
-Guyau (1854-1888) taught that beauty is not something exterior
-to the object itself,--is not, as it were, a parasitic growth on
-it,--but is itself the very blossoming forth of that on which it
-appears. Art is the expression of reasonable and conscious life,
-evoking in us both the deepest consciousness of existence and
-the highest feelings and loftiest thoughts. Art lifts man from
-his personal life into the universal life by means, not only of
-participation in the same ideas and beliefs, but also by means of
-similarity in feeling.[86]
-
- [86] Knight, pp. 139-141.
-
-According to Cherbuliez, art is an activity, (1) satisfying our
-innate love of forms (_apparences_), (2) endowing these forms with
-ideas, (3) affording pleasure alike to our senses, heart, and
-reason. Beauty is not inherent in objects, but is an act of our
-souls. Beauty is an illusion; there is no absolute beauty. But what
-we consider characteristic and harmonious appears beautiful to us.
-
-Coster held that the ideas of the beautiful, the good, and the true
-are innate. These ideas illuminate our minds and are identical with
-God, who is Goodness, Truth, and Beauty. The idea of Beauty includes
-unity of essence, variety of constitutive elements, and order, which
-brings unity into the various manifestations of life.[87]
-
- [87] Knight, p. 134.
-
-For the sake of completeness, I will further cite some of the very
-latest writings upon art.
-
-"La Psychologie du Beau et de l'Art, par Mario Pilo" (1895), says
-that beauty is a product of our physical feelings. The aim of art
-is pleasure, but this pleasure (for some reason) he considers to be
-necessarily highly moral.
-
-The "Essai sur l'Art Contemporain, par Fierens Gevaert" (1897), says
-that art rests on its connection with the past, and on the religious
-ideal of the present which the artist holds when giving to his work
-the form of his individuality.
-
-Then again, Sar Peladan's "L'Art Idealiste et Mystique" (1894),
-says that beauty is one of the manifestations of God. "_Il n'y
-a pas d'autre Realite que Dieu, il n'y a pas d'autre Verite que
-Dieu, il n'y a pas d'autre Beaute que Dieu_" (p. 33). This book
-is very fantastic and very illiterate, but is characteristic in
-the positions it takes up, and noticeable on account of a certain
-success it is having with the younger generation in France.
-
-All the aesthetics diffused in France up to the present time are
-similar in kind, but among them Veron's "L'Esthetique" (1878) forms
-an exception, being reasonable and clear. That work, though it does
-not give an exact definition of art, at least rids aesthetics of the
-cloudy conception of an absolute beauty.
-
-According to Veron (1825-1889), art is the manifestation of emotion
-transmitted externally by a combination of lines, forms, colors, or
-by a succession of movements, sounds, or words subjected to certain
-rhythms.[88]
-
- [88] "L'Esthetique," p. 106.
-
-In England, during this period, the writers on aesthetics define
-beauty more and more frequently, not by its own qualities, but by
-taste; and the discussion about beauty is superseded by a discussion
-on taste.
-
-After Reid (1704-1796), who acknowledged beauty as being entirely
-dependent on the spectator, Alison, in his "Essay on the Nature and
-Principles of Taste" (1790), proved the same thing. From another
-side this was also asserted by Erasmus Darwin (1731-1802), the
-grandfather of the celebrated Charles Darwin.
-
-He says that we consider beautiful that which is connected in our
-conception with what we love. Richard Knight's work, "An Analytical
-Inquiry into the Principles of Taste," also tends in the same
-direction.
-
-Most of the English theories of aesthetics are on the same lines. The
-prominent writers on aesthetics in England during the present century
-have been Charles Darwin (to some extent), Herbert Spencer, Grant
-Allen, Ker, and Knight.
-
-According to Charles Darwin (1809-1882--"Descent of Man," 1871),
-beauty is a feeling natural not only to man, but also to animals,
-and consequently to the ancestors of man. Birds adorn their
-nests and esteem beauty in their mates. Beauty has an influence
-on marriages. Beauty includes a variety of diverse conceptions.
-The origin of the art of music is the call of the males to the
-females.[89]
-
- [89] Knight, p. 238.
-
-According to Herbert Spencer (b. 1820), the origin of art is
-play, a thought previously expressed by Schiller. In the lower
-animals all the energy of life is expended in life-maintenance
-and race-maintenance; in man, however, there remains, after these
-needs are satisfied, some superfluous strength. This excess is
-used in play, which passes over into art. Play is an imitation
-of real activity; so is art. The sources of aesthetic pleasure are
-threefold: (1) That "which exercises the faculties affected in the
-most complete ways, with the fewest drawbacks from exercise," (2)
-"the difference of a stimulus in large amount, which awakens a glow
-of agreeable feeling," (3) the partial revival of the same, with
-special combinations.[90]
-
- [90] Knight, pp. 239, 240.
-
-In Todhunter's "Theory of the Beautiful" (1872), beauty is
-infinite loveliness, which we apprehend both by reason and by the
-enthusiasm of love. The recognition of beauty as being such depends
-on taste; there can be no criterion for it. The only approach
-to a definition is found in culture. (What culture is, is not
-defined.) Intrinsically, art--that which affects us through lines,
-colors, sounds, or words--is not the product of blind forces, but
-of reasonable ones, working, with mutual helpfulness toward a
-reasonable aim. Beauty is the reconciliation of contradictions.[91]
-
- [91] Knight, pp. 240-243.
-
-Grant Allen is a follower of Spencer, and in his "Physiological
-AEsthetics" (1877) he says that beauty has a physical origin.
-AEsthetic pleasures come from the contemplation of the beautiful, but
-the conception of beauty is obtained by a physiological process.
-The origin of art is play; when there is a superfluity of physical
-strength man gives himself to play; when there is a superfluity
-of receptive power man gives himself to art. The beautiful is
-that which affords the maximum of stimulation with the minimum of
-waste. Differences in the estimation of beauty proceed from taste.
-Taste can be educated. We must have faith in the judgments "of the
-finest-nurtured and most discriminative" men. These people form the
-taste of the next generation.[92]
-
- [92] Knight, pp. 250-252.
-
-According to Ker's "Essay on the Philosophy of Art" (1883), beauty
-enables us to make part of the objective world intelligible to
-ourselves without being troubled by reference to other parts
-of it, as is inevitable for science. So that art destroys the
-opposition between the one and the many, between the law and its
-manifestation, between the subject and its object, by uniting them.
-Art is the revelation and vindication of freedom, because it is free
-from the darkness and incomprehensibility of finite things.[93]
-
- [93] Knight, pp. 258, 259.
-
-According to Knight's "Philosophy of the Beautiful," Part II.
-(1893), beauty is (as with Schelling) the union of object and
-subject, the drawing forth from nature of that which is cognate to
-man, and the recognition in oneself of that which is common to all
-nature.
-
-The opinions on beauty and on art here mentioned are far from
-exhausting what has been written on the subject. And every day fresh
-writers on aesthetics arise, in whose disquisitions appear the same
-enchanted confusion and contradictoriness in defining beauty. Some,
-by inertia, continue the mystical aesthetics of Baumgarten and Hegel
-with sundry variations; others transfer the question to the region
-of subjectivity, and seek for the foundation of the beautiful in
-questions of taste; others--the aestheticians of the very latest
-formation--seek the origin of beauty in the laws of physiology; and
-finally, others again investigate the question quite independently
-of the conception of beauty. Thus Sully, in his "Sensation and
-Intuition: Studies in Psychology and AEsthetics" (1874), dismisses
-the conception of beauty altogether, art, by his definition, being
-the production of some permanent object or passing action fitted
-to supply active enjoyment to the producer, and a pleasurable
-impression to a number of spectators or listeners, quite apart from
-any personal advantage derived from it.[94]
-
- [94] Knight, p. 243.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV
-
-
-To what do these definitions of beauty amount? Not reckoning the
-thoroughly inaccurate definitions of beauty which fail to cover
-the conception of art, and which suppose beauty to consist either
-in utility, or in adjustment to a purpose, or in symmetry, or in
-order, or in proportion, or in smoothness, or in harmony of the
-parts, or in unity amid variety, or in various combinations of
-these--not reckoning these unsatisfactory attempts at objective
-definition, all the aesthetic definitions of beauty lead to two
-fundamental conceptions. The first is that beauty is something
-having an independent existence (existing in itself), that it is one
-of the manifestations of the absolutely Perfect, of the Idea, of
-the Spirit, of Will, or of God; the other is that beauty is a kind
-of pleasure received by us, not having personal advantage for its
-object.
-
-The first of these definitions was accepted by Fichte, Schelling,
-Hegel, Schopenhauer, and the philosophizing Frenchmen, Cousin,
-Jouffroy, Ravaisson, and others, not to enumerate the second-rate
-aesthetic philosophers. And this same objective-mystical definition
-of beauty is held by a majority of the educated people of our day.
-It is a conception very widely spread, especially among the elder
-generation.
-
-The second view, that beauty is a certain kind of pleasure received
-by us, not having personal advantage for its aim, finds favor
-chiefly among the English aesthetic writers, and is shared by the
-other part of our society, principally by the younger generation.
-
-So there are (and it could not be otherwise) only two definitions
-of beauty: the one objective, mystical, merging this conception
-into that of the highest perfection, God--a fantastic definition,
-founded on nothing; the other, on the contrary, a very simple and
-intelligible subjective one, which considers beauty to be that which
-pleases (I do not add to the word "pleases" the words "without the
-aim of advantage," because "pleases" naturally presupposes the
-absence of the idea of profit).
-
-On the one hand, beauty is viewed as something mystical and very
-elevated, but unfortunately at the same time very indefinite, and
-consequently embracing philosophy, religion, and life itself (as in
-the theories of Schelling and Hegel, and their German and French
-followers); or, on the other hand (as necessarily follows from the
-definition of Kant and his adherents), beauty is simply a certain
-kind of disinterested pleasure received by us. And this conception
-of beauty, although it seems very clear is, unfortunately, again
-inexact; for it widens out on the other side, _i.e._ it includes the
-pleasure derived from drink, from food, from touching a delicate
-skin, etc., as is acknowledged by Guyau, Kralik, and others.
-
-It is true that, following the development of the aesthetic doctrines
-on beauty, we may notice that, though at first (in the times when
-the foundations of the science of aesthetics were being laid) the
-metaphysical definition of beauty prevailed, yet the nearer we get
-to our own times the more does an experimental definition (recently
-assuming a physiological form) come to the front, so that at last
-we even meet with such aestheticians as Veron and Sully, who try to
-escape entirely from the conception of beauty. But such aestheticians
-have very little success, and with the majority of the public, as
-well as of artists and the learned, a conception of beauty is firmly
-held which agrees with the definitions contained in most of the
-aesthetic treatises, _i.e._ which regards beauty either as something
-mystical or metaphysical, or as a special kind of enjoyment.
-
-What, then, is this conception of beauty, so stubbornly held to by
-people of our circle and day as furnishing a definition of art?
-
-In the subjective aspect, we call beauty that which supplies us with
-a particular kind of pleasure.
-
-In the objective aspect, we call beauty something absolutely
-perfect, and we acknowledge it to be so only because we receive,
-from the manifestation of this absolute perfection, a certain kind
-of pleasure; so that this objective definition is nothing but
-the subjective conception differently expressed. In reality both
-conceptions of beauty amount to one and the same thing; namely,
-the reception by us of a certain kind of pleasure; _i.e._ we call
-"beauty" that which pleases us without evoking in us desire.
-
-Such being the position of affairs, it would seem only natural
-that the science of art should decline to content itself with a
-definition of art based on beauty (_i.e._ on that which pleases),
-and seek a general definition, which should apply to all artistic
-productions, and by reference to which we might decide whether a
-certain article belonged to the realm of art or not. But no such
-definition is supplied, as the reader may see from those summaries
-of the aesthetic theories which I have given, and as he may discover
-even more clearly from the original aesthetic works, if he will be
-at the pains to read them. All attempts to define absolute beauty
-in itself--whether as an imitation of nature, or as suitability to
-its object, or as a correspondence of parts, or as symmetry, or as
-harmony, or as unity in variety, etc.--either define nothing at all,
-or define only some traits of some artistic productions, and are far
-from including all that everybody has always held, and still holds,
-to be art.
-
-There is no objective definition of beauty. The existing definitions
-(both the metaphysical and the experimental) amount only to one and
-the same subjective definition, which (strange as it seems to say
-so) is, that art is that which makes beauty manifest, and beauty
-is that which pleases (without exciting desire). Many aestheticians
-have felt the insufficiency and instability of such a definition,
-and, in order to give it a firm basis, have asked themselves why
-a thing pleases. And they have converted the discussion on beauty
-into a question concerning taste, as did Hutcheson, Voltaire,
-Diderot, and others. But all attempts to define what taste is must
-lead to nothing, as the reader may see both from the history of
-aesthetics and experimentally. There is and can be no explanation
-of why one thing pleases one man and displeases another, or _vice
-versa_. So that the whole existing science of aesthetics fails to
-do what we might expect from it, being a mental activity calling
-itself a science; namely, it does not define the qualities and laws
-of art, or of the beautiful (if that be the content of art), or
-the nature of taste (if taste decides the question of art and its
-merit), and then, on the basis of such definitions, acknowledge as
-art those productions which correspond to these laws, and reject
-those which do not come under them. But this science of aesthetics
-consists in first acknowledging a certain set of productions to be
-art (because they please us), and then framing such a theory of art
-that all those productions which please a certain circle of people
-should fit into it. There exists an art canon, according to which
-certain productions favored by our circle are acknowledged as being
-art,--Phidias, Sophocles, Homer, Titian, Raphael, Bach, Beethoven,
-Dante, Shakespear, Goethe, and others,--and the aesthetic laws must
-be such as to embrace all these productions. In aesthetic literature
-you will incessantly meet with opinions on the merit and importance
-of art, founded not on any certain laws by which this or that is
-held to be good or bad, but merely on the consideration whether this
-art tallies with the art canon we have drawn up.
-
-The other day I was reading a far from ill-written book by Folgeldt.
-Discussing the demand for morality in works of art, the author
-plainly says that we must not demand morality in art. And in proof
-of this he advances the fact that if we admit such a demand,
-Shakespear's "Romeo and Juliet," and Goethe's "Wilhelm Meister,"
-would not fit into the definition of good art; but since both these
-books are included in our canon of art, he concludes that the demand
-is unjust. And therefore it is necessary to find a definition of art
-which shall fit the works; and instead of a demand for morality,
-Folgeldt postulates as the basis of art a demand for the important
-(_Bedeutungsvolles_).
-
-All the existing aesthetic standards are built on this plan. Instead
-of giving a definition of true art, and then deciding what is and
-what is not good art by judging whether a work conforms or does
-not conform to the definition, a certain class of works, which
-for some reason please a certain circle of people, is accepted as
-being art, and a definition of art is then devised to cover all
-these productions. I recently came upon a remarkable instance of
-this method in a very good German work, "The History of Art in the
-Nineteenth Century," by Muther. Describing the pre-Raphaelites, the
-Decadents and the Symbolists (who are already included in the canon
-of art), he not only does not venture to blame their tendency, but
-earnestly endeavors to widen his standard so that it may include
-them all, they appearing to him to represent a legitimate reaction
-from the excesses of realism. No matter what insanities appear in
-art, when once they find acceptance among the upper classes of our
-society, a theory is quickly invented to explain and sanction them;
-just as if there had never been periods in history when certain
-special circles of people recognized and approved false, deformed,
-and insensate art which subsequently left no trace and has been
-utterly forgotten. And to what lengths the insanity and deformity
-of art may go, especially when, as in our days, it knows that it is
-considered infallible, may be seen by what is being done in the art
-of our circle to-day.
-
-So that the theory of art, founded on beauty, expounded by
-aesthetics, and, in dim outline, professed by the public, is nothing
-but the setting up as good of that which has pleased and pleases us,
-_i.e._ pleases a certain class of people.
-
-In order to define any human activity, it is necessary to understand
-its sense and importance. And, in order to do that, it is primarily
-necessary to examine that activity in itself, in its dependence on
-its causes, and in connection with its effects, and not merely in
-relation to the pleasure we can get from it.
-
-If we say that the aim of any activity is merely our pleasure, and
-define it solely by that pleasure, our definition will evidently be
-a false one. But this is precisely what has occurred in the efforts
-to define art. Now, if we consider the food question, it will not
-occur to anyone to affirm that the importance of food consists
-in the pleasure we receive when eating it. Every one understands
-that the satisfaction of our taste cannot serve as a basis for our
-definition of the merits of food, and that we have therefore no
-right to presuppose that the dinners with cayenne pepper, Limburg
-cheese, alcohol, etc., to which we are accustomed and which please
-us, form the very best human food.
-
-And in the same way, beauty, or that which pleases us, can in no
-sense serve as the basis for the definition of art; nor can a series
-of objects which afford us pleasure serve as the model of what art
-should be.
-
-To see the aim and purpose of art in the pleasure we get from it, is
-like assuming (as is done by people of the lowest moral development,
-_e.g._ by savages) that the purpose and aim of food is the pleasure
-derived when consuming it.
-
-Just as people who conceive the aim and purpose of food to be
-pleasure cannot recognize the real meaning of eating, so people
-who consider the aim of art to be pleasure cannot realize its true
-meaning and purpose, because they attribute to an activity, the
-meaning of which lies in its connection with other phenomena of
-life, the false and exceptional aim of pleasure. People come to
-understand that the meaning of eating lies in the nourishment of
-the body only when they cease to consider that the object of that
-activity is pleasure. And it is the same with regard to art. People
-will come to understand the meaning of art only when they cease to
-consider that the aim of that activity is beauty, _i.e._ pleasure.
-The acknowledgment of beauty (_i.e._ of a certain kind of pleasure
-received from art) as being the aim of art, not only fails to assist
-us in finding a definition of what art is, but, on the contrary, by
-transferring the question into a region quite foreign to art (into
-metaphysical, psychological, physiological, and even historical
-discussions as to why such a production pleases one person, and
-such another displeases or pleases some one else), it renders such
-definition impossible. And since discussions as to why one man
-likes pears and another prefers meat do not help toward finding a
-definition of what is essential in nourishment, so the solution
-of questions of taste in art (to which the discussions on art
-involuntarily come), not only does not help to make clear what this
-particular human activity which we call art really consists in, but
-renders such elucidation quite impossible, until we rid ourselves
-of a conception which justifies every kind of art, at the cost of
-confusing the whole matter.
-
-To the question, What is this art, to which is offered up the labor
-of millions, the very lives of men, and even morality itself? we
-have extracted replies from the existing aesthetics, which all amount
-to this that the aim of art is beauty, that beauty is recognized
-by the enjoyment it gives, and that artistic enjoyment is a good
-and important thing, because it _is_ enjoyment. In a word, that
-enjoyment is good because it is enjoyment. Thus, what is considered
-the definition of art is no definition at all, but only a shuffle
-to justify existing art. Therefore, however strange it may seem to
-say so, in spite of the mountains of books written about art, no
-exact definition of art has been constructed. And the reason of this
-is that the conception of art has been based on the conception of
-beauty.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V
-
-
-What is art, if we put aside the conception of beauty, which
-confuses the whole matter? The latest and most comprehensible
-definitions of art, apart from the conception of beauty, are the
-following: (1 _a_) Art is an activity arising even in the animal
-kingdom, and springing from sexual desire and the propensity to
-play (Schiller, Darwin, Spencer), and (1 _b_) accompanied by a
-pleasurable excitement of the nervous system (Grant Allen). This is
-the physiological-evolutionary definition. (2) Art is the external
-manifestation, by means of lines, colors, movements, sounds, or
-words, of emotions felt by man (Veron). This is the experimental
-definition. According to the very latest definition (Sully), (3) Art
-is "the production of some permanent object or passing action, which
-is fitted, not only to supply an active enjoyment to the producer,
-but to convey a pleasurable impression to a number of spectators or
-listeners, quite apart from any personal advantage to be derived
-from it."
-
-Notwithstanding the superiority of these definitions to the
-metaphysical definitions which depended on the conception of
-beauty, they are yet far from exact. (1 _a_) The first, the
-physiological-evolutionary definition, is inexact, because, instead
-of speaking about the artistic activity itself, which is the real
-matter in hand, it treats of the derivation of art. The modification
-of it (1 _b_), based on the physiological effects on the human
-organism, is inexact, because within the limits of such definition
-many other human activities can be included, as has occurred in
-the neo-aesthetic theories, which reckon as art the preparation of
-handsome clothes, pleasant scents, and even of victuals.
-
-The experimental definition (2), which makes art consist in the
-expression of emotions, is inexact, because a man may express his
-emotions by means of lines, colors, sounds, or words, and yet may
-not act on others by such expression; and then the manifestation of
-his emotions is not art.
-
-The third definition (that of Sully) is inexact, because in the
-production of objects or actions affording pleasure to the producer
-and a pleasant emotion to the spectators or hearers apart from
-personal advantage may be included the showing of conjuring tricks
-or gymnastic exercises, and other activities which are not art.
-And, further, many things, the production of which does not afford
-pleasure to the producer, and the sensation received from which
-is unpleasant, such as gloomy, heartrending scenes in a poetic
-description or a play, may nevertheless be undoubted works of art.
-
-The inaccuracy of all these definitions arises from the fact that
-in them all (as also in the metaphysical definitions) the object
-considered is the pleasure art may give, and not the purpose it may
-serve in the life of man and of humanity.
-
-In order correctly to define art, it is necessary, first of all,
-to cease to consider it as a means to pleasure, and to consider it
-as one of the conditions of human life. Viewing it in this way, we
-cannot fail to observe that art is one of the means of intercourse
-between man and man.
-
-Every work of art causes the receiver to enter into a certain
-kind of relationship both with him who produced, or is producing,
-the art, and with all those who, simultaneously, previously, or
-subsequently, receive the same artistic impression.
-
-Speech, transmitting the thoughts and experiences of men, serves as
-a means of union among them, and art acts in a similar manner. The
-peculiarity of this latter means of intercourse, distinguishing it
-from intercourse by means of words, consists in this, that whereas
-by words a man transmits his thoughts to another, by means of art he
-transmits his feelings.
-
-The activity of art is based on the fact that a man, receiving
-through his sense of hearing or sight another man's expression
-of feeling, is capable of experiencing the emotion which moved
-the man who expressed it. To take the simplest example: one man
-laughs, and another, who hears, becomes merry; or a man weeps, and
-another, who hears, feels sorrow. A man is excited or irritated, and
-another man, seeing him, comes to a similar state of mind. By his
-movements, or by the sounds of his voice, a man expresses courage
-and determination, or sadness and calmness, and this state of mind
-passes on to others. A man suffers, expressing his sufferings by
-groans and spasms, and this suffering transmits itself to other
-people; a man expresses his feeling of admiration, devotion, fear,
-respect, or love to certain objects, persons, or phenomena, and
-others are infected by the same feelings of admiration, devotion,
-fear, respect, or love to the same objects, persons, and phenomena.
-
-And it is on this capacity of man to receive another man's
-expression of feeling, and experience those feelings himself, that
-the activity of art is based.
-
-If a man infects another or others, directly, immediately, by his
-appearance, or by the sounds he gives vent to at the very time he
-experiences the feeling; if he causes another man to yawn when he
-himself cannot help yawning, or to laugh or cry when he himself
-is obliged to laugh or cry, or to suffer when he himself is
-suffering--that does not amount to art.
-
-Art begins when one person, with the object of joining another
-or others to himself in one and the same feeling, expresses that
-feeling by certain external indications. To take the simplest
-example: a boy, having experienced, let us say, fear on encountering
-a wolf, relates that encounter; and, in order to evoke in others
-the feeling he has experienced, describes himself, his condition
-before the encounter, the surroundings, the wood, his own
-light-heartedness, and then the wolf's appearance, its movements,
-the distance between himself and the wolf, etc. All this, if only
-the boy, when telling the story, again experiences the feelings he
-had lived through and infects the hearers and compels them to feel
-what the narrator had experienced, is art. If even the boy had not
-seen a wolf but had frequently been afraid of one, and if, wishing
-to evoke in others the fear he had felt, he invented an encounter
-with a wolf, and recounted it so as to make his hearers share the
-feelings he experienced when he feared the wolf, that also would be
-art. And just in the same way it is art if a man, having experienced
-either the fear of suffering or the attraction of enjoyment (whether
-in reality or in imagination), expresses these feelings on canvas or
-in marble so that others are infected by them. And it is also art if
-a man feels or imagines to himself feelings of delight, gladness,
-sorrow, despair, courage, or despondency, and the transition from
-one to another of these feelings, and expresses these feelings by
-sounds, so that the hearers are infected by them, and experience
-them as they were experienced by the composer.
-
-The feelings with which the artist infects others may be most
-various,--very strong or very weak, very important or very
-insignificant, very bad or very good: feelings of love for native
-land, self-devotion and submission to fate or to God expressed
-in a drama, raptures of lovers described in a novel, feelings of
-voluptuousness expressed in a picture, courage expressed in a
-triumphal march, merriment evoked by a dance, humor evoked by a
-funny story, the feeling of quietness transmitted by an evening
-landscape or by a lullaby, or the feeling of admiration evoked by a
-beautiful arabesque--it is all art.
-
-If only the spectators or auditors are infected by the feelings
-which the author has felt, it is art.
-
-_To evoke in oneself a feeling one has once experienced, and having
-evoked it in oneself, then, by means of movements, lines, colors,
-sounds, or forms expressed in words, so to transmit that feeling
-that others may experience the same feeling--this is the activity of
-art._
-
-_Art is a human activity, consisting in this, that one man
-consciously, by means of certain external signs, hands on to others
-feelings he has lived through, and that other people are infected by
-these feelings, and also experience them._
-
-Art is not, as the metaphysicians say, the manifestation of some
-mysterious Idea of beauty, or God; it is not, as the aesthetical
-physiologists say, a game in which man lets off his excess of
-stored-up energy; it is not the expression of man's emotions by
-external signs; it is not the production of pleasing objects; and,
-above all, it is not pleasure; but it is a means of union among
-men, joining them together in the same feelings, and indispensable
-for the life and progress toward well-being of individuals and of
-humanity.
-
-As, thanks to man's capacity to express thoughts by words, every man
-may know all that has been done for him in the realms of thought by
-all humanity before his day, and can, in the present, thanks to this
-capacity to understand the thoughts of others, become a sharer in
-their activity, and can himself hand on to his contemporaries and
-descendants the thoughts he has assimilated from others, as well as
-those which have arisen within himself; so, thanks to man's capacity
-to be infected with the feelings of others by means of art, all that
-is being lived through by his contemporaries is accessible to him,
-as well as the feelings experienced by men thousands of years ago,
-and he has also the possibility of transmitting his own feelings to
-others.
-
-If people lacked this capacity to receive the thoughts conceived
-by the men who preceded them, and to pass on to others their own
-thoughts, men would be like wild beasts, or like Kaspar Hauser.[95]
-
- [95] "The foundling of Nuremberg," found in the market-place of
- that town on 26th May, 1828, apparently some sixteen years old.
- He spoke little, and was almost totally ignorant even of common
- objects. He subsequently explained that he had been brought up in
- confinement underground, and visited by only one man, whom he saw
- but seldom.--TR.
-
-And if men lacked this other capacity of being infected by art,
-people might be almost more savage still, and, above all, more
-separated from, and more hostile to, one another.
-
-And therefore the activity of art is a most important one, as
-important as the activity of speech itself, and as generally
-diffused.
-
-We are accustomed to understand art to be only what we hear and see
-in theaters, concerts, and exhibitions; together with buildings,
-statues, poems, novels.... But all this is but the smallest part of
-the art by which we communicate with each other in life. All human
-life is filled with works of art of every kind,--from cradle-song,
-jest, mimicry, the ornamentation of houses, dress, and utensils, up
-to church services, buildings, monuments, and triumphal processions.
-It is all artistic activity. So that by art, in the limited sense of
-the word, we do not mean all human activity transmitting feelings,
-but only that part which we for some reason select from it and to
-which we attach special importance.
-
-This special importance has always been given by all men to that
-part of this activity which transmits feelings flowing from
-their religious perception, and this small part of art they have
-specifically called art, attaching to it the full meaning of the
-word.
-
-That was how men of old--Socrates, Plato, and Aristotle--looked on
-art. Thus did the Hebrew prophets and the ancient Christians regard
-art; thus it was, and still is, understood by the Mahommedans,
-and thus is it still understood by religious folk among our own
-peasantry.
-
-Some teachers of mankind--as Plato in his "Republic," and people
-such as the primitive Christians, the strict Mahommedans, and the
-Buddhists--have gone so far as to repudiate all art.
-
-People viewing art in this way (in contradiction to the prevalent
-view of to-day, which regards any art as good if only it affords
-pleasure) considered, and consider, that art (as contrasted with
-speech, which need not be listened to) is so highly dangerous in its
-power to infect people against their wills, that mankind will lose
-far less by banishing all art than by tolerating each and every art.
-
-Evidently such people were wrong in repudiating all art, for they
-denied that which cannot be denied,--one of the indispensable means
-of communication, without which mankind could not exist. But not
-less wrong are the people of civilized European society of our class
-and day, in favoring any art if it but serves beauty, _i.e._ gives
-people pleasure.
-
-Formerly, people feared lest among the works of art there might
-chance to be some causing corruption, and they prohibited art
-altogether. Now, they only fear lest they should be deprived of any
-enjoyment art can afford, and patronize any art. And I think the
-last error is much grosser than the first, and that its consequences
-are far more harmful.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI
-
-
-But how could it happen that that very art, which in ancient times
-was merely tolerated (if tolerated at all), should have come, in our
-times, to be invariably considered a good thing if only it affords
-pleasure?
-
-It has resulted from the following causes. The estimation of the
-value of art (_i.e._ of the feelings it transmits) depends on men's
-perception of the meaning of life; depends on what they consider to
-be the good and the evil of life. And what is good and what is evil
-is defined by what are termed religions.
-
-Humanity unceasingly moves forward from a lower, more partial, and
-obscure understanding of life, to one more general and more lucid.
-And in this, as in every movement, there are leaders,--those who
-have understood the meaning of life more clearly than others,--and
-of these advanced men there is always one who has, in his words and
-by his life, expressed this meaning more clearly, accessibly, and
-strongly than others. This man's expression of the meaning of life,
-together with those superstitions, traditions, and ceremonies which
-usually form themselves round the memory of such a man, is what
-is called a religion. Religions are the exponents of the highest
-comprehension of life accessible to the best and foremost men at
-a given time in a given society; a comprehension toward which,
-inevitably and irresistibly, all the rest of that society must
-advance. And therefore only religions have always served, and still
-serve, as bases for the valuation of human sentiments. If feelings
-bring men nearer the ideal their religion indicates, if they are in
-harmony with it and do not contradict it, they are good; if they
-estrange men from it and oppose it, they are bad.
-
-If the religion places the meaning of life in worshiping one God
-and fulfilling what is regarded as His will, as was the case among
-the Jews, then the feelings flowing from love to that God, and
-to His law, successfully transmitted through the art of poetry
-by the prophets, by the psalms, or by the epic of the book of
-Genesis, is good, high art. All opposing that, as, for instance,
-the transmission of feelings of devotion to strange gods, or of
-feelings incompatible with the law of God, would be considered bad
-art. Or if, as was the case among the Greeks, the religion places
-the meaning of life in earthly happiness, in beauty and in strength,
-then art successfully transmitting the joy and energy of life
-would be considered good art, but art which transmitted feelings
-of effeminacy or despondency would be bad art. If the meaning of
-life is seen in the well-being of one's nation, or in honoring
-one's ancestors and continuing the mode of life led by them, as
-was the case among the Romans and the Chinese respectively, then
-art transmitting feelings of joy at sacrificing one's personal
-well-being for the common weal, or at exalting one's ancestors and
-maintaining their traditions, would be considered good art, but
-art expressing feelings contrary to this would be regarded as bad.
-If the meaning of life is seen in freeing oneself from the yoke of
-animalism, as is the case among the Buddhists, then art successfully
-transmitting feelings that elevate the soul and humble the flesh
-will be good art, and all that transmits feelings strengthening the
-bodily passions will be bad art.
-
-In every age, and in every human society, there exists a religious
-sense, common to that whole society, of what is good and what is
-bad, and it is this religious conception that decides the value of
-the feelings transmitted by art. And therefore, among all nations,
-art which transmitted feelings considered to be good by this general
-religious sense was recognized as being good and was encouraged;
-but art which transmitted feelings considered to be bad by this
-general religious conception, was recognized as being bad, and was
-rejected. All the rest of the immense field of art by means of which
-people communicate one with another, was not esteemed at all, and
-was only noticed when it ran counter to the religious conception of
-its age, and then merely to be repudiated. Thus it was among all
-nations,--Greeks, Jews, Indians, Egyptians, and Chinese,--and so it
-was when Christianity appeared.
-
-The Christianity of the first centuries recognized as productions
-of good art only legends, lives of saints, sermons, prayers, and
-hymn-singing, evoking love of Christ, emotion at His life, desire to
-follow His example, renunciation of worldly life, humility, and the
-love of others; all productions transmitting feelings of personal
-enjoyment they considered to be bad, and therefore rejected: for
-instance, tolerating plastic representations only when they were
-symbolical, they rejected all the pagan sculptures.
-
-This was so among the Christians of the first centuries, who
-accepted Christ's teaching, if not quite in its true form, at least
-not in the perverted, paganized form in which it was accepted
-subsequently.
-
-But besides this Christianity, from the time of the wholesale
-conversion of nations by order of the authorities, as in the days of
-Constantine, Charlemagne, and Vladimir, there appeared another, a
-Church Christianity, which was nearer to paganism than to Christ's
-teaching. And this Church Christianity, in accordance with its own
-teaching, estimated quite otherwise the feelings of people and the
-productions of art which transmitted those feelings.
-
-This Church Christianity not only did not acknowledge the
-fundamental and essential positions of true Christianity,--the
-immediate relationship of each man to the Father, the consequent
-brotherhood and equality of all men, and the substitution of
-humility and love in place of every kind of violence,--but, on the
-contrary, having set up a heavenly hierarchy similar to the pagan
-mythology, and having introduced the worship of Christ, of the
-Virgin, of angels, of apostles, of saints, and of martyrs, and not
-only of these divinities themselves, but also of their images, it
-made blind faith in the Church and its ordinances the essential
-point of its teaching.
-
-However foreign this teaching may have been to true Christianity;
-however degraded, not only in comparison with true Christianity,
-but even with the life-conception of Romans such as Julian and
-others,--it was, for all that, to the barbarians who accepted it,
-a higher doctrine than their former adoration of gods, heroes, and
-good and bad spirits. And therefore this teaching was a religion
-to them, and on the basis of that religion the art of the time
-was assessed. And art transmitting pious adoration of the Virgin,
-Jesus, the saints and the angels, a blind faith in and submission
-to the Church, fear of torments and hope of blessedness in a life
-beyond the grave, was considered good; all art opposed to this was
-considered bad.
-
-The teaching on the basis of which this art arose was a perversion
-of Christ's teaching, but the art which sprang up on this perverted
-teaching was nevertheless a true art, because it corresponded to the
-religious view of life held by the people among whom it arose.
-
-The artists of the Middle Ages, vitalized by the same source of
-feeling--religion--as the mass of the people, and transmitting,
-in architecture, sculpture, painting, music, poetry or drama, the
-feelings and states of mind they experienced, were true artists;
-and their activity, founded on the highest conceptions accessible
-to their age and common to the entire people, though, for our times
-a mean art, was, nevertheless a true one, shared by the whole
-community.
-
-And this was the state of things until, in the upper, rich, more
-educated classes of European society, doubt arose as to the truth
-of that understanding of life which was expressed by Church
-Christianity. When, after the Crusades and the maximum development
-of papal power and its abuses, people of the rich classes became
-acquainted with the wisdom of the classics, and saw, on the one
-hand, the reasonable lucidity of the teaching of the ancient sages,
-and, on the other hand, the incompatibility of the Church doctrine
-with the teaching of Christ, they lost all possibility of continuing
-to believe the Church teaching.
-
-If, in externals, they still kept to the forms of Church teaching,
-they could no longer believe in it, and held to it only by inertia
-and for the sake of influencing the masses, who continued to believe
-blindly in Church doctrine, and whom the upper classes, for their
-own advantage, considered it necessary to support in those beliefs.
-
-So that a time came when Church Christianity ceased to be the
-general religious doctrine of all Christian people; some--the
-masses--continued blindly to believe in it, but the upper
-classes--those in whose hands lay the power and wealth, and
-therefore the leisure to produce art and the means to stimulate
-it--ceased to believe in that teaching.
-
-In respect to religion, the upper circles of the Middle Ages found
-themselves in the same position in which the educated Romans were
-before Christianity arose, _i.e._ they no longer believed in the
-religion of the masses, but had no beliefs to put in place of the
-worn-out Church doctrine which for them had lost its meaning.
-
-There was only this difference: that whereas for the Romans,
-who lost faith in their emperor-gods and household-gods, it was
-impossible to extract anything further from all the complex
-mythology they had borrowed from all the conquered nations, and it
-was consequently necessary to find a completely new conception of
-life, the people of the Middle Ages, when they doubted the truth of
-the Church teaching, had no need to seek a fresh one. That Christian
-teaching which they professed in a perverted form as Church doctrine
-had mapped out the path of human progress so far ahead that they
-had but to rid themselves of those perversions which hid the
-teaching announced by Christ, and to adopt its real meaning--if not
-completely, then at least in some greater degree than that in which
-the Church had held it. And this was partially done, not only in the
-reformations of Wyclif, Huss, Luther, and Calvin, but by all that
-current of non-Church Christianity represented in earlier times by
-the Paulicians, the Bogomili,[96] and, afterward, by the Waldenses
-and the other non-Church Christians who were called heretics. But
-this could be, and was, done chiefly by poor people--who did not
-rule. A few of the rich and strong, like Francis of Assisi and
-others, accepted the Christian teaching in its full significance,
-even though it undermined their privileged positions. But most
-people of the upper classes (though in the depth of their souls
-they had lost faith in the Church teaching) could not or would not
-act thus, because the essence of that Christian view of life, which
-stood ready to be adopted when once they rejected the Church faith,
-was a teaching of the brotherhood (and therefore the equality) of
-man, and this negatived those privileges on which they lived, in
-which they had grown up and been educated, and to which they were
-accustomed. Not, in the depth of their hearts, believing in the
-Church teaching,--which had outlived its age and had no longer any
-true meaning for them,--and not being strong enough to accept true
-Christianity, men of these rich, governing classes--popes, kings,
-dukes, and all the great ones of the earth--were left without any
-religion, with but the external forms of one, which they supported
-as being profitable and even necessary for themselves, since these
-forms screened a teaching which justified those privileges which
-they made use of. In reality, these people believed in nothing, just
-as the Romans of the first centuries of our era believed in nothing.
-But at the same time these were the people who had the power and the
-wealth, and these were the people who rewarded art and directed it.
-
- [96] Eastern sects well known in early Church history, who rejected
- the Church's rendering of Christ's teaching, and were cruelly
- persecuted.--TR.
-
-And, let it be noticed, it was just among these people that there
-grew up an art esteemed, not according to its success in expressing
-men's religious feelings, but in proportion to its beauty,--in other
-words, according to the enjoyment it gave.
-
-No longer able to believe in the Church religion, whose falsehood
-they had detected, and incapable of accepting true Christian
-teaching, which denounced their whole manner of life, these rich and
-powerful people, stranded without any religious conception of life,
-involuntarily returned to that pagan view of things which places
-life's meaning in personal enjoyment. And then took place among the
-upper classes what is called the "Renaissance of science and art,"
-and which was really not only a denial of every religion, but also
-an assertion that religion is unnecessary.
-
-The Church doctrine is so coherent a system that it cannot be
-altered or corrected without destroying it altogether. As soon
-as doubt arose with regard to the infallibility of the Pope (and
-this doubt was then in the minds of all educated people), doubt
-inevitably followed as to the truth of tradition. But doubt as to
-the truth of tradition is fatal not only to popery and Catholicism,
-but also to the whole Church creed, with all its dogmas: the
-divinity of Christ, the resurrection, and the Trinity; and it
-destroys the authority of the Scriptures, since they were considered
-to be inspired only because the tradition of the Church decided it
-so.
-
-So that the majority of the highest classes of that age, even the
-popes and the ecclesiastics, really believed in nothing at all.
-In the Church doctrine these people did not believe, for they saw
-its insolvency; but neither could they follow Francis of Assisi,
-Keltchitsky,[97] and most of the heretics, in acknowledging the
-moral, social teaching of Christ, for that teaching undermined their
-social position. And so these people remained without any religious
-view of life. And, having none, they could have no standard
-wherewith to estimate what was good and what was bad art but that of
-personal enjoyment. And, having acknowledged their criterion of what
-was good to be pleasure, _i.e._ beauty, these people of the upper
-classes of European society went back in their comprehension of art
-to the gross conception of the primitive Greeks which Plato had
-already condemned. And conformably to this understanding of life, a
-theory of art was formulated.
-
- [97] Keltchitsky, a Bohemian of the fifteenth century, was the
- author of a remarkable book, "The Net of Faith," directed against
- Church and State. It is mentioned in Tolstoi's "The Kingdom of God
- is Within You."--TR.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII
-
-
-From the time that people of the upper classes lost faith in Church
-Christianity, beauty (_i.e._ the pleasure received from art) became
-their standard of good and bad art. And, in accordance with that
-view, an aesthetic theory naturally sprang up among those upper
-classes justifying such a conception,--a theory according to which
-the aim of art is to exhibit beauty. The partizans of this aesthetic
-theory, in confirmation of its truth, affirmed that it was no
-invention of their own, but that it existed in the nature of things,
-and was recognized even by the ancient Greeks. But this assertion
-was quite arbitrary, and has no foundation other than the fact that
-among the ancient Greeks, in consequence of the low grade of their
-moral ideal (as compared with the Christian), their conception of
-the good, +to agathon+, was not yet sharply divided from
-their conception of the beautiful,+to kalon+.
-
-That highest perfection of goodness (not only not identical with
-beauty, but, for the most part, contrasting with it) which was
-discerned by the Jews even in the times of Isaiah, and fully
-expressed by Christianity, was quite unknown to the Greeks. They
-supposed that the beautiful must necessarily also be the good. It is
-true that their foremost thinkers--Socrates, Plato, Aristotle--felt
-that goodness may happen not to coincide with beauty. Socrates
-expressly subordinated beauty to goodness; Plato, to unite the two
-conceptions, spoke of spiritual beauty; while Aristotle demanded
-from art that it should have a moral influence on people (+katharsis+).
-But, notwithstanding all this, they could not quite dismiss the notion
-that beauty and goodness coincide.
-
-And consequently, in the language of that period, a compound word
-(+kalo-kagathia+, beauty-goodness) came into use to express that
-notion.
-
-Evidently the Greek sages began to draw near to that perception of
-goodness which is expressed in Buddhism and in Christianity, and
-they got entangled in defining the relation between goodness and
-beauty. Plato's reasonings about beauty and goodness are full of
-contradictions. And it was just this confusion of ideas that those
-Europeans of a later age, who had lost all faith, tried to elevate
-into a law. They tried to prove that this union of beauty and
-goodness is inherent in the very essence of things; that beauty and
-goodness must coincide; and that the word and conception +kalo-kagathia+
-(which had a meaning for Greeks, but has none at all for Christians)
-represents the highest ideal of humanity. On this misunderstanding
-the new science of aesthetics was built up. And, to justify its
-existence, the teachings of the ancients on art were so twisted
-as to make it appear that this invented science of aesthetics had
-existed among the Greeks.
-
-In reality, the reasoning of the ancients on art was quite unlike
-ours. As Benard, in his book on the aesthetics of Aristotle, quite
-justly remarks, "_Pour qui veut y regarder de pres, la theorie du
-beau et celle de l'art sont tout a fait separees dans Aristote,
-comme elles le sont dans Platon et chez tous leurs successeurs_"
-("L'Esthetique d'Aristote et de ses Successeurs," Paris, 1889, p.
-28).[98] And indeed the reasoning of the ancients on art not only
-does not confirm our science of aesthetics, but rather contradicts
-its doctrine of beauty. But nevertheless all the aesthetic
-guides, from Schasler to Knight, declare that the science of the
-beautiful--aesthetic science--was commenced by the ancients, by
-Socrates, Plato, Aristotle; and was continued, they say, partially
-by the Epicureans and Stoics: by Seneca and Plutarch, down to
-Plotinus. But it is supposed that this science, by some unfortunate
-accident, suddenly vanished in the fourth century, and stayed away
-for about 1500 years, and only after these 1500 years had passed did
-it revive in Germany, 1750 A.D., in Baumgarten's doctrine.
-
- [98] Any one examining closely may see that the theory of beauty and
- that of art are quite separated in Aristotle as they are in Plato
- and in all their successors.
-
-After Plotinus, says Schasler, fifteen centuries passed away during
-which there was not the slightest scientific interest felt for the
-world of beauty and art. These one and a half thousand years, says
-he, have been lost to aesthetics, and have contributed nothing toward
-the erection of the learned edifice of this science.[99]
-
- [99] Die Luecke von fuenf Jahrhunderten, welche zwischen den
- Kunst-philosophischen Betrachtungen des Plato und Aristoteles und
- die des Plotins faellt, kann zwar auffaellig erscheinen; dennoch kann
- man eigentlich nicht sagen, dass in dieser Zwischenzeit ueberhaupt
- von aesthetischen Dingen nicht die Rede gewesen; oder dass gar ein
- voelliger Mangel an Zusammenhang zwischen den Kunst-anschauungen
- des letztgenannten Philosophen und denen der ersteren existire.
- Freilich wurde die von Aristoteles begruendete Wissenschaft in Nichts
- dadurch gefoerdert; immerhin aber zeigt sich in jener Zwischenzeit
- noch ein gewisses Interesse fuer aesthetische Fragen. Nach Plotin
- aber, die wenigen, ihm in der Zeit nahestehenden Philosophen,
- wie Longin, Augustin, u. s. f. kommen, wie wir gesehen, kaum in
- Betracht und schliessen sich uebrigens in ihrer Anschauungsweise an
- ihn an,--vergehen nicht fuenf, sondern _fuenfzehn Jahrhunderte_, in
- denen von irgend einer wissenschaftlichen Interesse fuer die Welt des
- Schoenen und der Kunst nichts zu spueren ist.
-
- Diese anderthalbtausend Jahre, innerhalb deren der Weltgeist durch
- die mannigfachsten Kaempfe hindurch zu einer voellig neuen Gestaltung
- des Lebens sich durcharbeitete, sind fuer die Aesthetik, hinsichtlich
- des weiteren Ausbaus dieser Wissenschaft verloren.--MAX SCHASLER.
-
-In reality nothing of the kind happened. The science of aesthetics,
-the science of the beautiful, neither did nor could vanish, because
-it never existed. Simply, the Greeks (just like everybody else,
-always and everywhere) considered art (like everything else) good
-only when it served goodness (as they understood goodness), and
-bad when it was in opposition to that goodness. And the Greeks
-themselves were so little developed morally, that goodness and
-beauty seemed to them to coincide. On that obsolete Greek view
-of life was erected the science of aesthetics, invented by men
-of the eighteenth century, and especially shaped and mounted in
-Baumgarten's theory. The Greeks (as any one may see who will read
-Benard's admirable book on Aristotle and his successors and Walter's
-work on Plato) never had a science of aesthetics.
-
-AEsthetic theories arose about one hundred and fifty years ago among
-the wealthy classes of the Christian European world, and arose
-simultaneously among different nations,--German, Italian, Dutch,
-French, and English. The founder and organizer of it, who gave it a
-scientific, theoretic form, was Baumgarten.
-
-With a characteristically German, external exactitude, pedantry,
-and symmetry, he devised and expounded this extraordinary theory.
-And, notwithstanding its obvious insolidity, nobody else's theory
-so pleased the cultured crowd, or was accepted so readily and with
-such an absence of criticism. It so suited the people of the upper
-classes, that to this day, notwithstanding its entirely fantastic
-character and the arbitrary nature of its assertions, it is repeated
-by learned and unlearned as though it were something indubitable and
-self-evident.
-
-_Habent sua fata libelli pro capite lectoris_, and so, or even
-more so, theories _habent sua fata_ according to the condition of
-error in which that society is living, among whom and for whom the
-theories are invented. If a theory justifies the false position
-in which a certain part of a society is living, then, however
-unfounded or even obviously false the theory may be, it is accepted,
-and becomes an article of faith to that section of society. Such,
-for instance, was the celebrated and unfounded theory, expounded
-by Malthus, of the tendency of that population of the world to
-increase in geometrical progression, but of the means of sustenance
-to increase only in arithmetical progression, and of the consequent
-over-population of the world; such, also, was the theory (an
-outgrowth of the Malthusian) of selection and struggle for existence
-as the basis of human progress. Such, again, is Marx's theory, which
-regards the gradual destruction of small private production by large
-capitalistic production, now going on around us, as an inevitable
-decree of fate. However unfounded such theories are, however
-contrary to all that is known and confessed by humanity, and however
-obviously immoral they may be, they are accepted with credulity,
-pass uncriticized, and are preached, perchance for centuries, until
-the conditions are destroyed which they served to justify, or until
-their absurdity has become too evident. To this class belongs this
-astonishing theory of the Baumgartenian Trinity,--Goodness, Beauty,
-and Truth,--according to which it appears that the very best that
-can be done by the art of nations after 1900 years of Christian
-teaching, is to choose as the ideal of their life the ideal that
-was held by a small, semi-savage, slave-holding people who lived
-2000 years ago, who imitated the nude human body extremely well, and
-erected buildings pleasant to look at. All these incompatibilities
-pass completely unnoticed. Learned people write long, cloudy
-treatises on beauty as a member of the aesthetic trinity of Beauty,
-Truth, and Goodness: _das Schoene_, _das Wahre_, _das Gute_; _le
-Beau_, _le Vrai_, _le Bon_, are repeated, with capital letters, by
-philosophers, aestheticians, and artists, by private individuals,
-by novelists, and by _feuilletonistes_, and they all think, when
-pronouncing these sacrosanct words, that they speak of something
-quite definite and solid--something on which they can base their
-opinions. In reality, these words not only have no definite meaning,
-but they hinder us in attaching any definite meaning to existing
-art; they are wanted only for the purpose of justifying the false
-importance we attribute to an art that transmits every kind of
-feeling, if only those feelings afford us pleasure.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII
-
-
-But if art is a human activity having for its purpose the
-transmission to others of the highest and best feelings to which
-men have risen, how could it be that humanity for a certain rather
-considerable period of its existence (from the time people ceased
-to believe in Church doctrine down to the present day) should exist
-without this important activity, and, instead of it, should put up
-with an insignificant artistic activity only affording pleasure?
-
-In order to answer this question, it is necessary, first of all, to
-correct the current error people make in attributing to our art the
-significance of true, universal art. We are so accustomed, not only
-naively to consider the Circassian family the best stock of people,
-but also the Anglo-Saxon race the best race if we are Englishmen or
-Americans, or the Teutonic if we are Germans, or the Gallo-Latin
-if we are French, or the Slavonic if we are Russians, that, when
-speaking of our own art, we feel fully convinced, not only that our
-art is true art, but even that it is the best and only true art.
-But in reality our art is not only not the only art (as the Bible
-once was held to be the only book), but it is not even the art of
-the whole of Christendom--only of a small section of that part of
-humanity. It was correct to speak of a national Jewish, Grecian, or
-Egyptian art, and one may speak of a now-existing Chinese, Japanese,
-or Indian art shared in by a whole people. Such art, common to a
-whole nation, existed in Russia till Peter the First's time, and
-existed in the rest of Europe until the thirteenth or fourteenth
-century; but since the upper classes of European society, having
-lost faith in the Church teaching, did not accept real Christianity
-but remained without any faith, one can no longer speak of an art
-of the Christian nations in the sense of the whole of art. Since
-the upper classes of the Christian nations lost faith in Church
-Christianity, the art of those upper classes has separated itself
-from the art of the rest of the people, and there have been two
-arts,--the art of the people and genteel art. And therefore the
-answer to the question, How it could occur that humanity lived for
-a certain period without real art, replacing it by art which served
-enjoyment only? is, that not all humanity, nor even any considerable
-portion of it, lived without real art, but only the highest
-classes of European Christian society, and even they only for a
-comparatively short time,--from the commencement of the Renaissance
-down to our own day.
-
-And the consequence of this absence of true art showed itself,
-inevitably, in the corruption of that class which nourished itself
-on the false art. All the confused, unintelligible theories of art,
-all the false and contradictory judgments on art, and particularly
-the self-confident stagnation of our art in its false path, all
-arise from the assertion, which has come into common use and is
-accepted as an unquestioned truth, but is yet amazingly and palpably
-false, the assertion, namely, that the art of our upper classes[100]
-is the whole of art, the true, the only, the universal art. And
-although this assertion (which is precisely similar to the assertion
-made by religious people of the various Churches who consider that
-theirs is the only true religion) is quite arbitrary and obviously
-unjust, yet it is calmly repeated by all the people of our circle
-with full faith in its infallibility.
-
- [100] The contrast made is between the classes and the masses;
- between those who do not and those who do earn their bread by
- productive manual labor; the middle classes being taken as an
- offshoot of the upper classes.--TR.
-
-The art we have is the whole of art, the real, the only art, and yet
-two-thirds of the human race (all the peoples of Asia and Africa)
-live and die knowing nothing of this sole and supreme art. And even
-in our Christian society hardly one per cent of the people make
-use of this art which we speak of as being the _whole_ of art;
-the remaining ninety-nine per cent live and die, generation after
-generation, crushed by toil, and never tasting this art, which,
-moreover, is of such a nature that, if they could get it, they would
-not understand anything of it. We, according to the current aesthetic
-theory, acknowledge art as one of the highest manifestations of
-the Idea, God, Beauty, or as the highest spiritual enjoyment;
-furthermore, we hold that all people have equal rights, if not to
-material, at any rate to spiritual well-being; and yet ninety-nine
-per cent of our European population live and die, generation after
-generation, crushed by toil, much of which toil is necessary for the
-production of our art which they never use, and we, nevertheless,
-calmly assert that the art which we produce is the real, true, only
-art--all of art!
-
-To the remark that if our art is the true art every one should have
-the benefit of it, the usual reply is that if not everybody at
-present makes use of existing art, the fault lies, not in the art,
-but in the false organization of society; that one can imagine to
-oneself, in the future, a state of things in which physical labor
-will be partly superseded by machinery, partly lightened by its just
-distribution, and that labor for the production of art will be taken
-in turns; that there is no need for some people always to sit below
-the stage moving the decorations, winding up the machinery, working
-at the piano or French horn, and setting type and printing books,
-but that the people who do all this work might be engaged only a
-few hours per day, and in their leisure time might enjoy all the
-blessings of art.
-
-That is what the defenders of our exclusive art say. But I think
-they do not themselves believe it. They cannot help knowing that
-fine art can arise only on the slavery of the masses of the people,
-and can continue only as long as that slavery lasts, and they
-cannot help knowing that only under conditions of intense labor
-for the workers, can specialists--writers, musicians, dancers, and
-actors--arrive at that fine degree of perfection to which they
-do attain, or produce their refined works of art; and only under
-the same conditions can there be a fine public to esteem such
-productions. Free the slaves of capital, and it will be impossible
-to produce such refined art.
-
-But even were we to admit the inadmissible, and say that means may
-be found by which art (that art which among us is considered to be
-art) may be accessible to the whole people, another consideration
-presents itself showing that fashionable art cannot be the whole
-of art, viz., the fact that it is completely unintelligible to the
-people. Formerly men wrote poems in Latin, but now their artistic
-productions are as unintelligible to the common folk as if they were
-written in Sanscrit. The usual reply to this is, that if the people
-do not now understand this art of ours, it only proves that they are
-undeveloped, and that this has been so at each fresh step forward
-made by art. First it was not understood, but afterward people got
-accustomed to it.
-
-"It will be the same with our present art; it will be understood
-when everybody is as well educated as we are--the people of the
-upper classes--who produce this art," say the defenders of our
-art. But this assertion is evidently even more unjust than the
-former; for we know that the majority of the productions of the
-art of the upper classes, such as various odes, poems, dramas,
-cantatas, pastorals, pictures, etc., which delighted the people of
-the upper classes when they were produced, never were afterward
-either understood or valued by the great masses of mankind, but have
-remained, what they were at first, a mere pastime for rich people
-of their time, for whom alone they ever were of any importance. It
-is also often urged, in proof of the assertion that the people will
-some day understand our art, that some productions of so-called
-"classical" poetry, music, or painting, which formerly did not
-please the masses, do--now that they have been offered to them
-from all sides--begin to please these same masses; but this only
-shows that the crowd, especially the half-spoilt town crowd, can
-easily (its taste having been perverted) be accustomed to any
-sort of art. Moreover, this art is not produced by these masses,
-nor even chosen by them, but is energetically thrust upon them
-in those public places in which art is accessible to the people.
-For the great majority of working-people, our art, besides being
-inaccessible on account of its costliness, is strange in its very
-nature, transmitting, as it does, the feelings of people far removed
-from those conditions of laborious life which are natural to the
-great body of humanity. That which is enjoyment to a man of the
-rich classes is incomprehensible, as a pleasure, to a working-man,
-and evokes in him, either no feeling at all, or only a feeling
-quite contrary to that which it evokes in an idle and satiated man.
-Such feelings as form the chief subjects of present-day art--say,
-for instance, honor,[101] patriotism, and amorousness--evoke in a
-working-man only bewilderment and contempt, or indignation. So that
-even if a possibility were given to the laboring classes, in their
-free time, to see, to read, and to hear all that forms the flower of
-contemporary art (as is done to some extent, in towns, by means of
-picture galleries, popular concerts, and libraries), the working-man
-(to the extent to which he is a laborer, and has not begun to pass
-into the ranks of those perverted by idleness) would be able to make
-nothing of our fine art, and if he did understand it, that which
-he understood would not elevate his soul, but would certainly, in
-most cases, pervert it. To thoughtful and sincere people there can,
-therefore, be no doubt that the art of our upper classes never can
-be the art of the whole people. But if art is an important matter, a
-spiritual blessing, essential for all men ("like religion," as the
-devotees of art are fond of saying), then it should be accessible
-to every one. And if, as in our day, it is not accessible to all
-men, then one of two things: either art is not the vital matter it
-is represented to be, or that art which we call art is not the real
-thing.
-
- [101] Dueling is still customary among the higher circles in Russia,
- as in other continental countries.--TR.
-
-The dilemma is inevitable, and therefore clever and immoral people
-avoid it by denying one side of it, viz., denying that the common
-people have a right to art. These people simply and boldly speak
-out (what lies at the heart of the matter), and say that the
-participators in and utilizers of what, in their esteem, is highly
-beautiful art, _i.e._ art furnishing the greatest enjoyment, can
-only be "schoene Geister," "the elect," as the romanticists called
-them, the "Uebermenschen," as they are called by the followers of
-Nietzsche; the remaining vulgar herd, incapable of experiencing
-these pleasures, must serve the exalted pleasures of this superior
-breed of people. The people who express these views at least do not
-pretend, and do not try, to combine the incombinable, but frankly
-admit, what is the case, that our art is an art of the upper classes
-only. So essentially art has been, and is, understood by every one
-engaged on it in our society.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX
-
-
-The unbelief of the upper classes of the European world had this
-effect--that instead of an artistic activity aiming at transmitting
-the highest feelings to which humanity has attained,--those flowing
-from religious perception,--we have an activity which aims at
-affording the greatest enjoyment to a certain class of society. And
-of all the immense domain of art, that part has been fenced off, and
-is alone called art, which affords enjoyment to the people of this
-particular circle.
-
-Apart from the moral effects on European society of such a
-selection from the whole sphere of art of what did not deserve
-such a valuation, and the acknowledgment of it as important art,
-this perversion of art has weakened art itself, and well-nigh
-destroyed it. The first great result was that art was deprived of
-the infinite, varied, and profound religious subject-matter proper
-to it. The second result was that having only a small circle of
-people in view, it lost its beauty of form and became affected and
-obscure; and the third and chief result was that it ceased to be
-either natural or even sincere, and became thoroughly artificial and
-brain-spun.
-
-The first result--the impoverishment of subject-matter--followed
-because only that is a true work of art which transmits fresh
-feelings not before experienced by man. As thought-product is only
-then real thought-product when it transmits new conceptions and
-thoughts, and does not merely repeat what was known before, so also
-an art-product is only then a genuine art-product when it brings a
-new feeling (however insignificant) into the current of human life.
-This explains why children and youths are so strongly impressed by
-those works of art which first transmit to them feelings they had
-not before experienced.
-
-The same powerful impression is made on people by feelings which
-are quite new, and have never before been expressed by man. And it
-is the source from which such feelings flow of which the art of the
-upper classes has deprived itself by estimating feelings, not in
-conformity with religious perception, but according to the degree
-of enjoyment they afford. There is nothing older and more hackneyed
-than enjoyment, and there is nothing fresher than the feelings
-springing from the religious consciousness of each age. It could
-not be otherwise: man's enjoyment has limits established by his
-nature, but the movement forward of humanity, that which is voiced
-by religious perception, has no limits. At every forward step taken
-by humanity--and such steps are taken in consequence of the greater
-and greater elucidation of religious perception--men experience new
-and fresh feelings. And therefore only on the basis of religious
-perception (which shows the highest level of life-comprehension
-reached by the men of a certain period) can fresh emotion, never
-before felt by man, arise. From the religious perception of the
-ancient Greeks flowed the really new, important, and endlessly
-varied feelings expressed by Homer and the tragic writers. It was
-the same among the Jews, who attained the religious conception of a
-single God,--from that perception flowed all those new and important
-emotions expressed by the prophets. It was the same for the poets
-of the Middle Ages, who if they believed in a heavenly hierarchy,
-believed also in the Catholic commune; and it is the same for a
-man of to-day who has grasped the religious conception of true
-Christianity,--the brotherhood of man.
-
-The variety of fresh feelings flowing from religious perception
-is endless, and they are all new; for religious perception is
-nothing else than the first indication of that which is coming into
-existence, viz., the new relation of man to the world around him.
-But the feelings flowing from the desire for enjoyment are, on
-the contrary, not only limited, but were long ago experienced and
-expressed. And therefore the lack of belief of the upper classes of
-Europe has left them with an art fed on the poorest subject-matter.
-
-The impoverishment of the subject-matter of upper-class art was
-further increased by the fact that, ceasing to be religious, it
-ceased also to be popular, and this again diminished the range of
-feelings which it transmitted. For the range of feelings experienced
-by the powerful and the rich, who have no experience of labor
-for the support of life, is far poorer, more limited, and more
-insignificant than the range of feelings natural to working-people.
-
-People of our circle, aestheticians, usually think and say just
-the contrary of this. I remember how Gontchareff, the author,
-a very clever and educated man, but a thorough townsman and an
-aesthetician, said to me that after Tourgenieff's "Memoirs of a
-Sportsman" there was nothing left to write about in peasant life.
-It was all used up. The life of working-people seemed to him so
-simple that Tourgenieff's peasant stories had used up all there
-was to describe. The life of our wealthy people, with their
-love-affairs and dissatisfaction with themselves, seemed to him
-full of inexhaustible subject-matter. One hero kissed his lady on
-her palm, another on her elbow, and a third somewhere else. One man
-is discontented through idleness, and another because people don't
-love him. And Gontchareff thought that in this sphere there is no
-end of variety. And this opinion--that the life of working-people is
-poor in subject-matter, but that our life, the life of the idle, is
-full of interest--is shared by very many people in our society. The
-life of a laboring man, with its endlessly varied forms of labor,
-and the dangers connected with this labor on sea and underground;
-his migrations, the intercourse with his employers, overseers, and
-companions, and with men of other religions and other nationalities;
-his struggles with nature and with wild beasts, the associations
-with domestic animals, the work in the forest, on the steppe, in
-the field, the garden, the orchard; his intercourse with wife and
-children, not only as with people near and dear to him, but as
-with co-workers and helpers in labor, replacing him in time of
-need; his concern in all economic questions, not as matters of
-display or discussion, but as problems of life for himself and his
-family; his pride in self-suppression and service to others, his
-pleasures of refreshment; and with all these interests permeated
-by a religious attitude toward these occurrences--all this to us,
-who have not these interests and possess no religious perception,
-seems monotonous in comparison with those small enjoyments and
-insignificant cares of our life,--a life, not of labor nor of
-production, but of consumption and destruction of that which others
-have produced for us. We think the feelings experienced by people of
-our day and our class are very important and varied; but in reality
-almost all the feelings of people of our class amount to but three
-very insignificant and simple feelings,--the feeling of pride, the
-feeling of sexual desire, and the feeling of weariness of life.
-These three feelings, with their outgrowths, form almost the only
-subject-matter of the art of the rich classes.
-
-At first, at the very beginning of the separation of the
-exclusive art of the upper classes from universal art, its chief
-subject-matter was the feeling of pride. It was so at the time of
-the Renaissance and after it, when the chief subject of works of art
-was the laudation of the strong,--popes, kings, and dukes: odes and
-madrigals were written in their honor, and they were extolled in
-cantatas and hymns; their portraits were painted, and their statues
-carved, in various adulatory ways. Next, the element of sexual
-desire began more and more to enter into art, and (with very few
-exceptions, and in novels and dramas almost without exception) it
-has now become an essential feature of every art-product of the rich
-classes.
-
-The third feeling transmitted by the art of the rich--that of
-discontent with life--appeared yet later in modern art. This
-feeling, which, at the commencement of the present century,
-was expressed only by exceptional men: by Byron, by Leopardi,
-and afterward by Heine, has latterly become fashionable, and
-is expressed by most ordinary and empty people. Most justly
-does the French critic Doumic characterize the works of the new
-writers: "_C'est la lassitude de vivre, le mepris de l'epoque
-presente, le regret d'un autre temps apercu a travers l'illusion
-de l'art, le gout du paradoxe, le besoin de se singulariser, une
-aspiration de raffines vers la simplicite, l'adoration enfantine du
-merveilleux, la seduction maladive de la reverie, l'ebranlement des
-nerfs,--surtout l'appel exaspere de la sensualite_" ("Les Jeunes,"
-Rene Doumic).[102] And, as a matter of fact, of these three feelings
-it is sensuality, the lowest (accessible not only to all men, but
-even to all animals), which forms the chief subject-matter of works
-of art of recent times.
-
- [102] It is the weariness of life, contempt for the present epoch,
- regret for another age seen through the illusion of art, a taste
- for paradox, a desire to be singular, a sentimental aspiration
- after simplicity, an infantine adoration of the marvelous, a sickly
- tendency toward reverie, a shattered condition of nerves, and, above
- all, the exasperated demand of sensuality.
-
-From Boccaccio to Marcel Prevost, all the novels, poems, and verses
-invariably transmit the feeling of sexual love in its different
-forms. Adultery is not only the favorite, but almost the only theme
-of all the novels. A performance is not a performance unless, under
-some pretense, women appear with naked busts and limbs. Songs and
-_romances_--all are expressions of lust, idealized in various
-degrees.
-
-A majority of the pictures by French artists represent female
-nakedness in various forms. In recent French literature there is
-hardly a page or a poem in which nakedness is not described, and
-in which, relevantly or irrelevantly, their favorite thought and
-word _nu_ is not repeated a couple of times. There is a certain
-writer, Rene de Gourmond, who gets printed, and is considered
-talented. To get an idea of the new writers, I read his novel,
-"Les Chevaux de Diomede." It is a consecutive and detailed account
-of the sexual connections some gentleman had with various women.
-Every page contains lust-kindling descriptions. It is the same in
-Pierre Lou s' book, "Aphrodite," which met with success; it is the
-same in a book I lately chanced upon, Huysmans' "Certains," and,
-with but few exceptions, it is the same in all the French novels.
-They are all the productions of people suffering from erotic mania.
-And these people are evidently convinced that as their whole life,
-in consequence of their diseased condition, is concentrated on
-amplifying various sexual abominations, therefore the life of all
-the world is similarly concentrated. And these people, suffering
-from erotic mania, are imitated throughout the whole artistic world
-of Europe and America.
-
-Thus in consequence of the lack of belief and the exceptional manner
-of life of the wealthy classes, the art of those classes became
-impoverished in its subject-matter, and has sunk to the transmission
-of the feelings of pride, discontent with life, and, above all, of
-sexual desire.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X
-
-
-In consequence of their unbelief, the art of the upper classes
-became poor in subject-matter. But besides that, becoming
-continually more and more exclusive, it became at the same time
-continually more and more involved, affected, and obscure.
-
-When a universal artist (such as were some of the Grecian artists
-or the Jewish prophets) composed his work, he naturally strove to
-say what he had to say in such a manner that his production should
-be intelligible to all men. But when an artist composed for a small
-circle of people placed in exceptional conditions, or even for a
-single individual and his courtiers,--for popes, cardinals, kings,
-dukes, queens, or for a king's mistress,--he naturally only aimed
-at influencing these people, who were well known to him, and lived
-in exceptional conditions familiar to him. And this was an easier
-task, and the artist was involuntarily drawn to express himself
-by allusions comprehensible only to the initiated, and obscure to
-every one else. In the first place, more could be said in this way;
-and secondly, there is (for the initiated) even a certain charm in
-the cloudiness of such a manner of expression. This method, which
-showed itself both in euphemism and in mythological and historical
-allusions, came more and more into use, until it has, apparently,
-at last reached its utmost limits in the so-called art of the
-Decadents. It has come, finally, to this: that not only is haziness,
-mysteriousness, obscurity, and exclusiveness (shutting out the
-masses) elevated to the rank of a merit and a condition of poetic
-art, but even incorrectness, indefiniteness, and lack of eloquence
-are held in esteem.
-
-Theophile Gautier, in his preface to the celebrated "Fleurs du Mal,"
-says that Baudelaire, as far as possible, banished from poetry
-eloquence, passion, and truth too strictly copied ("_l'eloquence, la
-passion, et la verite calquee trop exactement_").
-
-And Baudelaire not only expressed this, but maintained his thesis
-in his verses, and yet more strikingly in the prose of his "Petits
-Poemes en Prose," the meanings of which have to be guessed like a
-rebus, and remain for the most part undiscovered.
-
-The poet Verlaine (who followed next after Baudelaire, and was also
-esteemed great) even wrote an "Art Poetique," in which he advises
-this style of composition:--
-
- _De la musique avant toute chose,
- Et pour cela prefere l'Impair
- Plus vague et plus soluble dans l'air,
- Sans rien en lui qui pese ou qui pose._
-
- _Il faut aussi que tu n'ailles point
- Choisir tes mots sans quelque meprise:
- Rien de plus cher que la chanson grise
- Ou l'Indecis au Precis se joint._
-
-And again:--
-
- _De la musique encore et toujours!
- Que ton vers soit la chose envolee
- Qu'on sent qui fuit d'une ame en allee
- Vers d'autres cieux a d'autres amours._
-
- _Que ton vers soit la bonne aventure
- Eparse au vent crispe du matin,
- Qui va fleurant la menthe et le thym....
- Et tout le reste est litterature._[103]
-
- [103]
-
- Music, music before all things
- The eccentric still prefer,
- Vague in air, and nothing weighty,
- Soluble. Yet do not err,
-
- Choosing words; still do it lightly,
- Do it too with some contempt;
- Dearest is the song that's tipsy,
- Clearness, dimness not exempt.
-
- * * * *
-
- Music always, now and ever
- Be thy verse the thing that flies
- From a soul that's gone, escaping,
- Gone to other loves and skies.
-
- Gone to other loves and regions,
- Following fortunes that allure,
- Mint and thyme and morning crispness....
- All the rest's mere literature.
-
-After these two comes Mallarme, considered the most important of the
-young poets, and he plainly says that the charm of poetry lies in
-our having to guess its meaning--that in poetry there should always
-be a puzzle:--
-
-_Je pense qu'il faut qu'il n'y ait qu'allusion_, says he. _La
-contemplation des objets, l'image s'envolant des reveries suscitees
-par eux, sont le chant: les Parnassiens, eux, prennent la chose
-entierement et la montrent; par la ils manquent de mystere; ils
-retirent aux esprits cette joie delicieuse de croire qu'ils creent._
-Nommer un objet, c'est supprimer les trois quarts de la jouissance
-du poeme, qui est faite du bonheur de deviner peu a peu: le
-suggerer, voila le reve. _C'est le par fait usage de ce mystere qui
-constitue le symbole: evoquer petit a petit un objet pour montrer un
-etat d'ame, ou, inversement, choisir un objet et en degager un etat
-d'ame, par une serie de dechiffrements._
-
-.... _Si un etre d'une intelligence moyenne, et d'une preparation
-litteraire insuffisante, ouvre par hasard un livre ainsi fait et
-pretend en jouir, il y a malentendu, il faut remettre les choses a
-leur place._ Il doit y avoir toujours enigme en poesie, _et c'est
-le but de la litterature, il n'y en a pas d'autre,--d'evoquer les
-objets_.--"Enquete sur l'Evolution Litteraire," Jules Huret, pp. 60,
-61.[104]
-
- [104] I think there should be nothing but allusions. The
- contemplation of objects, the flying image of reveries evoked by
- them, are the song. The Parnassiens state the thing completely, and
- show it, and thereby lack mystery; they deprive the mind of that
- delicious joy of imagining that it creates. To _name an object is to
- take three-quarters from the enjoyment of the poem, which consists
- in the happiness of guessing little by little: to suggest, that is
- the dream_. It is the perfect use of this mystery that constitutes
- the symbol: little by little, to evoke an object in order to show a
- state of the soul; or, inversely, to choose an object, and from it
- to disengage a state of the soul by a series of decipherings.
-
- .... If a being of mediocre intelligence and insufficient literary
- preparation chance to open a book made in this way and pretends to
- enjoy it, there is a misunderstanding--things must be returned to
- their places. _There should always be an enigma in poetry_, and the
- aim of literature--it has no other--is to evoke objects.
-
-Thus is obscurity elevated into a dogma among the new poets. As the
-French critic Doumic (who has not yet accepted the dogma) quite
-correctly says:--
-
-"_Il serait temps aussi d'en finir avec cette fameuse 'theorie de
-l'obscurite' que la nouvelle ecole a elevee, en effet, a la hauteur
-d'un dogme._"--"Les Jeunes, par Rene Doumic."[105]
-
- [105] It were time also to have done with this famous "theory of
- obscurity," which the new school have practically raised to the
- height of a dogma.
-
-But it is not French writers only who think thus. The poets of
-all other countries think and act in the same way: German, and
-Scandinavian, and Italian, and Russian, and English. So also do
-the artists of the new period in all branches of art: in painting,
-in sculpture, and in music. Relying on Nietzsche and Wagner, the
-artists of the new age conclude that it is unnecessary for them to
-be intelligible to the vulgar crowd; it is enough for them to evoke
-poetic emotion in "the finest nurtured," to borrow a phrase from an
-English aesthetician.
-
-In order that what I am saying may not seem to be mere assertion,
-I will quote at least a few examples from the French poets who
-have led this movement. The name of these poets is legion. I have
-taken French writers, because they, more decidedly than any others,
-indicate the new direction of art, and are imitated by most European
-writers.
-
-Besides those whose names are already considered famous, such as
-Baudelaire and Verlaine, here are the names of a few of them: Jean
-Moreas, Charles Morice, Henri de Regnier, Charles Vignier, Adrien
-Remacle, Rene Ghil, Maurice Maeterlinck, G. Albert Aurier, Remy de
-Gourmont, Saint-Pol-Roux-le-Magnifique, Georges Rodenbach, le comte
-Robert de Montesquiou-Fezensac. These are Symbolists and Decadents.
-Next we have the "Magi": Josephin Peladan, Paul Adam, Jules Bois, M.
-Papus, and others.
-
-Besides these, there are yet one hundred and forty-one others, whom
-Doumic mentions in the book referred to above.
-
-Here are some examples from the work of those of them who are
-considered to be the best, beginning with that most celebrated man,
-acknowledged to be a great artist worthy of a monument--Baudelaire.
-This is a poem from his celebrated "Fleurs du Mal":--
-
-
-No. XXIV
-
- _Je t'adore a l'egal de la voute nocturne,
- O vase de tristesse, o grande taciturne,
- Et t'aime d'autant plus, belle, que tu me fuis,
- Et que tu me parais, ornement de mes nuits,
- Plus ironiquement accumuler les lieues
- Qui separent mes bras des immensites bleues._
-
- _Je m'avance a l'attaque, et je grimpe aux assauts,
- Comme apres un cadavre un choeur de vermisseaux,
- Et je cheris, o bete implacable et cruelle,
- Jusqu'a cette froideur par ou tu m'es plus belle!_[106]
-
- [106] For translation, see Appendix IV.
-
-And this is another by the same writer:--
-
-
-No. XXXVI
-
-_DUELLUM_
-
- _Deux guerriers ont couru l'un sur l'autre; leurs armes
- Ont eclabousse l'air de lueurs et de sang.
- Ces jeux, ces cliquetis du fer sont les vacarmes
- D'une jeunesse en proie a l'amour vagissant._
-
- _Les glaives sont brises! comme notre jeunesse,
- Ma chere! Mais les dents, les ongles aceres,
- Vengent bientot l'epee et la dague traitresse.
- O fureur des coeurs murs par l'amour ulceres!_
-
- _Dans le ravin hante des chats-pards et des onces
- Nos heros, s'etreignant mechamment, ont roule,
- Et leur peau fleurira l'aridite des ronces._
-
- _Ce gouffre, c'est l'enfer, de nos amis peuple!
- Roulons-y sans remords, amazone inhumaine,
- Afin d'eterniser l'ardeur de notre haine!_[107]
-
- [107] For translation, see Appendix IV.
-
-To be exact, I should mention that the collection contains verses
-less comprehensible than these, but not one poem which is plain
-and can be understood without a certain effort--an effort seldom
-rewarded; for the feelings which the poet transmits are evil and
-very low ones. And these feelings are always, and purposely,
-expressed by him with eccentricity and lack of clearness. This
-premeditated obscurity is especially noticeable in his prose, where
-the author could, if he liked, speak plainly.
-
-Take, for instance, the first piece from his "Petits Poemes":--
-
-
-_L'ETRANGER_
-
- _Qui aimes-tu le mieux, homme enigmatique, dis? ton pere, ta
- mere, ta soeur, ou ton frere?_
-
- _Je n'ai ni pere, ni mere, ni soeur, ni frere._
-
- _Tes amis?_
-
- _Vous vous servez la d'une parole dont le sens m'est reste
- jusqu'a ce jour inconnu._
-
- _Ta patrie?_
-
- _J'ignore sous quelle latitude elle est situee._
-
- _La beaute?_
-
- _Je l'aimerais volontiers, desse et immortelle._
-
- _L'or?_
-
- _Je le hais comme vous haissez Dieu._
-
- _Et qu'aimes-tu donc, extraordinaire etranger?_
-
- _J'aime les nuages .... les nuages qui passent .... la bas, ....
- les merveilleux nuages!_[108]
-
-The piece called "La Soupe et les Nuages" is probably intended to
-express the unintelligibility of the poet even to her whom he loves.
-This is the piece in question:--
-
- _Ma petite folle bien-aimee me donnait a diner, et par la
- fenetre ouverte de la salle a manger je contemplais les
- mouvantes architectures que Dieu fait avec les vapeurs, les
- merveilleuses constructions de l'impalpable. Et je me disais,
- a travers ma contemplation: "Toutes ces fantasmagories sont
- presque aussi belles que les yeux de ma belle bien-aimee, la
- petite folle monstrueuse aux yeux verts."_
-
- _Et tout a coup je recus un violent coup de poing dans le dos,
- et j'entendis une voix rauque et charmante, une voix hysterique
- et comme enrouee par l'eau-de-vie, la voix de ma chere petite
- bien-aimee, qui me disait, "Allez-vous bientot manger votre
- soupe, s.... b.... de marchand de nuages?"_[108]
-
- [108] For translation, see Appendix IV.
-
-However artificial these two pieces may be, it is still possible,
-with some effort, to guess at what the author meant them to express,
-but some of the pieces are absolutely incomprehensible--at least to
-me. "Le Galant Tireur" is a piece I was quite unable to understand.
-
-
-_LE GALANT TIREUR_
-
- _Comme la voiture traversait le bois, il la fit arreter dans le
- voisinage d'un tir, disant qu'il lui serait agreable de tirer
- quelques balles pour tuer le Temps. Tuer ce monstre-la, n'est-ce
- pas l'occupation la plus ordinaire et la plus legitime de
- chacun?--Et il offrit galamment la main a sa chere, delicieuse
- et execrable femme, a cette mysterieuse femme a laquelle il
- doit tant de plaisirs, tant de douleurs, et peut-etre aussi une
- grande partie de son genie._
-
- _Plusieurs balles frapperent loin du but propose, l'une d'elles
- s'enfonca meme dans le plafond; et comme la charmante creature
- riait follement, se moquant de la maladresse de son epoux,
- celui-ci se tourna brusquement vers elle, et lui dit: "Observez
- cette poupee, la-bas, a droite, qui porte le nez en l'air et qui
- a la mine si hautaine. Eh bien! cher ange_, je me figure que
- c'est vous." _Et il ferma les yeux et il lacha la detente. La
- poupee fut nettement decapitee._
-
- _Alors s'inclinant vers sa chere, sa delicieuse, son execrable
- femme, son inevitable et impitoyable Muse, et lui baisant
- respectueusement la main, il ajouta: "Ah! mon cher ange, combien
- je vous remercie de mon adresse!"_[109]
-
- [109] For translation, see Appendix IV.
-
-The productions of another celebrity, Verlaine, are not less
-affected and unintelligible. This, for instance, is the first poem
-in the section called "Ariettes Oublies."
-
- "_Le vent dans la plaine
- Suspend son haleine._"--FAVART.
-
- _C'est l'extase langoureuse,
- C'est la fatigue amoureuse,
- C'est tous les frissons des bois
- Parmi l'etreinte des brises,
- C'est, vers les ramures grises,
- Le choeur des petites voix._
-
- _O le frele et frais murmure!
- Cela gazouille et susurre,
- Cela ressemble au cri doux
- Que l'herbe agitee expire....
- Tu dirais, sous l'eau qui vire,
- Le roulis sourd des cailloux._
-
- _Cette ame qui se lamente
- En cette plainte dormante
- C'est la notre, n'est-ce pas?_
- _La mienne, dis, et la tienne,
- Dont s'exhale l'humble antienne
- Par ce tiede soir, tout bas?_[110]
-
- [110] For translation, see Appendix IV.
-
-What "_choeur des petites voix_"? and what "_cri doux que l'herbe
-agitee expire_"? and what it all means, remains altogether
-unintelligible to me.
-
-And here is another "Ariette":--
-
-
-_VIII_
-
- _Dans l'interminable
- Ennui de la plaine,
- La neige incertaine
- Luit comme du sable._
-
- _Le ciel est de cuivre,
- Sans lueur aucune.
- On croirait voir vivre
- Et mourir la lune._
-
- _Comme des nuees
- Flottent gris les chenes
- Des forets prochaines
- Parmi les buees._
-
- _Le ciel est de cuivre,
- Sans lueur aucune.
- On croirait voir vivre
- Et mourir la lune._
-
- _Corneille poussive
- Et vous, les loups maigres,
- Par ces bises aigres
- Quoi donc vous arrive?_
-
- _Dans l'interminable
- Ennui de la plaine,_
- _La neige incertaine
- Luit comme du sable._[111]
-
- [111] For translation, see Appendix IV.
-
-How does the moon seem to live and die in a copper heaven? And
-how can snow shine like sand? The whole thing is not merely
-unintelligible, but, under pretense of conveying an impression, it
-passes off a string of incorrect comparisons and words.
-
-Besides these artificial and obscure poems there are others which
-are intelligible, but which make up for it by being altogether
-bad, both in form and in subject. Such are all the poems under the
-heading "La Sagesse." The chief place in these verses is occupied by
-a very poor expression of the most commonplace Roman Catholic and
-patriotic sentiments. For instance, one meets with verses such as
-this:--
-
- _Je ne veux plus penser qu'a ma mere Marie,
- Siege de la sagesse et source de pardons,
- Mere de France aussi_ de qui nous attendons
- Inebranlablement l'honneur de la patrie.[112]
-
- [112]
-
- I do not wish to think any more, except about my mother Mary,
- Seat of wisdom and source of pardon,
- Also Mother of France, _from whom we
- Steadfastly expect the honor of our country_.
-
-Before citing examples from other poets, I must pause to note
-the amazing celebrity of these two versifiers, Baudelaire and
-Verlaine, who are now accepted as being great poets. How the French,
-who had Chenier, Musset, Lamartine, and, above all, Hugo,--and
-among whom quite recently flourished the so-called Parnassiens:
-Leconte de Lisle, Sully-Prudhomme, etc.,--could attribute such
-importance to these two versifiers, who were far from skilful in
-form and most contemptible and commonplace in subject-matter, is
-to me incomprehensible. The conception of life of one of them,
-Baudelaire, consisted in elevating gross egotism into a theory, and
-replacing morality by a cloudy conception of beauty, and especially
-artificial beauty. Baudelaire had a preference, which he expressed,
-for a woman's face painted rather than showing its natural color,
-and for metal trees and a theatrical imitation of water rather than
-real trees and real water.
-
-The life-conception of the other, Verlaine, consisted in weak
-profligacy, confession of his moral impotence, and, as an antidote
-to that impotence, in the grossest Roman Catholic idolatry. Both,
-moreover, were quite lacking in naivete, sincerity, and simplicity,
-and both overflowed with artificiality, forced originality and
-self-assurance. So that in their least bad productions one sees more
-of M. Baudelaire or M. Verlaine than of what they were describing.
-But these two indifferent versifiers form a school, and lead
-hundreds of followers after them.
-
-There is only one explanation of this fact: it is that the art
-of the society in which these versifiers lived is not a serious,
-important matter of life, but is a mere amusement. And all
-amusements grow wearisome by repetition. And, in order to make
-wearisome amusement again tolerable, it is necessary to find some
-means to freshen it up. When, at cards, ombre grows stale, whist
-is introduced; when whist grows stale, ecarte is substituted; when
-ecarte grows stale, some other novelty is invented, and so on. The
-substance of the matter remains the same, only its form is changed.
-And so it is with this kind of art. The subject-matter of the art of
-the upper classes growing continually more and more limited, it has
-come at last to this, that to the artists of these exclusive classes
-it seems as if everything has already been said, and that to find
-anything new to say is impossible. And therefore, to freshen up this
-art, they look out for fresh forms.
-
-Baudelaire and Verlaine invent such a new form, furbish it up,
-moreover, with hitherto unused pornographic details, and--the
-critics and the public of the upper classes hail them as great
-writers.
-
-This is the only explanation of the success, not of Baudelaire and
-Verlaine only, but of all the Decadents.
-
-For instance, there are poems by Mallarme and Maeterlinck which have
-no meaning, and yet for all that, or perhaps on that very account,
-are printed by tens of thousands, not only in various publications,
-but even in collections of the best works of the younger poets.
-
-This, for example, is a sonnet by Mallarme:--
-
- _A la nue accablante tu
- Basse de basalte et de laves
- A meme les echos esclaves
- Par une trompe sans vertu._
-
- _Quel sepulcral naufrage (tu
- Le soir, ecume, mais y baves)
- Supreme une entre les epaves
- Abolit le mat devetu._
-
- _Ou cela que furibond faute
- De quelque perdition haute
- Tout l'abime vain eploye
- Dans le si blanc cheveu qui traine
- Avarement aura noye
- Le flanc enfant d'une sirene._[113]
-
- ("Pan," 1895, No. 1.)
-
- [113] This sonnet seems too unintelligible for translation.--TR.
-
-This poem is not exceptional in its incomprehensibility. I have read
-several poems by Mallarme, and they also had no meaning whatever. I
-give a sample of his prose in Appendix I. There is a whole volume of
-this prose called "Divagations." It is impossible to understand any
-of it. And that is evidently what the author intended.
-
-And here is a song by Maeterlinck, another celebrated author of
-to-day:--
-
- _Quand il est sorti,
- (J'entendis la porte)_
- _Quand il est sorti
- Elle avait souri ...._
-
- _Mais quand il entra
- (J'entendis la lampe)
- Mais quand il entra
- Une autre etait la ...._
-
- _Et j'ai vu la mort,
- (J'entendis son ame)
- Et j'ai vu la mort
- Qui l'attend encore ...._
-
- _On est venu dire,
- (Mon enfant j'ai peur)
- On est venu dire
- Qu'il allait partir ...._
-
- _Ma lampe allumee,
- (Mon enfant j'ai peur)
- Ma lampe allumee
- Me suis approchee ...._
-
- _A la premiere porte,
- (Mon enfant j'ai peur)
- A la premiere porte,
- La flamme a tremble ...._
-
- _A la seconde porte,
- (Mon enfant j'ai peur)
- A la seconde porte,
- La flamme a parle ...._
-
- _A la troisieme porte,
- (Mon enfant j'ai peur)
- A la troisieme porte,
- La lumiere est morte ...._
-
- _Et s'il revenait un jour
- Que faut-il lui dire?_
- _Dites-lui qu'on l'attendit
- Jusqu'a s'en mourir ...._
-
- _Et s'il demande ou vous etes
- Que faut-il repondre?
- Donnez-lui mon anneau d'or
- Sans rien lui repondre ...._
-
- _Et s'il m'interroge alors
- Sur la derniere heure?
- Dites lui que j'ai souri
- De peur qu'il ne pleure ...._
-
- _Et s'il m'interroge encore
- Sans me reconnaitre?
- Parlez-lui comme une soeur,
- Il souffre peut-etre ...._
-
- _Et s'il veut savoir pourquoi
- La salle est deserte?
- Montrez lui la lampe eteinte
- Et la porte ouverte ...._[114]
-
- ("Pan," 1895, No. 2.)
-
- [114] For translation, see Appendix IV.
-
-Who went out? Who came in? Who is speaking? Who died?
-
-I beg the reader to be at the pains of reading through the samples
-I cite in Appendix II. of the celebrated and esteemed young
-poets--Griffin, Verhaeren, Moreas, and Montesquiou. It is important
-to do so in order to form a clear conception of the present position
-of art, and not to suppose, as many do, that Decadentism is an
-accidental and transitory phenomenon. To avoid the reproach of
-having selected the worst verses, I have copied out of each volume
-the poem which happened to stand on page 28.
-
-All the other productions of these poets are equally unintelligible,
-or can only be understood with great difficulty, and then not
-fully. All the productions of those hundreds of poets, of whom I
-have named a few, are the same in kind. And among the Germans,
-Swedes, Norwegians, Italians, and us Russians, similar verses are
-printed. And such productions are printed and made up into book
-form, if not by the million, then by the hundred thousand (some of
-these works sell in tens of thousands). For type-setting, paging,
-printing, and binding these books, millions and millions of working
-days are spent--not less, I think, than went to build the great
-pyramid. And this is not all. The same is going on in all the other
-arts: millions and millions of working days are being spent on the
-production of equally incomprehensible works in painting, in music,
-and in the drama.
-
-Painting not only does not lag behind poetry in this matter, but
-rather outstrips it. Here is an extract from the diary of an amateur
-of art, written when visiting the Paris exhibitions in 1894:--
-
-"I was to-day at three exhibitions: the Symbolists', the
-Impressionists', and the Neo-Impressionists'. I looked at the
-pictures conscientiously and carefully, but again felt the same
-stupefaction and ultimate indignation. The first exhibition, that of
-Camille Pissarro, was comparatively the most comprehensible, though
-the pictures were out of drawing, had no subject, and the colorings
-were most improbable. The drawing was so indefinite that you were
-sometimes unable to make out which way an arm or a head was turned.
-The subject was generally '_effets_'--_Effet de brouillard_, _Effet
-du soir_, _Soleil couchant_. There were some pictures with figures,
-but without subjects.
-
-"In the coloring, bright blue and bright green predominated. And
-each picture had its special color, with which the whole picture
-was, as it were, splashed. For instance, in 'A Girl Guarding
-Geese,' the special color is _vert de gris_, and dots of it were
-splashed about everywhere; on the face, the hair, the hands, and the
-clothes. In the same gallery--'Durand Ruel'--were other pictures
-by Puvis de Chavannes, Manet, Monet, Renoir, Sisley--who are all
-Impressionists. One of them, whose name I could not make out,--it
-was something like Redon,--had painted a blue face in profile. On
-the whole face there is only this blue tone, with white-of-lead.
-Pissarro has a water-color all done in dots. In the foreground is a
-cow, entirely painted with various-colored dots. The general color
-cannot be distinguished, however much one stands back from, or draws
-near to, the picture. From there I went to see the Symbolists. I
-looked at them long without asking any one for an explanation,
-trying to guess the meaning; but it is beyond human comprehension.
-One of the first things to catch my eye was a wooden _haut-relief_,
-wretchedly executed, representing a woman (naked) who with both
-hands is squeezing from her two breasts streams of blood. The blood
-flows down, becoming lilac in color. Her hair first descends, and
-then rises again, and turns into trees. The figure is all colored
-yellow, and the hair is brown.
-
-"Next--a picture: a yellow sea, on which swims something which is
-neither a ship nor a heart; on the horizon is a profile with a halo
-and yellow hair, which changes into a sea, in which it is lost.
-Some of the painters lay on their colors so thickly that the effect
-is something between painting and sculpture. A third exhibit was
-even less comprehensible: a man's profile; before him a flame and
-black stripes--leeches, as I was afterwards told. At last I asked
-a gentleman who was there what it meant, and he explained to me
-that the _haut-relief_ was a symbol, and that it represented '_La
-Terre_.' The heart swimming in a yellow sea was '_Illusion perdue_,'
-and the gentleman with the leeches '_Le Mal_.' There were also some
-Impressionist pictures: elementary profiles, holding some sort of
-flowers in their hands: in monotone, out of drawing, and either
-quite blurred or else marked out with wide black outlines."
-
-This was in 1894; the same tendency is now even more strongly
-defined, and we have Boecklin, Stuck, Klinger, Sasha Schneider, and
-others.
-
-The same thing is taking place in the drama. The play-writers
-give us an architect who, for some reason, has not fulfilled his
-former high intentions, and who consequently climbs on to the roof
-of a house he has erected, and tumbles down head foremost; or an
-incomprehensible old woman (who exterminates rats), and who, for an
-unintelligible reason, takes a poetic child to the sea, and there
-drowns him; or some blind men who, sitting on the seashore, for some
-reason always repeat one and the same thing; or a bell of some kind,
-which flies into a lake, and there rings.
-
-And the same is happening in music--in that art which, more than any
-other, one would have thought, should be intelligible to everybody.
-
-An acquaintance of yours, a musician of repute, sits down to the
-piano and plays you what he says is a new composition of his own,
-or of one of the new composers. You hear the strange, loud sounds,
-and admire the gymnastic exercises performed by his fingers; and you
-see that the performer wishes to impress upon you that the sounds
-he is producing express various poetic strivings of the soul. You
-see his intention, but no feeling whatever is transmitted to you
-except weariness. The execution lasts long, or at least it seems
-very long to you, because you do not receive any clear impression,
-and involuntarily you remember the words of Alphonse Karr, "_Plus
-ca va vite, plus ca dure longtemps_."[115] And it occurs to you
-that perhaps it is all a mystification; perhaps the performer is
-trying you--just throwing his hands and fingers wildly about the
-keyboard in the hope that you will fall into the trap and praise
-him, and then he will laugh and confess that he only wanted to see
-if he could hoax you. But when at last the piece does finish, and
-the perspiring and agitated musician rises from the piano evidently
-anticipating praise, you see that it was all done in earnest.
-
- [115] The quicker it goes the longer it lasts.
-
-The same thing takes place at all the concerts, with pieces by
-Liszt, Wagner, Berlioz, Brahms, and (newest of all) Richard
-Strauss, and the numberless other composers of the new school, who
-unceasingly produce opera after opera, symphony after symphony,
-piece after piece.
-
-The same is occurring in a domain in which it seemed hard to be
-unintelligible,--in the sphere of novels and short stories.
-
-Read "La Bas," by Huysmans, or some of Kipling's short stories, or
-"L'Annonciateur," by Villiers de l'Isle Adam in his "Contes Cruels,"
-etc., and you will find them not only "abscons" (to use a word
-adopted by the new writers), but absolutely unintelligible both in
-form and in substance. Such, again, is the work by E. Morel, "Terre
-Promise," now appearing in the _Revue Blanche_, and such are most of
-the new novels. The style is very high-flown, the feelings seem to
-be most elevated, but you can't make out what is happening, to whom
-it is happening, and where it is happening. And such is the bulk of
-the young art of our time.
-
-People who grew up in the first half of this century, admiring
-Goethe, Schiller, Musset, Hugo, Dickens, Beethoven, Chopin, Raphael,
-da Vinci, Michael Angelo, Delaroche, being unable to make head or
-tail of this new art, simply attribute its productions to tasteless
-insanity, and wish to ignore them. But such an attitude toward
-this new art is quite unjustifiable, because, in the first place,
-that art is spreading more and more, and has already conquered for
-itself a firm position in society, similar to the one occupied by
-the Romanticists in the third decade of this century; and, secondly
-and chiefly, because, if it is permissible to judge in this way of
-the productions of the latest form of art, called by us Decadent
-art, merely because we do not understand it, then remember there are
-an enormous number of people,--all the laborers, and many of the
-non-laboring folk,--who, in just the same way, do not comprehend
-those productions of art which we consider admirable: the verses
-of our favorite artists--Goethe, Schiller, and Hugo; the novels of
-Dickens, the music of Beethoven and Chopin, the pictures of Raphael,
-Michael Angelo, da Vinci, etc.
-
-If I have a right to think that great masses of people do not
-understand and do not like what I consider undoubtedly good because
-they are not sufficiently developed, then I have no right to deny
-that perhaps the reason why I cannot understand and cannot like the
-new productions of art is merely that I am still insufficiently
-developed to understand them. If I have a right to say that I,
-and the majority of people who are in sympathy with me, do not
-understand the productions of the new art, simply because there is
-nothing in it to understand, and because it is bad art, then, with
-just the same right, the still larger majority, the whole laboring
-mass, who do not understand what I consider admirable art, can say
-that what I reckon as good art is bad art, and there is nothing in
-it to understand.
-
-I once saw the injustice of such condemnation of the new art
-with especial clearness, when, in my presence, a certain poet,
-who writes incomprehensible verses, ridiculed incomprehensible
-music with gay self-assurance; and, shortly afterwards, a certain
-musician, who composes incomprehensible symphonies, laughed at
-incomprehensible poetry with equal self-confidence. I have no right,
-and no authority, to condemn the new art on the ground that I (a man
-educated in the first half of the century) do not understand it; I
-can only say that it is incomprehensible to me. The only advantage
-the art I acknowledge has over the Decadent art, lies in the fact
-that the art I recognize is comprehensible to a somewhat larger
-number of people than the present-day art.
-
-The fact that I am accustomed to a certain exclusive art, and
-can understand it, but am unable to understand another still
-more exclusive art, does not give me a right to conclude that my
-art is the real true art, and that the other one, which I do not
-understand, is an unreal, a bad art. I can only conclude that art,
-becoming ever more and more exclusive, has become more and more
-incomprehensible to an ever increasing number of people, and that,
-in this its progress toward greater and greater incomprehensibility
-(on one level of which I am standing, with the art familiar to me),
-it has reached a point where it is understood by a very small number
-of the elect, and the number of these chosen people is ever becoming
-smaller and smaller.
-
-As soon as ever the art of the upper classes separated itself from
-universal art, a conviction arose that art may be art and yet be
-incomprehensible to the masses. And as soon as this position was
-admitted, it had inevitably to be admitted also that art may be
-intelligible only to the very smallest number of the elect, and,
-eventually, to two, or to one, of our nearest friends, or to oneself
-alone. Which is practically what is being said by modern artists: "I
-create and understand myself, and if any one does not understand me,
-so much the worse for him."
-
-The assertion that art may be good art, and at the same time
-incomprehensible to a great number of people, is extremely unjust,
-and its consequences are ruinous to art itself; but at the same time
-it is so common and has so eaten into our conceptions, that it is
-impossible sufficiently to elucidate all the absurdity of it.
-
-Nothing is more common than to hear it said of reputed works of art,
-that they are very good but very difficult to understand. We are
-quite used to such assertions, and yet to say that a work of art
-is good, but incomprehensible to the majority of men, is the same
-as saying of some kind of food that it is very good, but that most
-people can't eat it. The majority of men may not like rotten cheese
-or putrefying grouse--dishes esteemed by people with perverted
-tastes; but bread and fruit are only good when they please the
-majority of men. And it is the same with art. Perverted art may not
-please the majority of men, but good art always pleases every one.
-
-It is said that the very best works of art are such that they cannot
-be understood by the mass, but are accessible only to the elect who
-are prepared to understand these great works. But if the majority of
-men do not understand, the knowledge necessary to enable them to
-understand should be taught and explained to them. But it turns out
-that there is no such knowledge, that the works cannot be explained,
-and that those who say the majority do not understand good works of
-art, still do not explain those works, but only tell us that, in
-order to understand them, one must read, and see, and hear these
-same works over and over again. But this is not to explain, it is
-only to habituate! And people may habituate themselves to anything,
-even to the very worst things. As people may habituate themselves to
-bad food, to spirits, tobacco, and opium, just in the same way they
-may habituate themselves to bad art--and that is exactly what is
-being done.
-
-Moreover, it cannot be said that the majority of people lack the
-taste to esteem the highest works of art. The majority always
-have understood, and still understand, what we also recognize as
-being the very best art: the epic of Genesis, the gospel parables,
-folk-legends, fairy-tales, and folk-songs, are understood by all.
-How can it be that the majority has suddenly lost its capacity to
-understand what is high in our art?
-
-Of a speech it may be said that it is admirable, but
-incomprehensible to those who do not know the language in which it
-is delivered. A speech delivered in Chinese may be excellent, and
-may yet remain incomprehensible to me if I do not know Chinese; but
-what distinguishes a work of art from all other mental activity
-is just the fact that its language is understood by all, and that
-it infects all without distinction. The tears and laughter of a
-Chinese infect me just as the laughter and tears of a Russian;
-and it is the same with painting and music and poetry, when it is
-translated into a language I understand. The songs of a Kirghiz or
-of a Japanese touch me, though in a lesser degree than they touch
-a Kirghiz or a Japanese. I am also touched by Japanese painting,
-Indian architecture, and Arabian stories. If I am but little
-touched by a Japanese song and a Chinese novel, it is not that I do
-not understand these productions, but that I know and am accustomed
-to higher works of art. It is not because their art is above me.
-Great works of art are only great because they are accessible
-and comprehensible to every one. The story of Joseph, translated
-into the Chinese language, touches a Chinese. The story of Sakya
-Muni touches us. And there are, and must be, buildings, pictures,
-statues, and music of similar power. So that, if art fails to move
-men, it cannot be said that this is due to the spectators' or
-hearers' lack of understanding; but the conclusion to be drawn may
-and should be, that such art is either bad art, or is not art at all.
-
-Art is differentiated from activity of the understanding, which
-demands preparation and a certain sequence of knowledge (so that one
-cannot learn trigonometry before knowing geometry), by the fact that
-it acts on people independently of their state of development and
-education, that the charm of a picture, sounds, or of forms, infects
-any man whatever his plane of development.
-
-The business of art lies just in this,--to make that understood and
-felt which, in the form of an argument, might be incomprehensible
-and inaccessible. Usually it seems to the recipient of a truly
-artistic impression that he knew the thing before but had been
-unable to express it.
-
-And such has always been the nature of good, supreme art; the
-"Iliad," the "Odyssey," the stories of Isaac, Jacob, and Joseph,
-the Hebrew prophets, the psalms, the gospel parables, the story
-of Sakya Muni, and the hymns of the Vedas: all transmit very
-elevated feelings, and are nevertheless quite comprehensible now
-to us, educated or uneducated, as they were comprehensible to
-the men of those times, long ago, who were even less educated
-than our laborers. People talk about incomprehensibility; but if
-art is the transmission of feelings flowing from man's religious
-perception, how can a feeling be incomprehensible which is founded
-on religion, _i.e._ on man's relation to God? Such art should be,
-and has actually always been, comprehensible to everybody, because
-every man's relation to God is one and the same. And therefore
-the churches and the images in them were always comprehensible to
-every one. The hindrance to understanding the best and highest
-feelings (as is said in the gospel) does not at all lie in
-deficiency of development or learning, but, on the contrary, in
-false development and false learning. A good and lofty work of art
-may be incomprehensible, but not to simple, unperverted peasant
-laborers (all that is highest is understood by them)--it may be,
-and often is, unintelligible to erudite, perverted people destitute
-of religion. And this continually occurs in our society, in which
-the highest feelings are simply not understood. For instance, I
-know people who consider themselves most refined, and who say that
-they do not understand the poetry of love to one's neighbor, of
-self-sacrifice, or of chastity.
-
-So that good, great, universal, religious art may be
-incomprehensible to a small circle of spoilt people, but certainly
-not to any large number of plain men.
-
-Art cannot be incomprehensible to the great masses only because it
-is very good--as artists of our day are fond of telling us. Rather
-we are bound to conclude that this art is unintelligible to the
-great masses only because it is very bad art, or even is not art at
-all. So that the favorite argument (naively accepted by the cultured
-crowd), that in order to feel art one has first to understand it
-(which really only means habituate oneself to it), is the truest
-indication that what we are asked to understand by such a method is
-either very bad, exclusive art, or is not art at all.
-
-People say that works of art do not please the people because they
-are incapable of understanding them. But if the aim of works of art
-is to infect people with the emotion the artist has experienced, how
-can one talk about not understanding?
-
-A man of the people reads a book, sees a picture, hears a play or
-a symphony, and is touched by no feeling. He is told that this is
-because he cannot understand. People promise to let a man see a
-certain show; he enters and sees nothing. He is told that this is
-because his sight is not prepared for this show. But the man well
-knows that he sees quite well, and if he does not see what people
-promised to show him, he only concludes (as is quite just) that
-those who undertook to show him the spectacle have not fulfilled
-their engagement. And it is perfectly just for a man who does feel
-the influence of some works of art to come to this conclusion
-concerning artists who do not, by their works, evoke feeling in him.
-To say that the reason a man is not touched by my art is because
-he is still too stupid, besides being very self-conceited and also
-rude, is to reverse the roles, and for the sick to send the hale to
-bed.
-
-Voltaire said that "_Tous les genres sont bons, hors le genre
-ennuyeux_;"[116] but with even more right one may say of art that
-_Tous les genres sont bons, hors celui qu'on ne comprend pas, or
-qui ne produit pas son effet_,[117] for of what value is an article
-which fails to do that for which it was intended?
-
- [116] All styles are good except the wearisome style.
-
- [117] All styles are good except that which is not understood, or
- which fails to produce its effect.
-
-Mark this above all: if only it be admitted that art may be art
-and yet be unintelligible to any one of sound mind, there is no
-reason why any circle of perverted people should not compose works
-tickling their own perverted feelings and comprehensible to no one
-but themselves, and call it "art," as is actually being done by the
-so-called Decadents.
-
-The direction art has taken may be compared to placing on a large
-circle other circles, smaller and smaller, until a cone is formed,
-the apex of which is no longer a circle at all. That is what has
-happened to the art of our times.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI
-
-
-Becoming ever poorer and poorer in subject-matter, and more and
-more unintelligible in form, the art of the upper classes, in its
-latest productions, has even lost all the characteristics of art,
-and has been replaced by imitations of art. Not only has upper-class
-art, in consequence of its separation from universal art, become
-poor in subject-matter, and bad in form, _i.e._ ever more and more
-unintelligible, it has, in course of time, ceased even to be art at
-all, and has been replaced by counterfeits.
-
-This has resulted from the following causes: Universal art arises
-only when some one of the people, having experienced a strong
-emotion, feels the necessity of transmitting it to others. The
-art of the rich classes, on the other hand, arises not from the
-artist's inner impulse, but chiefly because people of the upper
-classes demand amusement and pay well for it. They demand from art
-the transmission of feelings that please them, and this demand
-artists try to meet. But it is a very difficult task; for people of
-the wealthy classes, spending their lives in idleness and luxury,
-desire to be continually diverted by art; and art, even the lowest,
-cannot be produced at will, but has to generate spontaneously in
-the artist's inner self. And therefore, to satisfy the demands of
-people of the upper classes, artists have had to devise methods of
-producing imitations of art. And such methods have been devised.
-
-These methods are those of (1) borrowing, (2) imitating, (3)
-striking (effects), and (4) interesting.
-
-The first method consists in borrowing whole subjects, or merely
-separate features, from former works recognized by every one as
-being poetical, and in so re-shaping them, with sundry additions,
-that they should have an appearance of novelty.
-
-Such works, evoking in people of a certain class memories of
-artistic feelings formerly experienced, produce an impression
-similar to art, and, provided only that they conform to other
-needful conditions, they pass for art among those who seek for
-pleasure from art. Subjects borrowed from previous works of art are
-usually called poetical subjects. Objects and people thus borrowed
-are called poetical objects and people. Thus, in our circle, all
-sorts of legends, sagas, and ancient traditions are considered
-poetical subjects. Among poetical people and objects we reckon
-maidens, warriors, shepherds, hermits, angels, devils of all sorts,
-moonlight, thunder, mountains, the sea, precipices, flowers, long
-hair, lions, lambs, doves, and nightingales. In general, all those
-objects are considered poetical which have been most frequently used
-by former artists in their productions.
-
-Some forty years ago a stupid but highly cultured--_ayant beaucoup
-d'acquis_--lady (since deceased) asked me to listen to a novel
-written by herself. It began with a heroine who, in a poetic white
-dress, and with poetically flowing hair, was reading poetry near
-some water in a poetic wood. The scene was in Russia, but suddenly
-from behind the bushes the hero appears, wearing a hat with a
-feather _a la Guillaume Tell_ (the book specially mentioned this)
-and accompanied by two poetical white dogs. The authoress deemed
-all this highly poetical, and it might have passed muster if only
-it had not been necessary for the hero to speak. But as soon as the
-gentleman in the hat _a la Guillaume Tell_ began to converse with
-the maiden in the white dress, it became obvious that the authoress
-had nothing to say, but had merely been moved by poetic memories
-of other works, and imagined that by ringing the changes on those
-memories she could produce an artistic impression. But an artistic
-impression, _i.e._ infection, is only received when an author has,
-in the manner peculiar to himself, experienced the feeling which
-he transmits, and not when he passes on another man's feeling
-previously transmitted to him. Such poetry from poetry cannot infect
-people, it can only simulate a work of art, and even that only to
-people of perverted aesthetic taste. The lady in question being very
-stupid and devoid of talent, it was at once apparent how the case
-stood; but when such borrowing is resorted to by people who are
-erudite and talented and have cultivated the technique of their art,
-we get those borrowings from the Greek, the antique, the Christian
-or mythological world which have become so numerous, and which,
-particularly in our day, continue to increase and multiply, and are
-accepted by the public as works of art, if only the borrowings are
-well mounted by means of the technique of the particular art to
-which they belong.
-
-As a characteristic example of such counterfeits of art in the realm
-of poetry, take Rostand's "Princesse Lointaine," in which there is
-not a spark of art, but which seems very poetical to many people,
-and probably also to its author.
-
-The second method of imparting a semblance of art is that which
-I have called imitating. The essence of this method consists in
-supplying details accompanying the thing described or depicted.
-In literary art this method consists in describing, in the
-minutest details, the external appearance, the faces, the clothes,
-the gestures, the tones, and the habitations of the characters
-represented, with all the occurrences met with in life. For
-instance, in novels and stories, when one of the characters speaks,
-we are told in what voice he spoke, and what he was doing at the
-time. And the things said are not given so that they should have as
-much sense as possible, but, as they are in life, disconnectedly,
-and with interruptions and omissions. In dramatic art, besides
-such imitation of real speech, this method consists in having all
-the accessories and all the people just like those in real life.
-In painting, this method assimilates painting to photography, and
-destroys the difference between them. And, strange to say, this
-method is used also in music: music tries to imitate, not only by
-its rhythm but also by its very sounds, the sounds which in real
-life accompany the thing it wishes to represent.
-
-The third method is by action, often purely physical, on the outer
-senses. Work of this kind is said to be "striking," "effectful." In
-all arts these effects consist chiefly in contrasts; in bringing
-together the terrible and the tender, the beautiful and the hideous,
-the loud and the soft, darkness and light, the most ordinary and
-the most extraordinary. In verbal art, besides effects of contrast,
-there are also effects consisting in the description of things that
-have never before been described. These are usually pornographic
-details evoking sexual desire, or details of suffering and death
-evoking feelings of horror, as, for instance, when describing a
-murder, to give a detailed medical account of the lacerated tissues,
-of the swellings, of the smell, quantity, and appearance of the
-blood. It is the same in painting: besides all kinds of other
-contrasts, one is coming into vogue which consists in giving careful
-finish to one object and being careless about all the rest. The
-chief and usual effects in painting are effects of light and the
-depiction of the horrible. In the drama, the most common effects,
-besides contrasts, are tempests, thunder, moonlight, scenes at sea
-or by the seashore, changes of costume, exposure of the female body,
-madness, murders, and death generally: the dying person exhibiting
-in detail all the phases of agony. In music the most usual effects
-are a _crescendo_, passing from the softest and simplest sounds
-to the loudest and most complex crash of the full orchestra; a
-repetition of the same sounds _arpeggio_ in all the octaves and on
-various instruments; or that the harmony, tone, and rhythm be not at
-all those naturally flowing from the course of the musical thought,
-but such as strike one by their unexpectedness. Besides these, the
-commonest effects in music are produced in a purely physical manner
-by strength of sound, especially in an orchestra.
-
-Such are some of the most usual effects in the various arts, but
-there yet remains one common to them all; namely, to convey by
-means of one art what it would be natural to convey by another: for
-instance, to make music describe (as is done by the programme music
-of Wagner and his followers), or to make painting, the drama, or
-poetry, induce a frame of mind (as is aimed at by all the Decadent
-art).
-
-The fourth method is that of interesting (that is, absorbing the
-mind) in connection with works of art. The interest may lie in
-an intricate plot--a method till quite recently much employed in
-English novels and French plays, but now going out of fashion and
-being replaced by authenticity, _i.e._ by detailed description of
-some historical period or some branch of contemporary life. For
-example, in a novel, interestingness may consist in a description of
-Egyptian or Roman life, the life of miners, or that of the clerks
-in a large shop. The reader becomes interested and mistakes this
-interest for an artistic impression. The interest may also depend on
-the very method of expression; a kind of interest that has now come
-much into use. Both verse and prose, as well as pictures, plays, and
-music, are constructed so that they must be guessed like riddles,
-and this process of guessing again affords pleasure and gives a
-semblance of the feeling received from art.
-
-It is very often said that a work of art is very good because it is
-poetic, or realistic, or striking, or interesting; whereas not only
-can neither the first, nor the second, nor the third, nor the fourth
-of these attributes supply a standard of excellence in art, but they
-have not even anything in common with art.
-
-Poetic--means borrowed. All borrowing merely recalls to the reader,
-spectator, or listener some dim recollection of artistic impressions
-they have received from previous works of art, and does not infect
-them with feeling which the artist has himself experienced. A
-work founded on something borrowed, like Goethe's "Faust," for
-instance, may be very well executed and be full of mind and every
-beauty, but because it lacks the chief characteristic of a work
-of art--completeness, oneness, the inseparable unity of form and
-contents expressing the feeling the artist has experienced--it
-cannot produce a really artistic impression. In availing himself
-of this method, the artist only transmits the feeling received by
-him from a previous work of art; therefore every borrowing, whether
-it be of whole subjects, or of various scenes, situations, or
-descriptions, is but a reflection of art, a simulation of it, but
-not art itself. And therefore, to say that a certain production is
-good because it is poetic--_i.e._ resembles a work of art--is like
-saying of a coin that it is good because it resembles real money.
-
-Equally little can imitation, realism, serve, as many people think,
-as a measure of the quality of art. Imitation cannot be such a
-measure; for the chief characteristic of art is the infection of
-others with the feelings the artist has experienced, and infection
-with a feeling is not only not identical with description of the
-accessories of what is transmitted, but is usually hindered by
-superfluous details. The attention of the receiver of the artistic
-impression is diverted by all these well-observed details, and they
-hinder the transmission of feeling even when it exists.
-
-To value a work of art by the degree of its realism, by the
-accuracy of the details reproduced, is as strange as to judge of
-the nutritive quality of food by its external appearance. When we
-appraise a work according to its realism, we only show that we are
-talking, not of a work of art, but of its counterfeit.
-
-Neither does the third method of imitating art--by the use of
-what is striking or effectual--coincide with real art any better
-than the two former methods; for in effectfulness--the effects of
-novelty, of the unexpected, of contrasts, of the horrible--there
-is no transmission of feeling, but only an action on the nerves.
-If an artist were to paint a bloody wound admirably, the sight of
-the wound would strike me, but it would not be art. One prolonged
-note on a powerful organ will produce a striking impression, will
-often even cause tears, but there is no music in it, because
-no feeling is transmitted. Yet such physiological effects are
-constantly mistaken for art by people of our circle, and this not
-only in music, but also in poetry, painting, and the drama. It is
-said that art has become refined. On the contrary, thanks to the
-pursuit of effectfulness, it has become very coarse. A new piece
-is brought out and accepted all over Europe, such, for instance,
-as "Hannele," in which play the author wishes to transmit to the
-spectators pity for a persecuted girl. To evoke this feeling in the
-audience by means of art, the author should either make one of the
-characters express this pity in such a way as to infect every one,
-or he should describe the girl's feelings correctly. But he cannot,
-or will not, do this, and chooses another way, more complicated
-in stage management, but easier for the author. He makes the girl
-die on the stage; and, still further to increase the physiological
-effect on the spectators, he extinguishes the lights in the theater,
-leaving the audience in the dark, and to the sound of dismal music
-he shows how the girl is pursued and beaten by her drunken father.
-The girl shrinks--screams--groans--and falls. Angels appear and
-carry her away. And the audience, experiencing some excitement while
-this is going on, are fully convinced that this is true aesthetic
-feeling. But there is nothing aesthetic in such excitement; for there
-is no infecting of man by man, but only a mingled feeling of pity
-for another, and of self-congratulation that it is not I who am
-suffering: it is like what we feel at the sight of an execution, or
-what the Romans felt in their circuses.
-
-The substitution of effectfulness for aesthetic feeling is
-particularly noticeable in musical art--that art which by its nature
-has an immediate physiological action on the nerves. Instead of
-transmitting by means of a melody the feelings he has experienced,
-a composer of the new school accumulates and complicates sounds,
-and by now strengthening, now weakening them, he produces on the
-audience a physiological effect of a kind that can be measured by an
-apparatus invented for the purpose.[118] And the public mistake this
-physiological effect for the effect of art.
-
- [118] An apparatus exists by means of which a very sensitive arrow,
- in dependence on the tension of a muscle of the arm, will indicate
- the physiological action of music on the nerves and muscles.
-
-As to the fourth method--that of interesting--it also is frequently
-confounded with art. One often hears it said, not only of a poem,
-a novel, or a picture, but even of a musical work, that it is
-interesting. What does this mean? To speak of an interesting work of
-art means either that we receive from a work of art information new
-to us, or that the work is not fully intelligible, and that little
-by little, and with effort, we arrive at its meaning, and experience
-a certain pleasure in this process of guessing it. In neither case
-has the interest anything in common with artistic impression. Art
-aims at infecting people with feeling experienced by the artist.
-But the mental effort necessary to enable the spectator, listener,
-or reader to assimilate the new information contained in the work,
-or to guess the puzzles propounded, by distracting him, hinders the
-infection. And therefore the interestingness of a work, not only
-has nothing to do with its excellence as a work of art, but rather
-hinders than assists artistic impression.
-
-We may, in a work of art, meet with what is poetic, and realistic,
-and striking, and interesting, but these things cannot replace the
-essential of art,--feeling experienced by the artist. Latterly, in
-upper-class art, most of the objects given out as being works of
-art are of the kind which only resemble art, and are devoid of its
-essential quality,--feeling experienced by the artist. And, for the
-diversion of the rich, such objects are continually being produced
-in enormous quantities by the artisans of art.
-
-Many conditions must be fulfilled to enable a man to produce a real
-work of art. It is necessary that he should stand on the level of
-the highest life-conception of his time, that he should experience
-feeling and have the desire and capacity to transmit it, and that
-he should, moreover, have a talent for some one of the forms of
-art. It is very seldom that all these conditions necessary to the
-production of true art are combined. But in order--aided by the
-customary methods of borrowing, imitating, introducing effects, and
-interesting--unceasingly to produce counterfeits of art which pass
-for art in our society and are well paid for, it is only necessary
-to have a talent for some branch of art; and this is very often
-to be met with. By talent I mean ability: in literary art, the
-ability to express one's thoughts and impressions easily and to
-notice and remember characteristic details; in the depictive arts,
-to distinguish and remember lines, forms, and colors; in music, to
-distinguish the intervals, and to remember and transmit the sequence
-of sounds. And a man, in our times, if only he possesses such a
-talent and selects some specialty, may, after learning the methods
-of counterfeiting used in his branch of art,--if he has patience
-and if his aesthetic feeling (which would render such productions
-revolting to him) be atrophied,--unceasingly, till the end of his
-life, turn out works which will pass for art in our society.
-
-To produce such counterfeits, definite rules or recipes exist in
-each branch of art. So that the talented man, having assimilated
-them, may produce such works _a froid_, cold drawn, without any
-feeling.
-
-In order to write poems a man of literary talent needs only
-these qualifications: to acquire the knack, conformably with the
-requirements of rhyme and rhythm, of using, instead of the one
-really suitable word, ten others meaning approximately the same;
-to learn how to take any phrase which, to be clear, has but one
-natural order of words, and despite all possible dislocations still
-to retain some sense in it; and lastly, to be able, guided by the
-words required for the rhymes, to devise some semblance of thoughts,
-feelings, or descriptions to suit these words. Having acquired these
-qualifications, he may unceasingly produce poems--short or long,
-religious, amatory, or patriotic, according to the demand.
-
-If a man of literary talent wishes to write a story or novel, he
-need only form his style--_i.e._ learn how to describe all that he
-sees--and accustom himself to remember or note down details. When he
-has accustomed himself to this, he can, according to his inclination
-or the demand, unceasingly produce novels or stories--historical,
-naturalistic, social, erotic, psychological, or even religious, for
-which latter kind a demand and fashion begins to show itself. He can
-take subjects from books or from the events of life, and can copy
-the characters of the people in his book from his acquaintances.
-
-And such novels and stories, if only they are decked out with
-well-observed and carefully noted details, preferably erotic ones,
-will be considered works of art, even though they may not contain a
-spark of feeling experienced.
-
-To produce art in dramatic form, a talented man, in addition to all
-that is required for novels and stories, must also learn to furnish
-his characters with as many smart and witty sentences as possible,
-must know how to utilize theatrical effects, and how to entwine
-the action of his characters so that there should not be any long
-conversations, but as much bustle and movement on the stage as
-possible. If the writer is able to do this, he may produce dramatic
-works one after another without stopping, selecting his subjects
-from the reports of the law courts, or from the latest society
-topic, such as hypnotism, heredity, etc., or from deep antiquity, or
-even from the realms of fancy.
-
-In the sphere of painting and sculpture it is still easier for the
-talented man to produce imitations of art. He need only learn to
-draw, paint, and model--especially naked bodies. Thus equipped he
-can continue to paint pictures, or model statues, one after another,
-choosing subjects according to his bent--mythological, or religious,
-or fantastic, or symbolical; or he may depict what is written about
-in the papers--a coronation, a strike, the Turko-Grecian war, famine
-scenes; or, commonest of all, he may just copy anything he thinks
-beautiful--from naked women to copper basins.
-
-For the production of musical art the talented man needs still
-less of what constitutes the essence of art, _i.e._ feeling
-wherewith to infect others: but on the other hand, he requires
-more physical, gymnastic labor than for any other art, unless it
-be dancing. To produce works of musical art, he must first learn
-to move his fingers on some instrument as rapidly as those who
-have reached the highest perfection; next, he must know how in
-former times polyphonic music was written, must study what are
-called counterpoint and fugue; and, furthermore, he must learn
-orchestration, _i.e._ how to utilize the effects of the instruments.
-But once he has learned all this, the composer may unceasingly
-produce one work after another; whether programme-music, opera, or
-song (devising sounds more or less corresponding to the words), or
-chamber music, _i.e._ he may take another man's themes and work
-them up into definite forms by means of counterpoint and fugue; or,
-what is commonest of all, he may compose fantastic music, _i.e._ he
-may take a conjunction of sounds which happens to come to hand, and
-pile every sort of complication and ornamentation on to this chance
-combination.
-
-Thus, in all realms of art, counterfeits of art are manufactured to
-a ready-made, prearranged recipe, and these counterfeits the public
-of our upper classes accept for real art.
-
-And this substitution of counterfeits for real works of art was the
-third and most important consequence of the separation of the art of
-the upper classes from universal art.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII
-
-
-In our society three conditions cooperate to cause the production of
-objects of counterfeit art. They are--(1) the considerable remuneration
-of artists for their productions, and the professionalization of
-artists which this has produced, (2) art criticism, and (3) schools of
-art.
-
-While art was as yet undivided, and only religious art was valued
-and rewarded while indiscriminate art was left unrewarded, there
-were no counterfeits of art, or, if any existed, being exposed to
-the criticism of the whole people, they quickly disappeared. But as
-soon as that division occurred, and the upper classes acclaaimed
-every kind of art as good if only it afforded them pleasure, and
-began to reward such art more highly than any other social activity,
-immediately a large number of people devoted themselves to this
-activity, and art assumed quite a different character, and became a
-profession.
-
-And as soon as this occurred, the chief and most precious quality
-of art--its sincerity--was at once greatly weakened and eventually
-quite destroyed.
-
-The professional artist lives by his art, and has continually
-to invent subjects for his works, and does invent them. And it
-is obvious how great a difference must exist between works of
-art produced on the one hand by men such as the Jewish prophets,
-the authors of the Psalms, Francis of Assisi, the authors of the
-"Iliad" and "Odyssey," of folk-stories, legends, and folk-songs,
-many of whom not only received no remuneration for their work, but
-did not even attach their names to it; and, on the other hand,
-works produced by court poets, dramatists and musicians receiving
-honors and remuneration; and later on by professional artists, who
-lived by the trade, receiving remuneration from newspaper editors,
-publishers, impresarios, and in general from those agents who come
-between the artists and the town public--the consumers of art.
-
-Professionalism is the first condition of the diffusion of false,
-counterfeit art.
-
-The second condition is the growth, in recent times, of artistic
-criticism, _i.e._ the valuation of art, not by everybody, and, above
-all, not by plain men, but by erudite, that is, by perverted and at
-the same time self-confident individuals.
-
-A friend of mine, speaking of the relation of critics to artists,
-half jokingly defined it thus: "Critics are the stupid who discuss
-the wise." However partial, inexact, and rude this definition may
-be, it is yet partly true, and is incomparably juster than the
-definition which considers critics to be men who can explain works
-of art.
-
-"Critics explain!" What do they explain?
-
-The artist, if a real artist, has by his work transmitted to others
-the feeling he experienced. What is there, then, to explain?
-
-If a work be good as art, then the feeling expressed by the
-artist--be it moral or immoral--transmits itself to other people. If
-transmitted to others, then they feel it, and all interpretations
-are superfluous. If the work does not infect people, no explanation
-can make it contagious. An artist's work cannot be interpreted.
-Had it been possible to explain in words what he wished to convey,
-the artist would have expressed himself in words. He expressed it
-by his art only because the feeling he experienced could not be
-otherwise transmitted. The interpretation of works of art by words
-only indicates that the interpreter is himself incapable of feeling
-the infection of art. And this is actually the case; for, however
-strange it may seem to say so, critics have always been people less
-susceptible than other men to the contagion of art. For the most
-part they are able writers, educated and clever, but with their
-capacity of being infected by art quite perverted or atrophied. And
-therefore their writings have always largely contributed, and still
-contribute, to the perversion of the taste of that public which
-reads them and trusts them.
-
-Artistic criticism did not exist--could not and cannot exist--in
-societies where art is undivided, and where, consequently, it is
-appraised by the religious understanding of life common to the whole
-people. Art criticism grew, and could grow, only on the art of the
-upper classes, who did not acknowledge the religious perception of
-their time.
-
-Universal art has a definite and indubitable internal
-criterion,--religious perception; upper-class art lacks this, and
-therefore the appreciators of that art are obliged to cling to
-some external criterion. And they find it in "the judgments of the
-finest-nurtured," as an English aesthetician has phrased it, that
-is, in the authority of the people who are considered educated,
-nor in this alone, but also in a tradition of such authorities.
-This tradition is extremely misleading, both because the opinions
-of "the finest-nurtured" are often mistaken, and also because
-judgments which were valid once cease to be so with the lapse of
-time. But the critics, having no basis for their judgments, never
-cease to repeat their traditions. The classical tragedians were
-once considered good, and therefore criticism considers them to be
-so still. Dante was esteemed a great poet, Raphael a great painter,
-Bach a great musician--and the critics, lacking a standard by which
-to separate good art from bad, not only consider these artists
-great, but regard all their productions as admirable and worthy of
-imitation. Nothing has contributed, and still contributes, so much
-to the perversion of art as these authorities set up by criticism. A
-man produces a work of art, like every true artist expressing in his
-own peculiar manner a feeling he has experienced. Most people are
-infected by the artist's feeling; and his work becomes known. Then
-criticism, discussing the artist, says that the work is not bad,
-but all the same the artist is not a Dante, nor a Shakespear, nor a
-Goethe, nor a Raphael, nor what Beethoven was in his last period.
-And the young artist sets to work to copy those who are held up for
-his imitation, and he produces not only feeble works, but false
-works,--counterfeits of art.
-
-Thus, for instance, our Pushkin writes his short poems, "Evgeniy
-Onegin," "The Gipsies," and his stories--works all varying in
-quality, but all true art. But then, under the influence of false
-criticism extolling Shakespear, he writes "Boris Godunoff," a cold,
-brain-spun work, and this production is lauded by the critics, set
-up as a model, and imitations of it appear: "Minin," by Ostrovsky,
-and "Tsar Boris," by Alexee Tolstoi, and such imitations of
-imitations as crowd all literatures with insignificant productions.
-The chief harm done by the critics is this,--that themselves lacking
-the capacity to be infected by art (and that is the characteristic
-of all critics; for did they not lack this they could not attempt
-the impossible--the interpretation of works of art), they pay most
-attention to, and eulogize, brain-spun, invented works, and set
-these up as models worthy of imitation. That is the reason they so
-confidently extol, in literature, the Greek tragedians, Dante,
-Tasso, Milton, Shakespear, Goethe (almost all he wrote), and, among
-recent writers, Zola and Ibsen; in music, Beethoven's last period,
-and Wagner. To justify their praise of these brain-spun, invented
-works, they devise entire theories (of which the famous theory of
-beauty is one); and not only dull but also talented people compose
-works in strict deference to these theories; and often even real
-artists, doing violence to their genius, submit to them.
-
-Every false work extolled by the critics serves as a door through
-which the hypocrites of art at once crowd in.
-
-It is solely due to the critics, who in our times still praise rude,
-savage, and, for us, often meaningless works of the ancient Greeks:
-Sophocles, Euripides, AEschylus, and especially Aristophanes; or,
-of modern writers, Dante, Tasso, Milton, Shakespear; in painting,
-all of Raphael, all of Michael Angelo, including his absurd "Last
-Judgment"; in music, the whole of Bach, and the whole of Beethoven,
-including his last period,--thanks only to them have the Ibsens,
-Maeterlincks, Verlaines, Mallarmes, Puvis de Chavannes, Klingers,
-Boecklins, Stucks, Schneiders; in music, the Wagners, Liszts,
-Berliozes, Brahmses, and Richard Strausses, etc., and all that
-immense mass of good-for-nothing imitators of these imitators,
-become possible in our day.
-
-As a good illustration of the harmful influence of criticism, take
-its relation to Beethoven. Among his innumerable hasty productions
-written to order, there are, notwithstanding their artificiality
-of form, works of true art. But he grows deaf, cannot hear, and
-begins to write invented, unfinished works, which are consequently
-often meaningless and musically unintelligible. I know that
-musicians can imagine sounds vividly enough, and can almost hear
-what they read, but imaginary sounds can never replace real ones,
-and every composer must hear his production in order to perfect it.
-Beethoven, however, could not hear, could not perfect his work, and
-consequently published productions which are artistic ravings. But
-criticism, having once acknowledged him to be a great composer,
-seizes on just these abnormal works with special gusto, and searches
-for extraordinary beauties in them. And, to justify its laudations
-(perverting the very meaning of musical art), it attributed to music
-the property of describing what it cannot describe. And imitators
-appear--an innumerable host of imitators of these abnormal attempts
-at artistic productions which Beethoven wrote when he was deaf.
-
-Then Wagner appears, who at first in critical articles praises just
-Beethoven's last period, and connects this music with Schopenhauer's
-mystical theory that music is the expression of Will--not of
-separate manifestations of will objectivized on various planes,
-but its very essence--which is in itself as absurd as this music
-of Beethoven. And afterward he composes music of his own on this
-theory, in conjunction with another still more erroneous system of
-the union of all the arts. After Wagner yet new imitators appear,
-diverging yet further from art: Brahms, Richard Strauss, and others.
-
-Such are the results of criticism. But the third condition of the
-perversion of art, namely, art schools, is almost more harmful still.
-
-As soon as art became, not art for the whole people, but for a rich
-class, it became a profession; as soon as it became a profession,
-methods were devised to teach it; people who chose this profession
-of art began to learn these methods, and thus professional schools
-sprang up: classes of rhetoric or literature in the public schools,
-academies for painting, conservatoires for music, schools for
-dramatic art.
-
-In these schools art is taught! But art is the transmission to
-others of a special feeling experienced by the artist. How can this
-be taught in schools?
-
-No school can evoke feeling in a man, and still less can it teach
-him how to manifest it in the one particular manner natural to him
-alone. But the essence of art lies in these things.
-
-The one thing these schools can teach is how to transmit feelings
-experienced by other artists in the way those other artists
-transmitted them. And this is just what the professional schools do
-teach; and such instruction not only does not assist the spread of
-true art, but, on the contrary, by diffusing counterfeits of art,
-does more than anything else to deprive people of the capacity to
-understand true art.
-
-In literary art people are taught how, without having anything they
-wish to say, to write a many-paged composition on a theme about
-which they have never thought, and, moreover, to write it so that
-it should resemble the work of an author admitted to be celebrated.
-This is taught in schools.
-
-In painting, the chief training consists in learning to draw and
-paint from copies and models, the naked body chiefly (the very
-thing that is never seen, and which a man occupied with real art
-hardly ever has to depict), and to draw and paint as former masters
-drew and painted. The composition of pictures is taught by giving
-out themes similar to those which have been treated by former
-acknowledged celebrities.
-
-So also in dramatic schools, the pupils are taught to recite
-monologues just as tragedians, considered celebrated, declaimed them.
-
-It is the same in music. The whole theory of music is nothing but
-a disconnected repetition of those methods which the acknowledged
-masters of composition made use of.
-
-I have elsewhere quoted the profound remark of the Russian artist
-Bruloff on art, but I cannot here refrain from repeating it, because
-nothing better illustrates what can and what cannot be taught in
-the schools. Once when correcting a pupil's study, Bruloff just
-touched it in a few places, and the poor dead study immediately
-became animated. "Why, you only touched it a _wee bit_, and it is
-quite another thing!" said one of the pupils. "Art begins where
-the _wee bit_ begins," replied Bruloff, indicating by these words
-just what is most characteristic of art. The remark is true of
-all the arts, but its justice is particularly noticeable in the
-performance of music. That musical execution should be artistic,
-should be art, _i.e._ should infect, three chief conditions must
-be observed,--there are many others needed for musical perfection;
-the transition from one sound to another must be interrupted or
-continuous; the sound must increase or diminish steadily; it must
-be blended with one and not with another sound; the sound must
-have this or that timbre, and much besides,--but take the three
-chief conditions; the pitch, the time, and the strength of the
-sound. Musical execution is only then art, only then infects, when
-the sound is neither higher nor lower than it should be, that is,
-when exactly the infinitely small center of the required note is
-taken; when that note is continued exactly as long as is needed;
-and when the strength of the sound is neither more nor less than
-is required. The slightest deviation of pitch in either direction,
-the slightest increase or decrease in time, or the slightest
-strengthening or weakening of the sound beyond what is needed,
-destroys the perfection and, consequently, the infectiousness of
-the work. So that the feeling of infection by the art of music,
-which seems so simple and so easily obtained, is a thing we receive
-only when the performer finds those infinitely minute degrees which
-are necessary to perfection in music. It is the same in all arts:
-a wee bit lighter, a wee bit darker, a wee bit higher, lower, to
-the right or the left--in painting; a wee bit weaker or stronger in
-intonation, or a wee bit sooner or later--in dramatic art; a wee bit
-omitted, over-emphasized, or exaggerated--in poetry, and there is
-no contagion. Infection is only obtained when an artist finds those
-infinitely minute degrees of which a work of art consists, and only
-to the extent to which he finds them. And it is quite impossible to
-teach people by external means to find these minute degrees; they
-can only be found when a man yields to his feeling. No instruction
-can make a dancer catch just the tact of the music, or a singer or
-a fiddler take exactly the infinitely minute center of his note, or
-a sketcher draw of all possible lines the only right one, or a poet
-find the only meet arrangement of the only suitable words. All this
-is found only by feeling. And therefore schools may teach what is
-necessary in order to produce something resembling art, but not art
-itself.
-
-The teaching of the schools stops there where the _wee bit_
-begins--consequently where art begins.
-
-Accustoming people to something resembling art, disaccustoms them to
-the comprehension of real art. And that is how it comes about that
-none are more dull to art than those who have passed through the
-professional schools and been most successful in them. Professional
-schools produce an hypocrisy of art precisely akin to that hypocrisy
-of religion which is produced by theological colleges for training
-priests, pastors, and religious teachers generally. As it is
-impossible in a school to train a man so as to make a religious
-teacher of him, so it is impossible to teach a man how to become an
-artist.
-
-Art schools are thus doubly destructive of art: first, in that they
-destroy the capacity to produce real art in those who have the
-misfortune to enter them and go through a seven or eight years'
-course; secondly, in that they generate enormous quantities of that
-counterfeit art which perverts the taste of the masses and overflows
-our world. In order that born artists may know the methods of the
-various arts elaborated by former artists, there should exist in
-all elementary schools such classes for drawing and music (singing)
-that, after passing through them, every talented scholar may, by
-using existing models accessible to all, be able to perfect himself
-in his art independently.
-
-These three conditions--the professionalization of artists, art
-criticism, and art schools--have had this effect: that most people
-in our times are quite unable even to understand what art is, and
-accept as art the grossest counterfeits of it.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII
-
-
-To what an extent people of our circle and time have lost the
-capacity to receive real art, and have become accustomed to accept
-as art things that have nothing in common with it, is best seen from
-the works of Richard Wagner, which have latterly come to be more and
-more esteemed, not only by the Germans, but also by the French and
-the English, as the very highest art, revealing new horizons to us.
-
-The peculiarity of Wagner's music, as is known, consists in
-this,--that he considered that music should serve poetry, expressing
-all the shades of a poetical work.
-
-The union of the drama with music, devised in the fifteenth century
-in Italy for the revival of what they imagined to have been the
-ancient Greek drama with music, is an artificial form which had,
-and has, success only among the upper classes, and that only when
-gifted composers, such as Mozart, Weber, Rossini, and others,
-drawing inspiration from a dramatic subject, yielded freely to the
-inspiration and subordinated the text to the music, so that in their
-operas the important thing to the audience was merely the music on
-a certain text, and not the text at all, which latter, even when it
-was utterly absurd, as, for instance, in the "Magic Flute," still
-did not prevent the music from producing an artistic impression.
-
-Wagner wishes to correct the opera by letting music submit to the
-demands of poetry and unite with it. But each art has its own
-definite realm, which is not identical with the realm of other
-arts, but merely comes in contact with them; and therefore, if the
-manifestation of, I will not say several, but even of two arts--the
-dramatic and the musical--be united in one complete production,
-then the demands of the one art will make it impossible to fulfil
-the demands of the other, as has always occurred in the ordinary
-operas, where the dramatic art has submitted to, or rather yielded
-place to, the musical. Wagner wishes that musical art should submit
-to dramatic art, and that both should appear in full strength. But
-this is impossible; for every work of art, if it be a true one,
-is an expression of intimate feelings of the artist, which are
-quite exceptional, and not like anything else. Such is a musical
-production, and such is a dramatic work, if they be true art.
-And therefore, in order that a production in the one branch of
-art should coincide with a production in the other branch, it is
-necessary that the impossible should happen: that two works from
-different realms of art should be absolutely exceptional, unlike
-anything that existed before, and yet should coincide, and be
-exactly alike.
-
-And this cannot be, just as there cannot be two men, or even two
-leaves on a tree, exactly alike. Still less can two works from
-different realms of art, the musical and the literary, be absolutely
-alike. If they coincide, then either one is a work of art and the
-other a counterfeit, or both are counterfeits. Two live leaves
-cannot be exactly alike, but two artificial leaves may be. And so it
-is with works of art. They can only coincide completely when neither
-the one nor the other is art, but only cunningly devised semblances
-of it.
-
-If poetry and music may be joined, as occurs in hymns, songs,
-and _romances_--(though even in these the music does not follow
-the changes of each verse of the text, as Wagner wants to, but
-the song and the music merely produce a coincident effect on the
-mind)--this occurs only because lyrical poetry and music have, to
-some extent, one and the same aim: to produce a mental condition and
-the conditions produced by lyrical poetry and by music can, more or
-less, coincide. But even in these conjunctions the center of gravity
-always lies in one of the two productions, so that it is one of
-them that produces the artistic impression while the other remains
-unregarded. And still less is it possible for such union to exist
-between epic or dramatic poetry and music.
-
-Moreover, one of the chief conditions of artistic creation is the
-complete freedom of the artist from every kind of preconceived
-demand. And the necessity of adjusting his musical work to a work
-from another realm of art is a preconceived demand of such a kind
-as to destroy all possibility of creative power; and therefore works
-of this kind, adjusted to one another, are, and must be, as has
-always happened, not works of art, but only imitations of art, like
-the music of a melodrama, signatures to pictures, illustrations, and
-librettos to operas.
-
-And such are Wagner's productions. And a confirmation of this is
-to be seen in the fact that Wagner's new music lacks the chief
-characteristic of every true work of art; namely, such entirety
-and completeness that the smallest alteration in its form would
-disturb the meaning of the whole work. In a true work of art--poem,
-drama, picture, song, or symphony--it is impossible to extract one
-line, one scene, one figure, or one bar from its place and put it
-in another, without infringing the significance of the whole work;
-just as it is impossible, without infringing the life of an organic
-being, to extract an organ from one place and insert it in another.
-But in the music of Wagner's last period, with the exception of
-certain parts of little importance which have an independent musical
-meaning, it is possible to make all kinds of transpositions, putting
-what was in front behind, and _vice versa_, without altering the
-musical sense. And the reason why these transpositions do not alter
-the sense of Wagner's music is because the sense lies in the words
-and not in the music.
-
-The musical score of Wagner's later operas is like what the result
-would be should one of those versifiers--of whom there are now
-many, with tongues so broken that they can write verses on any
-theme to any rhymes in any rhythm, which sound as if they had a
-meaning--conceive the idea of illustrating by his verses some
-symphony or sonata of Beethoven, or some ballade of Chopin, in
-the following manner. To the first bars, of one character, he
-writes verses corresponding in his opinion to those first bars.
-Next come some bars of a different character, and he also writes
-verses corresponding in his opinion to them, but with no internal
-connection with the first verses, and, moreover, without rhymes and
-without rhythm. Such a production, without the music, would be
-exactly parallel in poetry to what Wagner's operas are in music, if
-heard without the words.
-
-But Wagner is not only a musician, he is also a poet, or both
-together; and therefore, to judge of Wagner, one must know his
-poetry also--that same poetry which the music has to subserve. The
-chief poetical production of Wagner is "The Nibelung's Ring." This
-work has attained such enormous importance in our time, and has such
-influence on all that now professes to be art, that it is necessary
-for every one to-day to have some idea of it. I have carefully read
-through the four booklets which contain this work, and have drawn
-up a brief summary of it, which I give in Appendix III. I would
-strongly advise the reader (if he has not perused the poem itself,
-which would be the best thing to do) at least to read my account of
-it, so as to have an idea of this extraordinary work. It is a model
-work of counterfeit art, so gross as to be even ridiculous.
-
-But we are told that it is impossible to judge of Wagner's works
-without seeing them on the stage. The Second Day of this drama,
-which, as I was told, is the best part of the whole work, was given
-in Moscow last winter, and I went to see the performance.
-
-When I arrived the enormous theater was already filled from top to
-bottom. There were grand dukes, and the flower of the aristocracy,
-of the merchant class, of the learned, and of the middle-class
-official public. Most of them held the libretto, fathoming its
-meaning. Musicians--some of them elderly, gray-haired men--followed
-the music, score in hand. Evidently the performance of this work was
-an event of importance.
-
-I was rather late, but I was told that the short prelude, with
-which the act begins, was of little importance, and that it did not
-matter having missed it. When I arrived, an actor sat on the stage
-amid decorations intended to represent a cave, and before something
-which was meant to represent a smith's forge. He was dressed in
-trico-tights, with a cloak of skins, wore a wig and an artificial
-beard, and with white, weak genteel hands (his easy movements,
-and especially the shape of his stomach and his lack of muscle
-revealed the actor) beat an impossible sword with an unnatural
-hammer in a way in which no one ever uses a hammer; and at the
-same time, opening his mouth in a strange way, he sang something
-incomprehensible. The music of various instruments accompanied the
-strange sounds which he emitted. From the libretto one was able
-to gather that the actor had to represent a powerful gnome, who
-lived in the cave, and who was forging a sword for Siegfried, whom
-he had reared. One could tell he was a gnome by the fact that the
-actor walked all the time bending the knees of his trico-covered
-legs. This gnome, still opening his mouth in the same strange way,
-long continued to sing or shout. The music meanwhile runs over
-something strange, like beginnings which are not continued and do
-not get finished. From the libretto one could learn that the gnome
-is telling himself about a ring which a giant had obtained, and
-which the gnome wishes to procure through Siegfried's aid, while
-Siegfried wants a good sword, on the forging of which the gnome is
-occupied. After this conversation or singing to himself has gone
-on rather a long time, other sounds are heard in the orchestra,
-also like something beginning and not finishing, and another actor
-appears, with a horn slung over his shoulder, and accompanied by a
-man running on all fours dressed up as a bear, whom he sets at the
-smith-gnome. The latter runs away without unbending the knees of
-his trico-covered legs. This actor with the horn represented the
-hero, Siegfried. The sounds which were emitted in the orchestra on
-the entrance of this actor were intended to represent Siegfried's
-character, and are called Siegfried's _leit-motiv_. And these
-sounds are repeated each time Siegfried appears. There is one fixed
-combination of sounds, or _leit-motiv_, for each character, and this
-_leit-motiv_ is repeated every time the person whom it represents
-appears; and when any one is mentioned the _motiv_ is heard which
-relates to that person. Moreover, each article also has its own
-_leit-motiv_ or chord. There is a _motiv_ of the ring, a _motiv_
-of the helmet, a _motiv_ of the apple, a _motiv_ of fire, spear,
-sword, water, etc.; and as soon as the ring, helmet, or apple is
-mentioned, the _motiv_ or chord of the ring, helmet, or apple is
-heard. The actor with the horn opens his mouth as unnaturally as the
-gnome, and long continues in a chanting voice to shout some words,
-and in a similar chant Mime (that is the gnome's name) answers
-something or other to him. The meaning of this conversation can
-only be discovered from the libretto; and it is that Siegfried was
-brought up by the gnome, and therefore, for some reason, hates him
-and always wishes to kill him. The gnome has forged a sword for
-Siegfried, but Siegfried is dissatisfied with it. From a ten-page
-conversation (by the libretto), lasting half an hour and conducted
-with the same strange openings of the mouth, and chantings, it
-appears that Siegfried's mother gave birth to him in the wood, and
-that concerning his father all that is known is that he had a sword
-which was broken, the pieces of which are in Mime's possession,
-and that Siegfried does not know fear and wishes to go out of
-the wood. Mime, however, does not want to let him go. During the
-conversation the music never omits, at the mention of father, sword,
-etc., to sound the _motiv_ of these people and things. After these
-conversations fresh sounds are heard--those of the god Wotan--and a
-wanderer appears. This wanderer is the god Wotan. Also dressed up in
-a wig, and also in tights, this god Wotan, standing in a stupid pose
-with a spear, thinks proper to recount what Mime must have known
-before, but what it is necessary to tell the audience. He does not
-tell it simply, but in the form of riddles which he orders himself
-to guess, staking his head (one does not know why) that he will
-guess right. Moreover, whenever the wanderer strikes his spear on
-the ground, fire comes out of the ground, and in the orchestra the
-sounds of spear and of fire are heard. The orchestra accompanies the
-conversation, and the _motiv_ of the people and things spoken of
-are always artfully intermingled. Besides this the music expresses
-feelings in the most naive manner: the terrible by sounds in the
-bass, the frivolous by rapid touches in the treble, etc.
-
-The riddles have no meaning except to tell the audience what the
-_nibelungs_ are, what the giants are, what the gods are, and
-what has happened before. This conversation also is chanted with
-strangely opened mouths and continues for eight libretto pages,
-and correspondingly long on the stage. After this the wanderer
-departs, and Siegfried returns and talks with Mime for thirteen
-pages more. There is not a single melody the whole of this time,
-but merely intertwinings of the _leit-motiv_ of the people and
-things mentioned. The conversation tells that Mime wishes to teach
-Siegfried fear, and that Siegfried does not know what fear is.
-Having finished this conversation, Siegfried seizes one of the
-pieces of what is meant to represent the broken sword, saws it up,
-puts it on what is meant to represent the forge, melts it, and then
-forges it and sings: Heiho! heiho! heiho! Ho! ho! Aha! oho! aha!
-Heiaho! heiaho! heiaho! Ho! ho! Hahei! hoho! hahei! and Act I.
-finishes.
-
-As far as the question I had come to the theater to decide was
-concerned, my mind was fully made up, as surely as on the question
-of the merits of my lady acquaintance's novel when she read me the
-scene between the loose-haired maiden in the white dress and the
-hero with two white dogs and a hat with a feather _a la Guillaume
-Tell_.
-
-From an author who could compose such spurious scenes, outraging all
-aesthetic feeling, as those which I had witnessed, there was nothing
-to be hoped; it may safely be decided that all that such an author
-can write will be bad, because he evidently does not know what a
-true work of art is. I wished to leave, but the friends I was with
-asked me to remain, declaring that one could not form an opinion by
-that one act, and that the second would be better. So I stopped for
-the second act.
-
-Act II., night. Afterward, dawn. In general, the whole piece is
-crammed with lights, clouds, moonlight, darkness, magic fires,
-thunder, etc.
-
-The scene represents a wood, and in the wood there is a cave. At the
-entrance of the cave sits a third actor in tights, representing
-another gnome. It dawns. Enter the god Wotan, again with a spear,
-and again in the guise of a wanderer. Again his sounds, together
-with fresh sounds of the deepest bass that can be produced. These
-latter indicate that the dragon is speaking. Wotan awakens the
-dragon. The same bass sounds are repeated, growing yet deeper and
-deeper. First the dragon says, "I want to sleep," but afterward he
-crawls out of the cave. The dragon is represented by two men; it
-is dressed in a green, scaly skin, waves a tail at one end, while
-at the other it opens a kind of crocodile's jaw that is fastened
-on, and from which flames appear. The dragon (who is meant to be
-dreadful, and may appear so to five-year-old children) speaks some
-words in a terribly bass voice. This is all so stupid, so like what
-is done in a booth at a fair, that it is surprising that people
-over seven years of age can witness it seriously; yet thousands of
-quasi-cultured people sit and attentively hear and see it, and are
-delighted.
-
-Siegfried, with his horn, reappears, as does Mime also. In the
-orchestra the sounds denoting them are emitted, and they talk about
-whether Siegfried does or does not know what fear is. Mime goes
-away, and a scene commences which is intended to be most poetical.
-Siegfried, in his tights, lies down in a would-be beautiful pose,
-and alternately keeps silent and talks to himself. He ponders,
-listens to the song of birds, and wishes to imitate them. For this
-purpose he cuts a reed with his sword and makes a pipe. The dawn
-grows brighter and brighter; the birds sing. Siegfried tries to
-imitate the birds. In the orchestra is heard the imitation of birds,
-alternating with sounds corresponding to the words he speaks. But
-Siegfried does not succeed with his pipe-playing, so he plays on
-his horn instead. This scene is unendurable. Of music, _i.e._ of
-art serving as a means to transmit a state of mind experienced by
-the author, there is not even a suggestion. There is something that
-is absolutely unintelligible musically. In a musical sense a hope
-is continually experienced, followed by disappointment, as if a
-musical thought were commenced only to be broken off. If there are
-something like musical commencements, these commencements are so
-short, so encumbered with complications of harmony and orchestration
-and with effects of contrast, are so obscure and unfinished, and
-what is happening on the stage meanwhile is so abominably false,
-that it is difficult even to perceive these musical snatches, let
-alone to be infected by them. Above all, from the very beginning to
-the very end, and in each note, the author's purpose is so audible
-and visible that one sees and hears neither Siegfried nor the birds,
-but only a limited, self-opinionated German, of bad taste and bad
-style, who has a most false conception of poetry, and who, in the
-rudest and most primitive manner, wishes to transmit to me these
-false and mistaken conceptions of his.
-
-Every one knows the feeling of distrust and resistance which is
-always evoked by an author's evident predetermination. A narrator
-need only say in advance, Prepare to cry or to laugh, and you are
-sure neither to cry nor to laugh. But when you see that an author
-prescribes emotion at what is not touching, but only laughable or
-disgusting, and when you see, moreover, that the author is fully
-assured that he has captivated you, a painfully tormenting feeling
-results, similar to what one would feel if an old, deformed woman
-put on a ball-dress, and smilingly coquetted before you, confident
-of your approbation. This impression was strengthened by the fact
-that around me I saw a crowd of three thousand people, who not only
-patiently witnessed all this absurd nonsense, but even considered it
-their duty to be delighted with it.
-
-I somehow managed to sit out the next scene also, in which the
-monster appears, to the accompaniment of his bass notes intermingled
-with the _motiv_ of Siegfried; but after the fight with the monster,
-and all the roars, fires, and sword-wavings, I could stand no more
-of it, and escaped from the theater with a feeling of repulsion
-which, even now, I cannot forget.
-
-Listening to this opera, I involuntarily thought of a respected,
-wise, educated country laborer,--one, for instance, of those wise
-and truly religious men whom I know among the peasants,--and I
-pictured to myself the terrible perplexity such a man would be in
-were he to witness what I was seeing that evening.
-
-What would he think if he knew of all the labor spent on such
-a performance, and saw that audience, those great ones of the
-earth,--old, bald-headed, gray-bearded men, whom he had been
-accustomed to respect,--sit silent and attentive, listening to and
-looking at all these stupidities for five hours on end? Not to speak
-of an adult laborer, one can hardly imagine even a child of over
-seven occupying himself with such a stupid, incoherent fairy tale.
-
-And yet an enormous audience, the cream of the cultured upper
-classes, sits out five hours of this insane performance, and goes
-away imagining that by paying tribute to this nonsense it has
-acquired a fresh right to esteem itself advanced and enlightened.
-
-I speak of the Moscow public. But what is the Moscow public? It is
-but a hundredth part of that public which, while considering itself
-most highly enlightened, esteems it a merit to have so lost the
-capacity of being infected by art, that not only can it witness this
-stupid sham without being revolted, but can even take delight in it.
-
-In Bayreuth, where these performances were first given, people who
-consider themselves finely cultured assembled from the ends of the
-earth, spent, say one hundred pounds each, to see this performance,
-and for four days running they went to see and hear this nonsensical
-rubbish, sitting it out for six hours each day.
-
-But why did people go, and why do they still go to these
-performances, and why do they admire them? The question naturally
-presents itself: How is the success of Wagner's works to be
-explained?
-
-That success I explain to myself in this way: thanks to his
-exceptional position in having at his disposal the resources of a
-king, Wagner was able to command all the methods for counterfeiting
-art which have been developed by long usage, and, employing these
-methods with great ability, he produced a model work of counterfeit
-art. The reason why I have selected his work for my illustration is,
-that in no other counterfeit of art known to me are all the methods
-by which art is counterfeited--namely, borrowings, imitation,
-effects, and interestingness--so ably and powerfully united.
-
-From the subject, borrowed from antiquity, to the clouds and the
-risings of the sun and moon, Wagner, in this work, has made use of
-all that is considered poetical. We have here the sleeping beauty,
-and nymphs, and subterranean fires, and gnomes, and battles, and
-swords, and love, and incest, and a monster, and singing-birds--the
-whole arsenal of the poetical is brought into action.
-
-Moreover, everything is imitative; the decorations are imitated,
-and the costumes are imitated. All are just as, according to the
-data supplied by archaeology, they would have been in antiquity. The
-very sounds are imitative; for Wagner, who was not destitute of
-musical talent, invented just such sounds as imitate the strokes of
-a hammer, the hissing of molten iron, the singing of birds, etc.
-
-Furthermore, in this work everything is in the highest degree
-striking in its effects and in its peculiarities: its monsters, its
-magic fires, and its scenes under water; the darkness in which the
-audience sit, the invisibility of the orchestra, and the hitherto
-unemployed combinations of harmony.
-
-And besides, it is all interesting. The interest lies not only in
-the question who will kill whom, and who will marry whom, and who
-is whose son, and what will happen next?--the interest lies also
-in the relation of the music to the text. The rolling waves of the
-Rhine--now how is that to be expressed in music? An evil gnome
-appears--how is the music to express an evil gnome?--and how is it
-to express the sensuality of this gnome? How will bravery, fire,
-or apples be expressed in music? How are the _leit-motiv_ of the
-people speaking to be interwoven with the _leit-motiv_ of the
-people and objects about whom they speak? Besides, the music has a
-further interest. It diverges from all formerly accepted laws, and
-most unexpected and totally new modulations crop up (as is not only
-possible, but even easy in music having no inner law of its being);
-the dissonances are new, and are allowed in a new way--and this,
-too, is interesting.
-
-And it is this poeticality, imitativeness, effectfulness, and
-interestingness which, thanks to the peculiarities of Wagner's
-talent, and to the advantageous position in which he was placed, are
-in these productions carried to the highest pitch of perfection,
-that so act on the spectator, hypnotizing him as one would be
-hypnotized who should listen for several consecutive hours to the
-ravings of a maniac pronounced with great oratorical power.
-
-People say: "You cannot judge without having seen Wagner performed
-at Bayreuth: in the dark, where the orchestra is out of sight
-concealed under the stage, and where the performance is brought
-to the highest perfection." And this just proves that we have
-here no question of art, but one of hypnotism. It is just what
-the spiritualists say. To convince you of the reality of their
-apparitions they usually say, "You cannot judge; you must try it,
-be present at several seances," _i.e._ come and sit silent in the
-dark for hours together in the same room with semi-sane people, and
-repeat this some ten times over, and you shall see all that we see.
-
-Yes, naturally! Only place yourself in such conditions, and you
-may see what you will. But this can be still more quickly attained
-by getting drunk or smoking opium. It is the same when listening
-to an opera of Wagner's. Sit in the dark for four days in company
-with people who are not quite normal, and, through the auditory
-nerves, subject your brain to the strongest action of the sounds
-best adapted to excite it, and you will no doubt be reduced to an
-abnormal condition, and be enchanted by absurdities. But to attain
-this end you do not even need four days; the five hours during
-which one "day" is enacted, as in Moscow, are quite enough. Nor
-are five hours needed; even one hour is enough for people who have
-no clear conception of what art should be, and who have come to the
-conclusion in advance that what they are going to see is excellent,
-and that indifference or dissatisfaction with this work will serve
-as a proof of their inferiority and lack of culture.
-
-I observed the audience present at this representation. The people
-who led the whole audience and gave the tone to it were those who
-had previously been hypnotized, and who again succumbed to the
-hypnotic influence to which they were accustomed. These hypnotized
-people, being in an abnormal condition, were perfectly enraptured.
-Moreover, all the art critics, who lack the capacity to be infected
-by art and therefore always especially prize works like Wagner's
-opera where it is all an affair of the intellect, also, with much
-profundity, expressed their approval of a work affording such ample
-material for ratiocination. And following these two groups went
-that large city crowd (indifferent to art, with their capacity to
-be infected by it perverted and partly atrophied), headed by the
-princes, millionaires, and art patrons, who, like sorry harriers,
-keep close to those who most loudly and decidedly express their
-opinion.
-
-"Oh, yes, certainly! What poetry! Marvelous! Especially the birds!"
-"Yes, yes! I am quite vanquished!" exclaim these people, repeating
-in various tones what they have just heard from men whose opinion
-appears to them authoritative.
-
-If some people do feel insulted by the absurdity and spuriousness of
-the whole thing, they are timidly silent, as sober men are timid and
-silent when surrounded by tipsy ones.
-
-And thus, thanks to the masterly skill with which it counterfeits
-art while having nothing in common with it, a meaningless, coarse,
-spurious production finds acceptance all over the world, costs
-millions of roubles to produce, and assists more and more to pervert
-the taste of people of the upper classes and their conception of
-what is art.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIV
-
-
-I know that most men--not only those considered clever, but even
-those who are very clever, and capable of understanding most
-difficult scientific, mathematical, or philosophic problems--can
-very seldom discern even the simplest and most obvious truth if it
-be such as to oblige them to admit the falsity of conclusions they
-have formed, perhaps with much difficulty--conclusions of which
-they are proud, which they have taught to others, and on which they
-have built their lives. And therefore I have little hope that what
-I adduce as to the perversion of art and taste in our society will
-be accepted or even seriously considered. Nevertheless, I must state
-fully the inevitable conclusion to which my investigation into the
-question of art has brought me. This investigation has brought me
-to the conviction that almost all that our society considers to
-be art, good art, and the whole of art, far from being real and
-good art, and the whole of art, is not even art at all, but only a
-counterfeit of it. This position, I know, will seem very strange and
-paradoxical; but if we once acknowledge art to be a human activity
-by means of which some people transmit their feelings to others (and
-not a service of Beauty, nor a manifestation of the Idea, and so
-forth), we shall inevitably have to admit this further conclusion
-also. If it is true that art is an activity by means of which one
-man, having experienced a feeling, intentionally transmits it to
-others, then we have inevitably to admit further, that of all that
-among us is termed the art of the upper classes--of all those
-novels, stories, dramas, comedies, pictures, sculptures, symphonies,
-operas, operettas, ballets, etc., which profess to be works of
-art--scarcely one in a hundred thousand proceeds from an emotion
-felt by its author, all the rest being but manufactured counterfeits
-of art, in which borrowing, imitating, effects, and interestingness
-replace the contagion of feeling. That the proportion of real
-productions of art is to the counterfeits as one to some hundreds of
-thousands or even more, may be seen by the following calculation.
-I have read somewhere that the artist painters in Paris alone
-number 30,000; there will probably be as many in England, as many
-in Germany, and as many in Russia, Italy, and the smaller states
-combined. So that in all there will be in Europe, say, 120,000
-painters; and there are probably as many musicians and as many
-literary artists. If these 360,000 individuals produce three works
-a year each (and many of them produce ten or more), then each year
-yields over a million so-called works of art. How many, then, must
-have been produced in the last ten years, and how many in the whole
-time since upper-class art broke off from the art of the whole
-people? Evidently millions. Yet who of all the connoisseurs of art
-has received impressions from all these pseudo works of art? Not to
-mention all the laboring classes who have no conception of these
-productions, even people of the upper classes cannot know one in a
-thousand of them all, and cannot remember those they have known.
-These works all appear under the guise of art, produce no impression
-on any one (except when they serve as pastimes for the idle crowd of
-rich people), and vanish utterly.
-
-In reply to this it is usually said that without this enormous
-number of unsuccessful attempts we should not have the real works of
-art. But such reasoning is as though a baker, in reply to a reproach
-that his bread was bad, were to say that if it were not for the
-hundreds of spoiled loaves there would not be any well-baked ones.
-It is true that where there is gold there is also much sand; but
-that cannot serve as a reason for talking a lot of nonsense in order
-to say something wise.
-
-We are surrounded by productions considered artistic. Thousands
-of verses, thousands of poems, thousands of novels, thousands of
-dramas, thousands of pictures, thousands of musical pieces, follow
-one after another. All the verses describe love, or nature, or the
-author's state of mind, and in all of them rhyme and rhythm are
-observed. All the dramas and comedies are splendidly mounted and
-are performed by admirably trained actors. All the novels are
-divided into chapters; all of them describe love, contain effective
-situations, and correctly describe the details of life. All the
-symphonies contain _allegro_, _andante_, _scherzo_, and _finale_;
-all consist of modulations and chords, and are played by highly
-trained musicians. All the pictures, in gold frames, saliently
-depict faces and sundry accessories. But among these productions
-in the various branches of art, there is in each branch one among
-hundreds of thousands, not only somewhat better than the rest, but
-differing from them as a diamond differs from paste. The one is
-priceless, the others not only have no value, but are worse than
-valueless, for they deceive and pervert taste. And yet, externally,
-they are, to a man of perverted or atrophied artistic perception,
-precisely alike.
-
-In our society the difficulty of recognizing real works of art is
-further increased by the fact that the external quality of the work
-in false productions is not only no worse, but often better, than in
-real ones; the counterfeit is often more effective than the real,
-and its subject more interesting. How is one to discriminate? How is
-one to find a production in no way distinguished in externals from
-hundreds of thousands of others intentionally made to imitate it
-precisely?
-
-For a country peasant of unperverted taste this is as easy as it is
-for an animal of unspoilt scent to follow the trace he needs among
-a thousand others in wood or forest. The animal unerringly finds
-what he needs. So also the man, if only his natural qualities have
-not been perverted, will, without fail, select from among thousands
-of objects the real work of art he requires,--that infecting him
-with the feeling experienced by the artist. But it is not so with
-those whose taste has been perverted by their education and life.
-The receptive feeling for art of these people is atrophied, and in
-valuing artistic productions they must be guided by discussion and
-study, which discussion and study completely confuse them. So that
-most people in our society are quite unable to distinguish a work of
-art from the grossest counterfeit. People sit for whole hours in
-concert-rooms and theaters listening to the new composers, consider
-it a duty to read the novels of the famous modern novelists, and to
-look at pictures representing either something incomprehensible, or
-just the very things they see much better in real life; and, above
-all, they consider it incumbent on them to be enraptured by all
-this, imagining it all to be art, while at the same time they will
-pass real works of art by, not only without attention, but even
-with contempt, merely because, in their circle, these works are not
-included in the list of works of art.
-
-A few days ago I was returning home from a walk feeling depressed,
-as occurs sometimes. On nearing the house I heard the loud singing
-of a large choir of peasant women. They were welcoming my daughter,
-celebrating her return home after her marriage. In this singing,
-with its cries and clanging of scythes, such a definite feeling
-of joy, cheerfulness, and energy was expressed, that, without
-noticing how it infected me, I continued my way toward the house
-in a better mood, and reached home smiling, and quite in good
-spirits. That same evening, a visitor, an admirable musician,
-famed for his execution of classical music, and particularly of
-Beethoven, played us Beethoven's sonata, Opus 101. For the benefit
-of those who might otherwise attribute my judgment of that sonata
-of Beethoven to non-comprehension of it, I should mention that,
-whatever other people understand of that sonata and of other
-productions of Beethoven's later period, I, being very susceptible
-to music, equally understood. For a long time I used to attune
-myself so as to delight in those shapeless improvisations which
-form the subject-matter of the works of Beethoven's later period,
-but I had only to consider the question of art seriously, and to
-compare the impression I received from Beethoven's later works with
-those pleasant, clear, and strong musical impressions which are
-transmitted, for instance, by the melodies of Bach (his arias),
-Haydn, Mozart, Chopin, (when his melodies are not overloaded with
-complications and ornamentation), and of Beethoven himself in
-his earlier period, and, above all, with the impressions produced
-by folk-songs,--Italian, Norwegian, or Russian,--by the Hungarian
-_tzardas_, and other such simple, clear, and powerful music, and the
-obscure, almost unhealthy excitement from Beethoven's later pieces
-that I had artificially evoked in myself was immediately destroyed.
-
-On the completion of the performance (though it was noticeable that
-every one had become dull) those present, in the accepted manner,
-warmly praised Beethoven's profound production, and did not forget
-to add that formerly they had not been able to understand that last
-period of his, but that they now saw that he was really then at his
-very best. And when I ventured to compare the impression made on me
-by the singing of the peasant women--an impression which had been
-shared by all who heard it--with the effect of this sonata, the
-admirers of Beethoven only smiled contemptuously, not considering it
-necessary to reply to such strange remarks.
-
-But, for all that, the song of the peasant women was real art,
-transmitting a definite and strong feeling; while the 101st sonata
-of Beethoven was only an unsuccessful attempt at art, containing no
-definite feeling, and therefore not infectious.
-
-For my work on art I have this winter read diligently, though with
-great effort, the celebrated novels and stories, praised by all
-Europe, written by Zola, Bourget, Huysmans, and Kipling. At the
-same time I chanced on a story in a child's magazine, and by a
-quite unknown writer, which told of the Easter preparations in a
-poor widow's family. The story tells how the mother managed with
-difficulty to obtain some wheat-flour, which she poured on the
-table ready to knead. She then went out to procure some yeast,
-telling the children not to leave the hut, and to take care of the
-flour. When the mother had gone, some other children ran shouting
-near the window, calling those in the hut to come to play. The
-children forgot their mother's warning, ran into the street, and
-were soon engrossed in the game. The mother, on her return with
-the yeast, finds a hen on the table throwing the last of the flour
-to her chickens, who were busily picking it out of the dust of the
-earthen floor. The mother, in despair, scolds the children, who
-cry bitterly. And the mother begins to feel pity for them--but the
-white flour has all gone. So to mend matters she decides to make the
-Easter cake with sifted rye-flour, brushing it over with white of
-egg, and surrounding it with eggs. "Rye-bread which we bake is akin
-to any cake," says the mother, using a rhyming proverb to console
-the children for not having an Easter cake made with white flour.
-And the children, quickly passing from despair to rapture, repeat
-the proverb and await the Easter cake more merrily even than before.
-
-Well! the reading of the novels and stories by Zola, Bourget,
-Huysmans, Kipling, and others, handling the most harrowing subjects,
-did not touch me for one moment, and I was provoked with the authors
-all the while, as one is provoked with a man who considers you so
-naive that he does not even conceal the trick by which he intends to
-take you in. From the first lines you see the intention with which
-the book is written, and the details all become superfluous, and
-one feels dull. Above all, one knows that the author had no other
-feeling all the time than a desire to write a story or a novel, and
-so one receives no artistic impression. On the other hand, I could
-not tear myself away from the unknown author's tale of the children
-and the chickens, because I was at once infected by the feeling
-which the author had evidently experienced, reevoked in himself, and
-transmitted.
-
-Vasnetsoff is one of our Russian painters. He has painted
-ecclesiastical pictures in Kieff Cathedral, and every one praises
-him as the founder of some new, elevated kind of Christian art. He
-worked at those pictures for ten years, was paid tens of thousands
-of roubles for them, and they are all simply bad imitations of
-imitations of imitations, destitute of any spark of feeling. And
-this same Vasnetsoff drew a picture for Tourgenieff's story, "The
-Quail" (in which it is told how, in his son's presence, a father
-killed a quail and felt pity for it), showing the boy asleep with
-pouting upper lip, and above him, as a dream, the quail. And this
-picture is a true work of art.
-
-In the English Academy of 1897 two pictures were exhibited together;
-one of which, by J. C. Dolman, was the temptation of St. Anthony.
-The saint is on his knees praying. Behind him stands a naked woman
-and animals of some kind. It is apparent that the naked woman
-pleased the artist very much, but that Anthony did not concern him
-at all; and that, so far from the temptation being terrible to him
-(the artist) it is highly agreeable. And therefore if there be any
-art in this picture, it is very nasty and false. Next in the same
-book of academy pictures comes a picture by Langley, showing a stray
-beggar-boy, who has evidently been called in by a woman who has
-taken pity on him. The boy, pitifully drawing his bare feet under
-the bench, is eating; the woman is looking on, probably considering
-whether he will not want some more; and a girl of about seven,
-leaning on her arm, is carefully and seriously looking on, not
-taking her eyes from the hungry boy, and evidently understanding for
-the first time what poverty is, and what inequality among people is,
-and asking herself why she has everything provided for her while
-this boy goes barefoot and hungry? She feels sorry, and yet pleased.
-And she loves both the boy and goodness.... And one feels that the
-artist loved this girl, and that she too loves. And this picture, by
-an artist who, I think, is not very widely known, is an admirable
-and true work of art.
-
-I remember seeing a performance of "Hamlet" by Rossi. Both the
-tragedy itself and the performer who took the chief part are
-considered by our critics to represent the climax of supreme
-dramatic art. And yet, both from the subject-matter of the drama
-and from the performance, I experienced all the time that peculiar
-suffering which is caused by false imitations of works of art. And
-I lately read of a theatrical performance among the savage tribe,
-the Voguls. A spectator describes the play. A big Vogul and a little
-one, both dressed in reindeer skins, represent a reindeer-doe and
-its young. A third Vogul, with a bow, represents a huntsman on
-snow-shoes, and a fourth imitates with his voice a bird that warns
-the reindeer of their danger. The play is that the huntsman follows
-the track that the doe with its young one has traveled. The deer run
-off the scene, and again reappear. (Such performances take place
-in a small tent-house.) The huntsman gains more and more on the
-pursued. The little deer is tired, and presses against its mother.
-The doe stops to draw breath. The hunter comes up with them and
-draws his bow. But just then the bird sounds its note, warning the
-deer of their danger. They escape. Again there is a chase, and again
-the hunter gains on them, catches them, and lets fly his arrow. The
-arrow strikes the young deer. Unable to run, the little one presses
-against its mother. The mother licks its wound. The hunter draws
-another arrow. The audience, as the eye-witness describes them, are
-paralyzed with suspense; deep groans and even weeping is heard among
-them. And, from the mere description, I felt that this was a true
-work of art.
-
-What I am saying will be considered irrational paradox, at which
-one can only be amazed; but for all that I must say what I think;
-namely, that people of our circle, of whom some compose verses,
-stories, novels, operas, symphonies, and sonatas, paint all
-kinds of pictures and make statues, while others hear and look
-at these things, and again others appraise and criticize it all,
-discuss, condemn, triumph, and raise monuments to one another,
-generation after generation,--that all these people, with very few
-exceptions, artists, and public, and critics, have never (except
-in childhood and earliest youth, before hearing any discussions
-on art) experienced that simple feeling familiar to the plainest
-man and even to a child, that sense of infection with another's
-feeling,--compelling us to joy in another's gladness, to sorrow at
-another's grief, and to mingle souls with another,--which is the
-very essence of art. And therefore these people not only cannot
-distinguish true works of art from counterfeits, but continually
-mistake for real art the worst and most artificial, while they do
-not even perceive works of real art, because the counterfeits are
-always more ornate, while true art is modest.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XV
-
-
-Art, in our society, has been so perverted that not only has bad art
-come to be considered good, but even the very perception of what
-art really is has been lost. In order to be able to speak about the
-art of our society, it is, therefore, first of all necessary to
-distinguish art from counterfeit art.
-
-There is one indubitable indication distinguishing real art from
-its counterfeit, namely, the infectiousness of art. If a man,
-without exercising effort and without altering his standpoint,
-on reading, hearing, or seeing another man's work, experiences a
-mental condition which unites him with that man and with other
-people who also partake of that work of art, then the object evoking
-that condition is a work of art. And however poetical, realistic,
-effectful, or interesting a work may be, it is not a work of art
-if it does not evoke that feeling (quite distinct from all other
-feelings) of joy, and of spiritual union with another (the author)
-and with others (those who are also infected by it).
-
-It is true that this indication is an _internal_ one, and that there
-are people who have forgotten what the action of real art is, who
-expect something else from art (in our society the great majority
-are in this state), and that therefore such people may mistake for
-this aesthetic feeling the feeling of divertisement and a certain
-excitement which they receive from counterfeits of art. But though
-it is impossible to undeceive these people, just as it is impossible
-to convince a man suffering from "Daltonism" that green is not red,
-yet, for all that, this indication remains perfectly definite to
-those whose feeling for art is neither perverted nor atrophied, and
-it clearly distinguishes the feeling produced by art from all other
-feelings.
-
-The chief peculiarity of this feeling is that the receiver of a
-true artistic impression is so united to the artist that he feels
-as if the work were his own and not some one else's,--as if what
-it expresses were just what he had long been wishing to express. A
-real work of art destroys, in the consciousness of the receiver, the
-separation between himself and the artist; nor that alone, but also
-between himself and all whose minds receive this work of art. In
-this freeing of our personality from its separation and isolation,
-in this uniting of it with others, lies the chief characteristic and
-the great attractive force of art.
-
-If a man is infected by the author's condition of soul, if he feels
-this emotion and this union with others, then the object which has
-effected this is art; but if there be no such infection, if there be
-not this union with the author and with others who are moved by the
-same work--then it is not art. And not only is infection a sure sign
-of art, but the degree of infectiousness is also the sole measure of
-excellence in art.
-
-_The stronger the infection the better is the art; as art_, speaking
-now apart from its subject-matter, _i.e._ not considering the
-quality of the feelings it transmits.
-
-And the degree of the infectiousness of art depends on three
-conditions:--
-
-(1) On the greater or lesser individuality of the feeling
-transmitted; (2) on the greater or lesser clearness with which the
-feeling is transmitted; (3) on the sincerity of the artist, _i.e._
-on the greater or lesser force with which the artist himself feels
-the emotion he transmits.
-
-The more individual the feeling transmitted the more strongly does
-it act on the receiver; the more individual the state of soul into
-which he is transferred the more pleasure does the receiver obtain,
-and therefore the more readily and strongly does he join in it.
-
-The clearness of expression assists infection, because the receiver,
-who mingles in consciousness with the author, is the better
-satisfied the more clearly the feeling is transmitted, which, as it
-seems to him, he has long known and felt, and for which he has only
-now found expression.
-
-But most of all is the degree of infectiousness of art increased by
-the degree of sincerity in the artist. As soon as the spectator,
-hearer, or reader feels that the artist is infected by his own
-production, and writes, sings, or plays for himself, and not merely
-to act on others, this mental condition of the artist infects the
-receiver; and, contrariwise, as soon as the spectator, reader, or
-hearer feels that the author is not writing, singing, or playing
-for his own satisfaction,--does not himself feel what he wishes
-to express,--but is doing it for him, the receiver, a resistance
-immediately springs up, and the most individual and the newest
-feelings and the cleverest technique not only fail to produce any
-infection, but actually repel.
-
-I have mentioned three conditions of contagiousness in art, but they
-may be all summed up into one, the last, sincerity, _i.e._ that the
-artist should be impelled by an inner need to express his feeling.
-That condition includes the first; for if the artist is sincere he
-will express the feeling as he experienced it. And as each man is
-different from every one else, his feeling will be individual for
-every one else; and the more individual it is,--the more the artist
-has drawn it from the depths of his nature,--the more sympathetic
-and sincere will it be. And this same sincerity will impel the
-artist to find a clear expression of the feeling which he wishes to
-transmit.
-
-Therefore this third condition--sincerity--is the most important
-of the three. It is always complied with in peasant art, and this
-explains why such art always acts so powerfully; but it is a
-condition almost entirely absent from our upper-class art, which
-is continually produced by artists actuated by personal aims of
-covetousness or vanity.
-
-Such are the three conditions which divide art from its
-counterfeits, and which also decide the quality of every work of art
-apart from its subject-matter.
-
-The absence of any one of these conditions excludes a work from the
-category of art and relegates it to that of art's counterfeits. If
-the work does not transmit the artist's peculiarity of feeling, and
-is therefore not individual, if it is unintelligibly expressed,
-or if it has not proceeded from the author's inner need for
-expression--it is not a work of art. If all these conditions are
-present, even in the smallest degree, then the work, even if a weak
-one, is yet a work of art.
-
-The presence in various degrees of these three
-conditions--individuality, clearness, and sincerity--decides the
-merit of a work of art, as art, apart from subject-matter. All works
-of art take rank of merit according to the degree in which they
-fulfil the first, the second, and the third of these conditions. In
-one the individuality of the feeling transmitted may predominate;
-in another, clearness of expression; in a third, sincerity; while
-a fourth may have sincerity and individuality, but be deficient in
-clearness; a fifth, individuality and clearness, but less sincerity;
-and so forth, in all possible degrees and combinations.
-
-Thus is art divided from not art, and thus is the quality of art, as
-art, decided, independently of its subject-matter, _i.e._ apart from
-whether the feelings it transmits are good or bad.
-
-But how are we to define good and bad art with reference to its
-subject-matter?
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVI
-
-
-How in art are we to decide what is good and what is bad in
-subject-matter?
-
-Art, like speech, is a means of communication, and therefore
-of progress, _i.e._ of the movement of humanity forward toward
-perfection. Speech renders accessible to men of the latest
-generations all the knowledge discovered by the experience and
-reflection, both of preceding generations and of the best and
-foremost men of their own times; art renders accessible to men
-of the latest generations all the feelings experienced by their
-predecessors, and those also which are being felt by their best and
-foremost contemporaries. And as the evolution of knowledge proceeds
-by truer and more necessary knowledge dislodging and replacing
-what is mistaken and unnecessary, so the evolution of feeling
-proceeds through art,--feelings less kind and less needful for the
-well-being of mankind are replaced by others kinder and more needful
-for that end. That is the purpose of art. And, speaking now of its
-subject-matter, the more art fulfils that purpose the better the
-art, and the less it fulfils it the worse the art.
-
-And the appraisement of feelings (_i.e._ the acknowledgment of these
-or those feelings as being more or less good, more or less necessary
-for the well-being of mankind) is made by the religious perception
-of the age.
-
-In every period of history, and in every human society, there
-exists an understanding of the meaning of life which represents
-the highest level to which men of that society have attained,--an
-understanding defining the highest good at which that society aims.
-And this understanding is the religious perception of the given
-time and society. And this religious perception is always clearly
-expressed by some advanced men, and more or less vividly perceived
-by all the members of the society. Such a religious perception and
-its corresponding expression exists always in every society. If it
-appears to us that in our society there is no religious perception,
-this is not because there really is none, but only because we do
-not want to see it. And we often wish not to see it because it
-exposes the fact that our life is inconsistent with that religious
-perception.
-
-Religious perception in a society is like the direction of a flowing
-river. If the river flows at all, it must have a direction. If a
-society lives, there must be a religious perception indicating the
-direction in which, more or less consciously, all its members tend.
-
-And so there always has been, and there is, a religious perception
-in every society. And it is by the standard of this religious
-perception that the feelings transmitted by art have always been
-estimated. Only on the basis of this religious perception of their
-age have men always chosen from the endlessly varied spheres of art
-that art which transmitted feelings making religious perception
-operative in actual life. And such art has always been highly
-valued and encouraged; while art transmitting feelings already
-outlived, flowing from the antiquated religious perceptions of a
-former age, has always been condemned and despised. All the rest
-of art, transmitting those most diverse feelings by means of which
-people commune together, was not condemned, and was tolerated, if
-only it did not transmit feelings contrary to religious perception.
-Thus, for instance, among the Greeks, art transmitting the feeling
-of beauty, strength, and courage (Hesiod, Homer, Phidias) was
-chosen, approved, and encouraged; while art transmitting feelings
-of rude sensuality, despondency, and effeminacy was condemned and
-despised. Among the Jews, art transmitting feelings of devotion
-and submission to the God of the Hebrews and to His will (the epic
-of Genesis, the prophets, the Psalms) was chosen and encouraged,
-while art transmitting feelings of idolatry (the golden calf) was
-condemned and despised. All the rest of art--stories, songs, dances,
-ornamentation of houses, of utensils, and of clothes--which was
-not contrary to religious perception, was neither distinguished
-nor discussed. Thus, in regard to its subject-matter, has art been
-appraised always and everywhere, and thus it should be appraised;
-for this attitude toward art proceeds from the fundamental
-characteristics of human nature, and those characteristics do not
-change.
-
-I know that according to an opinion current in our times religion is
-a superstition which humanity has outgrown, and that it is therefore
-assumed that no such thing exists as a religious perception, common
-to us all, by which art, in our time, can be estimated. I know
-that this is the opinion current in the pseudo-cultured circles
-of to-day. People who do not acknowledge Christianity in its true
-meaning because it undermines all their social privileges, and who,
-therefore, invent all kinds of philosophic and aesthetic theories
-to hide from themselves the meaninglessness and wrongness of their
-lives, cannot think otherwise. These people intentionally, or
-sometimes unintentionally, confusing the conception of a religious
-cult with the conception of religious perception, think that by
-denying the cult they get rid of religious perception. But even
-the very attacks on religion, and the attempts to establish a
-life-conception contrary to the religious perception of our times,
-most clearly demonstrate the existence of a religious perception
-condemning the lives that are not in harmony with it.
-
-If humanity progresses, _i.e._ moves forward, there must inevitably
-be a guide to the direction of that movement. And religions have
-always furnished that guide. All history shows that the progress
-of humanity is accomplished not otherwise than under the guidance
-of religion. But if the race cannot progress without the guidance
-of religion,--and progress is always going on, and consequently
-also in our own times,--then there must be a religion of our times.
-So that, whether it pleases or displeases the so-called cultured
-people of to-day, they must admit the existence of religion,--not
-of a religious cult, Catholic, Protestant, or another, but of
-religious perception,--which, even in our times, is the guide always
-present where there is any progress. And if a religious perception
-exists amongst us, then our art should be appraised on the basis
-of that religious perception; and, as has always and everywhere
-been the case, art transmitting feelings flowing from the religious
-perception of our time should be chosen from all the indifferent
-art, should be acknowledged, highly esteemed, and encouraged; while
-art running counter to that perception should be condemned and
-despised, and all the remaining indifferent art should neither be
-distinguished nor encouraged.
-
-The religious perception of our time, in its widest and most
-practical application, is the consciousness that our well-being,
-both material and spiritual, individual and collective, temporal
-and eternal, lies in the growth of brotherhood among all men--in
-their loving harmony with one another. This perception is not only
-expressed by Christ and all the best men of past ages, it is not
-only repeated in the most varied forms and from most diverse sides
-by the best men of our own times, but it already serves as a clue to
-all the complex labor of humanity, consisting as this labor does,
-on the one hand, in the destruction of physical and moral obstacles
-to the union of men, and, on the other hand, in establishing the
-principles common to all men which can and should unite them into
-one universal brotherhood. And it is on the basis of this perception
-that we should appraise all the phenomena of our life, and, among
-the rest, our art also; choosing from all its realms whatever
-transmits feelings flowing from this religious perception, highly
-prizing and encouraging such art, rejecting whatever is contrary
-to this perception, and not attributing to the rest of art an
-importance not properly pertaining to it.
-
-The chief mistake made by people of the upper classes of the time of
-the so-called Renaissance--a mistake which we still perpetuate--was
-not that they ceased to value and to attach importance to religious
-art (people of that period could not attach importance to it,
-because, like our own upper classes, they could not believe in what
-the majority considered to be religion), but their mistake was
-that they set up in place of religious art, which was lacking, an
-insignificant art which aimed only at giving pleasure, _i.e._ they
-began to choose, to value, and to encourage, in place of religious
-art, something which, in any case, did not deserve such esteem and
-encouragement.
-
-One of the Fathers of the Church said that the great evil is, not
-that men do not know God, but that they have set up, instead of
-God, that which is not God. So also with art. The great misfortune
-of the people of the upper classes of our time is not so much that
-they are without a religious art, as that, instead of a supreme
-religious art, chosen from all the rest as being specially important
-and valuable, they have chosen a most insignificant and, usually,
-harmful art, which aims at pleasing certain people, and which,
-therefore, if only by its exclusive nature, stands in contradiction
-to that Christian principle of universal union which forms the
-religious perception of our time. Instead of religious art, an empty
-and often vicious art is set up, and this hides from men's notice
-the need of that true religious art which should be present in life
-in order to improve it.
-
-It is true that art which satisfies the demands of the
-religious perception of our time is quite unlike former art,
-but, notwithstanding this dissimilarity, to a man who does not
-intentionally hide the truth from himself, it is very clear and
-definite what does form the religious art of our age. In former
-times, when the highest religious perception united only some people
-(who, even if they formed a large society, were yet but one society
-surrounded by others--Jews, or Athenian or Roman citizens), the
-feelings transmitted by the art of that time flowed from a desire
-for the might, greatness, glory, and prosperity of that society, and
-the heroes of art might be people who contributed to that prosperity
-by strength, by craft, by fraud, or by cruelty (Ulysses, Jacob,
-David, Samson, Hercules, and all the heroes). But the religious
-perception of our times does not select any one society of men; on
-the contrary, it demands the union of all,--absolutely of all people
-without exception,--and above every other virtue it sets brotherly
-love to all men. And, therefore, the feelings transmitted by the art
-of our time not only cannot coincide with the feelings transmitted
-by former art, but must run counter to them.
-
-Christian, truly Christian, art has been so long in establishing
-itself, and has not yet established itself, just because the
-Christian religious perception was not one of those small steps by
-which humanity advances regularly, but was an enormous revolution,
-which, if it has not already altered, must inevitably alter the
-entire life-conception of mankind, and, consequently, the whole
-internal organization of their life. It is true that the life of
-humanity, like that of an individual, moves regularly; but in that
-regular movement come, as it were, turning-points, which sharply
-divide the preceding from the subsequent life. Christianity was such
-a turning-point; such, at least, it must appear to us who live by
-the Christian perception of life. Christian perception gave another,
-a new, direction to all human feelings, and therefore completely
-altered both the contents and the significance of art. The Greeks
-could make use of Persian art and the Romans could use Greek art,
-or, similarly, the Jews could use Egyptian art,--the fundamental
-ideals were one and the same. Now the ideal was the greatness and
-prosperity of the Persians, now the greatness and prosperity of the
-Greeks, now that of the Romans. The same art was transferred into
-other conditions, and served new nations. But the Christian ideal
-changed and reversed everything, so that, as the gospel puts it,
-"That which was exalted among men has become an abomination in the
-sight of God." The ideal is no longer the greatness of Pharaoh or
-of a Roman emperor, not the beauty of a Greek, nor the wealth of
-Phoenicia, but humility, purity, compassion, love. The hero is no
-longer Dives, but Lazarus the beggar; not Mary Magdalene in the
-day of her beauty, but in the day of her repentance; not those who
-acquire wealth, but those who have abandoned it; not those who dwell
-in palaces, but those who dwell in catacombs and huts; not those
-who rule over others, but those who acknowledge no authority but
-God's. And the greatest work of art is no longer a cathedral of
-victory[119] with statues of conquerors, but the representation of
-a human soul so transformed by love that a man who is tormented and
-murdered yet pities and loves his persecutors.
-
- [119] There is in Moscow a magnificent "Cathedral of our Saviour,"
- erected to commemorate the defeat of the French in the war of
- 1812.--TR.
-
-And the change is so great that men of the Christian world find
-it difficult to resist the inertia of the heathen art to which
-they have been accustomed all their lives. The subject-matter
-of Christian religious art is so new to them, so unlike the
-subject-matter of former art, that it seems to them as though
-Christian art were a denial of art, and they cling desperately to
-the old art. But this old art, having no longer, in our day, any
-source in religious perception, has lost its meaning, and we shall
-have to abandon it whether we wish to or not.
-
-The essence of the Christian perception consists in the recognition
-by every man of his sonship to God, and of the consequent union of
-men with God and with one another, as is said in the gospel (John
-xvii. 21[120]). Therefore the subject-matter of Christian art is
-such feeling as can unite men with God and with one another.
-
- [120] "That they may be one; even as thou, Father, art in me, and I
- in thee, that they also may be in us."
-
-The expression _unite men with God and with one another_ may seem
-obscure to people accustomed to the misuse of these words which
-is so customary, but the words have a perfectly clear meaning
-nevertheless. They indicate that the Christian union of man (in
-contradiction to the partial, exclusive union of only some men) is
-that which unites all without exception.
-
-Art, all art, has this characteristic, that it unites people. Every
-art causes those to whom the artist's feeling is transmitted to
-unite in soul with the artist, and also with all who receive the
-same impression. But non-Christian art, while uniting some people
-together, makes that very union a cause of separation between these
-united people and others; so that union of this kind is often a
-source, not only of division, but even of enmity toward others.
-Such is all patriotic art, with its anthems, poems, and monuments;
-such is all Church art, _i.e._ the art of certain cults, with their
-images, statues, processions, and other local ceremonies. Such art
-is belated and non-Christian art, uniting the people of one cult
-only to separate them yet more sharply from the members of other
-cults, and even to place them in relations of hostility to each
-other. Christian art is only such as tends to unite all without
-exception, either by evoking in them the perception that each man
-and all men stand in like relation toward God and toward their
-neighbor, or by evoking in them identical feelings, which may even
-be the very simplest, provided only that they are not repugnant to
-Christianity and are natural to every one without exception.
-
-Good Christian art of our time may be unintelligible to people
-because of imperfections in its form, or because men are inattentive
-to it, but it must be such that all men can experience the feelings
-it transmits. It must be the art, not of some one group of people,
-nor of one class, nor of one nationality, nor of one religious
-cult; that is, it must not transmit feelings which are accessible
-only to a man educated in a certain way, or only to an aristocrat,
-or a merchant, or only to a Russian, or a native of Japan, or a
-Roman Catholic, or a Buddhist, etc., but it must transmit feelings
-accessible to every one. Only art of this kind can be acknowledged
-in our time to be good art, worthy of being chosen out from all the
-rest of art and encouraged.
-
-Christian art, _i.e._ the art of our time, should be catholic in
-the original meaning of the word, _i.e._ universal, and therefore
-it should unite all men. And only two kinds of feeling do unite all
-men: first, feelings flowing from the perception of our sonship to
-God and of the brotherhood of man; and next, the simple feelings of
-common life, accessible to every one without exception--such as the
-feeling of merriment, of pity, of cheerfulness, of tranquillity,
-etc. Only these two kinds of feelings can now supply material for
-art good in its subject-matter.
-
-And the action of these two kinds of art, apparently so dissimilar,
-is one and the same. The feelings flowing from perception of our
-sonship to God and of the brotherhood of man--such as a feeling of
-sureness in truth, devotion to the will of God, self-sacrifice,
-respect for and love of man--evoked by Christian religious
-perception; and the simplest feelings--such as a softened or a merry
-mood caused by a song or an amusing jest intelligible to every one,
-or by a touching story, or a drawing, or a little doll: both alike
-produce one and the same effect,--the loving union of man with
-man. Sometimes people who are together are, if not hostile to one
-another, at least estranged in mood and feeling, till perchance a
-story, a performance, a picture, or even a building, but oftenest of
-all, music, unites them all as by an electric flash, and, in place
-of their former isolation or even enmity, they are all conscious
-of union and mutual love. Each is glad that another feels what he
-feels; glad of the communion established, not only between him
-and all present, but also with all now living who will yet share
-the same impression; and more than that, he feels the mysterious
-gladness of a communion which, reaching beyond the grave, unites us
-with all men of the past who have been moved by the same feelings,
-and with all men of the future who will yet be touched by them. And
-this effect is produced both by the religious art which transmits
-feelings of love to God and one's neighbor, and by universal art,
-transmitting the very simplest feelings common to all men.
-
-The art of our time should be appraised differently from former art
-chiefly in this, that the art of our time, _i.e._ Christian art
-(basing itself on a religious perception which demands the union
-of man), excludes from the domain of art good in subject-matter
-everything transmitting exclusive feelings, which do not unite
-but divide men. It relegates such work to the category of art bad
-in its subject-matter, while, on the other hand, it includes in
-the category of art good in subject-matter a section not formerly
-admitted to deserve to be chosen out and respected, namely,
-universal art, transmitting even the most trifling and simple
-feelings if only they are accessible to all men without exception,
-and therefore unite them. Such art cannot, in our time, but be
-esteemed good, for it attains the end which the religious perception
-of our time, _i.e._ Christianity, sets before humanity.
-
-Christian art either evokes in men those feelings which, through
-love of God and of one's neighbor, draw them to greater and ever
-greater union, and make them ready for and capable of such union; or
-evokes in them those feelings which show them that they are already
-united in the joys and sorrows of life. And therefore the Christian
-art of our time can be and is of two kinds: (1) art transmitting
-feelings flowing from a religious perception of man's position
-in the world in relation to God and to his neighbor--religious
-art in the limited meaning of the term; and (2) art transmitting
-the simplest feelings of common life, but such, always, as are
-accessible to all men in the whole world--the art of common
-life--the art of a people--universal art. Only these two kinds of
-art can be considered good art in our time.
-
-The first, religious art,--transmitting both positive feelings of
-love to God and one's neighbor, and negative feelings of indignation
-and horror at the violation of love,--manifests itself chiefly
-in the form of words, and to some extent also in painting and
-sculpture: the second kind (universal art), transmitting feelings
-accessible to all, manifests itself in words, in painting, in
-sculpture, in dances, in architecture, and, most of all, in music.
-
-If I were asked to give modern examples of each of these kinds of
-art, then, as examples of the highest art, flowing from love of God
-and man (both of the higher, positive, and of the lower, negative
-kind), in literature I should name, "The Robbers," by Schiller;
-Victor Hugo's "Les Pauvres Gens" and "Les Miserables"; the novels
-and stories of Dickens,--"The Tale of Two Cities," "The Christmas
-Carol," "The Chimes," and others; "Uncle Tom's Cabin;" Dostoievsky's
-works--especially his "Memoirs from the House of Death"; and "Adam
-Bede," by George Eliot.
-
-In modern painting, strange to say, works of this kind, directly
-transmitting the Christian feeling of love of God and of one's
-neighbor, are hardly to be found, especially among the works of
-the celebrated painters. There are plenty of pictures treating of
-the gospel stories; they, however, depict historical events with
-great wealth of detail, but do not, and cannot, transmit religious
-feeling not possessed by their painters. There are many pictures
-treating of the personal feelings of various people, but of pictures
-representing great deeds of self-sacrifice and of Christian love
-there are very few, and what there are, are principally by artists
-who are not celebrated, and are, for the most part, not pictures,
-but merely sketches. Such, for instance, is the drawing by Kramskoy
-(worth many of his finished pictures), showing a drawing-room with a
-balcony, past which troops are marching in triumph on their return
-from the war. On the balcony stands a wet-nurse holding a baby and a
-boy. They are admiring the procession of the troops, but the mother,
-covering her face with a handkerchief, has fallen back on the sofa,
-sobbing. Such also is the picture by Walter Langley, to which I have
-already referred, and such again is a picture by the French artist
-Morlon, depicting a lifeboat hastening, in a heavy storm, to the
-relief of a steamer that is being wrecked. Approaching these in kind
-are pictures which represent the hard-working peasant with respect
-and love. Such are the pictures by Millet, and, particularly, his
-drawing, "The Man with the Hoe"; also pictures in this style by
-Jules Breton, L'Hermitte, Defregger, and others. As examples of
-pictures evoking indignation and horror at the violation of love
-to God and man, Gay's picture, "Judgment," may serve, and also
-Leizen-Mayer's, "Signing the Death Warrant." But there are also very
-few of this kind. Anxiety about the technique and the beauty of
-the picture for the most part obscures the feeling. For instance,
-Gerome's "Pollice Verso" expresses, not so much horror at what is
-being perpetrated as attraction by the beauty of the spectacle.[121]
-
- [121] In this picture the spectators in the Roman Amphitheater are
- turning down their thumbs to show that they wish the vanquished
- gladiator to be killed.--TR.
-
-To give examples, from the modern art of our upper classes, of art
-of the second kind, good universal art or even of the art of a whole
-people, is yet more difficult, especially in literary art and music.
-If there are some works which by their inner contents might be
-assigned to this class (such as "Don Quixote," Moliere's comedies,
-"David Copperfield" and "The Pickwick Papers" by Dickens, Gogol's
-and Pushkin's tales, and some things of Maupassant's), these works
-are for the most part--from the exceptional nature of the feelings
-they transmit, and the superfluity of special details of time
-and locality, and, above all, on account of the poverty of their
-subject-matter in comparison with examples of universal ancient
-art (such, for instance, as the story of Joseph)--comprehensible
-only to people of their own circle. That Joseph's brethren, being
-jealous of his father's affection, sell him to the merchants; that
-Potiphar's wife wishes to tempt the youth; that having attained the
-highest station, he takes pity on his brothers, including Benjamin,
-the favorite,--these and all the rest are feelings accessible alike
-to a Russian peasant, a Chinese, an African, a child, or an old man,
-educated or uneducated; and it is all written with such restraint,
-is so free from any superfluous detail, that the story may be told
-to any circle and will be equally comprehensible and touching to
-every one. But not such are the feelings of Don Quixote or of
-Moliere's heroes (though Moliere is perhaps the most universal,
-and therefore the most excellent, artist of modern times), nor of
-Pickwick and his friends. These feelings are not common to all
-men, but very exceptional; and therefore, to make them infectious,
-the authors have surrounded them with abundant details of time and
-place. And this abundance of detail makes the stories difficult
-of comprehension to all people not living within reach of the
-conditions described by the author.
-
-The author of the novel of Joseph did not need to describe in
-detail, as would be done nowadays, the blood-stained coat of
-Joseph, the dwelling and dress of Jacob, the pose and attire of
-Potiphar's wife, and how, adjusting the bracelet on her left arm,
-she said, "Come to me," and so on, because the subject-matter of
-feelings in this novel is so strong that all details, except the
-most essential,--such as that Joseph went out into another room to
-weep,--are superfluous, and would only hinder the transmission of
-feelings. And therefore this novel is accessible to all men, touches
-people of all nations and classes, young and old, and has lasted to
-our times, and will yet last for thousands of years to come. But
-strip the best novels of our times of their details, and what will
-remain?
-
-It is therefore impossible in modern literature to indicate works
-fully satisfying the demands of universality. Such works as exist
-are, to a great extent, spoilt by what is usually called "realism,"
-but would be better termed "provincialism," in art.
-
-In music the same occurs as in verbal art, and for similar reasons.
-In consequence of the poorness of the feeling they contain,
-the melodies of the modern composers are amazingly empty and
-insignificant. And to strengthen the impression produced by these
-empty melodies, the new musicians pile complex modulations on to
-each trivial melody, not only in their own national manner, but
-also in the way characteristic of their own exclusive circle and
-particular musical school. Melody--every melody--is free, and may
-be understood of all men; but as soon as it is bound up with a
-particular harmony, it ceases to be accessible except to people
-trained to such harmony, and it becomes strange, not only to
-common men of another nationality, but to all who do not belong
-to the circle whose members have accustomed themselves to certain
-forms of harmonization. So that music, like poetry, travels in a
-vicious circle. Trivial and exclusive melodies, in order to make
-them attractive, are laden with harmonic, rhythmic, and orchestral
-complications, and thus become yet more exclusive; and, far from
-being universal, are not even national, _i.e._ they are not
-comprehensible to the whole people but only to some people.
-
-In music, besides marches and dances by various composers, which
-satisfy the demands of universal art, one can indicate very few
-works of this class: Bach's famous violin _aria_, Chopin's nocturne
-in E-flat major, and perhaps a dozen bits (not whole pieces,
-but parts) selected from the works of Haydn, Mozart, Schubert,
-Beethoven, and Chopin.[122]
-
- [122] While offering as examples of art those that seem to me the
- best, I attach no special importance to my selection; for, besides
- being insufficiently informed in all branches of art, I belong
- to the class of people whose taste has, by false training, been
- perverted. And therefore my old, inured habits may cause me to
- err, and I may mistake for absolute merit the impression a work
- produced on me in my youth. My only purpose in mentioning examples
- of works of this or that class is to make my meaning clearer, and
- to show how, with my present views, I understand excellence in art
- in relation to its subject-matter. I must, moreover, mention that
- I consign my own artistic productions to the category of bad art,
- excepting the story "God sees the Truth," which seeks a place in the
- first class, and "The Prisoner of the Caucasus," which belongs to
- the second.
-
-Although in painting the same thing is repeated as in poetry and
-music,--namely, that in order to make them more interesting, works
-weak in conception are surrounded by minutely studied accessories
-of time and place, which give them a temporary and local interest
-but make them less universal,--still, in painting, more than in the
-other spheres of art, may be found works satisfying the demands
-of universal Christian art; that is to say, there are more works
-expressing feelings in which all men may participate.
-
-In the arts of painting and sculpture, all pictures and statues
-in so-called genre style, depictions of animals, landscapes and
-caricatures with subjects comprehensible to every one, and also
-all kinds of ornaments, are universal in subject-matter. Such
-productions in painting and sculpture are very numerous (_e.g._
-china dolls), but for the most part such objects (for instance,
-ornaments of all kinds) are either not considered to be art or are
-considered to be art of a low quality. In reality all such objects,
-if only they transmit a true feeling experienced by the artist and
-comprehensible to every one (however insignificant it may seem to us
-to be) are works of real good Christian art.
-
-I fear it will here be urged against me that having denied that
-the conception of beauty can supply a standard for works of art, I
-contradict myself by acknowledging ornaments to be works of good
-art. The reproach is unjust, for the subject-matter of all kinds of
-ornamentation consists not in the beauty, but in the feeling (of
-admiration of, and delight in, the combination of lines and colors)
-which the artist has experienced and with which he infects the
-spectator. Art remains what it was and what it must be: nothing
-but the infection by one man of another, or of others, with the
-feelings experienced by the infector. Among those feelings is the
-feeling of delight at what pleases the sight. Objects pleasing the
-sight may be such as please a small or a large number of people,
-or such as please all men. And ornaments for the most part are of
-the latter kind. A landscape representing a very unusual view, or a
-genre picture of a special subject, may not please every one, but
-ornaments, from Yakutsk ornaments to Greek ones, are intelligible
-to every one and evoke a similar feeling of admiration in all, and
-therefore this despised kind of art should, in Christian society, be
-esteemed far above exceptional, pretentious pictures and sculptures.
-
-So that there are only two kinds of good Christian art: all the rest
-of art not comprised in these two divisions should be acknowledged
-to be bad art, deserving not to be encouraged, but to be driven
-out, denied, and despised, as being art not uniting but dividing
-people. Such, in literary art, are all novels and poems which
-transmit Church or patriotic feelings, and also exclusive feelings
-pertaining only to the class of the idle rich; such as aristocratic
-honor, satiety, spleen, pessimism, and refined and vicious feelings
-flowing from sex-love--quite incomprehensible to the great majority
-of mankind.
-
-In painting we must similarly place in the class of bad art all
-the Church, patriotic, and exclusive pictures; all the pictures
-representing the amusements and allurements of a rich and idle life;
-all the so-called symbolic pictures, in which the very meaning of
-the symbol is comprehensible only to the people of a certain circle;
-and, above all, pictures with voluptuous subjects--all that odious
-female nudity which fills all the exhibitions and galleries. And to
-this class belongs almost all the chamber and opera music of our
-times,--beginning especially from Beethoven (Schumann, Berlioz,
-Liszt, Wagner), by its subject-matter devoted to the expression of
-feelings accessible only to people who have developed in themselves
-an unhealthy, nervous irritation evoked by this exclusive,
-artificial, and complex music.
-
-"What! the '_Ninth Symphony_' not a good work of art!" I hear
-exclaimed by indignant voices.
-
-And I reply, Most certainly it is not. All that I have written I
-have written with the sole purpose of finding a clear and reasonable
-criterion by which to judge the merits of works of art. And this
-criterion, coinciding with the indications of plain and sane sense,
-indubitably shows me that that symphony by Beethoven is not a good
-work of art. Of course, to people educated in the adoration of
-certain productions and of their authors, to people whose taste
-has been perverted just by being educated in such adoration, the
-acknowledgment that such a celebrated work is bad is amazing and
-strange. But how are we to escape the indications of reason and of
-common sense?
-
-Beethoven's "Ninth Symphony" is considered a great work of art.
-To verify its claim to be such, I must first ask myself whether
-this work transmits the highest religious feeling? I reply in the
-negative, for music in itself cannot transmit those feelings; and
-therefore I ask myself next, Since this work does not belong to the
-highest kind of religious art, has it the other characteristic of
-the good art of our time,--the quality of uniting all men in one
-common feeling: does it rank as Christian universal art? And again I
-have no option but to reply in the negative; for not only do I not
-see how the feelings transmitted by this work could unite people not
-specially trained to submit themselves to its complex hypnotism,
-but I am unable to imagine to myself a crowd of normal people who
-could understand anything of this long, confused, and artificial
-production, except short snatches which are lost in a sea of what
-is incomprehensible. And therefore, whether I like it or not, I am
-compelled to conclude that this work belongs to the rank of bad art.
-It is curious to note in this connection, that attached to the end
-of this very symphony is a poem of Schiller's which (though somewhat
-obscurely) expresses this very thought, namely, that feeling
-(Schiller speaks only of the feeling of gladness) unites people and
-evokes love in them. But though this poem is sung at the end of the
-symphony, the music does not accord with the thought expressed in
-the verses; for the music is exclusive and does not unite all men,
-but unites only a few, dividing them off from the rest of mankind.
-
-And just in this same way, in all branches of art, many and many
-works considered great by the upper classes of our society will have
-to be judged. By this one sure criterion we shall have to judge the
-celebrated "Divine Comedy" and "Jerusalem Delivered," and a great
-part of Shakespear's and Goethe's works, and in painting every
-representation of miracles, including Raphael's "Transfiguration,"
-etc.
-
-Whatever the work may be and however it may have been extolled,
-we have first to ask whether this work is one of real art or a
-counterfeit. Having acknowledged, on the basis of the indication of
-its infectiousness even to a small class of people, that a certain
-production belongs to the realm of art, it is necessary, on the
-basis of the indication of its accessibility, to decide the next
-question, Does this work belong to the category of bad, exclusive
-art, opposed to religious perception, or to Christian art, uniting
-people? And having acknowledged an article to belong to real
-Christian art, we must then, according to whether it transmits
-the feelings flowing from love to God and man, or merely the
-simple feelings uniting all men, assign it a place in the ranks of
-religious art or in those of universal art.
-
-Only on the basis of such verification shall we find it possible to
-select from the whole mass of what, in our society, claims to be
-art, those works which form real, important, necessary spiritual
-food, and to separate them from all the harmful and useless art,
-and from the counterfeits of art which surround us. Only on the
-basis of such verification shall we be able to rid ourselves of
-the pernicious results of harmful art, and to avail ourselves of
-that beneficent action which is the purpose of true and good art,
-and which is indispensable for the spiritual life of man and of
-humanity.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVII
-
-
-Art is one of two organs of human progress. By words man
-interchanges thoughts, by the forms of art he interchanges feelings,
-and this with all men, not only of the present time, but also of the
-past and the future. It is natural to human beings to employ both
-these organs of intercommunication, and therefore the perversion of
-either of them must cause evil results to the society in which it
-occurs. And these results will be of two kinds: first, the absence,
-in that society, of the work which should be performed by the organ;
-and secondly, the harmful activity of the perverted organ. And just
-these results have shown themselves in our society. The organ of
-art has been perverted, and therefore the upper classes of society
-have, to a great extent, been deprived of the work that it should
-have performed. The diffusion in our society of enormous quantities
-of, on the one hand, those counterfeits of art which only serve
-to amuse and corrupt people, and, on the other hand, of works of
-insignificant, exclusive art, mistaken for the highest art, have
-perverted most men's capacity to be infected by true works of art,
-and have thus deprived them of the possibility of experiencing the
-highest feelings to which mankind has attained, and which can only
-be transmitted from man to man by art.
-
-All the best that has been done in art by man remains strange to
-people who lack the capacity to be infected by art, and is replaced
-either by spurious counterfeits of art or by insignificant art,
-which they mistake for real art. People of our time and of our
-society are delighted with Baudelaires, Verlaines, Moreases, Ibsens,
-and Maeterlincks in poetry; with Monets, Manets, Puvis de Chavannes,
-Burne-Joneses, Stucks, and Boecklins in painting; with Wagners,
-Liszts, Richard Strausses, in music; and they are no longer capable
-of comprehending either the highest or the simplest art.
-
-In the upper classes, in consequence of this loss of capacity to be
-infected by works of art, people grow up, are educated, and live,
-lacking the fertilizing, improving influence of art, and therefore
-not only do not advance toward perfection, do not become kinder,
-but, on the contrary, possessing highly developed external means of
-civilization, they yet tend to become continually more savage, more
-coarse, and more cruel.
-
-Such is the result of the absence from our society of the activity
-of that essential organ--art. But the consequences of the perverted
-activity of that organ are yet more harmful. And they are numerous.
-
-The first consequence, plain for all to see, is the enormous
-expenditure of the labor of working people on things which are
-not only useless, but which, for the most part, are harmful;
-and more than that, the waste of priceless human lives on this
-unnecessary and harmful business. It is terrible to consider with
-what intensity, and amid what privations, millions of people--who
-lack time and opportunity to attend to what they and their families
-urgently require--labor for 10, 12, or 14 hours on end, and even at
-night, setting the type for pseudo-artistic books which spread vice
-among mankind, or working for theaters, concerts, exhibitions, and
-picture-galleries, which, for the most part, also serve vice; but
-it is yet more terrible to reflect that lively, kindly children,
-capable of all that is good, are devoted from their early years to
-such tasks as these: that for 6, 8, or 10 hours a day, and for 10
-or 15 years, some of them should play scales and exercises; others
-should twist their limbs, walk on their toes, and lift their legs
-above their heads; a third set should sing solfeggios; a fourth
-set, showing themselves off in all manner of ways, should pronounce
-verses; a fifth set should draw from busts or from nude models and
-paint studies; a sixth set should write compositions according
-to the rules of certain periods; and that in these occupations,
-unworthy of a human being, which are often continued long after full
-maturity, they should waste their physical and mental strength and
-lose all perception of the meaning of life. It is often said that
-it is horrible and pitiful to see little acrobats putting their
-legs over their necks, but it is not less pitiful to see children
-of 10 giving concerts, and it is still worse to see school-boys of
-10 who, as a preparation for literary work, have learnt by heart
-the exceptions to the Latin grammar. These people not only grow
-physically and mentally deformed, but also morally deformed, and
-become incapable of doing anything really needed by man. Occupying
-in society the role of amusers of the rich, they lose their sense of
-human dignity, and develop in themselves such a passion for public
-applause that they are always a prey to an inflated and unsatisfied
-vanity which grows in them to diseased dimensions, and they expend
-their mental strength in efforts to obtain satisfaction for this
-passion. And what is most tragic of all is that these people, who
-for the sake of art are spoilt for life, not only do not render
-service to this art, but, on the contrary, inflict the greatest harm
-on it. They are taught in academies, schools, and conservatoires how
-to counterfeit art, and by learning this they so pervert themselves
-that they quite lose the capacity to produce works of real art, and
-become purveyors of that counterfeit, or trivial, or depraved art
-which floods our society. This is the first obvious consequence of
-the perversion of the organ of art.
-
-The second consequence is that the productions of amusement-art,
-which are prepared in such terrific quantities by the armies of
-professional artists, enable the rich people of our times to live
-the lives they do, lives not only unnatural, but in contradiction
-to the humane principles these people themselves profess. To live
-as do the rich, idle people, especially the women, far from nature
-and from animals, in artificial conditions, with muscles atrophied
-or misdeveloped by gymnastics, and with enfeebled vital energy,
-would be impossible were it not for what is called art--for this
-occupation and amusement which hides from them the meaninglessness
-of their lives, and saves them from the dullness that oppresses
-them. Take from all these people the theaters, concerts,
-exhibitions, piano-playing, songs, and novels with which they now
-fill their time, in full confidence that occupation with these
-things is a very refined, aesthetical, and therefore good occupation;
-take from the patrons of art who buy pictures, assist musicians,
-and are acquainted with writers, their role of protectors of that
-important matter art, and they will not be able to continue such a
-life, but will all be eaten up by ennui and spleen, and will become
-conscious of the meaninglessness and wrongness of their present mode
-of life. Only occupation with what, among them, is considered art
-renders it possible for them to continue to live on, infringing all
-natural conditions, without perceiving the emptiness and cruelty of
-their lives. And this support afforded to the false manner of life
-pursued by the rich is the second consequence, and a serious one, of
-the perversion of art.
-
-The third consequence of the perversion of art is the perplexity
-produced in the minds of children and of plain folk. Among people
-not perverted by the false theories of our society, among workers
-and children, there exists a very definite conception of what
-people may be respected and praised for. In the minds of peasants
-and children the ground for praise or eulogy can only be either
-physical strength: Hercules, the heroes and conquerors; or moral,
-spiritual, strength: Sakya Muni giving up a beautiful wife and a
-kingdom to save mankind, Christ going to the cross for the truth he
-professed, and all the martyrs and the saints. Both are understood
-by peasants and children. They understand that physical strength
-must be respected, for it compels respect; and the moral strength of
-goodness an unperverted man cannot fail to respect, because all his
-spiritual being draws him toward it. But these people, children, and
-peasants, suddenly perceive that besides those praised, respected,
-and rewarded for physical or moral strength, there are others who
-are praised, extolled, and rewarded much more than the heroes
-of strength and virtue, merely because they sing well, compose
-verses, or dance. They see that singers, composers, painters,
-ballet-dancers, earn millions of roubles and receive more honor than
-the saints do: and peasants and children are perplexed.
-
-When fifty years had elapsed after Pushkin's death, and,
-simultaneously, the cheap edition of his works began to circulate
-among the people and a monument was erected to him in Moscow, I
-received more than a dozen letters from different peasants asking
-why Pushkin was raised to such dignity. And only the other day a
-literate[123] man from Saratoff called on me who had evidently gone
-out of his mind over this very question. He was on his way to Moscow
-to expose the clergy for having taken part in raising a "monament"
-to Mr. Pushkin.
-
- [123] In Russian it is customary to make a distinction between
- literate and illiterate people, _i.e._ between those who can and
- those who cannot read. _Literate_ in this sense does not imply that
- the man would speak or write correctly.--TR.
-
-Indeed, one need only imagine to oneself what the state of mind
-of such a man of the people must be when he learns, from such
-rumors and newspapers as reach him, that the clergy, the Government
-officials, and all the best people in Russia are triumphantly
-unveiling a statue to a great man, the benefactor, the pride of
-Russia--Pushkin, of whom till then he had never heard. From all
-sides he reads or hears about this, and he naturally supposes that
-if such honors are rendered to any one, then without doubt he must
-have done something extraordinary--either some feat of strength
-or of goodness. He tries to learn who Pushkin was, and having
-discovered that Pushkin was neither a hero nor a general, but was
-a private person and a writer, he comes to the conclusion that
-Pushkin must have been a holy man and a teacher of goodness, and he
-hastens to read or to hear his life and works. But what must be his
-perplexity when he learns that Pushkin was a man of more than easy
-morals, who was killed in a duel, _i.e._ when attempting to murder
-another man, and that all his service consisted in writing verses
-about love, which were often very indecent.
-
-That a hero, or Alexander the Great, or Genghis Khan, or Napoleon
-were great, he understands, because any one of them could have
-crushed him and a thousand like him; that Buddha, Socrates, and
-Christ were great he also understands, for he knows and feels that
-he and all men should be such as they were; but why a man should be
-great because he wrote verses about the love of women he cannot make
-out.
-
-A similar perplexity must trouble the brain of a Breton or Norman
-peasant who hears that a monument, "_une statue_" (as to the
-Madonna), is being erected to Baudelaire, and reads, or is told,
-what the contents of his "Fleurs du Mal" are; or, more amazing
-still, to Verlaine, when he learns the story of that man's wretched,
-vicious life, and reads his verses. And what confusion it must
-cause in the brains of peasants when they learn that some Patti or
-Taglioni is paid L10,000 for a season, or that a painter gets as
-much for a picture, or that authors of novels describing love-scenes
-have received even more than that.
-
-And it is the same with children. I remember how I passed through
-this stage of amazement and stupefaction, and only reconciled myself
-to this exaltation of artists to the level of heroes and saints by
-lowering in my own estimation the importance of moral excellence,
-and by attributing a false, unnatural meaning to works of art. And a
-similar confusion must occur in the soul of each child and each man
-of the people when he learns of the strange honors and rewards that
-are lavished on artists. This is the third consequence of the false
-relation in which our society stands toward art.
-
-The fourth consequence is that people of the upper classes, more
-and more frequently encountering the contradictions between
-beauty and goodness, put the ideal of beauty first, thus freeing
-themselves from the demands of morality. These people, reversing
-the roles, instead of admitting, as is really the case, that the
-art they serve is an antiquated affair, allege that morality is an
-antiquated affair, which can have no importance for people situated
-on that high plane of development on which they opine that they are
-situated.
-
-This result of the false relation to art showed itself in our
-society long ago; but recently, with its prophet Nietzsche and his
-adherents, and with the decadents and certain English aesthetes who
-coincide with him, it is being expressed with especial impudence.
-The decadents, and aesthetes of the type at one time represented by
-Oscar Wilde, select as a theme for their productions the denial of
-morality and the laudation of vice.
-
-This art has partly generated, and partly coincides with, a similar
-philosophic theory. I recently received from America a book
-entitled, "The Survival of the Fittest: Philosophy of Power," 1896,
-by Ragnar Redbeard, Chicago. The substance of this book, as it is
-expressed in the editor's preface, is that to measure "right" by the
-false philosophy of the Hebrew prophets and "weepful" Messiahs is
-madness. Right is not the offspring of doctrine, but of power. All
-laws, commandments, or doctrines as to not doing to another what
-you do not wish done to you, have no inherent authority whatever,
-but receive it only from the club, the gallows, and the sword. A
-man truly free is under no obligation to obey any injunction, human
-or divine. Obedience is the sign of the degenerate. Disobedience
-is the stamp of the hero. Men should not be bound by moral rules
-invented by their foes. The whole world is a slippery battlefield.
-Ideal justice demands that the vanquished should be exploited,
-emasculated, and scorned. The free and brave may seize the world.
-And, therefore, there should be eternal war for life, for land, for
-love, for women, for power, and for gold. (Something similar was
-said a few years ago by the celebrated and refined academician,
-Voguee.) The earth and its treasures is "booty for the bold."
-
-The author has evidently by himself, independently of Nietzsche,
-come to the same conclusions which are professed by the new artists.
-
-Expressed in the form of a doctrine these positions startle us. In
-reality they are implied in the ideal of art serving beauty. The
-art of our upper classes has educated people in this ideal of the
-over-man,[124]--which is, in reality, the old ideal of Nero, Stenka
-Razin,[125] Genghis Khan, Robert Macaire,[126] or Napoleon, and all
-their accomplices, assistants, and adulators--and it supports this
-ideal with all its might.
-
-[Foootnote 124: The over-man (Uebermensch), in the Nietzschean
-philosophy, is that superior type of man whom the struggle for
-existence is to evolve, and who will seek only his own power and
-pleasure, will know nothing of pity, and will have the right,
-because he will possess the power, to make ordinary people serve
-him.--TR.]
-
-[125] Stenka Razin was by origin a common Cossack. His brother
-was hung for a breach of military discipline, and to this event
-Stenka Razin's hatred of the governing classes has been attributed.
-He formed a robber band, and subsequently headed a formidable
-rebellion, declaring himself in favor of freedom for the serfs,
-religious toleration, and the abolition of taxes. Like the
-government he opposed, he relied on force, and, though he used it
-largely in defense of the poor against the rich, he still held to
-
- "The good old rule, the simple plan,
- That they should take who have the power,
- And they should keep who can."
-
-Like Robin Hood, he is favorably treated in popular legends.--TR.
-
-[126] Robert Macaire is a modern type of adroit and audacious
-rascality. He was the hero of a popular play produced in Paris in
-1834.--TR.
-
-It is this supplanting of the ideal of what is right by the ideal of
-what is beautiful, _i.e._ of what is pleasant, that is the fourth
-consequence, and a terrible one, of the perversion of art in our
-society. It is fearful to think of what would befall humanity were
-such art to spread among the masses of the people. And it already
-begins to spread.
-
-Finally, the fifth and chief result is, that the art which
-flourishes in the upper classes of European society has a directly
-vitiating influence, infecting people with the worst feelings and
-with those most harmful to humanity,--superstition, patriotism, and,
-above all, sensuality.
-
-Look carefully into the causes of the ignorance of the masses, and
-you may see that the chief cause does not at all lie in the lack
-of schools and libraries, as we are accustomed to suppose, but in
-those superstitions, both ecclesiastical and patriotic, with which
-the people are saturated, and which are unceasingly generated by
-all the methods of art. Church superstitions are supported and
-produced by the poetry of prayers, hymns, painting, by the sculpture
-of images and of statues, by singing, by organs, by music, by
-architecture, and even by dramatic art in religious ceremonies.
-Patriotic superstitions are supported and produced by verses and
-stories, which are supplied even in schools, by music, by songs, by
-triumphal processions, by royal meetings, by martial pictures, and
-by monuments.
-
-Were it not for this continual activity in all departments of art,
-perpetuating the ecclesiastical and patriotic intoxication and
-embitterment of the people, the masses would long ere this have
-attained to true enlightenment.
-
-But it is not only in Church matters and patriotic matters that art
-depraves; it is art in our time that serves as the chief cause of
-the perversion of people in the most important question of social
-life,--in their sexual relations. We nearly all know by our own
-experience, and those who are fathers and mothers know in the case
-of their grown-up children also, what fearful mental and physical
-suffering, what useless waste of strength, people suffer merely as a
-consequence of dissoluteness in sexual desire.
-
-Since the world began, since the Trojan war, which sprang from
-that same sexual dissoluteness, down to and including the suicides
-and murders of lovers described in almost every newspaper, a great
-proportion of the sufferings of the human race have come from this
-source.
-
-And what is art doing? All art, real and counterfeit, with very
-few exceptions, is devoted to describing, depicting, and inflaming
-sexual love in every shape and form. When one remembers all those
-novels and their lust-kindling descriptions of love, from the most
-refined to the grossest, with which the literature of our society
-overflows; if one only remembers all those pictures and statues
-representing women's naked bodies, and all sorts of abominations
-which are reproduced in illustrations and advertisements; if one
-only remembers all the filthy operas and operettas, songs, and
-_romances_ with which our world teems, involuntarily it seems as
-if existing art had but one definite aim,--to disseminate vice as
-widely as possible.
-
-Such, though not all, are the most direct consequences of that
-perversion of art which has occurred in our society. So that what in
-our society is called art not only does not conduce to the progress
-of mankind, but, more than almost anything else, hinders the
-attainment of goodness in our lives.
-
-And therefore the question which involuntarily presents itself to
-every man free from artistic activity and therefore not bound to
-existing art by self-interest, the question asked by me at the
-beginning of this work: Is it just that to what we call art, to a
-something belonging to but a small section of society, should be
-offered up such sacrifices of human labor, of human lives, and of
-goodness as are now being offered up? receives the natural reply:
-No; it is unjust, and these things should not be! So also replies
-sound sense and unperverted moral feeling. Not only should these
-things not be, not only should no sacrifices be offered up to what
-among us is called art, but, on the contrary, the efforts of those
-who wish to live rightly should be directed toward the destruction
-of this art, for it is one of the most cruel of the evils that
-harass our section of humanity. So that, were the question put:
-Would it be preferable for our Christian world to be deprived of
-_all_ that is now esteemed to be art, and, together with the false,
-to lose _all_ that is good in it? I think that every reasonable
-and moral man would again decide the question as Plato decided it
-for his "Republic," and as all the Church Christian and Mohammedan
-teachers of mankind decided it, _i.e._ would say, "Rather let there
-be no art at all than continue the depraving art, or simulation of
-art, which now exists." Happily, no one has to face this question,
-and no one need adopt either solution. All that man can do, and that
-we--the so-called educated people, who are so placed that we have
-the possibility of understanding the meaning of the phenomena of our
-life--can and should do, is to understand the error we are involved
-in, and not harden our hearts in it, but seek for a way of escape.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVIII
-
-
-The cause of the lie into which the art of our society has fallen
-was that people of the upper classes, having ceased to believe in
-the Church teaching (called Christian), did not resolve to accept
-true Christian teaching in its real and fundamental principles
-of sonship to God and brotherhood to man, but continued to live
-on without any belief, endeavoring to make up for the absence of
-belief--some by hypocrisy, pretending still to believe in the
-nonsense of the Church creeds; others by boldly asserting their
-disbelief; others by refined agnosticism; and others, again, by
-returning to the Greek worship of beauty, proclaiming egotism to be
-right, and elevating it to the rank of a religious doctrine.
-
-The cause of the malady was the non-acceptance of Christ's teaching
-in its real, _i.e._ its full, meaning. And the only cure for the
-illness lies in acknowledging that teaching in its full meaning.
-And such acknowledgment in our time is not only possible, but
-inevitable. Already to-day a man, standing on the height of the
-knowledge of our age, whether he be nominally a Catholic or a
-Protestant, cannot say that he really believes in the dogmas of
-the Church: in God being a Trinity, in Christ being God, in the
-scheme of redemption, and so forth; nor can he satisfy himself by
-proclaiming his unbelief or skepticism, nor by relapsing into the
-worship of beauty and egotism. Above all, he can no longer say
-that we do not know the real meaning of Christ's teaching. That
-meaning has not only become accessible to all men of our times, but
-the whole life of man to-day is permeated by the spirit of that
-teaching, and, consciously or unconsciously, is guided by it.
-
-However differently in form people belonging to our Christian
-world may define the destiny of man; whether they see it in human
-progress in whatever sense of the words, in the union of all men in
-a socialistic realm, or in the establishment of a commune; whether
-they look forward to the union of mankind under the guidance of
-one universal Church, or to the federation of the world,--however
-various in form their definitions of the destination of human
-life may be, all men in our times already admit that the highest
-well-being attainable by men is to be reached by their union with
-one another.
-
-However people of our upper classes (feeling that their ascendancy
-can only be maintained as long as they separate themselves--the rich
-and learned--from the laborers, the poor, and the unlearned) may
-seek to devise new conceptions of life by which their privileges
-may be perpetuated,--now the ideal of returning to antiquity, now
-mysticism, now Hellenism, now the cult of the superior person
-(over-man-ism),--they have, willingly or unwillingly, to admit the
-truth which is elucidating itself from all sides, voluntarily and
-involuntarily, namely, that our welfare lies only in the unification
-and the brotherhood of man.
-
-Unconsciously this truth is confirmed by the construction of means
-of communication,--telegraphs, telephones, the press, and the ever
-increasing attainability of material well-being for every one,--and
-consciously it is affirmed by the destruction of superstitions which
-divide men, by the diffusion of the truths of knowledge, and by the
-expression of the ideal of the brotherhood of man in the best works
-of art of our time.
-
-Art is a spiritual organ of human life which cannot be destroyed,
-and therefore, notwithstanding all the efforts made by people of
-the upper classes to conceal the religious ideal by which humanity
-lives, that ideal is more and more clearly recognized by man, and
-even in our perverted society is more and more often partially
-expressed by science and by art. During the present century works
-of the higher kind of religious art have appeared more and more
-frequently, both in literature and in painting, permeated by a truly
-Christian spirit, as also works of the universal art of common
-life, accessible to all. So that even art knows the true ideal of
-our times, and tends toward it. On the one hand, the best works
-of art of our times transmit religious feelings urging toward the
-union and the brotherhood of man (such are the works of Dickens,
-Hugo, Dostoievsky; and in painting, of Millet, Bastien Lepage, Jules
-Breton, L'Hermitte, and others); on the other hand, they strive
-toward the transmission, not of feelings which are natural to people
-of the upper classes only, but of such feelings as may unite every
-one without exception. There are as yet few such works, but the
-need of them is already acknowledged. In recent times we also meet
-more and more frequently with attempts at publications, pictures,
-concerts, and theaters for the people. All this is still very far
-from accomplishing what should be done, but already the direction
-in which good art instinctively presses forward to regain the path
-natural to it can be discerned.
-
-The religious perception of our time--which consists in
-acknowledging that the aim of life (both collective and individual)
-is the union of mankind--is already so sufficiently distinct that
-people have now only to reject the false theory of beauty, according
-to which enjoyment is considered to be the purpose of art, and
-religious perception will naturally take its place as the guide of
-the art of our time.
-
-And as soon as the religious perception, which already unconsciously
-directs the life of man, is consciously acknowledged, then
-immediately and naturally the division of art, into art for the
-lower and art for the upper classes, will disappear. There will
-be one common, brotherly, universal art; and first, that art will
-naturally be rejected which transmits feelings incompatible with
-the religious perception of our time,--feelings which do not unite,
-but divide men,--and then that insignificant, exclusive art will be
-rejected to which an importance is now attached to which it has no
-right.
-
-And as soon as this occurs, art will immediately cease to be what
-it has been in recent times,--a means of making people coarser and
-more vicious; and it will become, what it always used to be and
-should be, a means by which humanity progresses toward unity and
-blessedness.
-
-Strange as the comparison may sound, what has happened to the art
-of our circle and time is what happens to a woman who sells her
-womanly attractiveness, intended for maternity, for the pleasure of
-those who desire such pleasures.
-
-The art of our time and of our circle has become a prostitute. And
-this comparison holds good even in minute details. Like her it is
-not limited to certain times, like her it is always adorned, like
-her it is always salable, and like her it is enticing and ruinous.
-
-A real work of art can only arise in the soul of an artist
-occasionally as the fruit of the life he has lived, just as a child
-is conceived by its mother. But counterfeit art is produced by
-artisans and handicraftsmen continually, if only consumers can be
-found.
-
-Real art, like the wife of an affectionate husband, needs no
-ornaments. But counterfeit art, like a prostitute, must always be
-decked out.
-
-The cause of the production of real art is the artist's inner need
-to express a feeling that has accumulated, just as for a mother the
-cause of sexual conception is love. The cause of counterfeit art, as
-of prostitution, is gain.
-
-The consequence of true art is the introduction of a new feeling
-into the intercourse of life, as the consequence of a wife's love is
-the birth of a new man into life.
-
-The consequences of counterfeit art are the perversion of man,
-pleasure which never satisfies, and the weakening of man's spiritual
-strength.
-
-And this is what people of our day and of our circle should
-understand, in order to avoid the filthy torrent of depraved and
-prostituted art with which we are deluged.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIX
-
-
-People talk of the art of the future, meaning by "art of the future"
-some especially refined, new art, which, as they imagine, will
-be developed out of that exclusive art of one class which is now
-considered the highest art. But no such new art of the future can
-or will be found. Our exclusive art, that of the upper classes of
-Christendom, has found its way into a blind alley. The direction
-in which it has been going leads nowhere. Having once let go of
-that which is most essential for art (namely, the guidance given
-by religious perception), that art has become ever more and more
-exclusive, and therefore ever more and more perverted, until,
-finally, it has come to nothing. The art of the future, that which
-is really coming, will not be a development of present-day art, but
-will arise on completely other and new foundations, having nothing
-in common with those by which our present art of the upper classes
-is guided.
-
-Art of the future, that is to say, such part of art as will be
-chosen from among all the art diffused among mankind, will consist,
-not in transmitting feelings accessible only to members of the rich
-classes, as is the case to-day, but in transmitting such feelings
-as embody the highest religious perception of our times. Only
-those productions will be considered art which transmit feelings
-drawing men together in brotherly union, or such universal feelings
-as can unite all men. Only such art will be chosen, tolerated,
-approved, and diffused. But art transmitting feelings flowing from
-antiquated, worn-out religious teaching,--Church art, patriotic art,
-voluptuous art, transmitting feelings of superstitious fear, of
-pride, of vanity, of ecstatic admiration of national heroes,--art
-exciting exclusive love of one's own people, or sensuality, will
-be considered bad, harmful art, and will be censured and despised
-by public opinion. All the rest of art, transmitting feelings
-accessible only to a section of people, will be considered
-unimportant, and will be neither blamed nor praised. And the
-appraisement of art in general will devolve, not, as is now the
-case, on a separate class of rich people, but on the whole people;
-so that for a work to be esteemed good, and to be approved of and
-diffused, it will have to satisfy the demands, not of a few people
-living in identical and often unnatural conditions, but it will have
-to satisfy the demands of all those great masses of people who are
-situated in the natural conditions of laborious life.
-
-And the artists producing art will also not be, as now, merely a
-few people selected from a small section of the nation, members of
-the upper classes or their hangers-on, but will consist of all those
-gifted members of the whole people who prove capable of, and are
-inclined toward, artistic activity.
-
-Artistic activity will then be accessible to all men. It will
-become accessible to the whole people, because, in the first place,
-in the art of the future, not only will that complex technique,
-which deforms the productions of the art of to-day and requires so
-great an effort and expenditure of time, not be demanded, but, on
-the contrary, the demand will be for clearness, simplicity, and
-brevity--conditions mastered, not by mechanical exercises, but by
-the education of taste. And secondly, artistic activity will become
-accessible to all men of the people because, instead of the present
-professional schools which only some can enter, all will learn music
-and depictive art (singing and drawing) equally with letters in
-the elementary schools, and in such a way that every man, having
-received the first principles of drawing and music, and feeling a
-capacity for, and a call to, one or other of the arts, will be able
-to perfect himself in it.
-
-People think that if there are no special art schools the technique
-of art will deteriorate. Undoubtedly, if by technique we understand
-those complications of art which are now considered an excellence,
-it will deteriorate; but if by technique is understood clearness,
-beauty, simplicity, and compression in works of art, then, even
-if the elements of drawing and music were not to be taught in the
-national schools, the technique will not only not deteriorate, but,
-as is shown by all peasant art, will be a hundred times better.
-It will be improved, because all the artists of genius now hidden
-among the masses will become producers of art and will give models
-of excellence, which (as has always been the case) will be the best
-schools of technique for their successors. For every true artist,
-even now, learns his technique, chiefly, not in the schools, but
-in life, from the examples of the great masters; then--when the
-producers of art will be the best artists of the whole nation,
-and there will be more such examples, and they will be more
-accessible--such part of the school training as the future artist
-will lose will be a hundredfold compensated for by the training he
-will receive from the numerous examples of good art diffused in
-society.
-
-Such will be one difference between present and future art. Another
-difference will be that art will not be produced by professional
-artists receiving payment for their work and engaged on nothing else
-besides their art. The art of the future will be produced by all the
-members of the community who feel the need of such activity, but
-they will occupy themselves with art only when they feel such need.
-
-In our society people think that an artist will work better, and
-produce more, if he has a secured maintenance. And this opinion
-would serve once more to show clearly, were such demonstration
-still needed, that what among us is considered art is not art, but
-only its counterfeit. It is quite true that for the production of
-boots or loaves division of labor is very advantageous, and that
-the bootmaker or baker who need not prepare his own dinner or fetch
-his own fuel will make more boots or loaves than if he had to busy
-himself about these matters. But art is not a handicraft; it is
-the transmission of feeling the artist has experienced. And sound
-feeling can only be engendered in a man when he is living on all
-its sides the life natural and proper to mankind. And therefore
-security of maintenance is a condition most harmful to an artist's
-true productiveness, since it removes him from the condition natural
-to all men,--that of struggle with nature for the maintenance of
-both his own life and that of others,--and thus deprives him of
-opportunity and possibility to experience the most important and
-natural feelings of man. There is no position more injurious to an
-artist's productiveness than that position of complete security and
-luxury in which artists usually live in our society.
-
-The artist of the future will live the common life of man, earning
-his subsistence by some kind of labor. The fruits of that highest
-spiritual strength which passes through him he will try to
-share with the greatest possible number of people, for in such
-transmission to others of the feelings that have arisen in him he
-will find his happiness and his reward. The artist of the future
-will be unable to understand how an artist, whose chief delight is
-in the wide diffusion of his works, could give them only in exchange
-for a certain payment.
-
-Until the dealers are driven out, the temple of art will not be a
-temple. But the art of the future will drive them out.
-
-And therefore the subject-matter of the art of the future, as I
-imagine it to myself, will be totally unlike that of to-day. It
-will consist, not in the expression of exclusive feelings: pride,
-spleen, satiety, and all possible forms of voluptuousness, available
-and interesting only to people who, by force, have freed themselves
-from the labor natural to human beings; but it will consist in the
-expression of feelings experienced by a man living the life natural
-to all men and flowing from the religious perception of our times,
-or of such feelings as are open to all men without exception.
-
-To people of our circle who do not know and cannot or will not
-understand the feelings which will form the subject-matter of
-the art of the future, such subject-matter appears very poor in
-comparison with those subtleties of exclusive art with which they
-are now occupied. "What is there fresh to be said in the sphere of
-the Christian feeling of love of one's fellow-man? The feelings
-common to every one are so insignificant and monotonous," think
-they. And yet, in our time, the really fresh feelings can only be
-religious, Christian feelings, and such as are open, accessible,
-to all. The feelings flowing from the religious perception of our
-times, Christian feelings, are infinitely new and varied, only not
-in the sense some people imagine,--not that they can be evoked by
-the depiction of Christ and of gospel episodes, or by repeating in
-new forms the Christian truths of unity, brotherhood, equality, and
-love,--but in that all the oldest, commonest, and most hackneyed
-phenomena of life evoke the newest, most unexpected, and touching
-emotions as soon as a man regards them from the Christian point of
-view.
-
-What can be older than the relations between married couples, of
-parents to children, of children to parents; the relations of men
-to their fellow-countrymen and to foreigners, to an invasion, to
-defense, to property, to the land, or to animals? But as soon as
-a man regards these matters from the Christian point of view,
-endlessly varied, fresh, complex, and strong emotions immediately
-arise.
-
-And, in the same way, that realm of subject-matter for the art of
-the future which relates to the simplest feelings of common life
-open to all will not be narrowed, but widened. In our former art
-only the expression of feelings natural to people of a certain
-exceptional position was considered worthy of being transmitted
-by art, and even then only on condition that these feelings were
-transmitted in a most refined manner, incomprehensible to the
-majority of men; all the immense realm of folk-art, and children's
-art--jests, proverbs, riddles, songs, dances, children's games, and
-mimicry--was not esteemed a domain worthy of art.
-
-The artist of the future will understand that to compose a
-fairy-tale, a little song which will touch, a lullaby or a riddle
-which will entertain, a jest which will amuse, or to draw a sketch
-which will delight dozens of generations or millions of children and
-adults, is incomparably more important and more fruitful than to
-compose a novel or a symphony, or paint a picture which will divert
-some members of the wealthy classes for a short time, and then be
-forever forgotten. The region of this art of the simple feelings
-accessible to all is enormous, and it is as yet almost untouched.
-
-The art of the future, therefore, will not be poorer, but infinitely
-richer in subject-matter. And the form of the art of the future will
-also not be inferior to the present forms of art, but infinitely
-superior to them. Superior, not in the sense of having a refined and
-complex technique, but in the sense of the capacity briefly, simply,
-and clearly to transmit, without any superfluities, the feeling
-which the artist has experienced and wishes to transmit.
-
-I remember once speaking to a famous astronomer who had given public
-lectures on the spectrum analysis of the stars of the Milky Way,
-and saying it would be a good thing if, with his knowledge and
-masterly delivery, he would give a lecture merely on the formation
-and movements of the earth, for certainly there were many people
-at his lecture on the spectrum analysis of the stars of the Milky
-Way, especially among the women, who did not well know why night
-follows day and summer follows winter. The wise astronomer smiled as
-he answered, "Yes, it would be a good thing, but it would be very
-difficult. To lecture on the spectrum analysis of the Milky Way is
-far easier."
-
-And so it is in art. To write a rhymed poem dealing with the times
-of Cleopatra, or paint a picture of Nero burning Rome, or compose
-a symphony in the manner of Brahms or Richard Strauss, or an opera
-like Wagner's, is far easier than to tell a simple story without any
-unnecessary details, yet so that it should transmit the feelings of
-the narrator, or to draw a pencil-sketch which should touch or amuse
-the beholder, or to compose four bars of clear and simple melody,
-without any accompaniment, which should convey an impression and be
-remembered by those who hear it.
-
-"It is impossible for us, with our culture, to return to a primitive
-state," say the artists of our time. "It is impossible for us now to
-write such stories as that of Joseph or the 'Odyssey,' to produce
-such statues as the Venus of Milo, or to compose such music as the
-folk-songs."
-
-And indeed, for the artists of our society and day, it is
-impossible, but not for the future artist, who will be free from
-all the perversion of technical improvements hiding the absence
-of subject-matter, and who, not being a professional artist and
-receiving no payment for his activity, will only produce art when he
-feels impelled to do so by an irresistible inner impulse.
-
-The art of the future will thus be completely distinct, both in
-subject-matter and in form, from what is now called art. The only
-subject-matter of the art of the future will be either feelings
-drawing men toward union, or such as already unite them; and
-the forms of art will be such as will be open to every one. And
-therefore, the ideal of excellence in the future will not be the
-exclusiveness of feeling, accessible only to some, but, on the
-contrary, its universality. And not bulkiness, obscurity, and
-complexity of form, as is now esteemed, but, on the contrary,
-brevity, clearness, and simplicity of expression. Only when art has
-attained to that, will art neither divert nor deprave men as it
-does now, calling on them to expend their best strength on it, but
-be what it should be,--a vehicle wherewith to transmit religious,
-Christian perception from the realm of reason and intellect into
-that of feeling, and really drawing people in actual life nearer
-to that perfection and unity indicated to them by their religious
-perception.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XX
-
-THE CONCLUSION
-
-
-I have accomplished, to the best of my ability, this work which
-has occupied me for fifteen years, on a subject near to me--that
-of art. By saying that this subject has occupied me for fifteen
-years, I do not mean that I have been writing this book fifteen
-years, but only that I began to write on art fifteen years ago,
-thinking that when once I undertook the task I should be able to
-accomplish it without a break. It proved, however, that my views
-on the matter then were so far from clear that I could not arrange
-them in a way that satisfied me. From that time I have never ceased
-to think on the subject, and I have recommenced to write on it six
-or seven times; but each time, after writing a considerable part of
-it, I have found myself unable to bring the work to a satisfactory
-conclusion, and have had to put it aside. Now I have finished it;
-and however badly I may have performed the task, my hope is that
-my fundamental thought as to the false direction the art of our
-society has taken and is following, as to the reasons of this, and
-as to the real destination of art, is correct, and that therefore my
-work will not be without avail. But that this should come to pass,
-and that art should really abandon its false path and take the new
-direction, it is necessary that another equally important human
-spiritual activity,--science,--in intimate dependence on which art
-always rests, should abandon the false path which it too, like art,
-is following.
-
-Science and art are as closely bound together as the lungs and the
-heart, so that if one organ is vitiated the other cannot act rightly.
-
-True science investigates and brings to human perception such
-truths and such knowledge as the people of a given time and society
-consider most important. Art transmits these truths from the region
-of perception to the region of emotion. Therefore, if the path
-chosen by science be false, so also will be the path taken by art.
-Science and art are like a certain kind of barge with kedge-anchors
-which used to ply on our rivers. Science, like the boats which took
-the anchors up-stream and made them secure, gives direction to the
-forward movement; while art, like the windlass worked on the barge
-to draw it toward the anchor, causes the actual progression. And
-thus a false activity of science inevitably causes a correspondingly
-false activity of art.
-
-As art in general is the transmission of every kind of feeling,
-but in the limited sense of the word we only call that art which
-transmits feelings acknowledged by us to be important, so also
-science in general is the transmission of all possible knowledge;
-but in the limited sense of the word we call science that which
-transmits knowledge acknowledged by us to be important.
-
-And the degree of importance, both of the feelings transmitted by
-art and of the information transmitted by science, is decided by the
-religious perception of the given time and society, _i.e._ by the
-common understanding of the purpose of their lives possessed by the
-people of that time or society.
-
-That which most of all contributes to the fulfilment of that purpose
-will be studied most; that which contributes less will be studied
-less; that which does not contribute at all to the fulfilment of the
-purpose of human life will be entirely neglected, or, if studied,
-such study will not be accounted science. So it always has been, and
-so it should be now; for such is the nature of human knowledge and
-of human life. But the science of the upper classes of our time,
-which not only does not acknowledge any religion, but considers
-every religion to be mere superstition, could not and cannot make
-such distinctions.
-
-Scientists of our day affirm that they study _everything_
-impartially; but as everything is too much (is in fact an infinite
-number of objects), and as it is impossible to study all alike, this
-is only said in the theory, while in practice not everything is
-studied, and study is applied far from impartially, only that being
-studied which, on the one hand, is most wanted by, and on the other
-hand, is pleasantest to, those people who occupy themselves with
-science. And what the people, belonging to the upper classes, who
-are occupying themselves with science most want is the maintenance
-of the system under which those classes retain their privileges; and
-what is pleasantest are such things as satisfy idle curiosity, do
-not demand great mental efforts, and can be practically applied.
-
-And therefore one side of science, including theology and philosophy
-adapted to the existing order, as also history and political economy
-of the same sort, are chiefly occupied in proving that the existing
-order is the very one which ought to exist; that it has come into
-existence and continues to exist by the operation of immutable
-laws not amenable to human will, and that all efforts to change
-it are therefore harmful and wrong. The other part, experimental
-science,--including mathematics, astronomy, chemistry, physics,
-botany, and all the natural sciences,--is exclusively occupied with
-things that have no direct relation to human life: with what is
-curious, and with things of which practical application advantageous
-to people of the upper classes can be made. And to justify that
-selection of objects of study which (in conformity to their own
-position) the men of science of our times have made, they have
-devised a theory of science for science's sake, quite similar to the
-theory of art for art's sake.
-
-As by the theory of art for art's sake it appears that occupation
-with all those things that please us--is art, so, by the theory of
-science for science's sake, the study of that which interests us--is
-science.
-
-So that one side of science, instead of studying how people should
-live in order to fulfil their mission in life, demonstrates the
-righteousness and immutability of the bad and false arrangements
-of life which exist around us; while the other part, experimental
-science, occupies itself with questions of simple curiosity or with
-technical improvements.
-
-The first of these divisions of science is harmful, not only because
-it confuses people's perceptions and gives false decisions, but also
-because it exists, and occupies the ground which should belong to
-true science. It does this harm, that each man, in order to approach
-the study of the most important questions of life, must first refute
-these erections of lies which have during ages been piled around
-each of the most essential questions of human life, and which are
-propped up by all the strength of human ingenuity.
-
-The second division--the one of which modern science is so
-particularly proud, and which is considered by many people to be the
-only real science--is harmful in that it diverts attention from the
-really important subjects to insignificant subjects, and is also
-directly harmful in that, under the evil system of society which the
-first division of science justifies and supports, a great part of
-the technical gains of science are turned, not to the advantage, but
-to the injury of mankind.
-
-Indeed, it is only to those who are devoting their lives to such
-study that it seems as if all the inventions which are made in the
-sphere of natural science were very important and useful things.
-And to these people it seems so only when they do not look around
-them and do not see what is really important. They only need tear
-themselves away from the psychological microscope under which they
-examine the objects of their study, and look about them, in order
-to see how insignificant is all that has afforded them such naive
-pride, all that knowledge not only of geometry of _n_-dimensions,
-spectrum analysis of the Milky Way, the form of atoms, dimensions
-of human skulls of the Stone Age, and similar trifles, but even our
-knowledge of micro-organisms, X-rays, etc., in comparison with such
-knowledge as we have thrown aside and handed over to the perversions
-of the professors of theology, jurisprudence, political economy,
-financial science, etc. We need only look around us to perceive that
-the activity proper to real science is not the study of whatever
-happens to interest us, but the study of how man's life should be
-established,--the study of those questions of religion, morality,
-and social life, without the solution of which all our knowledge of
-nature will be harmful or insignificant.
-
-We are highly delighted and very proud that our science renders it
-possible to utilize the energy of a waterfall and make it work in
-factories, or that we have pierced tunnels through mountains, and so
-forth. But the pity of it is that we make the force of the waterfall
-labor, not for the benefit of the workmen, but to enrich capitalists
-who produce articles of luxury or weapons of man-destroying war.
-The same dynamite with which we blast the mountains to pierce
-tunnels we use for wars, from which latter we not only do not intend
-to abstain, but which we consider inevitable, and for which we
-unceasingly prepare.
-
-If we are now able to inoculate preventatively with diphtheritic
-microbes, to find a needle in a body by means of X-rays, to
-straighten a hunched-back, cure syphilis, and perform wonderful
-operations, we should not be proud of these acquisitions either
-(even were they all established beyond dispute) if we fully
-understood the true purpose of real science. If but one-tenth of
-the efforts now spent on objects of pure curiosity or of merely
-practical application were expended on real science organizing the
-life of man, more than half the people now sick would not have the
-illnesses from which a small minority of them now get cured in
-hospitals. There would be no poor-blooded and deformed children
-growing up in factories, no death-rates, as now, of fifty per
-cent among children, no deterioration of whole generations, no
-prostitution, no syphilis, and no murdering of hundreds of thousands
-in wars, nor those horrors of folly and of misery which our present
-science considers a necessary condition of human life.
-
-We have so perverted the conception of science that it seems strange
-to men of our day to allude to sciences which should prevent the
-mortality of children, prostitution, syphilis, the deterioration
-of whole generations, and the wholesale murder of men. It seems
-to us that science is only then real science when a man in a
-laboratory pours liquids from one jar into another, or analyzes
-the spectrum, or cuts up frogs and porpoises, or weaves in a
-specialized, scientific jargon an obscure network of conventional
-phrases--theological, philosophical, historical, juridical, or
-politico-economical--semi-intelligible to the man himself, and
-intended to demonstrate that what now is, is what should be.
-
-But science, true science,--such science as would really deserve
-the respect which is now claimed by the followers of one (the
-least important) part of science,--is not at all such as this:
-real science lies in knowing what we should and what we should not
-believe, in knowing how the associated life of man should and should
-not be constituted; how to treat sexual relations, how to educate
-children, how to use the land, how to cultivate it oneself without
-oppressing other people, how to treat foreigners, how to treat
-animals, and much more that is important for the life of man.
-
-Such has true science ever been and such it should be. And such
-science is springing up in our times; but, on the one hand, such
-true science is denied and refuted by all those scientific people
-who defend the existing order of society, and, on the other hand, it
-is considered empty, unnecessary, unscientific science by those who
-are engrossed in experimental science.
-
-For instance, books and sermons appear, demonstrating the
-antiquatedness and absurdity of Church dogmas, as well as the
-necessity of establishing a reasonable religious perception suitable
-to our times, and all the theology that is considered to be real
-science is only engaged in refuting these works and in exercising
-human intelligence again and again to find support and justification
-for superstitions long since outlived, and which have now become
-quite meaningless. Or a sermon appears showing that land should
-not be an object of private possession, and that the institution
-of private property in land is a chief cause of the poverty of
-the masses. Apparently science, real science, should welcome such
-a sermon and draw further deductions from this position. But the
-science of our times does nothing of the kind: on the contrary,
-political economy demonstrates the opposite position; namely, that
-landed property, like every other form of property, must be more
-and more concentrated in the hands of a small number of owners.
-Again, in the same way, one would suppose it to be the business of
-real science to demonstrate the irrationality, unprofitableness,
-and immorality of war and of executions; or the inhumanity and
-harmfulness of prostitution; or the absurdity, harmfulness,
-and immorality of using narcotics or of eating animals; or the
-irrationality, harmfulness, and antiquatedness of patriotism. And
-such works exist, but are all considered unscientific; while works
-to prove that all these things ought to continue, and works intended
-to satisfy an idle thirst for knowledge lacking any relation to
-human life, are considered to be scientific.
-
-The deviation of the science of our time from its true purpose is
-strikingly illustrated by those ideals which are put forward by some
-scientists, and are not denied, but admitted, by the majority of
-scientific men.
-
-These ideals are expressed not only in stupid, fashionable books,
-describing the world as it will be in 1000 or 3000 years' time, but
-also by sociologists who consider themselves serious men of science.
-These ideals are that food, instead of being obtained from the land
-by agriculture, will be prepared in laboratories by chemical means,
-and that human labor will be almost entirely superseded by the
-utilization of natural forces.
-
-Man will not, as now, eat an egg laid by a hen he has kept, or bread
-grown on his field, or an apple from a tree he has reared and which
-has blossomed and matured in his sight; but he will eat tasty,
-nutritious, food which will be prepared in laboratories by the
-conjoint labor of many people in which he will take a small part.
-Man will hardly need to labor, so that all men will be able to yield
-to idleness as the upper, ruling classes now yield to it.
-
-Nothing shows more plainly than these ideals to what a degree the
-science of our times has deviated from the true path.
-
-The great majority of men in our times lack good and sufficient food
-(as well as dwellings and clothes and all the first necessaries of
-life). And this great majority of men is compelled, to the injury of
-its well-being, to labor continually beyond its strength. Both these
-evils can easily be removed by abolishing mutual strife, luxury, and
-the unrighteous distribution of wealth, in a word, by the abolition
-of a false and harmful order and the establishment of a reasonable,
-human manner of life. But science considers the existing order of
-things to be as immutable as the movements of the planets, and
-therefore assumes that the purpose of science is--not to elucidate
-the falseness of this order and to arrange a new, reasonable way of
-life--but, under the existing order of things, to feed everybody and
-enable all to be as idle as the ruling classes, who live a depraved
-life, now are.
-
-And, meanwhile, it is forgotten that nourishment with corn,
-vegetables, and fruit raised from the soil by one's own labor is the
-pleasantest, healthiest, easiest, and most natural nourishment, and
-that the work of using one's muscles is as necessary a condition of
-life as is the oxidation of the blood by breathing.
-
-To invent means whereby people might, while continuing our false
-division of property and labor, be well nourished by means of
-chemically prepared food, and might make the forces of nature work
-for them, is like inventing means to pump oxygen into the lungs of a
-man kept in a closed chamber, the air of which is bad, when all that
-is needed is to cease to confine the man in the closed chamber.
-
-In the vegetable and animal kingdoms a laboratory for the
-production of food has been arranged, such as can be surpassed by
-no professors, and to enjoy the fruits of this laboratory, and
-to participate in it, man has only to yield to that ever joyful
-impulse to labor, without which man's life is a torment. And lo and
-behold! the scientists of our times, instead of employing all their
-strength to abolish whatever hinders man from utilizing the good
-things prepared for him, acknowledge the conditions under which man
-is deprived of these blessings to be unalterable, and instead of
-arranging the life of man so that he might work joyfully and be fed
-from the soil, they devise methods which will cause him to become an
-artificial abortion. It is like not helping a man out of confinement
-into the fresh air, but devising means, instead, to pump into him
-the necessary quantity of oxygen and arranging so that he may live
-in a stifling cellar instead of living at home.
-
-Such false ideals could not exist if science were not on a false
-path.
-
-And yet the feelings transmitted by art grow up on the bases
-supplied by science.
-
-But what feelings can such misdirected science evoke? One side of
-this science evokes antiquated feelings, which humanity has used
-up, and which, in our times, are bad and exclusive. The other side,
-occupied with the study of subjects unrelated to the conduct of
-human life, by its very nature cannot serve as a basis for art.
-
-So that art in our times, to be art, must either open up its own
-road independently of science, or must take direction from the
-unrecognized science which is denounced by the orthodox section of
-science. And this is what art, when it even partially fulfils its
-mission, is doing.
-
-It is to be hoped that the work I have tried to perform concerning
-art will be performed also for science--that the falseness of the
-theory of science for science's sake will be demonstrated; that
-the necessity of acknowledging Christian teaching in its true
-meaning will be clearly shown, that on the basis of that teaching
-a reappraisement will be made of the knowledge we possess, and of
-which we are so proud; that the secondariness and insignificance
-of experimental science, and the primacy and importance of
-religious, moral, and social knowledge will be established; and
-that such knowledge will not, as now, be left to the guidance of
-the upper classes only, but will form a chief interest of all free,
-truth-loving men, such as those who, not in agreement with the
-upper classes, but in their despite, have always forwarded the real
-science of life.
-
-Astronomical, physical, chemical, and biological science, as also
-technical and medical science, will be studied only in so far as
-they can help to free mankind from religious, juridical, or social
-deceptions, or can serve to promote the well-being of all men, and
-not of any single class.
-
-Only then will science cease to be what it is now,--on the one hand
-a system of sophistries, needed for the maintenance of the existing
-worn-out order of society, and, on the other hand, a shapeless mass
-of miscellaneous knowledge, for the most part good for little or
-nothing,--and become a shapely and organic whole, having a definite
-and reasonable purpose comprehensible to all men; namely, the
-purpose of bringing to the consciousness of men the truths that flow
-from the religious perception of our times.
-
-And only then will art, which is always dependent on science, be
-what it might and should be, an organ co-equally important with
-science for the life and progress of mankind.
-
-Art is not a pleasure, a solace, or an amusement; art is a great
-matter. Art is an organ of human life, transmitting man's reasonable
-perception into feeling. In our age the common religious perception
-of men is the consciousness of the brotherhood of man--we know
-that the well-being of man lies in union with his fellow-men.
-True science should indicate the various methods of applying this
-consciousness to life. Art should transform this perception into
-feeling.
-
-The task of art is enormous. Through the influence of real art,
-aided by science guided by religion, that peaceful cooperation of
-man which is now obtained by external means--by our law-courts,
-police, charitable institutions, factory inspection, etc.--should
-be obtained by man's free and joyous activity. Art should cause
-violence to be set aside.
-
-And it is only art that can accomplish this.
-
-All that now, independently of the fear of violence and punishment,
-makes the social life of man possible (and already now this is
-an enormous part of the order of our lives)--all this has been
-brought about by art. If by art it has been inculcated how people
-should treat religious objects, their parents, their children,
-their wives, their relations, strangers, foreigners; how to conduct
-themselves to their elders, their superiors, to those who suffer,
-to their enemies, and to animals; and if this has been obeyed
-through generations by millions of people, not only unenforced by
-any violence, but so that the force of such customs can be shaken in
-no way but by means of art--then, by the same art, other customs,
-more in accord with the religious perception of our time, may be
-evoked. If art has been able to convey the sentiment of reverence
-for images, for the eucharist, and for the king's person; of shame
-at betraying a comrade, devotion to a flag, the necessity of revenge
-for an insult, the need to sacrifice one's labor for the erection
-and adornment of churches, the duty of defending one's honor or
-the glory of one's native land--then that same art can also evoke
-reverence for the dignity of every man and for the life of every
-animal; can make men ashamed of luxury, of violence, of revenge, or
-of using for their pleasure that of which others are in need; can
-compel people freely, gladly, and without noticing it, to sacrifice
-themselves in the service of man.
-
-The task for art to accomplish is to make that feeling of
-brotherhood and love of one's neighbor, now attained only by the
-best members of society, the customary feeling and the instinct of
-all men. By evoking, under imaginary conditions, the feeling of
-brotherhood and love, religious art will train men to experience
-those same feelings under similar circumstances in actual life; it
-will lay in the souls of men the rails along which the actions of
-those whom art thus educates will naturally pass. And universal
-art, by uniting the most different people in one common feeling,
-by destroying separation, will educate people to union, will show
-them, not by reason, but by life itself, the joy of universal union
-reaching beyond the bounds set by life.
-
-The destiny of art in our time is to transmit from the realm of
-reason to the realm of feeling the truth that well-being for men
-consists in being united together, and to set up, in place of the
-existing reign of force, that kingdom of God, _i.e._ of love, which
-we all recognize to be the highest aim of human life.
-
-Possibly, in the future, science may reveal to art yet newer and
-higher ideals, which art may realize; but, in our time, the destiny
-of art is clear and definite. The task for Christian art is to
-establish brotherly union among men.
-
-
-
-
-APPENDIX I
-
-
-This is the first page of Mallarme's book, "Divagations":--
-
-LE PHENOMENE FUTUR
-
- Un ciel pale, sur le monde qui finit de decrepitude, va
- peut-etre partir avec les nuages: les lambeaux de la pourpre
- usee des couchants deteignent dans une riviere dormant a
- l'horizon submerge de rayons et d'eau. Les arbres s'ennuient,
- et, sous leur feuillage blanchi (de la poussiere du temps plutot
- que celle des chemins) monte la maison en toile de Montreur
- de choses Passees: maint reverbere attend le crepuscule et
- ravive les visages d'une malheureuse foule, vaincue par la
- maladie immortelle et le peche des siecles, d'hommes pres de
- leurs chetives complices enceintes des fruits miserables avec
- lesquels perira la terre. Dans le silence inquiet de tous les
- yeux suppliant la-bas le soleil qui, sous l'eau, s'enfonce
- avec le desespoir d'un cri, voici le simple boniment: "Nulle
- enseigne ne vous regale du spectacle interieur, car il n'est
- pas maintenant un peintre capable d'en donner une ombre triste.
- J'apporte, vivante (et preservee a travers les ans par la
- science souveraine) une Femme d'autrefois. Quelque folie,
- originelle et naive, une extase d'or, je ne sais quoi! par elle
- nomme sa chevelure, se ploie avec la grace des etoffes autour
- d'un visage qu' eclaire la nudite sanglante de ses levres. A la
- place du vetement vain, elle a un corps; et les yeux, semblables
- aux pierres rares! ne valent pas ce regard qui sort de sa chair
- heureuse: des seins leves comme s'ils etaient pleins d'un lait
- eternel, la pointe vers le ciel, les jambes lisses qui gardent
- le sel de la mer premiere." Se rappelant leurs pauvres epouses,
- chauves, morbides et pleines d'horreur, les maris se pressent:
- elles aussi par curiosite, melancoliques, veulent voir.
-
- Quand tous auront contemple la noble creature, vestige de
- quelque epoque deja maudite, les uns indifferents, car ils
- n'auront pas eu la force de comprendre, mais d'autres navres et
- la paupiere humide de larmes resignees, se regarderont; tandis
- que les poetes de ces temps, sentant se rallumer leur yeux
- eteints, s'achemineront vers leur lampe, le cerveau ivre un
- instant d'une gloire confuse, hantes du Rythme et dans l'oubli
- d'exister a une epoque qui survit a la beaute.
-
-THE FUTURE PHENOMENON--BY MALLARME.
-
- A pale sky, above the world that is ending through decrepitude,
- going, perhaps, to pass away with the clouds: shreds of worn-out
- purple of the sunsets wash off their color in a river sleeping
- on the horizon, submerged with rays and water. The trees are
- weary and, beneath their foliage, whitened (by the dust of
- time rather than that of the roads), rises the canvas house
- of "Showman of things Past." Many a lamp awaits the gloaming,
- and brightens the faces of a miserable crowd vanquished by the
- immortal illness and the sin of ages, of men by the sides of
- their puny accomplices pregnant with the miserable fruit with
- which the world will perish. In the anxious silence of all the
- eyes supplicating the sun there, which sinks under the water
- with the desperation of a cry, this is the plain announcement:
- "No sign-board now regales you with the spectacle that is
- inside, for there is no painter now capable of giving even a
- shadow of it. I bring living (and preserved by sovereign science
- through the years) a Woman of other days. Some kind of folly,
- naive and original, an ecstasy of gold, I know not what, by her
- called her hair, clings with the grace of some material round a
- face brightened by the blood-red nudity of her lips. In place of
- vain clothing, she has a body; and her eyes, resembling precious
- stones! are not worth that look, which comes from her happy
- flesh: breasts raised as if full of eternal milk, the points
- toward the sky; the smooth legs, that keep the salt of the first
- sea." Remembering their poor spouses, bald, morbid, and full
- of horrors, the husbands press forward: the women, too, from
- curiosity, gloomily wish to see.
-
- When all shall have contemplated the noble creature, vestige of
- some epoch already damned, some indifferently, for they will not
- have had strength to understand, but others, broken-hearted, and
- with eyelids wet with tears of resignation, will look at each
- other; while the poets of those times, feeling their dim eyes
- rekindled, will make their way toward their lamp, their brain
- for an instant drunk with confused glory, haunted by Rhythm, and
- forgetful that they exist at an epoch which has survived beauty.
-
-
-
-
-APPENDIX II[127]
-
-[127] The translations in Appendices I., II., and IV., are by Louise
-Maude. The aim of these renderings has been to keep as close to the
-originals as the obscurity of meaning allowed. The sense (or absence
-of sense) has therefore been more considered than the form of the
-verses.
-
-
-No. 1
-
-The following verses are by Viele-Griffin, from page 28 of a volume
-of his Poems:--
-
-OISEAU BLEU COULEUR DU TEMPS
-
- 1
-
- Sait-tu l'oubli
- D'un vain doux reve,
- Oiseau moqueur
- De la foret?
- Le jour palit,
- La nuit se leve,
- Et dans mon coeur
- L'ombre a pleure;
-
- 2
-
- O chante-moi
- Ta folle gamme,
- Car j'ai dormi
- Ce jour durant;
- Le lache emoi
- Ou fut mon ame
- Sanglote ennui
- Le jour mourant....
-
- 3
-
- Sais-tu le chant
- De sa parole
- Et de sa voix,
- Toi qui redis
- Dans le couchant
- Ton air frivole
- Comme autrefois
- Sous les midis?
-
- 4
-
- O chante alors
- La melodie
- De son amour,
- Mon fol espoir,
- Parmi les ors
- Et l'incendie
- Du vain doux jour
- Qui meurt ce soir.
-
- FRANCIS VIELE-GRIFFIN.
-
-BLUE BIRD
-
- 1
-
- Canst thou forget,
- In dreams so vain,
- Oh, mocking bird
- Of forest deep?
- The day doth set,
- Night comes again,
- My heart has heard
- The shadows weep;
-
- 2
-
- Thy tones let flow
- In maddening scale,
- For I have slept
- The livelong day;
- Emotions low
- In me now wail,
- My soul they've kept:
- Light dies away....
-
- 3
-
- That music sweet,
- Ah, do you know
- Her voice and speech?
- Your airs so light
- You who repeat
- In sunset's glow,
- As you sang, each,
- At noonday's height.
-
- 4
-
- Of my desire,
- My hope so bold,
- Her love--up, sing,
- Sing, 'neath this light,
- This flaming fire,
- And all the gold
- The eve doth bring
- Ere comes the night.
-
-
-No. 2
-
-And here are some verses by the esteemed young poet Verhaeren, which
-I also take from page 28 of his Works:--
-
-ATTIRANCES
-
- Lointainement, et si etrangement pareils,
- De grands masques d'argent que la brume recule,
- Vaguent, au jour tombant, autour des vieux soleils.
-
- Les doux lointaines!--et comme, au fond du crepuscule,
- Ils nous fixent le coeur, immensement le coeur,
- Avec les yeux _defunts de leur_ visage d'ame.
-
- C'est toujours du silence, a moins, dans la paleur
- Du soir, un jet de feu soudain, un cri de flamme,
- Un depart de lumiere inattendu vers Dieu.
-
- On se laisse charmer et troubler de mystere,
- Et l'on dirait des morts qui taisent un adieu
- Trop mystique, pour etre ecoute par la terre!
-
- Sont-ils le souvenir materiel et clair
- Des ephebes chretiens couches aux catacombes
- Parmi les lys? Sont-ils leur regard et leur chair?
-
- Ou seul, ce qui survit de merveilleux aux tombes
- De ceux qui sont partis, vers leurs reves, un soir,
- Conquerir la folie a l'assaut des nuees?
-
- Lointainement, combien nous les sentons vouloir
- Un peu d'amour pour leurs oeuvres destituees,
- Pour leur errance et leur tristesse aux horizons.
-
- Toujours! aux horizons du coeur et des pensees,
- Alors que les vieux soirs eclatent en blasons
- Soudains, pour les gloires noires et angoissees.
-
- EMILE VERHAEREN,
- _Poemes_.
-
-ATTRACTIONS
-
- Large masks of silver, by mists drawn away,
- So strangely alike, yet so far apart.
- Float round the old suns when faileth the day.
-
- They transfix our heart, so immensely our heart,
- Those distances mild, in the twilight deep,
- Looking out of dead faces with their spirit eyes.
-
- All around is now silence, except when there leap
- In the pallor of evening, with fiery cries,
- Some fountains of flame that God-ward do fly.
-
- Mysterious trouble and charms us infold,
- You might think that the dead spoke a silent good-by,
- Oh! too mystical far on earth to be told!
-
- Are they the memories, material and bright,
- Of the Christian youths that in catacombs sleep
- 'Mid the lilies? Are they their flesh or their sight?
-
- Or the marvel alone that survives, in the deep,
- Of those that, one night, returned to their dream
- Of conquering folly by assaulting the skies?
-
- For their destitute works--we feel it seems,
- For a little love their longing cries
- From horizons far--for their errings and pain.
-
- In horizons ever of heart and thought,
- While the evenings old in bright blaze wane
- Suddenly, for black glories anguish fraught.
-
-
-No. 3
-
-And the following is a poem by Moreas, evidently an admirer of Greek
-beauty. It is from page 28 of a volume of his Poems:--
-
-ENONE AU CLAIR VISAGE
-
- Enone, j'avais cru qu'en aimant ta beaute
- Ou l'ame avec le corps trouvent leur unite,
- J'allais, m'affermissant et le coeur et l'esprit,
- Monter jusqu'a cela qui jamais ne perit,
- N'ayant ete cree, qui n'est froideur ou feu,
- Qui n'est beau quelque part et laid en autre lieu;
- Et me flattais encor' d'une belle harmonie
- Que j'eusse compose du meilleur et du pire,
- Ainsi que le chanteur qui cherit Polimnie,
- En accordant le grave avec l'aigu, retire
- Un son bien eleve sur les nerfs de sa lyre.
- Mais mon courage, helas! se pamant comme mort,
- M'enseigna que le trait qui m'avait fait amant
- Ne fut pas de cet arc que courbe sans effort
- La Venus qui naquit du male seulement,
- Mais que j'avais souffert cette Venus derniere,
- Qui a le coeur couard, ne d'une faible mere.
- Et pourtant, ce mauvais garcon, chasseur habile,
- Qui charge son carquois de sagette subtile,
- Qui secoue en riant sa torche, pour un jour,
- Qui ne pose jamais que sur de tendres fleurs,
- C'est sur un teint charmant qu'il essuie les pleurs,
- Et c'est encore un Dieu, Enone, cet Amour.
- Mais, laisse, les oiseaux du printemps sont partis,
- Et je vois les rayons du soleil amortis.
- Enone, ma douleur, harmonieux visage,
- Superbe humilite, doux honnete langage,
- Hier me remirant dans cet etang glace
- Qui au bout du jardin se couvre de feuillage,
- Sur ma face je vis que les jours ont passe.
-
- JEAN MOREAS.
-
-ENONE
-
- Enone, in loving thy beauty, I thought,
- Where the soul and the body to union are brought,
- That mounting by steadying my heart and my mind,
- In that which can't perish, myself I should find.
- For it ne'er was created, is not ugly and fair;
- Is not coldness in one part, while on fire it is there.
- Yes, I flattered myself that a harmony fine
- I'd succeed to compose of the worst and the best,
- Like the bard who adores Polyhymnia divine,
- And mingling sounds different from the nerves of his lyre,
- From the grave and the smart draws melodies higher.
- But, alas! my courage, so faint and nigh spent,
- The dart that has struck me proves without fail
- Not to be from that bow which is easily bent
- By the Venus that's born alone of the male.
- No, 'twas that other Venus that caused me to smart,
- Born of frail mother with cowardly heart.
- And yet that naughty lad, that little hunter bold,
- Who laughs and shakes his flowery torch just for a day,
- Who never rests but upon tender flowers and gay,
- On sweetest skin who dries the tears his eyes that fill,
- Yet oh, Enone mine, a God's that Cupid still.
- Let it pass; for the birds of the Spring are away,
- And dying I see the sun's lingering ray.
- Enone, my sorrow, oh, harmonious face,
- Humility grand, words of virtue and grace,
- I looked yestere'en in the pond frozen fast,
- Strewn with leaves at the end of the garden's fair space,
- And I read in my face that those days are now past.
-
-
-No. 4
-
-And this is also from page 28 of a thick book, full of similar
-poems, by M. Montesquiou.
-
-BERCEUSE D'OMBRE
-
- Des formes, des formes, des formes
- Blanche, bleue, et rose, et d'or
- Descendront du haut des ormes
- Sur l'enfant qui se rendort.
- Des formes!
-
- Des plumes, des plumes, des plumes
- Pour composer un doux nid.
- Midi sonne: les enclumes
- Cessent; la rumeur finit....
- Des plumes!
-
- Des roses, des roses, des roses
- Pour embaumer son sommeil,
- Vos petales sont moroses
- Pres du sourire vermeil.
- O roses!
-
- Des ailes, des ailes, des ailes
- Pour bourdonner a sont front,
- Abeilles et demoiselles,
- Des rythmes qui berceront.
- Des ailes!
-
- Des branches, des branches, des branches
- Pour tresser un pavillon,
- Par ou des clartes moins franches
- Descendront sur l'oisillon.
- Des branches!
-
- Des songes, des songes, des songes
- Dans ses pensers entr' ouverts
- Glissez un peu de mensonges
- A voir le vie au travers
- Des songes!
-
- Des fees, des fees, des fees
- Pour filer leurs echeveaux
- Des mirages, de bouffees
- Dans tous ces petits cerveaux.
- Des fees!
-
- Des anges, des anges, des anges
- Pour emporter dans l'ether
- Les petits enfants etranges
- Qui ne veulent pas rester....
- Nos anges!
-
- COMTE ROBERT DE MONTESQUIOU-FEZENSAC,
- _Les Hortensias Bleus_.
-
-THE SHADOW LULLABY
-
- Oh forms, oh forms, oh forms
- White, blue, and gold, and red
- Descending from the elm trees,
- On sleeping baby's head.
- Oh forms!
-
- Oh feathers, feathers, feathers
- To make a cozy nest.
- Twelve striking: stops the clamor;
- The anvils are at rest....
- Oh feathers!
-
- Oh roses, roses, roses
- To scent his sleep awhile,
- Pale are your fragrant petals
- Beside his ruby smile.
- Oh roses!
-
- Oh wings, oh wings, oh wings
- Of bees and dragon-flies,
- To hum around his forehead,
- And lull him with your sighs.
- Oh wings!
-
- Branches, branches, branches
- A shady bower to twine,
- Through which, oh daylight, faintly
- Descend on birdie mine.
- Branches!
-
- Oh dreams, oh dreams, oh dreams
- Into his opening mind,
- Let in a little falsehood
- With sights of life behind.
- Dreams!
-
- Oh fairies, fairies, fairies
- To twine and twist their threads
- With puffs of phantom visions
- Into these little heads.
- Fairies!
-
- Angels, angels, angels
- To the ether far away,
- Those children strange to carry
- That here don't wish to stay....
- Our angels!
-
-
-
-
-APPENDIX III
-
-
-These are the contents of "The Nibelung's Ring":--
-
-The first part tells that the nymphs, the daughters of the Rhine,
-for some reason guard gold in the Rhine, and sing: Weia, Waga, Woge
-du Welle, Walle zur Wiege, Wagala-weia, Wallala, Weiala, Weia, and
-so forth.
-
-These singing nymphs are pursued by a gnome (a nibelung) who desires
-to seize them. The gnome cannot catch any of them. Then the nymphs
-guarding the gold tell the gnome just what they ought to keep
-secret, namely, that whoever renounces love will be able to steal
-the gold they are guarding. And the gnome renounces love, and steals
-the gold. This ends the first scene.
-
-In the second scene a god and a goddess lie in a field in sight of
-a castle which giants have built for them. Presently they wake up
-and are pleased with the castle, and they relate that in payment for
-this work they must give the goddess Freia to the giants. The giants
-come for their pay. But the god Wotan objects to parting with Freia.
-The giants get angry. The gods hear that the gnome has stolen the
-gold, promise to confiscate it, and to pay the giants with it. But
-the giants won't trust them, and seize the goddess Freia in pledge.
-
-The third scene takes place underground. The gnome Alberich, who
-stole the gold, for some reason beats a gnome, Mime, and takes from
-him a helmet which has the power both of making people invisible
-and of turning them into other animals. The gods, Wotan and others,
-appear and quarrel with one another and with the gnomes, and wish to
-take the gold, but Alberich won't give it up, and (like everybody
-all through the piece) behaves in a way to insure his own ruin. He
-puts on the helmet, and becomes first a dragon and then a toad. The
-gods catch the toad, take the helmet off it, and carry Alberich away
-with them.
-
-Scene IV. The gods bring Alberich to their home, and order him to
-command his gnomes to bring them all the gold. The gnomes bring
-it. Alberich gives up the gold, but keeps a magic ring. The gods
-take the ring. So Alberich curses the ring, and says it is to bring
-misfortune on any one who has it. The giants appear; they bring
-the goddess Freia, and demand her ransom. They stick up staves of
-Freia's height, and gold is poured in between these staves: this is
-to be the ransom. There is not enough gold, so the helmet is thrown
-in, and they also demand the ring. Wotan refuses to give it up,
-but the goddess Erda appears and commands him to do so, because it
-brings misfortune. Wotan gives it up. Freia is released. The giants,
-having received the ring, fight, and one of them kills the other.
-This ends the Prelude, and we come to the First Day.
-
-The scene shows a house in a tree. Siegmund runs in tired, and lies
-down. Sieglinda, the mistress of the house (and wife of Hunding),
-gives him a drugged draught, and they fall in love with each other.
-Sieglinda's husband comes home, learns that Siegmund belongs to
-a hostile race, and wishes to fight him next day; but Sieglinda
-drugs her husband, and comes to Siegmund. Siegmund discovers that
-Sieglinda is his sister, and that his father drove a sword into the
-tree so that no one can get it out. Siegmund pulls the sword out,
-and commits incest with his sister.
-
-Act II. Siegmund is to fight with Hunding. The gods discuss the
-question to whom they shall award the victory. Wotan, approving of
-Siegmund's incest with his sister, wishes to spare him, but, under
-pressure from his wife, Fricka, he orders the Valkyrie Bruennhilda to
-kill Siegmund. Siegmund goes to fight; Sieglinda faints. Bruennhilda
-appears and wishes to slay Siegmund. Siegmund wishes to kill
-Sieglinda also, but Bruennhilda does not allow it; so he fights with
-Hunding. Bruennhilda defends Siegmund, but Wotan defends Hunding.
-Siegmund's sword breaks, and he is killed. Sieglinda runs away.
-
-Act III. The Valkyries (divine Amazons) are on the stage. The
-Valkyrie Bruennhilda arrives on horseback, bringing Siegmund's body.
-She is flying from Wotan, who is chasing her for her disobedience.
-Wotan catches her, and as a punishment dismisses her from her post
-as a Valkyrie. He casts a spell on her, so that she has to go to
-sleep and to continue asleep until a man wakes her. When some one
-wakes her she will fall in love with him. Wotan kisses her; she
-falls asleep. He lets off fire, which surrounds her.
-
-We now come to the Second Day. The gnome Mime forges a sword in
-a wood. Siegfried appears. He is a son born from the incest of
-brother with sister (Siegmund with Sieglinda), and has been brought
-up in this wood by the gnome. In general the motives of the actions
-of everybody in this production are quite unintelligible. Siegfried
-learns his own origin, and that the broken sword was his father's.
-He orders Mime to reforge it, and then goes off. Wotan comes in the
-guise of a wanderer, and relates what will happen: that he who has
-not learnt to fear will forge the sword, and will defeat everybody.
-The gnome conjectures that this is Siegfried, and wants to poison
-him. Siegfried returns, forges his father's sword, and runs off,
-shouting, Heiho! heiho! heiho! Ho! ho! Aha! oho! aha! Heiaho!
-heiaho! heiaho! Ho! ho! Hahei! hoho! hahei!
-
-And we get to Act II. Alberich sits guarding a giant, who, in form
-of a dragon, guards the gold he has received. Wotan appears, and
-for some unknown reason foretells that Siegfried will come and kill
-the dragon. Alberich wakes the dragon, and asks him for the ring,
-promising to defend him from Siegfried. The dragon won't give up
-the ring. Exit Alberich. Mime and Siegfried appear. Mime hopes the
-dragon will teach Siegfried to fear. But Siegfried does not fear.
-He drives Mime away and kills the dragon, after which he puts his
-finger, smeared with the dragon's blood, to his lips. This enables
-him to know men's secret thoughts, as well as the language of birds.
-The birds tell him where the treasure and the ring are, and also
-that Mime wishes to poison him. Mime returns, and says out loud
-that he wishes to poison Siegfried. This is meant to signify that
-Siegfried, having tasted dragon's blood, understands people's secret
-thoughts. Siegfried, having learnt Mime's intentions, kills him. The
-birds tell Siegfried where Bruennhilda is, and he goes to find her.
-
-Act III. Wotan calls up Erda. Erda prophesies to Wotan, and gives
-him advice. Siegfried appears, quarrels with Wotan, and they fight.
-Suddenly Siegfried's sword breaks Wotan's spear, which had been
-more powerful than anything else. Siegfried goes into the fire to
-Bruennhilda: kisses her; she wakes up, abandons her divinity, and
-throws herself into Siegfried's arms.
-
-Third Day. Prelude. Three Norns plait a golden rope, and talk about
-the future. They go away. Siegfried and Bruennhilda appear. Siegfried
-takes leave of her, gives her the ring, and goes away.
-
-Act I. By the Rhine. A king wants to get married, and also to give
-his sister in marriage. Hagen, the king's wicked brother, advises
-him to marry Bruennhilda and to give his sister to Siegfried.
-Siegfried appears; they give him a drugged draught, which makes
-him forget all the past and fall in love with the king's sister,
-Gutrune. So he rides off with Gunther, the king, to get Bruennhilda
-to be the king's bride. The scene changes. Bruennhilda sits with
-the ring. A Valkyrie comes to her and tells her that Wotan's spear
-is broken, and advises her to give the ring to the Rhine nymphs.
-Siegfried comes, and by means of the magic helmet turns himself into
-Gunther, demands the ring from Bruennhilda, seizes it, and drags her
-off to sleep with him.
-
-Act II. By the Rhine. Alberich and Hagen discuss how to get the
-ring. Siegfried comes, tells how he has obtained a bride for Gunther
-and spent the night with her, but put a sword between himself and
-her. Bruennhilda rides up, recognizes the ring on Siegfried's hand,
-and declares that it was he, and not Gunther, who was with her.
-Hagen stirs everybody up against Siegfried, and decides to kill him
-next day when hunting.
-
-Act III. Again the nymphs in the Rhine relate what has happened.
-Siegfried, who has lost his way, appears. The nymphs ask him for
-the ring, but he won't give it up. Hunters appear. Siegfried tells
-the story of his life. Hagen then gives him a draught, which causes
-his memory to return to him. Siegfried relates how he aroused and
-obtained Bruennhilda, and every one is astonished. Hagen stabs him
-in the back, and the scene is changed. Gutrune meets the corpse of
-Siegfried. Gunther and Hagen quarrel about the ring, and Hagen
-kills Gunther. Bruennhilda cries. Hagen wishes to take the ring
-from Siegfried's hand, but the hand of the corpse raises itself
-threateningly. Bruennhilda takes the ring from Siegfried's hand, and
-when Siegfried's corpse is carried to the pyre, she gets on to a
-horse and leaps into the fire. The Rhine rises, and the waves reach
-the pyre. In the river are three nymphs. Hagen throws himself into
-the fire to get the ring, but the nymphs seize him and carry him
-off. One of them holds the ring; and that is the end of the matter.
-
-The impression obtainable from my recapitulation is, of course,
-incomplete. But however incomplete it may be, it is certainly
-infinitely more favorable than the impression which results from
-reading the four booklets in which the work is printed.
-
-
-
-
-APPENDIX IV
-
-
-Translations of French poems and prose quoted in Chapter X.
-
-BAUDELAIRE'S "FLOWERS OF EVIL"
-
-No. XXIV
-
- I adore thee as much as the vaults of night,
- O vase full of grief, taciturnity great,
- And I love thee the more because of thy flight.
- It seemeth, my night's beautifier, that you
- Still heap up those leagues--yes! ironically heap!
- That divide from my arms the immensity blue.
-
- I advance to attack, I climb to assault,
- Like a choir of young worms at a corpse in the vault;
- Thy coldness, oh cruel, implacable beast!
- Yet heightens thy beauty, on which my eyes feast!
-
-
-BAUDELAIRE'S "FLOWERS OF EVIL"
-
-No. XXXVI
-
-DUELLUM
-
- Two warriors come running, to fight they begin,
- With gleaming and blood they bespatter the air;
- These games, and this clatter of arms, is the din
- Of youth that's a prey to the surgings of love.
-
- The rapiers are broken! and so is our youth,
- But the dagger's avenged, dear! and so is the sword,
- By the nail that is steeled and the hardened tooth.
- Oh, the fury of hearts aged and ulcered by love!
-
- In the ditch, where the ounce and the pard have their lair,
- Our heroes have rolled in an angry embrace;
- Their skin blooms on brambles that erewhile were bare.
-
- That ravine is a friend-inhabited hell!
- Then let us roll in, oh woman inhuman,
- To immortalize hatred that nothing can quell!
-
-
-FROM BAUDELAIRE'S PROSE WORK ENTITLED "LITTLE POEMS"
-
-THE STRANGER
-
-Whom dost thou love best? say, enigmatical man--thy father, thy
-mother, thy brother, or thy sister?
-
-"I have neither father, nor mother, nor sister, nor brother."
-
-Thy friends?
-
-"You there use an expression the meaning of which till now remains
-unknown to me."
-
-Thy country?
-
-"I ignore in what latitude it is situated."
-
-Beauty?
-
-"I would gladly love her, goddess and immortal."
-
-Gold?
-
-"I hate it as you hate God."
-
-Then what do you love, extraordinary stranger?
-
-"I love the clouds ... the clouds that pass ... there ... the
-marvelous clouds!"
-
-
-BAUDELAIRE'S PROSE POEM
-
-THE SOUP AND THE CLOUDS
-
-My beloved little silly was giving me my dinner, and I was
-contemplating, through the open window of the dining-room, those
-moving architectures which God makes out of vapors, the marvelous
-constructions of the impalpable. And I said to myself, amid my
-contemplations, "All these phantasmagoria are almost as beautiful as
-the eyes of my beautiful beloved, the monstrous little silly with
-the green eyes."
-
-Suddenly I felt the violent blow of a fist on my back, and I heard a
-harsh, charming voice, an hysterical voice, as it were hoarse with
-brandy, the voice of my dear little well-beloved, saying, "Are you
-going to eat your soup soon, you d---- b---- of a dealer in clouds?"
-
-
-BAUDELAIRE'S PROSE POEM
-
-THE GALLANT MARKSMAN
-
-As the carriage was passing through the forest, he ordered it to be
-stopped near a shooting-gallery, saying that he wished to shoot off
-a few bullets to _kill_ Time. To kill this monster, is it not the
-most ordinary and the most legitimate occupation of every one? And
-he gallantly offered his arm to his dear, delicious, and execrable
-wife--that mysterious woman to whom he owed so much pleasure, so
-much pain, and perhaps also a large part of his genius.
-
-Several bullets struck far from the intended mark--one even
-penetrated the ceiling; and as the charming creature laughed madly,
-mocking her husband's awkwardness, he turned abruptly toward her and
-said, "Look at that doll there on the right with the haughty mien
-and her nose in the air; well, dear angel, _I imagine to myself that
-it is you!_" And he closed his eyes and pulled the trigger. The doll
-was neatly decapitated.
-
-Then, bowing toward his dear one, his delightful, execrable wife,
-his inevitable pitiless muse, and kissing her hand respectfully, he
-added, "Ah! my dear angel, how I thank you for my skill!"
-
-
-VERLAINE'S "FORGOTTEN AIRS"
-
-No. I
-
- "The wind in the plain
- Suspends its breath."--FAVART.
-
- 'Tis ecstasy languishing,
- Amorous fatigue,
- Of woods all the shudderings
- Embraced by the breeze,
- 'Tis the choir of small voices
- Toward the gray trees.
-
- Oh, the frail and fresh murmuring!
- The twitter and buzz,
- The soft cry resembling
- That's expired by the grass....
- Oh, the roll of the pebbles
- 'Neath waters that pass!
-
- Oh, this soul that is groaning
- In sleepy complaint!
- In us is it moaning?
- In me and in you?
- Low anthem exhaling
- While soft falls the dew.
-
-
-VERLAINE'S "FORGOTTEN AIRS"
-
-No. VIII
-
- In the unending
- Dullness of this land,
- Uncertain the snow
- Is gleaming like sand.
-
- No kind of brightness
- In copper-hued sky,
- The moon you might see
- Now live and now die.
-
- Gray float the oak trees--
- Cloudlike they seem--
- Of neighboring forests,
- The mists in between.
-
- Wolves hungry and lean,
- And famishing crow,
- What happens to you
- When acid winds blow?
-
- In the unending
- Dullness of this land,
- Uncertain the snow
- Is gleaming like sand.
-
-
-SONG BY MAETERLINCK
-
- When he went away,
- (Then I heard the door)
- When he went away,
- On her lips a smile there lay....
-
- Back he came to her,
- (Then I heard the lamp)
- Back he came to her,
- Someone else was there....
-
- It was death I met,
- (And I heard her soul)
- It was death I met,
- For her he's waiting yet....
-
- Someone came to say,
- (Child, I am afraid)
- Someone came to say
- That he would go away....
-
- With my lamp alight,
- (Child, I am afraid)
- With my lamp alight,
- Approached I in affright....
-
- To one door I came,
- (Child, I am afraid)
- To one door I came,
- A shudder shook the flame....
-
- At the second door,
- (Child, I am afraid)
- At the second door
- Forth words of flame did pour....
-
- To the third I came,
- (Child, I am afraid)
- To the third I came,
- Then died the little flame....
-
- Should he one day return
- Then what shall we say?
- Waiting, tell him, one
- And dying for him lay....
-
- If he asks for you,
- Say what answer then?
- Give him my gold ring
- And answer not a thing....
-
- Should he question me
- Concerning the last hour?
- Say I smiled for fear
- That he should shed a tear....
-
- Should he question more
- Without knowing me?
- Like a sister speak;
- Suffering he may be....
-
- Should he question why
- Empty is the hall?
- Show the gaping door,
- The lamp alight no more....
-
-
- * * * * *
-
-Transcriber's note:
-
-Text enclosed by underscores is in italics (_italics_).
-
-Text enclosed by the plus symbol is transliterated Greek (+metanoeta+).
-
-Small capital text has been replaced with all capitals.
-
-Variations in spelling, punctuation and hyphenation have been
-retained except in obvious cases of typographical error.
-
-Missing page numbers are page numbers that were not shown in the
-original text.
-
-Page 5: The transcriber has completed the word "meeting". "In 1838,
-on the occasion of a meet- of the Society for the Promotion of
-Peace" ...
-
-Page 372: Footnote 86, Knight, pp. 139-141. The number the
-transcriber has rendered as 139 is unclear.
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Kingdom of God is Within You, What
-is Art, by Lyof N. Tolstoi
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK KINGDOM OF GOD IS WITHIN YOU ***
-
-***** This file should be named 43409.txt or 43409.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/4/3/4/0/43409/
-
-Produced by David Edwards and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive)
-
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
-will be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
-one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
-(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
-permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
-set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
-copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
-protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
-Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
-charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
-do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
-rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
-such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
-research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
-practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
-subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
-redistribution.
-
-
-
-*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
- www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
-all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
-If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
-terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
-entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
-and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
-or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
-collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
-individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
-located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
-copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
-works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
-are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
-Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
-freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
-this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
-the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
-keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
-Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
-a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
-the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
-before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
-creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
-Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
-the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
-States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
-access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
-whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
-copied or distributed:
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
-almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
-re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
-with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
-from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
-posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
-and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
-or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
-with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
-work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
-through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
-Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
-1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
-terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
-to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
-permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
-word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
-distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
-"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
-posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
-you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
-copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
-request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
-form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
-that
-
-- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
- owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
- has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
- Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
- must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
- prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
- returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
- sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
- address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
- the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or
- destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
- and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
- Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
- money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
- of receipt of the work.
-
-- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
-forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
-both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
-Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
-Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
-collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
-"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
-corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
-property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
-computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
-your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
-your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
-the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
-refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
-providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
-receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
-is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
-opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO OTHER
-WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
-WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
-If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
-law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
-interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
-the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
-provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
-with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
-promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
-harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
-that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
-or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
-work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
-Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
-
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
-including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
-because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
-people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
-To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
-and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
-Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
-permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
-Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
-throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at 809
-North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email
-contact links and up to date contact information can be found at the
-Foundation's web site and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
-SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
-particular state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
-To donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
-works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
-with anyone. For forty years, he produced and distributed Project
-Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
-unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
-keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
-
- www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/43409.zip b/43409.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 0b52bb8..0000000
--- a/43409.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ